Skip to main content

Full text of "The history of the popes, from the close of the middle ages. Drawn from the secret archives of the Vatican and other original sources"

See other formats


■$mk 


i '-'All i'.-'''  '.'"':■■' 


xvlo^i^SO 


%m 


Digitized  by  the  Internet  Archive 

in  2009  with  funding  from 

Boston  Library  Consortium  IVIember  Libraries 


http://www.archive.org/details/historyofpopesfr0699past 


HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES. 


VOL.  VI. 


PASTOR'S  HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES. 


SIX  VOLUMES  OF  THE  ENGLISH  EDITION 
NOW  COMPLETED. 


THE  HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES.  Translated  from 
the  German  of  Dr.  Ludwig  Pastor,  and  edited  by  the  Rev. 
Frederick  Ignatius  Antrobus  of  the  London  Oratory. 

Vols.  I.  and  II.  a.d.  1305-1458.     Demy  8vc.     1891. 

Vols.  III.  and  IV.     a.d.  1458-1483.  ,,  1894. 

Vols.  V.  and  VI.        a.d.  1484-1513.  ,,  1898. 

I2S.  net  per  vol. 


LONDON: 
KEGAN  PAUL,  TRENCH,  TRUBNER,  &  CO.,  LIMITED. 


THE 

HISTORY   OF   THE    POPES, 

FROM   THE   CLOSE   OF  THE   MIDDLE   AGES. 

DRAWN     FROM    THE    SECRET    ARCHIVES     OF    THE    VATICAN    AND    OTHER 
ORIGINAL    SOURCES. 


FROM   THE    GERMAN    OF 

De.  ludwig  pastor, 

PROFESSOR     OF    HISTORY    IN    THE    UNIVERSITY    OF    INNSBRUCK. 
EDITED    BY 

FREDERICK    IGNATIUS    ANTROBUS 

OF   THE    ORATORY. 


VOLUME    VL 

SECOND    EDITION. 

LONDON: 

KEGAN  PAUL,  TRENCH,  TRUBNER,  &  CO.,  Ld. 

PATERNOSTER  HOUSE,  CHARING  CROSS  ROAD. 

I  90  I. 


1.-3  4-30 


/3/ 


CONTENTS   OF   VOL.    VI. 


Table  of  Contents        ..... 
List  of  Unpublished  Documents  in  Appendix 


PAGE 

vii-xxvi 
xxvii-xxx 


BOOK  I.     Alexander  VI.,   1492-1503. 

Savonarola  and  Alexander  VI.     .....  3-54 

Alexander  VI.  and  Louis  XII.     .....  55-69 

Louis  XII.  in  Milan   .......  70-84 

Alexander  VI.  and  the  War  against  the  Turks      .         .  85-102 

The  States  of  the  Church  and  the  Borgia     .         .         .  1 03-1 41 

Alexander  A^I.'s  action  in  the  Church  ....  142-164 

Alexander  VI.  as  a  Patron  of  Art         ....  165-181 


BOOK  II,     Pius  III.,   1503.     Julius  II.,   1503-1513. 


The  Conclaves  of  September  and  November,  1503 

Disputes  with  Venice 

Subjugation  of  Perugia  and  Bologna 

The  Political  Situation  between  1507  and  1509 

Wars  in  Italy      .... 

The  Holy  League 

Annihilation  of  the  Power  of  France  in  Italy 

Julius  II.  and  Art       ... 

Julius  II.  and  Michael  Angelo     . 

Raphael  and  the  A^atican  Stanze  . 

Appendix  of  Unpublished  Documents 

Index  of  Names 


185-231 
232-258 
259-289 
290-320 

321-365 
366-404 

405-454 
455-502 

503-539 
540-607 

611-659 

661-670 


TABLE  OF  CONTJENTS  OF  VOLUME  VL 


BOOK  I. 
CHAPTER  I. 

SAVONAROLA  AND  ALEXANDER  VI. 
A.D.  PAGE 

1495  The  hope  of  reform  centred  in  Savonarola  .  .  3 
The  moral  revolution  in  Florence  ....  3 
His  sermons  become  more  political  ....  4 
His  numerous  enemies  in  Florence  ....  4 
His  passionate  advocacy  of  the  French  alliance  .  .  4 
And  denunciation  of  the  Medici  and  their  adherents  .  5 
The  Pope  summons  Savonarola  to  Rome  ...  5 
He  excuses  himself  from  coming  on  the  ground  of 

expediency         .......  6 

The  Pope  forbids  Savonarola  to  preach  ...  6 
And  orders  the  Convent  of  S.  Marco  to  be  reunited  to 

the  Lombard  Congregation         ....  6 

Savonarola  acknowledges  the  duty  of  submission  .  6 
But  defends  himself,  especially  as  to  the  reunion  with 

the  Lombard  Friars  ......  7 

The  Pope  yields  this  point,  but  forbids  Savonarola  to 

preach       ........  8 

Piero  de'  Medici  attempts  to  return  to  Florence  .  9 
Savonarola's  sermons  against  him,  before  the  arrival 

of  the  Pope's  Brief     ......  9 

His  negotiations  with  the  Duke  of  Ferrara  .  .  9 
The  Signoria  fail  to  obtain  permission  from  the  Pope 

for  Savonarola's  preaching  .         .         .         .10 

1496  Savonarola  resumes  his  sermons  by  their  command  .  11 
His  first  Lenten  sermon,  in  defence  of  his  conduct  .  1 2 
His  following  sermons,  against  the  vices  of  Rome  .  1 2 
Moderation  and  patience  of  Alexander  VI.         .         .  13 


Vlll  TABLE   OF   CONTENTS. 

A.D.  PAGE 

1496  The  violence  and  terrorism  exercised  by  Savonarola  .  14 
The  Pope  proposes  a  new  Dominican  Congregation 

under  Cardinal  Caraffa       .         .         .         .         .15 
Unconditional  refusal  of  Savonarola  .         .         .         -15 

1497  The  Pope  endeavours  to  detach  Florence  from  the 

French  alliance.         .         .         .         .         .         .16 

Savonarola's  Lenten  sermons  in  1497         .         .         .        17 
His  friends  alienated  by  their  violence       .         .         .17 
Disturbances  in  Florence  .  .         .         .         .       18 

Savonarola's  letter  to  the  Pope  .         .         .         .         .18 

Excommunication  of  Savonarola  by  the  Pope     .         .       19 
Efforts  of  the  Florentine  Ambassador  to  obtain  the 

withdrawal  of  the  Brief       .         .         .         .         .21 

Savonarola's  letter  of  defiance    .         .         .         .         .22 

The  Pope  determines  to  persevere  in  the  excommuni- 
cation       ........       23 

Disobedience  of  Savonarola,  who  celebrates  Mass  on 

Christmas  Day  .         .         .         .         .         -23 

And  determines  to  resume  his  sermons  ...  24 
Which  the  Vicar  of  the  Archbishop  tries  in  vain  to 

prevent      ........       25 

1498  Savonarola  preaches  in  defence  of  his  disobedience  .  25 
His  attacks  upon  the  Roman  clergy  .  .  .  -27 
The  Pope's  Brief  to  the  Florentines  .  .  .  .29 
He  threatens  them  with  an  Interdict,  if  disobedient  .  30 
But  promises  to  absolve  Savonarola  if  he  will  obey  .  30 
The  Signoria  defend  Savonarola  .  .  .  -31 
The  Pope  insists  that  he  shall  be  shut  up  or  sent  to 

Rome        ........       32 

Letter  of  the  Florentine  Ambassador  to  his  Govern- 
ment .         .         .         .         .         .         .         -32 

The  Pope  embittered  by  the  conduct  of  the  Signoria  .       33 
Who  finally  forbid  Savonarola  to  preach     ...       34 
The  Pope  insists  on  the  vindication  of  his  authority  .       34 
Savonarola  appeals  to  the  Christian  Powers  to  con- 
voke a  Council  .......       35 

His  friendship  and  intrigues  with  Charles  VHI.  .       36 

The  knowledge  of  which  exasperates  the  Pope  .  .  37 
Savonarola  begins  to  lose  his  influence  in  Florence  .  38 
General  disbelief  in  his  prophecies  .  .  .  -39 
His  enemies  in  the  Council  insist  on  obedience  to  the 

Pope 39 

Savonarola  challenges  the  ordeal  by  fire  .  .  -41 
The  challenge  taken  up  by  Francesco  of  Apulia  .       41 

Savonarola  refuses  to  take  up  the  challenge  in  person  42 
Fra  Domenico  accepts  it  for  him        .         .         .         -42 


TABLE   OF   CONTENTS.  IX 

A.D.  PAGE 

1498  Conditions  imposed  by  the  Signoria  .         ,         .         .       43 

Disapproval  of  the  Pope    .         .         .         <,         «         »       43 

Failure  of  the  ordeal  by  fire       .         .         .         .         •44 

Anger  of  the  populace        ......       45 

Who  lose  faith  in  Savonarola     .....       46 

Disturbances    in    Florence.     Murder    of    Francesco 

Valori        ........       47 

The  Convent  of  S.   Marco  stormed.     Savonarola  im- 
prisoned   .         ...         .         .         .         .         -47 

Savonarola  to  be  tried  in  Florence      ....       48 

Savonarola  deserted  by  his  disciples  ....       49 

He  is  condemned  to  death  with  Fra  Domenico  and 

Fra  Silvestro      .         .         .         .         .         .         -5° 

His  degradation  and  execution  ....       50 

His  political  fanaticism  and  insubordination  to  the 

Holy  See 51 

His  sincere  belief  in  his  own  mission  •         •         •       53 


CHAPTER  II. 

ALEXANDER    VI.    AND    LOUIS    XII. 

1498  Death  of  Charles  VIII.     .         .         .         .         .         .55 

Louis  XII.  claims  the  Dukedom  of  Milan  .  .  '55 
Alexander  VI.  sends  Envoys  to  France  ...  56 
Dissolution  of  the  marriage  between  Louis  XII.  and 

Jeanne  of  Valois  .  .  .  .  .  -57 
Marriage  of  Louis  XII.  with  Anne  of  Brittany  .  .  57 
Csesar  Borgia  desires  to  return  to  a  secular  life  .  .  57 
Projects  of  marriage  for  Csesar  and  Lucrezia  Borgia  .  58 
Marriage  of  Lucrezia  Borgia  with  Alfonso  of  Bisceglia  58 
Proposed  marriage  of  Csesar  Borgia  with  Carlotta  of 

Aragon  rejected  by  the  King  of  Naples       .         .       58 
League  of  the  Orsini  and  Colonna  against  the  Pope  .       59 
Csesar  Borgia  resigns  the  Cardinalate         ...       60 
He  sets  out  for  France      ......       60 

He  is  created  Duke  of  Valentinois     .         .         .         .61 

His  reception  in  France    .         .         .         .         .         .61 

Breach  between  the  Pope  and  the  Sforza  .  .  .62 
Remonstrances  of  the  Portuguese    Envoys  with  the 

Pope  ........       63 

Reproaches  of  Ascanio  Sforza  .  .  .  ,  .  63 
Arrival  of  the  Spanish  Envoys  in  Rome  ...  64 
They  threaten  the  Pope  with  a  Council      ...       64 


X  TABLE   OF   CONTENTS. 

A.D.  PAGE 

1498  Alarm  of  Alexander  VI.    ......       65 

1499  Failure  of  the  projected  marriage  of  Csesar  Borgia      .       66 
Treaty  between  Louis  XII.  and  Venice  for  the  par- 
tition of  Milan  .  .         .         .         .         .66 

Louis  XII.  offers  the  hand  of  Charlotte  d'Albret  to 

Cfesar  Borgia     .         .         .         .         .         .  .67 

Critical  position  of  Alexander  VI.      ,                  .  .       67 

He  makes  concessions  to  Spain          .         .         •  -67 

Marriage  of  Csesar  Borgia  with  Charlotte  d'Albret  .       68 

Cardinal  Ascanio  Sforza  leaves  Rome         •         .  .68 

Lucrezia  and  Jofre  Borgia  leave  Rome  for  Spoleto  .       69 


CHAPTER  in. 


LOUIS    XII.    IN    MILAN. 

Invasion  of  Milan  by  the  French        .         .         .         .       yo- 

70 
71 
71 


Flight  of  Lodovico  Moro 

Delight  of  the  Pope  at  the  success  of  the  French 
Renewed  threats  of  a  Council  by  the  Portuguese 
The  Pope  and  Louis  XII.  plan  the  conquest  of  the 

Romagna  by  Ctesar   . 
The  fall  of  Imola  and  ForH 
Csesar  suspected  of  poisoning  his  nephew,  Cardinal 

Juan  Borgia       ...... 

1500  Lodovico  Moro  recovers  Milan 
Triumphal  reception  of  Csesar  Borgia  in  Rome  . 
French  victory  at  Novara,  Lodovico  taken  prisoner 
Cardinal  Ascanio  Sforza  imprisoned  in  France  . 
Rejoicings  in  Rome  ..... 
Insecurity  of  life  and  property  in  the  City . 
Alfonso  of  Bisceglia  attacked  and  wounded 
He   attacks  Csesar  Borgia,  and  is  murdered  by  his 

orders        ...... 

Narrow  escape  of  the  Pope  from  death 
Csesar  resumes  his  plans  against  the  Romagna 

1 50 1  His  first  successes.     The  siege  of  Faenza  . 
Csesar  is  created  Duke  of  Romagna  . 
Terms  of  peace  made  with  Florence  . 
Treaty  between  the  Pope,  France,  and  Spain  for  the 

partition  of  Naples     ... 
The  French  invade  Naples ;  flight  of  King  Frederick 
France  and  Spain  divide  Naples 


72 
72 

73 
73 
74 
74 
75 
75 
75 
76 

77 
78 
80 
81 
82 
82 

83 
84 

84 


TABLE   OF   CONTENTS.  '  xi 


CHAPTER  IV. 

ALEXANDER  VI.  AND  THE  WAR  AGAINST  THE  TURKS. 
A.D.  PAGE 

1498  The  Pope's  nepotism  hinders  efforts  against  the  Turks  85 
But  he  endeavours  to  organise  a  Crusade  .  .  -85 
Attacks  of  the  Sultan  on  Christian  countries  .  .  86 
Hostilities  between  the  Turks  and  Venice  .  .  87 
Successes  of  the  Turks — fall  of  Lepanto     .         .         -87 

1499  The  Pope  endeavours  ■  to  form  a  League  against  the 

Turks 88 

Indifference  of  the  Christian  Powers  to  the  fate  of 

Venice       ........  89 

1500  Issue  of  a  Crusade  Bull  by  the  Pope          ...  90 
Papal  Brief  to  the  King  of  France      ....  90 
The  Cardinals  taxed  for  the  war.     List  of  contribu- 
tions         .         .         .         .         .         .                   .91 

Sincerity  of  the  Pope's  support  of  Venice  •         •         •  93 

Successes  of  the  Turks  against  Venice — fall  of  Modon  93 

Efforts  of  Alexander  against  the  Turks        ...  94 
Indifference  of  the  Christian  Princes          .         .         -95 

Peraudi  undertakes  the  mission  to  Germany       .         .  95 

Maximilian  refuses  him  entrance  to  the  empire  .         .  96 

1 501  Peraudi  comes    to  an   agreement   with   the   Diet  at 

Nuremberg        .......  96 

1502  And  preaches  the  Crusade  throughout  Germany  .  97 
The  King  of  England  refuses  material  help  .  .  97 
Invitation  of  the  French  clergy  ....  98 
Objections  to  the  Crusade  in  Hungary       ...  98 

1500  Thomas  Bakocs,  the   Primate,  concludes   an   agree- 

ment         ........  98 

1 501  Conclusion  of  the  League  between  Hungary,  Venice, 

and  the  Pope     .......  99 

Alternative  successes  and  failures  of  the  fleet      .  99 

Conquest  of  S'^  Maura  by  Bishop  Giacopo  da  Pesaro  100 

1503  Peace  concluded  between  Venice,  Hungary,  and  the 

Turks         .         .         .         .         .         .         .         .  loi 

Pecuniary  assistance  given  by  the  Pope  to  Hungary  .  loi 


CHAPTER  V. 

THE    STATES    OF    THE    CHURCH    AND    THE    BORGIA. 

1 501  Alexander  VI.  and  the  Colonna         ....     103 
Confiscation  of  the  possessions  of  the  Colonna  and 

Savelli       ........     104 


Xll  TABLE   OF   CONTENTS. 

A.D.  PAGE 

1501  Their  distribution  among  the  Borgia  .  ,  .104 
Legitimation  of  Juan  Borgia  .....  105 
Marriage  of  Lucrezia  Borgia  and  Alfonso  d'Este  .  107 
Her  popularity  as  Duchess  of  Ferrara  .  .  .110 
Character  of  Lucrezia  Borgia — her  charity  .  .  1 1 1 
Position  of  Caesar  Borgia  in  Rome  .  .  .  ,112 
Pamphlet  against  the  Borgia  .  .  .  .  .113 
Indifference  of  the  Pope  to  such  attacks  .  .  •  1 1 5 
Development  of  epigrammatic  satire  in  Rome  .  •  1 1 5 
The  erection  of  the  statue  of  Pasquino       .         .  .116 

1504  Which  becomes  the  centre  of  witty  epigrams      .  .117 

1509  Loss  of  the  caricatures  attached  to  comic  poems  .     118 

1502  Alexander  VI.  and  Caesar  Borgia  visit  Piombini  .  118 
Plans  of  Csesar  Borgia  against  Tuscany  .  .  .119 
He  takes  possession  of  the    Duchy   of  Urbino  and 

Camerino  ...... 

Camerino  given  to  the  infant  Juan  Borgia 

Interference  of  Louis  XII.  with  Csesar's  plans 

Caesar  comes  to  terms  with  the  King  of  France  .  .     121 

Conspiracy  of  the  mercenary  troops  against  Caesar  .     122 

Who  receives  help  from  France 

And  breaks  up  the  conspiracy   .         .         .         .  -123 

Csesar  takes  Sinigaglia.     Flight  of  Andrea  Doria  .     123 

Murder  of  the   chief  conspirators   at   Sinigaglia  by 

Caesar        .         .         .         .         .         .         .  .124 

1503  Further  successes  of  Caesar  Borgia  .  .  .  .124 
The  Pope  proceeds  against  the  Orsini  .  .  -125 
Confiscation  of  the  palace  and  property  of  Cardinal 

Orsini        .         .         .         .         .         .         .         -125 

Jofre  Borgia  attacks  the  Orsini  strongholds         .  125 

The  Orsini  attack  Ponte  Nomentano.     Alarm  of  the 

Pope         ....... 

Death  of  Cardinal  Orsini — suspicion  of  poison 
Cfesar  Borgia  advances  against  the  Orsini . 
Reverses  of  the  French  in  Naples 
The  Pope  raises  money  by  the  sale  of  new  offices 
Death  of  Cardinal  Michiel,  probably  by  poison 
Simoniacal  creation  of  new  Cardinals 
The  Borgia  policy  inclines  towards  Spain  . 
Negotiations  between  the  Pope  and  the  Emperor 
Occupation  of  Perugia  by  the  troops  of  Caesar  Borgia 
Sickness  in  Rome — depression  of  the  Pope 
Illness  of  the  Pope  and  of  Caesar  Borgia    . 
Death  of  Alexander  VI.    .... 

The  suspicion  of  poison  ungrounded 
Funeral  of  Alexander  VI. 


125 
126 
126 
127 
127 
128 
128 
129 
130 
130 

131 
132 

134 

135 

137 


.  TABLE   OF   CONTENTS.  XUl 

A.D.  PAGE 

1503  Severe  judgment  of  his  contemporaries      .         .  .138 

Partly  modified  by  modern  research           .         .  .138 

Worldliness  of  Alexander  VI.    .....     139 

Its  disastrous  effect  upon  the  Papacy          .          .  -139 

But  the  purity  of  the  Church's  doctrine  maintained  .     140 

Distinction  between  the  Pope  and  the  man        .  .     141 

CHAPTER  VI. 

ALEXANDER   VI. 'S    ACTION    IN    THE    CHURCH. 

Alexander  VI.  supports  the  religious  Orders       .         .142 

Especially    the  Dominicans   and  the   Hermits   of  S. 

Augustine  .         .         .         .         .         .         -143 

He  defends  the  liberties  of  the  Church  in  the  Nether- 
lands        ........     144 

He  promotes  devotion  to  the  Blessed  Virgin      .         .     145 
1500  And  restores  the  ringing  of  the  Angelus     .         .         .     145 

1499  Preparations  for  the  Jubilee  of  1500  .         .         .         .     147 

1500  The  opening  of  the  Jubilee  by  Alexander  VI.  ,  .  148 
Crowded  Pilgrimages  to  Rome  for  the  Jubilee  .  .  149 
Distinguished  Pilgrims  in  Rome  .  .  .  .150 
The  receipts  from  the  Jubilee  given  to  Csesar  Borgia  152 
Serious  inundation  in  Rome  .  .  .  .  .152 
The  Jubilee  extended  to  the  whole  of  Christendom  .  153 
Disposal  of  the  Jubilee  alms  .  .  .  .  •  -53 
Resistance  to  the  Jubilee  Indulgences  in  Switzerland 

and  Germany    .         .         .         .         .         .         .154 

Cardinal  Peraudi's  efforts  for  reform  in  Germany        .     154 

1 501  Alexander  VI.  and  the  Censorship  of  Books       .         .154 
1500  His  repression  of  heresy  in  Lombardy  and  Bohemia  .     156 

His  tolerance  of  the  Jews  due  to  political  motives      .     157 
1493  Proceedings  against  the  Maranas  (crypto- Jews) .         .     157 

1492  Propagation  of  the  Faith  in  Greenland  .  .  .158 
The  discovery  of  the  New  World  .  .  .  -159 
Arbitration   of  Alexander   VI.    between    Spain   and 

Portugal    ........     160 

1493  Definition  of  the  boundaries  between  them  .  .161 
Evangelisation  of  the  New  World      .         .         ,         .163 

CHAPTER  VII. 

ALEXANDER    VI.    AS    A    PATRON    OF    ART. 

Improvements  in  the  Leonine  City    .  .         .         .165 

1499  Making  of  the  Borgo  Nuovo  for  the  Jubilee  of  1500  .     166 


XIV  TABLE   OF   CONTENTS.. 

A.D.  PAGE 

1499  Alterations  in  the  Castle  of  St.  Angelo       .         .  .168 

Discoveries  made  during  the  alterations     ,         .  .169 

Other  improvements  in  the  Trastevere        .         .  .170 

Works  at  the  Vatican.     The  Appartamento  Borgia  .     171 

The  decoration  of  the  Appartamento          .         .  .172 

Restorations  in  Roman  Churches      .         ,         .  .177 

Building  by  Alexander  VI.  outside  Rome.         .  .     178 

Patronage  of  Art  by  the  Cardinals     .         .         .  .179 

S499  Bramante's  work  in  Rome         .         .         .         .  .180 

Churches  erected  in  the  reign  of  Alexander  VI.  .     180 


BOOK  II. 

Pius  III. — 1503. 
Julius  II.— 1503-15 13. 

CHAPTER  I. 

THE    CONCLAVES    OF    SEPTEMBER    AND    NOVEMBER,     I503. 

1503  Danger  of  the  situation  in  Italy 

Predominant  influence  of  Csesar  Borgia     . 

He  swears  obedience  to  the  Sacred  College 

And  consents  to  withdraw  from  Rome 

He  places  himself  under  the  protection  of  the  French 

The  obsequies  of  Alexander  VI. 

Efforts  of  Cardinal  d'Amboise  to  obtain  the  Tiara 

Opposition  of  the  Spanish  Cardinals . 

Arrival  of  Giuliano  della  Rovere  in  Rome 

Divisions  among  the  Italian  Cardinals 

Beginning  of  the  Conclave 

A  new  Election  Capitulation  drawn  up 

Position  of  Cardinal  d'Amboise 

The  balance  of  parties  among  the  Cardinals 

Selection  of  Cardinal  Piccolomini  as  Pope 

Who  takes  the  name  of  Pius  III. 

Character  of  Pius  III.       ..... 

His  piety  and  regular  life  ..... 

Peter  Delphinus  on  Pius  III.    .... 

Zeal  of  Pius  III.  for  the  reform  of  the  Church  . 
His  peace-loving  disposition      .  .         . 

The  Pope  allows  Csesar  Borgia  to  return  to  Rome 
Coronation  of  Pius  III.     ..... 

Caesar  Borgia's  army  to  be  disbanded 


185 
186 
187 
188 
188 
189 
191 
191 
192 
192 

193 
194 

195 
196 
197 
198 
198 
199 
200 
201 
202 
203 
203 
204 


TABLE  or  CONTENTS.  XV 

A.D.  PAGE 

1503  Reconciliation  between  the  Orsini  and  the  Colonna  .  204 
Perilous  position  of  Ccesar  Borgia  ....  205 
Illness  of  the  Pope    .......     205 

Death  of  Pius  III 206 

Giuliano  della  Rovere  comes  to  terms  with  the  Spanish 

Cardinals  ........     208 

Prospects  of  the  Election  .         .         .         .         .         .209 

Election  of  Cardinal  Giuliano  della  Rovere         .         .210 
Who  takes  the  name  of  Julius  II.       .         .         .         .210 

Terms  of  the  Election  Capitulation    .         .         .         .211 

Appearance  and  character  of  Julius  II.       .         .         .212 

His  courage  and  strength  of  will         .         .         .         -215 
He  devotes  himself  to  the  restoration  of  the  States  of 

the  Church        .         .         .         .         .         .         .216 

His  freedom  from  nepotism       .         .         .         .         .217 

Contrast  between  Julius  11.  and  Alexander  VI.  .         .218 
Julius  II.  and  his  relations         .         .         .         .         .218 

Cardinal  Galeotto  della  Rovere  .         .         .         .219 

Creation  of  Cardinals  by  Julius  II.     ....     220 

1508  Death  of  Cardinal  Galeotto  della  Rovere   .         .         .222 
Economy  of  Julius  II.       ......     223 

His  ways  of  raising  money  .         .         .         .         ,224 

And  financial  ability  .         .         ..         .         .         .225 

Order  maintained  in  Rome  by  the  Swiss  Guards         .     226 
Reorganisation  of  the  coinage   .         .         .         .         .226 

Storage  of  provisions  in  Rome  .         .         .         .         .227 

Improvement  of  agriculture  in  the  Campagna  .  .  228 
System  of  administration  of  the  States  of  the  Church.  228 
Government  of  the  Papal  States  by  Julius  IT.  .  .229 
Justice  and  popularity  of  the  Pope     .         »         ,  230 


CHAPTER  II. 


DISPUTES   WITH    VENICE. 

1503  Difficulty  of  the  Pope's  position 

Anarchy  in  the  States  of  the  Church . 
Encroachments  of  Venice  in  the  Romagna 
Legations  given  to  Cardinal  d'Amboise 
Julius  11.  and  Csesar  Borgia 
The  Pope  remonstrates  with  Venice  . 
And  resolves  to  recover  the  Romagna 
Discouragement  of  Csesar  Borgia 
Faenza  and  Rimini  fall  into  the  hands  of  Venice 
VOL.  VL 


232 
232 

233 

234 

235 
236 

237 
238 

239 


xvi  TABLE  OF  CONTENTS. 

A.D.  PAGE 

1503  Caesar  Borgia  refuses  to  deliver  up  the  forts  of  the 
Romagna  . 
Arrest  of  Caesar  Borgia 


239 

His  imprisonment  and  the  confiscation  of  his  property     240 

241 
242 


1504  Agreement  between  the  Pope  and  Csesar  Borgia 
Who  remains  under  surveillance  at  Ostia 
Caesar  goes  to  Naples,  where  he  is  again  arrested  by 

Spain         .... 
Forli  given  up  to  the  Pope 
Caesar  Borgia  imprisoned  in  Spain 


1506  His  escape  from  Spain,  and  death  in  battle  in  Navarre     245 


His  heritage  in  the  Romagna  falls  to  the  Church 
Relations  of  Venice  and  Julius  II.     . 

1503  The  Pope  insists  on  the  restoration  of  the  Romagna 
His  relations  with  the  Venetian  Ambassador 
Remonstrances  of  Julius  II,       . 
His  resolution  to  recover  the  Romagna 

1504  Brief  of  Julius  II.  to  the  Doge  . 
Venice  refuses  to  give  way 
The  Pope  seeks  help  against  Venice  . 
His  negotiations  with  Maximilian  and  Louis  XII. 
Unfriendliness  of  Ferdinand  towards  the  Holy  See 
Conclusion  of  the  agreement  of  Blois  against  Venice 

1505  Venice  begins  to  give  way  .... 
Failure  of  the  agreement  of  Blois 


1505  The   Pope   makes  family  alliances  with  the  Roman 

Barons 

1506  Marriage  of  Felice  with  Giovanni  Giordano  Orsini 


And  of  Marcantonio  Colonna  with  a  niece  of  the  Pope     260 


Rule  of  the  tyrants  in  Bologna  and  Perugia 
The  Pope  determines  to  recover  them 
And  to  head  the  expedition  himself  . 
Opposition  of  Venice  to  the  undertaking   . 
Alliances  concluded  with  other  Italian  States 
Uncertain  attitude  of  France  and  Venice   . 
Unsatisfactory  conduct  of  Cardinal  d'Amboise 
Ecclesiastical  disputes  with  France    . 
Negotiations  concerning  Perugia  and  Bologna 
The  Pope  sets  out  for  Bologna 


243 

244 

245 


246 
247 
248 
249 

251 
252 

253 
254 
255 

255 
256 

257 
257 
257 


The  Pope  receives  the  Venetian  profession  of  obedience     258 
CHAPTER  III. 

SUBJUGATION    OF   PERUGIA   AND    BOLOGNA. 


259 
260 


261 
261 
262 
262 
263 
263 
263 
264 
265 
265 


TABLE   OF   CONTENTS. 


XVll 


A.D. 

1506  His  reception  at  Viterbo  .         , 
Entry  of  the  Pope  into  Orvieto 
Submission  of  Giampaolo  Baglione    . 
Entry  of  Julius  II.  into  Perugia 
He  plans  a  Crusade  against  the  Turks 
Restoration  of  the  liberties  of  Perugia 
Reception  of  the  Pope  at  Urbino 
Mission  of  Antonio  da  Monte  San  Savino 
Bentivoglio  appeals  to  a  General  Council 
The  Pope  endeavours  to  conciliate  Venice 
Arrival  of  the  Envoys  from  Bologna 
Death  of  Philip  of  Castile 
Bologna  placed  under  an  Interdict 
The  Pope  marches  upon  Bologna 
Flight  of  Bentivoglio  from  Bologna 
Submission  of  Bologna  to  the  Pope 
His  triumphal  entry  into  the  city 
Reorganisation  of  the  Government  of  Bologna 
Conditions  of  the  assistance  of  France 
Creation  of  three  French  Cardinals    . 
Dissensions  between  Louis  XII.  and  the  Pope 

1507  The  Pope  leaves  Bologna 
His  triumphal  entry  into  Rome 
The  address  of  Cardinal  Riario 


PAGE 

267 
268 
269 
270 
271 
273 
273 
274 
274 
275 
275 
276 

277 
277 
279 
280 
281 
283 
284 
284 
285 
286 
287 
288 


CHAPTER  IV. 


THE   POLITICAL    SITUATION    BETWEEN    1507    AND    1509. 

Enhanced  prestige  of  the  Papacy 

Threatening  attitude  of  France  and  Spain 

Reconciliation  between  Ferdinand  and  Louis  XII. 

Large  number  of  Cardinals  at  the  French  Court 

Mission  of  Cardinal  Pallavicino  to  the  French  camp 

Louis  XII.  refuses  to  give  up  the  Bnetivogli 

The  reform   of  the  Church  discussed  by  Ferdinand 

and  Louis  XII. 

The   Pope    dissuades    Maximilian   from  coming   to 

Rome        ....... 

Cardinal  Carvajal  sent  as  Legate  to  Germany     . 
1508  Proposals  for  a  League  against  Venice 

Maximilian  assumes  the  name  of  "  Emperor-elect  of 

Rome" 

Brief  of  Juhus  II.  to  Maximilian 
Defeat  of  Maximilian  by  the  Venetians 


290 
291 
291 
292 
292 
293 

294 

295 

295 
296 

296 
297 
298 


XVlll  TABLE   OF   CONTENTS. 

A.D.  PAGE 

1508  Conclusion  of  the  League  of  Cambrai  .  .  .  299 
Imprudence  of  Venice  in  dealing  with  Julius  II.  .  300 
Encroachments  on  the  Pope's  supremacy  .  .  .301 
Disputes  about  the  appointments  to  Bishoprics  .     301 

Insolence  of  Jacopo  Dandolo    .....     302 

1507  Difficulties  in  Bologna — recall  of  the  Papal  Legate  .  303 
Intrigues  of  the  Bentivogli  .....  304 
Cardinal  Alidosi  sent  as  Legate  to  Bologna        .         .     305 

1508  Venice  persists  in  her  unreasonable  demands  .  .  306 
Insolence  of  the  Venetian  Envoy  to  the  Pope     .         .     308 

1509  Julius  II.  joins  the  League  of  Cambrai  .  .  .  310 
The  Venetians  intrigue  with  the  Orsini  and  Colonna  .  311 
Bull  of  Excommunication  pronounced  against  Venice  311 
The  Venetians  appeal  to  a  General  Council  .  .312 
Ferrara  and  Mantua  join  the  League  of  Cambrai  .  312 
Defeat  of  the  Venetians  at  Agnadello  .  .  .313 
Machiavelli  on  the  character  of  the  Venetians .  .  314 
The  Venetians  surrender  the  Romagna  .  .  •  S^S 
And  send  Envoys  to  Rome  to  sue  for  peace  .  .316 
Crushing  conditions  proposed  by  the  Pope  .  .  317 
Successes  of  the  Venetians  in  the  war  .  .  •317 
Negotiations  with  the  Pope  broken  off  .  .  .318 
Julius  II.  fears  the  increase  of  the  power  of  France  in 

Italy 318 

15 10  And  concludes  peace  with  Venice  .  .  .  •  319 
Absolution  of  the  representatives  of  Venice  at  Rome  .     319 


CHAPTER  V. 

WARS    IN    ITALY. 

The  Pope  determines  to  deliver  Italy  from  the  French  321 
Vacillation  of  Louis  XII.  .         ,         .         .         .322 

Death  of  Cardinal  d'Amboise 323 

Failure  of  the  Pope's  negotiations  with  Germany  and 

England 323 

He  concludes  an  alliance  with  the  Swiss  .  .  .324 
Through  the  assistance  of  Cardinal  Schinner  .  .  325 
Imprisonment  of  Cardinal  Clermont  .         .         -326 

Ecclesiastical  disputes  and  rupture  with  Louis  XII.  .  327 
The  Pope's  plan  of  campaign  against  Ferrara  .  -327 
Disobedience  of  the  Duke  of  Ferrara  .  .  -328 
Who  is  excommunicated  by  the  Pope  .  .  -328 
Louis  XII.  summons  a  Synod  to  assert  the  Galilean 

liberties     ........     329 


TABLE   OF   CONTENTS.  Xlx 

A.D.  PAGE 

1 5 10  Subservience  of  the  Synod  to  the  French  King  .  .  330 
Irresolution  and  procrastination  of  Louis  XII.  .  •  331 
Decision  and  energy  of  Julius  II.  .  .  .  .  331 
He  sets  out  for  Ferrara  .  .  .  .  .  -332 
Difficulties  of  the  journey  .....  333 
The   Marquess   of  Mantua,    Standard-bearer   of  the 

Church 334 

Schism  in  the  Sacred  College  .  .  .  .  "335 
Oppression  of  the  Bolognese  by  Cardinal  Alidosi  .  335 
Who  succeeds  in  deceiving  the  Pope  .         .         .     336 

The  French  army  before  Bologna      .         .^       .         .     336 

Illness  of  the  Pope 336 

He  gives  his  blessing  to  the  Bolognese  .  .  -337 
Arrival  of  the  Venetian  and  Spanish  troops        .         -338 

Retreat  of  the  French  army 338 

Conquest  of  Concordia  .  .  .  .  .  •  339 
Recovery  of  the  Pope 340 

151 1  Who  joins  the  army  before  Mirandola        .         .         .     341 

Capitulation  of  Mirandola 343 

The  Pope  endeavours  in  vain  to  come  to  terms  with 

the  Duke  of  Ferrara 343 

He  goes  to  Bologna  and  Ravenna  ....  344 
Arrival  of  Matthseus  Lang  as  Envoy  of  the  Emperor  344 
His  reception  by  the  Pope  at  Bologna       .         .         .     345 

Failure  of  the  negotiations 346 

Trivulzio  succeeds  Chaumont  as  Commander  of  the 

French  army     .  ......     347 

Bologna  taken  by  the  French  and  given  up  to  the 

Bentivogli  .......     349 

Murder  of  Cardinal  Alidosi  by  the  Duke  of  Urbino  .  350 
Cardinal  Isvalies  Legate  of  Bologna  .  .  .  -351 
The  Council  of  Pisa  called  by  the  Emperor  and  the 

King  of  France  .         .         .         .         •         -352 

Julius  II.  summoned  to  take  part  in  it  .  .  .352 
Proposed  objects  of  the  Council  .  .  .  -353 
Which  is  supported  by  the  Emperor  and  the  King  of 

France      ........     354 

Anti-Roman  spirit  in  Germany  .....     354 

1510  Anti-Papal  proposals  of  the  Emperor  .  .  .  356 
Who  desires  a  Permanent  Legate  for  Germany  .  .  357 
He  endeavours  in  vain  to  force  the  Pope  to  join  the 

League  of  Cambrai    .         .         .         .         •  -357 

151 1  And  in  revenge  joins  in  the  plans  of  Louis  XII.  .  357 
A  French  play  directed  against  the  Pope  .  .  .357 
Jean  Lemaire's  pamphlet  in  favour  of  Gallicanism  .  359 
Answer  of  Julius  II.  to  the  citation  to  the  Council  .     361 


XX  TABLE  OF  CONTENTS. 

A.D.  PAGE 

1511  Return  of  Julius  11.  to  Rome   .....  362 

He  appeals  to  the  King  of  Spain  for  assistance .  .  363 

Louis  XII.  makes  overtures  of  peace         .         .  .  363 

Disunion  among  the  schismatical  Cardinals        .  .  363 

Julius  II.  summons  an  CEcumenical  Council      .  .  364 

And  condemns  the  Council  of  Pisa  .         .         .  .365 


CHAPTER  VI. 

THE   HOLY    LEAGUE. 

Julius  II.  forms  an  alliance  with  Spain  .  .  .  367 
Failure  of  the  negotiations  with  Louis  XII.  .  ,  367 
Formation  of  the  Holy  League  against  France  .  .  368 
Dangerous  illness  of  the  Pope  .....  368 
His  recovery  despaired  of  .....     369 

Ambitious  schemes  of  Pompeo  Colonna  .  .  .  371 
Sudden  recovery  of  the  Pope  .  .  .  .  -372 
Who  resumes  the  negotiations  for  the  League  .  .372 
Conclusion  and  promulgation  of  the  League  .  -373 
Excommunication  and  deposition  of  the  schismatical 

Cardinals.         .         .         .         .         .         .         .374 

Unfavourable  change  in   the   Emperor  towards  the 

Council     .         .         .         .         .         .         .         -375 

His  supposed  desire  to  become  Pope         .         .         .     376 
His  letters  on  the  subject  to  his  daughter  .         .         -377 
And  to  Paul  von  Lichtenstein  .         .         .         .         .380 

Negotiations  between  the  Pope  and  the  Emperor  .  383 
HostiUty  of  the  German  Episcopate  to  the  Council  .  384 
Louis  XII. 's  policy  disapproved  by  the  French  clergy 

and  people         .......     384 

Loyalty  of  the  Italian  clergy  to  the  Pope  ,         .         .385 
Writings  of  Cajetanus  against  the  Conciliar  theory     .     385 
Which  is  advocated  by  Zaccaria  Ferreri  and  Decius  .     386 
Character  of  Cardinal  Carvajal  .         .         .         -387 

The  Pope  lays  an  Interdict  upon  Florence         .         .     388 
Arrival  of  the  schismatical  Cardinals  at  Pisa      .         .     389 
Opening  of  the  Council  of  Pisa  ....     390 

Conflict  between  the  Florentines  and  the  Pisans         .     392 
The  Council  transferred  to  Milan      .         .         .         .392 

Where  it  is  treated  with  contempt  and  disrespect  .  393 
Efforts  of  the  Pope  to  equip  a  sufficient  army  .  .  395 
Failure  of  the  Swiss  attack  upon  Milan  .  .  .  395 
1512  Cardinal   Schinner  appointed  Legate   to  Lombardy 

and  Germany    .......     395 


The  Emperor  concludes  an  armistice  with  Venice 
Arrival  of  the  Swiss  in  Italy       .... 

Evacuation  of  the  Romagna  by  the  French 
Capitulation  of  Pavia  to  the  Swiss 
Flight  of  the  schismatics  from  Milan.     End  of  the 
Council    ....... 

Recovery  of  Bologna  by  the  Pope 
The  French  driven  out  of  Italy 

Rejoicings  in  Rome.     The  Pope  at  S.  Pietro  in  Vin 
coli  ........ 

Rewards  bestowed  upon  the  Swiss  by  Julius  II. 


397 
397 
397 
397 


TABLE  OF  CONTENTS.  XXI 

A.D.  PAGE 

1512  Deprivation  of  Cardinal  Sanseverino  .         .         .     396 

Bologna  and  Brescia  invested  by  the  armies  of  the 

League     ...... 

Fall  of  Brescia  to  the  Venetians 

Gaston  de  Foix  raises  the  siege  of  Bologna 

And  recovers  Brescia  for  the  French 

Troubles  in  Rome,  and  withdrawal  of  the  Pope  to  St 

Angelo      .... 
The  battle  of  Ravenna 
Victory  of  the  French    '    . 
Death  of  Gaston  de  Foix 
Terror  in  Rome 

Courage  and  resolution  of  the  Pope 
The  Duke  of  Urbino  offers  assistance  to  the  Pope 
The  Pope  begins  negotiations  with  France 
He  wins  the  Colonna  and  overawes  the  Orsini  , 


398 
399 

400 
401 
401 
402 
403 
403 
404 


CHAPTER  VII. 

ANNIHILATION   OF   THE    POWER   OF    FRANCE   IN   ITALY. 

Arrogance  of  the  schismatic  Council  at  Milan     . 
Submission  of  the  Milanese  to  Cardinal  Medici 
Preparation  for  the  Lateran  Council  . 
Opening  of  the  Council  in  the  Lateran  Basilica 
Sermon   of  Aegidius    of  Viterbo,    General   of  the 
Augustinians     ...... 

The  Pope's  address  to  the  Council    . 

First  sitting  of  the  Council         .... 

The  Council  of  Pisa  pronounced  null  and  void  . 

Sermon  of  Cajetanus,  General  of  the  Dominicans 

The  King  of  England  joins  the  League  against  France     412 

413 

413 
414 

414 


405 

405 
406 
406 

407 
408 
409 
410 
410 


415 
415 
416 

417 
418 


xxii  TABLE   OF   CONTENTS. 

A.D.  PAGE 

15 12  The  Duke  of  Ferrara  in  Rome  .....  419 

He  refuses  the  Pope's  conditions  of  peace          ,         .  420 

A  Congress  of  the  League  held  in  Mantua          .         .  420 

Restoration  of  the  rule  of  the  Medici  in  Florence        .  420 

The  Duchy  of  Milan  given  to  Massimihano  Sforza      ,  421 
Parma,  Piacenza,  and  Reggio  included  in  the  Papal 

States        .         .         .         .         .         .         .         .421 

Dissatisfaction  of  the  Emperor  and  the  King  of  Spain  422 
Efforts  of  the  Pope  to  win  Maximilian.     Matthaeus 

Lang  in  Rome  .......  423 

Magnificence  of  his  reception    .         .         .         .         .424 

Failure  of  the  Emperor's  negotiations  with  Venice      .  425 

An  aUiance  formed  between  the  Pope  and  the  Emperor  425 


Matthffius  Lang  created  a  Cardinal 
1 5 13  The  Venetians  ally  themselves  with  France 

15 1 2  Announcement  of  the  alliance  with  the  Emperor  at 

the  Lateran  Council 
The   Pragmatic  Sanction  in  France   condemned   by 

the  Lateran  Council  ..... 
Address  of  the   Apostolic  Notary,  Cristoforo    Mar 

cello 
Preponderance  of  Spain   in    Italy.     Anxiety  of  the 

Pope 

Failure  of  the  Pope's  health       .... 
Last  illness  of  Julius  II.    . 

15 13  His  last  address  to  the  Cardinals 
Death  of  Julius  II.    . 

Sorrow  in  Rome.  Popularity  of  Julius  II. 
His  character — injustice  of  Guicciardini  . 
His  faithfulness  to  his  ecclesiastical  obligations . 

1505  His  Bull  against  simony  in  Papal  elections 

151 1  His  zeal  for  the  missions  in  America  and  the  East 

His  repression  of  heresy   ..... 

He  opposes  the  severity  of  the  Spanish  Inquisition 

And  resists  State  encroachments  upon  the  rights  of 
the  Church        ...... 

Julius  II.  and  the  religious  Orders.     His  reforms 

His  ecclesiastical  acts  and  reforms     . 

His  foundation  of  the  Capella  Giulia  at  S.  Peter's 

His  ecclesiastical  concessions  for  political  reasons 

Reform    of    the   Roman   Court,    the   object   of   the 
Lateran  Council         ..... 

Justification  of  the  wars  of  Julius  II. 
.   Necessity  of  the  temporal  power 

Julius  II.,  the  Liberator  of  Italy 

His  title  of  "  Saviour  of  the  Church  "  well  deserved 


425 
426 

428 

428 

429 

430 
431 
432 
435 
436 
437 
438 

439 
440 
441 
442 
443 

443 

444 
446 

447 
447 

449 
450 
451 
453 
454 


TABLE  OF  CONTENTS. 


XXlll 


CHAPTER  VIII. 


A.D. 
1503 


1505 


1505 
1506 

1507 


1508 

1510 

1513 


1506 

1507 

1505 


JULIUS  II.  AND  ART. 

Julius  II.  the  Ma3cenas  of  the  Arts    . 

He  continues  the  work  of  Nicholas  V.  and  Sixtus  IV 

Difference    between    the  spirit   of    Nicholas   V.  and 

Julius  II.  . 
JuUus  II. 's  appreciation  of  men  of  genius  . 
The  home  of  Art  transferred  from  Florence  to  Rome 
Architecture  under  Julius  II.     Giuliano  da  Sangallo 
Michael  Angelo  and  Sansovino  in  Rome   . 
Julius  II.  and  Donato  Bramante 
To  whom  is  entrusted  the  rebuilding  of  S.  Peter's  and 

the  Vatican         ..... 
Development   of  the  idea   of  the   rebuilding   of  S 

Peter's 

Grandeur  of  Bramante's  original  design 

The  loss  of  the  old  S.  Peter's  to  be  deplored 

Opposition  to  the  rebuilding  of  S.  Peter's  . 

Satirical  dialogue  of  Andrea  Guarna  . 

Dangerous  condition  of  the  old  S.  Peter's  . 

The  Pope  provides  money  for  the  rebuilding 

The  laying  of  the  foundation-stone     . 

Bramante  master  of  the  works  . 

Diligent  prosecution  of  the  rebuilding 

Disregard  shewn  to  the  old  S.  Peter's  and  its  relics 

Destructiveness   of  Bramante  towards  ancient  build 

ings 

His  proposal  to  move  the  tomb  of  the  Apostles 

Julius  II.  refuses  his  consent     . 

Zeal  of  Julius  II.  for  the  interests  of  religion 

Progress  of  the  works         .... 

Collection  of  funds  throughout  Christendom 

State  of  the  works  at  the  death  of  Julius  II. 

Designs  of  Bramante  for  the  Vatican 

Later  alterations  by  Sixtus  V.    . 

Extension  and  decoration  of  the  Belvedere 

Beginning  of  the  Vatican  sculptures  . 

Discovery  of  the  Laocoon 

Arrangement  of  the  statues  in  the  Belvedere 

Demand  for  antiquities  in  Rome 

Michael   Angelo   and    Sansovino   in    the    service   of 

Julius  II.  . 
Improvements  in  Rome  under  Julius  II.    . 
Formation  of  the  Via  Giulia 


PAGE 

455 
456 

457 
458 
459 
459 
46c 
461 

461 

464 

465 
468 
469 
469 
471 
472 

473 
474 

475 
477 

478 

479 
480 
480 
481 
482 

483 
484 

485 
485 


490 
491 

492 

493 
494 


XXIV  TABLE   OF   CONTENTS. 

A.D.  PAGE 

1505  Julius  II.  and  the  Churches  of  Rome  .  .  .  496 
He  strengthens  the  fortresses  of  the  Papal  States  .  497 
His  Church-building  at  Perugia,  Orvieto,  and  Bologna  498 
Bramante's  work  at  the  Holy  House  at  Loreto  .  .  498 
Decoration  of  the  Cathedral  at  Savona  .  .  .  499 
Strengthening  of  the  Castle  of  St.  Angelo  .  .  .500 
Sanitary  improvements  in  Rome  ....  500 
Francesco  Albertini's  guide  to  Rome         .         .         .     501 


CHAPTER  IX. 

JULIUS   II.    AND   MICHAEL  ANGELO. 

1505  Michael  Angelo  invited  to  Rome  by  Julius  II.  .  .  503 
Who  gives  him  a  commission  for  his  own  tomb .  .504 

1506  Julius  II.  gives  up  the  idea  of  the  tomb  ,  .  .  505 
And  refuses  to  see  Michael  Angelo  .  .  .  .506 
Who  leaves  Rome  and  refuses  to  return  .  .  -506 
Sangallo  endeavours  to  make  peace  .  .  .  -507 
Soderini  remonstrates  with  Michael  Angelo  in  vain  .  509 
Michael  Angelo's  reconciliation  with  the  Pope  .  .510 
JuHus  commissions  him  to  make  a  statue  of  himself  .     511 

1508  Completion  and  erection  of  the  statue  at  Bologna  .     512 

It  is  destroyed  by  the  party  of  the  Bentivogli     .  -513 
Michael  Angelo  commissioned  to  paint  the  roof  of  the 

Sistine  Chapel  .         .         .         .         .         .  -513 

Agreement  between  him  and  Julius  II.      .         .  -514 

Relations  between  the  Pope  and  Michael  Angelo  .     515 

Impatience  of  Julius  II.    .         .         .         .         .  .516 

Difficulties  and  delays  in  payment      .         .         .  •     S^7 

1 5 10  Completion  of  the  ceiling,  its  difficulty       .         .  'Si? 

15 11  Unveiling  of  the  ceiling  of  the  Sistine  Chapel    .  -519 

1512  Completion  of  the  whole  work  .....  520 
The  Pope  celebrates  Mass  in  the  Chapel  .  .  -521 
The  architectural  painting  of  the  roof  .  .  -522 
The  three  periods  of  the  frescoes  according  to  the 

Plan  of  Salvation  .  .  .  .  .  -522 
His  treatment  of  the  Creation,  culminating  in  Adam  .  523 
The  Fall  of  Man  and  the  Deluge  .  .  .  -525 
The  series  of  the  Prophets  and  Sybils  .  .  -526 
Series  of  the  Ancestors  of  Christ  ....  529 
And  of  the  Deliverances  of  Israel  .  .  .  -529 
The  ornamental  figures  employed  in  the  roof  .  -530 
Spiritual  conception  of  the  paintings  .  .  .  .532 
Michael  Angelo  again  employed  on  the  Pope's  tomb  .     533 


TABLE  OF  CONTENTS.  XXV 

A.D.  PACK 

1512  Design  of  the  tomb  of  Julius  II.         ....  533 

1513  Death  of  Julius  II.  during  the  execution  of  the  work  .  534 
Agreement  between  Michael  Angelo  and  his  executors  535 
Curtailment  of  the  design  and  anger  of  Michael  Angelo  537 
Grandeur  of  the  statue  of  Moses        ....  537 


CHAPTER  X. 

RAPHAEL   AND    THE   VATICAN    STANZE. 


Character  and  early  life  of  Raphael   . 
1508  He  settles  in  Rome  ..... 

1507  Julius  II.  leaves  the  Appartamento  Borgia 

1508  Decoration  of  the  Stanze  .... 
Different  artists  employed  at  first 
But  are  all  dismissed  in  favour  of  Raphael 
The  Camera  della  Segnatura 
The  four  allegorical  figures  in  the  ceiling    . 
The  wall  frescoes  in  connection  with  them 
The  fresco  of  the  "School  of  Athens  " 
Interpretation  of  the  fresco 
No  opposition  between  Theology  and  Philosophy 
The  "  Disputa  del  Sacramento  " — faith  as  distinct  from 

reason       ....... 

No  idea  of  controversy  in  the  "  Disputa  "  . 
The  upper  part  of  the  fresco,  the  Heavenly  Paradise 
The  Divine  Persons  and  the  series  of  the  Elect  . 
Relation   between   the   Heavenly   Paradise   and   the 

Church      ...... 

Adoration  of  the  Blessed  Sacrament  on  earth 

The   Holy   Eucharist,    the   bond   of  union  between 

heaven  and  earth       ..... 
Interpretation  of  the  picture       .... 
The  preliminary  studies  for  the  fresco 
Humanistic  conceptions  seen  in  the  Parnassus   . 
The  Dominican  spirit  seen  in  the  "  Disputa  " 
The  Camera  della  Segnatura  intended  for  the  Pope 

library        ....... 

The  frescoes  not   an    expression  of  Humanistic  free 

thought      ...... 

Contrast  of  the  two  frescoes 

The  Grisailles  illustrate  the  attitude  of  the  Papacy  to 

the  new  learning         .... 
The  frescoes  show  the  relations  between  the  Church 

and  culture         ..... 


540 

540 
541 
542 
543 
544 
544 
545 
547 
550 
555 
559 

560 
561 
564 
565 

569 

570 

575 
578 
579 
580 

581 
582 

584 
586 

588 
589 


xxvi  TABLE   OF   CONTENTS. 

A.D.  PAGE 

15 1 1  Completion  of  the  Camera  della  Segnatura         .         .590 

The  Stanza  d'Eliodoro  entrusted  to  Raphael  by  the 

Pope      _ 591 

His   easel-paintings,   the  Madonna  of  S'^  Maria  del 

Popolo      ........     591 

And  the  portrait  of  Julius  II.     .         .         .         .         .     591 

The  Madonna  di  Foligno  and  del  Pesce  .  .  -592 
The   Stanza  d'Eliodoro.     The  ceiling   decorated  by 

Peruzzi      ........     594 

The  miracle  of  the  Mass  of  Bolsena  ....     594 

The  Cathedral  of  Orvieto  built  to  enshrine  the  relic  .  596 
Veneration  shewn  to  it  by  Julius  II.  .         .         -596 

Raphael's  representation  of  the  miracle  in  the  Stanza 

d'Eliodoro  .......     597 

The  picture  the  key-note  of  the  Stanza  d'Eliodoro  .  599 
Which  represents  God's  care  for  His  Church  .  .  599 
Its  reference  to  the  events  of  the  reign  of  Julius  II.  .  600 
The  picture  of  the  expulsion  of  Heliodorus  from  the 

Temple      ........     600 

The  picture  of  the  meeting  of  Leo  I.  with  Attila  .     603 

The  picture  of  S.  Peter's  deliverance  from  prison  .  604 
Its   supposed   reference   to   the   escape  of  Cardinal 

Medici 605 

But  it  more  probably  refers  to  Julius  II,  .  .  .  606 
The  triumph  of  the  Church,  the  fundamental  idea  of 

the  Vatican  pictures  ,         ,     ■   .         .         .         ,606 


LIST   OF   UNPUBLISHED   DOCUMENTS 
IN   APPENDIX. 


PAGE 

I.  Cardinal  Ascanio  Sforza  to  the  Duke  of  Milan     6ii 
XL  „  „  „  6ii 

III.  Giovanni  Lucido  Cataneo  to  the  Marquess  of 

Mantua 612 

IV.  Extract  from  the  Letter  of  an  Unknown  Person     612 
V.  Giovanni  Lucido  Cataneo  to  the  Marquess  of 

Mantua  ......     613 

VI.  Alexander   VI.    to    Cardinal    Giuliano    della 

Rovere  .......     614 

VII.  Giovanni  Lucido  Cataneo  to  the  Marquess  of 

Mantua 614 

VIII.  Report      of      the      Florentine      Chronicler, 

Bartolomeo  Cerretani,  on  the  Anti-Pope 

Pietro      Bernardino,      a      Disciple      of 

Savonarola     .         .         .         .         .         -615 

IX.  Beltrando  Costabili  to  the  Duke  of  Ferrara    .     617 

X.  Giovanni  Lucido  Cataneo  to  the  Marquess  of 

Mantua 618 

XL  „  „  „  618 

XII.  Ghivizano  to  the  Marquess  of  Mantua   .         .619 

XIII.  „  „  .         .     619 

XIV.  „  „  .         .     620 
XV.  Cosimo    de'    Pazzi,    Bishop    of    Arezzo,    to 

Pius  III 620 

XVI.  Beltrando  Costabili  to  the  Duke  of  Ferrara    .     621 

XVII.  „  „  „  .621 

XVIII.  Ghivizano  to  the  Marquess  of  Mantua  .         .622 

XIX.  Julius  II.  to  Florence 622 

XX.  „         to  Forli 622 

XXI.         „  „ 622 

XXII.  „         to     Angelo     Leonini,    Bishop     of 

Tivoli,  Nuncio  at  Venice         .     623 


xxviii      LIST  OF  UNPUBLISHED  DOCUMENTS  IN  APPENDIX. 


XXIII. 

XXIV. 

XXV. 


Julius 


XXVI. 
XXVII. 

XXVIII. 

XXIX. 

XXX. 

XXXI. 

XXXII. 

XXXIII. 

XXXIV. 

XXXV. 

XXXVI. 


XXXVII. 
XXXVIII. 

& 

XXXIX. 

XL. 


II.  to  Cardinal  Bernardino  Carvajal 
to  Florence   .... 
to  Giovanni  di  Sirolo,  Archbishop 

of    Ragusa,    and     to    Petrus 

Paulus  de  Callio     . 
to  Forli         .... 
to  Philip,  Count  Palatine   on   the 

Rhine    .... 
to  Gonsalvo  de  Cordova 
to  Anne,  Queen  of  France 
to  Louis  XII.,  King  of  France 
to  Forli  .... 

to    Angelo     Leonini,    Bishop     of 

Tivoli,  Nuncio  at  Venice 


PAGE 

623 
624 


to 


to 


Ludovico  Bruno,  Bishop 
Acqui,  and  to  Francesco 
Monte,  Imperial  Envoy 
Venice  .... 

Angelo  Leonini,  Bishop 
Tivoli,  Nuncio  at  Venice 


to  the  German  Electors 


to 


of 
de 
at 

of 


of 


Angelo     Leonini,     Bishop 
Tivoli,  Nuncio  at  Venice 
XLI.  „         to    Cosimo   de'  Pazzi,  Bishop   of 

Arezzo  .... 

XLII.  „         to    Angelo     Leonini,     Bishop    of 

Tivoli,  Nuncio  at  Venice 
XLIII.  Floramente  Brognolo  to  Isabella,  Marchioness 
of  Mantua      ...... 

XLIV. 

XLV. 

XLVI. 


XLVII. 

XLVIII. 

XLIX. 

XLIXa. 

L. 

LI. 

LIL 


Julius  11.  to  the  Marquess  of  Massa 

„         to  the  Augustinian  Hermit,  Aegidius 
of  Viterbo        .... 
,,         to  Queen  Anne  of  France 
Girolamo  Arsago  to  the  Marquess  of  Mantua 
Julius  II.  to  Queen  Anne  of  France 

„         to  Henry  VIII.,  King  of  England 
Girolamo  Arsago  to  the  Marquess  of  Mantua 
Julius  II.  to  Francesco  Gonzaga,  Marquess  of 
Mantua  ..... 


624 
624 

625 
626 
627 
627 
627 

627 
629 
630 
630 


631 
631 
632 

633 

633 

633 

634 
634 
635 

635 
636 
636 
636 
636 
638 

638 
639 


LIST  OF   UNPUBLISHED  DOCUMENTS   IN   APPENDIX.    XXlx 


LIII. 


LIV. 

LV. 

LVI. 

LVII. 

LVIII. 

LIX. 

LX. 

LXI. 

LXII. 

LXIII. 

LXIV. 

LXV. 

LXVI. 

LXVII. 

LXVIIL 

LXIX. 

LXX. 

LXXI. 

LXXII. 

LXXIII. 

LXXIV. 

LXXV. 

LXXVI. 

LXXVII. 

LXXVIII. 
LXXIX. 

LXXX. 

LXXXI. 

LXXXII. 

LXXXIII. 

LXXXIV. 

LXXXV. 

LXXXVI. 


Julius  II.  to  the  Marquess  of  Mantua  and 
Niccold  Buonafede,  Bishop  of 
Chiusi    .... 

,,         to  Cardinal    Giov.    Antonio    di    S 
Giorgio  .... 

„         to  Cesena       .... 

,,  to  Ferdinand  the  Catholic 

,,         to    Leonardo    Loredano,    Doge   of 
Venice    .... 

)?  J)    _  >j  )) 

,,         to  Cardinal  Alessandro  Farnese 

,,         to  Ferdinand  the  Catholic 

,,         to  Louis  XII.,  King  of  France 

,,         to  Cardinal  George  d'Amboise 

,,         to  Gonsalvo  de  Cordova 

,5         to  M.  de  la  Tremoille 

,,         to  Pierre  le  Filleul,  Archbishop  of 

Aix         .... 
„         to  Ascoli         .... 
,,         to  the  Legate  of  the  Marches  . 
,,         to  the  Governor  of  Spoleto 
,,         to  the  Governor  of  Cesena 
,,         to  P.  Ferreri,  Governor  of  Imola 
„         to  Cardinal  Antonio  Ferreri    . 

Beltrando      Costabili      to     the      Duke     of 
Ferrara  ...... 

Cardinal  Scipio  Gonzaga  to  the  Marquess  of 
Mantua  ..... 

Beltrando  Costabili  to  the  Duke  of  Ferrara 

Julius  II.  to  Louis  XII.,  King  of  France 

„  to  Maximilian  I.,  German  Emperor 

Elect       .... 

Cardinal  Sigismondo  Gonzaga  to  the  Marquess 
of  Mantua       ..... 

3J  55  55 

Beltrando      Costabili      to     the      Duke     of 
Ferrara  ...... 

Julius  II.  to  Bologna     .... 
„  to  Duke  Alfonso  of  Ferrara     . 

Lodovico   de   Fabriano   to   the   Marquess  of 
Mantua  ..... 

55  55  _   55 

Julius  11.  to  Cardinal  Franc.  Alidosi 
,,  to  Cardinal  Ippolito  d'Este 

„  to  Cardinal  Franc.  Alidosi  and  the 

Magistrates  of  Bologna    . 


PAGE 


639 

639 
640 
640 

640 
641 
641 
641 
642 
642 
642 
642 

643 
643 
643 
643 
644 
644 
644 

644 

645 
646 
646 

647 

649 
650 

650 
650 
651 

651 
652 

652 
653 

653 


XXX     LIST   OF   UNPUBLISHED   DOCUMENTS   IN   APPENDIX. 

PAGE 

LXXXVII,  Julius  II.  to  Francesco  Gonzaga,  Marquess  of 

Mantua 654 

LXXXVIII.  Giuliano     de'     Medici    to    Isabella    d'Este, 

Marchioness  of  Mantua  .         .         .654 

LXXXIX.  Report  of  Aegidius  de  Viterbo  on  Julius  II., 

Bramante,  and  the  rebuilding  of  S.  Peter's     655 
XC.  Emperor  Maximilian  to  Paul  von  Lichtenstein     656 


BOOK  I. 


ALEXANDER  VI.     1492-1503. 


VOL.  VI. 


CHAPTER  I. 

Savonarola  and  Alexander  VI. 

As  it  became  more  and  more  evident  that  nothing  in  the 
way  of  reform  was  to  be  hoped  for  from  Alexander  VI.,  the 
eyes  of  many  in  Italy  began  to  turn  towards  the  eloquent 
Dominican,  who  seemed  to  concentrate  in  himself  all  the 
elements  of  resistance  to  the  anti-Christian  Renaissance 
and  the  secularisation  of  the  Church,  personified  in  the 
Pope,  which  the  country  contained.* 

In  Florence,  corrupted  as  it  had  been  by  the  Medici,  and 
made  into  a  nest  of  "heathen  philosophers,  voluptuaries, 
dilettanti,  money-lenders  and  traders,  intriguing  politicians 
and  sharp-witted  critics,"+  Savonarola  had,  at  least  for  the 
moment,  succeeded  in  bringing  about  an  amazing  moral 
revolution.  There  seemed  reason  to  hope  that  the  reform 
of  Rome  might  be  achieved  by  the  same  hand,  especially 
as  in  his  preaching  he  dwelt  so  much  on  the  vocation  of 
Florence  as  "  the  heart  of  Italy "  to  diffuse  the  renovating 
lights  throughout  the  whole  world.|  In  his  sermons  he 
incessantly  insisted,  with  ever-growing  vehemence,  on  the 
absolute  necessity  of  a  complete  reformation  of  Rome,  the 
Pope,  and   the    Court.      At  that   time  this  sort   of  plain 

(Chapter  I.  of  this  volume  is,  in  the  original  edition.  Chap.  VI,  of 
Book  II.— F.  I.  A.) 
*  Frantz,  Sixtus  IV.,  $6.     See  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  pp.  170,  181. 
t  Gregorovius,  VII.,  404,  ed.  3  (410,  ed.  4). 
X  Guicciardini,  Stor.  Fiorent.,  138. 


4  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

speaking  gave  little  or  no  offence  there.  Alexander  was 
extremely  indifferent  to  strictures  of  that  kind  ;  no  doctrine 
of  the  Church  was  assailed,  and  he  had  no  desire  to  curtail 
the  orator's  liberty  of  speech.  Had  Savonarola  confined 
himself  to  the  subjects  proper  to  his  vocation  as  a  preacher 
and  a  religious,  he  would  probably  never  have  come  into 
serious  collision  with  the  Pontiff;  but  as,  on  the  contrary, 
his  passionate  zeal  drove  him  in  his  discourses  to  trench 
more  and  more  on  political  ground,  they  soon  provided  his 
enemies  with  a  good  excuse  for  calling  on  the  Pope  to 
intervene.* 

Savonarola's  growing  influence  threatened  to  make  him  the 
virtual  "  King  of  Florence,"  and  his  enemies  were  both  nume- 
rous and  powerful.  Foremost  amongst  them  was  Piero  de' 
Medici  with  his  adherents,  and  next  to  them  came  those  who 
disliked  and  resented  the  democratic  and  theocratic  ideals 
and  the  stern  moral  discipline  which  he  wished  to  introduce 
into  the  constitution  of  the  State.  This  party  was  known 
as  the  Arrabiati,  while  the  followers  of  the  Friar  were  called 
Frateschi  or  Piagnoni  (mourners  over  the  corruption  of  the 
times).  Finally,  there  were  the  anti-Gallican  Italian  States. 
Florence  was  the  only  Italian  power  which  withstood  the 
Pope  on  this  point,  and  Savonarola  was  the  indefatigable 
and  passionate  advocate  of  the  French  alliance.  The 
Divine  commission,  which  he  persistently  claimed  for  him- 
self, emphatically  included  this  advocacy.  From  first  to 
last  he  believed  the  frivolous,  dissolute  King  of  France  to 
be  God's  chosen  instrument  for  the  reformation  of  the 
Church.  He  predicted  that  Charles  would  be  always 
victorious,  and  that  Florence,  if  she  remained  faithful  to 
him,  would  regain  all  her  lost  possessions.  In  almost  every 
one  of  his  sermons  he  insisted  on  the  necessity  of  joining 

*  Cf.  COSCI,  Savonarola,  437,  and  especially  PELLEGRINI,  in  the 
Arch.  d.  Soc.  Rom.,  XL,  710. 


SAVONAROLA   SUMMONED   TO   ROME.  5 

France.*     He  reiterated   again    and    again  that   "  Charles 
VIII.  would  certainly  reform  the  Church."-|- 

When  we  call  to  mind  that  the  King  of  France  had 
repeatedly  threatened  the  Pope  with  a  so-called  Reformation 
Council, — in  other  words,  a  Council  to  depose  him, — it  can- 
not seem  strange  that  Savonarola  should  gradually  come 
to  be  regarded  with  more  and  more  suspicion  in  Rome  ;  and 
all  the  more  so  as  it  was  notorious  that  the  one  thing  that 
the  Pope  had  most  at  heart,  namely,  that  Florence  should 
join  the  League,  had  no  more  determined  opponent  than 
the  Friar.  Savonarola  felt  himself  perfectly  secure  in  the 
favour  of  the  people  ;  all  accounts  agree  in  describing  his 
influence  as  unbounded.  "  He  is  invoked  as  a  Saint  and 
revered  as  a  prophet,"  writes  the  Ferrarese  Envoy  ;|  the 
Florentine  chronicler  Landucci  says  that  "  many  were  so 
infatuated  with  the  new  prophet  that  they  would  have  had 
no  hesitation  in  going  to  the  stake  for  him."  Encouraged 
by  the  enthusiastic  support  of  his  followers,  the  hot-blooded 
Dominican  embarked  in  a  general  war  of  extermination 
against  his  opponents.  In  one  of  his  sermons  he  went  so 
far  as  to  demand,  crucifix  in  hand,  that  all  who  attempted 
to  bring  the  tyrants  back  to  Florence  should  be  punished 
with  death.§  At  last  Alexander  VI.  felt  it  necessary  to  take 
some  steps ;  but  he  proceeded  with  the  greatest  moderation.  || 
On  the  25th  of  July,  1495,  a  Brief  couched  in  very  friendly 
terms,  summoned  Savonarola,  "  in  the  name  of  holy 
obedience,"  to  come  at  once  to  Rome  to  give  an  account  of 

*  Meier,  93,  and  Ranke,  Studien,  258. 

t-CAPPELLi,  Savonarola,  52. 

t  /<5/rtr.,  41,  51,  52,  56,  63. 

§  See  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  p.  209. 

II  Ranke,  in  his  Studien,  246,  acknowledges  this  ;  but  Villari,  even 
in  his  last  edition,  I.,  392,  ed.  2,  speaks  of  the  wrath  of  the  Pope  as 
bursting-  at  once  into  flame. 


6  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

the  prophecies  for  which  he  claimed  Divine  inspiration.  On 
the  30th  the  Friar  sent  his  reply  ;  while  acknowledging  the 
duty  of  obedience,  especially  in  a  religious,  he  excused 
himself  from  coming,  on  the  ground  of  the  state  of  his 
health,  and  his  conviction  that  his  enemies  would  throw 
the  whole  city  into  confusion  if  he  left  Florence  at  this 
moment* 

Upon  this  a  second  Brief  was  sent  in  September 
addressed  to  the  friars  of  S'^  Croce,  who  were  on  bad 
terms  with  those  of  S.  Marco.  In  this  Brief,  Savonarola 
was  described  as  "  a  certain  Fra  Girolamo "  who  gave 
himself  out  to  be  a  prophet  without  being  able  to  prove 
his  claim  either  by  miracles  or  direct  evidence  from  Holy 
Scripture.  The  patience  of  the  Pope,  it  continued,  was 
now  exhausted.  Savonarola  must  abstain  from  preaching 
of  any  kind,  and  the  Convent  of  S.  Marco  was  henceforth 
to  be  reunited  to  the  Lombard  congregation,  to  whose 
Superior  the  Friar  must  now  render  obedience.  All 
recalcitrants  were  declared,  ipso  facto,  under  the  ban  of 
the  Church.-]- 

This  command  of  the  Pope  marked  the  turning  point 
in  Savonarola's  life.  As  a  priest  and  Friar  he  had  sworn 
obedience  to  the  Head  of  the  Church.  Alexander's  personal 
character  and  the  political  motives  by  which  he  was  actuated 
in  no  way  affected  this  obligation.  In  issuing  the  ordinance 
contained  in  the  Brief  of  September  8,  the  Pope  was  clearly 
acting  within  his  canonical  rights.  Savonarola  did  not  deny 
this.  Writing  to  a  brother  of  his  Order  in  Rome  on  15th 
September,  he  says  :  "  I  know  the  root  of  all  these  plots, 
and  know  them  to  be  the  work  of  evil-minded  citizens  who 
would  fain  re-establish  tyranny  in  Florence.  .  .  .  Never- 
theless, if  there  be  no  other  way  of  saving  my  conscience 

*  ViLLARl,  Savonarola,  II.,  24  seq.,  29  seq.  (Engl,  trans.). 
t  See  Gherardi,  388. 


THE   REPLY   OF   SAVONAROLA.  7 

I  am  resolved  to  make  submission,  so  as  to  avoid  even  a 
venial  sin."*  His  answer  to  Alexander,  sent  on  29th 
September,  was  not  quite  so  clear  or  decided.  In  it  he 
lamented  that  his  enemies  should  have  succeeded  in 
deceiving  the  Holy  Father.  ..."  As  to  my  doctrines," 
he  continued,  "  I  have  always  been  submissive  to  the 
Church;  as  regards  prophecy,  I  have  never  absolutely 
declared  m}^self  a  prophet,  although  this  would  be  no 
heresy ;  but  I  have  undoubtedly  foretold  various  things, 
of  which  some  have  been  already  fulfilled  ;  and  others,  that 
will  be  verified  at  some  future  time.  Moreover,  it  is  known 
to  all  Italy  that  the  chastisement  hath  already  begun,  and 
how  solely,  by  means  of  my  words,  there  hath  been  peace 
in  Florence,  the  which  failing,  all  would  have  suffered 
greater  woes."  ...  "  As  to  leaving  our  case  to  the  decision 
of  the  Lombard  Vicar,  this  implies  making  our  adversary 
our  judge,  since  the  quarrels  between  the  two  congregations 
are  publicly  known."  In  separating  themselves  from  this 
congregation  they  had  only  passed  from  a  laxer  to  a 
stricter  rule,  which  all  authorities  agree  may  lawfully  be 
done.  "  Our  reunion  with  the  Lombard  Friars  at  this 
moment  would  only  deepen  the  rancour  already,  unhappily, 
existing  between  the  two  congregations,  and  give  rise  to 
fresh  disputes  and  fresh  scandals.  And  finally,  inasmuch 
as  your  Holiness  declares  that  you  desire  this  union  in 
order  to  prevent  others  from  lapsing  into  my  errors,  and 
inasmuch  as  it  is  now  most  plain  that  I  have  not  lapsed 
into  error,  the  cause  being  non-existent,  neither  should  its 
effect  remain.  Having  therefore  proved  the  falsity  of  all 
the  charges  brought  against  me,  I  pray  your  Holiness  to 
vouchsafe  a  reply  to  my  defence  and  to  grant  me  absolution. 
I  preach  the  doctrine  of  the  Holy  Fathers  ....  and  am 

*  Published  by  Perrens,  534-538.     Cf.  ViLLARl,  Savonarola,  IL 
34,  35  (Engl,  trans.). 


8  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

ready  if  I  should  be  in  error  ....  to  avow  it  publicly,  and 
make  amends  before  the  whole  people.  And  now  again  I 
repeat  that  which  I  have  always  said,  namely,  that  I 
submit  myself  and  all  my  writings  to  the  correction  of  the 
Holy  Roman  Church."  * 

In  his  next  Brief,  despatched  on  the  i6th  of  October, 
Alexander  displayed  admirable  moderation  and  prudence. 
With  "  great  consideration  "  it  yielded  the  most  important 
point,  that  of  the  reunion  of  the  Convent  of  S.  Marco  to 
the  Lombard  Province,  only  insisting  that  Savonarola 
should  absolutely  abstain  from  preaching.  In  fact,  for  the 
Friar  of  S.  Marco,  politics  and  preaching  were  almost 
synonymous.  The  Brief  began  with  a  review  of  the  action 
of  Rome  up  to  the  present  moment.  In  the  beginning  the 
Pope  had  expressed  his  disapproval  of  the  disturbances  in 
Florence,  which  had  been  in  a  great  measure  caused  by 
Savonarola's  preaching,  because,  instead  of  directing  his  ser- 
mons against  the  vices  of  the  Florentines,  he  had  filled  them 
with  predictions  of  future  events,  which,  he  said,  had  been 
revealed  to  him  by  the  Holy  Ghost.  Such  preaching  was 
full  of  danger  for  many  souls  and  could  not  fail  to  engender 
strife.  Therefore,  after  mature  deliberation,  he  had  decided 
to  summon  Savonarola  to  Rome,  there  to  give  an  account 
of  his  doings.  Now,  however,  to  his  great  joy,  he  gathered 
from  the  letter  which  he  had  lately  received,  and  from  what 
he  had  been  told  by  others,  that  the  Friar  was  ready,  as 
a  good  Christian,  to  submit  to  the  Church  in  all  things. 
Hence  he  would  willingly  believe  that  Savonarola  had 
erred  rather  through  excess  of  zeal  than  with  any  evil 
intent.  The  matter,  however,  was  too  important  to  be 
passed  over  lightly,  and  therefore  he  determined  to  write 
to   him    again,   commanding    him    in    the   name   of    holy 

*  ViLLARi,  Savonarola,   II.,   35,  36    (Engl,   trans.).     Cf.    Perrens, 
326-329. 


SAVONAROLA    PREACHES   AGAINST   THE   MEDICI.  9 

obedience  to  abstain  from  all  preaching,  either  in  public  or 
privately,  until  he  was  able,  conveniently  and  safely,  to 
appear  himself  in  Rome,  or  until  a  commission  had  been 
sent  to  Florence.  If  he  obeyed  this  command,  the  former 
Briefs  would  be  rescinded.* 

Meanwhile,  on  the  nth  of  October,  Savonarola,  seeing 
Florence  in  imminent  danger  from  Piero  de'  Medici,  had 
thrown  all  other  considerations  to  the  winds  and  re- 
ascended  the  pulpit,  in  order  to  rouse  his  fellow-citizens  to 
a  strenuous  resistance.  Again  he  called  for  the  death  of 
all  who  attempted  to  bring  back  the  Medici.  "  They  must 
be  treated,"  he  cried,  "as  the  Romans  treated  those  who 
wished  to  bring  Tarquinius  back.  You  would  rather  let 
Christ  be  struck  than  strike  a  fellow-citizen.  Let  justice 
take  its  course.  Off  with  the  head  of  the  traitor,  were  he 
even  the  chief  of  the  first  family  in  the  city.  Off,  I  say, 
with  his  head."  f  Similar  expressions  recur  in  the  sermons 
of  1 6th  and  26th  October.  For  some  hitherto  unexplained 
cause,  the  Bull  of  i6th  October  did  not  arrive  till  after  this 
latter  date.  Savonarola  had  by  this  time  succeeded  in 
baffling  Piero  de'  Medici's  attempt ;  but  he  must  have  been 
forced  to  own  to  himself  that  he  had  violated  his  pledge  of 
the  1 6th  September,  and  acted  in  direct  opposition  to  his 
Superiors,  from  whom  alone  his  mission  as  a  preacher  was 
derived.  The  Brief  must  have  caused  him  the  greatest 
embarrassment.  One  fact,  which  is  certainly  not  to  his 
credit,  shews  that,  in  his  excitement,  he  did  not  at  all 
expect  such  lenient  treatment.  Through  the  Florentine 
Envoy  of  the  Duke  of  Ferrara,  he  had  secretly  entered 
into  relations  with  that  Prince,  and  asked  for  his  assistance 
in  case  the  Pope  should  not  accept  his  excuse  and  proceed 

*  Meier,  115,  359-360,  with  a  wrong  date;  Gherardi,  390-391, 
has  the  correct  one. 

t  See  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  p.  209. 


iO  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

further  against  him.*  Now  that  Alexander  had  shewn 
himself  so  placable  and  ready  to  make  concessions,  and 
since  also  the  chief  object  of  his  sermons,  the  frustration 
of  Piero  de'  Medici's  enterprise,  had  been  achieved,  to 
abstain  from  preaching  during  Advent  entailed  no  very 
great  sacrifice  on  Savonarola.  And  in  addition  to  this, 
his  party  were  gaining  more  and  more  the  upper  hand  in 
the  city.f  A  loyal  and  lasting  submission  was  never 
contemplated  by  him  ;  on  the  contrary,  he  brought 
every  influence  that  he  could  control  to  bear  upon  the 
Pope  to  induce  him  to  withdraw  the  prohibition.  The 
Government  of  Florence  interested  itself  strongly  in  this 
direction,  and  addressed  itself  especially  to  Cardinal 
Caraffa,  the  Protector  of  the  Dominicans  in  Rome. 
Florentine  reports  from  Rome  went  so  far  as  to  assert 
that  the  Cardinal  had,  in  a  conversation  with  Alexander, 
persuaded  the  latter  to  permit  Savonarola  to  preach  again, 
provided  he  confined  his  sermons  to  matters  of  religion. 
The  Friar  himself,  however,  never  ventured  to  maintain 
that  any  such  permission  had  been  granted.  The  attitude 
of  the  Signoria  in  Florence  also  shews  clearly  that  nothing 
was  even  said  by  the  Pope  that  could  be  so  construed  ;  I 
of  course,  no  Brief  to  that  effect  was  forthcoming.  They 
decided,  on  nth  February,  1496,  to  command  Savonarola, 
under  pain  of  their   indignation,  to  resume  his  sermons 

*  Despatch  of  26th  Oct.  in  Cappelli,  Savonarola,  69.  It  is  plain  from 
this  document  that  the  Brief  of  i6th  Oct.  had  not  reached  Florence  at 
this  date. 

t  Ranke,  Studien,  252. 

X  See  COSCI,  431-432  ;  Cipolla,  735.  Savonarola's  letter  to  Antonio 
de  Olanda  of  2nd  Feb.,  1496  {cf.  Villari,  II.,  cxiv.,  ed.  2),  is  significant 
in  this  connection.  In  it  he  says  : — "  Si  impetrabitur  licentia  praedi- 
candi  pro  me  a  Summo  Pontifice,  dabo  vobis  in  praedicatorem  Fr. 
Dominicum  de  Piscia.  Excitate  ergo  fratres  et  alios  devotos  ad  orandum 
pro  hac  causa,  quia  res  habet  difficultatem." 


Savonarola's  lenten  sermons.      ii 

• 

in  the  Cathedral.*  The  Friar,  who  had  found  so  many 
excuses  for  evading  the  commands  of  his  spiritual  supe- 
riors, lost  no  time  in  obeying  the  order  of  the  secular 
power. 

On  17th  February  Savonarola  again  ascended  the  pulpit, 
and  preached  regularly  throughout  the  whole  of  Lent.  His 
first  sermon  shewed  that  he  had  already  entered  on  the 
devious  paths  which  henceforth  he  was  to  follow.  Like 
Huss  in  earlier  times,  he  saw  nothing  incongruous  or 
unbecoming  in  making  his  own  subjective  convictions  the 
standard  of  the  duty  of  ecclesiastical  obedience.  "  The 
Pope,"  he  said,  "cannot  command  me  to  do  anything 
which  is  in  contradiction  to  Christian  charity  or  the 
Gospel.  I  am  convinced  that  he  never  will ;  but  were  he 
to  do  so,  I  should  reply  :  *  At  this  moment  you  are  in  error 
and  no  longer  the  chief  pastor  or  the  voice  of  the  Church.' 
If  there  can  be  no  doubt  that  the  command  of  a  superior 
contradicts  the  Divine  precepts,  and  especially  the  law  of 
Christian  charity,  no  one  ought  to  obey  it.  If,  however, 
the  matter  is  not  perfectly  evident,  so  that  no  doubt  is 
possible,  we  ought  to  submit."  f     He  declared  that  he  had 

*  Gherardi,  Documenti,  129^1?^.  From  the  documents  given  here, 
p.  136  seq.,  we  gather  that  even  then  the  citizens  were  not  unanimous 
in  their  approval  of  this  step. 

t  This  important  declaration  is  to  be  found  in  the  Prediche  di  frate 
Hieronymo  da  Ferrara.  Firenze,  1496  (st.  fl.).  Against  ViLLARl,  II., 
55  (Engl,  trans.),  who  says  that  this  Hussite  doctrine  of  Savonarola's 
was  "  entirely  Catholic,  and  differing  in  no  respect  from  that  laid  down  by 
S.  Thomas  Aquinas  and  many  doctors  and  fathers  of  the  Church  ;"  cf. 
Schwab,  in  the  Bonn.  Literaturblatt,  IV.,  904,  and  specially  Frantz, 
Sixtus  IV.,  79  seq.  ;  cf.  182.  The  latter  remarks  that  Bayle  had 
already  pointed  out  that  if  Savonarola  rested  his  conduct  on  the  principle 
that  we  ought  to  obey  God  rather  than  man,  he  was  acting  inconsistently 
when  he  gave  up  preaching  at  the  command  of  the  Government.  Frantz 
also  shews,  loc.  ciL,  80,  that  the  case  supposed  by  S.  Thomas,  "in  which 


l-^  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

earnestly  examined  all  his  ways  and  found  them  pure; 
for  he  had  always  submitted  his  teaching  to  the  doctrines 
of  Holy  Church.  Though  convinced  that  the  Briefs  sent 
from  Rome  were  invalid,  inasmuch  as  they  were  solely 
inspired  by  lying  reports,  he  had  yet  resolved  to  be  prudent. 
Thus  he  had  so  far  kept  silence,  but  when  he  saw  many  of 
the  good  growing  lukewarm,  and  the  wicked  more  and 
more  bold,  he  felt  himself  constrained  to  return  to  his  post. 
"  First  of  all,  however,  I  sought  the  Lord,  saying :  I  was 
rejoicing  in  my  peace  and  tranquillity,  and  Thou  drewest 
me  forth  by  showing  me  Thy  light.  ...  I  would  fain 
repose,  but  find  no  resting-place — would  fain  remain  still 
and  silent,  but  may  not,  for  the  word  of  God  is  as  a  fire  in 
my  heart,  and  unless  I  give  it  vent,  it  will  consume  the 
marrow  of  my  bones.  Come  then,  O  Lord,  since  Thou 
would'st  have  me  steer  through  these  deep  waters,  let  Thy 
will  be  done."  *  He  seemed  to  have  already  forgotten 
that  it  was  the  secular  power  which  had  commanded  him 
to  preach,  and  launched  him  forth  again  on  these  "deep 
waters." 

Savonarola's  second  sermon  was  directed  mainly  against 
the  vices  of  Rome.  He  began  with  a  curious  application  of 
the  passage  in  Amos,  iv.  i.  "  Hear  this  word,  ye  fat  kine, 
that  are  in  the  mountains  of  Samaria."  "  For  me,"  he  said, 
"  these  fat  kine  signify  the  harlots  of  Italy  and  Rome.  .  .  . 
Are  there  none  in  Italy  and  Rome?  One  thousand,  ten 
thousand,  fourteen  thousand  are  few  for  Rome ;  for  there 
both  men  and  women  are  made  harlots."  And  pursuing  this 
strain,  he  describes  the  vices  of  Rome  in  terms  scarcely  to 

the  flock  was  abandoned  and  left  entirely  without  preaching  or  adminis- 
tration of  the  Sacraments,"  was  quite  different  to  that  of  Savonarola,  as 
at  S.  Marco  there  were  many  other  good  preachers,  and  the  spiritual 
needs  of  the  people  were  amply  supplied. 
*  ViLLARi,  Savonarola,  II.,  55  (Engl,  trans.). 


HIS   DECLAMATIONS   AGAINST   ROME.  1 3 

be  repeated  at  the  present  day.*  The  preacher  seemed 
utterly  regardless  of  the  fact  that  his  audience  included 
hundreds  of  innocent  children,  for  whom  a  special  gallery 
round  the  walls  of  the  Church  had  been  provided. 

This  discourse,  on  the  second  Sunday  in  Lent,  was  by  no 
means  an  isolated  outburst  of  passion  ;  the  whole  course  of 
sermons  teemed  with  these  extravagant  diatribes  against  the 
sins  of  Rome.  Politics  were  frequently  touched  upon,  but 
every  topic  led  back  in  the  end  to  declamation  against  the 
Curia.  "  Flee  from  Rome,"  he  cried  out,  "  for  Babylon 
signifies  confusion,  and  Rome  hath  confused  all  the  Scrip- 
tures, confused  all  vices  together,  confused  everything."  In 
his  last  Lenten  sermon  in  1496,  Savonarola  emphatically 
repeated  his  new  theory  of  what  constituted  obedience  to  the 
Church,  which,  had  it  prevailed,  must  have  overthrown  all 
order  and  discipline.  "We  are  not  compelled,"  he  said,  "to 
obey  all  commands.  When  given  in  consequence  of  lying 
report  they  are  invalid ;  when  in  evident  contradiction  with 
the  law  of  charity,  laid  down  by  the  Gospel,  it  is  our  duty 
to  resist  them."-|- 

Even  in  the  face  of  all  this  provocation,  Alexander  VL 
still  maintained  an  attitude  of  great  moderation  and 
patience. J  He  allowed  more  than  six  months  to  elapse 
before  taking  any  action,  so  that  Savonarola  had  ample 
time  for  consideration.  Meanwhile,  however,  in  Rome,  the 
conviction  that  further  steps  must  be  taken  continued  to 
strengthen.  On  the  one  hand,  from  the  ecclesiastical  point 
of  view,  it  was  impossible  permanently  to  tolerate  his  open 

*  ViLLARl,  loc.  cit.,  58.  This  is  the  judgment  of  an  enthusiastic 
admirer  of  Savonarola. 

t  Ibid.,  68,  justly  remarks  that  these  ideas  were  equivalent  to  a  de- 
claration of  war. 

:!:  Pellegrini,  in  Arch.  d.  Soc.  Rom.,  XL,  713.  See  also  Creighton, 
IIL, 


14  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

defiance  of  the  Brief  forbidding  him  to  preach,  the  abusive 
tone  of  his  sermons,  and  finally,  his  unauthorised  assump- 
tion of  the  office  of  a  prophet.*  On  the  political  side,  his 
efficacious  advocacy  of  the  French  alliance  in  Florence, 
threatened  the  Pope  with  a  repetition  of  the  French  King's 
invasion  of  Italy,  involving  possibly  his  deposition  and  a 
schism. 

As  time  went  on,  the  excitement  of  the  contending 
parties  in  Florence  continued  to  increase,  and  Savonarola's 
preaching  added  fresh  fuel  to  the  flames.f  The  accounts 
from  Florence  declared  that  he  railed  at  the  Pope  as  worse 
than  a  Turk,  and  the  Italian  powers  as  worse  than  heretics. 
His  fulminations  soon  found  their  way  abroad  ;  and  he 
often  said  that  he  had  received  letters  of  sympathy  even 
from  Germany.  It  was  reported  that  the  Sultan  had  caused 
his  sermons  to  be  translated  into  the  Turkish  language.;!: 
There  was  certainly  quite  enough  in  all  this  to  cause  Alex- 
ander to  bestir  himself,  without  needing  any  further  stimulus 
from  the  League  or  from  Cardinal  Ascanio  Sforza.  The 
terrorism  exercised  by  Savonarola  and  his  adherents  grew 
daily  more  and  more  intolerable.  The  prophet  declared  that 
no  one  could  be  a  good  Christian  who  did  not  believe  in 
him.     His  most  zealous  disciple,  Fra  Domenico  da  Pescia, 

*  Gherardi,  141. 

t  Perrens,  261,  points  out  that  if  Savonarola  had  really  possessed 
that  humility  which  is  one  of  the  first  virtues  that  ought  to  characterise  a 
religious,  and  which  he  so  ostentatiously  professed,  he  would  have  left 
Florence,  or  at  any  rate  abstained  from  preaching.  However  convinced 
he  might  be  of  the  truth  of  his  views,  a  priest  should  have  shrunk  from 
securing  their  success  at  the  cost  of  bloodshed,  and  from  being  a  cause 
of  embittered  divisions  amongst  his  fellow-citizens.  But  to  his  excitable 
temperament  the  stir  of  battle  was  a  necessity  of  life.  "  I  cannot  live," 
he  said,  "  unless  I  preach." 

X  ViLLARi,  Savonarola,  II.,  87  (Engl,  trans.).  Cf.  Ranke,  Studien, 
255,  and  Perrens,  236. 


HE   REFUSES   TO   OBEY   THE   POPE'S   BRIEF.  1 5 

went  so  far  as  to  say  that  earth  and  sea  and  heaven  would 
pass  away,  the  Cherubim  and  Seraphim,  our  Lady  and  even 
Christ  Himself,  sooner  than  any  of  Savonarola's  teaching.* 

On  the  7th  November,  1496,  the  Pope  despatched  a  new 
Brief  with  the  object  of  putting  an  end  to  these  scandals 
and  removing  Savonarola,  who  was  the  soul  of  the  French 
party,  from  Florence,  while  sparing  him  as  much  as  possible. 
The  plan  of  uniting  S.  Marco  with  the  unfriendly  congrega- 
tion of  Lombardy  was  entirely  dropped.  Instead  of  this 
the  Pope  proposed  to  form  a  new  congregation  out  of  the 
Dominican  Convents  in  the  provinces  of  Rome  and  Tuscany, 
with  a  separate  Vicar  to  be  elected  in  conformity  with  the 
statutes  of  the  Order  by  the  several  Priors  of  the  monas- 
teries every  two  years.  For  the  first  two  years  Cardinal 
Caraffa,  who  had  always  been  friendly  to  Savonarola,  was 
appointed  vicar,  j- 

This  time  the  prophet's  answer  to  his  Superiors  was  an 
unconditional  refusal.  The  reasons  which  he  gave  in  jus- 
tification of  this  were  peculiar.  In  his  "  Apology  for  the 
Congregation  of  S.  Marco,"  he  says :  "  The  union  with  the 
new  congregation  does  not  depend  on  my  decision  alone,  but 
needs  the  consent  of  250  other  monks,  who  have  all  written 
to  the  Pope  protesting  against  it ;  and  I  am  neither  able 
nor  willing  to  oppose  their  wishes  on  this  point,  since  I  hold 
them  to  be  honest  and  just."  After  explaining  the  reasons 
against  it,  he  continues:  "  This  union  is  therefore  impossible, 
unreasonable,  and  hurtful ;  nor  can  the  brethren  of  S.  Marco 
be  bound  to  agree  to  it,  inasmuch  as  Superiors  may  not 
issue  commands  contrary  to  the  rules  of  the  Order,  nor 
contrary  to  the  law  of  charity  and  the  welfare  of  our  souls. 

*  See  Parenti  in  Ranke,  Studien,  265. 

t  This  Brief  from  Cod.  2053  in  the  Riccardi  Library,  is  in  Villari,  I., 
ed.  2,  CXLII.-CXLIV.  (Italian)  ;  also  in  the  Bull.  Ord.  Praedic,  IV., 
124-125. 


l6  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

We  must  therefore  take  it  for  granted  that  our  Superiors 
have  been  misled  by  false  information,  and  resist  meanwhile 
a  command  that  is  contrary  to  charity.  Neither  must  we 
allow  ourselves  to  be  cowed  by  threats  nor  excommunica- 
tions, but  be  ready  to  face  death  rather  than  submit  to  that 
which  would  be  poison  and  perdition  to  our  souls."  At  the 
same  time,  Savonarola  preached  frequently,  descanting 
much  on  his  prophetical  gifts,  and  still  more  on  politics. 
All  this,  retailed  with  exaggeration  by  his  enemies  in 
Rome,  was  naturally  extremely  irritating  to  Alexander 
VI.  Nevertheless,  with  that  practical  statecraft  which  his 
contemporaries  so  highly  praise  in  him,  the  Pope  still  held 
back  from  plunging  into  a  direct  conflict  with  the  Friar. 
He  resolved  first  to  try  another  expedient.  In  order  to 
detach  the  Florentines  from  the  French  alliance  he  promised 
to  give  them  Pisa,  and  requested  them  to  send  an  Envoy  to 
negotiate  on  this  subject.  Accordingly,  on  the  4th  March, 
1497,  Alessandro  Bracci  was  despatched  for  this  purpose  by 
the  Signoria  to  Rome.  On  the  13th  he  had  an  audience 
from  the  Pope.  Alluding  to  Lodovico  Moro,  Alexander 
said  : — "  May  God  forgive  him  who  invited  the  French  into 
Italy  ;  for  all  our  troubles  have  arisen  from  that."  He  then 
endeavoured  to  persuade  the  Florentine  Ambassador  to 
renounce  the  alliance  with  France.  "Keep  to  us,"  he 
exclaimed ;  "  be  loyal  Italians,  and  leave  the  French  in 
France !  I  must  have  no  more  fine  words,  but  some  bind- 
ing security  that  you  will  do  this."  It  was  in  vain  for  the 
Ambassador  to  point  out  the  reasons  which  determined  his 
Government  to  hold  still  with  France;  the  Pope  held  to  his 
point,  and  insisted  that  Florence  must  change  her  policy. 
He  knew  very  well,  he  said,  that  this  conduct,  so  unworthy 
of  an  Italian  power,  was  prompted  by  the  belief  of  the 
Florentines  in  the  predictions  of  a  fanatic.  He  was  deeply 
wounded  at  the  way  in  which  the  Government  of  Florence 


SAVONAROLA'S   VIOLENCE   AGAINST   ROME.  1 7 

permitted  this  Friar  to  attack  and  threaten  him  and  hold 
him  up  to  scorn  * 

There  was  ample  justification  for  these  complaints  on  the 
part  of  the  Pope,  for  accusations  against  Rome  again  con- 
stituted the  principal  theme  of  the  Lent  sermons  of  the 
year  1497.  The  language  of  the  preacher  became  more 
and  more  violent.  "  Come  here,  thou  ribald  Church,"  he 
cried  out.  "  The  Lord  saith,  I  gave  thee  beautiful  vest- 
ments, but  thou  hast  made  idols  of  them.  Thou  hast 
dedicated  the  sacred  vessels  to  vainglory,  the  sacraments 
to  simony;  thou  hast  become  a  shameless  harlot  in  thy 
lusts ;  thou  art  lower  than  a  beast,  thou  art  a  monster  of 
abomination.  Once,  thou  felt  shame  for  thy  sin,  but  now 
thou  art  shameless.  Once,  anointed  priests  called  their 
sons  nephews  ;  but  now  they  speak  no  more  of  their 
nephews,  but  always  and  everywhere  of  their  sons.  Every- 
where hast  thou  made  a  public  place,  and  raised  a  house 
of  ill-fame.  And  what  doth  the  harlot?  She  sitteth  on 
the  throne  of  Solomon  and  soliciteth  all  the  world  ;  he 
that  hath  gold  is  made  welcome,  and  may  do  as  he  will ; 

but  he  that  seeketh  to  do  good  is  driven  forth And 

thou,  O  prostitute  Church,  thou  hast  displayed  thy  foulness 
to  the  whole  world,  and  stinkest  up  to  Heaven."  f 

Language  such  as  this  was  calculated  to  alienate  many 
who  had  hitherto  favoured  the  Florentine  prophet.  The 
General  of  his  Order  and  Cardinal  Caraffa  now  ceased  to 
defend  him ;  and  in  Rome  his  cause  was  practically  lost, 
while  in  Florence,  also,  public  opinion  was  beginning  to 
turn  against  him.  His  irreconcilable  opponents,  the 
Arrabiati  and  the  Compagnacci  (boon  companions  and 
lovers  of  the  table),  began  to  get  more  and  more  the  upper 

*  Gherardi,  149  seq.  ;  COSCI,  440  seq. 

t  ViLLARl,   II.,  165-166  (Engl,  trans.),  who  justly  observes  that  the 
passage  about  the  sons  of  priests  was  directly  aimed  at  Alexander  VI. 
VOL.  VL  C 


1 8  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES, 

hand.  The  excitement  became  so  great  that  at  last  the 
Signoria  issued  a  decree  forbidding  all  monks  of  all  Orders 
to  preach  after  Ascension  Day,  On  this  day  (4th  May) 
Savonarola  once  more  stood  up  in  the  Cathedral  pulpit 
and  boldly  repeated  his  former  assertion,  that  all  who 
persecuted  him  were  fighting  against  God  ;  Italy,  and 
especially  Rome,  would  be  terribly  chastised,  and  then 
would  come  the  reformation  of  the  Church.  It  was 
untrue  to  say  that  he  ought  not  to  have  preached  that 
day  because  his  preaching  might  give  rise  to  disturbances ; 
the  Signoria  might  forbid  preaching,  but  all  the  same  there 
would  be  strife  to  determine  whether  such  tyranny  ought 
to  be  endured.  At  this  moment  a  tumult  began  in  the 
Church  which  soon  spread  into  the  streets.  A  regular 
pitched  battle  between  the  opponents  and  adherents  of 
Savonarola  seemed  imminent.*  An  Envoy  in  Florence 
writes :  "  We  have  got  back  to  the  days  of  the  Guelfs  and 
the  Ghibellines."  f  The  authors  of  these  disturbances 
remained  unpunished,  and  the  preacher  could  not  fail  to 
see  that  his  party  had  lost  its  ascendency.  Under  these 
circumstances  he  resolved  to  make  an  attempt  to  avert 
the  storm  that  was  gathering  against  him  in  Rome.  On 
the  22nd  May  he  wrote  a  letter  to  the  Pope,  beginning 
with  the  words,  "Why  is  my  lord  so  wroth  with  his 
servant?"  He  had  never,  he  declared,  made  any  personal 
accusations  in  his  sermons  against  any  one,  least  of  all 
against  the  Vicar  of  Christ — further,  he  asserted  that  he 
was  always  ready  to  submit  himself  to  the  judgment  of 
the  Church,  and  preached  no  other  doctrine  than  that  of 
the  Holy  Fathers,  as  would  soon  be  proved  to  the  whole 
world  in  his  forthcoming  work.  The  Triumph  of  the  Cross.  \ 

*  Ranke,  Studien,  274  seq. 

t  Somenzi  in  his  Report,  May  4,  in  the  Arch.  St.  Ital.,  XVIII.,  2,  19. 

X  ViLLARl,  Savonarola,  II.,  188  (Engl,  trans.) 


EXCOMMUNICATION   OF   SAVONAROLA.  I9 

While  Savonarola  was  penning  these  words,  judgment 
had  been  already  pronounced  against  him  in  Rome.  Even 
his  former  friend  and  supporter,  Cardinal  Caraffa,  had  now 
become  convinced  of  the  necessity  for  this  step.  Savonarola 
had  invented  all  sorts  of  flimsy  pretexts  for  evading  the 
examination  into  his  prophetical  gifts  which  Rome  was 
bound  to  require,  and  to  which  it  was  his  clear  duty  to 
submit.  What  would  become  of  the  authority  of  the  Holy 
See  if  every  one  were  to  follow  his  example  ?  At  the  same 
time,  while  withholding  from  his  Superiors  that  submission 
to  which  his  vows  had  bound  him,  he  claimed  un- 
questioning obedience  to  his  own  commands,  as  Divine 
revelations !  * 

On  the  1 2th  May,  1497,  Alexander  attached  his  signature 
to  the  Brief  of  Excommunication.  He  had  delayed  his 
action  as  long  as  he  could,  and  given  the  hot-headed  Friar 
ample  time  to  come  to  a  better  mind.  Referring  to  the 
complaints  brought  to  Rome  of  Savonarola's  proceedings, 
the  Florentine  Envoy  expressly  says  that  Alexander  had 
let  it  be  clearly  seen  that  he  "was  not  inclined  to  make 
use  of  all  the  weapons  that  he  had  in  his  hand."  But 
Savonarola's  obstinate  refusal  to  carry  out  the  orders  of 
the  Holy  See,  in  regard  to  the  union  of  the  Convent  of 
S.  Marco  with  the  newly-erected  Tuscan  and  Roman  con- 
gregation, and  his  persistent  disregard  of  the  prohibition 
against  his  preaching,  displayed  an  amount  of  insub- 
ordination towards  the  Papal  authority  that  could  not  be 
left  unchallenged.  In  addition  to  this,  there  were  his 
incessant  diatribes  against  Rome,  and  the  assumption  of 
prophetical  authority  on  which  these  were  founded  if  and 
no  doubt  political  motives   tended    in  the  same  direction, 

*  PerrenS,  230  seq. 

t  Cf.   the   Despatch   of  the    Florentine   Ambassador    in    Rome,   in 
Gherardi,  141. 


20  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPE?:. 

since  Alexander  was  making  every  effort  to  detach 
Florence  from  France,  and  Savonarola  was  in  this  his 
strongest  antagonist.  However,  the  Friar's  persistent  insub- 
ordination was  certainly  the  main  determining  factor  in 
the  final  decision  against  him.  "  It  was  impossible  for 
even  an  Alexander  VI.  to  tolerate  a  prophet  overriding 
the  Hierarchy."* 

The  Brief  of  Excommunication  runs  as  follows :  "  We 
have  heard  from  many  persons  worthy  of  belief,  that  a 
certain  Fra  Girolamo  Savonarola,  at  this  present  said  to 
be  Vicar  of  S.  Marco  in  Florence,  hath  disseminated  per- 
nicious doctrines  to  the  scandal  and  great  grief  of  simple 
souls.  We  had  already  commanded  him,  by  his  vows  of 
holy  obedience,  to  suspend  his  sermons  and  come  to  us 
to  seek  pardon  for  his  errors ;  but  he  refused  to  obey,  and 
alleged  various  excuses  which  we  too  graciously  accepted, 
hoping  to  convert  him  by  our  clemency.  On  the  contrary, 
however,  he  persisted  still  more  in  his  obstinacy  ;  wherefore, 
by  a  second  Brief  (7th  November,  1496),  we  commanded 
him,  under  pain  of  excommunication,  to  unite  the  Convent 
of  S.  Marco  to  the  Tuscan-Roman  Congregation  recently 
created  by  us.  But  even  then  he  still  persisted  in  his 
stubbornness,  thus,  ipso  facto,  incurring  the  Censure. 
Wherefore  we  now  command  you,  on  the  feast  days  and 
in  the  presence  of  the  people,  to  declare  the  said  Fra 
Girolamo  excommunicate,  and  to  be  held  as  such  by  all 
men,  for   his   disobedience   to   our   apostolic   admonitions 

*  Grisar,  in  the  Zeitschr.  fiir  Kathol.  Theologie,  IV.,  397  ;  Balan, 
379  ;  and  Ranke,  Studien,  278,  who  assigns  correct  limits  to  the  influence 
of  political  motives.  He  remarks  :  "  The  principal  motive,  however,  was 
the  vindication  of  the  supremacy  of  the  spiritual  authority,  which  at  that 
time  could  count  upon  a  party  in  the  city  prepared  to  support  it."  On 
the  co-operation  of  Card.  Caraffa  in  regard  to  the  Brief,  see  Gherardi, 
160  seq.     Cf.  also  Pellegrini,  in  the  Arch.  d.  Soc.  Rom.,  XI.,  717. 


EFFORTS   TO   OBTAIN    ITS   WITHDRAWAL.  21 

and  commands;  and,  under  pain  of  the  same  penalty, 
all  are  forbidden  to  assist  him,  hold  intercourse  with  him, 
or  abet  him  either  by  word  or  deed,  inasmuch  as  he  is 
an  excommunicated  person,  and  suspected  of  heresy. 
Given  in  Rome,  12th  May,  1497."* 

In  order  to  spare  the  Florentines  as  much  as  possible, 
the  Brief  was  not  sent  to  the  Government  but  to  the 
several  convents.  It  was  not  solemnly  published  until  the 
1 8th  June.-j-  Meanwhile  the  Florentine  Envoys  in  Rome 
were  working  hard  to  obtain  from  the  Pope  the  withdrawal, 
or  at  least  the  suspension,  of  the  sentence.  Savonarola's 
letter  of  22nd  May  had  arrived  in  the  interim  and  produced 
a  softening  effect  on  Alexander,  who  from  the  first  had 
been  doing  his  best  to  avoid  extreme  measures.  It  seems 
most  probable  that  at  this  juncture,  in  spite  of  the  intrigues 
of  the  enemies  of  the  Friar,  it  would  have  been  possible  to 
have  obtained  a  suspension  of  the  Brief.  Alexander  VI. 
was  cut  to  the  heart  by  the  murder  of  the  Duke  of  Gandia, 
and  frightened  also,  as  the  assassin  could  not  be  discovered.  J 
So  prudent  a  statesman  could  not  have  desired  to  aggravate 
the  tension  of  the  situation  just  then  by  embarking  in  a 
new  conflict.  The  fact  that  he  put  Savonarola's  case  into 
the  hands  of  the  newly-appointed  commission  for  the 
reform  of  the  Church,  for  further  consideration,  seems  to 
prove  that  a  pacific  solution  of  it  was  quite  within  the 
bounds  of  possibility.§ 

At  this  critical  moment  it  was  Savonarola's  own  incon- 

*  See  DEL  LUNGO  in  the  Arch.  St.  Ital.,  N.  Serie,  XVIII.,  1,17  seq., 
and  ViLLARl,  Savonarola,  II.,  189-190  (Engl,  trans.).  Cf.  Sanuto,  I., 
632  seq.  Even  Protestant  historians,  e.g.,  Krabbe,  Savonarola,  56 
(Berlin,  1862),  admit  that  the  excommunication  was  merited. 

+  Landucci,  152-153. 

X  See  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  p.  496. 

§  See  Pellegrini  in  Arch.  d.  Soc.  Rom.,  XL,  719. 


22  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

siderate  violence  which  effectually  crushed  this  last  chance 
of  a  reconciliation.  On  the  19th  June  he  wrote  in  great 
haste  an  "  Epistle  against  the  surreptitious  Excommunica- 
tion addressed  to  all  Christians  and  friends  of  God."  In  it 
he  endeavoured  to  defend  himself  against  his  opponents, 
and  repeated  his  claim  to  a  Divine  mission.  At  the  close  he 
says :  "  This  Excommunication  is  invalid  before  God  and 
man,  inasmuch  as  it  is  based  on  false  reasons  and  accusa- 
tions devised  by  our  enemies.  I  have  always  submitted, 
and  will  still  submit,  to  the  authority  of  the  Church,  nor 
will  ever  fail  in  my  obedience  ;  but  no  one  is  bound  to 
sulDmit  to  commands  opposed  to  charity  and  the  law  of 
God,  since  in  such  a  case  our  Superiors  are  no  longer  the 
representatives  of  the  Lord.  Meanwhile,  seek  by  prayer  to 
make  ready  for  that  which  may  befall  you.  If  this  matter 
is  pursued  further,  we  will  make  the  truth  known  to  all  the 
world."  *  This  theory  is  in  direct  contradiction  to  the  teach- 
ing of  the  Church,  which  enjoins  obedience  even  to  an  un- 
just Interdict,  and  would  obviously  destroy  all  discipline, f 
Savonarola  was  bound  to  obey  the  Holy  See,  however  it 
might  be  desecrated  by  such  an  occupant  as  Alexander  VI. 
The  Pope  had  no  choice  but  to  treat  this  step  as  a 
declaration  of  war.  On  the  26th  June  he  told  the  Floren- 
tine Envoys  that  he  was  determined  to  proceed  against  the 
disobedient  Friar,  in  the  manner  prescribed  by  the  Church 
for  dealing  with  rebels  and  those  who  contemned  her 
authority.  The  Florentines  still  hoped  by  diplomacy  to 
avert  the  catastrophe,  especially  as  Alexander  declared 
that,  if  Florence  would   give   up   the  French    alliance,  he 

*  ViLLARl,  Savonarola,  II.,  193-194  (Engl,  trans.)  ;  Meier,  135  seq. 
Savonarola's  replies  were  always  printed  at  once ;  cf.  Sanuto,  I.,  634, 
who  observes  that  for  this  reason  he  does  not  insert  them,  also  because 
they  are  so  lengthy,  and  "  per  esser  cosa  fratescha." 

t  Frantz,  Sixtus  IV.,  82 


SAVONAROLA   DEFIES   THE   POPE.  23 

would  do  everything  in  his  power  to  meet  all  the  wishes  of 
the  Republic.  The  Florentine  Envoy  was  also  indefatiga- 
ble in  exerting  himself  to  influence  the  Cardinals  in 
favour  of  Savonarola,  and  not  entirely  without  result,  for 
some  members  of  the  commission  recommended  that  the 
Censure  should  be  suspended  for  two  months,  and  the 
Friar  induced  meanwhile  to  come  to  Rome.  But  these 
views  did  not  prevail.  The  commission  of  Cardinals  agreed 
with  the  Pope  that  it  was  out  of  the  question  to  comply  with 
the  request  of  the  Signoria,  unless  Savonarola  would  first 
consent  to  yield  obedience  to  the  commands  of  the  General 
of  his  Order  and  of  the  Holy  See.  People  began  to  say  that 
the  Interdicts  would  be  extended  to  the  city  itself.  Still 
the  Florentine  Envoy  refused  to  relinquish  all  hope,  but  was 
forced  on  the  12th  February,  1498,  to  confess,  after  months 
of  toil,  that  the  case  presented  extraordinary  difficulties.* 

Meanwhile  Savonarola,  more  than  ever  convinced  of  his 
divine  mission,f  did  everything  that  in  him  lay  to  increase 
these  difficulties  and  to  exasperate  the  Pope  and  make  a 
reconciliation  impossible. 

Hitherto,  even  during  the  Plague,  he  had  abstained  from 
attempting  to  exercise  any  sacerdotal  functions  ;  he  well 
knew  that  to  do  so  while  under  a  formal  sentence  of 
Excommunication  would  be  a  sacrilege. 

At  the  end  of  the  year  1497  he  changed  his  mind  on  this 
point.  On  Christmas  Day  he  celebrated  three  masses  and 
gave  communion  to  all  his  religious  and  a  large  number 

*  Gherardi,  172,  174-176.  Cf.  the  Ferrarese  Despatch  in  Cappelli, 
Savonarola,  89  se^.,  who  at  the  same  time  reports  that  Savonarola 
continues  irreconcilable. 

t  Cf.  the  Report  of  the  Ferrarese  Envoy,  in  Aug.  1497,  of  his  conversa- 
tion with  the  "  prophet,"  who  explained  that  he  was  only  an  instrument  in 
the  hands  of  God,  and  therefore  had  no  fear  of  the  result,  as  God  must 
certainly  conquer.  Cappelli,  90,  cf.  98-99,  on  Savonarola's  finn  deter- 
mination not  to  yield  obedience  to  the  Pope. 


24  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

of  the  laity.  Many  of  his  partisans  even  disapproved  of 
this  sacrilegious  act.*  Presently  it  was  announced  that  he 
intended  to  begin  again  to  preach.  The  excommunication, 
he  explained  to  the  Ferrarese  Envoy,  was  unjust  and  had 
no  power  to  bind  him  ;  he  did  not  mean  to  take  any  notice 
of  it;  see  what  a  life  Alexander  VI.  was  leading;  nothing 
should  hinder  him  from  preaching,  "  his  commission  came 
from  One  who  was  higher  than  the  Pope,  higher  than 
any  creature."-]-     The  Vicar  of  the  Archbishop  of  Florence 

*  Nardi,  I.,  1 20,  says  :  con  gran  maraviglia  d'ognuno  e  dispiacimento 
non  piccolo  de'  suoi  divoti.  Savonarola  had  resumed  his  spiritual  minis- 
trations. 

t  Cappelli,  Savonarola,  102.  Ranke  is  of  opinion  (Studien,  289 
seq.)  that  "the  Friar's  action  in  permitting  himself  to  resume  his  preaching 
outside  the  walls  of  S.  Marco  was  far  more  important  (than  his  exercise 
of  sacerdotal  functions) ;  for  this  was  an  open  defiance  of  the  papal  com- 
mands and  the  announcement  made  to  him  in  the  previous  June 
of  his  Excommunication.  This  must  not  be  regarded  as  an  isolated  act 
of  disobedience  ;  it  is  plain  that  it  implied  an  attack  on  the  whole  system 
of  the  Church.  The  supreme  authority  of  the  Pope  and  his  infallibility 
are  called  in  question  by  it.  .  .  .  Savonarola,  in  resisting  the  Excom- 
munication, was  preparing  the  way  for  the  Reformation."  ViLLARl, 
Savonarola,  II.,  246,  n.  4  (Engl,  trans.),  and  PELLEGRINI  in  the  Giom. 
St.  d.  Lett.  Ital,  XII.,  258,  n.  2,  justly  dispute  this  latter  assertion,  but  the 
error  contained  in  the  opening  sentences  of  this  passage  is  much  greater. 
Ranke's  Studien  on  Savonarola  has  the  merit  of  being  an  impartial  view 
of  the  "  prophet,"  undistorted  by  the  Dominican  legends  by  which  Villari 
has  been  far  too  much  influenced.  But  this  makes  such  remarks  as  those 
in  the  sentences  quoted  above  all  the  more  regrettable.  When  Ranke  be- 
takes himself  to  the  domain  of  Catholic  theology,  his  utter  ignorance  leads 
him  into  serious  error.  Thus  he  says  (p.  327)  that  Savonarola  distinctly 
taught  the  doctrine  of  justification  by  faith  only !  The  parallel  drawn 
between  the  Friar  and  Luther  and  Calvin  on  p.  33 1  is  only  partially  true. 
Ranke  says  here  that  Luther  "  took  up  his  position  outside  the  hierarchy 
of  the  Church,  while  Savonarola  still  held  to  it."  But  if  so,  on  what 
grounds  does  he,  on  p.  6,  call  Savonarola  "a  precursor  of  the  Reforma- 
tion of  the  1 6th  Century  "  ? 


DISOBEDIENCE  OF  SAVONAROLA.  2$ 

tried  to  prevent  this  by  issuing  a  mandate  forbidding  all 
from  being  present  at  the  sermons,  and  desiring  the  parish 
priests  to  explain  to  their  flocks  that  the  excommunication 
was  perfectly  valid,  and  that  any  one  attending  Savonarola's 
preaching  incurred  the  same  penalty  himself,  and  would  be 
cut  off  from  the  Sacraments  and  from  Christian  burial. 
The  Signoria,  however,  made  short  work  of  this  proclama- 
tion, threatening  the  Vicar  with  the  severest  penalties  if  he 
did  not  withdraw  it  at  once.* 

On  Septuagesima  Sunday,  nth  February,  1498,  Savon- 
arola again  entered  the  pulpit  of  S.  Marco  under  the  aegis 
of  the  secular  power  and  in  open  defiance  of  the  commands 
of  his  spiritual  superiors.  In  burning  words  he  defended 
his  disobedience.  "The  righteous  prince  or  the  good 
priest,"  he  declared,  "  is  merely  an  instrument  in  the  Lord's 
hands  for  the  government  of  the  people,  but  when  the 
higher  agency  is  withdrawn  from  prince  or  priest,  he  is 
no  longer  an  instrument,  but  a  broken  tool.  And  how, 
thou  would'st  say,  am  I  to  discern  whether  or  no  the  higher 
agency  be  absent?  See  if  his  laws  and  commands  be 
contrary  to  that  which  is  the  root  and  principle  of  all 
wisdom,  namely  of  godly  living  and  charity ;  and  if  contrary, 
thou  may'st  be  truly  assured  that  he  is  a  broken  tool,  and 
that  thou  art  nowise  bound  to  obey  him.  Now  tell  me  a 
little,  what  is  the  aim  of  those  who,  by  their  lying  reports, 
have  procured  this  sentence  of  Excommunication  ?  As  all 
know,  they  sought  to  sweep  away  virtuous  living  and 
righteous  government,  and  to  open  the  door  to  every  vice. 
Thus,  no  sooner  was  the  Excommunication  pronounced, 
than  they  returned  to  drunkenness,  profligacy,  and  every 
other  crime.  Thus,  I  will  not  acknowledge  it,  for  I  cannot 
act  against  charity.     Any  one  who  gives  commands  opposed 

*  ViLLARl,  Savonarola,  II.,  247-248  (Engl,  trans.).  Appendix,  LI.; 
Perrens,  333  ;  Meier,  140  seg. 


26  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

to  charity  is  Excommunicated  by  God.  Were  such  com- 
mands pronounced  by  an  angel,  even  by  the  Virgin  Mary 
herself  and  all  the  saints  (which  is  certainly  impossible), 
anathema  sit.  If  pronounced  by  any  law,  or  canon,  or 
council,  anathema  sit.  And  if  any  Pope  hath  ever  spoken 
to  a  contrary  effect  from  this,  let  him  be  declared  excom- 
municate. I  say  not  that  such  a  Pope  hath  ever  existed  ; 
but  if  he  hath  existed  he  can  have  been  no  instrument  of 
the  Lord,  but  a  broken  tool.  It  is  feared  by  some  that, 
though  this  excommunication  be  powerless  in  Heaven,  it 
may  have  power  in  the  Church.  For  me  it  is  enough  not 
to  be  interdicted  by  Christ.  Oh,  my  Lord,  if  I  should  seek 
to  be  absolved  from  this  excommunication,  let  me  be  sent 
to  hell ;  I  should  shrink  from  seeking  absolution  as  from 
mortal  sin." 

"  The  Pope  may  err,"  Savonarola  asserted  in  his  sermon 
on  1 8th  February,  "  and  that  in  two  ways,  either  because  he 
is  erroneously  informed,  or  from  malice.  As  to  the  latter 
cause  we  leave  that  to  the  judgment  of  God,  and  believe 
rather  that  he  has  been  misinformed.  In  our  own  case  I 
can  prove  that  he  has  been  falsely  persuaded.  Therefore 
any  one  who  obstinately  upholds  the  excommunication  and 
affirms  that  I  ought  not  to  preach  these  doctrines  is  fight- 
ing against  the  kingdom  of  Christ,  and  supporting  the 
kingdom  of  Satan,  and  is  himself  a  heretic,  and  deserves  to 
be  excluded  from  the  Christian  community."  * 

These  and  similar  utterances  which  occur  in  all  his  ser- 
mons were  the  result  of  Savonarola's  unfortunate  conviction 
derived  from  his  visions,  that  he  had  a  mission  from  God, 
and  his  attacks  on  the  Italian,  and  especially  the  Roman 

*  ViLLARi,  Savonarola,  11.,  248  seq.  (Engl,  trans.).  Cf.  Meier,  141 
seq..,  and  Perrens,  335  seq.\  the  latter  justly  observes  that  Savonarola's 
theory  paves  the  way  for  all  kinds  of  insubordination.  See  also  Frantz, 
Sixtus  IV.,  82. 


HIS   ATTACKS   ON    THE   ROMAN   CLERGY.  27 

clergy,  became  more  violent  than  ever.  "  The  scandals,"  he 
says,  "  begin  in  Rome  and  run  through  the  whole  of  the 
clergy ;  they  are  worse  than  Turks  and  Moors.  In  Rome 
you  will  find  that  they  have,  one  and  all,  obtained  their 
benefices  by  simony.  They  buy  preferments  and  bestow 
them  on  their  children  or  their  brothers,  who  take  posses- 
sion of  them  by  violence  and  all  sorts  of  sinful  means. 
Their  greed  is  insatiable,  they  do  all  things  for  gold.  They 
only  ring  their  bells  for  coin  and  candles  ;  only  attend 
Vespers  and  Choir  and  Office  when  something  is  to  be  got 
by  it.  They  sell  their  benefices,  sell  the  Sacraments,  traffic 
in  masses  ;  in  short,  money  is  at  the  root  of  everything, 
and  then  they  are  afraid  of  excommunication.  When  the 
evening  comes  one  goes  to  the  gaming  table,  another  to  his 
concubine.  When  they  go  to  a  funeral  a  banquet  is  given, 
and  when  they  ought  to  be  praying  in  silence  for  the  soul 
of  the  departed  they  are  eating  and  drinking  and  talking. 
They  are  steeped  in  shameful  vices  ;  but  in  the  day-time 
they  go  about  in  fine  linen,  looking  smart  and  clean.  Many 
are  absolutely  ignorant  of  their  rule  and  where  to  find  it, 
know  nothing  of  penance  or  the  care  of  souls.  There  is  no 
faith  left,  no  charity,  no  virtue.  Formerly  it  used  to  be  said, 
if  not  pure,  at  least  demure.  Now  no  one  need  try  to  keep 
up  appearances,  for  it  is  considered  a  disgrace  to  live  well. 
If  a  priest  or  a  canon  leads  an  orderly  life  he  is  mocked  and 
called  a  hypocrite.  No  one  talks  now  of  his  nephew,  but 
simply  of  his  son  or  his  daughter.  The  ...  go  openly  to 
S.  Peter's  ;  every  priest  has  his  concubine.  All  veils  are  cast 
aside.  The  poison  is  so  rank  in  Rome  that  it  has  infected 
France  and  Germany  and  all  the  world.  It  has  come  to 
such  a  pass  that  all  are  warned  against  Rome,  and  people 
say, '  If  you  want  to  ruin  your  son  make  him  a  priest.'  "* 
But  the  scene  which  Savonarola  permitted    himself  to 

*  Meier,  143  seq. 


28  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

enact  on  the  last  day  of  the  Carnival,  was  even  more  out- 
rageous than  his  language.  He  began  by  saying  mass  in 
S.  Marco  and  giving  communion  to  his  monks  and  a  large 
number  of  laymen.  Then  he  mounted  a  pulpit  which  had 
been  erected  before  the  door  of  the  Church,  carrying  the 
Blessed  Sacrament  in  his  hand,  and,  almost  beside  himself 
with  excitement,  blasphemously  exclaimed,  "  Oh  Lord,  if 
my  deeds  be  not  sincere,  if  my  words  be  not  inspired  by 
Thee,  strike  me  dead  this  instant."* 

"  O  ye  priests,"  Savonarola  cried  out  from  the  pulpit  on 
the  1st  March, "  you  have  surpassed  the  pagans  in  contradict- 
ing and  persecuting  the  truth  of  God  and  His  cause.  O  my 
children,  it  is  evident  now  that  they  are  worse  than  Turks. 
Now  must  we  resist  the  wicked  as  the  martyrs  resisted  the 
tyrants.  Contend  ye  evil-doers  against  this  cause  like 
pagans  ;  write  to  Rome  that  this  Friar  and  his  friends  will 
fight  against  you  as  against  Turks  and  unbelievers.  It  is 
true  that  a  Brief  has  come  from  Rome  in  which  I  am  called 
a  son  of  perdition.  Write  that  he  whom  you  thus  designate 
says  that  he  has  neither  concubines  nor  children,  but 
preaches  the  Gospel  of  Christ.  His  brethren,  and  all  who 
follow  his  teaching,  reject  all  such  deplorable  things, 
frequent  the  Sacraments,  and  live  honestly.  Nevertheless, 
like  Christ  Himself,  we  will  somewhat  give  way  to  wrath, 
and  thus  I  declare  to  you,  that  I  will  preach  no  more  from 
this  pulpit  except  at  the  request  of  those  who  desire  to  lead 
a  good  life.  I  will  preach  in  S.  Marco  but  to  men  only, 
not  to  women ;  under  the  present  circumstances  this  is 
needful."f 

*  Landucci,  163,  who  describes  this  appalling  scene,  adds  :  Eravi 
venuto  grande  popolo,  stimando  vedere  segni  :  e  tiepidi  si  ridevano  e 
facevano  beffe  e  dicevano  :  Egli  e  scommunicato  e  communica  altri. 
E  benche  a  me  e'  pareva  errore,  ancora  che  gli  credessi ;  ma  non  volli 
mettermi  mai  a  pericolo  andare  a  udirlo,  poiche  fu  scommunicato. 

t  Meier,  146. 


THE    POPES   BRIEF   TO   THE   FLORENTINES.  29 

Nothing  could  have  pleased  Savonarola's  enemies  better 
than  this  aggressive  tone.  His  friends  were  in  the  greatest 
embarrassment.  The  Florentine  Ambassador  in  Rome  knew 
not  what  reply  to  make  to  the  Pope's  complaints  of  the 
intemperate  sermons  of  the  Friar  and  the  obstinacy  of  the 
Florentines  in  clinging  to  their  prophet  and  to  the  French 
alliance.  On  the  25th  February,  1498,  Alexander  told  the 
Envoys  that  "  even  Turks  would  not  endure  such  insubordi- 
nation against  lawful  authority,"  and  threatened  to  lay  an 
Interdict  on  the  city.*  A  few  days  later  he  attached  his 
signature  to  a  Brief  to  the  Florentines,  which  ran  thus  :  "  On 
first  receiving  notice  of  the  pernicious  errors  diffused  by  that 
child  of  iniquity,  Girolamo  Savonarola,  we  required  him  to 
abstain  entirely  from  preaching,  and  to  come  to  Rome  to 
implore  our  pardon  and  make  recantation  ;  but  he  refused 
to  obey  us.  We  commanded  him,  under  pain  of  excommu- 
nication, to  join  the  Congregation  of  S.  Marco  to  the  new 
Tuscan-Roman  Congregation,  and  again  he  refused  to  obey, 
thus  incurring,  ipso  facto,  the  threatened  excommunication. 
The  which  sentence  of  excommunication  we  caused  to  be 
pronounced  and  proclaimed  in  your  principal  churches, 
likewise  declaring  that  all  who  heard,  or  addressed,  or  held 
intercourse  with  the  said  Girolamo  would  incur  the  same 
penalty.  Nevertheless,  we  now  hear  that,  to  the  grave  hurt 
of  religion  and' the  souls  of  men,  this  Friar  still  continues  to 
preach,  despises  the  authority  of  the  Holy  See,  and  declares 
the  excommunication  to  be  null  and  void.  Wherefore 
we  command  you,  by  your  duty  of  holy  obedience,  to  send 
the  said  Fra  Girolamo  to  us,  under  safe  custody;  and 
if  he  return  to  repentance,  he  will  be  paternally  received 
by  us,  inasmuch  as  we  seek  the  conversion,  not  the 
death,  of  the  sinner.    Or  at  least  put  him  apart,  as  a  corrupt 

*  Gherardi,  180  seq,      Cj.  Pellegrini  in  Arch.  d.  Soc.  Rom., 
XL,  721. 


30  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

member,  from  the  rest  of  the  people,  and  keep  him  con- 
fined and  guarded  in  such  wise  that  he  may  have  speech 
of  none,  nor  be  able  to  disseminate  fresh  scandals.  But 
if  ye  refuse  to  obey  these  commands,  we  shall  be  forced 
to  assert  the  dignity  of  the  Holy  See,  by  subjecting 
you  to  an  Interdict  and  also  to  other  and  more  effectual 
remedies."  * 

This  Brief,  therefore,  does  not  contain  the  Interdict  itself 
but  only  threatens  it.  In  a  second  the  Canons  of  the 
Cathedral  are  enjoined  not  to  allow  Savonarola  to  preach 
on  any  pretext  whatsoever.  Thus  the  Pope  still  abstained 
from  doing  anything  more  than  that  which  was  absolutely 
necessary,  and  demanded  nothing  that  was  not  strictly  with- 
in his  rights.  According  to  the  ecclesiastical  laws  of  that 
time  Savonarola  was  unquestionably  a  delinquent,  and 
being  a  religious,  Alexander  had  a  right  to  require  that  he 
should  be  handed  over  to  the  Holy  See  for  judgment.  It 
is  quite  true  that,  from  the  beginning  and  throughout,  the 
fact  that  the  Friar  was  the  soul  of  the  French  party  in 
Florence  was  one  of  the  weights  in  the  scale,  and  not 
a  light  one  ;  but  it  is  an  exaggeration  to  assert  that 
^Alexander's  only  motive  in  his  proceedings  against 
Savonarola  was  to  induce  Florence  to  join  the  Italian 
League  against  France  ;  at  this  moment  it  is  clear  that  in 
the  Pope's  mind  the  vindication  of  the  authority  of  the 
Church  was  the  foremost  consideration.-]-  "  If  the  monk 
will  prove  his  obedience,"  he  said  on  27th  February  to 
the  Florentine  Envoy,  "  by  abstaining  from  preaching  for 
a  reasonable  time,  I  will  absolve  him  from  the  censures 
which  he  has  brought  upon  himself;  but  if  he  persists  in 

*  ViLLARl,  Savonarola,  11.,  262,  263  (Engl,  trans.).  The  whole  text  is 
in  the  Italian,  11.,  ed.  2,  App.,  LXVI.-LXVII. 

t  Grisar  in  the  Z^itschr.  fiir  Kathol.  Theologie,  IV.,  397.  Cf.  Ranke, 
Studien,  78. 


FLORENCE   THREATENED   WITH   AN    INTERDICT.       3 1 

his  disobedience  we  shall  be  obliged  to  proceed  against 
him  with  the  Interdict  and  all  other  lawful  punishments,  to 
vindicate  our  own  dignity  and  that  of  the  Holy  See."  * 
The  Pope  again  expressed  himself  in  similar  terms  when, 
on  the  7th  of  March,  the  Florentine  Envoy  presented  the 
reply  of  his  Government  to  the  Brief  of  26th  February. 
The  reply  pointed  out  that  Savonarola  had  never  entered 
the  pulpit  in  the  Cathedral  since  the  arrival  of  the  Brief, 
defended  him  warmly  on  all  points,  declaring  that  he  had 
been  calumniated,  and  said  that  the  Government  was  unable 
to  comply  with  the  Pope's  request.  Alexander,  however, 
was  well  aware  that  Savonarola  continued  to  preach  and 
abuse  him  in  S.  Marco  in  exactly  the  same  manner  as  he 
had  done  in  the  Cathedral.  "  This  is  a  sorry  letter,"  he  said 
to  the  Florentine  Envoy  on  the  7th  March,  "  that  your 
Government  has  written  to  me.  I  am  not  misinformed,  for 
I  have  myself  read  the  sermons  of  this  Friar  of  yours,  and 
conversed  with  people  who  have  heard  them.  He  despises 
the  censures  and  has  had  the  insolence  to  call  the  Pope  a 
'  broken  tool,'  and  to  say  that  he  would  sooner  go  to  hell 
than  ask  for  absolution."  With  growing  irritation  Alex- 
ander went  on  to  complain  that  the  Signoria  still  permitted 
Savonarola  to  preach.  More  than  once  it  had  been  at 
their  express  desire  that  the  Friar  had  re-entered  the 
pulpit  at  S.  Marco  ;  the  Pope  demanded  that  he  should  be 
absolutely  silenced,  otherwise  he  would  lay  the  city  under 
Interdict.  The  Envoy  strove  to  mollify  the  Pope  by  point- 
ing out  that  there  was  nothing  reprehensible  in  Savonarola's 
teaching.  Alexander  replied  that  it  was  not  the  Friar's 
doctrines  that  he  condemned,  but  his  conduct  in  refusing  to 
ask  to  be  absolved  from  the  excommunication,  declaring  it 
to  be  null  and  void,  and  continuing  to  preach  in  spite  of  his 
express  prohibition.  Such  an  example  of  open  defiance  of 
*  Gherardi,  183. 


32  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

his  and  the  Church's  authority  was  most  dangerous  *  This 
declaration  was  endorsed  by  a  new  Brief  dated  9th  March, 
again  denouncing  in  the  strongest  terms  Savonarola's  dis- 
obedience in  preaching  and  exercising  sacerdotal  functions, 
notwithstanding  his  excommunication,  and  in  disseminating 
through  the  press  his  denial  of  the  validity  of  the  Papal 
censures,  and  other  subversive  doctrines.  "  Does  the  Friar 
think,"  it  said,  "  that  he  alone  was  excepted  when  our  Lord 
conferred  the  power  of  binding  and  loosing  on  our  pre- 
decessor S.  Peter  ?  .  .  .  Our  duty  as  Pastor  of  the  flock 
forbids  us  to  tolerate  such  conduct  any  longer.  We  there- 
fore once  more  command  you  either  to  send  Savonarola  to 
Rome,  or  to  shut  him  up  in  some  convent  where  he  can 
neither  preach  nor  speak  to  any  one  until  he  comes  to 
himself  and  renders  himself  worthy  to  be  absolved.  If 
this  is  not  done  we  shall  lay  Florence  under  Interdict ;  all 
that  we  require  is  that  Savonarola  shall  acknowledge  our 
supreme  authority."-|- 

The  numerous  letters  of  the  Florentine  Ambassador  shew 
the  extremely  embarrassing  position  in  which  he  was  placed 
by  the  perfectly  legitimate  demands  of  the  Pope.  From 
Florence  he  received  nothing  but  fair  words  excusing 
Savonarola,  while  Alexander  VI.  insisted  on  deeds.  On 
the  1 6th  of  March,  in  a  very  outspoken  letter,  he  again  ex- 
plained the  true  state  of  things  to  his  Government.  The 
Pope,  he  says,  absolutely  requires  that  Savonarola  shall  be 
silenced  ;  if  not,  the  Interdict  will  certainly  be  pronounced. 
They  may  spare  themselves  the  trouble  of  any  more  fair 
words  and  apologies  for  the  Friar  ;  they  make  no  impression 
on  any  one.  On  the  contrary,  every  one  laughs  at  their 
notion  that  Savonarola's  Excommunication  can  be  set  aside. 

*  Marchese  in  Arch.  St.  Ital.,  VIII.,  167  seq. 

t  Gherardi,  194  seq. ;  cf.  PELLEGRINI  in  the  Arch.  d.  Soc.  Rom., 
XL,  723. 


CONDUCT  OF   THE   SIGNORIA.  33 

The  power  of  pronouncing  censures  is  by  no  means  an 
insignificant  part  of  the  authority  of  the  Holy  See.  They 
need  not  fancy  that  they  will  be  permitted  to  question  it.  "  I 
repeat  once  more,"  he  adds,  "  what  I  have  so  often  written 
to  you,  if  the  Pope  is  not  obeyed,  the  Interdict  will  be  laid 
on  the  city.  Consider,  moreover,  how  you  yourselves  would 
act  if  one  who  owed  you  obedience  not  only  frankly  acted 
against  your  commands,  but  flouted  you  into  the  bargain."  * 

A  few  days  later  the  Ambassador  announced  that  the 
Pope  had  received  further  accounts  of  the  abuse  showered 
upon  him,  the  Cardinals,  and  the  whole  Roman  Court  by 
Savonarola  in  his  sermons.  The  result  of  a  consultation 
with  several  of  the  Cardinals  was  that  to  forbid  his  preach- 
ing was  not  enough,  he  must  be  sent  to  Rome ;  otherwise, 
not  only  would  an  Interdict  be  laid  upon  Florence,  but  all 
Florentines  residing  in  Rome  would  be  arrested  and  put  in 
prison  and  their  property  confiscated.-j- 

It  was  so  obviously  the  fault  of  the  Signoria  that  matters 
should  have  been  brought  to  such  a  pass  as  this,  that  their 
conduct  has  been  suspected  of  having  been  due  to  the 
intrigues  of  Savonarola's  enemies,  whose  influence  was 
growing  from  day  to  day.  The  Milanese  Ambassador  in 
Florence  wrote  to  his  Government  on  the  2nd  March,  1498, 
that  the  Signoria  were  endeavouring  to  irritate  the  Pope  to 
the  utmost,  in  order  to  provide  themselves  with  a  plausible 
pretext  for  taking  proceedings  against  the  Friar.J  It  is 
not  necessary  to  determine  whether  this  view  is  correct  or 
not,  but  the  fact  remains  that  the  behaviour  of  the  Signoria 

*  Gherardi,  198-201,  has  been  the  first  to  publish  this  highly 
interesting  report  of  the  Ambassador.     Villari  did  not  know  of  it. 

t  Gherardi,  204. 

t  This  report  is  quoted  by  ViLLARl,  Savonarola,  II.,  267  (Engl, 
trans.).  Cf.  Arch.  St.  Ital,  3  Serie,  XIII.,  186,  and  PELLEGRINI  in 
Arch.  d.  Soc.  Rom.,  XL,  722  seq.  ;  cf.  734  seq. 

VOL.  VI  *  D 


34  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

did  necessarily  greatly  embitter  Alexander  against  Savo- 
narola. The  Pope  complained  of  the  P'riar's  disobedience 
and  of  his  being  permitted  openly  to  set  his  authority  at 
defiance.  The  Signoria  replied  that  the  preacher  was 
doing  a  great  deal  of  good  and  was  a  true  reformer,  and 
that  therefore  they  could  not  comply  with  Alexander's 
commands.  When  the  accounts  from  Rome  became  more 
menacing,  they  gave  way  so  far  as  to  forbid  him  from 
preaching  ;  *  but  allowed  his  followers,  Fra  Domenico  and 
Fra  Mariano  Ughi,  to  go  on  declaiming  against  Rome  in 
their  sermons  as  freely  as  ever.  The  Pope  complained  of 
this  in  a  conversation  with  the  Florentine  Ambassador  on 
the  23rd  of  March  and  demanded  an  answer  to  his  Brief. 
"  I  do  not  require,"  he  said,  "  that  the  friars  should  be  pre- 
vented from  preaching,  but  these  attacks  on  the  authority 
of  the  Church  and  abusive  language  against  myself  must 
be  put  a  stop  to."  Referring  to  Savonarola,  he  added  :  "  If 
he  would  be  obedient  for  a  while  and  then  ask  for  absolu- 
tion, I  would  willingly  grant  it,  and  permit  him  to  resume 
his  sermons,  but  he  must  cease  from  abusing  the  Holy  See, 
the  Pope,  and  the  College  of  Cardinals ;  for  I  do  not  object 
to  his  doctrines,  but  only  to  his  preaching  without  having 
received  absolution,  and  to  his  contempt  of  myself  and  of 
my  censures ;  to  tolerate  this  would  be  to  give  away  my 
apostolic   authority. "f     These   words    are    remarkable    as 

*  In  his  last  sermon  on  i8th  March,  Savonarola  said  that  the  only  re- 
source now  left  was  an  appeal  to  the  highest  tribunal.  "  We  must  turn 
from  the  earthly  Pope  to  Christ,  the  heavenly  Pope."  He  declared  that 
he  had  never  set  himself  against  the  true  authority  of  the  Church,  "  but  if 
the  power  of  the  Church  is  corrupted,  it  ceases  to  be  that  of  the  Church, 
and  becomes  the  power  of  Satan.  When  it  encourages  concubines, 
knaves,  and  thieves,  and  persecutes  the  good,  and  hinders  those  who  de- 
sire to  lead  Christian  lives,  I  tell  you  then  it  is  a  devilish  power  that  must 
be  withstood."    See  Meier,  150. 

t  Bonsi's  Despatch  of  23rd  March,  1498,  in  Gherardi,  209  ;  cf.  210. 


SAVONAROLA    PRESSES   FOR   A   COUNCIL.  35 

clearly  proving  that  at   this   time   the  vindication  of  the 
Church  was  the  first  consideration. 

Could  the  proud  Friar  at  this  juncture  have  made  up 
his  mind  to  humble  himself  before  the  Pope  and  ask  for 
absolution,  possibly  the  storm  which  was  ultimately  to 
overwhelm  him  might,  even  at  the  last  moment,  have  been 
averted.  But  nothing  could  have  been  further  from  his 
thoughts;  blinded  by  his  false  theory,  that  a  Council  is 
superior  to  the  Pope,*  he  obstinately  persisted  in  pushing 
matters  to  an  extreme.  On  the  1 3th  March  he  addressed 
an  angry  letter  to  Alexander,  accusing  him  of  having 
"  made  a  compact  with  his  enemies,  and  let  loose  savage 
wolves  upon  an  innocent  man."-[-  Then,  following  in  the 
way  of  all  other  rebels,  he  urged  that  a  Council  should  be 
held  to  depose  the  Pope  as  "  guilty  of  simony,  a  heretic, 
and  an  unbeliever."  Savonarola's  friends  pressed  the  Flor- 
entine Envoy  in  France  and  Spain  to  support  this  plan  ; 
he  himself  addressed  a  letter  to  all  the  great  Christian 
Princes,  to  the  Kings  of  France,  Spain,  England,  and 
Hungary,  and  the  Emperor  of  Grermany,  strongly  urging 
them  to  convoke  an  anti-Papal  Council.  "  The  hour  of 
vengeance  has  arrived,"  he  wrote  in  this  document,  "  God 
desires  me  to  reveal  His  secret  counsels  and  to  announce 
to  all  the  world  the  dangers  to  which  the  barque  of  Peter  is 
exposed  in  consequence  of  your  slackness.  The  Church 
is  steeped  in  shame  and  crime  from  head  to  foot.  You, 
instead  of  exerting  yourselves  to  deliver  her,  bow  down 
before  the  source  of  all  this  evil.  Therefore,  the  Lord  is 
angry  and  has  left  the  Church  for  so  long  without  a 
shepherd.  I  assure  you,  in  verbo  Domini,  that  this  Alex- 
ander is  no  Pope  at  all  and  should  not  be  accounted  such  ; 
for  besides  having  attained  to  the  Chair  of  S.  Peter  by  the 

*  Cf.  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  p.  212. 
t  Meier,  148  seq.,  381  seq. 


36  HISTORY   OP     THE   POPES. 

shameful  sin  of  simony,  and  still  daily  selling  Church  bene- 
fices to  the  highest  bidder;  besides  his  other  vices  which 
are  known  to  all  the  world,  I  affirm  also  that  he  is  not  a 
Christian,  and  does  not  believe  in  the  existence  of  God, 
which  is  the  deepest  depth  of  unbelief"  After  this  intro- 
duction, he  required  all  Christian  Princes  to  unite  in  con- 
voking a  Council  as  soon  as  possible  in  some  suitable  and 
neutral  place.  On  his  side  he  not  only  bound  himself  to 
substantiate  all  his  charges  with  irrefragable  proofs,  but 
also  assured  them  that  God  would  confirm  his  words  by 
miraculous  tokens.* 

The  agitation  in  favour  of  a  Council  acquired  a  real  force 
and  extension  from  Alexander's  growing  unpopularity. 
The  way  in  which  he  had  given  up  the  projects  of  reform 
which  he  had  announced  before  the  death  of  the  Duke  of 
Gandia,  and  his  unblushing  nepotism  necessarily  aroused 
bitter  feelings  against  him,  both  in  Italy  and  abroad.  There 
was  fermentation  on  all  sides.  The  greatest  danger  seemed 
to  lie  in  Savonarola's  friendship  with  the  French  King 
Charles  VIII.  who  had  already,  on  7th  January,  1497, 
obtained  a  pronouncement  in  favour  of  his  plans  for  calling 
a  Council  from  the  Sorbonne.f  Alexander  had  got  to 
know  of  these  intrigues,  either  through  intercepted  letters 
or  through  some  unwary  speaker.  He  now  thought  that 
he  had  good  reason  to  fear  that  Savonarola's  mysterious 
threats,  such  as  "  Some  day  I  will  turn  the  key,"  or  "  I  will 
cry,  Lazarus,  come   forth,"  were   more   than  mere   empty 

*  The  draft  of  this  letter  is  to  be  found  in  Meier,  349  seq.  This  docu- 
ment is  pronounced  to  be  genuine,  not  only  by  Marchese  in  Arch. 
St.  Ital.,  VIII.,  86  seq.  {cf.  SCRITTI,  I.,  254  seq),  but  also  by  Ranke, 
Studien,  307  seq.,  who  also,  in  the  same  place,  expresses  his  belief  in  the 
statements  made  by  Savonarola  in  his  trial. 

t  Du  Plessis  d'Argentrii;,  Coll.  Judic,  T.  I.,  P.  II.,  pp.  335-336; 
Hergenrother,  VIII,,  333. 


EXASPERATION    OF   THE   POPE.  37 

words.  No  doubt  he  recalled  to  mind  Andrea  Zamometic  s 
attempts  to  bring  about  a  Council,  and  especially  dreaded 
combinations  between  the  Friar  and  Princes  or  Cardinals 
who  were  hostile  to  him,  with  the  object  of  getting  him  de- 
posed by  a  Council.  "  From  henceforth  all  his  moderation 
and  gentleness  vanished."  At  the  same  time  the  tempest 
burst  upon  Savonarola  from  another  quarter.* 

*  Schwab,  in  the  Bonn.  Literaturblatt,  IV.,  906 ;  cf.  Pellegrini,  in 
Arch.  d.  Soc.  Rom.,  XI.,  726.  ARMSTRONG,  in  the  Engl.  Hist.  Review, 
IV.,  455,  strongly  condemns  the  passionate  partisanship  with  which 
Villari,  even  in  his  latest  edition,  and  in  contradiction  to  all  the  best 
authorities,  describes  the  conduct  of  Alexander  VI.  in  regard  to  Savona- 
rola. This  author,  a  Protestant,  remarks  among  other  things :  "  Even  a 
Pope  has  some  rights  of  self-defence,  and  had  Alexander  overlooked  the 
contumacy  of  the  Friar,  the  continuance  of  the  Papacy  would  have  been 
impossible.  Until  the  last  act  of  the  drama,  he  seems  to  have  behaved  with 
singular  moderation,  and  the  changes  which  the  author  ascribes  to  male- 
volent cunning  were  clearly  due  to  a  real  difficulty  in  taking  stringent 
measures  against  a  man  for  whose  life  and  moral  teaching  he  had  con- 
siderable respect.  If  the  Pope  had  a  right  to  separate  the  Tuscan  from 
the  Lombard  congregation  against  the  will  of  the  latter,  he  certainly  had 
the  right  to  unite  it  to  the  Roman  against  the  will  of  the  former.  Pro- 
fessor Villari  is  never  weary  of  assuring  his  readers  that  Savonarola's 
opposition  was  directed  not  against  the  Papacy  but  against  the  Pope,  and 
that  no  taint  of  heresy  lingers  round  his  memory ;  but  it  is  difficult  to 
draw  a  hard  and  fast  line  between  doctrine  and  discipline,  and  the  head 
of  the  Church  would  appear  to  have  an  even  stronger  claim  to  enforce  his 
views  of  discipline  than  of  doctrine."  In  another  place  (p.  459),  Arm- 
strong says  that  Villari's  biography  is  a  panegyric  and  an  apology. 
Before  him,  Gaspary  (II.,  664)  had  also  taken  exception  to  Villari's 
point  of  view.  Hartwig,  in  the  Zeitschr.,  LXIV,  178  seq.^  endeavours 
to  defend  Villari  against  his  critics,  but  has  to  admit  that  he  had  under- 
taken to  glorify  Savonarola  (p.  179),  and  that  he  is  prejudiced  in  favour 
of  his  hero  (187).  In  introducing  into  this  question  the  definition  on 
Infallibility  of  1870  (179),  Hartwig  only  shews  that  he  has  not  under- 
stood this  dogma.  I  see  in  Gothein'S  work,  Ignatius  von  Loyola,  which 
has  just  appeared  (782),  that  he  also  considers  Villari's  point  of  view 
"  unsatisfactory." 


38  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

At  the  very  moment  that  the  Friar  was  thus  attempt- 
ing to  stir  up  a  revolt  amongst  the  Princes  of  Europe  his 
standing  ground  in  Florence  was  slipping  away  from 
under  his  feet. 

The  days  in  which  Savonarola  was  the  guide  and  ruler  of 
almost  the  whole  of  Florence  had  long  gone  by.  The 
turning  point  for  him  came  in  the  year  1497  with  the 
failure  of  Piero  de'  Medici's  attempt  to  make  himself 
master  of  the  city,  and  the  execution  of  five  of  his  adherents. 
Their  relations  set  themselves  as  avengers  of  blood  to  hunt 
Savonarola  down,*  and  the  influence  of  the  Arrabiati 
became  so  great  that  from  that  time  his  followers  had  to 
fight  hard  to  hold  their  ground.  The  position  of  the 
Frateschi  naturally  was  very  much  damaged  when,  on  the 
top  of  this,  the  excommunication  also  came,  for  it  produced 
a  great  impression  in  the  city,  and  many  held  it  to  be  bind- 
ing.f  The  disputes  on  this  point  and  on  the  guilt  or 
innocence  of  the  Friar  grew  more  and  more  vehement. 
The  revolutionary  character  of  Savonarola's  attitude  J  was 
severely  stigmatised  by  the  Franciscans  of  S'^  Croce.  When 
he  was  silenced  by  the  Government  they  redoubled  their 
attacks  upon  him.  The  Dominicans  were  unwearied  in  de- 
fending him  ;  their  chief  argument  was  his  Divine  mission. 
In  his  sermons  he  had  repeatedly  asserted  that  supernatural 
tokens  of  the  righteousness  of  his  cause  would  not  fail  to  be 
forthcoming  if  the  natural  evidence  were  insufficient.^  For 
a  time  the  moderation  of  his  conduct  and  the  fact  that 
many  of  his  prophecies  came  true  had  caused  him  to  be 

"^  See  Hase,  Savonarola,  53. 

t  Landucci,  162,  reports  that  many  were  saying  that,  whether  it 
were  just  or  unjust,  the  Excommunication  was  a  serious  matter.  Cf. 
GuicciARDlNl,  Op.  ined.  III.,  167,  and  ARMSTRONG,  ioc.  a'l,  456. 

J  Creighton,  III.,  238,  considers  it  such. 

§  Cf.  stipra,  p.  28,  and  Arch.  Veneto,  VIII.,  77. 


OPPOSITION   TO   SAVONAROLA   IN    FLORENCE.  39 

widely  believed.  Gradually  people  became  more  and  more 
sceptical,  and  he  found  himself  more  and  more  obliged  to 
stand  on  the  defensive  against  the  cavillers  who  disbelieved 
in  his  prophecies.  The  very  palpable  disadvantages  con- 
sequent on  the  state  of  tension  between  Florence  and  Rome 
which  was  the  natural  result  of  her  championship  of  an  ex- 
communicated religious,  and  especially  the  Pope's  refusal  to 
consent  to  the  levying  of  a  tithe  on  Church  property,  had 
a  considerable  effect  in  increasing  the  number  of  sceptics. 
The  deliberations  of  the  Council  in  March  1498,  on  the 
course  to  be  pursued  in  their  relations  with  Rome,  shew 
how  far  matters  had  gone  in  this  respect.  Francesco  Valori, 
Savonarola's  confidential  friend,  and  others,  stood  up  for  him, 
but  they  were  strongly  opposed. 

His  enemies  took  pains  to  point  "out,  in  addition  to  higher 
considerations,  the  material  inconveniences  that  must  attend 
persistence  in  the  course  which  Florence  had  hitherto  been 
pursuing.  Giovanni  Conacci  observed  that  the  Pope's 
jurisdiction  was  universal,  and  he  ought  to  be  allowed  to 
have  what  rightly  belonged  to  him.  Giuliano  Gondi 
reminded  the  Florentines  of  their  profession  of  obedience ; 
in  refusing  to  obey  the  Pope  they  were  breaking  a  solemn 
oath.  The  result  of  Savonarola's  preaching,  denying  that 
Alexander  was  a  true  Pope  and  vilifying  his  person,  would 
be  that  a  sect  would  be  formed  in  Florence.  It  was  not 
worth  while  to  make  enemies  of  the  Pope  and  all  the 
Italian  powers  for  the  sake  of  such  a  man ;  in  the  end  the 
Florentines  would  be  declared  rebels  against  the  Church, 
and  would  be  treated  as  such.  Giovanni  Brunetti  remarked 
that  however  good  and  learned  Savonarola  might  be,  he  was 
still  not  infallible,  Guid'  Antonio  Vespucci  said  that,  look- 
ing at  the  case  on  all  sides,  he  thought  it  would  be  better 
to  obey  the  Pope.  "  You  have  got  an  envoy  in  Rome,"  he 
said,  "  who  is  commissioned  to  request  the  Pope  to  restore 


40  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

his  consent  to  the  tax  on  the  clergy,  without  which  the  city 
cannot  exist.  For  this  end  he  is  charged  to  do  all  he  can 
to  conciliate  the  Holy  Father ;  there  is  no  sense  in  contra- 
dicting a  man  from  whom  you  are  seeking  to  obtain  a 
favour.  Whether  Savonarola  be  innocent  or  guilty  is  of  no 
moment ;  the  Holy  See  holds  him  to  be  guilty,  and  unless 
we  satisfy  the  Pope  on  this  point  we  shall  certainly  get 
nothing  from  him,  and  it  is  much  to  be  feared  that  the  Inter- 
dict, with  all  its  disastrous  consequences,  will  come  upon 
us.  Stress  has  been  laid  on  the  harm  that  will  be  done  by 
silencing  the  Friar  ;  but  since  his  own  Superiors  have  for- 
bidden him  to  preach  it  is  not  at  our  doors  that  the  sin  will 
lie.  For  Rome  the  matter  is  far  from  being  so  unimpor- 
tant as  some  would  make  it  out.  Censures  are  the  weapons 
of  the  Apostolic  See;  if  it  is  deprived  of  these,  how  can  it 
maintain  its  dignity  and  authority?  This  is  perfectly 
understood  in  Rome.  It  is  said  that  we  ought  to  consider 
God  and  His  honour.  I  agree ;  but  the  Pope  is  Christ's 
Vicar  on  earth,  and  derives  his  authority  from  God.  It  is 
therefore  more  meritorious  to  accept  his  censures,  whether 
they  be  just  or  unjust,  than  to  defend  the  Friar.  No  doubt 
if  we  could  be  sure  that  Savonarola  was  sent  by  God  it 
would  be  right  to  protect  him  against  the  Pope ;  but  as 
we  cannot  be  certain  of  this,  it  is  more  prudent  to  obey 
Rome."  * 

Meanwhile  Savonarola  unflinchingly  maintained  the 
supernatural  origin  of  his  prophecies,  and  asserted  that  if 
necessary  they  would  be  confirmed  by  a  miracle.  On  the 
last  day  of  the  Carnival  of  the  year  1498,  before  all  the 
people,  holding  the  Blessed  Sacrament  in  his  hand,  he 
prayed,  "  O  God,  if  my  words  are  not  from  Thee,  I  entreat 

*  See  the  report  of  these  transactions  in  the  documents  published  by 
LUPI  in  the  Arch.  St.  Ital.,  3  Serie,  III.,  i,  33-53.  Cf.  Ranke,  Studien, 
"Ipo  seq.  ;  Frantz,  Sixtus  IV.,  71  seq.  ;  and  Hase,  61. 


PROPOSAL   OF   THE   ORDEAL   BY    FIRE,  4I 

Thee  to  strike  me  down  this  very  moment."  *  On  Quinqua- 
gesima  Sunday  of  the  same  year,  in  his  sermon  he  cried  out, 
"  I  entreat  each  one  of  you  to  pray  earnestly  to  God  that  if 
my  doctrine  does  not  come  from  Him,  He  will  send  down 
a  fire  upon  me,  which  shall  consume  my  soul  in  hell."  In 
other  sermons  he  had  repeatedly  told  stories  to  his  audience 
of  cases  in  which  the  truth  was  not  recognised  until  mani- 
fested by  some  direct  token  from  God,  and  offered  himself 
to  pass  through  the  fire  in  order  to  prove  the  reality  of  his 
mission.-j-  After  such  utterances  as  these  it  was  not  sur- 
prising that  on  25th  March,  1498,  the  Franciscan,  Francesco 
of  Apulia,  in  a  sermon  in  S'^  Croce,  should  have  taken  up 
the  challenge,  and  undertaken  to  submit  to  the  ordeal  by 
fire  with  Savonarola.  "  I  fully  believe,"  Francesco  said, 
"  that  I  shall  be  burnt,  but  I  am  ready  to  sacrifice  myself 
to  free  the  people  from  this  delusion.  If  Savonarola 
is  not  burnt  with  me  then  you  may  believe  him  to  be  a 
prophet."  I 

Savonarola  meanwhile  shewed  no  great  inclination  to 
prove  his  mission  by  the  ordeal,  but  it  was  otherwise  with 
his  followers.  Not  only  the  enthusiastic  Fra  Domenico  da. 
Pescia  but  also  many  other  Dominicans,  and  even  several 
laymen  and  many  women,  announced  their  readiness  to 
undergo  it.  "  It  is  wonderful,"  writes  a  Florentine  to  his 
friend  on  29th  March,  1498,  "to  see  how  many  here  are 
ready  to  go  through  the  ordeal  as  joyfully  as  if  they  were 
going  to  a  wedding."  § 

*  "  The  test  was  somewhat  cheap,"  says  BoHRlNGER,  974,  "and  the 
Arrabiati  were  quite  justified  in  saying  that  Savonarola  would  have  done 
better  if  he  had  promised  a  miracle  if  God  were  for  him,  than  if  He  were 
against  him ;  for  a  negative  proves  nothing.  But  all  that  was  needed 
was  to  set  afloat  the  idea  of  a  Divine  manifestation." 

t    PERRENS,  361  ;    BOHRINGER,  988. 

t  Cf.  Landucci,  166-167,  and  Gherardi,  216. 

§  Gherardi,  216.     Ranke    Studien,   310,  says  that  this   "strange 


42  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Savonarola's  enemies  recognised  at  once  that  the  question 
thus  started  might,  and  possibly  must,  entail  the  destruction 
of  their  hated  foe.  "  If  he  enters  the  fire,"  they  said,  "  he 
will  be  burnt ;  and  if  he  does  not,  he  will  forfeit  the  faith 
of  his  adherents,  and  it  will  be  easy  to  stir  up  a  riot,  during 
which  he  may  be  arrested."  They  therefore  resolved  to  do 
their  best  to  have  the  trial  by  ordeal  carried  out.  For  this 
it  was  necessary  to  obtain  the  consent  of  the  Government ; 
and  here  there  was  considerable  opposition  from  many  who 
recognised  the  scandalous  nature  of  the  proposal ;  also 
Savonarola's  refusal  to  take  up  the  challenge  in  person  was 
embarrassing.  However,  the  majority  agreed  that  all  pos- 
sible means  must  be  tried,  including  the  ordeal  if  neces- 
sary, to  heal  the  divisions  in  the  city.  Savonarola's  party 
were  the  most  eager  advocates  of  the  ordeal.  Again  and 
again  their  master  had  told  them  that  one  day  his  words 
would  be  miraculously  confirmed  and  his  enemies  destroyed, 
and  now  it  seemed  as  if  the  day  had  come.  With  fanatical 
confidence  they  clamoured  for  the  ordeal ;  convinced  that 
when  the  decisive  moment  arrived,  the  master  would  no 
longer  be  able  to  restrain  himself,  he  would  plunge  into  the 
flames,  and  then  would  come  the  miracle.* 

The  propositions,  the  truth  of  which  Domenico  da  Pescia 
hoped  to  establish  by  means  of  the  ordeal  by  fire,  were 
those  which  were  most  contested  by  Savonarola's  opponents. 
They  were  the  following  : — "  The  Church  of  God  is  in  need 
of  reform ;  she  will  be  chastised  first  and  then  renovated. 
Florence  also  will  be  chastised  and  afterwards  restored  and 
flourish  anew.  All  unbelievers  will  be  converted  to  Christ. 
These  things   will  come  to  pass    in    our  own  time.     The 

duel "  was  proposed  because  "  no  ecclesiastical  authority  existed  which 
was  acknowledged  by  both  parties." 

*  ViLLARl,  Savonarola,  II.,  307  (Engl,  trans.).  Cf.  Ranke,  Studien, 
311  seq. 


THE   ORDEAL    FORBIDDEN    BY   ALEXANDER.  43 

Excommunication  pronounced  against  our  revered  father, 
Fra  Girolamo  Savonarola,  is  invalid  and  may  be  disre- 
garded without  sin." 

The  attitude  of  the  Government  towards  the  ordeal  should 
have  caused  Savonarola  and  his  followers  to  pause ;  but 
common-sense  had  long  been  thrown  to  the  winds  by  the 
Friar's  party,  to  make  way  for  a  blind  belief  in  the  som- 
nambulistic oracles  of  Fra  Silvestro  Maruffi.  On  the  30th 
March,  the  Signoria  had  decreed,  in  regard  to  the  ordeal, 
that  the  party  whose  champion  succumbed  must  immedi- 
ately leave  the  city  ;  that  if  either  of  the  combatants  refused 
to  enter  the  fire,  he  would  incur  the  same  penalty ;  that  if 
both  were  burnt,  the  Dominicans  would  be  considered  the 
vanquished  party.  In  a  new  decree  on  6th  April  there  was 
no  longer  any  mention  of  a  penalty  for  the  Franciscans  ; 
it  simply  announced  that  if  Fra  Domenico  perished, 
Savonarola  would  have  to  leave  Florence  within  three 
hours.* 

When  the  news  of  these  proceedings  reached  Rome, 
Alexander  at  once  expressed  his  disapprobation.  The 
Florentine  Ambassador  endeavoured  in  vain  to  obtain  his 
sanction  for  the  ordeal.  He  condemned  it  in  the  strongest 
terms,  as  did  also  the  Cardinals  and  the  whole  Roman  Court. 
The  Ambassador  insisted  that  the  only  way  of  prevent- 
ing it  would  be  for  the  Pope  to  absolve  Savonarola,  an 
obviously  impossible  alternative.t 

Meanwhile  the  7th  of  April,  the  day  fixed  for  the  ordeal, 

*  This  decree  is  in  Villari,  Savonarola,  IL,  ed.  2,  XCI.-XCIIL 
t  In  the  face  of  the  documents  published  by  Gherardi,  217  seq., 
Villari's  assertion,  in  which  he  persists  even  in  his  second  edition,  II., 
145,  that  Alexander  had  approved  of  the  ordeal  by  fire,  is  absolutely  un- 
tenable. Creighton,  III.,  240  ;  Pellegrini  in  the  Arch.  d.  Soc.  Rom., 
XL,  727  ;  and  ARMSTRONG  in  the  Engl.  Hist.  Review,  IV.,  458,  all  rightly 
agree  in  rejecting  Villari's  theory.  Cf.  also  Christophe,  II.,  503,  n.  i, 
and  CiPOLLA,  755,  n.  2. 


44  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

had  arrived.  Savonarola's  misgivings  had  been  dissipated 
by  a  vision  of  angels  which  had  been  vouchsafed  to  Fra 
Silvestro.  On  the  morning  of  the  appointed  day  he  said 
mass  and  delivered  a  brief  address  to  those  who  had 
attended  it.  "I  cannot  promise  you,"  he  said,  "that  the 
ordeal  will  take  place,  for  that  does  not  depend  upon  us  ; 
but,  if  it  does,  I  have  no  hesitation  in  assuring  you  that  our 
side  will  triumph."  Then  he  set  out  for  the  Piazza  accom- 
panied by  all  his  friars  singing  the  Psalm,  "  Let  God  arise 
and  let  His  enemies  be  scattered,"  as  they  walked  in  proces- 
sion. The  Franciscans,  who  had  come  quietly,  were  already 
there.  An  enormous  multitude  had  assembled  and  were 
eagerly  awaiting  the  unwonted  spectacle.  The  Signoria  had 
taken  every  precaution  to  secure  the  preservation  of  order. 
Two  piles  of  faggots  forty  yards  long  and  saturated  with  oil 
and  pitch  were  prepared,  divided  by  a  space  wide  enough 
to  allow  a  man  to  pass  between  them.  It  had  already 
struck  twelve  when  the  Dominicans  and  their  adherents, 
walking  in  solemn  procession  (Savonarola  carrying  the 
Blessed  Sacrament),  reached  the  Piazza.  The  Franciscans 
had  come  earlier,  simply  and  without  any  demonstration, 
and  now  stood  in  silence  on  their  side  of  the  Loggia,  while 
the  Dominicans  prayed  aloud.  All  was  ready.  But  now  a 
difference  arose  between  the  two  parties  as  to  what  each 
of  the  champions  should  be  allowed  to  take  with  him  into 
the  flames.  Fra  Domenico  insisted  on  taking  the  Crucifix, 
and  this  the  Franciscans  refused  to  permit.  While  this 
question  was  being  discussed,  a  heavy  shower  came  on, 
threatening  to  drive  the  spectators  away,  but  they  were  too 
eager  to  be  easily  scared  and  it  ceased  in  a  few  minutes  as 
suddenly  as  it  had  begun.  Fra  Domenico  persisted  in  his 
determination  not  to  lay  aside  the  Crucifix.  At  last  he  said 
that  he  would  be  willing  to  take  the  Sacred  Host  instead. 
Against  this  not  only  the  Franciscans  but  the  whole  body 


FAILURE   OF   THE   ORDEAL.  45 

of  spectators  energetically  protested,  rightly  judging  that 
such  a  proceeding  would  be  nothing  less  than  an  outrage 
on  the  Blessed  Sacrament.  Savonarola  and  Fra  Domenico 
were  of  a  different  opinion  ;  later,  Fra  Domenico  acknow- 
ledged that  the  reason  he  I'efused  to  give  way  on  this  point 
was,  that  Fra  Silvestro's  angel  had  expressly  ordered  him 
to  carry  the  Blessed  Sacrament  with  him  into  the  fire.  The 
only  possible  explanation  of  Savonarola's  persistence  in  this 
matter  was  the  influence  exercised  over  his  mind  by  this 
friar.  As  a  priest  he  must  have  known  that  to  introduce  the 
Sacred  Host  in  such  a  manner  into  a  personal  experiment 
was  absolutely  forbidden  by  Canon  Law.  He  seemed  to 
have  entirely  forgotten  that  in  the  Church  the  only  purposes 
for  which  the  body  of  the  Lord  can  lawfully  be  used  are  for 
the  adoration  of  the  faithful,  or  for  their  food.  He  main- 
tained that  only  the  species  could  be  burnt,  and  that  the 
Host  itself  would  remain  untouched,  and  quoted  a  number 
of  doctors  of  the  Church  in  support  of  his  view,  which  the 
Franciscans  as  resolutely  contested.*  Meanwhile  it  was 
growing  dark  and  Savonarola's  opponents  were  becoming 
more  and  more  violent.  The  only  course  now  open  to  the 
Signoria  was  to  command  both  parties  to  withdraw.  The 
mob,  disappointed  of  the  spectacle  to  which  they  had  been 
so  eagerly  looking  forward,  were  furious.  Their  wrath 
naturally  was  directed  against  the  Dominican,  "  whose  pro- 
posal of  carrying  the  Sacred  Host  into  the  fire  was  looked 
upon  as  an  insult  to  the  Blessed  Sacrament."  The  bad 
impression  produced  by  this  was  all  the  stronger  because 

*  BoHRlNGER,  999,  remarks,  "  If  Savonarola  believed  in  the  certainty 
of  a  miracle  in  his  favour,  why  then  should  he  carry  the  Sacred  Host 
into  the  fire?  Or  if,  on  the  other  hand,  It  was  to  serve  as  a  sort  of 
talisman  to  protect  Fra  Domenico,  would  it  not  have  had  the  same 
effect  if  Rondinelli  also  had  insisted  on  airrying  it,  and  thus  reduced  the 
whole  ordeal  to  a  farce  ? " 


46  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

the  Franciscan  had  been  ready  to  enter  the  fire  without  any 
"more  ado  and  without  expecting  any  miraculous  interposi- 
tion. The  conduct  of  Savonarola  and  his  party  was  uni- 
versally condemned,  especially  after  having  so  confidently 
announced  that  a  miracle  would  take  place  in  their  favour ; 
"  the  idea  that  the  whole  thing  was  a  fraud  gained  ground 
from  moment  to  moment."*  If  Savonarola  was  so  confi- 
dent that  God  would  protect  him,  it  was  said,  why  did  he 
shrink  from  himself  undergoing  the  ordeal  ?  Also,  why  did 
he  insist  on  Domenico's  being  allowed  to  carry  the  Blessed 
Sacrament  with  him  into  the  flames  ?  Even  those  who 
believed  in  the  prophet  said  that  if  the  proof  of  his  Divine 
mission  were  to  be  held  as  really  incontestable,  he  ought  to 
have  entered  the  fire  alone.  Thus,  in  a  single  day,  Savona- 
rola by  his  own  act  had  dissipated  the  prophetic  halo  which 
had  hitherto  surrounded  him  in  the  eyes  of  the  people.f 
His  fate  was  sealed.  "  He  had  himself  led  the  populace  to 
look  for,  and  believe  in,  such  tokens  as  the  ordeal  would 
have  been,  and  whenever  the  masses  find  themselves 
disappointed  in  their  expectations,  and  think  themselves 
cheated  and  insulted,  their  resentment  is  bitter  and  ruth- 
less." :J 

*  Ranke,  Studien,  313-314  {cf.  352  seq!) ;  he  cites  Cerretani  and  the 
Report  of  the  Milanese  Envoy,  Somenzi,  in  the  Arch.  St.  Ital.,  XVIII., 
2-31  seq.  Ranke  rightly  follows  Cerretani's  impartial  account  and 
rejects  Violi  and  Burlamacchi's  Dominican  Legend,  which  Villari 
reproduces  in  all  essential  points.  A  fresh  authority,  overlooked  by 
Villari,  has  now  come  to  light  in  SiGlSMONDO  DE'  CONTI  (II.,  194),  who 
is  all  the  more  trustworthy  because  he  fully  recognises  Savonarola's 
great  qualities.  Pellegrini  in  the  Giorn.  St.  d.  Lett.  Ital.,  XII.,  262 
seq.,  also  points  out  the  strong  bias  in  Villari's  account  of  the  ordeal 
by  fire. 

t  II  popolo  si  conturbo  tutti  quasi  perdendo  la  fede  del  Profeta,  writes 
Landucci,  169.  Cf.  Creighton,  II.,  242  ;  Cosci,  456 ;  and  Perrens, 
378  seq. 

X  Frantz,  Sixtus  IV.,  80. 


SAVONAROLA   BEFORE    THE   SIGNORIA.  47 

On  the  following  morning,  Palm  Sunday,  Savonarola 
still  further  damaged  his  position  by  again  preaching  in 
S.  Marco  in  direct  contradiction  to  the  command  of  the 
Signoria,  On  the  same  day  his  banishment  was  decreed ; 
but  this  sentence  was  not  carried  out.*  The  Compagnacci 
resolved  to  take  advantage  of  the  anger  and  disappoint- 
ment of  the  populace  in  order  once  for  all  to  crush  the 
Frateschi.  Before  Palm  Sunday  was  over  the  two  parties 
into  which  the  city  was  divided  had  come  to  blows. 
The  sermon  of  a  Dominican  friar  who  was  preaching  in 
the  Cathedral  was  violently  interrupted.  Francesco  Valori, 
Savonarola's  chief  supporter,  was  murdered,  and  the  Con- 
vent of  S.  Marco  was  stormed.  At  first  Savonarola  thought 
of  defending  it,  but  when  the  city  officials  presented  them- 
selves and  summoned  him  to  appear  before  the  Signoria, 
he  followed  them.  By  torchlight  he  and  Domenico  da 
Pescia  were  led  to  the  palace  through  the  seething  crowd, 
which  hooted  and  jeered  at  the  prophet  as  he  passed.f 

The  Signoria  lost  no  time  in  acquainting  the  Pope  and 
the  various  Italian  powers  with  what  had  taken  place. 
The  Florentine  Ambassador  in  Rome  was  also  charged  to 
beg  for  a  general  absolution  from  all  Church  penalties  that 
might  have  been  incurred  by  having  allowed  the  Friar  to 
go  on  preaching  for  so  long,  or  by  proceedings  against 
ecclesiastical  persons.  In  addition  they  asked  for  powers 
to  try  the  religious  who  had  been  arrested,  and  also  again 

*  The  Decree  is  in  ViLLARl,  II.,  ed.  2,  XCIV.  Cf.  PORTIOLI  in 
the  Arch.  St.  Lomb.,  I.,  351  seq. 

t  Cf.  Cerretani  and  Parenti's  reports  in  Ranke,  314  j^^.  "  So  great  was 
the  rage  of  the  people,"  says  the  chronicler  Vaglienti,  "  that  Savonarola, 
if  he  had  not  had  the  Blessed  Sacrament  with  him,  would  have  been 
torn  to  pieces."  See  Riv.  d.  Biblioteche  dir  di  G.  Biagi,  IV.,  60.  See 
also  Jacopo  Pitti,  1st.  Fior.,  in  the  Arch.  St.  Ital,  152,  and  the  letter 
of  a  Mantuan  Agent  in  the  Arch.  St.  Lomb.,  I.,  347  seq..,  and  also 
COSCI,  457  seq. 


48  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

approached  the  question  of  the  tax  on  the  clergy. 
Alexander  VI.  expressed  his  satisfaction  that  the  scandal 
caused  by  the  excommunicated  Friar  was  at  last  put  an 
end  to ;  he  willingly  granted  the  absolution,  but  desired 
that  the  prisoners  should  be  sent  to  Rome.  Although  this 
request  was  afterwards  repeated  with  considerable  urgency, 
no  attention  was  paid  to  it  in  Florence.  To  send  the 
delinquents  to  Rome  was  held  not  consistent  with  the 
dignity  of  the  Republic ;  the  sentence  ought  to  be  carried 
out  where  the  crime  had  been  committed.  It  was  finally 
decided  that  two  Papal  Delegates  were  to  assist  in  the  trial, 
and  on  May  19th  the  General  of  the  Dominicans,  Gioacchino 
Turiano,  and  Francesco  Romolino,  Bishop  of  Ilerda, 
came  to  Florence  in  this  capacity.  But  long  before  they 
arrived  the  trial  had  begun,  and  it  was  evident  that 
Savonarola's  opponents  were  now  complete  masters  of  the 
city  and  were  prepared  to  employ  any  amount  of  torture 
and  falsification  of  evidence  to  ensure  his  destruction. 

It  is  plain  that  Savonarola's  statements,  forced  from  him 
by  torture  and  further  distorted  by  interpolated  sentences 
and  omissions,  cannot  be  accepted  as  proofs  of  anything. 
Thus  the  justice  of  his  sentence  can  never  be  either  proved 
or  disproved ;  but  the  excitement  of  Florence  was  so 
great  that  the  Government  believed  that  it  was  absolutely 
necessary  to  put  a  stop  to  the  Friar's  proceedings.  No 
doubt  Alexander  VI.  was  urgent  in  his  demands  that  the 
rebel  who  had  intended  to  call  in  the  help  of  the  secular 
powers  to  achieve  his  dethronement  should  be  punished. 
Nevertheless  the  responsibility  for  the  severity  with  which 
he  was  treated  must  rest  on  the  rulers  of  Florence.  It  has 
been  truly  said,  in  excuse  for  this,  that  the  Republic  was  at 
that  time  in  such  a  critical  position,  both  externally  and 
internally,  that  the  Government  were  convinced  that  this 
was  a  case  for  the  application  of  the  old  Roman  maxim, 


SAVONAROLA   DESERTED   BY   HIS   DISCIPLES.  49 

"  the  good  of  the  State  before  everything  else,"  and  that 
they  were  bound  to  adopt  any  measures,  however  extreme, 
that  seemed  expedient  for  its  defence.* 

What  was  given  out  as  Savonarola's  "  Confessions  "  was 
of  a  nature  to  shake  the  faith  even  of  his  most  trustful 
disciples  in  his  Divine  mission  and  his  prophetic  character, 
and  the  mass  of  his  disciples  began  rapidly  to  fall  away. 
"  On  the  29th  April,  1498,"  writes  the  loyal  Luca  Landucci 
in  his  Diary,  "  I  was  present  at  the  reading  of  the  deposi- 
tions at  the  trial  of  Savonarola,  whom  we  had  all  believed 
to  be  a  prophet.  He  confessed  that  he  was  no  such  thing 
and  that  his  prophecies  were  not  from  God.  When  I  heard 
this  I  was  filled  with  amazement  and  confusion.  My  soul 
was  pierced  with  anguish  when  I  perceived  that  the  whole 
of  the  edifice  which  my  faith  had  reared  was  founded  on 
lies  and  was  crumbling  away.  I  had  thought  that  Florence 
was  to  be  a  new  Jerusalem,  out  of  which  would  proceed  the 
law  of  holy  life,  the  reformation  of  the  Church,  the  con- 
version of  unbelievers,  and  the  consolation  of  the  good. 
Now  all  this  has  vanished.  My  only  comfort  is  in  the 
word :  In  voluntate  tua  Domini  omnia  sunt  posita."  ^ 
The  majority  even  of  the  friars  of  San  Marco  now 
abandoned  their  master.  On  the  21st  of  April  they  sent 
a  letter  of  apology  to  Alexander.  "  Not  merely  ourselves," 
they  said,  "but  likewise  men  of  far  greater  talent,  were 
deceived  by  Fra  Girolamo's  cunning.  The  plausibility  of 
his  doctrines,  the  rectitude  of  his  life,  the  holiness  of  his 
manners ;  his  pretended  devotion,  and  the  good  results  he 
obtained  by  purging  the  city  of  immorality,  usury,  and 
every  species  of  vice ;  the  different  events  which  confirmed 
his  prophecies  in  a  manner  beyond  all  human  power  and 
imagination,  were  such  that  had  he  not  made  retractation 

*  Cosci,  460,  cf.  462. 

t  Landucci,  173. 

VOL.  VI.  E 


50  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

himself,  declaring  that  his  words  were  not  inspired  by  God, 
we  should  never  have  been  able  to  renounce  our  faith  in 
him.  For  so  firm  was  our  belief  in  him  that  we  were 
all  most  ready  to  go  through  the  fire  in  support  of  his 
doctrines."  * 

As  every  one  had  foreseen,  the  trial  resulted  in  the 
sentence  of  death  being  pronounced  upon  Savonarola,  Fra 
Domenico,  and  Fra  Silvestro,  "  for  the  monstrous  crimes  of 
which  they  had  been  convicted."  On  the  following  day  the 
sentence,  death  by  hanging,  was  executed. 

All  three  met  their  fate  courageously  and  calmly.  Before 
being  delivered  over  to  the  secular  arm,  they  were  degraded 
from  their  priestly  dignity  as  "heretics,  schismatics,  and 
contemners  of  the  Holy  See."-|-  One  of  the  spectators  is 
said  to  have  called  out  to  Savonarola,  "  Now  is  your  time, 
Prophet,  let  us  have  the  miracle."     When  life  was  extinct 

*  ViLLARl,  Savonarola,  II.,  375  (Engl,  trans.).    Cf.  Perrens,  597  seq. 

t  For  those  readers  who  are  unfamiliar  with  ecclesiastical  terminology, 
I  think  the  following  remarks  will  not  be  superfluous.  It  was  not  only  the 
Papal  Commissioners  but  Alexander  VI.  himself  who  charged  Savonarola 
with  disseminating  "  falsa  et  pestifera  dogmata "  (see  the  Brief  of  1 2th 
March,  1498,  in  Gherardi,  267).  But  by  this  phrase,  according  to  the 
ordinary  language  of  the  time  and  the  legal  points  of  view,  which  was  also 
that  of  the  Inquisition  during  the  following  centuries,  we  are  not  to  under- 
stand the  teaching  of  erroneous  dogma.  Under  certain  circumstances, 
as  Grisar  in  the  Zeitschr.  fiir  Kathol.  Theologie,  398,  justly  points  out, 
teaching,  the  tendency  of  which  was  practically  schismatic  or  unecclesias- 
tical,  was  so  designated.  "  Thus,  any  one  who  was  guilty  of  insordescentia 
in  excommunicatione  made  himself '  suspect  of  heresy'  in  the  eye  of  the 
law,  by  seeming  to  deny  the  right  of  the  Church  to  pronounce  the  sen- 
tence of  excommunication,  or  the  necessity  of  membership  with  the 
Church."  And  Savonarola's  claim  of  being  a  divinely  commissioned 
prophet  would  fall  under  the  same  category.  Cf.  the  Letter  of  the  Papal 
Commissioners  of  the  23rd  May,  1498,  in  Rudelbach,  494-497,  from 
which  it  is  evident  that  the  charge  of  heresy  in  this  case  is  to  be  under- 
stood in  the  constructive  and  not  in  the  strict  sense. 


EXECUTION   OF  SAVONAROLA.  51 

the  bodies  were  taken  down  and  burnt ;  a  gust  of  wind  for 
a  moment  blew  the  flames  aside,  and  many  cried,  "  A 
miracle,  a  miracle "  ;  but  in  another  moment  the  corpses 
were  again  enveloped.  The  ashes  were  thrown  into  the 
Arno  so  as  to  leave  no  relics  of  the  prophet  for  his  disciples 
to  venerate.* 

Such  was  the  end  of  .this  highly  gifted  and  morally 
blameless,  but  fanatical,  man.  His  greatest  faults  were  his 
interference  in  politics  and  his  insubordination  towards  the 
Holy  See.  His  intentions,  at  least  in  the  earlier  years  of 
his  active  life,  were  pure  and  noble;  later,  his  passionate 
nature  and  fanatical  imagination  carried  him  far  away  and 
led  him  to  overstep  the  bounds  of  what  was  permissible  in  a 
religious  and  a  priest.  He  became  the  head  of  a  political 
party  and  a  fanatic,  openly  demanding  the  death  of  all 
enemies  of  the  Republic  ;  this  could  not  fail  in  the  end  to 
bring  about  his  destruction. 

In  theory  Savonarola  remained  always  true  to  the 
dogmas  of  the  Catholic  Church;  but  in  his  denial  of  the 
penal  authority  of  the  Holy  See,  and  in  his  plans  for  calling 
a  Council,  which,  if  they  had  succeeded,  must  inevitably 
have  produced  a  schism,  his  tendencies  were  practically 
uncatholic.-j- 

*  Landucci,  177-178;  cf.  ViLLARl,  Savonarola,  II.,  ed.  2,  z^^seq. 
See  also  F.  Ricciardi  da  Pistoja,  Ricordi,  51-52,  and  Un  testo  oculare 
del  supplizio  del  Savonarola,  in  the  periodical  Zibaldone  of  ist  Jan., 
1888. 

t  The  old  Lutheran  view,  that  Savonarola  was  a  precursor  of  the  Re- 
formation, and  taught  the  doctrine  of  justification  by  faith  alone,  can  no 
longer  be  held  by  any  serious  historian  ;  cf.  Guerzoni,  Rinascimento, 
80,  and  the  Jahresberichte  der  Geschichtswissenschaft,  I.  (1878),  325, 
360.  Next  to  Marchese,  L,  193  seq.,  Villari  has  undoubtedly 
rendered  great  services  in  exposing  the  unhistorical  character  of  this 
view,  of  which  Rudelbach  is  one  of  the  principal  supporters  ;  though, 
from  his  imperfect  acquaintance  with  Catholic  theology  and  philosophy, 


52  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

It  may  justly  be  urged  in  Savonarola's  defence  that  in 
Florence   and   in  Rome,  and   indeed    throughout   Italy,  a 

he  has  not  been  able  to  avoid  falling  into  some  contradictions  and  errors. 
Schwab  in  the  Bonn.  Literaturblatt,  IV.,  897,  and  Frantz,  Sixtus  IV., 
XV.,  pp.  91-93,  have  pointed  these  out,  but  Villari,  against  his  own 
interest,  has  refused  to  notice  them.  The  absurd  notion  of  introducing 
Savonarola,  who  in  his  "  Triumph  of  the  Cross  "  places  defection  from  the 
Catholic  Church  in  the  same  category  with  defection  from  Christ  (Qui 
ab  unitate  Romanae  Ecclesiae  doctrinam  dissentit,  procul  dubio  per  devia 
aberrans  a  Christo  recedit,  sed  omnes  haeretici  ab  ea  discordant,  ergo 
ii  a  recto  tramite  dechnant  neque  Christiani  appellari  possunt.  Lib.  IV., 
c.  6)  into  the  Luther  memorial  at  Worms,  has  set  a  number  of  Catholic 
pens  to  work  to  prove  his  orthodoxy.  Amongst  these  are  :  ( i )  Das 
Lutherdenkmal  zu  Worms  im  Lichte  der  Wahrheit  (Mainz,  1868,  2nd 
ed.,  1869) ;  (2)  RoUARD  DE  CARD,  H.  Savonarola  und  das  Lutherdenkmal 
zu  Worms  ins  Deutsche  iibersetzt.  (Berlin,  1868).  See  also  SiCKlNGER, 
Savonarola,  Eine  historische  Studie  (Wurzburg,  1877);  Frantz,  Sixtus 
IV.,  80  seq  ;  CiPOLLA,  760  ;  DiTTRlCH,  Contarini,  478  seq.  ;  Cantu, 
Eretici,  I.,  232,  and  Ital.  Ill,  III.,  bipseq.;  Capponi,  Gesch.  der  Florent. 
Republik,  II.,  229 ;  American  Catholic  Quarterly  Review,  XIV.  (1889), 
Zdseq.;  andHERGENROTHER,  VIII.,  335.  The  latter  says  of  him  :  "He 
certainly  was  not  a  formal  heretic  or  a  precursor  of  the  so-called  Re- 
formation, unless  the  mere  fact  of  being  in  opposition  to  Rome  is  enough 
to  constitute  him  such.  His  teaching  was  thoroughly  Catholic,  and,  with 
the  exception  of  a  few  which  have  been  put  into  the  Index,  his  writings 
have  held  their  ground  unquestioned  in  the  literature  of  the  Church." 
In  the  reaction  against  this  unhistorical  point  of  view,  a  Dominican,  E. 
Bayonne,  went  so  far  as  to  write  a  book  (Etude  sur  J.  Savonarola 
d'apres  des  nouveaux  documents,  Paris,  1879)  with  the  object  of  prepar- 
ing the  way  for  his  canonisation.  The  "  New  Documents "  have  been 
published  by  Gherardi,  but  contain  nothing  to  justify  such  a  proposal ; 
nor  can  the  reverence  and  esteem  entertained  for  him  by  S.  Philip  Neri 
and  S.  Cath.  Ricci  be  considered  enough  to  support  it.  The  legend  that 
Benedict  XIV.  "  inscribed  the  name  of  Savonarola  in  the  Catalogue  of 
the  saintly  and  blessed  seivants  of  God  "  is  entirely  false.  See  Grisar, 
in  the  Zeitschr.  fur  Kathol.  Theologie,  IV.,  392  seq.  Bayonne's  pretension 
is  in  contradiction  also  with  the  old  tradition  of  his  Order.  The  docu- 
ments in  Gherardi,  329  seq..^  shew  that  the  Dominican  Superiors  for  a 


CHARACTER   OF   SAVONAROLA.  53 

deplorable  corruption  of  morals  prevailed,  and  that  the 
secularisation  of  the  Papacy  in  Alexander  VI.  had  reached 
its  climax ;  but  in  his  burning  zeal  for  the  reformation  of 
morals  he  allowed  himself  to  be  carried  away  into  violent 
attacks  on  men  of  all  classes,  including  his  superiors,  and 
he  completely  forgot  that,  according  to  the  teaching  of  the 
Church,  an  evil  life  cannot  deprive  the  Pope  or  any  other 
ecclesiastical  authority  of  his  lawful  jurisdiction  He 
certainly  was  quite  sincere  in  his  belief  that  he  was  a 
prophet  and  had  a  Divine  mission,  but  it  soon  became 
evident  that  the  spirit  by  which  he  was  led  was  not  from 
above,  for  the  primary  proof  of  a  Divine  mission  is 
humble  submission  to  the  authority  which  God  Him- 
self has  ordained.  In  this,  Savonarola  was  wholly  wanting. 
"  He  thought  too  much  of  himself  and  rose  up  against  a 
power  which  no  one  can  attack  without  injuring  him- 
self     No  good  can  come  of  disobedience;  that  was  not 

whole  century  combated  the  tendency  to  the  veneration  of  Savonarola 
among  their  subjects,  and  that  it  was  forbidden  to  have  any  picture  of 
him,  or  even  to  mention  his  name.  See  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  p.  214,  on  a 
heretical  development  of  Savonarola's  tendencies.  It  is  well-known  that 
in  the  i6th  Century,  during  the  disturbances  of  1 527-1 530,  and  at  the 
time  of  the  opposition  to  the  Grand  Duke  Alessandro  Medici,  Savon- 
arola's views  and  methods  were  revived,  and  exercised  considerable  in- 
fluence. In  this  connection  it  is  useful  to  compare  Marchese,  Scritti, 
I.,  307  seq.^  with  the  documents  in  Gherardi,  loc.  cit  Reumont, 
III.,  I,  154,  thinks  that  there  has  been  some  exaggeration  in  the  descrip- 
tion and  estimation  of  Savonarola's  influence  on  the  Florentine  clergy  of 
that  time.  In  the  present  state  of  our  knowledge  this  question  cannot 
be  certainly  determined  ;  but  a  careful  investigation  of  the  subject  would 
be  very  valuable.  I  should  wish  to  draw  the  attention  of  any  one 
who  felt  disposed  to  undertake  this,  to  an  apparently  unprinted  paper 
written  on  the  7th  June,  1578,  at  Fiesole.  I  found  this  panegyric  of 
the  virtues  of  Savonarola  (with  the  text :  Credidi  propter  quod  locutus 
sum)  in  the  Varia  Polit.,  47,  f  447  seq.^  in  the  Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican, 


54  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

the   way   to   become   the    apostle   of    either    Florence   or 
Rome."  * 

*  Cardinal  Newman's  judgment  in  Weiss,  IV.,  246  (VII.  532,  ed.  3); 
cf.  Rohrbacher-Knopfler,  277.  Cesare  Balbo,  Storia  d'ltalia  (ediz. 
decima,  Firenze,  1856),  has  the  following  passage  (p.  276)  on  the  Friar 
of  San  Marco  :  Di  Savonarola  chi  fa  un  Santo,  chi  un  eresiarca  precursor 
di  Lutero,  chi  un  eroe  di  liberta.  Ma  son  sogni :  i  veri  Santi  non  si  ser- 
von  del  tempio  a  negozi  umani  ;  i  veri  eretici  non  muoion  nel  seno  della 
Chiesa,  come  mori,  benclie  perseguitato,  Savonarola  ;  e  i  veri  eroi  di 
libertk  sono  un  po'  piii  sodi,  non  si  perdono  in  chiasso  come  lui.  Fu  un 
entusiasto  di  bon  conto ;  e  che  sarebbe  forse  di  buon  pro,  se  si  fosse 
ecclesiasticamente  contentato  di  predicare  contro  alle  crescenti  corruttelle 
della  spensierata  Italia. 


CHAPTER  II. 

CiESAR  Borgia  resigns  the  Cardinalate,  and  becomes  Duke 
OF  Valentinois. — Change  in  the  Papal  Policy. — Alliance 
BETWEEN  Alexander  VI.  and  Louis  XII. 

Only  a  few  weeks  before  Savonarola's  execution  the 
Prince  on  whom  the  visionary  Dominican  had  hung  such 
strangely  baseless  hopes  for  the  reformation  of  the  Church 
and  the  salvation  of  Italy,  had  passed  away.  Charles  VIII. 
died  suddenly  in  the  prime  of  life  on  the  7th  April,  1498.* 
He  was  succeeded  by  Louis  XII.  The  new  ruler  shewed 
at  once  what  Italy  had  to  expect  from  him  by  assuming 
not  only  the  title  of  King  of  Jerusalem  and  the  two  Sici- 
lies, but  also,  as  descendant  of  one  of  the  Visconti,  that  of 
Duke  of  Milan. 

These  pretensions  were  hailed  with  satisfaction  in  Flor- 
ence, and  still  more  so  in  Venice,  the  Republic  having 
fallen  out  with  Milan  about  Pisa.  Louis  lost  no  time  in 
securing  the  services  of  the  turbulent  Gian  Giacomo 
Trivulzio,-|-  and  Venice,  in  the  same  breath  with  her  con- 
gratulations on  his  accession,  proposed  an  alliance.  J     The 

*  On  Charles'  latest  project  and  his  promises  to  Alexander  VI.,  see 
Delaborde,  684. 

t  Sanuto,  I.,  963  ;  CiPOLLA,  761  ;  Balan,  386.  Cf.  Pelissier, 
La  politique  de  Trivulce  au  debut  du  r^gne  de  Louis  XII.  (Paris,  1894). 
Louis  XII.  sent  an  Envoy  to  Siena  to  induce  that  city  to  enter  into  an 
alliance  with  France  and  Venice.  See  Pelissier,  Lettre  de  Louis  XIL 
h.  la  Seigneurie  de  Sienne.     Siena,  1894. 

X  RoMANiN,  v.,  I0I-I02  ;  Sanuto,  I.,  1012. 


56  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

French  King  had  announced  his  accession  to  the  Pope  in 
remarkably  friendly  terms.*  Alexander  hastened,  on  the 
4th  of  June,  to  respond  to  these  advances  by  sending  persons 
of  unusual  distinction,  the  Archbishop  John  of  Ragusa,  the 
protonotary  Adrian  of  Corneto,  and  Raimondo  Centelles, 
as  Envoys  to  France.f  They  were  charged,  first  of  all,  to 
congratulate  the  new  King  on  his  accession,  and  to  call  his 
attention  to  the  war  against  the  Turks  ;  in  the  next  place, 
they  were  to  say  that  the  Pope  would  investigate  certain 
claims  made  by  Louis  in  regard  to  the  Neapolitan  question ; 
and  to  warn  him  against  making  any  attack  upon  Milg.n. 
They  were  to  ask  him  to  endeavour  to  obtain  the  restitu- 
tion of  Pisa  and  Florence.  Finally,  they  were  to  require 
him  to  give  up  the  alliance  with  the  Orsini  and  Colonna, 
and  to  abstain  from  taking  the  banished  ex-Prefect  of 
Rome,  Giovanni  della  Rovere,  under  his  protection.^  On 
the  14th  June  the  Envoys  were  again  desired  to  impress 
upon  the  King  that  nothing  must  be  done  against  Milan. § 

*  Cf.  Pelissier,  L'Alleanza,  310, 

t  Sanuto,  I.,  979  ;  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  II.,  474.  ^Letter  of 
Card.  A.  Sforza,  dat.  June  4,  Rome,  1498  :  Hoggi  N.  S.  ha  inviato  per 
soi  oratori  al  ser™o  Re  de  Franza  el  rev.  Arcivescovo  de  Ragusa,  M. 
Hadriano  da  Corneto  prothonotario  et  secretario  de  S.  S'a  et  M. 
Santigles  Spagnolo  prothonotario  antique  servitore  de  Sua  B"^  State 
Archives,  Milan. 

X  The  Instruction  is  to  be  found  in  Maulde,  Proced.  Polit,  1106  seq., 
taken  from  Cod.  XXXIII.,  170  f.,  41 1^,  of  the  Bibl.  Barberini ;  and  in 
Thuasne,  II.,  673  seq.^  printed  from  a  MS.  in  the  Papal  Archives. 
Maulde  and  Thuasne,  however,  and  also  Gregorovius,  VII.,  409,  ed.  3 
(ed.  4,  415),  are  not  aware  that  this  document  had  been  published  long 
ago  by  Ferri  (Comment,  de  rebus  gestis  Hadriani  Castelli.  Faventiae, 
1771  M.  X.).  Cf.  Gebhardt,  Adrian,  9,  where  the  reference  to  SlGlS- 
MONDO  de'  Conti,  II.,  200,  is  wanting.  On  R.  Centelles,  see  Dal  Re, 
136  seq.  ;  and  on  the  journey  of  the  Envoys  and  their  arrival  in  the 
French  Court,  Pelissier,  L'Alleanza,  323  seq. 

§  Alex.  VI.  ven  fratri  Jo.  Archiepisc.  Ragusin  ac  dil.  filiis  Hadriano 


ALEXANDER'S    RELATIONS   WITH   LOUIS   XIT.  57 

About  the  same  time  an  Envoy  from  Louis  XII.  ap- 
peared in  Rome,  asking  for  the  dissolution  of  his  marriage 
with  his  consort  Jeanne,  to  which  he  had  been  con- 
strained in  earh'er  days  by  Louis  XL  The  King  swore 
that  he  had  never  consummated  the  marriage.  The  Pope, 
on  the  29th  July,  1498,  appointed  a  judicial  commission  to 
examine  into  the  case,  and  in  December  they  decided  in 
favour  of  the  dissolution.  On  the  13th  of  September  Alex- 
ander had  already  granted  a  dispensation  to  Louis  to  con- 
tract a  fresh  marriage  with  Anne  of  Brittany,  the  widow  of 
his  predecessor,  stipulating  at  the  same  time  that  something 
was  to  be  done  for  his  beloved  Caesar.*  The  advances  made 
to  France,  formerly  so  energetically  repelled,  though  only 
begun  in  June,  soon  developed  into  a  firm  friendship.  Many 
causes,  besides  those  already  mentioned,  conduced  to  this 
result,  and  especially  the  conduct  of  Naples. 

Ever  since  the  Autumn  of  1497  Caesar  Borgia,  who  was 
only  in  minor  orders,  had  been  seeking  to  return  to  the 
secular  state,f  to  obtain  a  principality,  and  to  marry  a 
Princess.  The  Pope  at  first  seems  to  have  been  averse  to 
these  projects  ;  but  Caesar  had  little  difficulty  in  overcoming 
this  feeling,  and  Alexander's  ambition  began  forthwith  to 

Castellen.  cam.  ap.  clerico  et  secret,  nostro  et  Raymundo  Centell  thesaur. 
Perusin.  protonotariis,  oratoribus  nostris.  Dat.  Rom.,  1498,  Juni  14, 
Ao  6°.     State  Archives,  Milan. 

*  SaNUTO,  I.,  ()q?>seq.,  1019,  1030,  1047.  C/iBALAN,  387  ;  GUETT^E, 
VIII.,  83  seq.  ;  Pelissier,  L'Alleanza,  335  seq. ;  and,  especially, 
Maulde,  Proced.  Polit.,  789  seq.,  812  seq.,  945  seq. 

t  Cf.  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  p.  519  ;  the  Ferrarese  Despatch  in  Balan, 
376  ;  and  the  *Report  (in  cypher)  of  A.  Sforza,  dat.  Rome,  1497,  Aug.  20  : 
"  Questi  di  passati  e  stato  rasonato  di  fare  il  carle  de  Valenza  seculare  et 
darli  la  principessa  de  Squillace  per  mogliere  col  stato  chel  principe  ha 
nel  reame  il  qual  per  quello  se  intende  non  ha  fin  qui  tocato  camalmente 
la  principessa  et  in  questo  caso  si  dariano  ad  epso  principe  li  beneficii  del 
pto  car'e."     Milanese  State  Archives, 


58  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

busy  itself  with  a  plan  for  obtaining  the  throne  of  Naples  for 
the  house  of  Borgia  by  means  of  an  Aragonese  alliance.* 

Caesar  was  to  marry  Carlotta,  the  daughter  of  the  Neapoli- 
tan King,  and  receive  the  principality  of  Tarento.  The 
Mantuan  Envoy  states  expressly  that  this  was  the  Pope's 
real  object  in  bringing  about  the  marriage  between 
Lucrezia  and  Alfonso,  the  natural  son  of  Alfonso  II,,  and 
now  Prince  of  Bisceglia  and  Quadrata.-f  On  the  15th  July 
Alfonso  came  incognito  to  Rome,  and  was  cordially  re- 
ceived by  Alexander  and  Caesar.|  On  the  21st  the 
marriage  itself  took  place  very  quietly,  but  was  celebrated 
on  the  following  days  with  great  festivities,  in  which  Alex- 
ander took  part  with  boyish  gaiety.  On  this  occasion  a 
sharp  encounter  took  place  between  Caesar's  retainers  and 
those  of  the  Duchess,  not  a  good  omen  for  the  future. 
Alfonso's  good  looks  are  much  vaunted  by  one  of  the 
chroniclers,  and  this  marriage  of  Lucrezia's  was  a  happy 
one.§  On  the  other  hand,  Caesar's  alliance  with  Carlotta, 
who  had  been  brought  up  at  the  French  Court,  fell  through. 
She  herself  refused,  and  her  father  was  even  more  opposed 
to  it  than  she  was.  On  the  24th  July,  writing  to  Gonsalvo 
de  Cordova,  he  said  that  the  Pope  was  insatiable,  and  that 

*  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  319-320  ;  Sanuto,  II.,  250.  Cassar's  famous 
sword  (now  in  the  possession  of  the  Duke  of  Sermoneta)  bears  witness 
to  his  plans  and  aspirations.  The  engraved  designs  with  which  it  is 
covered  contain  many  plays  upon  his  name  with  appropriate  mottoes,  e.g.. 
Cum  numine  Cesaris  omen.  It  was  first  described  by  Ademollo,  and  later 
with  admirable  illustrations  by  Yriarte,  Autour  des  Borgia,  143  seq. 

t  See  Appendix  N.  3,  *Despatch  from  G.  L.  Cataneo,  8th  Aug.,  1498. 
Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

X  See  Appendix  N.  i  and  2,  ^Letters  from  A.  Sforza  of  15th  and  17th 
July,  1498.     Milanese  State  Archives. 

§  Cf.  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  II.,  493  seq.  ;  Sanuto,  I.,  1030,  1042  ; 
and  in  Appendix  N.  3,  Cataneo's  *Despatch  of  8th  Aug.,  1498,  with 
Gregorovius,  Lucrezia  Borgia,  104  seq. 


LEAGUE   OF   THE   ORSINI   AND   COLONNA.  59 

he  would  rather  lose  both  his  kingdom  and  his  life  than 
consent  to  this  marriage.  In  this  remarkable  letter  the 
King  confesses  the  extreme  weakness  of  his  Government.* 
The  Pope  was  perfectly  aware  of  all  this,  and  the  know- 
ledge made  him  still  more  desirous  of  entering  into  closer 
relations  with  the  growing  power  of  France.  Yet  another 
motive  was  added  by  the  conflict  between  the  Orsini  and 
Colonna,  which  had  broken  out  afresh.  The  Orsini,  in  spite 
of  their  union  with  the  Conti,  were  completely  defeated  at 
Palombara  on  the  12th  April,  I498.-|-  The  Pope's  efforts 
to  bring  about  even  a  truce  between  the  contending  parties 
were  unsuccessful. :|:  It  seemed  as  if  both  sides  were  bent 
on  continuing  the  contest  until  one  or  other  was  destroyed, 
when  suddenly,  on  8th  July,  they  came  to  an  agreement 
to  place  the  decision  in  regard  to  Tagliacozzo  and  Alba  in 
the  hands  of  King  Frederick  of  Naples.  §  This  mysterious 
reconciliation  meant  a  combination  against  the  Pope.  In 
his  own  palace,  one  day,  a  set  of  verses  were  put  up,  urging 
the  Colonna  and  Orsini  to  come  forward  bravely  to  the 
rescue  of  their  afflicted  country;  to  slay  the  bull  (a  play 
upon  the  Borgia  arms)  which  was  devastating  Ausonia ;  to 
fling  his  calves  into  the  raging  Tiber,  and  himself  into  hell.|| 

*  Arch.  St.  Ital.,  XV.,  235  seq.  Cf.  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  79  ;  Sanuto, 
I.,  988  ;  and  Pelissier,  L'Alleanza,  307  seq. 

t  Sanuto,  I.,  940,  965,  988,  998,  and  1007  ;  Sigismondo  de'  Conti, 
II.,  175  seq.  ;  and  the  Report  in  Balan,  373  seq..,  376. 

X  *Letter  from  A.  Sforza,  Rome,  2nd  May,  1498.  Milanese  State 
Archives. 

§  *Heri  che  fu  alii  8  e  stata  conclusa  la  pace  tra  S^  Colonesi  et 
Ursini  comprendendosi  in  epsa  li  Savelli  et  Conteschi.  Letter  from  A. 
Sforza,  Rome,  9th  July,  1498.  (Milanese  State  Archives.)  See  Sanuto, 
I.,  1014,  1015  ;  Gregorovius,  VII.,  409  seq.,  ed.  3  (415  ed.  4) ;  and 
Balan,  377.  On  3rd  Feb.,  1499,  Frederick  awarded  Tagliacozzo,  Alba, 
and  Carsoli  to  the  Colonna.     See  Coppi,  Mem.  Colonn.,  236. 

II  Malipiero,  508,  says  these  verses  were  affixed  to  the  door  of  the 


6o  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Alexander  VI.  and  Caesar  meanwhile  had  succeeded  in 
obtaining  what  they  wanted,*  and  on  the  17th  of  August 
Caesar  resigned  his  Red-hat  with  the  consent  of  all  the  Car- 
dinals.-]- Sigismondo  de'  Conti  calls  this  a  new  and  un- 
heard of  proceeding ;  but  at  the  same  time  dwells  on  the 
fact  that  Caesar  was  naturally  a  warrior,  and  unsuited  for 
the  priesthood.  Sanuto,  in  his  Diary,  is  much  more  severe 
in  his  judgment.  He  says :  "  When  Cardinal  Ardicino 
della  Porta  wished  to  resign  the  Cardinalate  in  order  to 
become  a  monk,  many  in  the  Consistory  were  against  it, 
while  all  gave  their  consent  to  Caesar's  plan ;  but  now  in 
God's  Church  everything  is  topsy-turvy."  |  The  disposal 
of  Caesar's  benefices,  which  were  worth  32,000  ducats,  was 
left  with  the  Pope,  who  later  gave  the  Archbishopric  of 
Valencia  to  Cardinal  Juan  Borgia.  § 

On  this  same  17th  August  the  French  King's  Envoy, 
Louis  de  Villeneuve,  arrived  in  Rome  in  order  to 
accompany  Caesar  to  France.  The  preparations  for  the 
journey  took  so  long  that  they  did  not  start  until  the  ist 
of  October.ll     A  few  days  earlier  Alexander  addressed  an 

Libraria  del  Papa  ;  Sanuto,  whose  version  is  a  little  different  (I.,  1016, 
1017),  that  they  were  found  :  in  su  una  collona  nel  palazo  dil  papa. 

*  In  the  postscript  of  a  *Letter  from  Card.  A.  Sforza  to  his  brother  in 
July,  1498,  we  read:  Come  piu  volte  ho  scripto  alia  Ex.  V.  io  extimo  che 
N.  S.  non  sia  per  riposare  fin  che  non  habia  dato  assetto  alle  cose  del 
rev.  card,  de  Valenza.     Milanese  State  Archives. 

t  Gregorovius,  VII.,  412,  ed.  3  (418,  ed.  4) ;  Cipolla,  764  ;  Reu- 
MONT,  III.,  1, 228;  and  Balan,  388,  give  a  wrong  date — 13th  Aug.  That 
in  the  text  is  the  date  in  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  II.,  492. 

X  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  II.,  201 ;  Sanuto,  I.,  1054.  Cf.  also 
Diario  Ferrarese,  390  ;  Notar  Giacomo,  225  ;  Carpesanus,  lib. 
III.,  6  ;  and  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1492,  n.  34,  in  connection  with  Mansi's 
note. 

§  Sanuto,  I.,  mo ;  II.,  67,  629  ;  and  *Acta  Consist,  C.  303,  f.  8. 
Consistorial  Archives. 

II  Burchardi   Diarium,  II.,  493  ;    PeliSSIER,  344  (of  course  it  is 


C^SAR   BORGIA   SETS   OUT   FOR   FRANCE.  6l 

autograph  letter  to  Louis  XII.,  in  which  he  commended 
Caesar  to  him  as  one  who  was  more  dear  to  him  than 
anything  else  on  earth.  *  In  this  Brief  Caesar  is  called 
Duke  of  Valentinois  ;  thus  this  principality  must  have  been 
already  bestowed  upon  him,  although  the  formal  investiture 
did  not  take  place  till  later.-j-  It  is  a  curious  coincidence 
that  the  former  Archbishop  of  Valencia  should  have 
become  Duke  of  Valentinois,  so  that  he  still  retained  the 
appellation  Valentinus,  which  could  stand  for  either. 

The  new  Duke  set  forth  on  his  journey  in  royal  state ; 
100,000  ducats  were  said  to  have  been  spent  on  his  outfit. 
He  was  clad  in  silk  and  velvet  and  bedizened  with  gold 
and  jewels.  The  equipment  of  his  suite  corresponded 
with  his  own.  The  trappings  of  his  horses  were  mounted 
in  silver,  and  their  saddle-cloths  were  embroidered  with 
costly  pearls.  I  French  galleys  were  waiting  for  him  at 
Civita  Vecchia.  On  the  3rd  of  October  he  embarked  for 
Marseilles,  where  on  the  19th  he  was  received  with  royal 
honours.  §  In  Avignon,  Cardinal  Giuliano  della  Rovere, 
who  was  now  completely  reconciled  with  the  Pope,  and 
in  August  had  been  reinstated  in  Ostia,  also  gave  him  a 
splendid    reception.  i|      Slowly,  and  with  great  pomp,  the 

Oct.  I  instead  of  Nov.  i);  *Acta  Consist,  Oct.  i,  1498,  in  the  Con- 
sistorial  Archives.  *Exitus,  531,  f.  151  :  28th  Sept.,  1498,  Joh.  Cardona 
missus  in  Franciam  cum  card'i  Valent.  with  9  armigeris  and  several 
comestabiles.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

*  Brief  of  28th  Sept.,  1498,  in  MOLINI,  I. ,28,  and  also  in  Pelissier,  344. 

t  See  SanuTO,  I.,  1095  ;  II.,  154. 

X  Sanuto,  I.,  iiii;  II.,  15,  320;  Branca  de  Telini  in  GORi, 
Arch.,  II.,  113  seg^.;  Cambi,  XXL,  135;  Yriarte,  Cesar  Borgia,  I.,  157 
seg.;  Havemann,  II.,  3  seg. 

§  Sanuto,  IT.,  25  ;  Pelissier,  345. 

II  C/.  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  p.  502,  on  Alexander's  reconciliation  with 
Giuliano.  See  further,  Gregorovius,  VII.,  421,  ed.  4  ;  Brosch,  Julius 
II.,  79;  Creighton,  III.,  265.    See  also  Sanuto,  I.,  1091  ;  II.,  158; 


62  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

proud  Duke  pursued  his  journey  through  Lyons  to  the 
Royal  camp,  which  was  then  at  Chinon.  On  the  19th  of 
December  (according  to  other  accounts,  the  20th)  he  made 
his  entry  there  with  a  splendour  hitherto  unknown  in 
France.  He  brought  to  the  King  the  Bull  of  dispensation 
for  his  marriage,  and  a  Red-hat  to  the  Archbishop  of  Rouen, 
George  d'Amboise.  At  this  time  Louis  spoke  openly  of 
his  designs  on  Milan,  in  which  he  expected  the  Pope's 
support.* 

The  closer  relations  with  France  caused  a  breach 
between  the  Pope  and  Ascanio  Sforza  and  Lodovico  Moro. 
As  early  as  September,  1498,  we  find  this  mentioned  in  the 
Envoy's  reports.  The  Colonna  and  Frederick  of  Naples 
were  on  the  side  of  Ascanio  Sforza.  Their  attitude  was 
so  menacing  that  on  All  Saints'  Day  the  Pope  appeared 
in  the  Church  with  a  strong  guard  ;  and  later  this  occurred 
again  several  times.-j- 

Even  when  the  Portuguese  Envoys,  on  27th  November, 
came  for  their  audience,  they  found  a  large  guard  in  the 
ante-chamber.  If,  as  many  thought,  this  was  intended  to 
overawe  the  Envoys,  it  quite  failed  in  its  effect.     On  the 

and  SiGlSMONDO  de'  CONTi,  II.,  201  ;  and  on  the  festivities  at  Avignon, 
G.  Bayle's  paper  in  the  Mem.  de  I'Acad.  de  Vaucluse,  Vol.  7. 

*  Ferrato,  Entrata  del  Valentino  nel  1499  a  Cinone  (Venez.,  1868) ; 
Sanuto,  II.,  39,  175,  317,  320,  347  seq.^  367-368  ;  SiGISMONDO  DE 
CONTi,  loc.  cit.;  MuNTZ,  Hist,  de  I'Art,  I.,  318.  On  the  dissolution  of 
LouisXII.'s  marriage, see Leonetti,  III. ,251 ;  Cipolla,  764 ;  andEHSES, 
Documente  zur  Gescht.  der  Ehescheidung  Heinrichs  VIII.,  56,  note  i. 
Panvinius,  334,  and  Cardella,  275,  erroneously  place  d'Amboise's 
nomination  on  the  12th  of  September.  See,  against  this,  Burchardi 
Diarium,  II.,  516,  and  *Acta  Consist.,  where  the  17th  September  is  dis- 
tinctly mentioned  as  the  day  of  nomination.  (Consistorial  Archives  of 
the  Vatican,  C.  2.)  Upon  d'Amboise,  see  NOVAES,  VI.,  100  ;  Migne, 
s.  v.;  and  DE  Montbard'S  work,  Le  Card.  G.  d'Amboise,  Ministre  de 
Louis  XII.     Limoges,  1879. 

t  Sanuto,  I.,  11 11  ;  II.,  102,  113,  186.    Cf.  Pelissier,  353  seq. 


THE   PORTUGUESE   ENVOYS   IN    ROME.  6^ 

contrary,  they  remonstrated  in  unspalring  terms  with 
Alexander  on  his  nepotism,  his  simony,  and  his  French 
policy,  which,  they  said,  endangered  the  peace  of  Italy, 
and,  indeed,  of  the  whole  of  Christendom.  If  the  Pope 
persevered  in  this  they  openly  threatened  a  Council.  "  The 
demeanour  of  the  Portuguese  Envoys,"  Ascanio  Sforza 
wrote  on  3rd  December,  "is  all  the  more  unpleasant  to  the 
Pope  in  that  he  believes  their  Spanish  Majesties  to  be  at 
the  bottom  of  it,  and  that  the  Spanish  Envoys,  who  are 
daily  expected,  will  say  the  same  things,  or  worse.  He 
thinks  the  King  of  the  Romans  also  has  a  hand  in  it,  as 
he  has  made  similar  representations."  *  Under  these 
circumstances  Alexander  VI.  awaited  with  keen  anxiety 
the  announcement  from  France,  which,  he  hoped,  would 
bring  the  assurance  of  the  French  alliance,  -f 

In  the  Consistory,  in  December,  the  Pope  and  Ascanio 
Sforza  came  to  a  sharp  passage  of  words.  The  testy 
Cardinal  declared  that  Alexander,  in  sending  Csesar  to 
France,  was  bringing  ruin  on  Italy.  "  Are  you  aware, 
Monsignore,"  replied  Alexander,  "  that  it  was  your  brother 
who  invited  the  French  into  Italy  ?  "  The  Venetian  Envoy, 
who  reports  this  incident,  adds  that  Ascanio  intended, 
with  the  help  of  Maximilian  I.  and  King  Ferdinand  of 
Spain,  to  get  a  Council  summoned  to  dethrone  Alexander. 
We  can  understand  with  what  misgivings  the  advent  of 
the  Spanish  Envoys  was  awaited.  I 

They  arrived  on  the  19th  December.  On  the  same  day 
Cardinal  Borgia  started  for  Viterbo,  in  order  to  quell  the 

*  Report  in  cypher  from  Card.  A.  Sforza  of  3rd  Dec,  1498,  taken 
from  the  original  in  the  Milanese  Archives,  now  printed  in  the  Bollet. 
St.  d.  Suizz.  Ital.,  VII.,  202-204. 

t  Sanuto,  II.,  157,  249. 

:J:  Sanuto,  II.,  217,  250.  C/.  Lanz,  Actenstiicke  zur  Gesch.  Karls  V., 
Einleitung,  47. 


64  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

disturbances  which  had  broken  out  there.*  Three  days 
later  they  appeared  before  the  Pope  with  that  display  of 
anxious  concern  for  the  welfare  of  the  Church  which 
Ferdinand's  successors  were  so  apt  at  employ ing,f  while, 
in  fact,  their  aims  were  entirely  political.  Ferdinand  of 
Spain  dreaded,  above  all  things,  an  alliance  between  Rome 
and  Louis  XII.,  which  would  give  to  France  the  pre- 
dominance in  Italy,  and  frustrate  all  his  designs  in  regard 
to  Naples.  Consequently,  he  had  charged  his  Envoys  to 
threaten  Alexander  with  a  Council  and  reform.  They  began 
by  telling  the  Pope  to  his  face  that  the  means  by  which 
he  had  obtained  the  Pontificate  were  notorious.  Alex- 
ander interrupted  them  with  the  remark  that,  having  been 
unanimously  elected  Pope,  his  title  was  a  far  better  one  than 
that  of  their  Spanish  Majesties,  who  had  taken  possession 
of  their  throne  in  defiance  of  all  law  and  conscience.  They 
were  mere  usurpers,  and  had  no  right  whatever  to  their 
kingdom.  The  rest  of  the  audience  corresponded  with  this 
beginning.  The  Envoys  reproached  Alexander  with  his 
simony  and  his  nepotism,  and  threatened  a  Council.  The 
Pope  justified  himself,  and  accused  the  Spanish  Ambassador, 
Garcilasso  de  la  Vega,  of  concocting  false  reports.  When 
the  Envoys  spoke  of  the  death  of  the  Duke  of  Gandia  as 
a  Divine  chastisement,  he  angrily  replied  that  the  Spanish 
monarchs  were  more  severely  punished  than  he  was,  for 
they  were  without  direct  successors,  and  this  was  doubtless 
on  account  of  their  encroachments  on  the  rights  of  the 
Church.  I 

*  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  II.,  500,  and  *Acta  Consist.,  C.  303,  f.  g  seq. 
Consistorial  Archives. 

t  Havemann,  II.,  15. 

X  Sanuto,  II.,  279  ;  cf.  836,  and  ZuRiTA,  V.,  i59''-i6o.  Cf.  Hofler, 
Rodrigo  de  Borja,  83;  Wiffen,  Life  of  Juan  Valdes,  25  (18S5); 
Maurenbrecher,  Kathol.  Ref ,  379. 


SPAIN  AND  PORTUGAL  THREATEN  THE  POPE.    65 

Louis  XII.  endeavoured  to  tranquillise  the  Pope  by 
informing  him  that  he  had  an  agreement  with  Ferdinand, 
and  consequently  there  was  nothing  to  fear  from  him* 
Meanwhile,  Alexander  became  more  and  more  disturbed, 
as  he  found  the  Portuguese  and  Spanish  Envoys  making 
common  cause  and  combining  to  threaten  him  with  a 
Council.f  In  January  1499,  the  Ambassadors  of  Portugal 
and  Spain  presented  themselves  together  before  the  Pope. 
In  presence  of  Cardinals  Costa,  Ascanio,  Carvajal,  de  S. 
Giorgio,  and  Lopez,  one  of  the  Envoys  told  the  Pope 
to  his  face,  that  he  was  not  the  lawful  Head  of  the  Church. 
Alexander  in  his  anger  threatened  to  have  him  thrown  into 
the  Tiber,  and  retorted  by  attacking  the  conduct  of  the 
Queen  of  Spain,  and  complaining  of  the  interference  of  both 
King  and  Queen  in  matters  concerning  the  Church.  The 
Venetian  Ambassador  thought  he  perceived  that  the  Pope, 
in  his  alarm,  was  beginning  to  repent  of  his  alliance  with 
France  and  to  wish  to  be  friends  again  with  Ascanio.:j:  To 
add  to  his  annoyance,  news  came  from  France  that,  in  spite 
of  all  Giuliano  della  Rovere's  persuasions,  the  daughter 
of  the  King  of  Naples  persisted  in  her  refusal    to   marry 

*  Sanuto,  II.,  280(9^  Prescott,  II.,  219),  and  *Acta  Consist.,  C. 
303  :  9th  Jan.,  1499  .  .  .  Per  rev.  D.  Sanseverinat.  lecte  sunt  littere 
Christ.  Francor.  regis  ad  s.  Collegiam  idiomate  Galileo  date  ex  oppido 
Chinon  XX.  Decemb.  1498  quibus  significabat  se  de  present  ietiam  ad 
S.  D.  N.  scripsisse.  (Consistorial  Archives.)  An  account,  written  by 
Mattia  del  Canale  on  3rd  Jan.,  1499,  of  Alexander's  interests  in  the 
Carnival  festivities  in  Ademollo,  Alessandro  VI.,  24,  curiously  illustrates 
the  frivolity  of  his  nature.  The  Ferrarese  Envoy,  Manfredi,on  8th  Jan., 
1499,  reports  :  *Le  oratori  spagnoh  tengono  et  prefato  N.  S.  multo 
svegliato  et  tocco  suso  el  vivo.     State  Archives,  Modena. 

t  Sanuto,  II.,  343. 

X  Sanuto,  IL,  385  ;  cf.  343,  and  Burchardi  Diarium,  II.,  506-507. 
See  also  Zurita,  V.,  160,  and  S.  Pinzoni's  *Despatch  of  ist  Jan.,  1499. 
State  Archives,  Modena. 

VOL.   VI.  F 


66  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Caesar.*  Alexander  laid  the  blame  of  this  on  Louis  XII. 
In  a  letter  of  4th  February,  1499,  to  Giuliano  della  Rovere, 
he  complained  of  the  King's  faithlessness,  which  had  made 
him  the  laughing-stock  of  the  world ;  as  every  one  knew 
that,  but  for  this  marriage,  Caesar  would  never  have  gone  to 
France.-f-  On  the  1 3th  of  February  he  spoke  in  a  similar 
strain  to  Ascanio,  and  begged  him  to  endeavour  to  persuade 
the  King  of  Naples  to  agree  to  the  marriage.  Ascanio, 
however,  replied  that  this  was  impossible.  The  Cardinal 
thought  that  the  Pope  was  very  much  afraid  of  Spain  and 
thoroughly  mistrustful  of  France.j  Just  at  this  time  Louis 
XII.  concluded  his  treaty  with  Venice  for  the  partition  of 
Milan,  leaving  it  open  to  the  Pope  to  join  in  the  League 
if  he  pleased.!  -^^  ^^^^  juncture  it  seemed  extremely  un- 
likely that  this  would  take  place.  ||  If  Caesar  had  not  been 
in  France,  the  Venetian  Envoy,  in  a  report  of  12th  March, 
says  he  believes  that  Alexander  would  have  allied  himself 

*  Sanuto,  II.,  412,  where,  however,  the  date  should  be  the  19th 
instead  of  the  i8th  Jan.  Giuliano's  letter  was  discovered  by  Brosch, 
Julius  II.,  79.     Cf.  also  Pelissier,  369  seg. 

f  Gregorovius,  VIL,  416-417,  ed.  3  (423,  ed.  4), 

t  Notizenblatt(i856),  p.  587. 

§  In  regard  to  the  League  of  9th  Feb.,  1499,  which  was  published  in 
Blois  on  the  1 5th  April,  and  Giuliano  della  Rovere's  part  in  it,  see  Brosch, 
Julius  II.,  80.  In  the  *Acta  Consist.,  C.  303,  we  find  (f.  36),  Feb.  27, 
1499  :  S.  D.  N.  legit  litteras  rev.  d.  S.  Petri  ad  Vine,  quemadmodum 
Veneti  die  9  Febr.  confederati  forent  cum  rege  christ.  dixitque  etiam 
oratorem  Venetum  hac  de  re  litteras  habuisse  ac  locum  Sue  S''  reser- 
vatum  esse.     Consistorial  Archives. 

II  Giuliano  della  Rovere  was  the  person  counted  on  to  bring  the  Pope 
round.  In  the  ^Report  of  an  anonymous  person,  dat.  Lyons,  28  Mar., 
1499,  we  find  the  following  passage  on  Giuliano's  journey,  which  may 
serve  to  fill  up  the  gap  in  Brosch's  Julius  II.,  80  :  Ali  xxiv.  de  questo 
arrivo  qua  lo  card,  de  S.  Petro.  Yesterday  he  went  on  to  Avignon  : 
se  stima  vulgarmente  per  tirar  el  papa  in  la  liga.  State  Archives, 
Modena. 


CRITICAL   POSITION    OF   ALEXANDER   VI.  6^ 

with  Milan.*  Perhaps  that  was  too  much,  but  it  is  certain 
that  at  that  time  Alexander  was  extremely  dissatisfied  with 
France,  and  was  still  in  the  same  mood  when  Louis  XII. 
offered  the  hand  of  the  charming  Charlotte  d'Albret  to 
Caesar.-j- 

Alexander's  position  was  an  extremely  critical  one.  In 
Rome,  the  probability  that  Germany  and  Spain  would 
renounce  their  obedience  was  freely  discussed.  J  There  can 
be  no  doubt  that  in  both  these  countries  there  was  a  strong 
party  hostile  to  Rome.  This  explains  why  Christopher 
Columbus,  when  on  26th  February,  1498,  he  settled  his 
estate  upon  his  son  Diego,  commanded  him  to  employ  his 
wealth  in  the  support  of  a  crusade,  "or  in  assisting  the 
Pope  if  a  schism  in  the  Church  should  threaten  to  deprive 
him  of  his  seat  or  of  his  temporal  possessions."  §  The 
danger  from  Spain  was  pressing.  In  order  to  remove  at 
least  one  of  that  country's  grounds  of  complaint,  Alex- 
ander resolved,  on  the  20th  of  March,  1499,  to  take  Bene- 
vento  away  from  the  heirs  of  the  Duke  of  Gandia  and 
restore  it  to  the  Church.  ||     In  May,  Alexander  promised  to 

*  Sanuto,  IL,  530.  The  following  note  in  the  *Acta  Consist.,  C. 
303,  8  Aprilis,  1499,  '^  interesting  :  Cum  ego  vicecancellarius  dixissem 
oratorem  ill.  ducis  Mediolani  ad  S.  D.  N.  hodie  ingressurum  esse  in 
urbem,  statuerunt  rev.  d.  cardinales  cum  honore  suscipiendum  esse 
licet  fuerit  dictum  consuetudinem  fuisse  non  mittere  obviam  oratoribus 
praeterquam  venientibus  ad  praestandam  pontifici  obedientiam.  Con- 
sistorial  Archives. 

t  Sanuto,  II.,  562,  617,  640. 

X  The  Ferrarese  Envoy,  Manfredi,  in  a  *Report,  dat.  Rome,  ist  March, 
1499,  announces  :  La  obedientia  si  e  levata  al  papa  in  le  terre  del 
imperatore ;  el  simile  seguira  in  Spagna  secundo  il  commune  credere. 
State  Archives,  Modena. 

§  Navarrete,  Colecion,  II.,  260.  Cf.  Bundgens,  Was  verdankt 
die  Lander-  und  Volkerkunde  den  mittelalterlichen  Monchen  und 
Missionaren  ?  p.  49.     Frankfort,  1889. 

II  *Acta  Consist.,  C.  303,  f.  46.     Consistorial  Archives  in  the  Vatican. 


68  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

send  his  children  away  from  Rome  and  to  carry  some 
reforms  into  effect ;  he  granted  powers  for  the  adjustment 
of  ecclesiastical  affairs  in  Spain,  and  made  large  concessions 
to  the  King  and  Queen  in  regard  to  their  control.  In  con- 
sequence, his  relations  with  Spain  became  more  friendly.* 

Alexander  had  nearly  given  up  all  hope  of  the  realisa- 
tion of  Caesar's  marriage  with  the  French  Princess,^  when 
an  autograph  letter  from  Louis  arrived  announcing  that 
it  had  taken  place.  On  the  24th  of  May  Cardinal  San- 
severino  read  the  letter  in  the  Consistory.  I  This  event 
created  a  complete  revolution  in  the  Pope's  dispositions ; 
he  now  openly  embraced  the  French  side  and  that  of 
Venice,  and  announced  that  the  Milanese  dynasty  must  be 
done  away  with.§  Cardinal  Ascanio  Sforza  saw  that  Rome 
was  no  longer  the  place  for  him  ;  on  the  14th  July  he  quitted 

BURCHARDI  Diarium,  II.,  387;  Sanuto,  II.,  562  ;  and  *Despatch 
from  Manfredi,  Rome,  23rd  March,  1499.     State  Archives,  Modena. 

*  C/.  the  Ambassadorial  Report  of  29th  May,  1499,  in  the  Notizenblatt 
of  1856,  p.  593  seg.  (not  correctly  printed),  and  Prescott,  II.,  221  ;  see 
here,  p.  201,  for  Alexander's  Bull  of  1 6th  Nov.,  1501,  empowering  the 
Spanish  Government  to  levy  all  tithes  in  the  Colonies. 

t  See  the  Ambassadorial  Report,  Notizenblatt  (1856),  p.  592. 

X  *Per  eund.  r.  d.  Sanseverinatem  lecte  fuerunt  in  Sacro  consistorio 
littere  eiusdem  christ^i  regis  sua  manu  Gallico  idiomate  ad  S.  D.  N. 
scripte  in  monticulis  Blesis  die  XIII.  Maii  1499  de  matrimonio  scilicet 
inter  D.  Cesarem  Borgiam  et  dominam  Carolam  de  Labreto  die  X. 
Maii  contracto  ac  XI 1.  consumato.  Lecte  fuerunt  et  in  s.  consistorio 
littere  ipsius  dominae  de  Labreto  sua  manu  ad  S.  D.  N.  sine  uUa 
data  exarate  in  quibus  cum  placuisset  christn^o  regi  et  ill.  genitori  suo  ut 
domino  Cesari  Borgiae  nuptui  traderetur  sibi  quoque  talem  virum 
placuisse  ferebit  futurumque  perpetuo  gratum  atque  jocundum  sperare 
et  se  bonam  filiam  fore  semper  venturamque  brevi  ad  osculandum  pedes 
Se  Bnis  polliceri.  Acta  Consist.,  C.  303,  f.  54.  (Consistorial  Archives.) 
Cf.  *Letter  from  A.  Sforza,  dat.  Rome,  i8th  May,  1499.  (Milanese  State 
Archives.)  Burchardi  Diarium,  II.,  532;  Sanuto,  II.,  759;  and 
Yriarte,  Cdsar  Borgia,  I.,  168  segf.  ;  II.,  324  seq. 

§  Sanuto,  II.,  799,  826,  923,  958,  and  Notizenblatt  (1857),  p.  7. 


ASCANIO   SFORZA   LEAVES  ROME.  69 

the  city,  taking  all  he  had  with  him.  In  the  first  instance 
he  went  to  the  Colonna  at  Narni,  and  thence  sailed  in 
a  Neapolitan  ship  to  Genoa,  whence  he  fled  to  Milan. 
Thither  he  was  afterwards  followed  by  the  Cardinals 
Colonna  and  Sanseverino,*  and  Alfonso,  Lucrezia's  husband. 
Lucrezia  was,  on  the  8th  August,  made  Regent  of  Spoleto, 
and  went  there  at  once,  accompanied  by  her  brother  Jofre. 
Alexander's  children  had  all  now  been  removed  from 
Rome;-f  but  this  had  no  effect  on  his  nepotism.  Nepi  was 
soon  bestowed  upon  Lucrezia,  and  the  governor  left  there 
by  Ascanio  Sforza  had  to  hand  it  over; J  meanwhile,  the 
plans  for  Caesar's  advancement  were  maturing. 

*  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  II.,  546,  549;  Sanuto,  II.,  933,958,959, 
1017.  See  in  the  Notizenblatt  (1857),  pp.  8-9,  Milanese  Report  and 
Letter  of  A.  Sforza. 

t  *Dice  el  papa  vole  monstrar  al  Re  chel  sa  viver  senza  li  soi.  Des- 
patch from  G.  L.  Cataneo,  dat.  Rome,  9th  August,  1499.  Gonzaga 
Archives,  Mantua. 

J  Gregorovius,  Lucrezia  Borgia,  108  seq.  Cf.  Dal  Re,  139,  and 
Sanuto,  II.,  1049,  1075.  On  the  banishment  of  Sancia,  Jofre  Borgia's 
consort,  whose  reputation  was  none  of  the  best,  cf.  Sanuto,  II.,  1089. 


CHAPTER  III. 

The  French  in  Milan. — C^sar  Borgia  conquers  Imola  and 
FoRLi.  —  Restoration  of  Lodovico  Moro.  —  Louis  XII. 
CONQUERS  Milan  a  Second  Time. — Anarchy  in  Rome. — 
Murder  of  the  Duke  of  Bisceglia.  —  Frivolity  and 
Nepotism  of  Alexander  VI. — Partition  of  the  Kingdom 
of  Naples  between  France  and  Spain. 

By  the  month  of  July  of  the  year  1499,  a  French  army  had 
already  crossed  the  Alps,  and  fortress  after  fortress  went 
down  before  the  "rush  of  the  Swiss  and  the  French." 
Venice  would  have  chimed  in  from  the  eastern  side  had 
not  her  hands  just  then  been  over  full  with  the  war 
against  the  Turks.*  Lodovico  Moro  had  hoped  that  the 
German  Emperor  and  Frederick  of  Naples  would  have 
come  to  his  aid,  but  Maximilian  was  fully  occupied  in  fight- 
ing the  Swiss.  Frederick  was  to  have  declared  war  against 
the  Pope ;  but  when  Alessandria  fell  into  the  hands  of  the 
French,  he  gave  up  all  thoughts  of  this.-|-  Thus  Lodovico 
was  left  to  face  the  French  entirely  alone.  Seeing  that  the 
situation  was  hopeless,  on  the  evening  of  ist  September 
he  fled  to  the  Tyrol,  to  put  himself  under  Maximilian's 
protection.  Cardinals  Ascanio  Sforza  and  Sanseverino 
followed  him.|  The  moment  he  was  gone  the  Milanese 
opened  their  gates  to  the  French ;  on  the  6th  September 

*  Havemann,  II.,  49  ;  Zinkeisen,  II.,  529  seq. 
t  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  II.,  205. 

X  Cipolla,  t]o;  Havemann,  II.,  t^b  seq. ;  Magenta,  I.,  554,  places 
the  date  of  his  flight  on  2nd  September. 


THE  FRENCH  INVADE  MILAN.  7 1 

Trivulzio  entered  the  city,  and  the  fort  surrendered  almost 
immediately.  A  few  days  later  Cremona  submitted  to  the 
Venetians.*  Upon  this  Louis  XII.  hastened  to  Italy  to 
enjoy  his  triumph.  On  the  6th  October  he  entered  Milan, 
and  was  greeted  with  acclamations  by  the  populace.  The 
King  was  accompanied  by  the  Marquesses  of  Mantua, 
Montferrat,  and  Saluzzo,  the  Dukes  of  Ferrara  and  Savoy. 
Caesar  Borgia,  the  Cardinals  d'Amboise  and  Giuliano 
della  Rovere,  as  well  as  the  Envoys  from  Genoa,  Florence, 
Siena,  Lucca,  and  Pisa.-f 

Alexander  VI.,  now  that  the  alliance  with  Louis  XII. 
was  turning  out  so  favourably  for  his  beloved  Caesar,  hailed 
the  success  of  the  French  arms  with  unconcealed  delight, 
quite  regardless  of  the  scandal  he  was  causing  throughout 
the  whole  of  Europe.  On  the  24th  of  August,  1499,  two 
Portuguese  Envoys  arrived  in  Rome  and  at  once  asked 
for  an  audience.  On  the  part  of  their  Government,  they 
animadverted  strongly  on  the  Pope's  nepotism,  on  Caesar's 
resignation  of  the  Cardinalate,  and  on  the  French  alliance, 
which  was  fatal  to  the  peace  of  Europe.  If  he  persisted  in 
these  paths,  the  result  would  be  the  calling  of  a  Council.  J 
Alexander  was  annoyed  and  troubled  at  these  new  threats, 
but  did  not  make  any  change  in  his  proceedings.  On  the 
25th  September  he  went  to  Lucrezia  at  Nepi.§     Here  it 

*  SaNUTO,  II.,  2210;  SiGISMONDO  DE'  CONTI,  II.,  2o6  ;  GUIDI, 
Sommi  Picenardi,  Cremona  durante  il  dominio  de'  Veneziani,  8. 
Milano,  1866. 

t  Sanuto,  III.,  24-25  ;  Diario  Ferrarese,  370  ;  Alvisi,  60-61.  On 
the  complete  reconciliation  of  the  Pope  with  Giuliano  della  Rovere,  who 
now  cordially  supported  Caesar,  see  Brosch,  Julius  1 1.,  81  scq. 

X  Cf.  the  Report  of  the  3rd  September,  1499,  in  the  Notizenblatt  for 

1857,  54-55- 

§  Lucrezia's  husband,  Alfonso,  had  returned  to  his  wife  at  the 
command  of  the  Pope.  On  the  14th  October  she  went  back  to  Rome, 
and  on  the  ist  November  gave  birth  to  a  son,  who  was  called  Rodrigo. 


"Jl  HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES. 

was  arranged  that  Csesar  was  to  conquer  the  Romagna. 
The  King  of  France  manifested  his  gratitude  by  placing  a 
portion  of  his  army  at  the  Duke's  disposal.*  "  It  was  not 
difficult  to  make  the  expedition  appear  as  though  undertaken 
for  the  interests  of  the  Church,  though  in  reality  the 
interests  of  the  family  were  the  first  consideration.  The 
relations  between  the  rulers  of  the  cities  of  the  Romagna 
and  their  feudal  Lord  were  so  variable,  and  often  so 
unsatisfactory,  as  easily  to  afford  a  handle  for  proceeding 
against  them  to  any  Pope  who  wished  to  do  so.  Alexander 
resolved  to  make  use  of  this  opportunity  to  strike  a  crushing 
blow."-|-  Bulls  were  issued  declaring  the  Lords  of  Rimini, 
Pesaro,  Imola,  Faenza,  Forli,  Urbino,  and  Camerino  to 
have  forfeited  their  fiefs  by  the  non-payment  of  their  dues. 
Louis  XII.  arranged  that  proceedings  should  only  be  taken 
against  those  who  belonged  to  the  party  of  the  Sforza,  and 
this  plan  had  also  the  advantage  of  satisfying  the  suscepti- 
bilities of  the  Venetians.  J 

In  the  middle  of  November  Csesar  began  the  campaign  by 
attacking  Caterina  Sforza  and  the  sons  of  Girolamo  Riario. 
Imola  opened  her  gates  of  her  own  accord,  and  the  fort  fell 
in  the  early  part  of  December.  In  Forli,  also,  the  inhabitants 
offered  no  resistance,  but  the  citadel  here  was  far  stronger 
and  was  bravely  defended  by  the  high-spirited  Caterina  her- 
self ;  yet  on  I2th  January,  1500,  it  was  forced  to  capitulate.^ 

On  the  loth  Aug.,  1500,  Lod.  Borgia,  Archbishop  of  Valencia,  was 
made  Lieutenant-governor  of  Spoleto.  See  Sansi,  Documente  dall' 
Arch.  Comm.  di  Spoleto,  81.     Spoleto,  1861. 

*   SiGISMONDO  DE'  CONTI,  II.,  209. 

t  Reumont,  III.,  1,229.  C/;Gottlob,  Cam.  Ap.,223;  Gregorovius, 
VII.,  422,  ed.  3  (428,  ed.  4)  ;  and  Creighton,  IV.,  4.  In  September 
the  Pope  had  thought  of  getting  the  Dukedom  of  Ferrara  for  Cassar, 
but  Venice  objected.     See  Hist.  Zeitschr.,  XXXIII.,  380. 

X  Burchardi  Diarium,  II.,  570  ;  Balan,  V.,  394,  n.  3  ;  Alvisi,  67. 

§  Sanuto,  hi.,   56,   84;    SiGISMONDO    DE'    Cont'i,     II.,   209   seq.; 


LODOVICO   MORO   RECOVERS   MILAN,  73 

When  Caesar's  nephew,  Cardinal  Juan  Borgia,  heard 
at  Urbino  the  good  news  of  the  fall  of  Forli,  he  set  out 
on  horseback,  although  suffering  from  fever,  to  offer  his 
personal  congratulations,  but  was  prostrated  by  a  fresh 
attack  of  the  malady  before  he  could  get  beyond  Fossom- 
brone.  Later,  an  utterly  groundless  story  was  concocted 
of  Caesar's  having  poisoned  his  nephew.* 

Just  as  Caesar  was  preparing  to  proceed  against  Cesena 
and  PesarOjf  an  event  occurred  which  deprived  him  of  his 
French  troops  and  brought  the  whole  campaign  to  a  stand- 
still. The  Milanese  rose  against  the  extortions  of  the 
French,  while  Lodovico  Moro  appeared  in  Como  at  the 
head  of  a  body  of  Swiss  and  German  troops  ;  and  on  the 
5th  of  February,  1500,  re-entered  the  city  in  triumph.  The 
French  lost  the  whole  of  Lombardy  as  quickly  as  they  had 
won  it.  I  Without  the  help  of  the  French  troops,  which 
had  now  been  sent  against  Lodovico  Moro,  it  was  impossible 
to  go  on  with  the  conquest  of  the  Romagna,  the  more  so 
as  Venice  had  grown  jealous  and  now  strongly  supported 

Diario  Ferrarese,  374,  375,  377  ;  Alvisi,  63,  70  seq. ;  Balan,  V.,  395  ; 
see  here  also  on  supposed  plots  of  some  inhabitants  of  Forli  for  poisoning 
the  Pope.  Cf.  Burchardi  Diarium,  II.,  579.  See  also  Yriarte'S 
recent  work,  Cesar  Borgia,  21  seq.  ;  and  especially  Pasolini,  II., 
134  seq..,  lyo  seq.,  and  ClAN,  Cat.  Sforza,  28  seq.,  where  the  history  of 
Caterina's  fate  is  given  in  detail. 

*  See  Alvisi,  83 .y^^.;  Maury  in  the  Rev.  Hist.,  XIII.,  60-91.  Cf. 
also  Kindt,  Die  Katastrophe  L.  Moro's  in  Novara,  80  seq.,  and  in 
Appendix,  N.  4,  the  *Letter  of  23rd  Jan.,  1500.  Gonzaga  Archives, 
Mantua. 

t  Balan,  V.,  395,  n.  3  ;  Yriarte,  Cesar  Borgia,  I.,  200  seq.  On  the 
assistance  sent  him  by  the  Pope,  see  Dal  Re,  122. 

X  Sanuto,  III.,  103  ;  Balan,  V.,  396  ;  Anz.  f.  Schweiz.  Gesch. 
(1890),  43  seq.;  DiERAUER,  II.,  384  ;  Luzio-Renier,  Relaz.  di 
Isabella  d'Este,  157-158  (at  p.  154  read  5th  instead  of  4th  February). 
Pelissier,  La  politique  du  Marquis  de  Mantoue,  in  the  Annal.  de  la 
fac.  des  Lettres  de  Bordeaux  (1892),  104. 


74  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

the  Lords  of  Faenza  and  Rimini.*  Caesar,  therefore, 
returned  to  Rome  and  made  his  triumphal  entry  into  the 
city  on  the  26th  February,  clothed  in  black  velvet  and  with 
a  gold  chain  round  his  neck ;  all  the  Cardinals  and  Envoys 
came  to  meet  him.  Alexander  VI.  was  beside  himself 
with  joy ;  he  wept  and  laughed  in  the  same  breath.f 
Amongst  the  Carnival-plays  the  triumph  of  Julius  Csesar 
was  represented  in  the  Piazza  Navona.  On  Laetare  Sunday 
(29th  March),  the  Duke  received  from  the  hands  of  the 
Pope  the  insignia  of  a  standard-bearer  of  the  Church  and 
the  Golden  Rose.J  The  power  of  the  Duke  of  Valentinois 
was  now  almost  unlimited.  Even  on  the  23rd  of  January 
a  report  from  Rome  announced  that,  at  the  approaching 
nomination  of  Cardinals,  Caesar's  influence  would  be  de- 
cisive :  he  was  the  person  to  apply  to.  No  Castellans  were 
appointed  to  any  of  the  strong  places  within  the  Papal 
States  but  such  as  were  devoted  to  him  ;  the  governorship  of 
the  Castle  of  St.  Angelo  was  given  to  one  of  his  retainers.  § 
Meanwhile  the  state  of  affairs  in  Lombardy  had  again 
completely  changed.  Louis  XII.  had  lost  no  time  in  send- 
ing a  fresh  army  across  the  Alps,  and  the  battle  at  Novara 
proved  a  decisive  victory  for  France.  The  Swiss  refused 
to  fight  against  their  kinsmen  in  the  French  army,  and 
abandoned  Lodovico,  who  was  taken  prisoner  (10th  April, 
i50o).||     Louis  XII.  shut  him  up  in  the  fortress  of  Loches 

*  See  in  Appendix,  N.  4,  the  *Letter  of  23rd  Jan.,  1 500.  Gonzaga 
Archives,  Mantua. 

+  Sanuto,  III.,  140-141  ;  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  19 ^^7. 

J  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  22,  26  seq.;  Sanuto,  III.,  198; 
SiGiSMONDO  DE'Conti,  II.,  228  ;  *Acta  Consist.  Consistorial  Archives 
of  the  Vatican. 

§  See  Appendix,  N.  4. 

Ij  See  RuSCONi,  Lod.  il  More  e  suacattura  in  Novara  (Novara,  1878); 
Kindt,  Die  Katastrophe  L.  Moro's  in  Novara;  and  Dierauer,  II., 
386-387.     See  also  Knuth,  Jean  d'Auton,  37  seq. 


ROMAN    FEELING   ON    LODOVICO  S   REVERSES.  75 

in  Touraine;  Cardinal  Ascanio  Sforza,  who  fell  into  the 
hands  of  the  Venetians,  was  delivered  over  to  the  French 
and  imprisoned  in  Bourges  ;  *  thus  reaping  the  reward  of 
his  unprincipled  conduct  at  Alexander's  election. 

On  the  evening  of  the  14th  of  April,  1500,  the  news  of 
Lodovico's  catastrophe  reached  Rome ;  the  Pope  is  said  to 
have  given  100  ducats  to  the  messenger  who  brought  it  ; 
the  Orsini  lighted  bonfires  everywhere,  and  Rome  re- 
sounded with  cries  of  "  France  and  the  Bear"  (  =  Orsini).-|- 
This  occurred  in  the  midst  of  the  Jubilee  festivities,  which 
had  filled  the  city  with  pilgrims  from  foreign  parts.  "  The 
events  of  the  year  and  the  state  of  Rome  were  anything 
but  suitable  however  to  a  religious  celebration."  In  spite 
of  the  precautions  taken  by  Alexander,  even  in  the  previous 
year,  the  insecurity  of  both  life  and  property  in  the  city 
was  frightful ;  murders  occurred  nearly  every  day.  The 
severest  punishments  effected  no  improvement  in  its  con- 
dition, which  indeed  was  not  worse  than  that  of  most  of 
the  other  Italian  cities  ;  |  but  the  events  which  took  place 

*  See  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  41,  46,  141.  On  the  imprisonment 
of  Card.  Sforza,  see  Kindt's  investigation,  Katastrophe,  73  seq.  It 
seems  very  doubtful  whether  Alexander's  mediation  to  procure  Ascanio's 
liberation  (see  Marini,  I.,  304)  was  meant  to  succeed  ;  for  the  Pope 
promptly  took  possession  of  Ascanio's  art  treasures,  and  gave  away 
his  benefices  ;  Giuliano  della  Rovere  obtained  one  of  these  latter.  See 
the  *Deed  in  the  Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican,  in  Appendix,  N.  6. 
Ascanio  Sforza  was  not  released  until  the  3rd  Jan.,  1 502,  through  the 
good  offices  of  Card.  d'Amboise.  He  accompanied  his  benefactor  to 
the  Conclave  in  Rome  which  elected  Pius  III.,  and  died  there  at  the 
end  of  May,  1505,  not  of  poison  but  of  the  Plague  ;  see  Balan,  398  ; 
Ratti,  I.,  87  seq.  His  splendid  monument  by  Andrea  Sansovino  in 
S'a  Maria  del  Popolo  is  world-famed.  See  MuNTZ,  Renaissance,  347, 
493  seq..,  and  Schonfeld,  A.  Sansovino  and  s.  Schule.  Stuttgart, 
1881. 

t  BURCHARDi  Diarium,  III.,  35, 

X  Compare  what  Sugenheim,  3S0  seq..,  says  of  Perugia. 


^6  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

in  the  Borgia  family  attracted  more  attention  than  any  of 
these  deeds  of  violence,* 

Next  to  Csesar,  Lucrezia  at  that  time  again  stood  highest 
in  the  Pope's  favour.  In  the  Spring  of  the  year  1501  Ser- 
moneta,  which  had  just  been  snatched  away  from  the 
Gaetani,  was  added  to  Spoleto  and  Nepi,  which  had  already 
been  bestowed  upon  her.-|-  As  she  was  on  excellent  terms 
with  her  present  husband,  there  seemed  nothing  now  to  mar 
her  happiness.  It  was,  however,  not  destined  to  last  long  : 
on  the  evening  of  the  15th  of  July,  as  Alfonso  was  re- 
turning from  the  Vatican  he  was  set  upon  by  five  assassins 
in  the  Piazza  di  San  Pietro.  Though  badly  wounded  he 
succeeded  in  making  his  escape.  He  was  so  much  afraid 
of  poison  that  he  refused  all  medical  help,  and  sent  word  to 
the  King  of  Naples  that  his  life  was  in  danger,  as  his  own 
physician  had  endeavoured  to  destroy  him  by  this  means.J 
A  report  was  immediately  circulated  that  the  attempt 
originated    from  the  same  quarter  as  the  murder  of  the 

*  Cf.  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  39-42  seq.^  45  ;  Sanuto,  III.,  319  ; 
Letter  from  BrandoHnus  in  Brom,  190  seq.  ;  Reumont,  III.,  i, 
232.  On  the  precautionary  measures  of  the  Pope,  see,  specially,  *Acta 
Consist.,  Consistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican.  In  the  library  at  Siena, 
A.  III.,  T.,  f,  15,  is  an  unprinted  Bando  against  the  Corsi  in  Rome  and 
the  States  of  the  Church. 

f  *Alexander  VI.  vendit  Sermonetam  et  alia  loca  sublata  a  Caietanis 
praetextu  rebellionis  Lucretiae  Borgiae,  Dat.  Rom.,  1499  (st.  fl.),  7  Id. 
Mart.  Cod.  Ottob.,  2504,  f.  287  seq.  (Vat.  Library.)  (T/;  Gregorovius, 
VII.,  421,  ed.  3  (427,  ed.  4),  and  L.  Borgia,  114  ;  Gottlob,  Cam.  Ap., 
238  ;  and  Balan,  393-394. 

X  Besides  the  notice  in  Sanuto,  III.,  521,  and  Burchardi  Diarium, 
III.,  69.,  cf.  Brandolinus'  Letter  in  Brom,  185  ;  the  Florentine  Report  in 
Thuasne,  III.,  437  .y^^.;  and  especially  the  Report  ofB.  Calmeta,  which 
has  been  strangely  overlooked  by  Gregorovius,  although  there  is  a 
triple  copy  of  it  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives  at  Mantua.  I  had  intended  to 
give  it  in  the  Appendix,  but  can  now  refer  the  reader  to  Luzio-Renier, 
who  has  printed  it  in  his  work,  Mantova  e  Urbino,  103. 


CESAR   MURDERS   LUCREZIA  S   HUSBAND.  'J'J 

Duke  of  Gatidia.*  All  the  probabilities  of  the  case  point 
to  the  Orsini,  who  believed  that  Alfonso  was  intriguing 
against  them  with  the  Colonna,  who  were  allied  with  the 
King  of  Naples.  It  is  most  unlikely  that  Caesar  had  any- 
thing to  do  with  it.f  Nevertheless,  Alfonso  was  convinced 
that  his  brother-in-law  was  the  author  of  this  foul  deed,  and 
the  moment  he  felt  himself  recovering  he  was  bent  on  re- 
venging himself  Lucrezia  and  Sancia  strove  to  make 
peace,  and  the  Pope  posted  a  guard  at  the  door  of  the  sick- 
room, but  all  was  in  vain.  In  a  despatch  of  i8th  August, 
which  was  forwarded  at  once,  Paolo  Capello,  the  Venetian 
Ambassador,  writes  that  on  that  day  Alfonso,  looking  out 
of  the  window,  saw  Caesar  walking  in  the  garden.  In  a 
moment  he  had  seized  a  bow,  and  discharged  an  arrow  at 
his  detested  enemy.  Caesar  retaliated  by  having  Alfonso 
cut  to  pieces  by  his  own  body-guard.  |     Lucrezia,  who  had 

*  P.  Capello's  Despatch  in  Sanuto,  III.,  532. 

t  Creighton,  IV.,  II.  " 

X  Despatch  from  the  Venetian  Envoy,  P.  Capello,  of  i8th  Aug.,  in 
Sanuto,  III.,  671.  Cf.  Creighton,  IV,  12,  257  seq.^  whose  remarks 
supply  the  necessary  criticism  on  P.  Capello's  narrative  of  28th  Sept., 
1500  (to  be  found  in  Alberi,  2  Serie,  III.,  3-14,  and  Sanuto,  III.,  842 
seq.  Cf.  Ranke,  Papste,  III.,  5*-6*).  Unfortunately  Hagen's  careful 
paper  on  Alexander  VI.,  "  Casar  Borgia  und  die  Ermordung  des  Her- 
zogs  von  Biselli,"  in  Zeitschr.  fiir  Kathol.  Theolog.,  X.,  313  seq.,  has 
escaped  Creighton's  notice.  This  writer  comes  to  the  conclusion  that 
much  stronger  evidence  of  the  Duke's  guilt  is  furnished  by  Capello's 
Despatches,  and  especially  by  that  of  23rd  Aug.,  than  by  the  personal 
convictions  of  Burchard  and  the  Florentine  Envoy.  (See  p.  78,  note  J.) 
"  There  is  no  formal  argument,"  says  Hagen,  "  to  contradict  these  state- 
ments. We  must  therefore  hold  them  to  be  true,  whatever  general 
doubts  may  rest  on  his  report,  and  especially  on  his  narrative."  Cipolla, 
778,  is  also  against  Alvisi's  defence  of  C?esar,  109  seq.  On  the  other 
hand,  there  can  be  no  doubt  that  Capello's  account  of  the  murder  of 
the  Pope's  servant,  Pierotto,  is  false,  although  Gregorovius  and  Ranke 
uphold  it.  Cf.  Hagen,  loc.  cit.,  317;  Reumont,  III.,  i,  207;  and 
Brosch  in  Sybels  Zeitschr.,  XXXIII.,  370. 


78  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

been  herself  nursing  her  husband  with  the  tenderest  care, 
was  inconsolable.  Overwhelmed  with  grief  she  went  back 
to  Nepi  to  hide  herself  in  its  solitude.  Some  of  Alfonso's 
Neapolitan  servants  were  arrested  on  a  charge  of  having 
planned  an  attempt  on  Caesar's  life,  but  nothing  of  any 
importancewas  extracted  from  them.*  When  the  Neapoli- 
tan Envoy  heard  what  had  happened  he  at  once  took 
refuge  in  the  palace  of  the  Spanish  Ambassador. f  Alex- 
ander told  the  Venetian  Envoy,  who  came  to  see  him  on 
the  23rd  August,  that  Alfonso  had  tried  to  kill  Caesar. 
Beyond  this  nothing  on  the  subject  was  allowed  to  tran- 
spire ;  a  few  conjectures  were  whispered  about,  but  no  one 
dared  to  speak  above  his  breath.  Evidently  Alexander  VI. 
thought  it  prudent  to  hush  up  the  whole  affair  as  much  as 
possible  ;  no  doubt  he  too  was  afraid  of  Caesar.| 

Shortly  before  the  murder,  Alexander's  own  life  had  been 
in  great  danger.  In  the  ninth  year  of  his  reign,  on  the  Feast 
of  SS.  Peter  and  Paul,  Sigismondo  de'  Conti  relates,  just 
as  the  Pope  was  about  to  give  his  audience,  the  sky  being 
clear,  suddenly,  with  no  warning,  a  tornado  of  wind  sprung 
up  and  tore  off  the  very  solid  roof  of  the  upper  part  of  the 
Sala  de'  Papi  as  though  it  had  been  made  of  straw.  In 
consequence,  that  portion  of  the  roof  under  which  the  Pope 
was  sitting  also  gave  way,  but  the  balcony  over  his  head, 
still  remaining  attached  to  the  wall,  protected  him  from  the 
falling  masonry,  and  the  gold  embroidered  hanging  over 
his  throne  from  the  smothering  dust.  Half  an  hour  elapsed 
before  his  servants  could  make  their  way  through  the  wind 

*  Florentine  Despatch  in  Thuasne,  III.,  438,  and  in  Appendix,  N.  5, 
a  Letter  from  G.  L.  Cataneo,  of  19th  Aug.,  1500.  (Gonzaga  Archives, 
Mantua.)  On  Lucrezia  at  Nepi,  see  Gregorovius,  Lucrezia,  154  .y^^., 
1 59  seq.,  ed.  3. 

t  See  Appendix,  N.  5. 

X  Despatch  from  P.  Capello,  23rd  Aug.,  in  Sanuto,  III.,  685  ; 
Creighton,  IV.,  12. 


ESCAPE   OF   ALEXANDER   FROM   DEATH.  79 

and  dust  to  the  place  where  he  lay,  bleeding  and  apparently 
hardly  alive.  He  was  carried  into  the  adjoining  hall  and 
there  soon  recovered  consciousness.  His  physicians  found 
that  two  fingers  of  the  right  hand  had  been  injured,  and  he 
had  a  wound  in  his  head.  The  first  night  he  was  very 
feverish,  but  soon  began  to  get  better.*  "If  nothing 
unforeseen  occurs,"  the  Mantuan  Envoy  writes  on  the  2nd 
July,  "he  will  recover."  This  Envoy  states  that  on  the 
previous  day  also  Alexander  had  a  narrow  escape  of  being 
killed  by  a  heavy  iron  chandelier,  which  fell  just  in  front  of 
him.-j-  Any  other  man  would  have  been  led  to  look  into 
himself  and  consider  his  ways  by  such  a  series  of  narrow 
escapes  ;  but  Alexander  was  a  true  Borgia,  he  thanked 
God  and  the  Blessed  Virgin  and  SS.  Peter  and  Paul  for  his 
preservation,  J  and  lived  on  as  before.    Writing  of  Alexander 

*  SiGlSMONDO  DE'  CONTI,  II.,  269.  Cf.  the  Papal  Briefs  of  3rd  and  4th 
July,  1500,  in  Balan,  398-9,  and  Sanuto,  III.,  477-479;  Burchardi 
Diarium,  III.,  65  seq.  ;  ibid.,  433  seq.  ;  the  Report  of  P.  Capello ;  LaN- 
DUCCI,  211  seq.  ;  NOTAR  GlACOMO,  235  ;  ^Letters  from  G.  L.  Cataneo 
of  28th  June  and  2nd  July,  1500  (Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua) ;  and  one 
from  Brandolini  in  Brom,  183-185.  All  these  authorities  agree  in  giving 
the  date  of  the  catastrophe  as  29th  June,  and  Gregorovius,  VII.,  434, 
ed.  3  (in  the  4th  ed.,  440,  the  true  date  is  given),  and  Creighton,  IV.,  9, 
require  to  be  corrected  in  accordance  with  them.  Sanuto,  III.,  455, 
contains  an  account  from  the  Venetian  Envoy  of  the  accident,  the  date 
of  which  must  be  29th  June,  1500,  instead  of  2gth  May,  1501,  as  there 
given.  In  France  it  was  thought  that  the  Pope  would  die,  in  which  case 
the  Tiara  was  to  be  secured  for  Giuliano  della  Rovere.  See  Brosch, 
Julius  II.,  85.  On  a  poem  relating  to  this  incident,  see  Zingerle, 
XXXII. 

t  G.  L.  Cataneo's  **Reports,  dat.  Rome,  2nd  July,  1500.  (Gonzaga 
Archives,  Mantua.)  Details  in  regard  to  the  Pope's  health  after  this 
time  are  to  be  found  in  the  Reports  in  Thuasne,  III.,  434  seq.  ;  cf. 
Sanuto,  III.,  469.  In  the  Spring  the  Pope  had  had  an  attack  of  fever  : 
this  was  the  date  of  the  Dialogus  mortis  et  pontificis  laborantis  febre, 
preserved  in  Sanuto,  III.,  277. 

X  Sanuto,  III., 478.   He  re-enacted  the  ordinance  of  Pope  Calixtus  1 1 1. 


80  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

in  Sepiember  1 500,  Paolo  Capello  says  :  "  The  Pope  is  now 
seventy  years  of  age;  he  grows  younger  every  day,  his 
cares  never  last  the  night  through ;  he  is  always  merry 
and  never  does  anything  that  he  does  not  like.  The  ad- 
vancement of  his  children  is  his  only  care,  nothing  else 
troubles  him."  * 

In  Caesar's  eyes  this  accident  was  a  warning  to  carry  out 
his  plans  with  as  little  delay  as  possible.  His  campaign 
against  the  Tyrants  of  the  Romagna  required  a  consider- 
able sum  of  money  and  the  acquiescence  of  Venice,  where, 
since  the  month  of  May,  a  Papal  Nuncio,  Angelo  Leonini, 
had  been  permanently  residing.^  He  succeeded  in  ob- 
taining both  money  from  the  creation  of  Cardinals  of 
2nd  September,  1500,+  and  the  consent  of  Venice  in  return 

on  the  ringing  of  the  Angelus,  about  this  time.  See  Vol.  II.  of  this  work, 
p.  400,  and  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1 500,  n.  4. 

*  Sanuto,  III.,  846-847.  In  a  hitherto  unnoticed  Report  of  C. 
Guasco  of  14th  Aug.,  1499  (Notizenblatt,  1857,  p.  55),  we  find  :  Madonna 
Julia  [Farnese]  e  ritornata  a  la  S.  de  N.  S.  The  Venetian  Envoy  paid  a 
visit  to  the  Pope  on  3rd  July,  1 500,  and  says  :  Era  con  S.  S'^  Madona 
Lugrecia  la  principessa  e  so  marito,  e  una  soa  damisella  sta  con  Madona 
Lugrecia,  ch'  e  favorita  del  papa.  Sanuto,  III.,  469;  cf.  also 
Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  I.,  100,  295.  Sanuto  mentions,  I.,  375,  the 
fall  of  a  wall  in  the  Vatican  in  Nov.  1496,  struck  by  lightning,  and  III., 
909,  on  5th  Oct.  1 500,  that  Alexander  was  attacked  by  an  angry  fallow- 
buck  and  was  in  considerable  danger. 

t  According  to  Pieper,  Nuntiaturen,  35  seq..^  this  is  the  first 
instance  that  can  be  traced  with  certainty  of  a  permanent  Nuntiature  at 
any  Court. 

%  Cf.  Sanuto,  III.,  855,  857,  878,  879,  and  Burchardi  Diarium, 
III.,  ']'],  who  gives  the  sum  that  each  Cardinal  had  to  pay.  The  twelve 
nominated,  of  whom  six  were  Spaniards,  were  :  ( i )  Diego  Hurtado  de 
Mendoza  ;  (2)  A.  d'Albret  \  (3)  Lod.  Borja  ;  (4)  Jacopo  Serra  ;  (5)  Pietro 
Isvalies  ;  (6)  Francesco  Borja  ;  (7)  Giovanni  Vera  ;  (8)  Lodovico  Podo- 
catharo  ;  (9)  Gianantonio  Trivulzio  ;  (10)  Giambattista  Ferrari;  (11) 
Thomas  Bakocs  5(12)  Marco  Cornaro.  Cf.  Panvinius,  335  ;  Cardella, 
279  seq. ;  and  *Acta  Consist;  in  fol.  9  are  also  the  names  of  the  thirteen 


CESAR   BORGIA   AND   THE   ROMAGNA.  8 1 

for  the  help  against  the  Turks  given  them  by  Alex- 
ander.* 

On  the  morning  of  the  ist  of  October,  1500,  Caesar  set 
out  from  Rome  at  the  head  of  an  army  of  10,000  men. 
He  had  in  his  pay  some  Roman  Barons  of  the  houses  of 
Orsini  and  Savelli,  Giampolo  Baglione  of  Perugia,  Vitel- 
lozzo  Vitelli  of  Citta  di  Castello,  and  other  chiefs,  who, 
frightened  at  the  alliance  with  France,  thought  there  was 
less  danger  in  siding  with  the  dreaded  foe  than  in  re- 
sisting."-];  The  Lords  of  Pesaro  and  Rimini,  Giovanni 
Sforza  and  Pandolfo  Malatesta,  made  no  attempt  to  de- 
fend themselves  and  sought  safety  in  flight.  Faenza  was 
not  so  easily  conquered ;  its  ruler,  Astorre  Manfredi,  was 
beloved  by  all  his  subjects,  and  was  supported  by  the 
Florentines  and  by  his  maternal  grandfather,  Giovanni 
Bentivoglio.  The  citizens  defended  themselves  with  resolu- 
tion, and  when  winter  came  on,  the  siege  had  to  be  raised. 
When  the  Spring  returned,  Caesar  again  invested  the  city 
(7th  March,  1 501)  and  on  the  25th  April  it  was  forced  to 
capitulate.  I     Astorre  Manfredi  was  faithlessly  carried  off 

Cardinals  who  consented  to  the  creation.  (Consistorial  Archives.)  On 
the  hves  of  the  several  Cardinals  see,  besides  Ciaconius  and  Migne, 
GOTTLOB,  Cam.  Ap.,  275  seg'.  ;  and  Marini,  I.,  263,  on  Francesco 
Borja,  who  had  till  then  been  Treasurer-General ;  Fraknoi'S  Mono- 
graph, 79  seg'.,  on  Bakocs  ;  and  Marini,  I.,  218  seg'.,  and  Anecd.  Litt., 
I.,  279  segf.,  on  Podocatharo. 

*  Creighton,  IV.,  13. 

t  Cf.  Alvisi,  124  seg.  ;  Reumont,  III.,  i,  23  ;  and  G.  L.  Cataneo's 
*Report  of  ist  Oct.,  1500.  (Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.)  On  the  5th 
Oct.  the  Legati  de  latere  were  nominated  :  Peraudi  to  Maximilian  (see 
Schneider,  55) ;  P.  Isvalies  to  Hungary  (see  Sigismondo  de'  Conti, 
II.,  248)  ;  and  Giov.  Vera  to  Spain,  Portugal,  and  England. 

X  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  II.,  228  seq.  ;  Diario  Ferrarese,  390  seq. ; 

Senarega,    570  ;  *Ghirardacci,    St.   di   Bologna,   Cod.    768   of  the 

University  Library,  Bologna;  Alvisi,  172  seq.,  491  seq.;  TONINI,  V., 

437  ;    Balan,   v.,   399  ;    Yriarte,  Rimini,  360  ;    Sugenheim,   371  ; 

VOL.   VI.  G 


82  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

to  the  Castle  of  St.  Angelo  where,  in  January  1502,  Caesar 
had  him  and  his  younger  brother  put  to  death.*  Next  came 
the  punishment  of  Giovanni  Bentivoglio,  who  had  supported 
Faenza  in  its  resistance.  When  several  castles  had  been 
taken,  he  sued  for  mercy,  gave  up  Castel  Bolognese  also, 
and  promised  to  supply  Cffisar  for  five  years  with  300  horse- 
men.f  Alexander  now  bestowed  on  Caesar  the  title  of 
Duke  of  Romagna,  "thus  making  the  largest  province  of 
the  Church  hereditary  in  the  Borgia  family,  in  utter  indiffer- 
ence to  the  probability  that  this  might  easily  entail  on 
the  Church  the  loss  of  all  these  States."  | 

Encouraged  by  these  rapid  successes,  Caesar  now  turned 
his  attention  to  Florence,  at  that  time  seriously  weakened 
by  the  war  with  Pisa.  In  great  alarm  the  Florentines  pur- 
chased peace  by  granting  him  for  three  years  a  subsidy 
of  36,000  ducats,  and  promising  not  to  help  Piombino.  The 
Lord  of  this  principality,  Jacopo  d'Appiano,  lost  in  a  very 
short  space  of  time  the  greater   part  of  his  possessions. § 

CiPOLLA,  778-779.  G.  L.  Cataneo  announces,  6th  March,  1 501 :  *E1  papa 
manda  ogni  di  molto  denari  a  Valentino.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

*  SiGiSMONDO  de'  Conti,  II.,  232.  I  cannot  accept  Alvisi  and 
Maury's  defence  of  Csesar  in  the  Rev.  Hist.,  VIII.,  94,  in  the  face  of 
the  exphcit  testimony  of  a  historian  who  was  by  no  means  hostile  to  the 
Borgia  family.  Cf.  also  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  208  ;  Landucc.i, 
244 ;  and  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  I.,  18.  Here  the  story  of  the  murder 
(e  stato  detto)  is  told  on  6th  June,  while  G.  L.  Cataneo,  on  the  7th  June, 
1 502,  writes  home  :  *E1  Sig.  gia  de  Faenza  e  lo  fratello  qual  erano  qua  in 
castello  benche  alquanto  largi  ma  guardati  sono  stati  conducti  fuora 
d'esso  ne  se  sa  dove  siano  ;  tamen  credesi  siano  condutti  a  Piombino 
per  don  Micheloto  primo  homo  in  I'arme  del  ducha  pto.  Gonzaga 
Archives,  Mantua. 

t  Alvisi,  496  seq.  ;  Balan,  V.,  401  ;  Sugenheim,  372  ;  Ray- 
NALDUS,  ad  an.  1501,  n.  16  ;  Cipolla,  779. 

t  Gregorovius,  VII.,  439,  ed.  3  (446,  ed.  4);  Alvisi,  iSi  ; 
Thuasne,  III.,  131,  n.  2. 

§  Alvisi,  192  seq. ;  Sugenheim,  373, 


TREATY   FOR   PARTITION    OF   NAPLES.  83 

After  this  the  Duke  returned  to  Rome,  where  he  was  wanted 
on  account  of  the  state  of  affairs  in  Naples.  Highly  im- 
portant decisions  were  come  to  in  relation  to  this  kingdom 
in  the  next  few  weeks.  Hitherto  it  had  been  a  constant 
tradition  of  Roman  policy  that  no  foreign  power  was  to  be 
allowed  to  obtain  a  footing  in  Naples.  Now  Alexander  VI. 
abandoned  this  principle.* 

Soon  after  Caesar's  arrival  on  the  25th  June,  1501,  a  Bull 
was  drafted  assenting  to  the  secret  treaty  of  nth  November, 
1 500,  between  France  and  Spain  for  the  partition  of  Naples 
between  them.  Louis  XH.  was  to  be  King  of  Naples  and 
to  possess  Terra  di  Lavoro  and  the  Abruzzi ;  Ferdinand 
was  to  take  Apulia  and  Calabria  with  the  title  of  Grand 
Duke.  Both  were  to  hold  their  lands  in  fief  from  the 
Church.  The  way  in  which  the  King  of  Naples  had 
been  dallying  with  the  Turks  served  as  the  pretext  for 
his  deposition.-|-  One  motive  which  strongly  inclined 
Alexander  VI.  to  agree  to  the  plan  was  the  blow  that  it 
would  deal  to  the  rebellious  Roman  Barons,  who  would 
now  be  deprived  of  all  support.  On  the  27th  June,  1501, 
the  League  with  France  and  Spain  was  announced,  and 
the  French  army,  which  was  already  encamped  near  Rome, 
began  its  southward  march.  J  On  the  4th  July  Caesar 
joined  it  with  his  troops.§ 

Frederick  of  Naples  had  had  no  suspicion  of  Ferdinand's 
perfidy,  and  knew  nothing  of  it  until  the  Papal  Bull  was 

*  Cf.  the  very  interesting  summary  in  Trinchera's  collection  of  docu- 
ments in  the  Allg.  Zeitung  of  1870,  No.  46.  See  also  Tommasini, 
Machiavelli,  I.,  327. 

t  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1501,  n.  53-72. 

X  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  149-150;  Sanuto,  IV.,  61,  82  ;  Arch. 
St.  Nap.,  II.,  659  seq.\  and  G.  L.  Cataneo's  *Letter  of  30th  June,  1501. 
Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

§  Report  of  G.  L.  Cataneo,  5th  July,  1501.  (Gonzaga  Archive.'i- 
Mantua.)     According  to  this,  Alvisi,  209,  requires  correction. 


84  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

published.  The  French  reached  Capua,  destroying  the 
villages  of  the  Colonna  on  their  way,  almost  without  re- 
sistance, and  successfully  stormed  and  sacked  that  city 
before  the  end  of  July.*  Gaeta  now  also  capitulated,  and 
the  French  army  under  d'Aubigny  appeared  before  Naples. 
Frederick  fled  to  Ischia  and  surrendered  to  the  French 
King,  who  gave  him  the  Dukedom  of  Anjou  and  a  yearly 
pension.  France  and  Spain  divided  his  kingdom  between 
them.-j- 

*  SiGISMONDO  DE'  CONTI,  II.,  239;  SaNUTO,  IV.,  76-78;  BALAN, 
v.,  404-405  ;  Havemann,  II.,  120  seq.;  CiPOLLA,  781.  In  regard  to 
the  accusations  against  Csesar,  see  his  defence  in  Alvisi,  209  seq.\ 
Leonetti,  II.,  455  ;  Maury  in  the  Rev.  Hist.,  XIII.,  96  seq.\  and  R.  di 
SORAGNA  in  the  Rassegna  Naz.,  X.  (1882),  364,  who  do  not  here  go  too 
far.     Cf.  Brosch  in  Hist.  Zeitschr.,  XLIV.,  542. 

t  SiGISMONDO  DE'  CONTi,  II.,  248  ;  Brandolinus'  Letter  in  Brom, 
147  seq.\  Reumont,  Carafa,  I.,  33  seq.;  Ranke,  Rom.  und  Germ. 
Volker,  142  seq..,  149  seq.  Although  Louis  XII.  was  excused  his  tribute 
by  Alexander  VI.  on  27th  Aug.,  1501,  on  account  of  the  Turkish  wai 
(Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1501,  n.  75  ;  GOTTLOB,  234-235),  he  did  very  little 
in  this  direction.  Ferdinand  was  excused  on  the  1 5th  May,  1 502,  from 
the  duty  of  appearing  personally  in  Rome  to  receive  his  fief;  Ray- 
naldus, ad  an.  1502,  n.  16  ;  Hergenrother,  VI 1 1.,  384.  He  lost  no 
time  in  manifesting  his  gratitude  to  the  Borgias  ;  see  Hofler,  Katas- 
trophe,  16. 


CHAPTER  IV. 

Alexander  VI.  and  the  War  against  the  Turks 

IN    THE   YEARS    1499-1502. 

Alexander's  unabashed  nepotism  and  wholly  worldly- 
aims  in  politics  cast  their  baneful  shadows  also  over  the 
resistance  to  the  Turkish  advance  during  his  reign.*  The 
Pope's  nepotism  repeatedly  acted  as  a  direct  hindrance  to 
efforts  against  the  Turks,  but  its  indirect  effects  were 
perhaps  still  more  injurious ;  for  no  one  trusted  him,  and 
whatever  he  put  his  hand  to  was  believed  to  have,  for  its 
ultimate  object,  nothing  but  the  aggrandisement  of  the  house 
of  Borgia.  Nevertheless,  even  such  a  man  as  Alexander 
could  not  remain  entirely  inactive  in  presence  of  the  danger 
from  the  East.  The  noble  generosity  of  his  predecessors 
in  assisting  the  refugees  from  the  countries  which  had  been 
conquered  by  the  Turks  was  continued  under  his  rule,  and 
towards  the  close  of  the  century  he  appeared  to  be 
thoroughly  in  earnest  in  his  efforts  to  organise  a  Crusade.f 
Prince  Dschem,  in  the  hands  of  the  Christians,  acted  to 

*  Cf.  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  pp.  397,  428.  Malipiero,  161,  men- 
tions another  later  convention  between  Alexander  and  the  Sultan  which 
was  negotiated  by  Ascanio,  but  very  soon  given  up  by  the  Pope.  On 
his  relation  to  the  question  of  the  Crusade  in  1498,  see  also  Maulde, 
Procedures  Polit.,  1 106  seq.^  and  Dipl.  de  Machiavelli,  I.,  72. 

t  Cf.  Reumont  in  Wetzer  und  Welte's  Kirchenlexikon,  I.,  489,  ed.  2, 
and  GOTTLOB  in  Hist.  Jahrb.,  VI.,  459.  On  Ferdinand's  suspicions 
as  to  the  application  of  the  Crusade  money  by  Alexander,  of. 
Bergemoth,  I.,  266. 


86  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

a  certain  degree  as  a  check  upon  the  Sultan ;  but  after 
his  death  fresh  attacks  on  Christian  lands  recommenced 
almost  at  once.  In  Bosnia,  in  the  year  1496,  a  number  of 
small  fortresses,  still  occupied  by  the  Hungarians,  were 
invested  by  Turkish  troops  and  many  of  them  conquered. 
In  Moldavia  the  inroads  of  the  Turks,  beginning  in  the 
same  year,  were  of  a  more  serious  character.  In  1498  a 
band  of  Turks  and  Tartars,  combined  with  Moldavians, 
swooped  down  on  Poland  itself  Far  and  wide  they 
ravaged  the  country ;  "  the  land  was  strewn  with  corpses. 
All  the  towns  on  the  hills  and  plains  round  Lemberg  and 
Przemysl  as  far  as  Kanczug  were  plundered  and  burnt ; 
the  harpies  encamped  in  the  fields  for  a  short  time  and 
then  returned  whence  they  came,  loaded  with  booty."* 

Already  in  the  previous  year  the  friendly  relations 
hitherto  subsisting  between  Venice  and  the  Porte  had 
been  sharply  disturbed.  The  Turks  had  for  some  time 
past  been  busily  occupied  in  strengthening  their  armaments, 
and  especially  their  navy.  The  object  of  these  prepara- 
tions was  kept  a  profound  secret,  and  the  Venetians,  with 
all  their  sagacity,  were  completely  deceived.-]-  "When  the 
preparations  were  completed,  the  Sultan,  without  any 
declaration  of  war,  began  hostilities  by  arresting  all  the 

*  Caro,  v.,  2,  751  ;  ZiNKElSEN,  II.,  507  seq. 

t  *Ex  litteris  abatis  Gondulae,  1499,  Juli  xxiii.  :  Che  le  cose  del  Turco 
vanno  tanto  secretamente  che  non  se  po  intendere  ne  sapere  ne  pen- 
sare  la  soa  deliberatione.  (State  Archives,  Milan,  Turchia.)  Barthol. 
Sfondrato  had,  however,  correctly  guessed  what  the  Turks  were  about ; 
cf.  his  Report  of  i8th  June,  1499,  in  Makuscev,  II.,  108.  He  says:  Tutto 
il  Levante  trema.  .  .  .  Et  ben  che  le  cose  del  dicto  Turcho  siano  passate 
et  passano  secretissime,  tamen  ad  me,  rne  pare  comprehender  che  quan- 
tunque  dal  principio  la  fama  si  e  stata  contro  Rhodo  et  contra  Puglia, 
tamen  el  suo  disegno  e  stato  de  rumpere  guerra  ad  S.  Venetiani.  In 
Ragusa,  however,  it  was  firmly  believed  in  the  middle  of  July,  1499, 
that  the  Turks  were  going  to  attack  Rhodes.    Makuscev,  II.,  194. 


WAR   BETWEEN   VENICE   AND   THE   TURKS.  87 

Venetians  in  Constantinople.  Venice  was  plunged  in  dis- 
may and  distress,  and,  to  make  matters  worse,  the  finances 
of  the  Republic  were  at  that  moment  at  a  very  low  ebb. 
To  meet  the  heavy  expense  of  fitting  out  a  fleet  it  was 
necessary  to  raise  all  tolls  and  taxes  and  to  impose  new 
ones.  All  the  officials  of  the  republic  were  required  to 
surrender  the  half  of  their  salaries  to  the  State,  and  the 
clergy  had  to  contribute  a  third  of  their  revenues,  this 
with  the  Pope's  consent.  By  dint  of  these  exertions  an 
imposing"  fleet  of  130  sails  was  equipped.  But  even  this 
was  quite  insufficient  to  cope  with  that  of  the  Turks,  which 
numbered  270.  On  the  26th  of  August,  Lepanto,  the  only 
important  sea-port  in  the  Gulf  of  Corinth  that  still  remained 
in  the  hands  of  the  Venetians,  fell.*  At  the  same  time 
10,000  Turkish  horsemen  from  Bosnia  made  a  successful 
raid  on  the  mainland  of  Venice.  The  whole  district  on 
one  side  to  Tagliamento  and  even  near  Vicenza,  and  on 
the  other  as  far  as  Drau,  was  devastated  with  fire  and 
sword,  and  all  the  inhabitants  slain  or  carried  into 
captivity.-]- 

In  the  Summer  of  1499  the  Turkish  question  was  re- 

*  ZiNKElSEN,.!!.,  527-531  ;  ROMANIN,  V.,  134  set/.  ;  Heyd,  II.,  330 
seq. ;  HOPF,  167. 

t  ZiNKElSEN,  II.,  532.  Cf.  also  B ALAN'S  concluding  vol.  of  Addenda, 
p.  xvii.,  and  Makuscev,  II.,  109  ;  Landucci,  203.  A  detailed  account 
of  the  Turkish  raid  on  Friuh  in  1499  is  to  be  found  in  the  Cronaca 
di  Nicolo  Maria  di  Strassoldo,  anno  1469- 1509  (Nozze  Strassoldo- 
Gallici.  Udine,  1876).  The  sea-board  of  Southern  Italy  was  harried 
by  the  Turks  at  the  same  time.  In  the  *Avisi  de  Nicolo  Gondula  de 
lettere,  i6th,  17th,  and  20th  June,  1499,  I  found  the  following  mem- 
orandum which  belongs  to  this  period.  *Che  circa  XI.  Giorni  inanti  in- 
trorno  XI II I.  fuste  de  Barbaria  nel  golfo  de  Taranto  et  IIII.  de  epse  so 
apresentorno  a  capo  de  Ottranto  dove  preheseno  una  naveta  Ciciliana 
carica  de  frumento  et  zuchari  et  una  sagitia  Lipariota.  Milanese  State 
Archives,  Turchia. 


88  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

peatedly  discussed  in  Consistory.  It  was  then  thought, 
from  the  report  of  the  Grand-Master  of  Rhodes,  that  the 
attack  was  to  be  directed  against  that  island.*  While  the 
deliberations  on  the  help  to  be  sent  to  Rhodes  were  going 
on,  the  news  came  of  the  descents  on  Venetian  territory. 
In  the  beginning  of  August,  letters  from  the  French  Envoy 
in  Venice  to  a  French  Cardinal  came  to  hand,  accusing 
the  Milanese  Government  of  having  instigated  the  Turkish 
attack.  The  Milanese  Envoy  in  Rome  defended  the  con- 
duct of  his  master  in  view  of  the  hostile  attitude  of  the 
Venetians,  and  declared  openly  that  Milan  would  not 
scruple  to  use  the  Turks  and  the  Moors  in  self-defence.f 
It  never  came  to  this,  however,  for  in  the  Autumn  of  that 
year  Lodovico  Moro  was  driven  out  of  Milan.J 

In  consequence  of  the  increasingly  menacing  reports 
which  continued  to  arrive  from  the  East,  Alexander,  in 
the  late  Autumn  of  1499,  issued  an  invitation  to  all  the 
Christian  Princes  to  send  representatives  to  Rome  in  the 
ensuing  March  to  deliberate  on  the  formation  of  a  League 
against  the  Turks. §  This  invitation  met  with  so  little 
response  that  in  February  1500,  it  was  found  necessary  to 
repeat  it.  ||     Even  this  produced  but  little  result.     On  the 

*  Protocols  of  the  Consistories  of  the  loth,  14th,  and  26th  June,  and 
5th  July,  1499.     *Acta  Consist.,  C.  303,  in  the  Consistorial  Archives. 

t  See  the  Milanese  Ambassadorial  Reports  in  the  Notizenblatt 
(1857),  pp.  21-22,  38-39. 

t  Cf.  supra,  p.  70. 

§  Cf.  the  Brief  of  12th  Nov.,  1499,  to  King  Emanuel  of  Portugal  in 
Santarem,  X.,  120. 

II  See  the  identical  Briefs  of  3rd  Feb.,  1500,  to  Florence  (MtJLLER, 
Relaz.,  245)  and  to  Francesco  Gonzaga  ;  the  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga 
Archives,  Mantua.  The  King  of  Portugal  received  Briefs  of  commenda- 
tion for  his  zeal  in  regard  to  the  war  against  the  infidels  on  the  loth 
and  1 6th  Feb.,  1500  ;  in  the  last  of  these  the  ist  of  March  is  mentioned 
as  the  day  on  which  the  deliberations  were  to  begin.    Santarem,  X.,  121. 


ALEXANDER   SUPPORTS   VENICE.  89 

nth  March  a  secret  Consistory  was  held,  to  which  all  the 
Envoys  in  Rome  were  invited.  These  consisted  of  the 
representatives  of  Maximilian,  Louis  XII.,  Henry  VII.  of 
England,  and  Ferdinand  of  Spain,  besides  those  of  Naples, 
Venice,  Savoy,  and  Florence.  Alexander  VI.  put  before 
the  assembly  the  great  danger  now  threatening  Europe 
from  the  Turks,  and  expressed  his  regret  that  his  summons 
of  the  previous  Autumn  had  met  with  so  little  attention. 
He  went  on  to  say  that  Venice  was  the  bulwark  of  Christen- 
dom and  that  it  was  the  duty  of  all  Christian  powers  to 
support  her.  The  answers  of  the  Envoys  were  so  unsatis- 
factory that  the  Pope  made  no  secret  of  his  displeasure 
with  Germany,  France,  and  Naples;  Spain  was  the  only 
Government  to  which  he  awarded  unqualified  praise.*  In 
the  beginning  of  May,  Alexander  VI.  proposed  in  Consis- 
tory that  a  Legate  should  be  sent  to  Hungary  and  that  a 
tithe  should  be  levied  on  the  clergy  of  France,  Germany, 
and  Hungary;  also  that  the  Cardinals  should  be  taxed, 
beginning  with  himself.  Many  of  the  Cardinals  objected, 
but  the  Pope  stood  firm.  In  spite  of  all  this  the  Venetian 
Envoy  still  refused  to  believe  in  Alexander's  sincerity, 
which  is  significant  of  the  prevailing  opinion  in  regard  to 
him.-f  These  doubts  were  dissipated  by  his  later  acts.| 
A    Bull,   dated    ist    June,    1500,    was   addressed    to   all 

*  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  24,  and,  in  more  detail,  ZURITA,  V., 
175  seq.  Towards  the  end  of  February  a  Turkish  Envoy  had  arrived  in 
Rome  with  the  object  of  averting  the  war.  This  brought  Card.  Peraudi 
back,  in  hot  haste  and  without  leave,  in  order  to  counteract  these  efforts, 
which  he  succeeded  in  doing.  See  Schneider,  Peraudi,  53-54.  On 
the  policy  of  France,  see  Lanz,  Actenst.  zur  Gesch.  Karls  V.,  Ein- 
leitung,  56. 

t  Sanuto,  III.,  309,  342,  343,  355.  Cf.  ibid.,  255,  385,  and  426,  on  the 
sending  of  the  Legate  to  Hungary  and  the  support  to  be  given  to  that 
country. 

X  Cf.  GOTTLOB  in  the  Hist.  Jahrb.,  VI.,  459. 


go  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Christendom,  setting  forth  the  fury  and  cruelty  of  the 
Osmanli  and  their  hatred  of  the  Christian  name,  and  urging 
all  to  unite  against  the  common  enemy.  The  purpose  of 
the  Turks,  it  affirmed,  was,  first  to  conquer  Rome,  and  then 
to  subjugate  all  the  Christian  populations.  Consequently, 
the  Roman  Church  had  now  formally  declared  war  against 
the  hereditary  foe.  To  meet  the  expenses  of  the  contest,  a 
tithe  was  to  be  levied  on  all  ecclesiastical  benefices  without 
exception,  and  on  all  the  officials  in  the  States  of  the 
Church.  All  who  resisted  the  impost  were  threatened  with 
Excommunication.  This  Crusade-Bull  was  to  be  publicly 
read,  in  the  vulgar  tongue,  on  some  feast-day  in  all  the 
dioceses  of  the  world.  The  Jews  were  required  to  contri- 
bute a  twentieth  of  their  property.*  At  the  same  time  a 
Brief  was  drawn  up  addressed  to  the  King  of  France.  In 
it  the  Pope  said  that  Envoys  had  been  summoned  to  Rome 
in  March,  in  order  to  take  counsel  on  the  war  against  the 
Turks.  Many  had  not  come,  and  those  that  had  appeared 
were  not  provided  with  sufficient  powers.  Although  the 
summons  had  been  repeated,  as  yet  the  Pope  had  received 
nothing  from  the  Princes  but  fair  words.  Hence  he  now 
once  more  turned  to  the  King  of  France,  who,  now  that  he 
was  ruler  of  Milan,  was  doubly  bound  to  come  forward  to 
protect  Italy  from  the  Turks,  and  requested  him  to  send 
representatives  at  once.  Spain  and  Venice  were  full  of 
zeal,  thus  there  was  a  good  prospect  of  success.  For  his 
own  part,  he  had  imposed  a  tithe  upon  all  the  inhabitants 
of  the  Papal  States  and  on  the  clergy  throughout  the 
world,  and  was  prepared  to  make  even  greater  sacrifices.-j- 
A  further  proof  that  Alexander  was  then  in  earnest  in 
regard  to  the  war  is  given  by  the  fact  that  at  the  end  of 

*  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1 500,  n.  7-9,  and  in  a  more  complete  form  in 
BURCHARDi  Diarium,  III.,  46-56. 
t  Sanuto,  III.,  435-348. 


THE  CARDINALS  TAXED  FOR  THE  WAR. 


91 


June  he  recalled  Cardinal  Peraudi,  the  eager  advocate  of  the 
Crusade,  to  the  Court,  and  in  the  Spring  of  the  following 
year  began  to  collect  the  contributions  of  the  Cardinals, 
out  of  which  a  fleet  was  to  be  equipped.*  The  tax-list, 
which  has  been  preserved,  and  is  interesting  as  giving  the 
incomes  of  the  different  Cardinals,  is  as  follows  : — 


Card 

CarafFa         .         .       On  income,  10,000 

Po  pay 

1000 

)j 

Giuliano  della  Revere  . 

„             20,000 

2000 

35 

Zeno    .... 

i5>ooo 

1500 

J> 

Giovanni  Michiel 

,,              12,000 

1200 

JJ 

Giorgio  Da  Costa 

„                 7,000 

700 

)) 

Girolamo  Basso    . 

„              11,000 

1 100 

5J 

Domenico  della  Rovere 

,,              10,000 

1000 

» 

Cib5    .... 

„              10,000 

1000 

>5 

Pallavicino 

,,              10,000 

1000 

JJ 

Juan  Borgia 

„              10,000 

1000 

>5 

Orsini 

„              10,000 

1000 

)) 

S.  Giorgio    . 

„                 8,000 

800 

J) 

Carvajal 

„              10,000 

1000 

Peraudi 

-nVTrTnTTT?     PAr^nrii     C/i    Innl-c  nr 

3)Ooo 

inn    1-hpc;f>  mpa<;iirf 

^s  as  m 

300 
erf  feii 

hung  out  to  encourage  the  hberality  of  the  faithful.  But  in  that  case 
would  the  Cardinals,  of  whom  many  were  far  from  anxious  for  the  war, 
have  consented  to  pay?  This  argument  applies  also  against  Lanz, 
Actenst.  z.  Gesch.  Karls  V.,  Einleitung,  58  seg.  Even  though  Lanz  may 
be  quite  justified  in  saying  that  Alexander  took  advantage  of  the  distress 
of  Venice  for  Csesar's  advancement,  this  does  not  by  any  means  prove 
that  the  whole  Crusade  was  nothing  but  a  sham.  Lanz  relies  entirely  on 
the  Venetian  documents,  which  are  certainly  exceedingly  one-sided. 
Dr.  GOTTLOB,  with  whom  in  this  matter  I  hold  (see  supra,  p.  85,  note  t), 
agrees  with  Reumont  in  taking  a  more  favourable  view  of  Alexander's 
intentions.  It  is  to  be  hoped  that  the  able  author  of  the  Cam.  Ap.  will 
shortly  publish  all  the  materials  belonging  to  this  subject  from  the 
numerous  documents  collected  by  him  ;  till  this  has  been  done  the 
question  must  remain  undecided. 


92 


HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 


Ca 


Ducats. 

Ducats. 

ird.  De  Castro    .         .       On  income,     2,000   To 

pay    200 

,,     Lopez           .         .         .         „         10,000         , 

,       1000 

„     Grimani 

„             7,000           , 

,         700 

5,     Serra 

2,000 

,         200 

„     Isvalies 

2,000           , 

,         200 

„     Francesco  Borgia 

„           3)Ooo         > 

,         300 

„     Vera    . 

„           3>ooo         ) 

,         300 

„     Podocatharo 

„           2,000 

,         200 

„     Ferrari 

3>ooo         > 

>         300 

„     Piccolomini 

„           9,000         , 

,         900 

„     Sansoni 

„         18,000         , 

,       1800 

„     Colonna 

3>ooo 

,         300 

„     Ascanio  Sforza 

30,000         , 

,       3000 

„     de'  Medici  . 

„           6,000         , 

,         600 

„     Sanseverino 

13,000         , 

1300 

„     lippolito  d'Este    . 

14,000         , 

,       1400 

„     Cesarini 

„           2,000         , 

,         200 

„     Farnese 

2,000 

,         200 

„     Lodovico  Borgia  . 

„         10,000         , 

,       1000 

„     Cornaro 

no  income         , 

nil 

„     Brigonnet     . 

„         12,000 

,        1200 

„     Philippe  de  Luxembou 

rg       „           9,000 

5         9°o 

,,     d'Amboise   . 

9,000 

,         900 

„     d'Albret 

„           2,000         , 

,         200 

„     Mila     . 

8,000 

800 

„     Mendoza 

14,000 

,       1400 

„     d'Aragona    . 

2,000         , 

,         200 

Tofa^ 

34,300 

om  the  tax  on  Roman  ofific 

ials  and  Hospitals 

11,076 

Total 


45>376* 


*  Cardinales  Rhodianus,  Polonus,  Strigoniensis,  quia  in  belle  existunt, 
were  exempted.  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1 500,  n.  9,  from  Burchardi  Diar- 
ium.  III.,  56  seq.  (where  Macloviensis  should  be  readzwi'/^ai^^Madruti- 
ensis).     The  list  is  placed  in  June,  which  is  a  mistake,  as  its  mention 


SUCCESSES   OF   THE   TURKS.  93 

In  the  beginning  ot  September,  the  Venetian  Envoy  in 
Rome  wrote  that  the  Pope  had  been  doing  all  he  could 
throughout  the  Summer  for  the  support  of  Venice  and 
Hungary,  and  had  given  peremptory  orders  to  the  com- 
mander of  the  Spanish  fleet  to  join  that  of  Venice ;  that 
his  dispositions  in  regard  to  the  Crusade  were  excellent, 
if  he  only  carried  out  the  half  of  what  he  had  promised  it 
would  be  quite  sufficient,*'  The  doubt  again  implied  in 
these  words  was  not  deserved  ;  a  few  days  earlier  Alexander 
had  despatched  various  Briefs,  the  contents  of  which  amply 
prove  his  sincerity ;  and  he  was  exerting  himself  to  the 
utmost  to  bring  about  the  union  of  the  Spanish  fleet  with 
the  Venetian.-j- 

Soon  after  this  the  Venetian  Envoy  received  the  sad 
tidings  that  Modon  had  fallen  into  the  hands  of  the  Turks, 
and  the  loss  of  Navarino  and  Koron  followed  almost 
immediately.  Since  the  fall  of  Negroponte  such  conster- 
nation and  dismay  as  now  prevailed  in  Venice  had  not 
been  caused  by  any  of  her  other  disasters.  The  possession 
of  these  old  and  important  colonies  was  held  to  be  so 
essential  to  the  maintenance  of  her  navy,  both  for  com- 
merce and  for  war,  that  the  Council  of  Ten  declared  that 
all  her  sea-power  depended  upon  them.  This  terrible  blow 
was  formally  announced  by  the  Signoria  to  all  the  powers 
of  Europe.      "On    the    loth  of  August,"  writes   Raphael 

of  Cardinals  who  were  not  nominated  till  the  28th  Sept.,  1 500  (see  supra, 
p.  80),  shews  that  it  was  not  drawn  up  till  the  Autumn.  Their  publication 
in  the  Spring  of  1501  (BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  113-118  ;  cf.  Baluze, 
III.,  i2^seq.\  probably  followed  the  assessment.  Gottlob,  Hist.  Jahrb., 
VI.,  445,  promises  to  give  a  schedule  of  the  sums  actually  paid  by 
each  Cardinal.  According  to  the  documents  which  he  has  investigated, 
the  Cardinals  were  bound  to  contribute  34,900  ducats  annually  for  the 
years  1501,  1502,  and  1503.     Cf.  also  Cam.  Ap.,  66. 

*  Sanuto,  III.,  475,  521,  577,  589,  714. 

t  Ibid.,  752-753- 


94  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

Brandolinus  Lippi  from  Rome  to  a  friend,  "  the  unhappy 
city  of  Modon  was  conquered.  The  few  inhabitants  who 
fell  into  the  hands  of  the  Turks  were  all  barbarously 
impaled  ;  not  one  was  spared.  This  is  what  we  have  come 
to  through  the  troubles  in  Italy !  To  this  have  we  been 
brought  by  our  internal  dissensions  !  The  eloquent  Venetian 
Envoy,  Marinus  Giorgius,  delivered  such  a  splendid  oration 
on  the  Turks  that  his  Holiness  and  the  whole  College  of 
Cardinals  were  deeply  stirred.  Now  at  last  we  may  hope 
that  the  Pope  will  insist  on  the  formation  of  a  League  for 
the  destruction   of  the  Turks."* 

Vain  hope !  Eager  as  the  "  Christian "  powers  were 
to  avenge  the  smallest  indignity  inflicted  on  themselves, 
they  were  utterly  indifferent  where  only  the  honour  of 
the  Christian  name  was  concerned.^  But  on  this  occasion 
it  was  not  Alexander's  fault  that  so  little  was  done  to 
check  the  enemy's  advance.  J  On  the  nth  of  September, 
1500,  it  was  decided  in  Consistory  that  two  things  must 
be  done :  first,  every  possible  effort  must  be  made  to  bring 
the  Spanish  fleet  to  bear  against  the  Turks ;  secondly, 
Legates  must  be  sent  to  Hungary,  France,  and  Germany. 
On  the  5th  October  the  new  Legates  were  chosen  :  Giovanni 
Vera  for  Spain,  Portugal,  and  England ;  Petrus  Isvalies 
for  Hungary  and  Poland ;  Peraudi  for  Germany  and  the 
northern  kingdoms.^  At  the  same  time  a  Brief  was  sent 
to  Gonsalvo  de  Cordova  ordering  him  to  join  the  Venetian 

*  Brom,  189-190;  cf.  Sanuto,  III.,  750,  788;  Heyd,  II.,  331; 
HOPF,  168  ;  HerzberG,  Griechenland,  III.,  15. 

t  Rayn ALDUS,  ad  an.  1500,  n.  11. 

X  Reumont  in  Wetzer  und  Welte's  Kirchenlexikon,  I.,  489,  ed.  2. 
Cf.  also  MiCHAUD,  VI.,  283-284. 

§  *Acta  Consist.,  C.  2,  in  the  Consistorial  Archives  ;  see  also  the 
Florentine  Despatches  in  Thuasne,  III.,  76;  Sanuto,  III.,  789,  892- 
893.     Cf.  Schneider,  Peraudi,  55,  and  Gottlob  in  the  Hist.  Jahrb., 

VI.,  459-460. 


INDIFFERENCE   OF   THE   CHRISTIAN    PRINCES.         95 

fleet  with  his  ships  as  quickly  as  possible ;  and  the 
Cardinals  were  asked  for  their  tithe.*  In  spite  of  all  this 
the  Venetian  Ambassador  was  not  satisfied,  and  continued 
to  question  the  sincerity  of  the  Pope's  assurances  that 
he  would  do  all  that  could  be  done.f  However  true  it 
may  be  that  if  Alexander  had  completely  given  up  his 
policy  of  nepotism,  more,  especially  his  plans  for  Caesar 
Borgia's  aggrandisement,  he  might  have  accomplished 
more  in  this  direction,  still  it  must  be  admitted  that  he 
did  a  great  deal.  It  was  the  fault  of  the  "  Christian  " 
Princes,  not  of  the  Pope,  that  all  his  efforts  produced  so 
little  result.  Hardly  anywhere  was  any  enthusiasm  to 
be  found  or  willingness  to  make  any  sort  of  sacrifice.  At 
that  very  time  it  had  been  resolved  at  the  Diet  at 
Augsburg  that  the  Pope  should  be  required  to  refund  a 
portion  of  the  money  which  had  flowed  into  Rome  for 
Jubilee  Indulgences  and  annates,  for  the  assistance  of  the 
administration,  because  "  the  empire  had  thereby  been  too 
much  impoverished  and  drained  of  its  coin."  I  It  required 
indeed  a  zeal  no  less  fervent  than  that  which  burned  in 
Peraudi's  heart  to  undertake  the  German  Legation  under 
such  circumstances  as  these.  Though  suffering  from  gout 
he  set  out  on  the  26th  October,  full  of  hope  that  he  would 
succeed  in  effecting  a  reconciliation  between  Maximilian 
and  the  German  Princes  and  the  King  of  France.  But 
even  on  the  frontier  he  was  met  "  by  serious  difficulties 
in  all  influential  quarters."  Although  Alexander  had 
expressly  commanded  that  all  moneys  brought  in  by  the 
Jubilee  from  Germany  should  be  exclusively  devoted  to 
the   Turkish   war,   neither   at   Court    nor   throughout   the 

*  Seesi/pra,  p.  91  seg.    The  Brief  to  Gonsalvo  is  in  Sanuto,  III.,  824. 
Cf.  Baluze,  III.,  423  seg. 
t  Sanuto,  III.,  856,  879,  939,  977. 
X  MuLLER,  Reichstags-Theatrum,  ii"/ seg' ;  Schneider,  55. 


96  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Empire  was  it  believed  that  this  would  be  carried  out. 
Maximilian  went  so  far  as  to  refuse  permission  to  Peraudi 
to  enter  the  Empire.  It  is  probable  that  Lodovico  Moro, 
then  there  in  exile,  had  a  hand  in  this  decision.  His 
chances  would  have  been  unfavourably  affected  by  a  re- 
conciliation between  the  Christian  powers  and  a  Crusade ; 
but  Peraudi  would  not  lose  heart.  At  Roveredo  he  spent 
his  "  days  and  nights  in  writing  letters  to  all  the  German, 
Danish,  and  Swedish  Princes  and  prelates,  admonishing 
them  to  make  peace  with  each  other  and  combine  in 
turning  their  arms  against  the  Turks.  In  his  zeal  for 
the  Crusade,  he  was  prepared  to  defy  the  Royal  prohi- 
bition, go  straight  to  the  Diet,  and  there,  if  necessary,  in 
virtue  of  his  apostolic  powers,  pronounce  the  Ban  of  the 
Church  against  the  King  of  the  Romans  and  some  of 
the  Princes  ;  like  the  Carthusian  Thomas  he  thought 
nothing  of  death  if  it  were  in  defence  of  the  Christian 
faith."  After  keeping  him  the  whole  winter  in  Roveredo, 
Maximilian  at  last  came  to  a  better  mind,  and  allowed 
him  to  enter  the  Empire.  Here  he  met  with  the  greatest 
difficulties  in  dealing  with  the  administration,  although  he 
was  able  to  give  the  most  positive  assurances  that  the 
Pope  and  Cardinals  had  decided  to  leave  all  moneys 
coming  in  on  account  of  the  Jubilee  Indulgences  and  other 
privileges  absolutely  untouched,  in  the  keeping  of  the 
Empire,  for  the  Crusade.  It  was  not  till  the  i  ith  of 
September,  1501,  at  the  Diet  at  Nuremberg,  that  he  at 
last  succeeded  in  coming  to  an  agreement  with  the 
assembly  and  the  Imperial  Government ;  and  this  con- 
vention was  loaded  with  vexatious  and  obstructive  con- 
ditions for  the  Legate. 

Maximilian,  on  his  side,  for  political  reasons,  deferred 
his  permission  for  preaching  the  Indulgences  until  January, 
1502.     Thus  more  than   a   year   had    passed  away  before 


CARDINAL  PERAUDI  SENT  TO  GERMANY.      97 

Peraudi  was  able  to  begin  tc  execute  his  mission.  In  spite 
of  the  unfavourableness  of  the  season,  in  the  early  months 
of  the  year  1502  he  travelled  with  astonishing  rapidity 
through  the  whole  of  South-Western  Germany,  and  preached 
the  Indulgence  in  the  Dioceses  of  Constance,  Augsburg, 
Strasburg,  Spires,  Mayence,  Treves,  and  Cologne.  Towards 
the  end  of  the  year  he  visited  the  North-Eastern  part  of 
the  Empire  to  announce  the  Jubilee  there,  and  make  peace 
between  Liibeck  and  Denmark.  During  this  journey  the 
weather  was  very  bad,  and  in  consequence  Peraudi  was 
repeatedly  confined  to  his  bed  from  attacks  of  gout.  This, 
and  still  more  the  "  hopeless  indifference  to  the  Crusade 
which  confronted  him  among  all  classes  of  people,  princes, 
townsmen,  and  clergy,  so  discouraged  him,"  that  more 
than  once  he  entreated  the  Pope  to  recall  him.* 

Gasparo  Pons  had  been  sent  to  England  by  Alexander 
VI.,  in  order  to  collect  the  tithe  from  the  clergy,  and 
announce  the  Jubilee  Indulgences,  the  proceeds  of  which 
were  to  go  to  the  Crusade.  The  clergy  paid  the  tithe,  and 
the  King,  Henry  VII.,  contributed  ^^4000,  but  absolutely 
refused  to  send  any  assistance  in  the  shape  of  men  or  ships. 
It  was  right  and  good,  he  said,  that  the  Pope  should 
endeavour  to  induce  the  Princes  of  Christendom  to  be 
reconciled  with  each  other  and  combine  for  this  holy 
purpose.  He  himself,  thank  God,  had  long  been  at  peace 
with  all  men  ;  he  could  not,  however,  send  material  help; 
that  should  be  done  by  France  and  Spain,  and  equally  by 
Hungary  and  Poland.-|- 

*  Schneider,  58-81  ;  Ulmann,  IL,  43  seq. ;  Gebhardt,  Grava- 
mina, 63  seq.;  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  360  seq..,  where  there  is  also  other 
literature  on  the  subject.  The  accounts  of  the  sums  collected  are  so 
contradictory,  that  Ulmann,  II.,  66,  declares  himself  unable  to  come  to 
any  certain  conclusion  as  to  their  amount. 

t  BUSCH,  England,  I.,  242. 

VOL.   VL  H 


98  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

The  King  of  France  was  occupied  with  plans  which  had 
no  connection  with  the  war  against  the  Turks.  The  French 
clergy  were  extremely  irritated .  against  Alexander  for 
having  imposed  the  tithe  without  previously  acquainting 
them  of  his  purpose  and  asking  their  consent.  "  Many 
openly  opposed  it  and  appealed  to  a  General  Council 
against  whatever  censures  they  might  thereby  incur.  On 
the  1st  April  the  Theological  Faculty  of  Paris  pronounced 
that  censures  inflicted  after  an  appeal  had  been  already 
made  to  a  Council,  were  invalid,  and  that  the  appellants 
therefore  need  not  pay  any  regard  to  them  and  need  not 
abstain  from  celebrating  mass  and  exercising  other  ecclesi- 
astical functions."* 

Amongst  the  Hungarian  prelates  the  spirit  of  sacrifice 
was  almost  entirely  absent.  The  secular  nobles  were  not 
so  averse  to  the  war,  but  they  too  made  difficulties.  "  They 
were  not  content  with  the  Pope's  offer  to  hand  over  to  the 
King  the  Jubilee  Indulgence  moneys,  the  tithe  on  Church 
property  in  Hungary,  and  a  Crusade-tax.  They  thought 
the  income  to  be  derived  from  these  sources  uncertain,  or 
that  the  burdens  would  all  fall  on  their  shoulders."  As 
Venice  was  bent  on  beating  down  the  demands  of  the 
Hungarians,  the  negotiations  dragged  on  for  a  long  time, 
and  it  was  mainly  due  to  the  exertions  of  Thomas  Bakecs 
that  an  agreement  was  at  last  arrived  at.  This  high 
principled  and  able  man  had  been  appointed  Primate  of 
Hungary  in  the  year  1497,  in  the  place  of  Ippolito  d'Este, 
in  order  to  satisfy  the  national  feeling  of  the  Hungarians, 
who  objected  to  the  highest  spiritual  office  in  the  kingdom 
being  held  by  a  foreigner.  Bakocs  was  made  a  member 
of  the  Sacred  College  by  Alexander  VI.  on  the  28th  of 

*  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  342-343;  Du  Plessis  d' Argentr^,  I.,  2, 
346.  The  Jews  in  Avignon  also  resisted  the  Crusade-tax,  but  they  were 
forced  to  comply.     See  Rev.  d'Etudes  Juives,  VI.,  21. 


CONCLUSION   OF  THE  LEAGUE.  99 

September,  1500,  as  a  reward  for  his  diligence  in  this 
matter.  At  the  end  of  May  in  the  following  year,  a  League 
was  at  last  concluded  between  Hungary,  Venice,  and  the 
Pope.  Alexander  VI.  bound  himself  to  contribute  40,000 
ducats  annually  as  long  as  the  war  should  last.  Venice 
promised  100,000  ducats  and  the  prosecution  of  the  war 
at  sea,  while  Hungary  undertook  to  attack  the  Turks  by 
land.  Unfortunately,  Hungary  only  contributed  a  few 
"freebooting  expeditions  on  an  extensive  scale."*  Mean- 
while, at  sea  some  slight  successes  were  achieved.  The 
new  Venetian  Admiral  Benedetto  Pesaro,  "  an  experienced 
and  resolute  sailor,"  late  in  the  Autumn  of  1500  made  an 
expedition  into  the  .^gean  sea  and  reconquered  ^gina. 
He  was  at  last  joined,  in  tardy  compliance  with  the  Pope's 
commands,  by  the  Spanish  fleet  of  65  sail,  under  the  famous 
Admiral  Gonsalvo  de  Cordova.  The  combined  fleets  suc- 
ceeded before  the  close  of  the  year  in  wresting  the  island 
of  Cephalonia  from  the  Turks  and  thus  obtaining  a  new 
point  of  vantage  in  the   Ionian   Sea.f 

The  year  1501  was  spent  in  "alternations  of  successes 
and  failures."  Alessio  was  won  but  Durazzo  was  lost.  In 
the  Spring  of  the  following  year  the  Papal  fleet,  consisting 
of  13  galleys  and  2500  men,  was  ready  to  sail.  | 

Bishop  Giacopo  da  Pesaro  was  appointed  by  Alexander 
to  the  command  of  the  fleet.  His  portrait  is  familiar  to  all 
lovers  of  art  in  Titian's  altar-piece  representing  the  Pesaro 
family  venerating  the  Blessed  Virgin  and  the  Divine  Child. 

*  HUBER,  IIL,  427-428  ;  ROMANIN,  V.,  151  ;  BuRCHARDi  Diarium, 
in.,  141.  Cf.  also  the  Hungarian  monograph  on  Bakocs  by  Frakn6i, 
cited  supra,  p.  91.  Nothing  was  done  for  the  Crusade  in  Poland.  The 
money  intended  for  it  was  used  for  other  purposes.     Card,  V.,  2,  814. 

+  ZiNKEISEN,  IL,  537  ;  Herzberg,  IIL,  15. 

X  Cf.  Bembus,  Op.,  210,  and  especially  Guglielmotti,  Guerra  de' 
Pirati,  I.,  9  seq. 


100  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

In  this  picture,  by  the  side  of  the  Legate,  his  brother  is 
represented  in  full  armour,  holding  aloft  in  one  hand  the 
Papal  banner  of  the  Crusade,  and  with  the  other  leading 
two  Turkish  captives  who  follow  him.*  Pesaro's  first  step 
was  to  join  Benedetto,  who  was  waiting  for  him  at  Cerigo 
with  50  Venetian  ships.  Together  they  sailed  at  once  for 
the  island  of  S'""  Maura  (the  ancient  Leukadia),  and  in 
spite  of  a  desperate  resistance  on  the  part  of  the  enemy, 
they  succeeded  towards  the  end  of  August  in  making 
themselves  masters  of  this,  from  a  strategic  point  of  view, 
very  important  place.  In  this  battle  the  Papal  Legate 
Giacopo  greatly  distinguished  himself,  and  at  last  planted 
the  Papal  banner  with  his  own  hands  on  the  battlement  of 
the  conquered  fort.f  It  was  not  destined  to  float  there. 
Both  Venice  and  Constantinople  had  begun  to  weary  of 
the  war.  The  Porte  found  itself  threatened  in  Asia  by  the 
new  Persian  empire,  and  the  finances  of  Venice  were  nearly 
exhausted,  while  her  trade  was  suffering  severely.  The 
Hungarian  alliance  had  proved  of  little  value,  the  war  being 
very  feebly  carried  on  by  King  Lladislaus.     In  consequence, 

*  This  grand  picture  of  Titian's  (there  is  an  excellent  engraving  in 
LUTZOW,  Kunstschatze,  30)  is  still  in  the  Church  of  S'a  Maria  dei  Frari  in 
Venice,  which  also  contains  Pesaro's  monument.  Pesaro  had  already, 
probably  immediately  before  his  departure  for  the  Crusade,  had  his 
portrait  taken  by  Titian.  This  picture  is  now  in  the  museum  at 
Antwerp.  In  it  Pesaro  is  represented  kneeling  before  the  throne  of 
S.  Peter  with  the  Papal  banner  in  his  hand.  A  helmet  is  on  the  ground 
before  him,  indicating  his  call  to  military  service.  Alexander  VI. 
commends  him  to  S.  Peter  on  the  right,  in  the  background  are  the 
forts  of  a  harbour.  Cf.  Crowe-Cavalcaselle,  Titian,  I.,  64  J^^.,  252 
seq.  On  the  picture  In  Venice,  see  A.  Wolfs  essay  in  the  Zeitschr.  fiir 
bildende  Kunst,  XII.,  9  seq.  ;  it  is  a  pity  that  he  occupies  himself  with 
the  "  worship  of  the  Madonna." 

t  SiGlSMONDO  de'  Conti,  II.,  278-79.  Cf.  Sanuto,  IV.,  313  seq.,  and 
Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1502,  n.  29 ;  Guglielmotti,  Guerra  de'  Pirati,  I., 
31  seq..,  42  seq. 


PEACE  BETWEEN  VENICE  AND  THE  TURKS.         lOI 

the  Republic  lent  a  willing  ear  to  the  Turkish  overtures  for 
peace  and  S'^  Maura  was  hardly  conquered  before  it  was 
again  restored  to  the  Sultan. 

On  the  14th  of  December,  1502,  a  temporary  agreement 
was  arrived  at  in  Constantinople,  which  paved  the  way  for 
the  formal  Peace  which  was  announced  by  Venice  on  the 
20th  May,  1503.*  Without  the  support  of  Venice,  Hungary 
was  far  too  weak  to  face  the  Turks.  Hence  we  cannot  be 
surprised  at  finding  King  Lladislaus  also  laying  down  his 
arms.  On  the  20th  of  August,  1503,  he  concluded  a  truce 
with  the  Porte  for  seven  years.-]-  While  the  war  lasted 
Hungary  received  very  large  sums  from  Rome.  The 
account  books  prove  that,  in  the  years  1501  and  1502, 
Lladislaus  received  from  the  Cardinals  6851  ducats;  1884 
ducats,  16  solidi,  and  8  denare ;  66S6  ducats  and  6  solid! ; 
6666  ducats;  3587  ducats  and  10  solidi;  1884  ducats,  16 
solidi,  and  8  denare;  6700  ducats;  222  ducats;  51,687 
ducats;  2328  ducats  and  12  solidi;  2534  ducats;  13,333^ 
ducats;  finally,  2325  ducats  and  16  solidi. J  To  all  this 
must  be  added  the  pensions  given  to  the  numerous  refugees 
from  the  countries  which  had  been  conquered  by  the  Turks, 
and  to  the  widows  and  children  of  those  who  had  fallen  in 
the  war.§     Putting  all  this  together,  and  taking  into  account 

*  ROMANIN,  v.,  152-154.      C/.  HEYD,  II.,  331  ;   HOPF,  1 68. 

t  Magyar  tortenelmi  tar.,  XXIV.,  31  ;  HUBER,  III.,  429-430. 

X  GOTTLOB  in  the  Hist.  Jahrb.,  VI.,  444. 

§  Gottlob  intends  to  publish  (Hist.  Jahrb.,  VI.,  443)  a  complete  list 
of  all  who  received  assistance  from  the  funds  of  the  Crusade.  From 
my  own  investigations  I  derive  the  following :  *Divers.  Alexander  VI., 
1492-1500.  The  volume  begins  with  payments  to  Andrea  de  Paleologo, 
despota  Moreae  ;  it  contains  further  entries  of  sums  disbursed  for 
Leonardo  de  Tocco,  Constantino  de  Morea,  Theodorino  de  Maro,  and 
numberless  other  refugees,  male  and  female,  from  the  East,  e.£:,  Maria 
de  Gurga  de  Candia.  A  *Private  Account-book  of  Alexander  with- 
out a  title,  contains   for   September   1500,  monthly   payments  to  the 


102  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

the  difference  between  the  value  of  money  then  and  in  our 
own  day,  it  must  be  admitted  that  Alexander  was  not  as 
remiss  in  regard  to  the  Crusade  as  has  been  represented 
by  the  enemies  of  the  House  of  Borgia.  Nevertheless,  it 
cannot  be  denied  that  the  Pope  could  have  accomplished  a 
great  deal  more  if  he  had  given  up  his  gross  nepotism  and 
thought  less  of  Caesar's  advancement.  A  glance  at  the 
state  of  things  in  the  States  shews  how  far  he  was  from 
doing  this  in  any  way.* 

Despota  Moree,  the  Despota  de  I'Arta  and  others.  State  Archives, 
Rome. 

*  C/ Chapters  III.  and  V. 


CHAPTER  V. 

War  against  the  Colonna. — The  States  of  the  Church 
IN  the  Possession  of  the  Borgia. —  Marriage  of  Lu- 
crezia  Borgia  with  Alfonso  of  Ferrara. — C^sar  Borgia 
Governor  of  Rome  and  Duke  of  the  Romagna. — Con- 
spiracy OF  the  CoNDOTTIERI  against  CiESAR  J  THEIR  BE- 
TRAYAL AND  Destruction. — Oppression  of  the  Orsini. — 
Tension  between  the  Pope  and  France. — Caesar's  Plans 
UPSET  BY  the  Death  of  Alexander  VI. 

One  of  the  immediate  results  of  the  Neapolitan  war  had 
been  the  downfall  of  the  Roman  Barons.  Ever  since  the 
invasion  of  Italy  by  Charles  VIII.  the  Colonna  had  leant 
for  support  upon  the  House  of  Aragon.  When  the  agree- 
ment between  Spain  and  France  had  finally  sealed  the  fate 
of  this  family  they  sought  to  shelter  themselves  from  the 
coming  storm  by  proposing  to  give  up  the  keys  of  their 
fortresses  to  the  College  of  Cardinals ;  but  Alexander  re- 
quired that  they  should  be  delivered  to  him,  and  in  June, 
1 501,  he  succeeded  in  obtaining  this.*  On  the  22nd  of  the 
month  Francesco  Borgia  started  from  Rome  in  order  to 
take  possession  in  the  Pope's  name  of  Rocca  di  Papa  and 
the  other  castles  belonging  to  the  Colonna.  On  the  follow- 
ing day  about  twenty  of  the  vassals  of  the  family  came  to 
Rome,  and  swore  fealty  to  the  Pope.f 

On  the  27th  of  July  Alexander  went  to  Castel  Gandolfo 

*  Burchardi  Diarium,  III.,  143,  and  *Report  of  G.  L.  Cataneo  of 
23rd  June,  1 50 1.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua, 
t  Ibid.,  III.,  146,  148  ;  Sanuto,  IV.,  61. 


I04  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

and  Rocca  di  Papa  and  thence  to  Sermoneta.  He  had  the 
effrontery  to  hand  over  the  Regency  of  the  palace  to  Lu- 
crezia  Borgia  during  his  absence,  with  power  to  open  his 
correspondence.*  Soon  after  his  return  from  this  expedi- 
tion a  Bull  was  drawn  up  in  which  the  Colonna  and  Savelli 
were  declared  to  be  rebels  on  account  of  their  league  with 
Federigo  of  Naples,  and  were  excommunicated,  and  their 
property  confiscated.^  Out  of  the  possessions  of  the 
Colonna,  Savelli,  and  Gaetani  the  Pope  carved  two  Duke- 
doms for  his  family  ;  a  few  of  the  forts  and  villages  belong- 
ing to  the  Savelli  were  given  to  Giovanni  Paolo  Orsini ;  I 
but  all  the  most  beautiful  and  fertile  districts  fell  into  the 
hands  of  the  Borgia.  A  Bull  of  17th  September,  1501,  gave 
to  Rodrigo,  the  son  of  Lucrezia  and  Alfonso,  then  two 
years  old,  the  Dukedom  of  Sermoneta  with  Ninfa,  Cisterna, 
Nettuno,  Ardea,  Nemi,  Albano,  and  other  towns.  The 
Dukedom  of  Nepi,  which  included  Palestrina,  Olevano, 
Paliano,  Frascati,  Anticoli,  and  other  places,  was  bestowed 
on  Juan  Borgia,  also  an  infant.§  This  child  was  legitimised 
by  a  Bull  on  ist  September,  1501,  as  the  natural  offspring 
of  Caesar,  and  his   age   incidentally  mentioned   as   about 

*  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  153-154,  164.  When  the  Pope  went  to 
Nepi  in  the  autumn  the  same  arrangement  was  made  for  the  time  of  his 
absence  (from  25th  Sept.  to  23rd  Oct.).  Of  course  Lucrezia  was  only 
Regent  in  regard  to  secular  affairs,  but  such  a  thing  had  never  been 
done  before,  and  was  a  starthng  breach  of  decorum. 

t  The  Bull  of  20th  Aug.,  1561,  is  in  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1501,  n.  18-20 
(a  contemporary  copy  of  it  is  in  the  State  Archives,  Turin).  It  was  not 
published  till  the  Consistory  of  24th  Sept.     See  BalaN,  406,  n.  3. 

X  Cf.  the  *Brief  to  Joh.  Paulus  de  Ursinis  domic.  Rom.  in  nostris 
Aspra,  Montedasula,  et  Rochetta  castris  pro  nobis  et  R.  E.  in  temp, 
vicar.  Dat.  Rom.  1501,  XVII.  Calend.  Nov.  Regest.  868,  f.  183.  (Secret 
Archives  of  the  Vatican.)     Cf.  also  the  App.  in  SiGlSMONDO  DE'  CONTi, 

II.,  447- 

§  RONCHINI,  42  seq.,  52  seq. 


LEGITIMATION    OF   JUAN   BORGIA.  I05 

three  years.*     A  second  Bull  of  the  same  date  legitimised 
this    same   Juan    as    Alexander's   own    son.-f      These   un- 

*  According  to  a  *Bull  of  Leo  X.  of  the  30th  April,  151 5,  Juan  was 
a  year  older,  as  it  is  here  said  that  on  the  2nd  Sept.,  1 502,  Camerino 
was  bestowed  on  cuidam  Johanni  Borgia  tunc  in  quinto  vel  circa  seu 
etatis  anno  constituto.  Arm.  35,  T.  42,  f  23b-3ob.  Secret  Archives  of 
the  Vatican. 

t  These  two  Bulls  are  to  be'  found  in  the  State  Archives  at  Modena. 
The  first  is  a  copy,  the  second  the  original.  Gregorovius,  Lucrezia 
Borgia,  App.,  76-85  (90,  ed.  3),  was  the  first  to  publish  them. 
Another  original  draft  of  the  second  Bull  is  to  be  found,  according  to 
Thuasne,  III.,  App.,  p.  xiv,  in  the  Archives  of  the  Duke  of  Ossuna, 
part  of  which  is  published  in  the  Bolet.  de  la  R.  Acad,  de  la  Historia,  IX., 
440-441  (Madrid,  1886).  In  view  of  possible  future  apologists  in  the 
style  of  Ollivier,  it  may  perhaps  be  well  to  observe  that  I  found  both 
Bulls  in  the  Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican  in  the  official  *Regesta  of 
Alexander's  reign  :  the  first  in  Vol.  868,  f.  1 53^-1 57b,  the  second  in  f.  1 76- 
176*^.  Gregorovius,  VII.,  459  (ed.  i  and  2),  has  fallen  into  a  curious 
error  in  regard  to  the  second  Bull.  He  read  in  a  copy  in  the  Barberini 
Library  :  Cum  autem  tu  defectum  praedictum  non  de  prefato  duce,  sed 
de  nobis  et  de  dicta  muliere  patiaris  quod  bono  respectu  in  litteris 
predictis  specifice  exprimere  voluimus^  and  concluded  from  this  that 
Alexander  had  openly  and  shamelessly  legitimised  Juan  as  his  own  son  ; 
whereas  the  context  of  the  Bull  shews  that  the  word  should  be  noluimics, 
and  Gregorovius  in  his  own  copy  has  given  the  correct  rendering.  But 
in  the  3rd  ed.  of  his  7th  vol.  he  gives  the  false  one  with  the  conclusion 
drawn  from  it,  and  this  is,  strange  to  say,  repeated  in  the  monograph  on 
Lucrezia  Borgia,  174  (194,  ed.  3).  Here,  p.  175  (195,  ed.  3),  Gregorovius 
hazards  a  conjecture  that  both  Bulls  were  issued  on  the  same  day,  "  be- 
cause the  Canon  Law  forbids  a  Pope  to  acknowledge  a  son  of  his  own." 
I  know  of  no  Canon  Law  to  this  effect,  and  experienced  canonists  have 
told  me  that  none  such  exists.  Creighton,  IV.,  19,  supposes  that 
Alexander,  in  his  anxiety  to  secure  the  position  of  Csesar's  bastard  son, 
accused  himself  in  the  second  Bull  of  a  fault  which  he  had  not  committed  ; 
but  from  Burchardi  Diarium,  III.,  170,  and  especially  from  SlGlS- 
MONDO  de'  Conti,  II.,  253,  who  is  always  trustworthy,  it  is  plain  that 
Juan,  who  seems  to  have  been  born  on  the  i8th  June,  1497,  really  was 
Alexander's  son.  Cf.  L'EpinoiS,  400  seq.;  Civ.  Catt.,  15th  March,  1873, 
p.  727  (the  extract  here  quoted  from  the  Report  of  the  Venetian  Envoy 


Io6  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

doubtedly  genuine  documents  nullify  all  attempts  to  rebut 
the   accusations   against   the   moral  conduct  of  the  Pope. 

is  now  printed  in  Sanuto,  I.,  369) ;  and  RoNCHiNi,  41,  n.  i.  The  last- 
named  historian  has  rightly  pointed  out  that  the  second  Bull  was  to  be 
kept  secret  until  a  necessity  arose  for  divulging  it ;  thus  it  is  incorrect 
to  speak,  as  Gregorovius  does,  of  open  and  shameless  legitimation. 
The  words  in  the  first  Bull,  which  declare  that  it  is  to  be  taken  as  valid 
proof  of  Caesar's  paternity  in  case  any  one  should  assert  that  Juan's 
father  was  some  other  person,  either  ecclesiastical  or  secular,  et-iam 
cuiuscunque  dignitatis  et  excellentie  mundane  vel  ecclesiastice  etiani 
supreme^  are  remarkable,  and  destructive  of  Creighton's  hypothesis. 
They  distinctly  hint  at  the  contents  of  the  second  Bull.  This  document 
was  at  first,  as  may  be  gathered  from  the  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  I., 
109,  quite  successfully  concealed;  Leo  X.  says  in  151 5  that  Alexander 
gave  Camerino  to  cuidam  Joh.  Borgia.  (See  Regest.  Leonis  X.,  n.  1 5,241.) 
It  was  not  till  later,  in  the  i6th  Century,  that  we  begin  to  find  copies  of  the 
document,  of  which  there  is  one  not  only  in  the  MS.  already  mentioned 
in  the  Barberini  Library,  but  also  in  Cod.  Ottob.,  2528,  p.  78,  with  the 
superscription,  Narratur  legitimatio  et  habilitatio  pro  eodem  Joh.  Borgia 
eumque  Papa  ex  se  natum  agnoscit.  (Vatican  Library.)  On  Juan's 
guardians,  see  *Regest.  871,  f.  196  (Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican),  and 
RONCHINI,  44  seq.  An  inscription  in  which  Franciscus  Card.  Cusentinus 
is  called  Juan's  guardian  has  been  published  in  Arch.  d.  Soc.  Rom.,  VII., 
403  ;  and  also  IV.,  90,  in  opposition  to  Ademollo's  hypothesis  that  Juan 
was  the  child  of  Alexander  and  Lucrezia  (GORI,  Archivio,  II.,  94  seq.).  In 
the  last-named  place,  Dal  Re  observes :  Storici  autorevoli,  quali  il  Roscoe, 
il  Campori,  I'Antonelli,  il  Cittadella  ed  il  Gregorovius  in  particolare,  hanno 
gik  addotto  le  ragioni  per  cui  I'accusa  d'incesto  con  la  propria  figlia 
Lucrezia  messa  fuori  a  vituperio  di  Alessandro  VI.,  dai  poeti  Sannazzaro 
e  Pontano,  dagli  storici  e  politici  Matarazzo,  Marco  Attilio  Alessio,  Guic- 
ciardini  ed  altri,  debba  qual  mera  calumnia  esser  rigettata.  Dal  Re, 
l.c.^  90,  280,  shews  that  it  is  impossible  that  the  Bull  of  15th  Oct.,  1501,  in 
which  AdemoUo  in  his  treatise,  Lucrezia  Borgia  e  la  verita,  in  Archiv. 
Storico,  Vol.  II.,  fasc.  I.,  ed.  Gori  (Rome,  1877),  finds  an  admission 
that  Juan  was  Lucrezia's  son,  can  have  had  any  such  meaning.  On  the 
contrary :  Manca  ogni  fondamento  di  certezza  per  poter  affirmare  che 
Giovanni  sia  la  nefanda  prole  di  Papa  Alessandro  e  di  Lucrezia ;  pero 
che  abbiamo  due  bolle,  tutte  e  due  di  1°  Settembre,  1 501,  in  cui  s'afiferma 
nell'  una  la  patemitk  del  Valentino,  nell'  altra  quella  del  papa  stesso  per 


LUCREZIA   MARRIES  ALFONSO    D'ESTE-  107 

"  Almost  the  whole  of  the  States  of  the  Church  were  now 
the  property  of  the  Borgia;  the  Romagna  and  other 
territories  belonged  to  Caesar,  and  another  member  of 
the  House  possessed  the  hereditary  estates  of  the  Roman 
Barons.  This  was  something  entirely  new  in  the  annals 
of  the  Church."*  Meanwhile,  Lucrezia  Borgia  was  not  for- 
gotten. By  a  marriage  with  Alfonso,  the  heir-apparent  of 
Ferrara,  she  was  to  enter  one  of  the  noblest  and  oldest 
families  in  Italy,  and  at  the  same  time  secure  Caesar's  sov- 
ereignty in  the  Romagna,  and  help  forward  his  designs 
on  Florence  and  Bologna.  At  first  both  Alfonso  and  his 
father,  Ercole,  refused  to  listen  to  the  project,  and  Maxi- 
milian I.  was  equally  against  it.  But  Louis  XII.,  Alex- 
ander's ally,  intervened,  and  when  the  Pope  had  engaged 
himself  to  grant  a  relaxation  of  feudal  rights  and  a  reduc- 
tion of  fief  dues,  the  betrothal  took  place  in  September, 
1501.1  Lucrezia  was  wild  with  delightj  Still  young  and 
beautiful,  all  her  sorrow  for  Alfonso  was  forgotten  in  the 
brilliant  prospect  of  high  position  and  gratified  vanity  that 
opened  out  before  her.     The  Ferrarese  Envoys  gave  feast 

rispetto  a  quel  fanciullo.  Ma  mentre  n^  nelP  una  ne  nell'  altra  si  tien 
parola  alcuna  della  madre  di  lui,  quello  che  h  certo  si  e  che  nella  bolla 
del  15  Ottob.  I'infante  Giovanni  Borgia  vien  citato  in  modo  da  volerlo 
affatto  distinguere  dal  noto  della  Lucrezia,  Roderico  di  Biselli.  Finally, 
it  may  be  well  to  recall  the  fact  that  in  an  official  deed  of  the  19th  Jan., 
1 5 1 8,  Juan  is  called  the  brother  of  Lucrezia  (Johannes  Borgia  frater  ill. 
dom.  Lucretiae  minor  annis  25,  maior  tamen  18).  Cf.  Cittadella, 
Albero,  48,  and  Reumont  in  Arch.  St.  Ital.,  3  Serie,  XVIL,  330,  and 
that  Burchard  speaks  of  Juan's  mother  as  quaedam  Romana.  Cf.  also 
Masi  in  the  Rassegna  settiman,  VL,  120. 

*  Gregorovius,  VII.,  449,  ed.  3  (455-456,  ed.  4) ;  ^  R.  di  Soragna 
in  the  Rassegna  Naz.,  X.  (1882),  126. 

t  QuroDE,  Zeitschr.,  I.,  169  seq.\  GREGOROVIUS,  Lucrezia  Borgia, 
152  seq.;  Corp.  dipl.  Portug.,  I.,  8,  165  seq.,  168;  Gilbert,  I.,  83  seq.\ 
GOTTLOB,  Cam.  Ap.,  230  ;  Theiner,  Cod.  dipl,  511  seq. 

X  Cf.  Brandolinus'  Letter  of  loth  Sept.,  1501,  in  Brom,  203. 


I08  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

after  feast  in  her  honour.  One  evening  she  so  overfatigued 
herself  with  dancing  that  she  was  laid  up  with  fever  the 
next  day.*  The  bride's  outfit  was  truly  royal.  Alexander 
told  the  Ferrarese  Envoys  that  he  meant  Lucrezia  to  have 
"  more  beautiful  pearls  than  any  other  Italian  princess."f 
At  the  same  time,  regardless  of  the  duty  imposed  upon  him 
by  the  dignity  of  his  office,  the  Pope  permitted  himself  to 
be  present  at  scandalous  dances  of  a  similar  character  to 
those  which  had  drawn  on  him  the  rebuke  of  Pius  II.  in 
former  days.  Society  at  that  time  was  so  corrupt  that 
even  this  gave  but  little  offence ;  everything  bad  was 
believed,  but  no  one  thought  much  of  anything.]: 

On  the  9th  of  December  the  bridal  escort,  consisting  of 
Cardinal  IppoHto  d'Este  and  four  other  members  of  the 

*  See  Appendix,  N.  7,  *Letter  from  G.  L.  Cataneo,  of  24th  Sept., 
1 501.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

t  Gregorovius,  Lucrezia  Borgia,  i8g  seg'.;  Reumont,  III.,  i,  239. 

%  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  167,  and  the  very  compromising  letter 
about  Alexander  VI.  of  two  Florentines  cited  in  the  note.  Cf.  also 
Creighton,  IV.,  50;  Zeitschr.  fur  Kathol.  Theol.,  X.,  203 ;  L'Epinois  in 
the  Rev.  de  Quest.  Hist,  XXXVII.,  631  ;  Yriarte,  Autour  des  Borgia, 
40.  On  Pius  II.'s  rebuke,  see  Pastor,  Hist.  Popes,  II.,  452  (Engl, 
trans.).  The  account,  De  convivio  quinquaginta  meretricum,  which 
Gregorovius,  VII.,  456,  ed.  4,  passes  over  as  mere  "  scandalous  gossip," 
is  not  a  later  interpolation  (see  Pieper  in  the  Romisch.  Quartalschrift, 
1893,  P-  346),  but  is  to  be  found  in  most  of  the  MS.  copies  of  Burchardi 
Diarium  Alexander  VI.,  and  in  that  which  is  in  the  Archives  of  the 
Ceremonieri  in  the  Vatican.  *Cod.  A— 6,  f.  527.  (A  later  hand  has  drawn 
a  penstroke  through  the  passage  ;  but  it  corresponds  word  for  word  with 
the  printed  text.)  In  the  present  state  of  the  materials  it  is  not  possible 
to  formulate  a  critical  judgment  as  to  the  correctness  of  all  the  details  of 
the  Convivium  in  Burchardi's  narrative  ;  no  doubt  there  is  a  good  deal  of 
exaggeration.  But,  especially  taking  into  account  the  Florentine  letters 
mentioned  above,  there  can  be  no  question  that  there  was  dancing  of  a 
very  reprehensible  character.  PiEPER'S  arguments  {/oc.  cit.,  396-397) 
against  the  trustworthiness  of  Burchardi's  text  do  not  seem  to  me 
convincing. 


THE   CELEBRATION    OF   THE   MARRIAGE,  ICX) 

ducal  family,  with  a  retinue  of  500  persons,  started  from 
Ferrara.  It  reached  Rome  on  the  23rd,  and  on  the  same 
day  the  Ferrarese  Envoy,  writing  to  his  master,  expresses 
the  favourable  impression  produced  on  him  by  Lucrezia. 
"  She  is  singularly  graceful  in  everything  she  does,  and  her 
manners  are  modest,  gentle,  and  decorous.  She  is  also  a 
good  Christian,  and  more,  she  is  going  to  confession  and 
to  communion  on  Christmas  Day.  As  regards  good  looks 
she  has  quite  sufficient,  but  her  pleasing  expression  and 
gracious  ways  make  her  seem  even  more  beautiful  than 
she  is.  In  short,  she  seems  to  me  to  be  such  that  there  is 
nothing  to  fear,  but  rather  the  very  best  to  be  hoped,  in  every 
way  from  her."*  On  the  30th  December  Lucrezia's  marriage 
with  Alfonso,  by  procuration,  was  celebrated  with  great 
splendour  in  the  Vatican.  The  bride's  dress  was  of  "  gold 
brocade  and  crimson  velvet  trimmed  with  ermine.  The 
hanging  sleeves  touched  the  ground,  and  her  long  train  was 
borne  by  maids  of  honour.  A  black  band  confined  her 
golden  hair,  and  she  wore  on  her  head  a  light  coif  of  gold 
and  silk.  Her  necklace  was  a  string  of  pearls  with  a  locket 
consisting  of  an  emerald,  a  ruby,  and  one  large  pearl." 
From  thence  until  the  day  of  her  departure  (6th  January, 
1502)  one  entertainment  succeeded  another  in  a  perpetual 
round  of  gaiety.  Plays,  among  others  Plautus'  Menaechmi, 
balls,  and  allegorical  representations  alternated  with  races, 
tournaments,  and  bull-fights.f 

*  Report  of  El  Prete  da  Correggio  in  Gregorovius,  Lucrezia 
Borgia,  194-5.  Cf.  Luzio-Renier,  Mantova,  113,  and  NiCCOLo  da 
Correggio  in  Giorn.  st.  d.  Lett.  Ital.  (1893),  XXIL,  66  seq.  On  the 
bridal  escort,  see  also  Sanuto,  IV.,  195  seq.^  and  Arch.  d.  Soc.  Rom., 
VII.,  585-586. 

t  Gregorovius,  Lucrezia  Borgia,  197,  199  seq.\  Sanuto,  IV.,  211. 
Cf.  Dal  Re,  104  seq.)  Ricci  Signorini,  II  passagio  di  L.  B.  per  Cesena 
(Cesena,  1889).  On  the  festivities  at  Forli  on  Lucrezia's  passage 
through  that  place  see  Arch.  St.  Ital.,  5  Serie,  X.  (1892),  280-301.     On 


no  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Lucrezia's  marriage  with  the  heir  of  Ferrara  was  the 
turning  point  in  her  life.  In  spite  of  all  the  investigations 
of  recent  times  much  in  the  Roman  life  of  this  remarkable 
woman  remains  shrouded  in  darkness ;  but  this  is  not  the 
case  in  regard  to  its  closing  period  in  Ferrara.*  During 
this  time  Lucrezia,  who  was  Duchess  of  Ferrara  from  1505 
till  24th  June,  1 5 19,  when  she  died  in  her  confinement,  not 
only  won  the  love  of  her  husband,  but  also  that  of  her 
people.  All  accusations  in  regard  to  her  conduct,  which  no 
doubt  were  not  entirely  groundless,-]-  from  henceforth  wholly 
cease.  Lucrezia  is  only  heard  of  as  a  faithful  and  loving 
wife,  and  the  consoler  and  advocate  of  all  who  were  poor  or 
oppressed.  Her  beauty,  added  to  her  sweetness  and  kind- 
ness, captivated  the  hearts  of  all.  She  encouraged  arts,  and 
was  surrounded  and  praised  by  cultivated  men  such  as 
Ariosto,  Bembo,  Strozzi,  and  others. 

Lucrezia  Borgia  di  cui  d'ora  in  era 
La  belta,  la  virtu,  e  la  fama  honesta, 
E  la  fortuna,  va  crescendo  non  meno 
Che  giovin  pianta  in  morbida  terra; 

the  bull-fights  in  Rome,  cf,  Ademollo,  Carnevale,  37-45  seq.\  LUZIO, 
Fed.  Gonzaga,  49  ;  ClAN,  Cortegiano,  48. 

*  In  addition  to  ROSCOE,  Leo  X.,  I.,  378  seq.,  Sabbatini  in  Educa- 
tore  Storico,  A°  III.,  Disp.  5a(Modena,  1845)  ;  CampORI  in  the  Nuov. 
Antolog.  (1866)  ;  Antonelli  in  the  Arch.  Venet,  II.  (1871),  429  j'^^.; 
ZUCCHETTI,  L.  B.  Duchessa  di  Ferrara  ( Milan,  1869);  ^  especially  Gil- 
bert, II.,  97  seq.,  and  Gregorovius,  Lucrezia  Borgia,  209  seq.  Gil- 
bert's representation  is  very  inadequate  (see  Reumont  in  the  Bonn. 
Literaturblatt,  V.,  476).  In  regard  to  Gregorovius,  see  Vol.  V.,  p.  399, 
Antonelli's  work,  L.  B.  in  Ferrara  (Ferrara,  1867),  contains  nothing  but 
extracts  taken  from  the  Ferrarese  Chronicle  of  Bernardino  Zambotto  and 
Niccolo  of  Parma's  narrative  of  the  bringing  of  Lucrezia  from  Rome, 
and  the  festivities  at  Ferrara  on  her  arrival.  On  the  relations  between 
Lucrezia  Borgia  and  Isabella  d'Este,  see  LuziO,  I  Precettori  d'Isab. 
d'Este  (Nozze  Renier-Campostrini.  Ancona,  1887),  42,  in  which  Gre- 
gorovius' mistaken  statement  is  corrected. 
+  Cf.  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  p.  399,  note  %• 


THE   CHARACTER   OF   LUCREZIA   BORGIA.  I  1 1 

is  the  description  of  her  in  Ariosto's  Orlando  Furioso 
(XIII.,  19).  Without  giving  credit  to  every  flattering  word 
that  may  occur  in  the  strains  of  a  Court-poet,  we  may  fairly 
assume  that  he  would  not  have  written  anything  that  was 
in  flagrant  contradiction  with  the  general  opinion.  "  The 
art  of  flattery  has  its  laws  and  its  limits;  he  who  would 
praise  a  royal  personage  for  qualities  in  which  he  or  she  was 
notoriously  deficient,  must  be  utterly  unacquainted  with  the 
world  and  the  usages  of  society.  Such  praise  would  practi- 
cally be  satire,  and  the  foolish  courtier  would  certainly  not 
be  rewarded."*  The  poets,  however,  are  not  the  only 
witnesses  in  her  favour.  Scholars,  statesmen,  and  historians 
all  agree  in  pronouncing  the  same  verdict,  so  that  the  latest 
biographer  of  the  Duchess  says  at  the  close  of  his  work  : 
"  This  at  least  is  certain,  that  during  her  life  at  Ferrara  she 
was  regarded   as   a   pattern  of  womanly  virtue."-]-     More 

*  Campori  loc.  cit.;  JORRY,  1 82  seq.;  Reumont,  III.,  I,  205. 
GeiGER, also,  in  the  Zeitsch.  fiir  vergleich.  Literaturgesch.,  N.  F.  II.,  154, 
says  :  "  If  we  are  not  to  brand  such  men  as  Ariosto,  Strozzi,  etc.,  as  liars, 
or  at  any  rate  as  guilty  of  the  most  fulsome  adulation,  we  must  believe  in 
a  real  conversion  of  heart  and  change  of  life  in  Lucrezia." 

t  Gregorovius,  281.  On  the  relations  between  Bembo  and 
Lucrezia,  this  historian  says,  p.  277  :  "There  can  be  no  doubt  that 
Bembo  was  passionately  in  love  with  Lucrezia,  but  it  were  vain  to  attempt 
to  prove  that  there  was  anything  which  went  beyond  the  limits  of  what 
was  permissible  in  the  marks  of  friendship  bestowed  on  him  by  that 
beautiful  woman."  Mazzuchelli  (see  JORRY,  176)  and  Thausing  in 
the  Vienna  Deutsch.  Zeitung  (1883),  N.  3954,  pass  a  similar  judgment. 
With  Hildebrand  (II.,  53),  I  will  not  attempt  to  decide  whether  or  not 
Gilbert  (I I.,  127  seq^  has  been  successful  in  proving  that  the  famous  lock 
of  fair  hair  which  is  shewn  in  the  Ambrosiana  at  Milan  with  Lucrezia's 
letters  to  Bembo,  was  not  hers.  "But  in  any  case,"  Hildebrand  says, 
"  Gilbert  is  right  in  holding  that  the  '  desiderosa  gratificarvi '  with  which 
one  of  her  letters  concludes  does  not  give  the  smallest  right  to  infer  any 
return  of  love  on  her  part.  Any  one  who  knows  Italian  is  familiar  with 
this  phrase  as  the  commonest   expression  of  complimentary  affability 


112  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

especially  in  times  of  scarcity  she  shewed  herself  a  "  Mother 
of  the  people  " ;  and  actually  pawned  her  jewels  in  order  to 
help  the  poor.  Jovius  tells  how  completely  she  renounced 
all  the  luxury  to  which  she  had  been  accustomed  from  her 
youth,  and  lived  a  simple,  religious  life.  He  lays  special 
stress  on  her  solid  practice  of  virtue ;  her  religion  was  no 
mere  show.  As  a  proof  of  her  practical  charity  he  states 
that  she  founded  a  convent  and.  chapel  for  well-born  ladies 
out  of  her  own  private  purse.* 

After  Lucrezia's  departure  from  Rome,  Caesar's  influence 
became  absolutely  unbounded.  He  was  the  real  master  ; 
in  almost  everything  the  Pope  conformed  absolutely  to  the 
iron  will  of  this  man,  the  most  terrible  of  all  the  cruel 
offspring  of  the  Renaissance.  Caesar  was  the  tyrant  of 
Rome,  which  he  filled  with  his  spies  and  minions.  A  word 
against  him  was  a  crime  of  high  treason.  A  man  who  had 
made  too  free  with  his  name  when  in  domino  had  his  hand 
and  his  tongue  cut  off  and  fastened  together.f  The 
Venetian  Ambassador  was  unable  to  protect  one  of  his 
countrymen  who  was  supposed  to  have  circulated  a 
pamphlet  which  contained  reflections  on  Alexander  and 
his  son.  He  was  murdered  and  his  body  cast  into  the 
Tiber.  The  Pope  himself,  though  callous  as  a  rule  about 
such  things,  blamed  his  son  for  this.  "  The  Duke,"  he  said 
to  the  Ferrarese  Envoy,  "  is  a  good-natured  man  ;  but  he 
cannot  tolerate  an  insult.  I  have  often  told  him  that 
Rome  is  a  free  city,  and  that  here  every  one  has  a  right  to 

from  a  Prince  to  an  inferior  in  rank."  For  a  criticism  on  Gilbert's  work, 
see  especially  Reumont  in  the  Bonn.  Literaturblatt,  V.,  476  seq. 

*  JOVIUS,  Vitae  clar.  vir.,  I.,  187.  Cf.  ROSCOE,  Leo  X.,  I.,  395  ; 
JORRY,  loc.  cit.  ;  Gregorovius,  304.  See  also  the  testimony  of  B. 
PiSTOFlLO  in  the  Atti  Mod.,  III.,  493. 

t  See  Burchardi  Diarium,  III.,  172.  Punishments  such  as  this 
were  then  quite  usual.   .^See  Maury,  Rev.  Hist.,  XIII.,  98  seq. 


PAMPHLET   AGAINST   THE   BORGIA.  II3 

write  and  say  what  he  likes.  Plenty  of  things  are  said  of 
me,  but  I  take  no  notice.  The  Duke  replied,  That  may 
be  all  very  well  for  Rome,  but  I  will  teach  such  people  to 
be  sorry  for  what  they  say."  Finally  the  Pope  reminded 
his  son  how  many  of  the  Cardinals,  whom  Charles  VIII. 
had  himself  acknowledged  to  have  been  traitors  to  their 
master,  had  been  forgiven  by  him.  "  I  could  easily,"  he  said, 
"  have  had  the  Vice-Chancellor  and  Cardinal  Giuliano  della 
Rovere  killed  ;  but  I  did  not  wish  to  harm  any  one,  and  I 
pardoned  fourteen  of  the  nobles."  *  A  short  time  before 
this  Alexander  had  proved  that  this  was  not  mere  palaver. 

At  the  close  of  the  year  1501  a  pamphlet  against  the 
Borgia  had  appeared  which  surpassed  all  former  attacks  in 
virulence.  It  was  in  the  form  of  a  letter  to  one  of  the 
exiled  Roman  Barons,  Silvio  Savelli,  then  living  at  the 
Court  of  Maximilian  I.,  and  was  dated  from  the  Spanish 
camp  at  Tarento,  1 5th  November,  1 501.  "  You  are  mistaken, 
my  dear  friend,"  it  said,  "  if  you  think  that  you  ought  to 
attempt  to  come  to  terms  with  this  monster.  He  Ras 
betrayed  you,  banished  you,  and  resolved  on  your  destruc- 
tion, simply  out  of  greed  and  faithlessness,  and  for  no  other 
reason.  Therefore  you  should  repay  an  enmity  that  will 
never  cease  with  an  unalterable  hatred.  You  must  choose 
a  different  path  and  disclose  the  misery  of  Rome  to  the 
true  physician.  Lay  before  the  Emperor  and  the  other 
Princes  of  the  empire  all  the  evil  that  has  proceeded  from 
this  cursed  beast  for  the  perdition  of  Christendom  ;  narrate 
the  abominable  crimes  by  which  God  is  set  at  naught,  and 

*  From  a  *Report  of  the  Ferrarese  Envoy,  Beltrando  Costabili,  of 
1st  Febmary,  1502,  in  Gregorovius,  VII.,  453-454,  ed.  3  (460-61,  ed.  4). 
Cf.  Lord  Acton,  364.  Another  Ferrarese  Envoy  describes  in  a  *Letter, 
dat.  Rome,  30th  October,  1501,  that  Caesar  never  goes  out  without  being 
masked.  (See  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  p.  403.)  El  resto  del  tempo  he 
remains  shut  up  in  quelle  sue  camere.  State  Archives,  Modena. 
VOL.    VI.  I 


114  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

the  heart  of  religion  pierced  through.  Describe  these 
horrors  in  detail  before  the  Diet,  and  take  care  that  they 
shall  be  disseminated  from  mouth  to  mouth.  It  is  idle  for 
Christendom  to  groan  over  the  nations  which  are  torn  from 
her  arms  by  her  old  enemy  the  Turk,  while  this  new 
Mahomet  far  surpasses  the  old  one  in  the  havoc  he  causes 
in  what  yet  remains  of  faith  and  religion  by  his  filthy 
crimes.  These  are  the  days  of  Antichrist,  for  no  greater 
enemy  of  God,  Christ,  and  religion  can  be  conceived."  It 
goes  on  to  accuse  all  the  Borgia,  Alexander,  Lucrezia,  and 
Caesar,  of  every  imaginable  crime  and  vice.  All  that  could 
be  invented  by  political  hatred  in  Milan,  Venice,  and 
Naples,  and  all  the  venom  that  Roman  satire  could  hatch, 
is  heaped  together  and  poured  forth  in  unmeasured 
language.  "  There  is  no  sort  of  outrage  or  vice,"  it  says  in 
one  place,  "  that  is  not  openly  practised  in  the  Palace  of 
the  Pope.  The  perfidy  of  the  Scythians  and  Carthaginians, 
the  bestiality  and  savagery  of  Nero  and  Caligula  are 
surpassed.  Rodrigo  Borgia  is  an  abyss  of  vice,  a  subverter 
of  all  justice,  human  or  divine.  God  grant  that  the  Princes 
may  come  to  the  rescue  of  the  tottering  Church,  and  steer 
the  sinking  barque  of  Peter  out  of  the  storm  and  into  the 
haven  !  God  grant  they  may  rise  up  and  deliver  Rome 
from  the  destroyer  who  was  born  to  be  her  ruin,  and  bring 
back  justice  and  peace  to  the  city  !  "  * 

This  diatribe,  brimming  over  with  political  hatred  and 
the  spirit  of  revenge,  cannot,  of  course,  be  regarded  as 
historically   trustworthy.     But   it    shews    what   dangerous 

*  The  whole  letter  is  to  be  found  in  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III., 
182-187  (oil  P-  183  read  conventibus  instead  of  convenientibus,  and 
on  p.  187  labanti  instead  of  labenti).  The  author  was  evidently  a 
Humanist,  or  connected  with  the  Humanists.  Gregorovius,  VII., 
460,  ed.  3  (467,  ed.  4),  conjectures  that  he  may  have  been  one  of  the 
Colonna. 


INDIFFERENCE   OF   THE   POPE.  115 

weapons  the  disgraceful  conduct  of  the  Borgia  put  into  the 
hands  of  their  enemies.* 

Alexander  had  this  libel  read  to  him ;  but,  indifferent 
as  he  was  to  public  opinion,  it  never  occurred  to  him  to 
attempt  to  curtail  the  liberty  of  speech  or  writing  in  Rome. 
We  hear  nothing  of  any  measures  to  check  the  circulation 
of  the  pamphlet,  or  any  attempt  to  prosecute  its  author. 
Silvio  Savelli,  in  whose  interest  it  was  professedly  written, 
was  allowed  later  to  return  to  Rome  and  was  received  in 
audience  by  the  Pope.-f- 

Alexander  paid  heavily  for  his  indifference  to  all  these 
attacks  and  accusations.;]:  Writings  like  these  exercised 
a  lasting  effect  on  the  judgments  regarding  him,  both  of  his 
contemporaries  and  of  later  times. 

The  longer  this  "  incredible  liberty "  in  the  expression 
of  opinion  lasted  in  Rome  the  more  freely  was  it  taken 
advantage  of  by  the  enemies  of  the  Borgia.  "  Sannazaro 
certainly  wrote  his  epigrams  in  a  place  of  comparative 
security,  but  others  said  the  most  hazardous  things  at  the 
very  doors  of  the  Court." §  Epigrammatic  satire  developed 
enormously  in  literary  circles  in  Rome.  Literary  men  vied 
with  each  other  in  producing  the  most  melodramatic  and 
unheard  of  accusations,  and  spicing  them  with  the  most 
caustic  witll 

*  Creighton,  IV.,  22.    Cf.  Alvisi,  223  224. 

t  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  182  ;  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  I.,  309. 

X  "  Alexander,"  says  Lange,  32,  "  as  a  Sybarite  who  cared  nothing  for 
the  opinion  of  the  world,  bore  these  attacks  with  perfect  equanimity,  and 
unless  they  contained  actual  threats  never  took  any  measures  in  regard 
to  them.  He  looked  upon  Rome  as  a  privileged  place  where  every  one 
should  be  left  free  to  speak  and  write  as  he  pleased." 

§  BURCKHARDT,  Cultur,  I.,  309,  ed.  3  ;  cf.  152  seq. 

II  LuziO  in  the  Giorn.  st.  d.  Lett.  Ital,  XIX.,  89  seq.,  has  collected  a 
multitude  of  satires  and  epigrams  mostly  drawn  from  printed  sources. 
Cf.  Ibid.,  XVII.,  296,  note,  and  XIX.,  455.    See  also  FUMi,  Alessan.  VI., 


Il6  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Alexander  was  often  now  loaded  with  vituperation  by 
the  very  same  persons  who  had  formerly  "  praised  him  to 
the  skies."*  Just  at  this  time  (151 1)  Cardinal  Carafifa  had 
had  an  ancient  statue,  supposed  to  represent  Hercules 
strangling  Geryon,  placed  on  a  pedestal  just  outside  his 
palace,  which  was  situated  in  one  of  the  most  frequented 
thoroughfares  of  Rome.-f-     Burchard  relates  how,  in  August 

102  seq.,  and  Doc.  intorno  Pio  II.  e  III.,  16  seq.  The  number  of 
MS.  epigrams  is  even  greater,  the  majority  of  which  were  not  written 
until  after  the  Pope's  death,  and  later.  {Cf.  Pieper  in  the  Romischen 
Quartalschrift,  1893,  p.  393.)  I  can  only  mention  a  few.  Thus,  see 
Cod.  9846  in  the  Court  Library  at  Vienna  ;  Cod.  Lat.  428,  f.  265,  in  the 
State  Library  at  Munich;  Cod.  Vatic.  3351,  in  the  Vatican  Library; 
poems  of  Fausto,  Maddaleno  de  Capodiferro,  f.  68  (In  Alexandrum 
VI.,  P.  M.,  f.  74  :  In  edictum  contra  lenones  Alex.  VI.,  f.  90  ;  Contra 
Alexandrum  VI.,  and  specially  f.  ']']  ;  De  vitiis  Alexandri  VI.,  P.  M. 
Then  also  against  others  of  the  Borgia  family,  e.g.^  f  55b  :  De  Dorothea 
a  Caesare  Borgia  rapta).  Cod.  Hamilton,  561,  formerly  in  the  possession 
of  one  of  the  Rovere  Cardinals,  contains,  f.  9,  atrocious  verses  against 
AJiEExander,  e.g.  : 

Heredem  certum  ut  possit  sibi  linquere  Sextus 
Ex  nota  prolem  suscipere  instituit. 

(Royal  Library,  Berlin.)  The  same  detestable  accusation  is  to  be  found 
in  Protestant  polemics  of  the  i6th  Century  (e.g.,  L.  Osiander,  Sieben 
Predigten  gegen  Feucht  und  Pistorius,  1589,  pp.  38-39),  in  the  verses  : — 

Conditus  hoc  tumulo  Lucretia  nomine,  sed  re 
Thais,  Alexandra  filia,  sponsa,  nurus, 

which  are  quoted  as  true.  It  has  been  clearly  proved,  supra,  p.  105, 
note  t,  that  these  charges  are  calumnies.  See  Vol.  V.  of  this  work, 
p.  520.  Burchard's  silence,  from  which  Gothein,  461,  note  2,  infers 
their  truth,  is  no  proof  whatever ;  as  L.  Geiger  has  shewn  in  the 
Deutsche  Literaturzeitung  (1888),  p.   175 1. 

*  TOMMASINI,  Evangelista  Maddaleni  de  Capodiferro,  in  the  Atti  dei 
Lincei,  4  Serie,  CI.  di  scienze  mor.  storiche,  X.,  9.     Roma,  1893. 

t  Reumont,  III.,  I,  561  where  also  the  older  literature  relating  to 
Pasquino  is  given. 


THE   STATUE   OF    PASQUINO.  II7 

1 501,  on  the  pedestal  of  this  antique  fragment,  which  then 
went  by  the  name  of  Pasquino  (it  is  now  thought  to  be 
Ajax  with  the  body  of  Achilles),  a  prophecy  of  the  death 
of  the  Pope  was  affixed,  which  was  quickly  circulated 
throughout  the  whole  of  Rome.  This  prediction,  he  adds, 
was  posted  up  in  several  other  parts  of  the  city :  *  in  the 
Campo  di  Fiore,  the  Bridge  of  St.  Angelo,  the  doors  of 
the  Vatican  Library,  and  the  gates  of  the  Papal  Palace. 
The  number  of  places  here  mentioned  proves  that  at 
that  time  the  popular  and  courtly  epigram  was  not  yet  a 
fixed  institution  in  Rome.  Up  to  the  time  of  Leo  X.  the 
statue  of  Pasquino  is  only  occasionally  mentioned  as  the 
place  on  which  epigrams  were  posted.  It  had  not  yet 
acquired  any  special  distinction  in  this  respect.  It  was  in 
his  reign  that  it  first  became  the  recognised  place  for 
affixing  all  the  epigrams  and  witticisms  of  the  Roman 
satirists.-j-  It  seems  thus  equally  clear  that  the  origin  of  the 
Pasquinade  literature,  centred  here,  was  scholarly  rather  than 
popular.  From  the  year  1504,  on  the  Feast  of  S.  Mark 
(25th  April),  this  figure  was  dressed  up  in  masquerade 
as  Minerva,  Jupiter,  Janus,  Apollo,  Flora,  etc.,  while  the 
members  of  the  literary  circles  covered  its  pedestal  with 
witty  epigrams,  For  the  rest  of  the  year  Pasquino  relapsed 
into  silence ;  as  yet  he  was  still  in  the  youthful,  academic 
stage  of  his  existence.^ 

*  BURCHARDi  Diarium,  III.,  157. 

t  Cf.  LuziO  in  the  Giorn.  st.  d.  Lett.  Ital,  XIX.,  94-95  ;  G.  A. 
Cesareo  in  the  N.  Antologia,  CXXXV.  (1894),  537  seq.;  and  Pasquino  e 
la  Satira  sotto  Leone  X.  (Roma,  1894).  For  a  review  of  this  work  see 
also  Giorn.  st.  d.  Lett.  Ital.,  XXIV.,  473  seq. 

%  Cf.  Gnoli  and  LuziO  in  the  Nuova  Antologia  (1890)  j.Gennaio, 
2,  16;  Agosto,  16.  See  also  Errera  in  Arch.  St.  Ital.,  5  Serie,  X., 
176  seq..,  and  ClAN  in  Giorn.  st.  d.  Lett.  Ital.,  XVII.,  295  seq. 
MORANDl's  contention  in  the  FanfuUa  della  Domenica,  XII.,  52,  against 
Luzio  is  not  convincing.     C/!  Giorn.  st.  d.  Lett.  Ital,  XVII.,  151.     The 


Il8  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

There  can  be  no  doubt  that  the  comic  poems  of  that 
time  in  Rome  were  often  accompanied  by  caricatures. 
When  later  (in  the  year  1 509),  collections  of  these  Pasquin- 
ades began  to  be  made,  the  pictures  were  thrown  away, 
and  only  the  epigrams  were  kept.  Thus  valuable  materials 
for  the  history  of  culture  have  been  lost  and  we  can  never 
hope  to  recover  them.  Even  such  things  as  abortions  like, 
for  instance,  the  monster  that  w^as  said  to  have  been  found 
in  January  1496,  at  the  time  of  the  overflow  of  the  Tiber,* 
were,  as  Alexander's  misgovern ment  grew  worse  and  worse, 
caught  hold  of  by  the  enemies  of  the  Borgia,  and  in- 
terpreted in   their  own  sense.-j- 

Five  weeks  after  Lucrezia's  departure,  Alexander  and 
Caesar,  accompanied  by  six  Cardinals,  set  out  for  Piombino, 
which  had  surrendered  in  the  previous  September.  The 
object  of  their  journey  was  to  inspect  the  fortifications 
which  were  being  constructed  there,  apparently  under  the 
direction  of  Leonardo  da  Vinci.^  On  the  17th  February, 
1502,  they  set  out  by  way  of  Civita  Vecchia  and  Corneto, 
and  after  Piombino  the  island  of  Elba  was  also  visited. 
The  return  journey  was  begun  on  the  ist  of  March,  but  a 
violent  storm  came  on,  and  they  did  not  succeed  in  reaching 
Porto  Ercole  till  the  4th.  Although  the  gale  had  by  no 
means  subsided,  the  voyage  was  pursued  as  far  as  Corneto  ; 
but  when  they  got  there  the  sea  was  running  so  high  that 

view  given  in  the  text  is  corroborated  by  a  scarce  work  in  the  Court 
Library  at  Munich  (Po.  Lat,  861)  :  Carmina  apposita  Pasquino  Paci 
Anno  1520  (Printed  at  Rome  in  1520).  In  Mazzochi's  Dedication  to  the 
Card,  del  Monte,  dat.  Romae,  Kal.  Maii  1 520,  we  find  :  Solent  namque 
juvenes  hie  ...  .  geniam  quotannis  musis  exerceri,  accendique  ad 
virtutem,  magna  principis,  magna  tua,  magna  caeterorum  omnium 
delectatione. 

*  See  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  p.  480. 

+  Lange,  32,  43  ;  cf.  39. 

%  Cf.  Alvisi,  244. 


PLANS   OF   CESAR   BORGIA   AGAINST   TUSCANY.      1 19 

it  was  impossible  to  land.  As  the  storm  still  continued  to 
increase,  the  terrified  crew  threw  themselves  on  their  faces 
on  the  deck,  the  Cardinals  wept,  the  Pope  alone  remained 
perfectly  calm.  In  the  evening  they  were  obliged  to  return 
to  Porto  Ercole,  and  from  thence  Alexander  travelled  back 
to  Rome  by  Corneto  and  Civita  Vecchia,  and  arrived  there 
on  the  nth  of  March.* 

There  was  a  political  reason  for  this  expedition.  Piom- 
bino  was  to  form  the  basis  of  Caesar's  operations  against 
Tuscany,  where  the  enmity  between  Florence  and  Siena, 
and  the  war  against  Pisa,  created  a  favourable  situation  for 
him.-j-  In  other  directions,  also,  the  moment  was  opportune. 
The  King  of  France  was  thought  to  be  safe,  as  he  required 
the  help  of  the  Pope  in  the  coming  struggle  with  the 
Spanish  League.  The  Roman  Barons  had  been  crushed, 
and  all  was  quiet  in  the  Romagna.  Ferrara  was  an  ally ; 
Venice  was  too  busy  with  the  Turks  to  interfere ;  there  was 
nothing  to  fear  from  Germany.^  Such  a  happy  combina- 
tion of  circumstances  called  for  prompt  action,  and  all 
possible  speed  was  made  in  the  preparations.  The  artillery 
of  the  dethroned  King  of  Naples  was  purchased  for  50,000 
ducats.§    The  fact  that  Caesar  alone,  in  May,  1502,  drew  the 

*  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  192-196,  and  SiGlSMONDO  DE'  CONTI, 
II.,  269;  Gregorovius,  VII.,  454-455,  ed.  3  (461,  ed.  4).  Cf.  also 
■s^Acta  Consist,  in  the  Consistorial  Archives,  and  a  **Letter  of  G.  L. 
Cataneo,  dat.  Rome,  17th  Feb.,  1502.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

t  Reumont,  III.,  I,  241.  Cf.  G.  L.  Cataneo's  **Letter  of  17th  Feb., 
1 502.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

X  G.  L.  Cataneo's  **Letter  of  17th  Feb.,  1502.  (Gonzaga  Archives, 
Mantua.)  Cf.  CreiGHTON,  IV.,  25  seq.  On  the  pacification  of  the 
Romagna  by  Caesar,  see  REUMONT,  III.,  I,  240,  and  Alvisi,  246  seq.., 
259  seq..,  261.  The  last  named  historian  shews  that  Caesar  displayed 
great  administrative  capacity  in  his  government  of  the  Romagna,  and  v;as 
a  generous  patron  of  Art. 

§  The  Portuguese  Envoy  names  a  lower  sum.     See  Corp.  Dipl.  Port., 


I20  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

sum  of  54,000  florins  out  of  the  Papal  treasury,  shews  what 
large  demands  were  made  upon  it  by  the  Pope's  nephews. 
This  did  not  include  the  cost  of  weapons  and  ammunition. 
Between  loth  May  and  12th  July  the  Apostolical  treasury 
paid  for  83,098  pounds  of  powder  (each  1000  pounds  cost 
40  ducats).  A  separate  register  was  kept  in  the  Secretariat 
for  the  ordnatice  expenses.* 

On  the  13th  June  Caesar  left  Rome  at  the  head  of  his 
army.  No  one,  says  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  knew  whither 
he  was  bound,  but  all  the  inhabitants  of  the  States  of  the 
Church  trembled  at  the  approach  of  his  troops,  who  in 
their  violence  and  exactions  behaved  as  though  they  were 
in  an  enemy's  country .-j- 

The  Duke  proceeded  to  Spoleto,  and  from  thence  entered 
the  Duchy  of  Urbino.  By  dint  of  fraud  and  treachery  he 
succeeded  in  making  himself  master  of  the  whole  country, 
its  deluded  ruler,  Guidobaldi,  barely  escaping  out  of  his 
hands  by  a  timely  flight.^  In  the  following  month  he  took 
Giulio  Cesare  Varano,  the  murderer  of  his  brother  Rudolf, 
prisoner,  and  conquered  Camerino.§     He  now  received  the 

I.,  34  ;  but  Dr.  Gottlob  states  that  the  sum  in  the  text  is  that  which  is 
found  in  the  disbursements  mentioned  in  Cod.  XXXII.,  242  (at  the  end), 
in  the  Barberini  Library,  Rome. 

*  GOTTLOB,  Cam.  Ap.,  229. 

t  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  II.,  251.  Alvisi  has  shewn  that  Caesar 
endeavoured  to  check  the  rapacity  of  his  soldiers,  but  the  testimony  of 
such  a  well-informed  contemporary  witness  can  hardly  be  set  aside.  In 
this,  as  in  several  other  points,  Alvisi  seems  to  me  to  go  too  far  in  his 
desire  to  take  an  unprejudiced  view  of  Caesar,  and  reject  the  calumnies 
of  his  contemporaries.  How  "  barbarous  "  was  his  treatment  of  Fossom- 
brone  is  clearly  shewn  by  GlAC.  Lauro,  *Storia  de  Fossombrone.  MS. 
in  the  Plattner  Library  in  Rome. 

J  DenniSTOUN,  I.,  385  ;  UGOLINI,  II.,  89  seq.;  SUGENHEIM,  374  ; 
Ranke,  Rom.  und  Germ.  Volker,  158  seq.;  Cipolla,  784  ;  Alvisi,  528 
seq.;  Luzio-Renier,  Mantova,  124  seq. 

§  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  II.,  253  ;  Sugenheim,  375  seq.;  Balan, 


HE   COMES   TO   TERMS   WITH   LOUIS   XII,  121 

title  of  Caesar  Borgia  of  France,  by  the  Grace  of  God  Duke 
of  the  Romagna  and  of  Valencia  and  Urbino,  Prince  of 
Andria,  Lord  of  Piombino,  Standard-bearer  and  General-in- 
Chief  of  the  Church.* 

When  the  Pope  heard  of  the  conquest  of  Camerino  he 
was  "  almost  beside  himself  with  joy,"  writes  the  Venetian 
Enyoy,  Antonio  Giustinian.  "  He  could  so  little  contain 
himself  that,  to  give  some  vent  to  his  feelings  and  mark 
the  importance  of  the  news,  he  got  up  from  his  chair  and 
went  to  the  window,  and  there  had  the  letter  of  his  Duke 
of  20th  July  from  Urbino  read  aloud."-]-  Camerino  was 
given  to  the  infant  Juan  Borgia,J  while  Caesar's  plans 
took  larger  and  larger  scope.  He  was,  in  fact,  on  the  high 
road  to  become  King  of  the  whole  of  Central  Italy.  He 
was  already  beginning  to  think  of  turning  his  arms  against 
Bologna  when  Louis  XH.  came  forward,  in  connection  with 
Neapolitan  relations  with  Asti,  and  gave  it  to  be  under- 
stood that  he  would  not  permit  any  further  developments. § 
All  the  enemies  of  the  Borgia  were  besieging  the  King 
with  complaints  of,  and  warnings  against,  the  Duke  of  the 
Romagna.  Caesar's  resolution  was  promptly  taken.  Dis- 
guising himself,  he  hastened  to  the  royal  camp  at  Milan, 
and  arrived  on  the  5th  of  August.  He  was  successful  in 
winning  Louis  by  the  promise  of  help  in  Naples,  in  return 
for  which  the  King  engaged  to  support  him  in  his  attack 
on  Bologna  and  the  Orsini.|| 

407  seq.^  409,  411  seq.  The  excommunication  of  G.  C.  Varano  is  in 
Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1501,  n.  17. 

*  VILLARI,  Machiavelli,  I.,  333  ;  GregorOvius,  VII.,  457-458,  ed.  3 
(464,  ed.  4). 

t  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  I.,  64  ;  cf.  76. 

X  RONCHINI,  46  seq.,  62  seq. 

§  ViLLARl,  Machiavelli,  I.,  333  seq.;  Cipolla,  785  ;  and  on  the  fresh 
rupture  between  Giuliano  della  Rovere  and  the  Pope,  Brosch,  88  seq. 

II  Alvisi,  300  seq.,  311  seq. 


122  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

At  this  moment  a  conspiracy  against  Caesar  was  formed 
amongst  the  chief  captains  of  the  mercenary  troops  under 
his  command.  "  They  were  afraid  that  the  dragon  was 
preparing  to  swallow  them  one  by  one."  *  On  the  9th  of 
October  the  conspirators  met  at  La  Magione,  not  far  from 
the  Lake  of  Thrasimene.  Many  of  the  Orsini  came,  the 
Cardinal,  the  Duke  of  Gravina,  Paolo,  and  Franciqtto, 
besides  Hermes,  the  son  of  Giovanni  Bentivoglio,  as  the 
representative  of  his  father,  Antonio  da  Venafro,  represent- 
ing Pandolfo,  Petrucci,  Gentile,  and  Giampaolo  Baglione, 
and  Vitellozzo  Vitelli.f  They  proceeded  at  once  to  action, 
and  on  the  15th  of  October  Paolo  Orsini  entered  Urbino, 
and  Guidobaldi  immediately  joined  him  there.  Without 
the  help  of  France,  Caesar  would  have  been  lost,  and  he 
exerted  himself  to  obtain  the  support  of  Venice  and 
Florence  also.  It  was  at  this  time  that  Machiavelli  was 
sent  as  Envoy  to  Csesar  at  Imola,  and  gave  the  first  indica- 
tion of  his  genius  as  a  political  historian  by  his  judgments 
of  the  "  inscrutable  Duke  who  hardly  ever  spoke,  but 
acted."  J 

Ferrara  promised  to  send  troops  to  Rome  if  the  Pope 
should  require  help  against  the  Orsini.§  Actually,  however, 
the  only  help  received  by  Csesar  came  from  France  alone  ; 
but  that  sufficed,  for  in  the  meanwhile  his  opponents  lost 
time  in  negotiations,  and  split  among  themselves. 

The  Duke  exerted  all  his  craft  to  break  up  the  League, 
and  fool  the  conspirators;  and  they  on  their  part  walked 

*  So  writes  G.  P.  Baglioni  on  the  nth  Oct.  See  ViLLARl,  Machia- 
velli, I.,  334. 

t  ViLLARi,  loc.  cit,  334 ;  SUGENHEIM,  385  ;  Ranke,  Rom.  und 
Germ.  Volker,  160;  SiGiSMONDO  de'  Conti,  II.,  257  seq,^  says  that 
Cardinal  Orsini  was  the  prime  mover  in  the  Confederacy. 

X  Ibid.,  339  seq.,  362  seq. 

§  Gregorovius,  VII.,  463,  ed.  3  (470,  ed.  4). 


C^SAR   BORGIA   TAKES   SINIGAGLIA.  1 23 

blindly  into  the  net  that  he  had  laid  for  them.*  Antonio 
da  Venafro  and  Paolo  Orsini  came  to  Imola  and  concluded 
an  alliance  offensive  and  defensive  with  the  Duke,  by  which 
they  bound  themselves  to  recover  Urbino  and  Camerino  for 
him.  Bentivoglio  entered  into  separate  negotiation  with 
CjEsar  ;  and  on  the  2nd  of  December  they  came  to  terms.f 
Soon  after  Urbino  and  Camerino  were  restored  to  him. 

On  the  loth  December  Csesar,  who  a  short  time  before 
had  received  considerable  sums  from  the  Papal  treasury,! 
proceeded  with  his  troops  from  Imola  to  Cesena.  "  No 
one  knew  or  could  guess  the  object  of  the  movement," 
writes  Machiavelli,  "  for  this  Signor  never  speaks  of  his 
intentions  until  he  carries  them  out,  and  he  carries  them 
out  at  the  proper  moment."  §  Soon,  however,  it  became 
evident  that  the  Duke's  purpose  was  to  take  Sinigaglia. 
Andrea  Doria  was  in  command  of  the  Castle.  When  he 
found  that  Csesar  was  hurrying  towards  the  city,  and 
already  preceded  by  the  troops  of  Vitellozzo  and  the  Orsini, 
he  fled  to  Venice.  The  commander  whom  he  left  in  charge 
declared  that  he  would  give  up  the  citadel  to  Caesar  but  to 
no  one  else.||  The  Duke  arrived  on  the  31st  of  December, 
and  was  joined  at  the  gates  by  Vitellozzo,  Paolo  Orsini, 
the  Duke  of  Gravina,  and  Oliverotto  of  Fermo.     He  re- 

*  SiGISMONDO  DE'  CONTI,  II.,  262. 

f  Besides  Villari,  Ioc.  cit.,  I.,  343  seq.,  cf.  also  CiPOLLA,  788,  and 
AlviSI,  547  seq.,  550  seq. 

X  *Die  III.  Decemb.  [1502]  recepi  ducat.  9000  auri  in  auro  .  .  .  . 
A.  S.  D.  N.  munerata  in  camera  Susanne  ....  mittenda  in  summa  due 
15,000  ill.  duci  Valentino,  que  recepi  in  duobus  sacculis.  *Intr.  et  exit., 
532  ;  at  the  end  of  a  loose  sheet  tacked  on  f.  4.  The  further  entries  in 
this  vol.  shew  that  Csesar  drew  enormous  sums  for  military  purposes. 
In  Perugia  he  had  600  German  mercenaries.  See  *Intr.  et  exit.,  533, 
f.  201.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

§  Letter  of  28th  Dec.     See  Villari,  I.,  352. 

II  Villari,  Machiavelli,  I.,  353. 


/ 


124  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

ceived  them  in  the  friendliest  manner,  and  they  entered 
together;  but  no  sooner  were  they  within  the  walls  than  he 
had  them  arrested,  and  their  people  disarmed.  That  very 
same  evening  Vitellozzo  and  Oliverotto  were  ruthlessly  put 
to  death.*  The  Orsini  soon  after  met  with  the  same  fate.f 
In  justification  of  these  murders  it  was  said  later  that  those 
chiefs  had  agreed  to  rise  against  the  Duke  and  assassinate 
him.  No  proofs  of  this  are  to  be  found ;  but  it  is  not 
unlikely  that  it  may  have  been  true.J 

Caesar  now  turned  with  lightning-like  rapidity  on  his 
other  foes.  On  ist  January,  1503,  he  set  off  for  Perugia  on 
his  way  to  Siena.  "  At  his  approach  all  the  smaller  despots 
(such  as  the  Vitelli  of  Citta  di  Castello,  Giampaolo  Bagli- 
one  of  Perugia,  etc.)  fled  as  from  that  of  a  hydra."§ 

The    Duke's   "extraordinary   good    fortune   and    super- 

*  On  the  tragedy  of  Sinigaglia,  in  addition  to  Machiavelli's  cold- 
blooded account  {cf.  ViLLARl,  I.,  354  seq})^  see  also  a  Letter  from  Isa- 
bella d'Este  to  her  husband,  of  loth  Jan.,  1503  (Arch.  St.  Ital.,  Serie  i, 
App.,  II.,  262  seq.\  and  Giustinian's  Despatch  of  4th  Jan.,  1503  (Dis- 
pacci,  I.,  304  seq.).  A  Letter  of  Caesar's  of  ist  Jan.,  1503,  in  LuziO- 
Renier,  Mantova,  133,  is  also  interesting  in  this  connection.  Amongst 
recent  authors,  see  Cipolla,  789  (good  against  Leonetti,  and  on  the 
question  of  Alexander  VI.'s  compHcity  in  this  deed)  ;  L'Epinois,  415  ; 
Alvisi,  388  seq.;  TOMMASINI,  Machiavelli,  I.,  256  seq.  Machiavelli 
tells  the  story  of  this  execution  (for  Ceesar's  contemporaries  regarded  it 
as  an  execution)  over  again,  but  with  fewer  details,  in  his  well-known 
"  Descrizione  del  modo  tenuto  dal  duca  Valentino  nell'  ammazzare  Vitel- 
lozzo," etc.  Gaspary,  II.,  345,  conjectures  that  some  alterations  were 
purposely  introduced  into  this  second  narrative  "  with  a  view  of  setting 
the  Duke's  sagacity  in  a  more  brilliant  light,  for  Machiavelli  was  never 
scrupulous  in  regard  to  strict  historical  accuracy  when  he  had  a  political 
doctrine  to  illustrate."  Alexander  VI.  bestowed  Fermo  on  Lucrezia's  son, 
Don  Rodrigo.     See  FuLVi,  Docum.  d.  Storia  de  Fermo.     Fermo,  1875. 

t  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  I.,  356  seq. 

X  Cipolla,  loc.  cit. 

§  Villari,  I.,  356  seq. 


THE    POPE    PROCEEDS    AGAINST   THE   ORSINI.         12$ 

human  sagacity,"  to  use  Machiavelli's  words,  so  encouraged 
the  Pope,  that  he  determined  to  proceed  now  himself 
against  the  Orsini,  On  the  3rd  of  January,  1503,  Cardinal 
Orsini,  now  blind,  but  still  spending  his  nights  in  play  and 
feasting,  was  arrested  in  the  Vatican,  and  taken  first  to 
Torre  di  Nona  and  then  to  St.  Angelo.*  At  the  same  time, 
Rinaldo  Orsini,  Archbishop  of  Florence,  Giacomo  Santa 
Croce,  and  other  adherents  of  the  family  were  put  in 
prison.  Cardinal  Orsini's  palace  and  all  his  property  were 
confiscated  by  Alexander  VI.  The  other  Cardinals  inter- 
ceded for  him,  but  without  effect.  The  Pope  declared  that 
his  treachery  and  participation  in  the  captains'  conspiracy 
could  not  be  left  unpunished.-}-  In  Rome  the  numerous 
arrests  created  quite  a  panic.  Many  fled  from  the  city,  so 
that  at  last  Alexander  found  it  necessary  to  send  for  the 
Conservators,  and  assure  them  that  all  the  guilty  persons 
had  now  been  disposed  of ;  the  other  citizens  were  to 
remain  in  Rome  and  enjoy  the  Carnival.  In  the  latter 
respect  he  himself  set  them  the  best  example.^ 

On  the  5th  of  January,  Jofre  Borgia  set  out  to  occupy 
Monte  Rotondo  and  the  other  strongholds  of  the  doomed 
family.  This  was  the  signal  for  a  final  effort  to  avenge  them- 
selves on  the  part  of  the  remains  of  the  Orsini  party  in 
combination  with  the  Savelli  and  a  few  of  the  Colonna. 
They  entrenched  themselves  in  Cere  and  Bracciano,  and  on 
the  23rd  January  attacked  the  Ponte  Nomentano.  The 
attack  was  repulsed  ;  but  the  Pope  was  so  much  alarmed 

*  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  230,  and  *Report  of  the  Mantuan  Envoy 
of  4th  Jan.,  1 503.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

t  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  I.,  301  seg.,  312  segr.^  according  to 
which  the  Cardinal  fully  expected  that  he  would  be  put  to  death.  Cf. 
BURCHARDi  Diarium,  III.,  232. 

J  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  I.,  313  se^.,  320  seq.,  322,  324.  Cf. 
Ademollo,  27. 


126  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

that  he  had  the  Vatican  barricaded  and  commanded  Jofre 
to  return  at  once.* 

On  the  20th  February,  1503,  the  Pope  advi-^ed  the 
Cardinals  to  fortify  their  palaces,  for  there  was  fear  of  an 
attack  from  the  Orsini.f  Two  days  later  Cardinal  Orsini 
died  after  an  illness  of  twelve  days.  The  report  that  he 
was  poisoned  by  the  Borgia  was  widely  circulated,  but  the 
truth  of  this  is  doubtful.  Such  was  the  death  of  the  man 
who,  next  to  Ascanio  Sforza,  had  the  greatest  influence  in 
procuring  the  election  of  Alexander  VI.| 

Meanwhile  Caesar  had  advanced  against  the  Orsini  from 
Umbria,  and,  devastating  the  country  as  he  went  along,  had 
made  himself  master  of  all  the  places  belonging  to  Giovanni 
Giordano  Orsini  with  the  exception  of  Cere  and  Bracciano, 
which  last  was  their  chief  stronghold.  §     A  short  time  after, 

*  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  I.,  342,  349  ;  Sanuto,  IV.,  654  seq.  ; 
GrEGOROVIUS,  VII.,  467  seq.  (474  seq.,  ed.  4). 

+  BuRCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  237,  and  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  I., 

403- 

X  L'EpinoiS  is  strongly  against  the  hypothesis  of  poison.  He  says, 
p.  416  :  Giustinian  si  attache  aux  Orsini  et  si  au  fait  de  ce  qui  se  passait 
a  Rome,  avait  ecrit,  des  le  1 5  Fevrier,  1 503,  que  le  Cardinal  donnait  des 
signes  de  frenesie  :  il  parla  bien  des  bruit  emis  sur  cette  maladie,  en 
laissant  k  la  sagesse  du  doge  le  soin  de  les  apprecier ;  mais,  le  22  en 
annongant  que  le  Cardinal  Orsini  etait  k  I'extrem'te  et  que  les  mddecins 
desesperaient  de  le  sauver,  il  ne  dit  rien  qui  put  faire  soupgonner  un  crime. 
Le  23  Fevrier  le  Cardinal  expira.  L'ambassadeur  de  Florence,  Soderini, 
dans  se  depeche  et  Brancatalini  dans  son  Diarium  mentionnent  simple- 
ment  la  mort  du  Cardinal  sans  dire  un  mot  du  poison.  At  the  same 
time,  the  remark  in  Burchardi  Diarium,  III.,  238  :  ego  nolens  plus 
sapere  quam  oportet,  non  interfui  (at  the  funeral)  neque  aliquo  modo  me 
intromisi,  is  certainly  noteworthy.  Cf.  Heidenheimer  in  the  Grenz- 
boten.  III.  (1879),  185. 

§  *La  Ex.  del  ducha  sark  qua  lo  jovedi  grasso  perche  tutte  le  terre  di 
Jo.  Jordano  ha  habuto  d'accordo  excepto  Brazano  che  e  lo  capo  dove 
e  la  molie,  etc.  Report  of  G.  L.  Cataneo,  21st  Feb.,  1503.  Gonzaga 
Archives,  Mantua. 


REVERSES   OF   THE   FRENCH   IN    NAPLES.  1 27 

it  was  said  that  the  Duke  had  been  seen  in  Rome ;  but  no  one 
could  be  sure,  as  he  ahvays  wore  a  mask  when  he  went  out* 

Meanwhile  the  war  against  the  Orsini  dragged  on.  Cere 
did  not  fall  until  the  beginning  of  April;  6000  cannon  balls 
had  been  discharged  at  this  fortress.f  Upon  this  Giovanni 
Giordano  Orsini  concluded  an  armistice  (4th  April)|  and  be- 
took himself  to  his  protector,  the  King  of  France,  for  aid  in 
the  negotiation  to  follow.  Louis  at  that  moment  was  greatly 
disturbed  at  the  unfavourable  turn  taken  by  events  in  Naples. 
In  April  the  Spaniards,  under  Gonsalvo  de  Cordova,  had 
opened  the  campaign  with  a  brilliant  victory  over  the 
French.  On  the  i6th  of  May  the  Spanish  General  entered 
Naples  in  triumph.  Louis  XIL,  however,  was  not  disposed 
to  relinquish  this  noble  possession  without  a  struggle,  and 
a  new  army  was  immediately  equipped.  § 

The  French  reverses  in  Naples  were  of  great  advantage 
to  Caesar.  He  could  now  ask  a  high  price  for  his  assistance, 
and  it  was  not  necessary  to  consider  France  so  much  as 
heretofore  in  shaping  his  plans.  The  important  point  now 
was  to  get  money  so  as  to  have  as  strong  an  army  as 
possible  wherewith  to  control  the  impending  disturbances. 
Even  on  the  29th  March  the  Venetian  Ambassador  reports 
that  in  the  Consistory  of  that  day  it  had  been  resolved  by  the 
Cardinals  that  a  Bull  should  be  issued  to  create  eighty  new 
offices  in  the  Court ;  the  price  of  each  was  to  be  760  ducats. 
"  I  leave  it  to  your  highness  to  count  how  much  money  the 
Pope  has  secured."|| 

*  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  I.,  412  seq.^  and  Beltrando's  Report  in 
Gregorovius,  VII.,  473-474,  ed.  3  (481,  ed.  4). 

t  SlGlSMONDO  de'  Conti,  II.,  266-267  ;  cf.  450  seq. 

X  Gregorovius,  VII.,  475,  ed.  3  ;  (482,  ed.  4) ;  and  App.  to  Sigis- 
MONDO  de'  Conti,  II.,  452. 

§  Havemann,  II.,  169  seq.^  178  seq.\  Reumont,  Carafa,  I.,  38. 

II  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  I.,  453. 


128  HISTORY   OF   THE    POPES. 

These  were  innocent  expedients  In  comparison  with  others 
adopted  by  the  man  before  whom  all  Rome,  not  excepting 
the  Pope  himself,  trembled.  In  the  night  of  the  loth  of  April 
the  wealthy  Cardinal  Michiel  died  after  two  days  of  violent 
vomiting.  Recent  investigations  have  had  the  effect  of 
acquitting  Caesar  of  many  crimes  laid  upon  him  by  the 
hatred  of  his  contemporaries,  but  the  death  of  Cardinal 
Michiel  is  not  one  of  these.  It  Is  extremely  probable  that 
Caesar  poisoned  the  Cardinal  in  order  to  obtain  the  money 
that  he  wanted.*  Still,  however,  there  was  not  enough.  On 
May  31  the  Venetian  Envoy,  A.  Glustinlan,  writes:  "To-day 
there  was  a  Consistory.  Instead  of  four  new  Cardinals,  as 
people  expected  and  as  the  Pope  had  said,  nine  were  nomi- 
nated. Five  of  these  are  Spaniards,  Giovanni  Castelar  of 
Valencia,  Francesco  Remolino,  Francesco  Sprats,  Jacopo 
Casanova,  and  Francesco  Iloris  ;  three  are  Italians,  NIccolo 

*  Despatch  of  A.  Giustinian  of  nth  April,  1503.  Villari,  I.,  574: 
El  ditto  (Michiel's  nephew)  me  ha  riferito  che  da  due  zorni  in  qua  li 
era  zonto  un  destemperamento  de  stomego  con  gran  vomito,  et  anche  un 
poco  di  flusso  :  el  sospetto  e  grande  ch'  el  sia  sta'  avelenato  e  non 
mancano  evidente  conietture.  Cf.  Reumont,  III.,  i,  259,  and  Tiara 
Veneta,  38;  Michiel's  Epitaph  in  Forcella,  Iscriz.,  II.,  304.  It  has 
been  shewn,  in  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  p.  510,  and  sttpra,  p.  68,  that 
Caesar  was  not  the  murderer  either  of  the  Duke  of  Gandia  or  of 
Juan  Borgia  ;  Alvisi,  53  seq.,  has  also  disproved  another  false  charge 
against  Csesar.  Machiavelli  asserts  that  Caesar  had  had  the  Bishop 
Ferdinando  d' Almeida  killed  because  he  had  prematurely  informed  Louis 
XII.  of  the  granting  of  the  marriage  dispensation  mentioned  siepra,  p. 
57,  for  which  the  Duke  had  intended  to  have  exacted  a  large  sum  from 
the  King.  Alvisi  shews  that  the  "  murdered  "  Bishop  died  two  years 
later,  and  that  the  dispensation  had  been  made  public  some  time  before 
the  date  of  his  supposed  indiscretion.  P.  Capello's  dramatic  narrative 
relating  how  Ceesar  stabbed  Pierotto  in  presence  of  the  Pope,  is 
another  story  that  will  not  bear  examination ;  see  supra,  p.  "T],  note  J.  The 
poisoning  of  the  avaricious  Cardinal  Ferrari  {pb.  20th  July,  1 502)  by  Caesar 
is  very  doubtful.     Cf.  Atti  Mod.,  VIII.,  39  seq..,  and  TANGI-,  388  seq. 


CREATION    OF    NEW   CARDINALS.  I29 

Fiesco,  Count  of  Lavagna,  Francesco  Soderini,  and  Adriano 
da  Corneto;  one  is  a  German,  Melchior  Copis  von  Meckau, 
Bishop  of  Brixen.  Most  of  them  are  men  of  doubtful  reputa- 
tion ;  all  have  paid  handsomely  for  their  elevation,  some 
20,000  ducats  and  more,  so  that  from  120,000  to  130,000 
ducats  have  been  collected.  If  we  add  to  this  64,000  ducats 
from  the  sale  of  the  offices  in  the  Court,  and  what  Cardinal 
Michiel  left  behind  him,  we  shall  have  a  fine  sum.  Alex- 
ander VI.  is  shewing  to  the  world  that  the  amount  of  a 
Pope's  income  is  just  what  he  chooses."* 

There  was  another  side  also  to  this  creation  of  Cardinals 
on  31st  May.  It  indicated  a  change  in  the  Borgia  politics, 
an  inclination  to  draw  nearer  to  Spain  and  retire  from 
France  consequent  on  the  latter's  humiliation.  But  no 
decision  was  come  to  as  yet.  "The  reversal  of  a  policy 
which  had  now  been  followed  for  some  years  was  in  itself 
a  thing  not  to  be  done  hastily,  and  the  objections  to  it 
were  heightened  by  the  approach  of  a  large  French  army 
destined  for  the  reconquest  of  Naples,  and  which  was  now 

*  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  29-30;  *Despatch  of  G.  L.  Cataneo 
of  31st  May,  1503  :  5  spagnuli  e  alcuni  a  pena  conoscite  e  tre  taliani 
(Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.)  Cf.  Panvinius,  336,  and  *Acta  Consist. 
(Consistorial  Archives  in  the  Vatican),  where  are  the  names  of  the 
twenty-two  Cardinals  who  consented  to  these  nominations.  Giustinian's 
statement  that  only  four  nominations  were  expected  is  not  correct,  and, 
generally,  the  accounts  of  this  Venetian  must  be  accepted  with  caution 
{cf.  Brosch  in  Sybels  Zeitschr.,  XXXVII.,  312,  and  KlMVSl., passim)  \ 
but  the  bribes  given  at  this  creation  of  Cardinals  are  corroborated  from 
other  sources.  {Cf.  Brosch,  loc.  at.,  313.)  In  regard  to  the  simony 
practised  at  the  nominations  of  Cardinals  under  Alexander  VI.,  see  the 
interesting  documents  in  Luzio-RenieR,  Mantova,  130  seq.  See  also 
G.  L.  Cataneo's  *Report  of  6th  March,  1503  :  *A1  presente  se  parla  de 
fare  duodeci  carl',  otto  ultramontani  cioe  sette  spagnuoli  e  uno  todescho 
e  quatro  taliani  .  .  .  e  tutti  questi  sono  apti  a  pagar  denari  assai.  (Gon- 
zaga Archives,  Mantua.)  On  the  nomination  of  Melchior  von  Meckau, 
see  SlNNACHER,  Beitrage,  97  seq..,  233  seq. 

VOL.   VI  K 


FJO  HISTORY  OF   THE  POPES. 

close  to  the  Papal  frontier.  Thus  all  was  tension  and 
uncertainty."  *  One  thing,  however,  is  clear,  and  that  is, 
that  at  this  time  Alexander  and  Caesar  were  preparing 
to  fly  at  higher  game.  The  Pope  was  in  robust  health 
and  felt  as  young  as  ever;  they  both  looked  forward  to 
a  prolonged  Pontificate.-f  Consequently  Caesar  now  began 
to  look  forward  with  confidence  to  the  Lordship  of  the 
whole  of  Tuscany.  The  Ferrarese  Envoy  reports  on  the 
loth  of  August  that  negotiations  were  going  on  between 
the  Pope  and  the  Emperor,  to  obtain  for  the  Duke  the 
investiture  of  Pisa,  Siena,  and  Lucca.  At  the  same 
time  Caesar's  troops  had  occupied  Perugia  and  there 
awaited  his  orders.ij:  At  this  point  a  higher  hand  inter- 
vened ;  the  forbearance  of  God  had  reached  its  appointed 
term. 

*  Reumont,  III.,  1,246.  On  the  undecided  plans  and  double-faced 
policy  of  the  Borgia  during  the  last  months  of  Alexander's  reign,  see,  in 
addition  to  A.  Giustinian's  Despatches,  the  Ferrarese  *Report  in  the 
State  Archives,  Modena,  portions  of  which  are  in  Gregorovius,  VI  I., 
479  seq.^  ed.  3  (486  seq.^  ed.  4),  and  Balan,  V.,  422  seq.  See  also 
amongst  recent  authors,  Ranke,  Rom.  und  Germ.  Volker,  168  seq.; 
CiPOLLA,  793  ;  Ulmann,  II.,  %jseq.;  BURCKHARDT,  Cultur,  I.,  106  seq., 
ed.  3  ;  Lord  ACTON,  365  ;  and  Villari,  Machiavelli,  I.,  377  seq.,  where 
also  there  are  particulars  about  Troche,  the  favourite  and  secretary  of 
Alexander  VI.,  who  was  supposed  to  have  betrayed  the  negotiations 
with  Spain  to  the  French.  Troche  fled  on  19th  May,  1503,  but  Ceesar 
succeeded  in  capturing  him.  He  was  brought  back  to  Rome  and  executed 
on  the  8th  June,  the  Duke  being  secretly  present.  See  the  Ferrarese 
Envoy's  Report  of  i  ith  June  in  Villari,  I.,  486. 

t  Cy^  the  quotation  in  Gregorovius,  VII.,  476,  note  2,  ed.  3  (483, 
ed.  4),  from  Beltrando  Costabili's  Despatch  of  17th  April,  1503; 
SiGlSMONDO  de'  Conti,  II.,  267  ;  and  the  *Report  of  an  anonymous 
person,  dat.  Rome,  May  1503  :  il  papa  sta  benissimo,  and  Cesare  the 
same.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

X  Cf.  Cipolla,  794;  Gregorovius,  VII.,  482,  ed.  3  (489,  ed.  4); 
Ranke,  Rom.  und  Germ.  Volker,  170;  Ulmann,  II.,  89.  See  also 
SiGISMONDO  DE'   CONTI,   II.,  267. 


SICKNESS   IN    ROME.  I31 

The  heat  and  drought  of  August  had  caused  the  malaria 
that  year  to  be  worse  than  usual,  and  it  claimed  a  greater 
number  of  victims  than  was  its  wont.  On  the  5th  of  the 
month  Juan  Borgia,  Cardinal  of  Monreale,  died  suddenly.* 
The  Envoys  mention  a  great  deal  of  sickness,  which  was 
not,  they  say,  caused  by  the  Plague,  but  by  a  specially 
virulent  form  of  Roman  fever,  which  was  very  speedily 
fatal.f  When  the  Venetian  Ambassador  was  with  the 
Pope  on  the  7th  of  August  he  found  him  in  low  spirits. 
Alexander  told  him  that  the  sickness  and  many  deaths 
in  Rome  alarmed  him,  and  that  he  meant  to  take  great  care 
of  himself.  His  depression  was  increased  by  the  approach 
of  the  French  troops.  | 

The  nth  of  x^ugust  was  the  anniversary  of  the  Pope's 
election.  Alexander  appeared  at  the  celebration  in  the 
chapel,  and  the  Ambassador  was  again  struck  by  his  air  of 
depression  in  contrast  with  the  gaiety  which  was  habitual 
to  him  on  all  such  occasions.  After  Mass  he  conversed 
with  the  Ambassador  on  the  critical  situation  in  regard  to 
politics.  "  See,"  he  said,  "  how  disastrous  it  has  been  that 
no  understanding  should  have  been  arrived  at  between  your 
Signoria  and  ourselves."  §  Some  days  before,  Alexander 
had  watched  from  his  window  the  funeral  procession  of 
Juan  Borgia,  who  like  himself  had  grown  very  corpulent. 
As  it  passed  the  Pope  exclaimed,  "  This  month  is  a  bad 
one  for  fat  people."     The  next  moment  an  owl  flew  in  and 

*  A.  GiuSTlNiAN  in  this  case  also  ascribes  the  death  to  poisoning 
by  Caesar  :  Dispacci,  II.,  94.     Cf.  against  this  CreiGHTON,  IV.,  265. 

t  G.  L.  Cataneo,  in  reporting  the  death  of  Card,  Juan  Borgia,  adds  : 
*el  era  de  anni  50,  grasso  ;  se  ne  morto  in  un  subito  et  molti  ge  sonno 
infermi,  ma  non  ge  peste  alcuna,  sokim  febre  qual  spaciano  presto. 
Despatch  of  5th  Aug.,  1503.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

X  GlUSTlNiAN,  Dispacci,  II.,  99,  102. 

§  Ibid.,  II.,  103  seq. 


132  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

fell  at  his  feet.  "  A  bad,  bad  omen,"  he  cried  out  and 
hastily  retired  into  his  bed-room.* 

On  the  morning  of  Saturday,  12th  August,  the  Pope 
felt  unwell ;  in  the  afternoon  vomiting  and  fever  came  on 
and  lasted  throughout  the  night.f  At  the  same  time  Caisar, 
who  was  on  the  point  of  starting  to  join  his  troops  at 
Perugia,  also  sickened.j  "  The  cause,"  writes  the  Venetian 
Envoy  on  1 3th  August,  "  seems  to  have  been  that  a  week 
ago  (therefore  on  the  5th  or  6th  of  August)  both  Alexander 
and  Caesar  dined  at  a  villa  belonging  to  Cardinal  Adriano 
da  Corneto  and  remained  there  till  after  nightfall.  All 
who  were  there  fell  ill,  Cardinal  Adriano  first,  who  on 
Friday  had  a  severe  attack  of  fever,  which  was  repeated 
on  the  two  following  days."  § 

August  is  well  known  to  be  the  most  dangerous  month 
in  Rome,  and  at  that  season  it  is  especially  perilous  to  be 
out  of  doors  about  nightfall.  The  malignant  form  of 
ague,  often  brought  on  by  an  imprudence  of  this  sort,  is 
called  Malaria  perniciosa :  in  a  few  hours  the  temperature 
may  rise  to  above  106  and  the  strongest  constitution  may 
succumb  to  the  violence  of  the  poison.     The  neighbourhood 

*  This  is  SiGlSMONDO  de'  Conti'S  story,  II.,  267,  but  there  is  some 
confusion  in  the  dates. 

t  GiUSTlNlAN,  Dispacci,  II.,  107.  Cf.  Burchardi  Diarium,  III., 
238.  There  are  a  great  number  of  MS.  copies  of  Burchard's  narrative 
of  the  death  of  Alexander  VI.  and  the  election  of  his  successor,  in  Latin 
(in  many  of  the  Vatican  MSS.  and  Roman  Libraries,  and  also  in  a  Cod. 
of  the  Capelupi  Lib.  in  Mantua),  as  well  as  in  Italian  {cf.  Atti  della  R. 
Acad,  dei  Rozzi  di  Siena,  I.  [1871],  26  seq.).  It  was  also  in  the  hands  of 
the  author  of  the  well-known  book,  Conclavi  dei  Pontefici  Romani.  A 
German  translation  *in  the  Kathol.  Schweizerbl.  ( 1 89 1 )  496  .y^^'. 

$  G.  L.  Cataneo,  in  a  "^Despatch  of  8th  Aug.,  1503,  announces  :  el 
ducha  ogni  modo  parte  questa  notte.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

§  GiUSTlNiAN,  Dispacci,  II.,  108.  Cf.  the  Florentine  Despatch  in 
Thuasne,  III.,  449. 


ILLNESS    OF   THE    POPE.  133 

of  the  Vatican  is  one  of  the  quarters  in  which  malaria 
is  especially  prevalent.  An  Envoy  on  the  14th  of  August 
remarks  that  no  one  can  be  surprised  that  Alexander  and 
Caesar  were  ill,  as  the  bad  air  in  the  Papal  Palace  had 
caused  much  sickness  there.* 

On  the  13th  of  August  f  the  physicians  endeavoured  to 
relieve  the  Pope  by  copious  bleeding,  a  favourite  remedy 
in  those  days.  During  all  that  day  he  was  more  comfortable 
and  played  at  cards;  J  but  after  a  fairly  good  night  another 
attack  of  fever  supervened  on  the  14th,  resembling  that 
of  the  1 2th,  so  that  those  about  him  became  very  anxious. 
Although  it  seemed  a  risk  to  repeat  the  bleeding  of  a 
patient  of  seventy-three,  this  was  done.§  The  Pope  felt 
somewhat  better  on  the  15th  and  had  no  fever,  but  on 
the   1 6th  it  returned. || 

Caesar  also  grevv  worse,  the  fever  fits  succeeded  each 
other  more  and  more  rapidly.  This,  and  his  political 
anxieties,  acted  injuriously  on  the  Pope's  health.lf  The 
physicians  considered  his  case  very  serious,  but  the  details 

*  B.  Costabili  in  GiUSTlNlAN,  Dispacci,  IL,  459.  G.  L.  Cataneo,  in 
a  *Despatch  of  13th  Aug.,  1503,  mentions  the  serious  illness  of  two 
Cardinals.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

t  This  date  is  given  m  Costabili's  Despatch  in  Giustinian,  Dispacci, 
IL,  459  ;  in  the  latter,  p.  108,  we  find  the  morning  of  14th  Aug. 

J  Giustinian,  Dispacci,  II.,  459. 

§  Idz'd.,  108,  459.  (Despatch  of  Costabili  of  14th  Aug.)  G.  L.  Cataneo 
reports  on  14th  Aug.:  *E1  papa  e  alterato  e  se  ha  fatto  cavarsangue  il  che 
in  furia  de  questi  tempi  e  in  tal  eta  lassol  iudicar  ali  medici.  El  ducha 
ha  la  febre  cum  vomito.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

II  Costabili's  Despatch  of  i6th  Aug.,  1503  :  Yesterday  the  Pope  was 
assai  bene  ;  hoggi  e  ritornato  el  parosismo  ;  he  is  in  bed  with  fever. 
(State  Archives,  Modena.)     Cf.  Giustinian,  Dispacci,  II.,  iii. 

IT  Giustinian,  Dispacci,  II.,  1 11,  112.  Burchardi,  on  the  contrary, 
says  (Diarium,  III.,  239)  that  throughout  his  illness  Alexander  never 
once  mentioned  either  Ciesar  or  Lucrezia.  Gregorovius,  VII.,  487, 
ed.  3  (494,  ed.  4),  unfairly  lays  much  stress  on  this. 


134  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

were  kept  as  secret  as  possible  ;  even  Beltrando  Costabili, 
the  Ferrarese  Envoy,  could  find  out  but  little.  According  to 
a  report  of  his  the  whole  of  the  next  day  (17th)  Alexander 
was  more  at  ease  and  quieter,  so  that  Costabili's  agent 
hoped  that  the  fever  might  not  return  the  following  day,  or 
only  slightly.  Here  the  Pope's  illness  is  distinctly  desig- 
nated as  the  well-known  Terzana;  it  was  feared  that  it  might 
develop  into  a  Qiiartana,*  On  the  i8th  he  had  a  bad 
night,  the  fever  returned  with  greater  violence  than  before, 
and  the  case  was  felt  to  be  hopeless.  Alexander  made  his 
confession  to  the  Bishop  of  Carinola  and  received  Holy 
Communion.-j-  In  the  Palace  the  greatest  excitement  pre- 
vailed ;  many  lost  no  time  in  removing  their  property  to  a 
place  of  security.;!:  On  the  i8th  Cjesar  Borgia  was  better; 
the  younger  man  had  strength  to  battle  against  the  malady, 
but  for  Alexander,  at  seventy-three,  the  last  hour  had  struck. 
About  6  o'clock  in  the  evening  he  had  a  fit  of  suffocation 
and  became  unconscious ;  for  a  moment  he  came  to  him- 
self again,  but  immediately  after  passed  away,  about  the 
hour  of  vespers.^ 

*  See  Appendix,  N.  9  and  10,  *Despatches  of  B.  Costabili  of  1 8th  Aug., 
1503  (State  Archives,  Modena),  and  of  G.  L.  Cataneo  of  the  same  date. 
Also  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  238,  speaks  of  febris  tertiana. 

t  See  Appendix,  N.  9,  ^Despatch  from  B.  CostabiH,  of  18th  Aug., 
1503.  SiGlSMONDO  de'  Conti,  II.,  268,  and  BURCHARDi  Diarium, 
III.,  238.  Gregorovius,  VII.,  483-84,  ed.  3  (490-91,  ed.  4),  follow- 
ing a  clerical  error,  Culmensis,  in  Raynaldus,  XXX.,  391,  speaks  of  a 
Bishop  Peter  of  Culm  who  never  existed. 

X  See  Appendix,  N.  9,  10,  ^Despatches  of  the  Ferrarese  and  Mantuan 
Envoys  of  i8th  Aug.,  1503. 

§  See  GlUSTlNlAN,  Dispacci,  II.,  119  seq.\  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III., 
239;  and  in  the  Appendix,  N.  11,  *Despatch  from  G.  L.  Cataneo  of 
19th  Aug.  (Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.)  According  to  Jean  d'Auton 
(Chroniques,  ed.  Jacob,  II.,  357  Paris,  1834-1835),  the  news  of 
Alexander's  death  was  received  by  Louis  XII.  only  four  days  after  the 
event.     That  of  the  election  of  Pius  III.  reached  him  at  the  same  time. 


DEATH   OF   ALEXANDER   VI.  1 35 

In  consequence  of  the  simultaneous  illness  of  both  the 
Pope  and  his  son,  and  the  rapid  decomposition  of  the  body, 
which,  considering  the  heat  of  the  weather,  was  perfectly 
natural,  the  cry  of  poison  was  raised  at  once ;  hut  on  the 
19th  of  August  the  Mantuan  Envoy  writes  that  there  was 
no  sort  of  ground  for  supposing  this.*  All  the  best  informed 
contemporary  writers  are  here  agreed  ;  neither  the  Venetian 
Ambassador  Giustinian  nor  Jakob  Burchard  say  anything 
of  poison.  These  men  were  in  Rome  at  the  time  of 
Alexander's  death,  which  Guicciardini,  Bembo,  Jovius, 
Peter  Martyr,  and  Sanuto  were  not.  The  narrative  of 
the  latter  is  self-contradictory  in  many  places  and  must 
obviously  be  relegated  to  the  realm  of  fiction.-]-      It  is  clear 

It  appears  that  there  was  a  regular  post  between  Rome  and  the  French 
camp.     See  Knuth,  26. 

*  See  Appendix,  N.  11,  ^Despatch  from  G.  L.  Cataneo,  of  19th  Aug., 
1503.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

t  Cf.  Gebhardt's  critical  investigation  in  Adriano  von  Corneto,  1 1-14, 
which  is  specially  directed  against  Ranke,  who  adheres  with  a  strange 
pertinacity  to  the  theory  of  poison.  (Papste,  I.,  35,  ed.  7,  and  III.,  6*- 7* 
ed.  7  ;  and  also  Rom.  und  Germ.  Volker,  170.  In  the  2nd  edition  the 
1 7th  of  August  is  given  as  the  date  of  Alexander's  death.)  Among  recent 
historians  very  few  of  any  note  still  maintain  this  untenable  theory. 
Caro,  v.,  958,  and  Lamansky,  Secrets  d'Etat  de  Venise,  Pt.  2,  No.  XL, 
where  Alexander  is  said  to  have  been  poisoned  by  Adriano  da  Corneto, 
who  had  an  understanding  with  the  Venetian  Government,  may  be 
mentioned.  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1 503,  n.  1 1,  had  already  declared  against 
this  theory  ;  later  Voltaire,  then  Marini,  L,  250  ;  NOVAES,  VI.,  1 19  seq.; 
ASCHBACH,  I.,  140;  Nemec,  2i8  seq.;  JORRY,  154  seq.\  Rev.  Hist.,  I., 
310;  Reumont,  III.,  I,  247,  Wetzer  und  Welte's  Kirchenlexikon,  L, 
488,  ed.  2;  and  Hist.  Jahrb.,  V.,  627  seq.;  Villari  and  Saltini  in 
the  Arch.  St.  Ital,  3  Serie,  XXVI.,  448  ;  ViLLARl  in  Dispacci  di  A. 
Giustinian,  I.,  p.  XLU.,  and  MachiavelH,  I.,  386;  Alvisi,  402  seq.; 
Lord  Acton,  367  ;  Maury  in  Rev.  Hist,  XI 1 1.,  loi  ;  Gebhardt  m 
Rev.  des  Deux  Mondes,  LXXXVI.  (1886),  168  seq.;  L'Epinois,  420; 
Hergenrother,  VIIL,  388  ;  Cipolla,  794  ;  Creighton,  IV.,  43,44- 
Garnett,  Engl.  Hist.  Rev.,  IX.  (1894),  335-339,  is  the  latest  writer  who 


136  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

that  Alexander  succumbed  to  the  well-known  Roman 
fever ;  one  of  the  physicians  thought  the  actual  death  was 
caused  by  a  fit  of  apoplexy.*  The  interval  of  seven  or 
eight  days  between  the  dinner  and  the  first  appearances 
of  illness,  and  the  periodical  character  of  the  fever  fits, 
quite  excludes  the  hypothesis  of  poison.-|- 

has  dealt  with  this  question.  He  thinks  it  possible  that  the  Pope  may  have 
been  poisoned  by  one  of  his  enemies,  but  rejects,  as  unproved,  the  state- 
ment that  Alexander  died  of  a  poison  prepared  by  himself  for  another 
man.  The  reason  that  the  English  historian  has  been  unable  to  come  to 
a  definite  conclusion  may  be  that  he  has  not  followed  the  story  of  the 
course  of  the  malady  in  detail,  as  we  have  endeavoured,  for  the  first  time, 
to  do.  If  he  had,  he  would  have  apprehended  the  true  explanation  of  what 
Jovius  says  about  Cardinal  Adriano  Castellesi's  skin  coming  off",  which  no 
doubt  was  that  peeling  which  takes  place  in  so  many  infectious  diseases  ; 
and  which  is  not  one  of  the  symptoms  of  any  kind  of  poison. 

*  GlUSTiNlAN,  Dispacci,  11.,  119.  On  other  physicians  of  Alexander, 
see  Haeser,  III.,  240-243,  ed.  3. 

t  Hoffmann,  Lehrbuch  der  gerichtlichen  Medicin,  616  seq.^  ed.  4, 
writes  :  "  The  first  symptoms  of  poisoning  by  no  means  immediately 
follow  in  all  cases  on  the  swallowing  of  the  noxious  substance.  Only 
the  strongest  corrosive  poisons  act  instantaneously.  ...  In  regard  to  all 
others  a  certain  time  elapses,  which  varies  between  a  few  minutes  and 

many  hours In  acute  poisons  and  those  which  kill  by  lethargy,  as 

a  rule  the  symptoms  go  on  from  the  moment  of  their  first  appearance, 
steadily  increasing  in  intensity  until  death  supervenes.  It  is  very  excep- 
tional that  temporary  relaxations  of  them  are  found  to  occur In 

mineral  poisoning  such  cases  are  very  rarely  observed,  but  more  fre- 
quently where  the  poison  is  a  narcotic."  According  to  Flandin  (Traitd 
des  poisons  ;  cf.  Rev.  d.  Deux  Mondes,  XX.  [1877],  276),  if  the  slow 
poison  used  by  the  Borgia  were  some  form  of  acide  arsenieux,  its  action 
would  be,  in  its  acute  form,  either  a  violent  inflammation  of  the  stomach 
resembling  cholera,  and  causing  death  in  from  5  to  26  hours,  or  else  a 
cerebro-spinal  affection  (delirium,  convulsions,  paralysis),  death  ensuing 
in  from  i  to  12  hours.  In  its  sub-acute  form  it  would  manifest  itself  in 
general  derangement  of  the  d  gestion,  with  muscular  weakness,  icterus, 
inflammation  of  the  kidneys  ;  cf  Hoffmann,  loc.  cit.,  660  seq.  Alex- 
ander's symptoms  had  no  resemblance  to  any  of  these  forms.     I  am 


FUNERAL   OF   THE   POPE.  1 37 

In  accordance  with  Roman  usage,  Alexander  was  buried 
at  the  end  of  twenty-four  hours  in  the  Church  of  S.  Andrea, 
then  called  S'^  Maria  della  Febbre,  adjoining  S.  Peter's.* 
The  funeral  was  of  the  simplest  character ;  the  enemies 
of  the  Borgia  made  no  secret  of  their  joy  ;  they  loaded  the 
dead  man  with  abuse,  and  circulated  a  story  of  the  devil's 
having  come  to  fetch  his  soul.-j- 

Although  some  friends  were  not  wanting  who  strove  to 
draw  attention  to  Alexander's  better  qualities,!  the  general 
judgment  on  the  life  and  career  of  this  unhappy  man  was 
a  most  unfavourable  one.§  When  Julius  II.,  who  was  an 
implacable  enemy  of  the  Borgia,  occupied  the  Papal  Chair 
it  became  usual  to  speak  of  Alexander  as  a  "Marana"  and 

indebted  to  my  esteemed  friend.  Dr.  A.  Tschermak  of  Vienna,  for  these 
particulars. 

*  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  243.  In  the  year  1610  Alexander's  re- 
mains were  transferred  to  the  Sacristy  of  the  Church  of  S'^  Maria  di 
Monserrato,  where  quite  recently  a  marble  monument  has  been  placed 
at  the  end  of  the  right  aisle  in  memory  of  Alexander  VI.  and  Calixtus 
III.  NovAES,  v.,  193,  note  c;  Leonetti,  III.,  389  ;  and  Bolet.  de  la 
R.  Acad,  de  la  Hist.  (1891),  fasc.  2. 

t  Cf.  Matarazzo  in  the  Arch.  St.  Ital.,  i  Serie,  XVI.,  2,  222-223, 
and  the  Letter  of  the  Marquess  of  Mantua,  of  22nd  Sept.,  1503,  in  the 
App.  to  Gregorovius,  Lucrezia  Borgia,  122-123.  See  also  a  poem 
printed  in  Venice  in  1508,  in  Arch.  St.  Lomb.,  II.,  17  seq. 

X  See  the  Bishop  of  Gallipoli's  address,  i6tb  Sept.,  1503,  to  the 
Cardinals  before  they  entered  the  Conclave,  from  the  only  known  copy, 
now  in  the  British  Museum,  published  by  Garnett  in  the  Engl. 
Hist.  Review,  VII.  (1892),  311  seq.  Garnett,  in  his  judgment  of 
Alexander,  allows  far  too  much  weight  to  this  speech. 

§  Cf.  Cambi,  XXL,  195  seq.;  Notar  Giacomo,  261.  A  contem- 
porary in  Bologna,  on  receiving  the  news  of  Alexanders  decease,  wrote  : 
et  sepultus  in  inferno.  Atti  d.  Romagna,  VIII.  (1890),  179.  Gottlob  in 
the  Hist.  Jahrb.,  VII.,  320  seq..,  points  out  how,  as  time  went  on, 
Sigismondo  de'  Conti's  opinion  of  Alexander  grew  steadily  worse,  and 
we  equally  find  the  judgment  of  Peter  Martyr  growing  more  and  more 
severe.     See  Bernays,  99. 


138  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

the  impersonation  of  all  that  was  horrible  and  bad.  The 
noble  Marcantonio  Altieri  openly  expressed  his  satisfaction 
that  now  "  all  the  Borgia  had  been  uprooted  from  the  soil 
and  cast  out  as  poisonous  plants,  hated  by  God  and 
noxious  to  man,"  and  this  was  by  no  means  the  worst  of 
the  things  that  were  said.*  He  was  universally  described 
as  a  monster  and  every  sort  of  foul  crime  attributed  to 
him.f 

Modern  critical  research  has  in  many  points  judged  him 
more  fairly  and  rejected  some  of  the  worst  of  the  accusa- 
tions against  him.|  But  even  though  we  must  beware  of 
accepting  without  examination  all  the  tales  told  of  Alex- 
ander by  his  contemporaries,  "  even  serious  and  honest 
historians  are  not  wholly  free  from  bias";  and  though  the 
bitter  wit  of  the  Romans  found  its  favourite  exercise  in 
tearing  him  to  pieces  without  mercy,  and  attributing  to  him 
in  popular  pasquinades  and  scholarly  epigrams  a  life  of 
incredible  foulness,§  still  so  much  against  him  has  been 
clearly  proved,||  that  we  are  forced  to  reject  the  modern 
attempts  at  whitewashing  him  as  an  unworthy  tampering 
with  truth.1I     "  The  reign  of  this  Pope,  which  lasted  eleven 

*  See  Li  Nuptiali  di  Marco  Antonio  Altieri,  ed.  Narducci  (Rome,  1873). 
This  work  was  begun  between  1506  and  1509,  and  probably  finished 
during  the  first  years  of  Leo  X.  See  Reumont  in  the  AUg.  Zeitg. 
(1874),  N.  358,  Supp. 

t  Cf.  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  p.  522,  and  supra,  p.  115.  On 
Guicciardinj's  verdict  in  regard  to  him,  see  Ranke,  Zur  Kritik,  55*. 
Vettori's  judgment,  in  Reumont,  III.,  i,  498,  though  extremely  severe, 
contains  the  remark  :  "  When  a  Prince  has  got  himself  thoroughly  hated, 
every  one  casts  a  stone  at  him,  and  there  is  no  crime  with  which  he  is 
not  charged." 

X  Cf.  specially  supra,  p.  no,  note,  and  infra,  p.  174. 

§  Reumont  in  the  Bonner  Theol.  Literaturbl.,  V.  (1870),  686. 

I!   See  supra,  p.  104  seq. 

IT  This  applies  especially  to  the  writings  of  Ollivier  and  Nemec.     See 


CHARACTER   OF   ALEXANDER   VI.  1 39 

years,  was  a  serious  disaster,  on  account  of  its  worldliness, 
openly  proclaimed  with  the  most  amazing  effrontery,  on 
account  of  its  equally  unconcealed  nepotism,  lastly,  on 
account  of  his  utter  absence  of  all  moral  sense  both  in 
public  and  private  life,  which  made  every  sort  of  accusation 
credible,  and  brought  the  Papacy  into  utter  discredit,  while 
its  authority  still  seemed  unimpaired.  Those  better 
qualities  which  Alexander  undoubtedly  did  possess  shrink 
into  nothing  in  the  balance  when  weighed  with  all  this."  * 

From  a  Catholic  point  of  view,  it  is  impossible  to  blame 
Alexander  VI.  too  severely,  and,  indeed,  he  has  met  with 
his  deserts  from  ^Egidius  of  Viterbo  in  his  reign  of  Leo 
X.,  and  later,  from  the  Annalists  of  the  Church,  Raynaldus 
and  Mansi.-j-  It  was  the  very  first  duty  of  a  Pope  in  those 
days  of  growing  worldliness  to  make  every  effort  to  stem 
the  tide  of  corruption  ;  but  Alexander,  like  any  secular 
Prince,  cared   for   nothing   but    the   advancement   of    his 

Vol.  II.  of  this  work,  p.  452,  note*.  Chantrel's  attempts  to  deny  Alex- 
ander's immoralities  both  before  and  after  his  elevation  to  the  Papal 
throne  are  no  better.  Bernacchi  follows  Chantrel  in  the  Arch.  dell. 
Ecclesiastico,  III.,  483  (Trento,  1865).  Leonetti  also  goes  often  too  far, 
and  Tachy  with  him,  in  the  Rev.  des  Sciences  Eccles.     Amiens,  1882. 

*  Reumont  in  Wetzer  und  Welte's  Kirchenlexikon,  I.,  488  seq.^ 
ed.  2.  Cf.  Gesch.  der  Stadt  Rom,  III.,  i,  247  seq.,  and  the  Bonner 
Theol.  Lit.-BL,  V.  (1870),  477  seq.  On  the  discredit  brought  on  the 
Papacy  in  the  eyes  of  many  of  the  Germans,  see  infra,  p.  151,  note  \. 

t  Aegidius  of  Viterbo's  judgment  is  in  GreGOROVIUS,  VII.,  494, 
ed.  3  (501-502,  ed.  4).  That  of  Raynaldus  has  been  already  quoted.  See 
Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  p.  385.  Mansi  expresses  himself  still  more  ener- 
getically in  a  note  to  Raynaldus,  XL,  415.  The  Jesuit  KOLB  in  Series 
Roman.  Pontif.,  p.  296  (Aug.  Vind.,  1739)  makes  no  attempt  to  defend 
Alexander  from  a  moral  point  of  view,  nor  does  Damberger  in  his  Fiir- 
stenbuch,  340  (Regensburg,  1831).  Equally  against  modern  apologists, 
the  Jesuits  in  the  Civ.  Catt.,  3  Serie,  IX.,  722,  727,  are  in  accordance 
with  Matagne  (see  Vol.  II.  of  this  work,  p.  452  seq.,  note  *  as  to  the 
impossibility  of  rehabihtating  this  Pope. 


I40  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

family.*  Even  when  the  shock  of  his  son's  death  recalled 
him  for  a  moment  to  the  sense  of  his  true  vocation,  his 
repentance  was  of  the  shortest  duration,  and  he  very  soon 
returned  to  his  old  ways  and  lived  the  immoral  life  of  the 
secular  sovereigns  of  his  day. 

Thus  he  who  should  have  been  the  guardian  of  his  time, 
saving  all  that  could  be  saved,  contributed  more  than  any 
other  man  to  steep  the  Church  in  corruption.  His  life  of 
unrestrained  sensuality  was  in  direct  contradiction  with  the 
precepts  of  Him  whose  representative  on  earth  he  was;-]- 
and  to  this  he  gave  himself  up  to  the  very  end  of  his  days, 
but  it  is  noteworthy  that  in  matters  purely  concerning  the 
Church,  Alexander  never  did  anything  that  justly  deserves 
blame ;  even  his  bitterest  enemies  are  unable  to  formulate 
any  accusation  against  him  in  this  respect.J  Her  doctrines 
were  maintained  in  all  their  purity.  It  seemed  as  though 
his  reign  were  meant  by  Providence  to  demonstrate  the 
truth  that  though  men  may  hurt  the  Church  they  cannot 
harm  her. 

In  the  Church  there  have  always  been  unworthy  priests 
as  well  as  bad  Christians ;  and  that  no  one  might  be 
scandalised  by  this,  our  Lord  Himself  has  foretold  it.  He 
likens  her  to  a  field  in  which  the  tares  grow  up  with  the 
wheat ;  to  a  net  in  which  are  both  good  and  bad  fish  ;  even 
amongst  His  disciples  he  endured  a  Judas. 

Just  as  the  intrinsic  worth  of  a  jewel  is  not  lessened  by  an 
inferior  setting,  so  the  sins  of  a  priest  cannot  essentially 
affect  his  power  of  offering  sacrifice  or  administering  Sacra- 

*  HOFLER,  Katastrophe,  15.  See  also  his  treatise  on  the  Aera  der 
Bastarden,  56  seq. 

t  Even  his  contemporaries  pointed  out  this.  See  the  satirical  letter 
of  1502  in  Sanuto,  IV.,  220-221. 

J  ReUMONT,  III.,  I,  247  seq.  Cf.  L'EpinoiS,  424  seq.;  Hergen- 
ROTHER,  VIII.,  389.    See  also  Creighton,  IV.,  45. 


THE   POPE   AND   THE   MAN.  I4I 

ments  or  transmitting  doctrine.  The  personal  holiness  of 
the  priest  is,  of  course,  of  the  highest  importance  for  the 
lives  of  the  faithful,  inasmuch  as  he  constitutes  a  living 
example  for  them  to  follow,  and  compels  the  respect  and 
esteem  of  those  who  are  outside.  Still  the  goodness  or 
badness  of  the  temporary  minister  can  exercise  no  sub- 
stantial influence  on  the  being,  the  divine  character,  or  the 
holiness  of  the  Church  ;  on  the  word  of  revelation ;  on  the 
graces  and  spiritual  powers  with  which  she  is  endowed. 
Thus,  even  the  supreme  high  priest  can  in  no  way  diminish 
the  value  of  that  heavenly  treasure  which  he  controls  and 
dispenses,  but  only  as  a  steward.  The  gold  remains  gold 
in  impure  as  in  pure  hands.  "  The  Papal  office  belongs  to 
a  higher  sphere  than  the  personality  of  its  occupant  for 
the  time  being,  and  can  neither  gain  nor  lose  in  its  essential 
dignity  by  his  saintliness  on  one  side,  or  his  unworthiness 
on  the  other."*  Even  the  first  Pope,  S.  Peter,  had  sinned 
deeply  in  denying  his  Lord  and  Master  ;  and  yet  the  office 
of  Supreme  Pastor  was  given  to  him.  In  the  words  of  the 
great  S.  Leo  ;  Petri  dignitas  etiam  in  indigno  herede  non 
deficit.^ 

*  Kirche  und  Protestantismus,  136-137. 
t  Sermo  de  Nat.  ips.,  III. 


CHAPTER  VI. 

Alexander  VI. 's  action  in  the  Church. — The  Great 
Jubilee  of  the  year  1500. — Edict  for  Censorship  of 
THE  Press. — Missions  in  America  and  Africa. — Papal 
Decision  in  regard  to  the  Colonial  Possessions  of 
Spain  and  Portugal. 

Notwithstanding  the  predominance  of  secular  interests 
throughout  the  whole  of  the  reign  of  Alexander  VI.,  this 
Pope  was  not  inactive  in  matters  regarding  the  Church. 
In  all  essentials,  in  spite  of  abuses,  the  government  of  the 
Church  was  steadily  carried  on  ;  no  doubt,  however,  this 
was  partly  owing  to  the  marvellous  perfection  of  her 
organisation. 

Like  his  predecessors,  Alexander  gave  a  hearty  support 
to  the  monastic  orders,  enriched  them  with  many  privileges 
and  did  all  he  could  to  secure  and  promote  their  well-being 
and  their  work.  Innocent  VIII,  had  in  1490  granted  to 
the  Church  of  the  Augustinians  the  same  indulgences  as 
could  formerly  only  be  gained  by  visiting  the  stations  in 
Rome.  Alexander  VI.  in  1497  bestowed  on  this  order, 
permanently  and  exclusively,  the  office  of  Sacristan  of  the 
Chapel  of  the  Papal  Palace.  From  that  time  a  special 
prayer  for  the  Pope  was  ordered  to  be  said  in  all 
Augustinian  Churches  and    Convents.*     Thus  the  Order, 

*  EmpOLI,  Bull.  Ord.  Erem.  Aug.,  37,  and  Kolde,  Die  Deutsche 
Augustinercongregation,  207.  See  also  Cod.  dipl.  Sax.,  II.,  Vol.  IX., 
348  seg^. 


ALEXANDER   VI.    AND   RELIGIOUS   ORDERS.  1 43 

from  which  the  most  violent  and  powerful  foe  of  Rome 
was  to  proceed,  was  bound  to  the  Holy  See  by  the  closest 
ties. 

The  Dominicans  were  not  only  confirmed  in  their  inquisi- 
torial powers,  but  also  favoured  in  many  other  ways.  The 
Pope  punished  those  who  laid  hands  on  the  property  of  the 
Order,  encouraged  devotion  to  S.Thomas  Aquinas,  promoted 
the  reform  and  foundation  of  Dominican  convents,  and 
granted  to  the  Dominicans  equal  privileges  with  those  of  the 
other  mendicant  orders,  and  the  right  of  establishing  confra- 
ternities of  the  Rosary.*  The  old  and  very  extensive  privi- 
leges of  the  Franciscans  were  also  confirmed  afresh  by  him.f 
Substantial  favours  were  bestowed  upon  the  Congregation 
of  Canons  Regular  of  S.  Saviour  by  Alexander  |  and  on  the 
Gesuati.§  The  protection  of  the  Pope  was  also  extended 
to  the  Congregation  of  Augustinian  Hermits  in  Italy,  who 
were  known  by  the  name  of  Apostolic  Brothers.  Innocent 
VIII.  in  1484  had  bestowed  on  this  body  a  more  solid 
organisation  by  binding  them  to  observe  the  rule  of  the 
Hermits  of  S.  Augustine  and  giving  them  a  habit.  Alex- 
ander VI.  completed  the  work  of  his  predecessor  in  a  Bull 
of  the  year  1496.  Among  other  things  it  was  ordained 
that  in  future  they  might  take  solemn  vows  according  to 
the  rule  of  the  Augustinian  Hermits,  and  enjoy  all  their 
privileges.  Their  General  resided  at  S.  Rocco  in  Genoa.|| 
In  the  year  1497  he  united  the  Cistercian  convents  of  Upper 

*  These  authorisations  are  to  be  found  in  the  Bull.  Ord.  Praed.,  IV., 
44,  99,  loi,  115,  116,  120,  122,  133,  166,  190. 

t  In  a  Bull  dat.  Rome,  5th  Feb.,  1501,  which  is  to  be  found  in  MS. 
in  the  Library  of  the  Order  at  S.  Gall,  but  doubtless  has  also  been 
printed. 

X  BuU.  Canonic,  regul.  Cong.  s.  Salvatoris  (Romae,  1733),  f.  105  se^. 

§  Bull.,  v.,  376  se^. 

II  liz'ci.,  366  seg'.;  Tamburini,  De  jure  abbat.,  II.,  338  ;  Wetzer 
undWELTE'S  Kirchenlexikon,  I.,  nil,  11 12,  ed.  2. 


144  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

and  Central  Italy  into  one  congregation,  to  which  he  gave 
the  name  of  the  Congregation  of  S.  Bernard.* 

In  1494  the  Order  of  the  Knights  of  S.  George,  and  in 
1 50 1  the  Order  of  Nuns  founded  by  S.  Jane  of  Valois  for  the 
closer  imitation  of  the  Blessed  Virgin,  received  the  Papal 
approbation.-]-  A  more  important  approbation  was  that 
bestowed  by  him  on  the  Order  of  S.  Francis  of  Paula  in 
1493,  and  in  1505  on  his  Tertiaries,  to  whom  he  granted 
many  privileges.;]:  In  the  year  1496  the  Pope  reconstituted 
the  Order  of  the  Holy  Sepulchre.§  Alexander  VI.  fre- 
quently came  forward  as  the  protector  of  convents  against 
their  oppressors,  whether  ecclesiastical  or  secularjl  and 
energetically  withstood  encroachments  on  the  liberties  of 
the  Church. 

In  this  respect  Alexander's  attitude  in  regard  to  the 
absolutist  pretensions  of  the  authorities  in  the  Netherlands 
is  especially  interesting.  In  spite  of  the  supineness  of  the 
clergy  in  that  country,  who  took  no  notice  of  the  infringe- 
ments of  their  privileges  and  immunities,  the  Pope  acted 
with  the  greatest  decision.  Quite  at  the  beginning  of  his 
reign  he  threatened  the  magistrates  of  Brabant  with  ex- 
communication, but  they  refused  to  desist  from  their  en- 
croachments on  the  rights  of  the  Church.  Immediately 
he  addressed  himself  to  Duke  Philip  of  Burgundy,  point- 

*  Bull.,  v.,  371  seq. 

t  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1494,  n.  41  ;  1501,  n.  24  seq. 

X  Bull,  v.,  352  seq..,  380  seq.  Application  had  already  been  made 
under  Innocent  VIII.  to  obtain  the  approval  of  the  Holy  See  for  the 
Order.  This  appears  fi'om  *Lib.  brev.  18,  f.  214.  Secret  Archives  of 
the  Vatican. 

§  MiSLiN,  Heilige  Orte,  II.,  309,  and  "  Das  Heihge  Land,"  the  organ 
of  the  Verein  vom  H.  Grabe,  XII.,  33.     Koln,  1868. 

1|  The  ■^  Bulls  of  i6th  Aug.,  1497,  in  the  State  Archives  at  Florence 
(S.  Chiara  di  Cortona),  and  of  15th  Dec,  1497,  in  the  Archives  of  the 
Prince-Bishop  of  Brixen,  are  instances  of  this. 


HE   PROMOTES   DEVOTION    TO   THE    B.  VIRGIN.        1 45 

ing  out  how  the  Hberties  of  the  Church  were  violated  in  his 
dominion,  especially  in  Brabant,  and  calling  upon  him  to 
put  a  stop  at  once  to  these  proceedings.  A  Brief  was 
despatched  to  the  Bishop  of  Liege,  sharply  rebuking  him 
for  having  neglected  the  defence  of  the  rights  of  the  Church, 
and  for  not  having  informed  the  Holy  See,  and  command- 
ing him,  under  pain  of  suspension  and  Interdict,  to  repair  his 
negligence  without  delay.  Similar  letters  were  written  to 
many  other  persons  who  were  in  a  position  to  have  influence 
in  the  Netherlands.* 

Alexander  took  pains  on  many  occasions  to  promote 
devotion  to  S.  Anne  j-  and  the  Blessed  Virgin.  In  re- 
gard to  the  latter,  the  ordinance  restoring  the  ringing 
of  the  Angelus  in  August  1500,  was  an  act  of  wide 
and  lasting  importance.^  No  canonisations  took  place 
during  this  Pope's  reign,  but  several  causes  were  intro- 
duced, and  the  investigations  in  regard  to  conduct  and 
miracles  were  conducted  with  great  care  and  circum- 
spection. Papal  instructions  on  these  points  are  to  be 
found   in   connection  with  Bishop   Benno,§  Henry  VI.  of 

*  Particulars  are  to  be  found  in  Cauchie,  Mission  aux  Archives 
Vaticanes,  18-23.     Bruxelles,  1892. 

t  See  SCHAUMKELL,  Der  Cultus  der  hi.  Anna,  21,  25,  though  it  con- 
tains serious  misapprehensions.  Cf.  Schmitz  in  the  Katholik  (1893), 
II.,  251  seq.,  and  the  Sonntagsblatt  of  the  Berhn  Germania  (1893),  No. 
ID.  On  the  veneration  of  S.  Anne  in  the  15th  Century,  see  also  Falk  in 
the  Katholik  (1878),  I.,  60  seq. 

X  BurCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  72.     See  supra,  p.  79. 

§  Cf.  the  Brief  of  Alexander  VI.  to  the  Bishop  of  Naumburg  and  the 
Abbots  of  Altzelle  and  Buch  in  Cod.  Dipl.  Sax.,  2  H.  th..  Vol.  III.,  288-289. 
The  editor,  Gersdorf,  misplaces  this  Brief,  dating  it  4th  Apl.,  1492,  before 
the  election  of  Alexander  VI.  But  the  title  in  the  copy  used  by  Gersdorf 
is  :  die  4  Aprilis,  MCCCCLXXXXII  p.  n.  anno  septimo,  which  would 
carry  it  on  to  the  year  1499,  and  this  agrees  admirably  with  the  following 
extract  in  the  *Acta  Consist.:  Romae,  4  Martii,  1499.  R-  D-  Senen  legit 
summam  quarundam  litterarum  ducum  Saxonie,  prelator.,  v.  episcoporum 
VOL.   VI.  .  L 


146  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

England,*  and  S.  Frances  of  Rome.f  Amongst  other 
ecclesiastical  acts  of  Alexander  VI.  should  be  men- 
tioned his  confirmation  of  the  Bull  of  Sixtus  IV.  on 
the  Immaculate  Conception  of  Our  Lady,|  and  in 
the  year  1 501,  his  affirmative  decision  of  the  question  as 
to  whether  it  was  allowable  for  the  Bishop  Albert  of 
Wilna  to  take  up  arms  to  defend  himself  against  the 
Tartars.  On  the  20th  of  August  of  the  same  year,  he 
declared  the  form  of  baptism  in  which  the  passive  mood 
is  used  (which  is  customary  amongst  the  Ruthenes  in 
Lithuania  and  others  of  the  Greek  rite)  to  be  valid,  and 
forbade  the  reiteration  of  the  Sacrament ;  grounding  his 
decision  on  that  of  Eugenius  IV.§  On  the  8th  of  June,  145 1, 
he  wrote  to  the  Grand  Duke  of  Lithuania,  admonishing  him 
to  do  everything  in  his  power  to  persuade  his  consort 
to  "  abjure  the  Russian  religion,  and  accept  the  Christian 
Faith."||  In  the  year  1496  Constantine,  Prince  of  Georgia, 
sent  the  Basilian  monk  Nilus  to  Rome  with  overtures  for 
a  reunion  in  religion  and  an  alliance  against  the  Turks. 

et  abbat.  et  nobil.  illar.  partium  quemadmodum  alias  frequenter  scrip 
serunt  pro  canonizatione  beati  Bennonis  quondam  episcopi  Misnens. 
quern  dicunt  miraculis  corruscare.  Et  cum  semper  remissi  fuerint  ad 
partes  pro  interponenda  mora,  prout  in  similibus  arduis  causis  fit,  novis- 
sime  omnes  rescripserunt  instantissime  supplicantes  ut  causa  canoniza- 
tionis  vel  saltem  informationis  re  rum  illarum  committeretur.  S.  D.  N. 
omnibus  intellectis  statuit  quod  fieret  commissio  per  breve  duobus 
episcopis  et  duobus  abbatibus  pro  gravitate  rei  ut  illi  de  narratis  se  in- 
formarent  et  suis  litteris  S^  S'i  postea  referrent.  Liber  relat.  Consistorii, 
fig.  C.  303,  f.  38.     Consistorial  Archives  in  the  Vatican. 

*  WiLKiNs,  III.,  640  ;  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  364. 

t  The  ex£t-;ii  nation  of  the  cause  was  entrusted  to  three  Cardinals  on 
4th  March,  1499.  See  Cod.  in  Consistorial  Archives  cited  in  previous 
note. 

t  Lea,  III.,  602. 

§  For  documents  on  this  point,  see  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  391. 
II  Theiner,  Mon.  Pol.,  II.,  289  ;  Pichler,  II.,  58. 


THE   JUBILEE   OF    1 50O.  I47 

Alexander  in  reply  sent  him  the  Decree  of  the  Council  of 
Florence  and  other  information  on  the  subject* 

In  accordance  with  the  decree  of  Paul  II.,  that  each 
twenty-fifth  year  should  be  a  Jubilee,  the  year  1500  was  so 
kept  under  Alexander  VI.,  and  preparations  for  it  were 
begun  in  I498.-|- 

On  the  28th  March,  1499,  the  Jubilee  Bull  was  discussed 
in  Consistory,  and  it  was  decided  that  all  other  indulgences 
and  faculties  should  be  suspended  during  this  year,;|:  All 
the  Cardinals  gave  their  assent  to  this  last  resolution, 
which  in  many  places,  and  especially  in  Germany,  gave 
considerable  dissatisfaction, §  and  on  the  same  day  the  Bull 
was  publishedll.  On  the  22nd  December  a  similar  Bull  was 
brought  out  in  Rome  in  Latin  and  Italian,  granting  special 

*  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1496,  n.  21,  22  ;  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  390. 

t  The  first  thing  that  was  done  was  to  attend  to  the  improvement  and 
putting  in  order  of  the  streets  and  bridges  in  Rome.  For  particulars,  see 
the  following  Chapter. 

X  ■'^■Romae  in  die  jovis  sancti  XXVIII.  Martii,  1499  :  Cum  S.  D.  N. 
fecisset  verbum  de  publicatione  bulle  pro  anno  jubilaei  centesimo  proxime 
future  cum  suspensione  omnium  aliarum  indulgentiarum  plenariarum, 
facultatum  et  concessionum  quibusvis  locis  et  personis  ubique  terrarum 
quibusvis  causis  et  rationibus  ante  hac  concessarum  ac  etiam  litterarum 
desuper  confectarum  usque  ad  annum  finitum  ipsius  jubilaei  ut  magna 
cum  frequentia  undecunque  personaliter  christifideles  ad  ipsum  cele- 
brandum  accedant,  fuit  ab  omnibus  commendatum  ut  fieret.  Lib.  relat. 
Consist,  tempore  pontif.  Alexandri  VI.  in  die  XII.  Nov.  1498,  usque  in 
diem  V.  lulii  1499,  fig.  C.  303,  f.  48.  Consistorial  Archives  of  the 
Vatican. 

§  Geiler  von  Kaisersberg  was  one  of  those  who  were  displeased  at  this, 
on  account  of  his  great  devotion  to  Indulgences  ;  cf.  Hist.-Pol.  Bl., 
XLVIIL,  394  se^.  The  writer  of  this  article  says  he  is  unable  to  say 
whether  or  not  Alexander  VI.  was  the  first  to  decree  this  suspension.  It 
will  be  seen  from  PaSTOR,  Hist.  Popes,  II.,  481,  ed.  2  (German  ed.),  that 
it  was  not  a  new  thing.  Venice  endeavoured  to  obtain  an  exemption 
from  its  operation.     See  Sanuto,  I.,  490  se^. 

II  BurCHARDI  Diarium,  II.,  518,  591  seg'. 


148  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

privileges  to  the  Penitentiary  of  S.  Peter ;  and  all  the 
clergy  of  the  city  were  invited  to  the  opening  of  the 
Jubilee.* 

The  Pope  himself  performed  this  ceremony  on  Christmas 
Eve,  1499,  having  taken  pains  to  settle  all  the  details  be- 
forehand with  his  Master  of  Ceremonies.  The  ceremonial 
observed  on  these  occasions  was  no  modern  invention,  but, 
as  the  Bull  of  indiction  expressly  says,  was  founded  on 
ancient  rites  and  full  of  symbolic  meaning.  The  Pope  was 
carried  to  S.  Peter's  arrayed  in  full  pontificals,  holding  a 
gilt  lighted  candle  in  one  hand  and  blessing  the  people 
with  the  other.  All  the  Cardinals  and  Prelates  who 
accompanied  him  also  carried  lighted  candles.  The  pro- 
cession stopped  in  front  of  the  Church,  and  the  Papal  Choir 
began  the  usual  Antiphons.  Then  the  Pope  proceeded  on 
foot  to  the  so-called  sacred  door,  where  a  hammer  was  put 
into  his  hand  in  token  of  the  power  entrusted  to  him,  in 
virtue  of  which  he  "  openeth  and  no  man  shutteth  ;  shutteth 
and  no  man  openeth  "  (Apoc.  iii.  7).  With  a  few  blows  of 
the  hammer  he  made  a  breach  in  the  wall  with  which  this 
door  is  closed,  the  bricks  having  already  been  loosened,  and 
the  rest  was  cleared  away  by  workmen.  This  part  of  the 
ceremony  occupied  about  half  an  hour.  Then  the  Pope, 
holding  the  lighted  candle  in  his  left  hand,  entered  first, 
the  rest  following,  while  the  Te  Deum  was  intoned  ;  after 
which  Vespers  were  sung  immediately .f 

On  the  14th  of  April  the  Pope  visited  the  four  principal 
churches  in  order  to  gain  the  Jubilee  Indulgence.  On 
Easter  Day  he  celebrated  the  High  Mass  in  S.  Peter's, 
and  afterwards  gave  the  solemn   blessing  and  absolution. 

*  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  II.,  584  seq.  Cf.  *Despatch  of  G.  L. 
Cataneo  to  the  Marquess  of  Mantua,  Rome,  25th  Dec,  1499.  Gonzaga 
Archives,  Mantua. 

t  BURCHARDi  Diarium,  II.,  598  seq. 


PILGRIMAGES   TO   ROME.  1 49 

According  to  Burchard,  the  crowd  which  assisted  at  these 
solemnities  numbered  200,000  persons.*  Although  this 
may  be  an  exaggeration,-]-  still  it  is  certain  that,  in  spite  of 
the  troubles  of  the  times  and  the  insecurity  in  Rome  itself, 
the  numbers  attending  this  Jubilee  were  very  large.  Even 
in  December  a  vast  crowd  of  pilgrims  passed  through 
Florence.^  A  Bull  to  provide  for  the  safety  of  the  way- 
farers on  their  journey  was  issued  in  February  ;  |  and  many 
precautionary  measures  were  adopted  to  maintain  order  in 
Rome,  II  though  they  failed  to  prove  completely  effectual. 
Nevertheless  visitors  still  continued  to  arrive.  A  pious 
Camaldolese  monk  was  greatly  consoled  by  the  sight  of 
so  many  thousands  who  had  not  perished  in  Sodom.  "  God 
be  praised,"  he  exclaimed,  "  who  has  brought  hither  so 
many  witnesses  to  the  Faith." If  "All  the  world  was  in 
Rome  "  (orbis  in  urbe),  writes  Sigismondo  de'  Conti.**  No 
difficulties  or  dangers  seemed  capable  of  checking  the 
inflow  of  pilgrims,  shewing  how  deeply  rooted  the  Faith 
still  was  in  the  hearts  of  the  various  nations.  Not  a  few 
succumbed  to  the  Plague  which  was  raging  in  many  parts 
of  the  States  of  the  Church.-}"]-  Those  who  came  by  sea 
were  in  danger  of  being  captured  by  pirates,  and  Alexander 
stationed  a  cruiser  at  Ostia  for  their  protection.  By  land, 
the  Italians  especially  suffered  much  from  the  hated 
French  troops,  nevertheless  a   great    number   appeared.  J  J 

*  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  34,  37. 

t  This   seems    probable,  as    BURCHARD,    III.,   36,    only   mentions 
100,000  pilgrims. 
X  Landucci,  205. 

§  BURCHARDi  Diarium,  III.,  id  seq. 
1 1  Ibid.,  III.,  42  seq. 

•^  Petrus  Delphinus  in  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1500,  n.  i. 
**  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  II.,  218. 
+t  Cf.  Diario  di  Ser  Tommaso  di  Silvestro,  235  seq. 
XX  GUGLIELMOTTI,  Marina,  II.,  496;  Maulde,  Origines,  52-54. 


ISO  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Thousands  arrived  from  Germany,  the  Netherlands,  and 
Hungary.  "  Men  and  women,  widows  and  maidens,  monks 
and  nuns,"  says  Trithemius,  "  came  flocking  to  Rome  to 
gain  the  Indulgence."*  In  the  Confraternity-book  of  the 
Hospital  of  S'°  Spirito  in  Rome  in  the  month  of  January, 
1500,  not  less  than  150  Hungarian  pilgrims  are  entered, 
and  in  the  course  of  the  year  they  numbered  more  than 
500.-|-  Nor  were  the  Italians  behindhand.  The  Neapoli- 
tans had  a  procession  of  their  own,  in  which  the  venerated 
picture  of  S'^  Maria  del  Carmine  was  carried,  many  scourging 
themselves  as  they  walked  till  the  blood  came.J  The  fact 
that  the  deaths  of  foreigners  in  Rome  between  Christmas 
and  S.  John's  Day  were  estimated  at  30,800,  shews  how 
large  the  number  of  pilgrims  must  have  been.§ 

Amongst  the  celebrities  who  made  this  pilgrimage,  the 
first  to  be  mentioned  is  Nicholas  Copernicus,  who  arrived 
in  Rome  about  Easter,  and  remained  there  a  whole  year. 
He  lectured  then,  but  not,  as  is  almost  universally  supposed, 

*  Trithemii,  Chronicon  Hirsaug.,  II.,  579  (S.  Galli,  1690),  Cf. 
Sanuto,  III.,  135.  Many  undertook  the  pilgrimage  for  the  benefit  of 
the  Souls  in  Purgatory.  A  large  number  of  sums  left  in  wills  to  defray 
the  expenses  of  pilgrimages  to  Rome  are  mentioned  in  the  *  Testametitar- 
buch  of  the  Imperial  free  city  of  Pressburg,  Vol.  I.  (1427-1529).  There 
is  hardly  a  Will  which  does  not  contain  a  bequest  for  this  purpose.  In 
1493 there  ^i'^  7 such;  in  1494,  i  ;  1495,  2  ;  1496,  2  ;  1498,  i  ;  1499,  i  ; 
1500,1;  1501,3;  1502,3;  1503,  2;  1504,3;  1505,  i;  1506,3;  1508, 
I ;  151 1.  3;  1512,  2;  1 5 13,  2;  1515,  2;  1 516,  I  ;  1 517,  3;  1 5 18,  2; 
1 5 19,  2  ;  1520,  I  ;  1523,  I.  After  this  they  disappear,  owing  to  the  rise 
of  Lutheranism.     State  Archives,  Pressburg. 

t  Mon.  Vatican,  hist,  regni  Hungarici  illustrancia,  Series  prima, 
t.  V.  Liber  Conf  S.  Spiritus  de  urbe  (Budapestini,  1889).  Cf.  Sanuto, 
III.,  135. 

X  Landucci,  210.     Cf.  Arch.  St.  Napolit.,  VII.,  105  ;  VIII.,  530. 

§  Stumpf,  452;  Havemann,  II.,  104.  An  aged  pilgrim,  Lucas  of 
Thorn,  apparently  a  relative  of  Coppernicus,  died  in  the  Hospital  del 
Anima  in  1500.     See  Hipler,  Anal.  Warm.,  169. 


DISTINGUISHED   PILGRIMS   IN    ROME.  I51 

in  the  capacity  of  a  mathematical  professor  at  the  High- 
school,  but  as  a  private  teacher,  giving  the  lectures  freely, 
according  to  the  custom  of  the  time.  Amongst  his  hearers 
were  many  distinguished  and  learned  men.  Michael  A^ngelo 
and  Alessandro  Farnese  (afterwards  Paul  III.)  are  supposed 
to  have  been  amongst  them.*  Of  Italian  pilgrims  one  of 
the  most  notable  was  Elizabetta  Gonzaga,  the  wife  of 
Guidobaldo  of  Urbino.  It  was  a  perilous  enterprise,  as  at 
that  time  Csesar  Borgia  was  planning  his  attack  on  Urbino, 
but  in  spite  of  the  dissuasions  of  her  brother  she  insisted 
on  undertaking  it.  She  went  incognita  with  one  or  two 
attendants,  and  only  remained  a  few  days,  merely  long 
enough  to  gain  the  Indulgence.f  This  lady,  and  numbers 
of  other  women,  were  only  brought  to  Rome,  where  they 
must  have  seen  so  much  to  grieve  them,  by  genuine  piety.| 

*  Prowe,  Coppernicus  I.,  o.'jcjseq.  (Berlin,  1883) ;  Hipler  in  the  Lit. 
Rundschau  (1884),  p.  205  ;  Lohmeyer  in  Sybels  Zeitschr.,  LVIL,  20  seq. 

t  Gregorovius,  Lucrezia  Borgia,  129  seq.;  Pasolini,  II.,  246; 
Luzio-Renier,  Mantova  e  Urbino,  104  seq.  Ercole  I.,  Duke  of 
Ferrara,  was  also  purposing  to  come  to  Rome  for  the  Jubilee,  but  was 
prevented  by  a  fall  from  his  horse.  See  *Letter  from  the  Duke  to  G. 
B.  Ferrari  of  12th  Jan.,  1500.     State  Archives,  Modena. 

X  What  the  German  knight,  A.  von  Harff,  thought,  in  the  year  1497, 
of  the  Rome  of  the  Borgias  has  already  been  told.  A  similar  impres- 
sion is  conveyed  in  the  woids  of  a  Rhinelander  who  had  been  in  Card. 
Brigonnet's  service,  retailed  by  Vettori.  "If  you  ask  me  why  I  left 
Rome,  I  answer  that  we  Rhinelanders  are  good  Christians,  and  have 
read  and  heard  that  the  Christian  faith  has  been  founded  on  the  blood 
of  the  martyrs,  and  good  morals,  and  many  miracles,  so  that  it  would  be 
impossible  for  any  one  who  lived  here  to  become  an  unbeliever.  But  I 
spent  several  years  in  Rome  and  saw  the  lives  led  by  the  Prelates  and 
dignitaries,  and  had  I  stayed  there  any  longer  I  should  have  been  in 
danger  not  only  of  losing  my  faith,  but  of  becoming  an  Epicurean 
and  doubting  the  immortality  of  my  soul.''  See  Vettori,  Viaggio  in 
Alemagna,  25-26  (Paris,  1837).  The  following,  being  derived  from 
the  narratives  of  the  Jubilee  pilgrims  themselves,  is  still  more  interesting  : 
"  In  that  same  golden  year  (1500),  on  SS.  Peter  and  Paul's  day  (June  29X 


152  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Even  those  who,  like  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  were  far  from 
being  hostile  to  the  Borgia,  could  not  conceal  their  dis- 
approval of  Alexander's  unrestrained  nepotism.  Caesar 
was  incessantly  asking  for  money  to  carry  out  his  enter- 
prises in  the  Romagna,  and  his  father,  without  another 
thought,  handed  over  to  him  all  the  receipts  from  the 
Jubilee,  which,  as  Sigismondo  says,  former  Popes,  such  as 
Nicholas  V.  and  Sixtus  V.,  had  employed  in  restoring  and 
adorning  the  churches  of  Rome.* 

Towards  the  end  of  the  Jubilee  year  Rome  was  visited 
by  a  great  calamity.  On  the  ist  November,  an  eye-witness 
writes,  after  several  days  of  rain  the  fiber  began  to  over- 
flow, and  the  houses  along  its  banks  were  flooded.  In 
two  more  days  the  Vatican  was  cut  off  from  the  rest  of  the 
city,  and  on  the  4th  the  waters  rose  to  such  a  height  that 
many  churches  and  houses  were  flooded.     This  high  water 

there  was  a  fearful  storm  in  Rome,  so  terrible  that  people  thought  the 
city  and  all  its  inhabitants  would  be  destroyed ;  and  the  Pope's  palace 
was  struck  by  lightning  and  he  himself  wounded  in  the  arm.  This  same 
Pope  had  at  that  time  a  daughter  (Lucrezia  Borgia)  in  Rome,  who 
lived  in  great  pomp  and  was  seen  by  the  pilgrims,  and  they  could 
tell  many  things  of  her.  He  had  allowed  her  to  take,  and  had  himself 
given  her  to,  a  third  husband  (Alfonso  d'Este,  Duke  of  Ferrara),  although 
her  two  first  husbands  (Giovanni  Sforza,  Lord  of  Pesaro,  and  Alfonso 
of  Aragon,  natural  son  of  the  King  of  Naples)  were  still  alive ;  if  one 
does  not  please  her  she  asks  for  another.  One  of  these  forsaken  former 
husbands  of  hers  revenged  himself  on  the  Pope's  son,  who,  being  gone 
out  on  a  love  adventure,  the  other  watched  for  him  and  cruelly  stabbed 
him,  and  threw  him  into  the  Tiber.  It  was  commonly  said  amongst  the 
pilgrims  that  this  Pope  was  not  in  great  favour  with  the  citizens  of 
Rome."  Neue  Mittheilungen  aus  dem  Gebiete  historisch-antiqua- 
rischer  Forschungen,  XV.,  i.  (Halle,  1880.)  (V.  Chronicalische  Aufzeich- 
nungen  zur  Gesch.  der  Stadt  Halle  vom  Jahre  1464-15 12.  Von  Dr. 
Wachter  in  Breslau),  pp.  122-123. 

*  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  H.,  218.  On  Jubilee  coins,  see  Nothen, 
81  ;  on  the  Pilgrimage  literature,  see  Falk,  Druckkunst,  57-107. 


DISPOSAL   OF   THE   JUBILEE   ALMS.  1 53 

lasted  fifteen  hours,  after  which  the  inundation  subsided  ; 
but  the  streets  were  smothered  in  mud  and  hardly  passable. 
People  consoled  themselves  as  best  tliey  could  by  saying 
it  was  not  as  bad  as  that  of  five  years  before.* 

In  December  the  Jubilee  in  Rome  was  prolonged  until 
the  Feast  of  the  Epiphany  and  extended  first  to  the  whole 
of  Italy  and  then  to  the  whole  of  Christendom.  According 
to  these  Bulls,  all  Christians  living  at  a  distance  from  Rome 
might,  in  the  following  year,  gain  the  great  Indulgence  with- 
out visiting  the  city,  by  fulfilling  certain  conditions  and 
paying  a  certain  sum.f  The  Pope  left  all  moneys  collected 
in  Venetian  territory  in  the  hands  of  the  Republic  for  the 
war  against  the  Turks.  J  The  same  thing  was  done  in 
Poland,  though  there  the  money  was  not  employed  for  the 
purpose  specified. §  In  Italy,  Caesar  had  the  effrontery  to 
appropriate  the  Jubilee  moneys  on  his  own  authority.  The 
Florentine  historian  Nardi  relates  how  his  emissaries 
appeared  in  Florence  and  demanded  the  money  in  the 
Jubilee  chest,  "  to  enable  him  to  pay  the  soldiers  who  were 
plundering  us,  and  it  was  no  small  sum."||  The  knowledge 
that   these   things  were   done   goes    a   good  way  towards 

*  Letter  from  Brandolino  in  Brom,  195  seq.  Cf.  Burchardi 
Diarium,  III.,  84  seq.^  and  Sanuto,  III.,  1048,  1063.  The  date  in 
Reumont,  III.,  I,  234,  is  inaccurate. 

t  Cf.  Burchardi  Diarium,  W.^ZZseq.^  94  seq. ;  Diario  di  Tommaso 
di  Silvestro,  249  ;  Landucci,  218 ;  Notar  Giacomo,  237  ;  Atti  Mod., 
8  seq.,  28  seq.  ;  NOTHEN,  80  seq.  In  *Alex.  VI.  Secret,  lib.  V.  (Regest. 
871),  f.  I,  is  a  Bull  dat.  Romae,  1501,  Id.  lull  Ao  9°,  which  grants  a 
prolongation  of  the  Jubilee  to  the  city  of  Faenza.  Also  ibid..,  f.  146,  is 
a  Bull  omnibus  Franciae  regnis  de  renovatione  indulgentiar.  Jubilei, 
dat.  Romae,  1501,  quartodecimo  Cal.  Febr.  Ao  10°.  Secret  Archives  of 
the  Vatican. 

X  COPPi,  Discorso  sopra  le  finanze  di  Roma  nei  secoli  di  mezzo,  23. 
Roma,  1847. 

§  Caro,  v.,  2,  813  seq. 

II  Nardi,  1st.  Fior.,  lib.  IV. 


154  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

explaining  the  resistance  which  those  who  were  commis- 
sioned to  preach  the  Jubilee  Indulgences  met  with  in 
Switzerland*  as  well  as  in  Germany.  Cardinal  Peraudi 
had  to  put  up  with  all  sorts  of  harassing  restrictions  in 
the  empire,  and  to  undertake  that  all  the  money  there 
collected  should  be  handed  over  untouched  to  the  adminis- 
tration for  the  Crusacle.-j- 

This  Cardinal  took  advantage  of  his  visit  to  Germany 
to  endeavour  to  do  something  for  the  revival  of  religion 
amongst  the  people,  taking  up  to  some  extent  the  work  of 
Nicholas  of  Cusa.  He  himself  preached  to  the  common 
people,  though  he  had  to  employ  an  interpreter.  He 
devoted  himself  especially  to  the  reform  of  the  convents, 
many  of  which  had  become  sadly  relaxed.  He  also 
laboured  to  put  down  concubinage  amongst  the  clergy, 
and,  on  the  other  hand,  to  defend  their  privileges  and  the 
liberty  of  the  Church.  J 

If  Alexander  VI.  did  nothing  towards  the  reform  of 
the  Church,  yet  he  was  not  wanting  in  earnest  care  to  pre- 
serve the  purity  of  her  doctrine.  His  Censorial  edict  for 
Germany,  dated  1st  June,  1501,  is  a  very  important  docu- 
ment in  this  respect. 

In  this,  which  is  the  first  Papal  pronouncement  on  the 
printing  of  books,  it  is  declared  that  the  art  of  printing  is 
extremely  valuable  in  providing  means  for  the  multiplica- 
tion of  approved  and  useful  books ;  but  may  be  most 
mischievous  if  it  is  abused  for  the  dissemination  of  bad 

*  Cf.  Havemann,  II.,  104.  Caesar's  remark  on  this  subject,  given 
there  on  Reisner's  authority,  is  a  later  story. 

t  See  supra ^  p.  97. 

X  Particulars  in  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  361.  Card.  Peraudi  issued 
a  proclamation  which,  as  far  as  I  know,  has  never  been  printed,  dat. 
25th  March,  1503,  announcing  that  Alexander  VI.  had  empowered  him 
to  undertake  a  general  visitation  of  the  Convents  in  his  Legation. 
Frankf.  City  Archives,  Crypt.  A.  Urk,,  n.  30. 


THE   CENSORSHIP   OF   BOOKS.  1 55 

ones.  Therefore  measures  must  be  taken  to  restrain 
printers  from  reproducing  writings  directed  against  the 
Catholic  Faith  or  calculated  to  give  scandal  to  Catholics. 
The  Pope  has  been  credibly  informed,  that  in  many  places, 
especially  in  the  Dioceses  of  Cologne,  Mayence,  Treves, 
and  Magdeburg,  many  books  and  pamphlets  have  been, 
and  still  continue  to  be,  printed,  containing  various  errors 
and  perverted  doctrines.  '  "  Since,"  the  Bull  goes  on  to  say, 
*'  we  desire  to  put  a  stop  to  so  detestable  an  evil  without 
any  delay,  in  accordance  with  the  duty  imposed  upon  us 
by  our  pastoral  office,  we  hereby,  in  virtue  of  our  apostolical 
authority,  forbid  all  printers  and  their  assistants  residing  in 
the  above  named  Dioceses,  under  pain  of  excommunication 
latae  sententiae,  and  a  fine  to  be  imposed  by  the  Archbishops 
of  Cologne  or  their  Vicars-General  or  other  officials,  and  paid 
into  the  Apostolic  Chancery,  from  henceforth  either  to 
print  or  cause  to  be  printed,  any  book,  pamphlet,  or  work 
of  any  sort,  without  first  submitting  the  same  to  the  above 
named  Archbishops  or  their  Vicars-General  or  officials,  and 
obtaining  their  express  permission,  gratuitously  given. 
Further,  we  lay  it  upon  the  Archbishops  and  their  Vicars 
and  officials  as  a  duty  of  conscience,  not  to  grant  this 
permission  without  examining  the  books  in  question,  or 
causing  them  to  be  examined  by  capable  and  Catholic 
persons,  so  as  to  prevent  anything  from  being  printed  that 
is  contrary  to  the  Catholic  Faith  or  ungodly  or  capable 
of  causing  scandal.  And  because  it  is  not  enough  to 
guard  against  the  future  printing  of  bad  books  without 
providing  that  those  already  printed  shall  be  suppressed, 
in  virtue  of  our  authority  we  charge  the  said  Arch- 
bishops, Vicars  and  officials  to  command  all  printers  and 
other  persons  residing  in  their  respective  Dioceses,  what- 
ever may  be  their  dignity,  position  or  condition,  within  a 
certain    fixed    time,   to    notify   all    printed    books  in   their 


156  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

possession  to  the  said  Archbishops,  Vicars  or  officials, 
and  without  prevarication  of  any  kind,  to  deliver  up  what- 
ever books  or  treatises  shall  be  judged  by  them  to  contain 
anything  contrary  to  the  Catholic  Faith,  or  ungodly,  or 
capable  of  causing  scandal,  or  ill-sounding  in  any  way, 
equally  under  pain  of  excommunication  and  a  fine  to  be 
determined  as  aforesaid."* 

In  Italy  Alexander  VI.  energetically  repressed  the 
heretical  tendencies  which  were  especially  prevalent  in 
Lombardy.f  On  the  31st  of  January,  1500,  two  inquisitors 
were  sent  by  him  with  letters  of  recommendation  to  the 
Bishop  of  Olmtitz,  to  proceed  against  the  very  numerous 
Picards  and  Waldensians  in  Bohemia  and  Moravia,  who 
led  extremely  immoral  lives. J  Ever  since  the  year  1493 
Alexander  had  been  taking  great  pains  to  win  back  the 
Bohemian  Utraquists ;  but  these  efforts  had  failed  com- 
pletely. §  When  in  the  year  1499  some  of  the  more 
moderate  Utraquists  shewed  an  inclination  to  be  reconciled 
with  the  Church,  Alexander  had  the  matter  discussed  in 
Consistory  and  bestowed  special  powers  on  the  clergy  in 
Prague.  1 1 

*  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1501,  n.  36;  Reusch,  Index,  I.,  54-55.  Cf. 
Fessler,  Vermischte  Schriften,  147  seq. ;  Kapp,  Gesch.  d.  Deutsch. 
Buchhandels,  530^-^$^.  (Leipzig,  1886);  Archiv.  f.  Gesch.  d.  Buchhandels, 
XIII.,  246. 

+  Cf.  Bull.  Ord.  Praedic,  IV.,  102,  190;  RAYNALDUS,  ad  an.  1501, 
n.  42;  Bernino,  IV.,  216  seq.  On  Alexander's  action  in  regard  to 
S.  Patrick's  "  Purgatory,"  see  Moll  in  the  Studien  en  Bydrogen  ap't 
gebied  der  hist.  Theologie,  II.,  361  seq.     Amsterdam,  187 1. 

J  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1500,  n.  60  seq:  Cf.  Lange,  Papstesel,  b2seq..^ 
68  seq..,  72-74,  on  the  Waldensians  in  Rome.  Cf  also  CANxtl,  Storia 
di  Como,  I.,  106. 

§  Palacky,  v.,  I,  381  seq. 

II  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1499,  "•  3°-  ''"his  was  dealt  with  in  the  Con- 
sistory of  5th  July,  1499.  See  *Liber  relat.  Consistorii,  Sig.  C.  303,  f.  70. 
Consistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 


ALEXANDER   VI.    AND   THE   JEWS.  157 

In  common  with  most  other  Popes  of  the  15th  Century, 
Alexander  VI.  shewed  great  toleration  to  the  Jews  ;  he 
protected  Ihem  both  in  Rome  and  Avignon.*  At  the  same 
time,  he  forbade  the  Spanish  Dominicans  to  receive  con- 
verted Jews  into  their  Order.-]- 

The  indulgence  shewn  to  the  Jews  was,  however,  in  a 
great  measure  connected  with  politics ;  and  the  concessions 
granted  by  Alexander  VI.  to  the  Spanish  Monarchs  in  re- 
gard to  the  Inquisition,  which  went  far  beyond  what  was 
allowable,  were  equally  due  to  political  motives. | 

The  judicial  proceedings  against  the  crypto-Jews  or 
Marana  in  the  States  of  the  Church,  instituted  by  Alexander 
VI.  in  1493,  were  also  motived  by  Spanish  influence.^ 
When,  later,  he  discovered  that  they  had  made  their  way 
into  the  Court  he  was  unsparing  in  his  determination  to 
root  them  out.  Peter  d'Aranda,  Bishop  of  Calahorra,  and 
his  bastard  son,  who  had  obtained  the  office  of  Protonotary, 
were  tried  in  the  year  1498,  degraded,  and  imprisoned  in  the 
Castle  of  St.  Angelo.  They  were  accused  of  denying  the 
doctrines  of  the  Trinity,  the  sufferings  of  Christ,  Hell, 
Purgatory,  and  Indulgences.  Forty  crypto-Jews  in  all  were 
brought  before  the  Court,  the  majority  of  whom  abjured 
their  errors.|| 

Alexander  exerted  himself  not  only  to  maintain  the 
purity  of  the    Christian  faith,  but   also  to  provide  for  its 

*  See  Revue  des  Etudes  Juives,  VI.,  21  ;  VII.,  228;  and  Lemann, 
L'entree  des  Israelites  dans  la  Societe  Francj.  et  les  etats  Chretiens,  193, 
Paris,  1886. 

t  Bull.  Ord.  Praedic,  IV.,  125. 

X  Cf.  Gams,  III.,  2, 50^5-^^.,  56  seg.  See  also  Rodrigo,  I.,  409  seg. ; 
II.,  99,  104. 

§  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1493,  "•  32- 

II  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1498,  n.  22  ;  Sanuto,  I.,  949  seg.,  1014 ; 
^■Despatch  of  the  Ferrarese  Envoy  Carissimi,  dat.  Rome,  21st  April, 
1498  (State  Archives,  Modena) ;  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  345. 


158  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

propagation.  The  magnificent  discoveries  of  the  Portuguese 
and  Spaniards  offered  a  wide  field  to  the  Church  in  this 
direction.  It  is  consoHng  to  note  how  much,  even  under 
Alexander  VI.,  was  done  in  the  way  of  spreading  the 
knowledge  of  the  Gospel  amongst  the  heathen. 

Greenland,  being  that  part  of  America  which  was  in 
earliest  communication  with  Europe,  was  naturally  also 
the  first  to  profit  by  the  pastoral  care  of  the  Popes. 
According  to  the  Scandinavian  Sagas,  Christianity  was 
introduced  into  Greenland  by  S.  Olaf  II.,  King  of  Norway,. 
between  A.  d.  1015-30.  This  account  is  confirmed  by  a 
letter  of  Nicholas  V.  of  22nd  September,  1448,  addressed 
to  the  Bishop  of  Skalholt  and  Holar  in  Iceland.* 

The  occasion  of  this  letter  was  a  request  from  the 
Greenlanders  to  the  Pope  to  send  them  new  priests  and 
a  Bishop.  In  the  first  decade  of  the  15th  Century  the 
heathen  pirates  from  the  neighbouring  coast  had  swooped 
down  upon  their  country,  slaughtered  the  greater  part 
of  the  Christian  inhabitants  and  carried  off  the  rest 
into  slavery.  The  churches  were  all  destroyed  excepting 
nine,  which  were  situated  in  remote  places,  difficult  of 
access.  In  the  course  of  time  some  of  the  captives  managed 
to  make  their  escape  and  return  to  their  homes,  where  they 
now  found  themselves  destitute  of  all  spiritual  aids,  as  the 
churches  that  still  remained  were  in  places  inaccessible 
to  many  of  them,  and  now  the  few  priests  who  were  left 
had  all  died.  Nicholas  V.  desired  the  Bishops  to  supply 
their  needs. 

His  letter,  however,  does  not  seem  to  have  reached  its 

*  Published  by  L.  JeliC,  L'Evangelisation  de  FAmerique  avant 
Christophe  Colomb,  in  Compte  rendu  du  Congres  Scientif.  inter- 
national des  Catholiques,  182-183  (Paris,  1891).  PescheL-Ruge, 
Gesch.  der  Erdkunde,  162,  note,  ed.  2  (Miinchen,  1877),  ?ive  a  wrong- 
date — 20th  Sept. 


DISCOVERY   OF   THE    NEW   WORLD.  1 59 

destination,  and  in  the  reign  of  Innocent  VIII.  the  Green- 
landers  again  addressed  Rome.  They  described  their  sad 
pHght  in  touching  words.  The  sea  surrounding  their 
inhospitable  coast  was  so  blocked  with  ice  that  in  the  course 
of  eighty  years  no  foreign  vessel  had  anchored  there.  Left 
without  a  Bishop  and  without  priests,  many  had  forgotten 
the  Faith  of  their  fathers  and  relapsed  into  heathenism. 
The  only  relic  which  remained  to  those  who  still  cherished 
it  was  the  corporal  with  which  the  last  priest  had  celebrated 
his  last  Mass.  This  was  brought  out  once  a  year  and 
publicly  venerated.  In  response  to  this  appeal  Innocent 
VIII.,  at  the  close  of  his  reign,  appointed  the  zealous  and 
self-sacrificing  Benedictine  monk  Mathias,  Bishop  of  Gardar 
or  Greenland.  /-Ylexander  in  the  year  1492  or  1493  con- 
firmed this  appointment,  and  commanded  that  the  Bishop 
should  receive  all  his  nomination  papers  tax  free.* 

Just  at  the  time  that  the  Bishop  of  Greenland  was 
receiving  his  powers  at  Rome  an  event  had  occurred  which 
was  destined  to  make  large  demands  on  the  pastoral  care 
of  the  successor  of  S.  Peter :  Christopher  Columbus  had 
discovered  the  New  World.  A  hot  dispute  arose  almost 
immediately  between  Spain  and  Portugal  as  to  the  posses- 
sion of  the  newly-found  territory,  and  the  Pope  was  called 
upon  to  mediate  between  them.  The  Holy  See  was  still 
regarded  by  all  Christian  Princes  and  nations  as  the 
international  arbiter,  the  highest  tribunal  for  the  decision  of 
all  national  rights  and  important  political  questions.     Acting 

*  See  Jelic,  loc.  cit.,  183-184.  Cf.  Heywood,  Documenta  selecta 
e  tabulario  secreto  Vaticano,  quae  Romanorum  Pontificum  erga  Americae 
populos  curam  ac  studia  turn  ante  turn  pauUo  post  insulas  a  Christ. 
Columbo  repertas  testantur  phototypia  descripta.  Typis.  Vatic,  1893, 
n.  10,  pp.  12,  13  :  and  Ehrle,  Der  hist.  Gehalt  der  papstl.  Abtheilung 
auf  d.  WeltausslcUung  von  Chicago  in  den  Stimmen  aus  Maria-Laach, 
XLVI.  (1894),  367. 


l6o  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

on  this  principle,  the  Portuguese  had  turned  to  the  Popes 
to  obtain  security  in  their  rights  over  their  discoveries 
along  the  West  Coast  of  Africa.  It  was  Calixtus  III.  who, 
in  one  of  these  most  useful  decisions,  granted  to  Portugal 
the  exclusive  rights  of  trading  and  founding  colonies  on 
the  coast  between  Cape  Bojador  and  Guinea.  In  the  year 
1479  Spain  had  acquiesced  in  this  award  at  the  peace 
of  Alcacevas.  No  sooner  had  Columbus,  who  had  been 
rejected  by  Portugal,  returned  from  his  famous  voyage  than 
King  Emmanuel  set  up  a  claim  to  the  newly-found  lands  on 
the  ground  of  this  treaty.  The  relations  between  the  two 
countries  soon  became  such  that  war  seemed  imminent. 
Justly  estimating  the  importance  of  obtaining  a  decision 
from  the  Holy  See,  the  astute  King  Ferdinand  at  once 
addressed  himself  to  Rome.  His  confidential  agent  there 
was  the  Cardinal  Bernardino  Carvajal,  who,  in  a  very  short 
time,  achieved  a  marked  success.  On  the  3rd  and  4th  May, 
1493,  Alexander  put  his  signature  to  three  highly  important 
documents.  The  first,  dated  3rd  May,  confers  on  Spain 
an  exclusive  right  of  possession  over  all  the  islands  and 
countries  now  discovered  by  Columbus  and  all  future  dis- 
coveries of  his,  on  condition  of  propagating  the  Christian 
Faith  in  them,  and  provided  such  lands  are  not  already 
occupied  by  a  Christian  power.  Thus  Spain  received 
exactly  the  same  rights  and  privileges  as  those  which  had 
been  bestowed  upon  Portugal  for  her  colonies  on  the  West 
Coast  of  Africa.  The  second,  dated  the  same  day,  described 
these  rights  in  detail  ;  while  the  third,  dated  4th  May, 
defined  the  limits  of  what  we  should  now  call  the  spheres 
of  influence  of  Spain  and  Portugal.  The  boundary  line 
between  the  two  powers  was  drawn  from  the  North  to  the 
South  Pole,  100  Spanish  leagues  to  the  West  of  the  most 
westerly  island  of  the  Azores :  all  that  was  East  of  the 
line  belonged  to    Portugal,  and   all    that  was  West    of  it 


ARBITRATION    BY   THE   POPE.  l6l 

to  Spain  *  A  later  document  of  28th  September,  1493, 
added  some  further  complementary  details,  amongst  other 
things,  granting  all  new  discoveries,  consequent  on  westerly 
or  southerly  voyages,  to  Spain.-|- 

The  line  of  demarcation  fixed  by  Alexander  VI.,  which 
was  pushed  270  leagues  further  to  the  West  by  the  Treaty 
of  Tordesillas  on  7th  June,  1494,  formed  the  basis  of  all 
negotiations  and  agreements  between  the  two  great  colonis- 
ing powers  in  regard  to  the  partition  of  the  New  World. 
The  peaceful  settlement  of  a  number  of  thorny  boundary 
questions  between  Spain  and  Portugal  was  entirely  due  to 
Papal  decisions,  and  should  therefore  justly  be  regarded  as 
one  of  the  glories  of  the  Papacy.  Nothing  but  complete 
misunderstanding  and  blind  party  spirit  could  turn  it  into 
a  ground  of  accusation  against  Rome. 

It  is  simply  absurd  to  speak  of  Alexander  VI.  as  having 
given  away  what  did  not  belong  to  him,  and  taken  no  account 
of  the  liberties  of  the  Americans.^     The  word  "  grant "  here 

*  Navarette,  II.,  29  seq.\  Bull.,  V.,  361-364  ;  Raynaldus,  ad  an. 
1493,  n.  18  seq.;  and  Heywood,  loc.  cit.  Navarette  has  some  incorrect 
readings  ;  thus  in  the  Bull  of  4th  May,  p.  38,  nobis  evidently  should  be 
vobis,  and  the  same  mistake  occurs  in  the  Bull  of  3rd  May.  The 
account  given  above  is  chiefly  taken  from  Ehrle's  very  able  paper  in  the 
Stimmen  aus  Maria-Laach  of  1894.  Amongst  other  works  should  be 
mentioned  :  PeSCHEL,  Die  Theilung  der  Erde  unter  Alexander  VI.  und 
Julius  II.  (Leipzig,  1871);  Baum,  Die  DemarcationsHnie  Alexanders 
VI.  (Koln,  1890) ;  E.  G.  Bourne,  The  Demarcation  line  of  Alexander 
VI.  (Extract  from  the  Yale  Review,  1892).  Cf.  Engl.  Hist.  Review, 
VII.,  766  seq. 

t  Navarette,  II.,  449  seq..,  in  Spanish.  Against  Kohl's  view  as  to 
the  interpretation  of  the  document  (Die  beiden  altesten  Generalkarten 
von  America  [Weimar,  i860]),  see  Kunstmann  in  the  Hist.-Polit.  Bl, 
XLVII.,  768  seq.     Baum,  p.  10,  has  overlooked  this  treatise. 

X  Robertson,  Hist.  America,  II.;  Busching,  Erdbeschreibung, 
XXXI.;  MarmONTEL,  Les  Incas,  pref.,  p.  xxvii.  seq.;  Allg.  Zeitung 
(1870),  No.  9  Suppl. 

VOL.   VI.  M 


'f62  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

signifies  nothing  more  than  the  confirmation  of  a  title  legiti- 
mately acquired ;  and  was  understood  in  that  sense  by  con- 
temporary and  later  theologians,  and  by  the  Spaniards 
themselves.*  How  little  such  grants  were  looked  upon  as 
'Controlling  the  liberties  of  even  heathen  nations  is  shewn 
by  the  fact  that,  in  a  similar  concession  to  Portugal  in 
'1497  the  same  word  "grant"  is  used,  with  the  condition 
-appended  of  the  free  consent  of  the  inhabitants.-f  If  this 
formula  is  wanting  in  the  document  of  1493,  it  is  merely 
because  it  was  understood  as  included  in  the  title  itself.  In 
all  these  deeds  the  grant  refers  to  the  other  European 
Princes  and  not  to  the  populations  of  the  New  World. 
"These  privileges  conferred  on  the  monarchs  who  received 
them  a  right  of  priority  in  regard  to  the  territories  dis- 
covered by  them.  As  nowadays  patents  are  given  for 
inventions  and  copyrights  for  literary  productions  and  works 
of  art,  so  in  former  times  a  Papal  Bull,  enforced  by  the 
censures  of  the  Church,  protected  the  laborious  discoverer 
from  having  the  hard  won  fruits  of  his  toil  wrested  from 
him  by  a  stronger  hand." 

As  the  choice  by  the  Catholic  Sovereigns  of  Alexander 
as  arbiter  was  grounded  in  the  first  instance  on  the  authority 
which  he  possessed  as  Pope,  and  their  respect  for  the 
dignity  of  the  Head  of  the  Church,  he  was  empowered  to 
add  to  the  perfect  freedom  of  his  decision,  grounded  on  a 
full  knowledge  of  the  facts,  the  sanction  of  that  apostolic 
authority  which  was  their  reason  for  selecting  him  as 
umpire  in  these  important  matters.^  He  had  power,  and 
indeed  was   bound,  to   decide  with   the   authority   of  the 

*  See  Hergenrother,  Kirche  und  Staat,  341. 

t  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1497,  n.  33. 

X  Hergenrother,  Kirche  und  Staat,  337-344,  who  also  exposes  the 
absurdity  of  fixing  on  the  Papal  Briefs  the  responsibility  for  the  tyranny 
of  the  Spaniards  in  their  dealings  with  the  American  nations. 


EVANGELISATION    OF   THE   NEW   WORLD.  1 63 

Church  on  these  questions,  which  concerned  the  avoidance 
of  bloodshed  between  Christian  powers  and  the  propagation 
of  the  Christian  religion  in  those  newly-discovered  countries. 
All  grants  were  accompanied  by  the  condition  that  the 
Spanish  monarchs  should  bind  themselves  to  promote  the 
spread  of  Christianity. 

In  the  preparations  for  Columbus'  second  voyage,  both 
Ferdinand  and  Isabella  and  Alexander  took  pains  to  provide 
missionary  priests  for  the  evangelisation  of  the  native  races. 
Their  choice  of  a  leader  for  the  band  of  preachers  shews 
with  what  care  the  selection  was  made.  A  friend  of  S. 
Francis  of  Paula,  the  Benedictine  Bernard  Boyl,  was  the 
first  apostle  of  the  New  World.*  In  a  Brief  of  25th  June, 
1493,  Alexander  VI.  conferred  upon  this  distinguished  and 
in  every  way  most  competent  man  and  his  twelve  com- 
panions, all  the  powers  and  privileges  which  they  needed 
for  the  success  of  their  holy  enterprise.-]-  Amongst  his  com- 
panions may  be  mentioned  the  celebrated  Bartolomeo  Las 
Casas,  Fray  Jorge,  Commander  of  the  Knights  of  Santiago, 
and  Pedro  de  Arenas,  who  is  supposed  to  have  said  the 
first  Mass  ever  celebrated  on  the  newly-discovered  islands.^ 
In  the  Instruction  which  Columbus  received  from  the  Spanish 
monarchs  for  his  second  and  third  voyages,  the  conversion 
of  the  new  countries  to  Christianity  is  put  before  him  as 
the  consideration  which  should  lie  nearest  to  his  heart 
How  rapidly  the  numbers  of  religious  and  converted  Indians 

*  P.  FiTA  has  the  merit  of  being  the  first  to  give  a  clear  account  of 
Boyl's  Hfe.  See  his  paper  in  the  Bolet.  de  1.  R.  Acad,  de  la  Historia 
(Madrid,  1891-1892),  XIX.,  173-233,  234-237,  354-35?,  377-446,  557- 
561 ;  XX.,  160-177,  179-205,  261-300,  573-615.  Cf.  also  Quadrado 
in  the  same  periodical,  XX.,  1 13-123,  and  Ehrle,  loc.  cit. 

t  The  Brief  is  in  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1493,  n.  24,  and,  corrected,  in  the 
Bolet.,  XIX.  (1891),  187  seq. 

X  FiTA,  La  primera  misa  en  America,  in  the  Bolet.,  XVIII.  (1891), 
551  seq. 


l64  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

increased  in  Espanola  (Hayti)  may  be  seen  from  the  fact 
that  in  1501  negotiations  were  already  begun  in  Rome  for 
the  establishment  there  of  a  separate  hierarchy.*  At  the 
instigation  of  the  great  Cardinal  Ximenes  in  1 502  a  number 
of  Franciscan  missionaries  were  sent  to  America.-]- 

Alexander  equally  exerted  himself  to  promote  the  spread 
of  Christianity  in  the  countries  beyond  the  sea  which  had 
been  discovered  by  the  Portuguese  ;  J  their  enterprises  were 
regarded  in  Rome  as  Crusades  for  the  Propagation  of  the 
Faith.  § 

*  Ehrle,  loc.  cit. 

t  Wadding,  XV.,  247.     Cf.  Hefele,  Ximenes,  483  seq. 

X  Cf.  SCHAFER,  Gesch.  V.  Portugal,  III.,  83  ;  Santarem,  X.,  120. 

§  A  **Bull  of  Alexander  VI.,  beginning  with  the  words  Catholice  fidei 
propagationem,  and  dated  Romae,  Dec.  1501.  Cal.  Nov.  A°  10°,  Regest. 
868,  f.  117^,  in  the  Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican,  which,  as  far  as  I 
know,  has  not  as  yet  been  printed,  is  very  interesting  from  this  point  of 
view. 


CHAPTER  VII. 

Alexander  VI.  as  a  Patron  of  Art. 

It  is  with  a  sense  of  relief  that  the  historian  now  turns 
from  all  the  moral  miseries  of  the  reign  of  Alexander  VI. 
to  another  region  in  which  some  things  that  were  really 
great  and  beautiful  were  achieved. 

Judging  from  the  magnificent  palace  which  he  built  for 
himself,  while  yet  a  Cardinal  only,  we  should  expect  to 
find  in  Alexander  a  liberal  patron  of  Art ;  and  in  fact,  in 
spite  of  all  the  turmoil  and  confusion  of  his  reign,  his 
name  is  immortalised  by  its  association  with  many  splendid 
monuments  in  this  domain.* 

The  Pope's  attention  was  especially  directed  to  the 
Trastevere,  the  northern  half  of  Rome,  the  Leonine  city, 
which  had  grown  up  out  of  ecclesiastical  foundations  and 
the  various  national  hospitals,  and  become  the  most  im- 
portant division  of  the  city.  Containing  the  Church  of  S. 
Peter  and  the  Castle  of  St.  Angelo,  and  being,  in  the  1 5th 

*  Setting  aside  the  rebuilding  of  the  University,  which  will  be  men- 
tioned later,  Alexander,  though  as  Cardinal  he  had  made  some  essays  in 
literature  {cf.  Bibl.  Pontif.,  13  seq.-,  SCHULTE,  Quellen,  II.,  407  seq\ 
did  little  or  nothing  for  learning.  He  accepted  dedications  of  any  num- 
ber of  poems  ;  there  was  even  a  "  Borjade "  in  hexameters  ;  but,  as 
BuRCKHARDT,  I.,  268,  ed.  3,  says,  he  was  too  occupied  with  other 
things  to  bestow  much  attention  on  poetical  philologists.  Nor  did  he 
make  any  additions  to  the  Vatican  Libraiy.  See  Muntz-Favre, 
311  seq.  On  Alexander's  Court-poets  see  Yriarte,  Autour  des  Borgia, 
64  seq. 


1 66  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

Century,  the  principal  seat  of  the  Court  and  of  the  Cardinals, 
it  became  the  central  point  of  the  city,  and  by  him  was  trans- 
formed into  the  handsomest  quarter  of  Rome,  a  distinction 
which  it  retained  until  the  reign  of  Clement  VII.  "These 
were  the  days  of  pageants,  of  ecclesiastical  and  secular  pro- 
cessions and  cavalcades,  carnival-races,  tournaments  and 
bull-fights,  the  days  in  which  the  retinues  of  Lucrezia  and 
Caesar  Borgia  were  numbered  by  hundreds  when  they  rode 
forth  in  state,  and  Cardinals,  the  scions  of  royal  houses, 
vied  with  Princes  in  the  splendour  of  their  equipages  when 
they  went  to  the  Vatican,  days  in  which  ecclesiastical 
decorum  was  trampled  under  foot  by  worldly  vanity  and 
profane  pomp. "  * 

The  great  increase  of  street  traffic  in  the  Leonine  city 
owing  to  the  numbers  of  Cardinals,  Prelates,  and  members 
of  the  Court  who  lived  there,  had  already  induced  Sixtus 
IV.  to  make  a  wide  street,  originally  called  by  his  name 
(now  Borgo  St.  Angelo),  running  from  the  moat  of  the 
Castle  of  St.  Angelo  to  the  gate  of  the  Papal  Palace,  f 
Alexander  VI.  added  a  second  one  parallel  with  this  and 
called  it  the  Via  Alessandrina  (now  Borgo  Nuovo  and  the 
main  thoroughfare  of  this  quarter). 

This  street  was  planned  primarily  on  account  of  the 
Jubilee.  In  the  Consistory  of  26th  November,  1498,  the 
Pope  spoke  of  the  necessity  of  making  room  in  the  streets 
for  the  concourse  of  pilgrims  that  was  to  be  expected,  and 
desired  Cardinal  Raffaele  Riario,  who  understood  archi- 
tecture, to  confer  with  other  experts  in  these  matters  and 
see  what  would  be  required  in  the  way  of  thoroughfares 
and  bridges.!     In  January  1499,  this  Cardinal  was  put  in 

*  Reumont,  Die  Leostadt,  in  the  Allg.  Zeit.  (1870),  n.  286  Suppl. 
t  See  Vol.  IV.,  455,  of  this  work. 

J  *Romae  die  lunae  XXVI.  Nov.,  1498  :  [S.  D.  N.]  fecit  etiam  verbura 
de  anno  jubilei  proxime  instantis  et  de  viis  et  de  corsicis.     Multa  super 


IMPROVEMENTS   IN    ROME.  16/ 

charge  of  the  new  approaches  to  the  Vatican.*  In  April 
the  work  was  begun  f  and  carried  through  so  rapidly  that 
the  new  street  was  opened  with  the  Jubilee  year  on  the 
24th  of  December,  1499.+  Unfortunately,  one  result  of  the 
Via  Alessandrina  was  the  complete  destruction  of  an 
interesting  ancient  monument,  the  so-called  Meta. 
Mediaeval  antiquarians  thought  it  to  be  the  tomb  of 
Scipio  Africanus ;  some  went  so  far  as  to  say  it  was  that  of 
Romulus.  Some  time  before  it  had  been  divested  of  its 
marbles  and  transformed  into  an  outwork  of  the  Castle  of 
St.  Angelo,  and  now  was  done  away  with  altogether  to 
make  room  for  the  opening  of  the  new  street.  § 

his  fuerunt  dicta.  Sua  S^as  mandavit  r.  d.  S^i  Georgii  ut  haberet  apud 
se  conservatores  vel  alios  qui  surxt  consueti  huiusmodi  rerum  curam 
habere  et  se  diligenter  informarent  quid  facto  opus  esse  tarn  circa  vias 
et  pontes  quam  reliqua  necessaria  ut  peregrini  et  viatores  commode  et 
tute  ire  ac  redire  possent,  ut  re  bene  cognita  possit  oportuna  provideri. 
*Lib.  relat.  Consistorii  tempore  pontif.  Alexandri  VI.  a  die  XII.  Nov., 

1498,  usque  in  diem  V.  Julii,  1499.  Sig.  C.  303,  f.  9.  Consistorial  Archives 
of  the  Vatican. 

*  *Romae  die  veneris  XVIII.  Jan.,  1499  :  Cum  facta  esset  mentio  de 
nova  via  fienda  al  palatium  dixissetque  r.  d.  de  Ursinis  ambas  illas  vias 
vid.  sanctam  et  equorum  dum  esset  in  minoribus  dispositas  fuisse  im- 
pensa  ut  plurimum  ofQcialium ;  tum  S.  D.  N.  commisit  r.  d.  S.  Georgii 
ut  invenirit  taxam  illam  et  intelligeret  quid  ahas  factum  sit  dicens  pro 
rata  et  portione  sua  se  libenter  expositurum.  Romae  die  mere.  XX. 
Feb.,  1499  :  Mandavit  S.  D.  N.  r.  d.  S"  Georgii  ut  a  magistris  viarum 
et  architectis  quantum  foret  impense  ad  dirigendam  viam  a  porta  castri 
ad  palatium  usque  intelligeret  ac  sibi  postea  referret.     *Lib.  Consistorii, 

f-  29,  35- 

+  *Despatch  of  the  Ferrarese  Envoy  Manfredi,  dat.  Rome,  8th  April, 

1499.  *E1  papa  ha  facto  dare  principio  ad  una  strata  che  da  la  porta  del 
palacio  se  ne  va  a  filo  a  la  porta  del  castello  che  sera  una  bella  cosa, 
quando  sera  fomita.     State  Archives,  Modena. 

+  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  II.,  601. 

§  ReUMONT,  III.,  I,  415  seq.;  GreGOROVIUS,  VII.,  642  seq.,  ed.  3 
(656  seq.,  ed.  4);  Adinolfi,  Portica,  48  seq.     A  Brief  of  Julius  II.  of 


1 68  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

The  completion  of  the  Via  Alessandrina  entailed  other 
changes  in  its  neighbourhood,  and  especially  in  the  portion 
of  the  Castle  of  St.  Angelo  nearest  the  bridge. 

During  the  course  of  his  reign  Alexander  VI.  made 
extensive  alterations  in  the  Castle.  The  whole  building 
was  completely  fortified  in  the  best  style  of  the  day  with 
parapets  and  towers,  and  surrounded  by  a  wall  and  ditch.* 
These  works  were  begun  immediately  after  his  accession, 
and  hurried  on  in  consequence  of  the  approach  of  the 
French,  and  afterwards  prosecuted  with  energy  and  more 
methodically.  This  is  proved  by  inscriptions  as  well  as  by 
the  entries  of  disbursements  in  the  account-books.  Antonio 
da  Sangallo,  Giuliano's  brother,  was  the  architect  and 
master  of  works.  Substantial  changes  were  made  in  the 
edifice,  both  internally  and  in  its  exterior.  The  old  Porta 
Aenea  in  the  wall  of  St.  Angelo  was  thought  too  small  and 
closed  up,  and  a  new  gate  built.  The  adjoining  houses  and 
vineyards  were  removed  and  the  Piazza  enlarged  and  paved 
to  form  the  opening  of  the  Via  Alessandrina.  A  strong 
tower  made  of  blocks  of  Travertine  was  erected  by  San- 
gallo, to  command  the  bridge,  which  remained  standing  till 

July  1 5 12  (in  MiJNTZ,  Antiquites  de  Rome,  21),  shews  that  it  was  at 
this  time  that  the  last  remnant  of  the  Meta  disappeared.  On  the  reck- 
less destruction  of  ancient  monuments  by  Alexander,  see  also  MiJNTZ, 
Les  Monuments  Antiques  de  Rome  au  15^6  siecle,  p.  18,  and  Berto- 
LOTTi,  Artisti  Lombardi,  I.,  33.  In  the  *Divers.  Alex.  VI.,  1501-1503 
(Bullet.,  IV.),  I  found,  f.  69b,  an  entry  of  a  payment  from  Raphael,  tit. 
S.  Georgii  mag.  Stephano  muratori  due.  50  pro  aptanda  via  a  palatio 
usque  ad  castrum  S.  Angeli,  dat.  Romae,  XXII.  Oct.,  1501,  A°  100. 
State  Archives,  Rome. 

*  Cf.  BORGATI,  100  se^.  (whose  description,  however,  is  not  perfectly 
clear);  GuGLIELMOTTI,  Fortificazioni,  100;  and  MiJNTZ'S  important 
contribution  in  Antiquites,  59  seg.,  62.  Muntz  has  ignored  Borgati, 
and  in  consequence  made  several  mistakes.  Cf.  also  Lange,  Papstesel, 
28-29. 


THE   CASTLE   OF   ST.  ANGELO.  169 

the  reign  of  Urban  VIII.  The  outworks  of  the  Castle  were 
considerably  strengthened  and  the  ditch  made  broader  and 
deeper.  It  was  thought  that  the  main  stream  of  the  Tiber 
was  to  be  diverted  so  as  to  flow  through  it.  Sanuto  reports 
in  January  1496,  that  the  cost  of  the  works  was  estimated 
at  80,000  florins.  The  Pope  frequently  inspected  them  in 
person.  He  also  secured  to  himself,  by  a  special  agreement, 
the  possession  of  whatever  might  be  found  in  the  course  of 
the  excavations.* 

This  precaution,  which  bears  witness  to  the  growing 
interest  in  the  relics  of  antiquity,  proved  well-judged.  In 
constructing  the  earthworks  the  colossal  bust  of  Hadrian 
which  now  adorns  the  Rotunda  in  the  Vatican  was  dis- 
interred. In  the  interior  a  new  staircase  with  shallow  steps 
was  put  in,  and  a  military  magazine,  water  tanks,  and  five 
subterranean  dungeons  were  constructed.  Coins  were 
struck  to  commemorate  these  works.f  After  the  gun- 
powder explosion  of  1497,  the  upper  rooms  which  had  been 
destroyed,  were  rebuilt  and  decorated  by  Pinturicchio  in 
the  antiquated  style  then  in  vogue  (the  so-called  grotesque). 
According  to  Vasari,  the  same  master  painted  in  a  lower 
tower  (probably  that  adjoining  the  bridge)  a  series  of 
pictures  representing  the  principal  events  in  the  first 
years  of  Alexander's  reign  and  containing  many  portraits. 
Unfortunately,  not  a  trace  remains  of  these  paintings. 
The  only  indications  of  their  existence  are  to  be  found 
in  the  inscriptions  of  the  frescoes :  these  were  written 
by  the  German,  Laurent  Behaim,  who  for  twenty-two 
years  was  Maggiordomo  to  Rodrigo  Borgia;  they  are 
in  Hartmann  Schedel's  collection.  They  included  the 
meeting    between    Alexander     VI.    and    Charles     VIII., 

*  MiJNTZ,   loc.    cit.,    64   seq.      Borgati's  statements,    207  seq.,  are 
incorrect. 
t  Arjiand,  Medailleurs,  II.,  63  ;  Muntz,  loc.  cit. 


170  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

and  the  profession  of  obedience  and  departure  of  this 
monarch.* 

The  prison  of  Torre  di  Nona  on  the  left  bank  of  the 
Tiber  was  also  fortified  anevv.f  These  two  strongholds 
completely  commanded  the  stream,  and,  by  their  artillery, 
the  greater  part  of  the  city. 

The  Arcade,  which  leads  from  the  Castle  of  St,  Angelo 
to  the  Vatican,  was  not  built  by  Alexander  as  has  been 
supposed  by  many  ;  it  was  already  in  existence  ;  but  the 
Borgia  arms  affixed  in  many  places  shew  that  it  was 
extensively  restored  by  him.  One  of  these  shields  over 
the  door  of  the  court  of  the  Swiss  Guards  bears  the  date 
1492,  and  shews  in  what  direction  the  Pope's  earliest 
apprehensions  iay.|  We  learn,  from  a  report  of  the 
Ferrarese  Envoy  of  8th  April,  1499,  that  work  was  going 
on  in  the  Arcade  at  that  date.  § 

A  Bull  of  the  year  1500  bestowed  certain  privileges 
on  all  who  assisted  in  building  the  houses  in  the  new 
Via  Alessandrina.ii 

The  Porta  Settimiana  which  closes  the  Via  della  Lungara 
was  rebuilt  and  has  remained  unaltered  up  to  the  present 
day.  Cardinal  Juan  Lopez  de  Valencia,  a  former  secretary 
of  Alexander,  was  commissioned  by  him  to  erect  a 
fountain  in  the  Piazza  of  S'*  Maria  in  Trastevere.  That 
of  Innocent  VIII.  in  the  Piazza  of  S.  Peter's,  which  had  also 
been  newly  paved,  was  adorned  by  Alexander  with  four 
gilt  Bulls,  the  Borgia  arms.    Nor  was  the  Vatican  itself  and 

*  Alvisi,  14  ;  SCHMARSOW,  Pinturicchio  in  Rom,  63  seq. 

t  BORGATI,  100. 

t  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  II.,  220;  Adinolfi,  Portica,  219  seq.\ 
MtJNTZ,  Les  Arts,  III.,  172,  and  Antiquites,  59;  SCHMARSOW, 
Pinturicchio,  34. 

§  Original  in  the  State  Archives,  Modena. 

II  Bull,  v.,  377  seq,     Cf.  Marini,  I.,  317,  N.  e. 


WORKS   AT   THE  VATICAN.  171 

its  surroundings  neglected.  The  Loggia  used  for  the  Papal 
Blessing  was  completed  in  the  form  depicted  in  Raphael's 
fresco  of  the  "  Fire  in  the  Borgo."  Within  the  Vatican 
a  large  number  of  nobly  conceived  works  were  executed.* 
The  architectural  designs  of  Nicholas  V.  were  carried  out 
and  the  decoration  of  the  Pope's  private  apartments  was 
entrusted  to  Pinturicchio,  who  had  already  before  that  time 
been  painting  in  Rome.  Till  quite  lately  these  rooms  had 
been  used  for  keeping  the  engravings  in  the  Vatican 
Library  and  were  only  accessible  to  a  few  privileged 
persons.^  In  the  year  1889  the  present  Pope  ordered 
this  part  of  the  Vatican  to  be  restored,  and  when  this  is 
completed  it  is  to  be  turned  into  a  museum  for  objects 
of  art  of  the  mediaeval  and  Renaissance  periods.^ 

The  dwelling  rooms  of  Alexander  VI.  (Appartamento 
Borgia)  are  on  the  ground  floor  of  that  part  of  the 
Vatican  which  lies    between   the  Court   of  the  Belvedere 

*  Reumont,  III.,  I,  416,  and  Ferri,  L'Architettura  in  Roma,  II.,  31. 
On  the  decoration  of  the  fountain  of  Innocent  VIII.,  cf.  Registro  delle 
fabbriche  di  P.  Alessandro  VI.  in  the  Cod.  Barb.,  XXXII.,  242  ;  in 
GORl's  Arch.  St.,  IV.,  141,  and  the  disbursements  in  *Divers.  Alex. 
VI.,  1 501-1503  (IV.  Bull.),  f.  71,  vouchers  of  payment  made  by  Raphael 
tit.  S.  Georgii,  etc.,  Magistro  Alberto  de  Placentia  prefati  S.  D.  N. 
comestabili  et  architecto  .  .  .  pro  opera  fontis  platee  S.  Petri  de  urbe, 
XIII.  Octob.,  1 501,  Ao  100 ;  cf.  f.  79,  83b,  93^^,  etc.  ;  entries  of  pay- 
ments made  to  the  same  for  the  fountain  on  the  Piazza  of  S.  Peter's, 
23rd  Nov.,  1 501,  and  ist  and  23rd  Dec.  ;  20th  Jan.,  1502  (Alb.  de  Pla- 
centia qui  confecit  fontem  platee  S.  Petri  de  urbe)  ;  these  entries  go  on 
into  the  month  of  Feb.     State  Archives,  Rome, 

t  I  saw  them  for  the  first  time  in  the  Spring  of  1883,  through  the 
kindness  of  P.  Bollig,  who  has  since  died,  and  once  again  in  April,  1893. 
They  were  assigned  to  the  use  of  the  Library  in  the  time  of  Gregory 
XVI.,  who  did  not  care  about  keeping  up  the  Borgia  apartments.  Cf. 
the  Viennese  Abendpost  (1892),  N.  262. 

X  Professor  L.  Seitz  (not  Zeit  as  Yriarte,  Autour  des  Borgia,  75 
seq.^  persistently  writes  the  name)  has  the  charge  of  this  restoration. 


172  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

and  the  little  Cortile  del  Papagallo.  This  portion  was 
built  by  Nicholas  III.,  and  restored  and  enlarged  by 
Nicholas  V.  It  contains  six  rooms,  the  first  is  a 
spacious  hall  into  which  three  nearly  square  smaller 
chambers  open ;  these  apartments  are  exactly  under 
the  famous  Stanze  which  contain  Raphael's  frescoes. 
The  new  part  built  by  Alexander  consists  of  a  square 
tower  (Torre  Borgia),  the  upper  storey  of  which,  where 
the  frescoes  in  memory  of  Pius  IX.  now  are,  was  the  Pope's 
private  chapel,  while  the  lower  floor,  divided  into  two 
rooms  and  connected  with  the  older  part  by  a  short  stair- 
case, closes  the  Appartamento  Borgia  on  that  side.* 

Almost  immediately  after  his  accession  Alexander  set 
to  work  at  the  renovation  of  these  rooms  and  the  erec- 
tion of  the  Tower.  Their  decoration  was  intrusted  to 
Pinturicchio.  He  accomplished  his  task  with  a  celerity 
which  could  only  be  explained  by  supposing  that  he 
largely  availed  himself  of  the  help  of  others.  A  close 
inspection  of  the  paintings  makes  it  only  too  clear  that 
this  was  the  case.  Pinturicchio  by  no  means  overworked 
himself;  in  fact  in  1494  he  slipped  away  to  Orvieto  and 
had  to  be  recalled  by  a  Brief  from  the  Pope !  However, 
both  in  their  drawing  and  still  more  in  their  composition, 
the  greater  part  of  these  paintings  are  certainly  his  work. 
"  As  a  whole  the  work  should  justly  be  ascribed  to  him, 
and  deserves  the  highest  praise  for  the  evenness  of  its 
execution,  and  the  careful  schooling  and  sagacious  selection 
in  regard  to  the  parts  assigned  to  them,  of  the  pupils 
whom  he  evidently  employed."  f 

*  SCHMARSOW,  Pinturicchio  in  Rom,  34  seq.  ;  WOODHOUSE  in  the 
"Builder"  of  Jan.  1887;  Yriarte,  Autour  des  Borgia,  33  seq.  (with 
engravings) ;  VOLPINI,  L' Appartamento  Borgia  nel  Vaticino.  Rome, 
1887. 

t  SCHMARSOW,  Pinturicchio  in  Rom,  61. 


THE    APPARTAMENTO    BORGIA.  1 73 

The  large  hall  through  which  the  apartments  were  entered 
was  used  as  an  audience  chamber,  and  called,  on  account 
of  the  portraits  which  it  contained,  the  hall  of  the  Popes. 
It  was  here  that  in  the  Summer  of  1500  Alexander  so 
narrowly  escaped  being  killed  by  the  falling  in  of  the  roof* 
Pinturicchio's  share  in  the  paintings  in  this  hall  cannot 
be  ascertained,  as  Leo  X.  caused  the  whole  of  it  to  be 
decorated  afresh  in  the  style  of  the  antique  frescoes  in 
the  baths  of  Titus,  by  two  pupils  of  Raphael,  Perino  del 
Vaga  and  Giovanni  da  Udine.-f 

The  three  rooms  which  open  into  the  Sala  dei  Papi 
remain  in  all  essentials  exactly  as  they  were  in  the  time 
of  Alexander.  Each  of  these  chambers  is  lighted  by  one 
window  looking  into  the  Belvedere  Court.  The  ceiling, 
consisting  of  a  double-cross  vault,  was  intersected  length- 
wise by  a  broad  arch  resting  on  two  pillars,  thus  forming 
two  spans  on  the  side-walls  bounded  by  pointed  arches  ; 
and  on  those  facing,  and  containing  the  window,  lunettes 
double  the  breadth  of  these.  On  these  spans,  paintings 
were  executed  under  Pinturicchio's  direction,  and  all 
the  rest  was  richly  decorated  with  gold  and  stucco-work 
in  which  the  Borgia  arms,  the  Bull,  repeatedly  appears. 

The  subjects  of  the  pictures  in  the  first  of  these  rooms 
are  exclusively  religious,  taken  from  the  lives  of  Christ 
and  of  the  Blessed  Virgin.  In  the  arches  of  the  ceiling 
the  Kings  David  and  Solomon,  and  the  prophets  Isaias, 
Jeremias,  Malachias,  Sophonias,  Micheas,  and  Joel  are 
represented  in  half-length  figures.^     The  most  striking  of 

*  Cf.  supra,  p.  78. 

t  Plattner,  II.,  I,  298  seq. 

X  Plattner,  II.,  i,  300;  Schmarsow,  51  seq.;  and  Yriarte, 
53  seq.,  with  some,  but  unsatisfactory,  illustrations.  A  good  repro- 
duction of  the  ceiling  paintings  in  the  room  is  given  in  Dolmetch,  Der 
Ornamentschatz  (Stuttgardt,  1881),  Part  49,  No.  5. 


174  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

the  wall-paintings  is  the  one  of  the  Resurrection  of  Christ, 
before  whom  a  Pope,  unmistakeably  Alexander  VI.,  kneels 
in  adoration,  in  full  pontificals,  but  bare-headed,  with  the 
Tiara  on  the  ground  beside  him.  This  admirable  portrait 
and  that  of  another  ecclesiastic  in  the  picture  of  the  Assump- 
tion of  the  Blessed  Virgin,  are  evidently  from  the  hand  of 
Pinturicchio  himself,  while  the  other  paintings  were  probably 
executed  by  his  pupils.* 

This  picture  is  not  only  highly  interesting  as  a  portrait 
of  the  Pope  in  his  prime,  as  his  contemporaries  knew  him, 
but  is  noteworthy  also  because  it  explodes  a  story  which, 
first  set  afloat  by  Vasari,  has  been  repeated  again  and 
again.  Vasari  says  that  Pinturicchio  painted  over  the  door 
of  one  of  the  rooms  in  the  palace  a  picture  of  the  Virgin 
Mary,  which  was  a  portrait  of  Giulia  Farnese,  and  in  the 
same  painting  a  likeness  of  Pope  Alexander  adoring  her. 
In  reality  the  only  picture  in  which  Alexander  appears  is 
that  of  the  Resurrection  of  our  Lord.  There  is  a  representa- 
tion of  the  Madonna,  but  it  is  in  the  next  room,  and  the 
Pope  is  not  in  it,  nor  is  there  any  other  picture  in  any 
of  the  rooms  which  corresponds  with  Vasari's  description. 
Evidently  he  had  never  been  inside  the  Appartamento 
Borgia.-j-  - 

*  SCHMARSOW,  53  seq.  The  coloured  copy  of  the  portrait  of 
Alexander  VI.  in  Yriarte,  73,  is  unsatisfactory.  The  photograph  in 
Heywood's  work,  see  Vol.  V.,  p.  387,  note  t,  is  much  better,  but  is  un- 
fortunately not  on  sale,  having  been  privately  printed. 

t  Yriarte,  35,  72.  Huber  in  Hist.Taschenbuch  (1875),  p.  53  ;  and 
even  GreGOROVIUS,  VII.,  669,  ed.  3  (685,  ed.  4),  repeat  Vasari's  fable 
without  examination  (and  Gregorovius  adds  that  the  Pope  is  worshipping 
the  Madonna !).  They  have  evidently  never  seen  the  picture.  For 
criticism  of  Vasari  see  generally  Frey,  Vita  di  Michelangelo  (Berlin, 
1887),  XXI.  seq.  Plattner,  II.,  i,  301,  tries  to  save  Vasari's  story 
by  hazarding  the  conjecture  that  "the  head  of  the  Pope,  now  no 
longer  there,   was  for   obvious   reasons   painted  out  of  the  picture." 


DECORATIONS   OF   THE   APPARTAMENTO.  175 

The  next  room  contains  scenes  taken  from  the  lives  of 
S.  Catherine  of  Alexandria,  S.  Antony,  and  S.  Sebastian, 
a  picture  of  the  Visitation  and  the  story  of  Susanna.  On 
the  ceiling  there  are  curious  mythological  representations 
of  the  history  of  Osiris  and  lo,  probably  plays  on  the 
Borgia  arms,  which  a  study  of  the  poems  of  the  Humanists 
of  Alexander's  Court  might  elucidate.  It  is  overloaded 
with  small  figures  and  arabesques  in  stucco  gilt,  but  many 
of  the  details  are  strikingly  beautiful,  and  the  pomp  and 
richness  of  the  decorations  in  this  room  have  caused  it 
to  be  looked  upon  as  the  masterpiece  of  the  whole.  The 
third  room,  like  the  first,  is  simpler.  In  the  lunettes, 
personifications  of  Mathematics,  Dialectics,  Jurisprudence, 
Geometry,  Arithmetic,  Music,  and  Astronomy  are  painted, 
each  accompanied  by  charming  subsidiary  figures.  This 
room  was  probably  the  Pope's  study.  Perugino  is  supposed 
to  have  had  a  hand  in  the  painting  of  the  frescoes.*  From 
this  room  the  chambers  in  the  Borgia  Tower  are  reached 
by  a  marble   staircase.      According   to  the  inscription  the 

The  present  Prefect  of  the  Vatican  Library,  my  esteemed  friend  P. 
Ehrle,  had  the  kindness  to  make  a  thorough  examination  of  the  picture 
of  the  Madonna  for  me.  He  was  assisted  by  Prof.  Seitz  and  the 
painter  FringoelH  (custodian  of  the  Lateran  Museum),  who  are 
executing  the  restoration  of  the  Appartamento,  and  who  removed, 
wherever  it  seemed  desirable,  any  later  washes  that  had  been  applied. 
The  following  is  the  conclusion  arrived  at : — "  It  is  utterly  impossible 
that  the  picture  of  the  Madonna  could  have  included  a  figure  of  Pope 
Alexander.  The  attitude  of  the  Virgin  and  the  direction  in  which  she 
and  the  Divine  Child  are  looking,  the  circular  pasteboard  mount,  and 
the  ornamentation  and  lines  surrounding  it  absolutely  exclude  such  a  _ 
supposition^  It  is  to  be  hoped  that  for  the  future  this  fable  will  cease 
to  appear  in  books  of  history. 

*  Plattner,  II.,  I,  300  seq.  ;  SCHMARSOW,  36,  39  seq.,  45  seq. 
(Schmarsow  has  not  observed  that  Plattner  had  already,  p.  301,  recog- 
nised the  one  picture  as  Susanna).  Yriarte,  56  seq.,  here  gives  better 
illustrations  than  Pistolesi,  to  whom  hitherto  students  have  been  referred. 


1/6  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Tower  was  finished  in  1494.  The  first  room  contains  the 
figures  of  the  twelve  apostles  and  twelve  prophets  ;  each 
carries  a  scroll  on  which  a  sentence  from  the  Creed  or 
one  of  the  prophets  is  written.  The  last,  which  is  almost 
square  and  was  probably  the  Pope's  bed-chamber,  has 
mythological  representations  of  the  planets  on  the  ceiling. 
In  each  of  the  twelve  lunettes  a  prophet  and  a  sybil 
converse  together.  As  in  the  former  chamber,  they 
carry  scrolls  containing  prophecies  of  the  kingdom  of 
Christ.* 

In  spite  of  the  many  faults  that  may  be  found  with 
the  separate  paintings,  the  decoration  of  the  Appartamento 
Borgia  is,  as  a  whole,  an  eminently  harmonious  and  pleas- 
ing work.-]- 

Pinturicchio  left  Rome  on  account  of  the  disturbances 
there  caused  by  the  invasion  of  Charles  VIII.;  later  he 
returned  and  painted  the  series  of  historical  pictures  of  the 
events  of  the  Pope's  life  in  the  Castle  of  St.  Angelo,  which 
have  already  been  mentioned,!  and  executed  the  decora- 
tions in  the  grotesque  style  there  which  have  also  been 
mentioned  before,  and  by  which  this  new  form  of  Art  was 

*  Plattner,  II.,  I,  301  seq.  ;  SCHMARSOW,  35  seq.^  46  seq.^  58  ; 
Yriarte,  66  seq.  The  tradition  is  that  Alexander  died  in  the  "  Liberal 
Arts"  room. 

t  SCHMARSOW,  95.  H.  Grimm  (Fifteen  Essays,  4th  Series  [Giitersloh, 
1890]),  p.  274,  praises  the  bright  and  agreeable  effects  of  the  paintings, 
and  pronounces  this  to  be  the  "  most  beautiful  of  all  Pinturicchio's  pro- 
ductions." See  also  Beissel  in  the  Zeitschr.  f.  Christl.  Kunst,  V.,  69, 
who,  however,  praises  the  App.  Borgia  beyond  their  deserts.  On 
Pinturicchio's  honorarium,  see  GORI,  Arch.  St.,  IV..  18  seq. 

X  See  supra,  p.  169.  Cf.  Vermiglioli,  App.,  XII.;  Schmarsow,  63. 
Pinturicchio  was  employed  also  by  Caesar  Borgia;  see  Kunstbl.  (1850), 
p.  374.  On  the  assistance  given  by  Caesar  towards  the  building  of  the 
Church  of  the  Madonna  del  Piratello  at  Imola,  see  Graus  in  the 
Grazer  Kirchenschmuck,  XXI.  (1890),   114  seq. 


RESTORATIONS   IN    ROMAN    CHURCHES.  \y^ 

introduced  in  Rome.*  This  bright  and  fantastic  style  of 
Art  was  especially  congenial  to  the  taste  of  the  age  of 
Alexander  VI.  The  serious  and  sculpturesque  manner 
which  belongs  to  fresco  painting  jarred  on  the  sensuous 
frivolous  habit  of  mind  of  the  Borgia  and  their  courtiers, 
in  whom  the  aesthetic  sense  was  so  largely  bound  up 
with  vanity  and  display.  Continued  development  in  this 
direction  would  have  been  fatal  to  Art.-f-  Thus  it  was  most 
fortunate  that  the  stern  influence  of  Julius  II.  recalled  the 
painters  whom  he  employed  to  a  severer  style. 

In  Rome  itself  Alexander  completed  the  roof  of  S'^ 
Maria  Maggiore  which  had  been  commenced  by  his  uncle 
Calixtus.  Tradition  says  that  the  first  gold  brought  from 
America  was  used  for  the  decoration  of  the  panels 
there,  which  are  the  most  charming  of  all  Roman  works 
of  this  kind.  In  April  1498,  the  Pope  visited  this  church 
to  inspect  the  work  on  its  completion.! 

Restorations  were  executed  by  this  Pope  in  S.  Peter's,  in 
his  own  former  titular  Church  of  S.  Niccolo  in  Carcere,  in 
that  of  the  SS.  Apostoli  §  and  on  the  city  walls.||  Grati- 
tude is  due  to  Alexander  for  the  rebuilding  of  the  Univer- 
sity ;  in  its  present  form  it  dates  from  Alexander  VII., 
who  belonged  to  the  Chigi  family. IT 

*  On  the  "grotesque"  see  Cian,  Cortegiano,  III.,  and  Schneegans, 
29. 

t  SCHMARSOW,  Pinturicchio,  87;  see  p.  78  seq.^  for  particulars  of 
Pinturicchio's  work  in  Siena  for  Card.  Piccolomini.  Cf.  Raffaele  und 
Pinturicchio  in  Siena  (Stuttgart,  1880),  by  the  same  writer. 

X  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  II.,  459 ;  Reumont,  III.,  1,416;  Armel- 
LINI,  387  ;  engraving  in  MiJNTZ,  L'Art,  II  ,  333. 

§  Armellini,  476;  Arch.  d.  St.  Ital.,  3  Serie,  VI.,  i,  178; 
Reumont,  III.,  i,  416. 

II  Rev.  Archeol.,  VII.,  132  ;  NiBBY,  Le  Mura,  290,  374. 
^  See  Zahn  in  Arch.  St.  Ital,  3  Serie,  VI.,  i,  178  ;  Renazzi,  I.,  281, 
and  *Divers.  Alex.  VI.,  III.,  Nov.  1502,  A°  XIo  ;  400  due.  gub.  et  rectori 

VOL.  VI.  N 


178  HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES. 

For  jewellery  and  meta!  work  but  little  was  done  by 
Alexander  beyond  the  regular  necessary  orders  for  the 
golden  roses,  swords  of  honour  for  princes,  chalices  for 
churches,  and  medals.  Beyond  these  the  only  large  order 
for  goldsmith's  work  was  that  for  the  statues  of  the  twelve 
Apostles  in  silver  gilt,  which  were  destined  for  his  private 
chapel.*  Outside  as  well  as  inside  Rome,  Alexander  did 
a  great  deal  in  the  way  of  building.  He  spent  9000  ducats 
on  the  Castle  of  Subiaco,  and  extensive  works  were  executed 
in  the  citadels  of  Tivoli,  Civitella,  Civita  Castellana,  Nepi, 
Osimo,  and  Civita  Vecchia ;  f  the  erection  of  a  tower  at 
Viterbo,J  and  of  dwelling-rooms  in  the  citadel  at  Ostia.§ 
He  also  contributed  to  the  building  of  the  Cathedral  at 
Perugia,  II  and  helped  in  the  erection  of  the  shrine  of  S. 
Anthony  at  Padua.H 

studii  almae  urbis  pro  reparatione  ipsius  studii.  Further  payments  for 
the  same  object  follow.     State  Archives,  Rome. 

*  Perat6,  519.  On  the  sword  given  by  Alexander  VI.  to  the  Duke 
Boguslaw  X.  of  Pomerania,  see  Lessing  in  the  Jahrb.  d.  Preuss. 
Kunstsammlungen,  XVI.,  121  seq.  On  Alexander's  Livre  d'heures 
(containing  fifty-eight  miniatures  by  a  Flemish  painter),  see  Pawlowski 
in  the  Gaz.  des  Beaux  Arts,  3rd  Series,  V.,  511  seq. 

t  Cf.  the  Registro  delle  fabbriche  di  P.  Alessandro  VI.  in  GORl'S 
Arch.  St.,  IV.,  141  ;  Gregorovius,  Wanderjahre,  II.,  17  seq. ;  GORI, 
Viaggio  da  Roma  a  Tivoli,  I.,  17  (Roma,  1855) ;  Arch.  St.  Ital.,  3  Serie, 
VI.,  I,  177,  178  ;  Arch.  d.  Soc.  Rom.,  VII.,  436;  Redtenbacher,  103. 
On  the  building  done  at  Subiaco  while  Alexander  was  still  a  Cardinal, 
see  Cronaca  Sublac,  519. 

X  See  the  ^Document  of  6th  November,  1497,  in  *Lib.  brev.  17,  f.  194. 
Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

§  ^Despatch  of  Stefano  Taberna,  dat.  Rom,  14th  Oct.,  1497.  The 
Pope  is  going  to  Ostia  to  see  Alchune  habitatione  quale  fa  fare  in  quella 
fortezza.     State  Archives,  Milan. 

II  *Bull  of  Alexander  VI.  of  28th  Jan.,  1500,  in  the  Capitular  Archives 
at  Perugia. 

IT  Marcelling  da  Civezza,  II  Romano  Pontificato,  II.,  725. 
Firenze,  1886. 


BRAMANTE   IN    ROME.  179 

The  architectural  energy  displayed  by  Alexander  had 
a  stimulating  effect  upon  the  rest  of  Rome.  New  churches 
and  palaces  arose  in  all  directions  and  quite  changed  the 
aspect  of  the  city.  The  two  greatest  patrons  of  Art  were 
the  wealthy  Cardinals  Riario  and  Giuliano  della  Rovere.* 
The  latter  built  a  palace  for  himself  close  to  S.  Pietro  in 
Vincoli ;  his  architect  was  Giuliano  da  Sangallo.  Riario's 
palace,  the  famous  Cancellaria  which  had  been  begun  by 
Alexander  VI.,  was  finished  in  his  reign.  This  magnificent 
building,  with  its  exquisite  pillared  halls,  was  for  a  long 
time  attributed  to  Bramante.  Recent  research  has  shewn 
that  this  view  is  untenable.  The  Cancellaria  is,  on  the 
contrary,  one  of  the  last  productions  of  the  Tuscan  style 
which  was  superseded  by  Bramante.  For  the  same  reason 
Cardinal  Castellesi's  splendid  palace  in  the  Borgo  (now 
Giraud — Torlonia),  the  architecture  of  which  is  similar  in 
character,  cannot  be  the  work  of  the  author  of  the  revival 
of  the  classical  style  in  Rome.f 

Bramante  came  to  Rome  in  the  year  1499,  and  is 
supposed  to  have  been  employed  by  Alexander  VI.  in  the 
erection  of  the  fountains  mentioned  in  the  beginning  of 
this  chapter.]:  The  remains  of  the  ancient  city  which  he 
then  saw,  inspired  him  with  such  enthusiastic  admiration 
that,  though  already  in  his  fifty-sixth  year,  he  succeeded  in 
an  amazingly  short  time,  in  making  the  spirit  of  classical 
architecture  completely  his  own.  The  result  appeared  in 
the   famous    Tempietto   in   the   court   of  the    Franciscan 

*  Cf.  WOLTMANN,  II.,  239,  on  Perugino's  work  for  Giuliano.  Pin- 
turicchio  painted  for  Card.  Piccolomini  in  Siena  from  the  year  1502. 
See  loc.  cit.,  II.,  252  seq.,  623. 

t  Gnoli,  La  Cancellaria,  11  seq.  The  present  Pope  is  thinking  of 
having  the  Cancellaria  restored.  On  the  fate  of  Card.  Castellesi's 
palace,  see  M.  Brady,  Anglo- Roman  Papers.     London,  1890. 

X  Cf.  Geymuller,  68  seq.,  and  Muntz,  Hist,  de  I'Art,  11.,  380. 


l80  HISTORY   OF   THE    POPES. 

Convent  near  S.  Pietro  in  Montorio,  erected  by  him  for 
Ferdinand  and  Isabella  of  Spain  in  commemoration  of  the 
martyrdom  of  the  Prince  of  the  Apostles.  It  was  finished 
in  the  year  1 502,  and  marks  the  change  from  the  Lombard 
to  the  Roman  Bramante,  and  the  division  between  the 
arts  of  two  centuries.  It  was  no  longer  a  mere  imitation 
of  classical  forms,  but  a  new  creation  so  completely  in  the 
spirit  of  the  old  architecture  that  nothing  in  the  building 
indicated  its  recent  origin,  and  it  was  studied  and 
measured  by  the  architects  of  the  day  as  though  it  had 
been  a  newly-discovered  monument  of  classical  times.* 

There  are  equally  no  grounds  for  connecting  Bramante's 
name  with  the  Church  of  the  German  Hospice  of  S'^  Maria 
deir  Anima,  the  foundation-stone  of  which  was  laid  by 
Matthseus  Lang,  the  Ambassador  of  the  German  Emperor, 
on  the  nth  of  April,  1500.  The  church  was  consecrated 
in  151 1,  and,  according  to  the  inscription,  the  facade 
completed  in  1514.!  The  somewhat  Gothic  interior  must 
undoubtedly  be  ascribed  to  a  German  architect.^ 

The  list  of  churches  erected  in  the  reign  of  Alexander 
VI.  includes,  besides  the  German  National  Church,  that  of 
SS.  Trinita  de'  Monti  on  the  Pincio,  founded  by  Cardinal 

*  Gnoli,  loc.  cit,  18.  On  the  Tempietto,  cf.  especially  Geymuller, 
65  seq. 

t  Kerschbaumer,  22  seq. ;  Graus, S'a  Maria  dell'  Anima,  in  the  Grazer 
Kirchenschmuch  (1881),  No.  3  seq.  GeymOller  writes,  p.  68,  "Bra- 
mante's influence  may  possibly  be  traceable  in  the  ground-plan  of  S'^ 
Maria  dell'  Anima  but  only  in  that To  us  it  seems  very  prob- 
able that  the  graceful  tower  was  built  by  a  German  architect  after 
a  drawing  by  Bramante.  Certainly  Bramante,  and  probably  G.  da 
Sangallo,  are  quite  guiltless  of  the  somewhat  incoherent  fagade  which 
was  added  in  1 514."  In  the  Archives  of  the  Anima  I  found  an  interesting 
note  in  which  Burkardus  Arg.  Magist.  caeremon.  1499,  is  said  to  have 
been  praefectus  fabricae. 

X  Redtenbacher,  179. 


NEW   CHURCHES   IN    ROME.  l8i 

Briconnet  at  the  instigation  of  S.  Francis  of  Paula, 
S.  Rocco  on  the  quay  of  the  Ripetta,  S.  Maria  di  Loreto,  a 
Confraternity-church  not  completed  until  the  17th  Century, 
the  Church  of  the  Guild  of  the  Bakers  of  Rome,  and 
S^"   Maria  di  Monserrato,  the  Spanish  National  Church.* 

*   ReUMON'I,  ill.,  1,  420,  43S  ;   ARMELLINI,  412,  57S. 


BOOK  11. 


PIUS  III.     1503. 

JULIUS  II.  Restorer  of  the  States  of  the 
Church  and  Patron  of  the  Fine  Arts. 
1503-1513- 


CHAPTER  I. 

The  Conclaves  of  September  and  November,  1503. — 
Pius  III.  and  Julius  II. 

In  a  Despatch  of  15th  August,  1503,  when  the  condition 
of  Alexander  VI.  was  rapidly  becoming  hopeless,  the 
Venetian  Ambassador,  Antonio  Giustinian,  reports  that 
Cardinal  Caraffa  had  said  to  him  in  conversation,  "  There 
is  every  prospect  of  war.  I  greatly  fear  that  the  coming 
Conclave  will  result  in  an  appeal  to  arms,  and  prove 
most  disastrous  for  the  Church."  *  A  sonnet,  published 
in  Florence  about  that  time,  describes  the  divisions  in  the 
Sacred  College,  the  machinations  of  the  Kings  of  France 
and  Spain  to  secure  the  election  of  their  respective  can- 
didates, and  the  probability  of  a  simoniacal  election,  and 
even  of  a  schism.-j- 

The  situation  was,  indeed,  fraught  with  peril  on  all  sides. 
In  the  North  the  French  army  under  Francesco  Gonzaga 
lay  at  Viterbo,  the  Spaniards  under  Gonsalvo  de  Cordova 
were  advancing  from  the  South,  Rome  resounded  with  party 
cries,  Orsini,  Colonna,  and  Borgia.  Cardinal  Aegidius  of 
Viterbo  says  "  the  whole  city  was  in  a  ferment ;  the  confu- 
sion was  such,  that  it  seemed  as  if  everything  was  going 
to  pieces."!     Under  such  circumstances  it  was  obvious  that 

*  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  no. 

t  Sonnet,  "  Antequam  creatur  novus  Pontifex,"  printed  in  the  Docum. 
intomo  Pio  II.  e  III.,  29-30,  and  in  the  Giorn.  d.  Lett.  Ital.,  XVII.,  296 
Cf.  Nuova  Antologia  (1894),  Vol.  135,  93-94. 

X  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  7,  ed.  3. 


1 86  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Caesar's  presence  in  Rome  could  not  be  a  matter  of  trifling 
importance.  The  Spanish  Cardinals  were  as  absolutely 
subservient  to  him  "  as  if  they  had  been  his  chaplains,"  and 
he  had  under  his  command  an  army  of  not  less  than  12,000 
strong.  It  was  certainly  quite  in  his  power  to  force  another 
Rodrigo  Borgia  on  the  Church. 

One  cannot  but  regard  it  as  a  direct  interposition  of 
Providence  that  precisely  at  this  critical  time  he  was 
crippled  by  a  serious  illness,  from  which  he  was  only  begin- 
ning to  recover.  He  said  himself  afterwards  to  Machiavelli, 
"  I  had  counted  on  the  death  of  my  father,  and  had  made 
every  preparation  for  it,  but  it  never  occurred  to  me  that  I 
should  have  at  the  same  time  to  fight  with  death  myself."  * 

But  the  fact  that  both  France  and  Spain,  who  had 
quarrelled  with  each  other  over  the  Neapolitan  spoils,  were 
trying  to  secure  his  friendship,  shews  what  was  the  strength 
of  Caesar's  influence  in  spite  of  his  bodily  weakness.  They 
evidently  thought  that  the  result  of  the  coming  election 
depended  largely  upon  him.  It  was  only  natural  that  the 
Duke  should  exert  himself  to  the  utmost  to  control  it.  The 
unexpected  death  of  Alexander  VI.  had  been  the  signal 
for  a  general  uprising  of  all  the  enemies  of  the  Borgia 
family,  and  his  very  existence  depended  upon  the  outcome 
of  the  election.  The  Venetian  Ambassador  writes  on  21st 
August :  "  I  am  assured  on  the  best  authority  that  last 
Sunday  no  less  than  eleven  Cardinals  swore  to  Caesar  to 
have  Cardinal  Giovanni  Vera  elected,  or  else  to  bring  about 
a  schism.  They  are  also  trying  to  win  over  the  Cardinals 
Caraffa,  RaflTaele  Riario,  and  Pallavicino  to  their  side,  and  I 
myself  know  for  certain  that  the  Duke  has  taken  pre- 
cautions to  prevent  the  arrival  of  Cardinal  Giuliano  della 
Rovere,  either  by  sea  or  land."-]- 

*  Machiavelli,  Principe,  cap.  7. 

t  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  138;  cf.  130,  137.     See  also  Atti 


C^SAR   BORGIA   AND   THE   CARDINALS.  1 87 

Howev^er,  it  soon  became  evident  that  Caesar's  power 
was  over-estimated.  He  himself  felt  his  inability  to  with- 
stand the  popular  hatred,  or  to  make  headway  against  the 
Barons,  who  were  threatening  him  with  vengeance,  while  all 
his  efforts  to  obtain  possession  of  the  Castle  of  St.  Angelo 
by  bribery  failed  to  overcome  the  integrity  of  its  custodian, 
Francesco  Roccamura.* 

Hitherto  he  had  but  to  command  and  be  obeyed,  but 
now  he  found  himself  obliged  to  enter  into  a  treaty  with 
the  Colonna  faction  and  with  the  Cardinals.  Burchard  notes 
with  surprise  his  submissiveness  towards  the  Sacred  College, 
to  whom  he  swore  obedience  on  the  22nd  of  August. 
In  consequence,  he  was  allowed  to  retain  his  appoint- 
ment as  a  Captain-General  of  the  Church  until  the  new 
Pope  had  been  elected ;  but  the  unanimous  decision  of 
the  Cardinals  to  hold  the  Conclave  in  the  Castle  of  St. 
Angelo  plainly  shews  how  little  they  trusted  him.-f  Even 
there,  however,  many  did  not  consider  themselves  safe, 
for  Caesar  continued  to  exert  himself  to  the  utmost  to 
secure  the  election  of  a  Spanish  Pope  who  would  be 
favourable  to  him.| 

If  the  election  was  to  be  free,  it  was  absolutely  necessary 
to  get  the  Duke  out  of  Rome.     The  Cardinals,  especially 

dell'  Emilia,  VII.,  2,  169;  M.  Leopardi,  Vita  di  Niccol5  Bonafede, 
49  seq.;  and  Carinci,  Lettere  di  O.  Gaetani,  134. 

*  Cf.  SiGiSiMONDO  de'  Conti,  II.,  289,  and  the  MS.  in  Thuasne, 
III.,  449.  Ranke  in  Rom.  und  Germ.  Volker,  171,  says  erroneously 
that  Cccsar  had  possession  of  the  Castle  of  St.  Angelo.  The  letters 
quoted  by  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  7,  ed.  3,  from  the  Gaetani  Archives,  as 
hitherto  unprinted,  and  which  confirm  Guicciardini's  statements  about 
Csesar's  treaty  with  the  Colonna,  were  printed  long  ago  by  Carinci, 
Lettere  di  O.  Gaetani,  133-134. 

t  Burchardi  Diarium,  III.,  245  seq. 

X  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  157  ;  Petrucelli  DELLA  Gattina, 
I.,  442 


1 88  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

the  Italian  Cardinals,  laboured  assiduously  to  effect  this, 
and  were  supported  by  the  Ambassadors  of  Germany, 
France,  Spain,  and  Venice.  The  negotiations  lasted  from 
the  25th  August  to  the  31st  September,  when  Caesar 
finally  consented  to  withdraw  from  Rome  within  three 
days,  the  Cardinals  on  their  side  engaging  to  protect 
him  against  all  attacks,  and  granting  him  a  free  passage 
through  the  States  of  the  Church.  They  also  promised 
to  warn  Venice  against  any  attempts  to  get  hold  of  his 
possessions  in  the  Romagna.  The  Ambassadors  of 
Maximilian  and  Ferdinand  pledged  themselves  that 
neither  Caesar,  the  Spanish  army,  nor  the  Colonna 
should  approach  from  within  8  to  10  miles  of  Rome  as 
long  as  the  Papal  Chair  remained  vacant,  and  those  of 
France  and  Venice  entered  into  a  similar  engagement  in 
regard  to  the  French  army  and  the  Orsini.* 

On  the  following  day  a  part  of  the  Duke's  artillery  left 
Rome  by  the  Trastevere ;  the  news  had  just  reached  him 
that  Piombino,  Rimini,  and  Pesaro  had  thrown  off  his 
yoke.  He  himself  was  carried  in  a  litter  from  the  Vatican 
to  Monte  Mario ;  at  the  Porta  Viridaria,  Cardinal  Cesarini 
wished  to  speak  to  him,  but  was  told  that  "  the  Duke  gave 
no  audiences."  f 

It  soon  became  known  that  Csesar  had  placed  himself 
under  the  protection  of  the  French  army  at  Nepi.  He 
had  already,  on  the  ist  of  September,  entered  into  a  secret 
agreement  with  the  representatives  of  Louis  XII.,  in 
which  he  promised  to  place  his  troops  at  the  disposal  of 
the  King,  and  to  behave  towards  him  as  an  obedient 
vassal  and  help  him  against  all   his  enemies,  the  Church 

*  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  255. 

+  Ibid.,  III.,  257.  Cf.  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  171  ;  Sanuto, 
v.,  80-81  ;  and  the  *Despatch  of  the  Mantuan  Envoy,  dat.  Rome,  2nd 
Sept.,  1503.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 


OBSEQUIES   OF   ALEXANDER   VI.  1 89 

only  excepted  ;  Louis  on  his  part  guaranteed  to  Caesar 
all  his  present  possessions  and  engaged  to  assist  him 
to  recover  those  which  he  had  lost  at  the  death  of 
Alexander  VI.* 

The  maintenance  of  order  having  been  already  secured 
by  the  hire  of  a  sufficient  force  in  the  pay  of  the  College 
of  Cardinals,  they  could  now  proceed  to  make  arrange- 
ments for  the  Conclave.  Under  these  more  favourable 
circumstances  it  was  decided  that  it  should  be  held  in 
the  Vatican. 

Public  opinion  was  very  much  divided  as  to  the 
probable  result  of  the  election.  Antonio.  Giustinian 
writes  on  19th  August :  "  The  better  minded  would 
like  to  have  Caraffa  or  Piccolomini,  though  Costa  would 
make  an  excellent  Pope ;  only  his  age  and  his  Spanish 
name  are  against  him."  A  few  days  later  Pallavicino 
and  Podocatharo  were  also  mentioned  ;  of  the  latter  it 
was  said  that  he  would  have  the  votes  of  all  the 
Spaniards.^ 

On  the  4th  September  J  the  obsequies  of  the  late  Pope 
began  and  lasted  nine  days.  Meanwhile  many  of  the 
absent  Cardinals  had  arrived  in  Rome.  Soderini  came 
on  the  30th  of  August,  Cornaro  on  the  ist  of  September, 
Trivulzi  and  Giuliano  della  Rovere  on  the  3rd  (the 
latter  had  been  an  exile  for  nearly  ten  years).  On  the 
6th  Colonna  arrived,  on  the  9th  Riario,  and  on  the  loth 
George  S.  d'Amboise,  Luigi  d'Aragona,  and  Ascanio  Sforza.§ 

*  App.  to  the  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  462-463. 

t  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  126;  Petrucelli  della  Gattina, 
I.,  447  ;  and  the  Sonnet  quoted  supra,  p.  185,  note  t:  "  Antequam,"  etc. 

X  Not  on  the  3rd  Sept.,  as  stated  by  Villari,  Machiavelli,  I.,  387, 
and  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  10,  ed.  3.  See  *Acta  Consist.,  f.  14,  in  the 
Consistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

§  Cardinal  d'Este  had  broken  his  leg  in  the  huny  of  the  journey  and 


190  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

The  latter  had  led  Louis  XII.  to  believe  that  if  he  would 
allow  him  to  take  part  in  the  Conclave  he  would  vote  for 
the  French  candidate,  Cardinal  d'Amboise.* 

Through  their  treaty  with  Csesar  Borgia  the  French 
party  thought  they  could  count  on  the  support  of  the 
eleven  Spanish  Cardinals.f  and  d'Amboise  himself  did 
not  scruple  to  use  every  means  in  his  power,  flattery, 
promises,  and  even  covert  threats,  in  order  to  win  over 
the  remainder.^  In  employing  the  latter  he  counted,  of 
course,  on  the  influence  which  the  proximity  of  t^e 
French  troops  must  exert.  In  case  of  need,  as  the 
Mantuan  Ambassador  said,  it  had  been  decided  to  have 
recourse  to  arms.§  No  means  were  to  be  rejected  that 
could  possibly  obtain  the  Tiara  for  the  favourite  of  the 
King  of  France,  and  thus  secure  French  ascendency  in 
Italy  and  the  world. 

in  consequence  did  not  arrive  in  time.  Sanuto,  V.,  ']']  ;  cf.  ibid.,  81,  on 
the  very  hurried  journey  of  Cardinal  d'Amboise. 

*  SiGISMONDO  DE'  CONTI,  II.,  290. 

t   cf.  PETRUCELLI   BELLA   GATTINA,  I.,  449. 

X  Cf.  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  175,  190,  196.  As  in  the  whole 
College  of  Cardinals  there  were  only  two  who  were  Frenchmen  by  birth, 
it  seemed  to  the  French  party  that  they  could  not  afford  to  neglect  any 
means  of  ensuring  success  ;  they  could  really  only  count  upon  six  votes. 
See  Sanuto,  V.,  82.  The  Mantuan  agent,  Ghivizano,  in  writing  to  the 
Marquess  of  Mantua  from  Rome  on  12th  Sept.,  1503,  reports  of  Cardinal 
d'Amboise  :  Hieri  ale  22  hore  parlai  cum  mons.  de  Rohano  .  .  .  me 
dise  io  dovesse  in  nome  vostro  parlare  al  rev^o  card.  S.  Prassede  et  pre- 
garlo  a  darli  la  voce  sua  promettendoli  che  tuto  quelo  li  sara  promiso  11 
sara  atteso  et  retificato  per  la  Chma  M^^  e  di  questo  vole  la  Ex  V*  li 
facia  plena  segurta,  il  che  a  me  non  ha  parso  fare  senza  licentia  di  quela, 
la  quale  sapia  come  a  le  XX.  hore  hoe  lordine  de  andare  a  parlare 
a  S.  Prassede ;  al.  card,  de  Rohano  ho  promeso  fare  quanto  la  Sua 
S^^ia  me  a  comandato  e  cosi  faro  non  havendo  altro  in  contrario. 
Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

§  See  Appendix,  N.  12,  the  *Despatch  of  Ghivizano  of  12th  Sept., 
1503.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 


PROSPECTS  OF  THE  ELECTION.  I9I 

Ferdinand  of  Spain  was  naturally  the  chief  opponent  of 
these  plans.  From  the  very  beginning  his  Ambassadors 
were  doing  their  utmost  to  secure  the  election  of  a  Spanish 
Pope.  His  candidates  were  Piccolomini,  Castro,  and 
Carvajal ;  the  one  whom  above  all  he  wished  to  exclude 
was  Giuliano  della  Rovere,  whom  he  regarded  as  a  partisan 
of  France.* 

As  long  as  Caesar  Borgia  had  remained  in  Rome  he 
had  exercised  a  strong  influence  on  the  Spanish  Cardinals. 
As  soon  as  he  had  left  the  city  and  was  known  to  have 
gone  to  the  French  camp,  this  was  of  course  at  an  end. 
Bernardino  Carvajal  became  the  leader  of  the  Spanish 
Cardinals,  and  they  held  together  as  closely  as  possible, 
knowing  that  they  had  all  the  detestation  which  the  Borgia 
had  brought  upon  themselves  on  their  shoulders.-}-  In  the 
face  of  the  storm  of  hatred  which  had  burst  forth  from  the 
populace  of  Rome  on  the  death  of  Alexander  the  election  of 
a  Spaniard  was  out  of  the  question.^  The  reaction  against 
the  late  Pope  was  too  strong.  This  made  the  loss  of  the 
eleven  Spanish  votes  all  the  more  vexatious  for  the 
French.  Their  prospects  declined  at  once.  The  Mantuan 
Ambassador,  writing  on  the  12th  of  September,  to  a  vivid 
description  of  the  excitement  amongst  the  electors,  "  who 
are  running  hither  and  thither  like  bees  and  intriguing  in 
all  directions,"  adds  significantly,  "  but  d'Amboise  will  not 
be  Pope."§ 

*  Cf.  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  150  seq.;  ZURITA,  V.,  c.  47; 
Petrucelli  della  Gattina,  I.,  446;  Bergenroth,  Calendar,  I., 
n.  372  ;  SaGMULLER,  127  seq.;  Habler,  Streit  Ferdinands  d.  Kathol. 
und  Philipps,  I.,  19 ;  ROSSBACH,  Carvajal,  59  seq.  (incorrect  in  places). 

t  C/.  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  179-180;  Petrucelli  della 
Gattina,  I.,  450. 

X  See  Sanuto,  V.,  81-83. 

§  See  Appendix,  N.  12,  ^Despatch  of  Ghivizano,  12th  Sept.,  1503. 
Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 


ig2  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

Giuliano  della  Rovere,  however,  was  for  the  French 
the  most  dangerous  of  all  their  opponents.  It  was  he 
who  made  it  plain  to  all  the  world  how  disastrous  would 
be  the  consequences  if  the  man  who  was  Louis'  all  power- 
ful minister,  and  had  been  Caesar  Borgia's  friend,  v/ere 
elected.* 

Giuliano's  arrival  in  Rome  completely  changed  the  whole 
state  of  affairs.  He  was  as  outspoken  as  if  his  election 
were  already  an  accomplished  fact.  On  the  5th  September 
he  said  to  the  Venetian  Ambassador  :  "  I  have  come  here 
on  my  own  account  and  not  on  other  people's.  I  shall 
not  vote  for  d'Amboise.  If  I  fail  to  obtain  the  Tiara 
myself,  I  hope  whoever  succeeds  will  strive  to  maintain 
peace  in  Italy,  and  to  promote  the  interests  of  religion." 
He  took  pains  to  point  out  to  the  Cardinals  that  if  a 
French  Pope  were  elected  it  was  extremely  probable  that 
the  seat  of  the  Papacy  would  again  be  transferred  to  France. 
These  representations  naturally  carried  great  weight  with 
the  Spanish  and  Italian  members  of  the  College.-f  As  the 
Italians  were  largely  in  the  majority  (they  were  twenty- 
two  out  of  thirty-seven)  they  could  easily  have  made 
Giuliano  Pope  had  they  been  unanimous.  This,  however, 
was  far  from  being  the  case.  Some  were  for  Caraffa, 
others  for  Pallavicino,  others  again  for  Giuliano.  Cardinal 
Giovanni  Colonna  held  with  the  Spaniards,  while  the 
Florentine  Cardinals,  Medici  and  Soderini,  were  on  the 
French  side.j 

The  divisions  among  the  Italian  Cardinals  threw  the 
casting  vote  into  the  hands  of  the  united  Spanish  party. 
Giuliano  saw  this  at  once  and  consequently  from  the  first 

*  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  200. 

t  Ibid.,  II.,  180  182. 

X  ZURITA,    299;    GuiCCiARDiNi,    Opere    inediti,    III.,   306;     SaG- 

MtJJ.LER,  126. 


BEGINNING   OF   THE   CONCLAVE.  I93 

devoted  himself  to  the  work  of  winning  the  Spaniards.* 
On  the  T2th  September  the  Mantuan  Envoy  writes:  "  Neither 
d'Amboise,  Giuliano,  Carafifa,  nor  Riario  will  be  Pope; 
Podocatharo,  Piccolomini,  or  Pallavicino  have  the  best 
chance,  for  they  are  favoured  by  the  Spaniards  ;  but  the 
common  opinion  is  that  the  Cardinals  will  not  be  able  to 
agree."  f 

Thus,  from  the  very  beginning  of  the  Conclave,  the 
representatives  of  the  three  great  Latin  nations  stood 
opposed  to  each  other.  Not  one  of  the  few  representatives 
of  the  non-Latin  nationalities  was  in  Rome,|  when,  after 
the  Chair  of  S.  Peter  had  been  vacant  for  thirty  days,  the 
Conclave  at  last  began  on  i6th  September.  The  number 
of  Cardinals  §  who  took  part  in  it,  thirty-seven,  ||  was  much 

*  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  185. 

t  See  Appendix,  N.  12,  *Despatch  of  Ghivizano,  12th  Sept.,  1503, 
Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

J  These  latter  could  only  act  through  their  Envoys.  See  Ulmann, 
II.,  135,  on  the  proceedings  of  Maximilian's  Ambassador.  Cf.  also 
Ghivizano's  *Despatch  of  15th  Sept.,  1503  (Gonzaga  Arch.,  Mantua),  in 
Appendix,  N.  13. 

§  At  former  elections  the  number  was  much  smaller.  At  the  Conclave 
of  Nicholas  V.  there  were  18,  for  Calixtus  III.  15,  for  Pius  II.  18,  for 
Paul  II.  20,  for  Sixtus  IV.  18,  for  Innocent  VIII.  25,  for  Alexander 
VI.  23.  Cf.  Pastor,  Hist.  Popes,  II.,  11,  320;  III.,  5 ;  IV.,  4,n.  3,  201 
(Engl,  trans.). 

II  Cf.  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  269  seq.;  Sanuto,  V.,  p.  100  seq.\ 
and  the*  Despatch  of  Costabili,  dated  Rome,  i6th  Sept.,  1503,  in  the  State 
Archives,  Modena.  Both  ancient  and  modern  writers  vary  very  much 
in  their  statements  as  to  the  number  that  took  part  in  the  Conclave. 
Raphael  Volaterranus,  Raynaldus,  ReumONT,  III.,  2,  7,  and  ROHR- 
bacher-Knopfler,  285,  give  the  number  as  36 ;  while  GuiCClAR- 
DINI,  VI.,  cap.  I,  the  epitaph  of  Pius  III.,  and  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  12, 
ed.  3,  say  38.  Both  numbers  are  erroneous.  Thirty-seven  electors  took 
part  in  it,  as  stated  by  Burchard,  the  Mantuan  Ambassador,  in  a 
*Despatch,  dated  Rome,  i6th  Sept.,  1503,  as  also  an  *Account  of  the 
beginning  of  the  Conclave  by  Ghivizano,  dated  17th  Sept.,  and,  what  is 

VOL.  VL  O 


194  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

larger  than  had  been  present  at  any  former  Conclave. 
Even  as  late  as  the  12th  of  September  there  had  been  pro- 
tracted discussions  whether  it  should  not  be  held  in  S. 
Marco  under  the  protection  of  the  Roman  people,  but  the 
final  decision  was  in  favour  of  the  Vatican.  Immediately 
before  the  opening  of  the  Conclave,  d'Amboise  decided  to 
pay  visits  to  his  two  rivals,  Caraffa  and  Giuliano  della  Rovere. 
The  Mantuan  Envoy,  who  reports  this,  adds,  there  was  no 
exchange  of  visits  between  d'Amboise  and  Piccolomini, 
Pallavicino,  and  Podocatharo.  The  Tiara  will  fall  to  one 
of  these  three;  if  to  the  last,  because  he  is  a  good  man, 
if  to  either  of  the  others,  because  they  are  neutral  and 
favoured  by  the  Spaniards.  Four  days  later  the  Venetian 
Ambassador  says  that  Piccolomini  or  Pallavicino  will 
probably  be  elected.* 

The  first  thing  the  Cardinals  did,  was  to  draw  up  a  new 
Election-capitulation  to  supersede  that  of  1484.  One  of 
its  provisions  was  that  the  Pope  should  summon  a  Council 
for  the  reform  of  the  Church  within  two  years  after  his 
election,  and  that  then  a  General  Council  should  be  held 
every  three  years.f 

On  the  17th  of  September  d'Amboise  had  proclaimed,  in 
his  usual  swaggering  manner,  that  either  he  or  another 
Frenchman  would  certainly  be  chosen.  Five  days  earlier 
he  had  told  the  Venetian  Envoy  what  he  really  thought. 
He  said,  "  I  have  heard  that  several  Cardinals  have 
bound  themselves  by  an  oath  not  to  elect  any  Cardinal 
who    is    a     Frenchman    or    a    friend    of    the    King    of 

quite  decisive,  the  *Acta  Consist,  fol.  14.  Consistorial  Archives  of  the 
Vatican. 

*  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  196-198,  and  in  Appendix,  N.  13, 
Ghivizano's  *Despatch  of  1 5th  Sept.,  1 503.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

t  Cf.  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  272  seq.\  ZURITA,  202  ;  Gatticus, 
287,  n.  I  ;  Bergenroth,  I.,  p.  LVIII.,  n.  371. 


POSITION    OF   CARDINAL   D'AMBOISE.  195 

France,  This  has  greatly  incensed  me.  I  see  no  reason 
why  the  French  nation  should  be  shut  out  from  the 
Papacy,  and  if  my  King,  who  is  the  first-born  son  of  the 
Church,  and  has  done  more  than  any  other  Prince  for 
the  Apostolic  See,  is  trying  to  promote  the  election  of  a 
French  Pope,  I  do  not  think  he  can  be  blamed,  when  he 
has  seen  how  unworthily  one  Spaniard  and  two  Italians 
have  ruled  her.  Our  generals  are  aware  of  these  intrigues, 
and  will  not  patiently  endure  such  a  slight  to  their  King." 
Then  he  complained  of  various  simoniacal  negotiations, 
and  added  :  "  If  I  perceive  anything  of  this  kind  you  may 
be  sure  that  I  shall  not  let  it  pass  ;  and  my  protest  will 
be  such  that  none  shall  fail  to  hear  it."  "  Evidently,"  the 
Envoy  continues,  "the  Cardinal  sees  that  his  cause  is 
lost.  He  already  says  that  he  has  been  betrayed.  He 
has  just  found  out  that  Ascanio  Sforza,  far  from  troub- 
ling himself  about  him,  is  working  hard  to  secure  his  own 
election."* 

Such  indeed  was  the  case.  On  the  13th  of  September  the 
Venetian  Ambassador  writes,  "  Ascanio  Sforza  makes  no 
secret  of  his  intentions ;  he  says  he  had  promised  his  vote 
to  d'Amboise  and  he  shall  have  that,  but  nothing  else."-f 
The  acclamations  with  which  Ascanio  had  been  greeted 
when  he  entered  Rome  had  naturally  encouraged  him  to 
think  well  of  his  chances.  Burchard,  after  narrating  the 
hearty  welcome  he  had  received,  adds  in  his  Diary,  "  God 
alone  knows  what  these  cries  were  to  Ascanio.":}: 

The  hopes  which  d'Amboise  had  built  on  Cardinal 
d'Aragona  were  equally  doomed  to  disappointment.     He, 

*  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  195-196,  198. 

t  Ibid.^  II.,  193.  Cf.  Prato,  256.  It  is  interesting  to  find 
from  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  274,  that  Ascanio  did  vote  for 
d'Amboise. 

X  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  263. 


196  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

like  Ascanio,  was  not  disposed  to  seal  the  ruin  of  his  house 
by  forwarding  the  election  of  a  French  Pope.* 

But,  though  forced  to  give  up  all  hopes  for  himself, 
d'Amboise  none  the  less  did  his  best  to  secure  the  election 
of  one  or  other  of  the  French  candidates.  All  his  efforts, 
however,  were  in  vain,  owing  to  the  firm  front  presented 
by  the  Spanish  Cardinals,  none  of  whom  could  be  won 
over.-j- 

The  prospects  of  Giuliano  della  Rovere  rose  in  pro- 
portion as  those  of  d'Amboise  declined.  At  first  we  are 
told  he  wanted  but  two  votes  to  make  up  the  two-thirds 
majority.  But  at  the  last  moment  he  found  himself  foiled 
by  his  old  enemy  Ascanio.| 

The  strength  of  the  various  parties,  and  also  their  inability 
to  bring  matters  to  a  conclusion,  were  manifested  in  the 
vote  that  was  taken  on  the  21st  September.  |  Giuliano 
della  Rovere  had  the  highest  vote,  fifteen  (still  far  below  the 
requisite  majority  of  two-thirds);  Caraffa  came  next  with 

*  So  says  Guicciardini,  VI.,  c.  i. 

t  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  196,  197-201. 

t  Ibid.^  II.,  200  ;  Sanuto,  v.,  92  ;  ZURITA,  V.,  c.  47  ;  and  Costabili's 
*Despatch  to  Card.  d'Este  of  28th  Sept.,  1503  :  Et  per  Ascanio  se  he 
facto  grande  opera  per  questa  electione.  Prima  S.  Praxede  se  aproximo 
al  pallio  e  fu  disconcio  per  S.  Petro  in  vincula.  Dopoi  corendo  molto 
S.  Petro  in  vincula  fu  disconcio  per  Ascanio.     State  Archives,  Modena. 

§  According  to  Roman  letters  quoted  by  Sanuto,  V.,  92,  there  were 
three  scrutinies.  Burchard  speaks  only  of  two.  Sanuto  says  :  non  fu 
fato  scrutinio  fino  el  zuoba  (z>.,  21st  Sept.)  e  fu  fato  uno  e  S.  Praxede 
fo  mejo  e  S.  Piero  in  vincula  li  manchava  do  voti.  Ghivizano,  the 
Mantuan  Ambassador,  says  on  the  contrary  that  the  first  scrutiny  took 
place  on  the  i8th;  he  refers  to  a  communication  from  the  English 
Ambassador  who  professed  to  have  had  his  information  from  Venice ; 
but  Giustinian  says  nothing  about  it,  at  any  rate  nothing  in  those  of  his 
despatches  which  reached  their  destination,  and  this  throws  doubt  upon 
the  point.  Ghivizano's  ^Despatch  of  19th  Sept.  (Gonzaga  Archives, 
Mantua),  Appendix,  N.  14, 


ELECTION    OF   CARDINAL   PICCOLOMINL  I97 

fourteen,  d'Amboise  had  thirteen,  Carvajal  twelve,  Riario 
eight.* 

Thus  no  party  was  in  a  position  to  carry  the  election, 
and  yet  the  situation  was  one  that  demanded  a  speedy 
settlement.  Both  Burchard  and  the  Venetian  Ambassador 
agree  in  saying  that,  under  these  circumstances,  Cardinal 
d'Amboise  preferred  a  candidate  whose  age  and  weakness 
marked  him  out  as  a  temporary  Pope.  Antonio  Giustinian 
writes,  "  As  soon  as  d'Amboise  perceived  that  his  own 
election  was  out  of  the  question,  he  determined  at  any  rate 
to  prevent  the  election  of  any  one  not  of  his  choice."  Like 
a  prudent  man,  he  swam  with  the  stream,-|-  and  on  21st 
September,  acting  in  concert  with  Ascanio  Sforza,  Soderini, 
and  Medici,  he  proposed  the  name  of  the  old  and  ailing 
Cardinal  Francesco  Piccolomini. 

As  the  Spanish  Cardinals  agreed  to  support  him,  the 
matter  was  decided   at  once.     On  the  following  morning 

*  There  are  two  lists  of  the  vote  taken  on  21st  Sept.  in  Burchardi 
Diarium,  III.,  273  seq.^  275  seq.^  and  one  in  Sanuto,  V.,  93-94,  to  which 
may  be  added  that  in  the  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  201.  It  has  not 
hitherto  been  noticed  that  the  two  lists  given  by  Burchard,  the  second 
of  which  is  evidently  derived  from  the  first,  do  not  agree  with  one 
another,  either  in  the  names  or  the  number  of  votes.  There  are  dis- 
crepancies also  in  the  accounts  of  Sanuto  and  Giustinian.  In  Burchard, 
I.,  Carafifa  has  fourteen  votes  ;  in  BURCHARD,  II.,  thirteen.  Sanuto 
and  Giustinian  give  him  fourteen.  Giuliano  della  Rovere  had,  accord- 
ing to  Burchard,  I.,  fourteen  votes  ;  according  to  BURCHARD,  II., 
Sanuto,  and  Giustinian,  fifteen.  All  four  lists  coincide  in  regard  to 
Carvajal  and  d'Amboise.  Giustinian  and  Sanuto  agree  in  giving 
Castro  thirteen  votes.  It  is  remarkable  that  Burchard's  first  list  gives 
Castro  eleven  votes,  and  the  second  none  at  all !  It  is  possible  that  the 
second  list  given  by  Burchard  is  a  later  interpolation,  and  this  is  the 
more  probable,  since  there  is  no  such  second  list  given  for  the  scrutiny 
of  22nd  Sept.,  or,  later,  for  the  election  of  Julius  II. 

+  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  201  ;  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III., 
276. 


198  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

(22nd  September)  the  election  took  place,*  and  Piccolomini 
was  made  Pope,  taking  the  name  of  Pius  III.  in  honour  of 
his  uncle.f 

"  It  is  impossible  to  express  the  joy  of  the  people  of  Rome 
at  Piccolomini's  election,"  writes  the  Mantuan  Envoy  on 
the  22nd  September,  and  the  representative  of  Venice 
says,  "  The  previous  life  of  the  new  Pope,  marked  by 
numerous  deeds  of  kindness  and  charity,  lead  the  people  to 
hope  that  his  Pontificate  will  be  the  exact  opposite  to  that 
of  Alexander  VI.,  and  thus  they  are  beside  themselves  with 
]oy."l  This  general  rejoicing  was  fully  justified.  All  his 
contemporaries  agree  in'  saying  that  the  personal  character 
and  abilities  of  the  new  Pope  were  of  the  highest  order. 
He  was  made  a  member  of  the  Sacred  College  in  1460,  at 
an  early  age,  by  his  uncle  Pius  II.,  and  the  Cardinal  of 
Siena,  as  Piccolomini  was  then  called,  had  always  dis- 
tinguished himself  by  his  cultivation  of  mind,  his  great 
ability,  and  his  blameless  life.  Under  Pius  II.  he  had  suc- 
cessfully governed  the  March  of  Placentia,  and  in  the  time 
of  Paul  II.  had  filled  the  difficult  post  of  Legate  in  Germany 
with  consummate  tact,  to  the  great  satisfaction  of  the  then 

*  The  charge  of  simony  is  unfounded.  Cf.  Cambi,  XXI.,  197  ;  also 
Piccolomini,  Doc.  intorno  a  Pio  II.  e  III.,  19,  and  Sagmuller,  129. 

t  See  BURCHARDi  Diarium,  III.,  276-277  ;  Dispaccidi  A.  Giustinian, 
II.,  199  seg'. ;  cf.  p.  204  on  the  influence  of  the  Spanish  Cardinals  in 
the  election.  Sanuto,  V.,  93 ;  Zurita,  302  ;  Petrucelli  della 
Gattina,  I.,  452 ;  ^Report  of  Ghivizano,  dated  Rome,  22nd  Sept. 
(Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.)  The  Ferrarese  Ambassador,  Costabili, 
in  his  *Account  of  the  election,  makes  the  remark  :  "  It  is  to  be  hoped 
that  the  new  Pope  will  prove  as  satisfactory  as  we  have  reason  to  think." 
See  also  P.  S. :  El  suo  nome  e  Clemento  sexto.  State  Archives, 
Modena. 

%  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  200,  and  the  ^Report  of  Ghivizano, 
dated  Rome,  22nd  Sept.,  1 503  :  Quanto  sia  stata  la  universale  alegreza 
di  tuto  questo  popolo  e  corte  non  saria  possibile  a  dirlo.  Gonzaga 
Archives,  Mantua. 


CHARACTER   OF    PIUS   III.  I99 

Pope ;  the  knowledge  of  German  which  he  had  acquired 
while  living  in  the  household  of  Pius  II.  being  naturally  of 
great  assistance  to  him  there.  Afterwards,  when,  owing  to 
the  influence  of  the  nephews  of  Sixtus  IV.,  a  worldly  spirit 
predominated  at  the  Court,  he,  like  others  of  a  pious  and 
serious  turn  of  mind,  kept  away  from  Rome  as  much  as 
possible,  and  still  more  so  in  the  time  of  Alexander  VI. 
Like  his  uncle  Pius  II.,  Cardinal  Piccolomini  was  tormented 
with  gout,  and  was  prematurely  old  and  decrepit,  although 
he  had  led  a  very  regular  life.  Sigismondo  de'  Conti 
especially  praises  his  scrupulous  love  of  order.  "  He  left 
no  moment  in  the  day  unoccupied  ;  his  time  for  study  was 
before  day-break,  he  spent  his  morning  in  prayer,  and  his 
mid-day  hours  in  giving  audiences  to  which  the  humblest 
had  easy  access.  He  was  so  temperate  in  food  and  drink, 
that  he  only  allowed  himself  an  evening  meal  every  other 
day."* 

*  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  II.,  291-292.  Cf.  Pastor,  Hist.  Popes, 
III.,  295;  IV.,  4,  180-181,  414  (Engl,  transl.).  On  the  taste  for 
Art  displayed  by  Cardinal  Piccolomini,  see  supra,  p.  179,  note  *.  As  all 
contemporary  authorities  agree  in  representing  Pius  III.  as  universally 
held  in  the  highest  esteem  as  a  rule,  no  modern  writer  has  attempted 
to  impugn  his-  character  (for  example,  see  the  favourable  opinions 
of  historians  who  do  not  readily  praise  a  Pope,  e.g.,  SCHROCKH, 
XXXII.,  444,  and  VOIGT,  Pius  II.,  I.,  531).  To  his  own  discredit 
Gregorovius  alone,  in  Lucrezia  Borgia,  270,  states  that  Pius  III. 
is  "the  happy  father  of  no  fewer  than  twelve  children,  boys  and 
girls,"  but  he  gives  no  vestige  of  proof  for  his  assertion.  Against 
Gregorovius,  G.  Palmieri  Nuti,  Lettera  di  Sigismondo  Tizio,  remarks 
in  1877 :  k  propos  of  Tizio's  observation  that  Pius  III.  had  not 
squandered  the  patrimony  of  S.  Peter  on  war  or  bastards  :  Eaproposito 
di  questi  non  so  astenermi  dallo  esternare  il  dubbio  che,  forse  prestando 
troppa  fede  a  dicerie  referite  da  cronisti,  I'illustre  Gregorovius  nella  sua 
recente  pubblicazione  intorno  a  Lucrezia  Borgia  abbia  attribuito  addirittura 
una  dozzina  di  figli  a  questo  cardinale  Piccolomini,  assicuvando  che  di 
ingrandirli  e   arrhichirli   manco   a  lui,   fatto  pontefice,  il  tempo,  non 


200  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

It  is  therefore  not  surprising  that  all  good  men  were 
filled  with  the  brightest  hopes.  "  A  new  light  has  shone 
upon  us,"  writes  Peter  Delphinus,  the  General  of  the 
Camaldolese,  "  our  hearts  rejoice,  and  our  eyes  are  filled 
with  tears  because  God  our  Lord  has  had  mercy  on  His 
people  and  has  given  them  a  Chief  Shepherd  who  is  a  holy 
man,  innocent,  and  of  untarnished  name.  Our  deep  sorrow 
has  been  turned  to  joy,  and  a  day  of  sunshine  has  followed 
a  night  of  storm.     We  are  all  filled  with  the  highest  hopes 

I'intenzione.  II  Tizio,  contemporaneo,  intimo  della  famiglia,  un  po' 
gattiva  lingua  (as  he  says  of  himself)  e  certo  non  troppo  parziale  di  papa 
Pio,  perche,  lo  dice  da  se,  dove  partirsi  di  casa  Piccolomini  per  sue 
respecto,  qui  gli  dk  lode  di  non  essersi  tinto  di  tal  pece,  a  quel  tempi, 
con  scandalo  universale,  pur  troppo  commune.  In  spite  of  this,  Brosch, 
Julius  II.,  93,  and,  following  him,  Creighton,  IV.,  57,  disregarding 
altogether  the  testimony  of  Tizio,  have  no  scruple  in  repeating  the 
serious  charges  made  by  Gregorovius  without  troubling  themselves 
about  evidence  at  all !  In  the  face  of  such  injustice  it  will  not  appear 
superfluous  to  refer  the  reader  to  the  numerous  passages  testifying  in 
favour  of  Cardinal  Piccolomini  that  are  to  be  found  in  Ammanati'S 
letters  (Epist.  462,  in  Pii  II.  Comment.  [Francof,  1614],  pp.  776-777); 
in  Senarega,  578,  and  in  the  words  used  by  Caspar  Veronensis  (1030), 
who  certainly  is  not  behindhand  as  a  rule  in  bringing  charges  against 
Cardinals,  but  speaks  of  Cardinal  Piccolomini  as  moribus  senex.  Cf. 
also  the  expressions  of  his  contemporaries,  cited  on  opposite  p.,  as  well 
as  the  testimony  of  the  Venetian  Envoy,  H.  Donate,  in  the  year  1499  in 
Sanuto,  II.,  836.  The  stern  morahst,  Cambi,  XXI.,  197,  calls  him, 
"Uomo  di  bona  fama."  So  GuiCCIARDiNI  in  his  St.  Fiorentini  (Op. 
ined.,  III.,  306),  calls  the  Pope  "uomo  vecchio  e  di  buoni  costumi 
qualita."  Aegidius  of  Viterbo,  the  stern  censor  of  all  worldliness,  says  of 
Pius  III.  :  Sacri  senatus  lux  et  gloria  diu  habitus.  Hist  viginti  saecul. 
(Cod.,  c.  8,  19,  fol.  312,  in  the  Angelica  Library  in  Rome).  In  order  to 
be  sure  on  this  point  I  have,  through  my  friend  A.  Giorgetti,  asked  the 
opinion  of  M.  Bandinelli  Piccolomini  at  Siena,  the  best  authority  on 
the  family  history  of  the  Piccolomini.  He  assures  me  there  is  no 
evidence  whatever  for  the  assertion  of  Gregorovius  ;  on  the  contrary,  he 
has  found  in  the  State  Archives  of  Siena  numberless  letters  of  contem- 
porary writers  all  attesting  the  blameless  reputation  of  Pius  III. 


HIS   ZEAL   FOR   REFORM.  20I 

for  the  reform  of  the  Church,  and  the  return  of  peace." 
"  God  be  thanked  that  the  government  of  the  Church  has 
been  entrusted  to  such  a  man,  who  is  so  manifestly  a 
storehouse  of  all  virtues  and  the  abode  of  the  Holy  Spirit 
of  God,  Under  his  care  the  Lord's  vineyard  will  no  more 
bring  forth  thorns  and  thistles,  but  will  stretch  out  its 
fruitful  branches  to  the  ends  of  the  earth."* 

"  The  misery  of  the  past,  the  marred  countenance  of  the 
Church,  the  scourge  of  God's  righteous  anger,  are  still 
before  my  eyes,"  writes  Cosimo  de'  Pozzi,  Bishop  of  Arezzo, 
on  the  28th  of  September,  1502,  to  the  newly-elected  Pontiff. 
"  When  all  hope  of  release  seemed  shut  away,  God  has 
given  us  in  you  a  Pope  whose  wisdom,  culture,  and  learn- 
ing, whose  religious  education  and  virtuous  life,  has  filled 
all  good  and  God-fearing  men  with  consolation.  Now 
we  can  all  hope  for  a  new  era  in  the  history  of  the 
Church,  "-j- 

The  earliest  acts  of  Pius  III.  corresponded  with  these 
expectations.  In  an  assembly  of  the  Cardinals,  which  took 
place  on  the  25th  of  September,  he  made  it  clear  that  his 
chief  aim  was  to  be  the  reform  of  the  Church  and  the  restor- 
ation of  the  peace  of  Christendom.  He  said  the  reform 
must  extend,  to  the  Pope  himself,  the  Cardinals,  the  whole 
Court  and  all  the  Papal  officials,  and  that  the  Council  must 
be  summoned  to  meet  at  the  earliest  date  possible.  The 
news  soon  spread  through  all  the  countries  of  Europe,  and  in 
Germany  encouraged  the  Archbishop  of  Mayence,  Berthold 
von  Henneberg,  to  draw  up  a  memorial,  setting  forth  the 
reforms  that  he  considered  necessary  for  the  Church  in 
that  country.!     The  Pope  also  made  excellent  regulations 

*  Cf.  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1503,  and  P.  Delphini,  Oratiunculae,  p.xi. 
t  See  Appendix,  N.  15,  for  the  original  of  this  letter,  which  I  found  in 
the  Library  of  S.  Mark  at  Venice. 

X  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  208  ;     ZURITA,  V.,  c.  47  ;  BURCHARD 


202  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

for  the  better  government  of  the  immediate  possessions  of 
the  Holy  See,  and  was  extremely  economical  in  his  ex- 
penditure.* 

Pius  III.  was  eager  to  secure  peace  at  any  cost,  and  pre- 
cisely for  that  reason  he  did  not  succeed  in  doing  so.  The 
inheritance  bequeathed  to  him  by  the  Borgia  was  of  a 
nature  to  frustrate  all  his  endeavours.  On  the  26th  of 
September  the  Pope  said  to  the  Venetian  Envoy,  "  In  con- 
sequence of  the  pressure  put  upon  me  by  the  Spanish 
Cardinals,  I  have  been  compelled  to  issue  some  Briefs  in 
favour  of  Csesar  Borgia,  but  I  will  not  give  him  any  further 
help.  I  do  not  intend  to  be  a  warlike,  but  a  peace-loving 
Pope."-t-  He  certainly  had  no  sympathy  for  the  Borgia 
family,  especially  for  Caesar,  and  he  found  that  the  Vatican 
had  been  robbed  on  all  sides,  and  that  the  Apostolic 
Treasury  was  grievously  in  debt.  But  hatred  was  utterly 
foreign  to  his  mild  and  gentle  temper,  "  I  wish  no  harm 
to  the  Duke,"  he  said,  "  for  it  is  the  duty  of  a  Pope  to  have 
loving-kindness  for  all,  but  I  foresee  that  he  will  come  to  a 
bad  end  by  the  judgment  of  God."| 

He  was  not  wrong  in  his  forecast.  The  whole  power  of 
the  Borgia  family,  built  up  by  cunning,  treachery,  and 
bloodshed,  which  threatened  at  one  time  to  swallow  up 
the  States  of  the  Church,  came  to  an  untimely  end. 

With  the  departure  of  the  French  army  for  Naples, 
Csesar  lost  his  last  refuge.  Bartolomeo  d'Alviano  was 
hurrying   from   Venice   with   fierce  threats  of  vengeance, 

Diarium,  III.,  279.  Cf.  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1503,  n.  17,  and  Weiss, 
Berthold  von  Henneberg,  20. 

*  See  *Despatclies  of  the  Mantuan  Envoy,  dated  Rome,  5th  and  9th 
Oct.,  1503.  In  the  first  of  these  he  says  :  "Alia  S'a  di  N.  S.  e  a  core 
che  le  cita  e  terre  quale  sono  restate  alia  Sede  Ap.  siano  bene  gubernate 
et  con  justitia  et  integritate."     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

t    Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  208-209  ;  cf.  Ulmann,  II.,  136. 

\    Ibid.,  II.,  207. 


C^SAR   BORGIA   RETURNS   TO   ROME.  203 

and  the  Orsini  and  Savelli  were  preparing  to  close  upon 
him  at  once.  He  saw  that  it  was  impossible  for  him  to 
remain  at  Nepi.  Not  yet  completely  recovered  from  his 
illness,  he  entreated  the  gentle  Pius  to  allow  him  to  return 
to  Rome.  "  I  never  thought/'  said  the  Pope  to  the  Fer- 
rarese  Envoy,  "  that  I  should  feel  any  pity  for  the  Duke, 
and  yet  I  do  most  deeply  pity  him.  The  Spanish  Cardi- 
nals have  interceded  for  him.  They  tell  me  he  is  very  ill, 
and  wishes  to  come  and  die  in  Rome,  and  I  have  given 
him  permission."*  When  Caesar  arrived  there  on  the  3rd 
of  October  his  entire  army  had  dwindled  down  to  650  men. 
The  state  of  his  health  was  certainly  not  satisfactory,  but 
by  no  means  so  bad  as  had  been  represented  to  the 
Pope.  Many  people  in  Rome,  especially  the  Cardinals 
Giuliano  della  Rovere  and  Riario,  were  exceedingly  dis- 
satisfied with  Pius  for  having  allowed  him  to  come  back. 
On  the  7th  of  October,  speaking  to  the  Venetian  Envoy, 
the  Pope  apologised  for  his  leniency  by  saying,  "  I  am  neither 
a  saint  nor  an  angel,  but  only  a  man,  and  liable  to  err. 
I  have  been  deceived."-]- 

The  date  of  the  Coronation  of  the  new  Pope  was 
fixed  for  the  8th  of  October ;  it  was  attended  by  a  va.st 
concourse  of-,  people.:!:  Before  the  Coronation,  Pius,  who 
hitherto  had  only  been  a  deacon,  received  priestly  and 
episcopal  Orders.  The  long  ceremonies  were  a  great 
strain  on  the  strength  of  the  Pope,  who  was  suffering 
from  gout,  and  had  only  lately  undergone  a  painful  opera- 
tion on  his  leg.     He  said  Mass   sitting,   and   on    account 

*  Despatch  of  Costabill  of  2nd  Oct.  in  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  13, 
ed.  3.     Cf,  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  218. 

+  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  226;  cf.  219,  221,  and  Burchardi 
Diarium,  III.,  279. 

X  So  Costabili  reports  in  his  *Letter  of  8th  Oct.,  1503.  State 
Archives,  Modena. 


204  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

ol'  his  weakness  the  formal  entry  into   the    Lateran    was 
put  off  till  later.* 

Although  the  state  of  the  Pope's  health  in  the  next  few 
days  got  rather  worse  than  better,  he  still  held  numerous 
audiences,  took  counsel  on  the  9th  of  October  with  the 
various  Ambassadors,  as  to  the  measures  to  be  adopted  in 
case  of  an  invasion  of  the  States  of  the  Church  by  Barto- 
lomeo  d'Alviano,  and  held  a  long  Consistory  on  the  nth  of 
October,  in  which  he  went  carefully  into  the  questions  of 
the  appointment  of  new  Cardinals  and  the  unquiet  state  of 
the  city.f  Bartolomeo  d'Alviano,  Giampaolo  Baglione,  and 
many  of  the  Orsini  were  there,  and,  together  with  the 
Cardinals  Giuliano  della  Rovere  and  Riario,  were  insist- 
ing on  the  disbandment  of  Caesar's  army ;  otherwise,  they 
said,  they  would  take  up  arms  themselves.^  Overtures  to 
the  Orsini  were  made  both  by  the  French  and  the 
Spaniards.  With  the  single  exception  of  Giovanni 
Giordano  they  decided,  out  of  hatred  to  the  Duke,  to  treat 
with  the  Spanish  party,  and  allied  themselves  with  the 
Colonna.  On  the  12th  of  October  the  reconciliation 
between  these  two  houses,  hitherto  always  at  enmity,  was 
openly  announced. |  Caesar  was  now  at  the  end  of  all  his 
resources.  It  was  rumoured  that  he  had  fled  with  Cardi- 
nal  d'Amboise,   but   the  latter  shewed    no  inclination    to 

*  On  the  idealised  coronation  of  Pius  III.,  represented  later  in  a  fresco 
by  Pinturicchio  in  Siena  {cf.  the  inscription  by  Faluschi,  15),  cf. 
BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  280  seq. ;  ^Despatch  of  Costabili,  loth  Oct., 
1503  (State  Archives,  Modena) ;  *Acta  Consist,  in  the  Consistorial 
Archives.  On  the  operation  that  the  Pope  had  undergone,  see 
Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  212,  and  SiGISMONDO  DE'  CONTI,  II., 
292. 

t  See  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  226,  228,  and  251,  and  the 
•^Despatch  of  Ghivizano  of  i  ith  Oct.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

I  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  237. 

§  Ibid.^  III.,  237,  and  BURCHARDi  Diarium,  III.,  284. 


ILLNESS   OF   PIUS   III.  205 

draw  down  on  himself  the  hatred  attached  to  the  Borgia 
family,  and  on  the  15th  of  October,  forsaken  by  all,  he 
attempted  to  flee  from  Rome  to  escape  the  vengeance  of 
the  Orsini.  Hardly,  however,  had  he  left  the  precincts  of 
the  Vatican  when  the  greater  part  of  his  men  deserted 
him,  and  with  a  following  of  not  more  than  seventy  he 
had  to  return  to  his  house.  The  Orsini  demanded  that 
the  Pope  should  have  hini  arrested,  in  order  that  he  might 
not  elude  the  results  of  the  legal  proceedings  about  to  be 
instituted  against  him.  The  Venetian  Ambassador  de- 
scribes Bartolomeo  d'Alviano  as  raging  like  a  mad  dog ; 
he  had  set  a  guard  at  every  gate  that  the  Duke  might  not 
escape  him.* 

But  the  Pope  was  not  in  a  state  to  comply  with  the 
demands  of  the  Orsini,  for  on  the  13th  of  October  he  was 
lying  on  his  death-bed.f  Hence  the  Orsini  determined  to 
take  the  matter  into  their  own  hands,  and  arrest  him  them- 
selves. Caesar  fled,  by  means  of  the  secret  passage,  to  the 
Castle  of  St.  Angelo  as  they  were  storming  the  Borgo. 
The  Spanish  Cardinals  had  planned  his  escape  disguised  as 
a  monk,  but  the  Orsini  had  completely  invested  the  Castle. 
Here  where  once  his  enemies  had  trembled  before  him,  sat 
the  man  whose  hand,  a  few  months  earlier,  had  been  almost 
within  grasp  of  the  crown  of  Central  Italy,  cowering  in 
hopeless  terror  with  only  two  or  three  servants  by  his  side.| 

In  the  meantime  the  Pope's  end  was  approaching.  On 
the  15th  of  October  the  doctors  had  thought  his  case 
serious,  on  account  of  his  weakness  and  his  great  age.  As 
the  fever  never  for  an  instant  left  him,  by  the  17th  his  con- 
dition was  hopeless. § 

*  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  237,  244-245. 

t  BURCHARDi  Diarium,  III.,  284  ;  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  240. 

X  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  249. 

§  In  addition  to   Dispacci  di  A.   Giustinian,  II.,  243,   249,   c/.  the 


206  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

His  faculties  remained  clear,  and  his  mind  calm.  Al- 
though he  did  not  himself  believe  the  end  to  be  so  near, 
yet  he  received  the  Viaticum  on  the  17th  of  October  for  the 
second  time  during  his  illness,  and  on  the  following  night 
the  Sacrament  of  Extreme  Unction.  All  who  surrounded 
him  were  touched  and  edified  by  his  devotion.*  Tranquil 
and  resigned,  he  fell  asleep  on  the  evening  of  the  i8th 
of  October.f 

*Reports  of  Costabili  of  Oct.  i6th  (la  febre  non  lascia  el  papa  da  veneri 
in  qua  in  modo  che  della  vita  di  S.  Sta  se  ne  dubita  per  le  medici 
grandemente)  and  17th  (State  Archives,  Modena),  and  G.  L.  Cataneo's 
^Report  of  i6th  Oct.  (El  papa  e  pegiorato),  as  well  as  two  ^Despatches 
from  him  of  the  17th  Oct.  (El  papa  e  abandonato  in  tuto  de  salute,  and 
El  papa  h  abandonato  da  tuti  de  la  vita  sua).  Gonzaga  Archives, 
Mantua. 

*  Dispaccidi  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  252  ;  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  285. 

t  Authorities  differ  as  to  the  exact  hour  of  his  death.  Ghivizano  and 
G.  L.  Cataneo  in  their  *Despatches  of  i8th  Oct.  (Gonzaga  Archives, 
Mantua)  say  eight  o'clock.  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  253  ;  BUR- 
CHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  285,  and  the  Notar  de  Masiis  in  GORI,  Archivio, 
IV.,  244  (with  a  wrong  date),  say  ten  o'clock.  The  statement  of 
MalavOLTI,  Istoria  de'  Sanesi,  VIII.,  3,  that  Pope  Pius  III.  was  poisoned 
by  Pandolfo  Petrucci  of  Siena,  is  given  also  in  a  contemporary  Chronicle, 
Cod.,  LI  1 1.,  12,  in  the  Barberini  Library  in  Rome,  but  without  the  name 
of  the  murderer.  NOVAES,  VI.,  130,  is  inclined  to  give  credit  to  this, 
but  against  it  we  have  the  fact  that  none  of  the  Ambassadors  who  were 
in  Rome  at  the  time  mention  it.  C/.  Petrucelli  della  Gattina, 
I.,  455.  Pius  III.  was  buried  next  to  Pius  11.,  near  the  Chapel  of 
S.  Andrew  in  S.  Peter's.  His  brothers  Giacomo  and  Andrea  had  a  dispute 
about  the  funeral  expenses.  (Cf.  the  document  in  Piccolomini,  Docu- 
menti,  39-43.)  When  the  Basilica  was  rebuilt  under  Paul  V.,  Cardinal 
Alessandro  Montalto  had  the  tomb  removed  to  S.  Andrea  della  Valle, 
where  it  was  placed  opposite  to  that  of  Pius  II.  (Sigismondo  de' 
CONTI,  II.,  293-325  ;  Mai,  Spicil,  IX., 263.)  The  pompous  inscription 
is  of  a  later  date.  In  his  will  Piccolomini  had  left  a  very  simple  and 
modest  epitaph.  See  PiCCOLOMlNl,  Documenti,  41,  n.  2.  Also  see 
p.  20  about  the  beautiful  ring  possessed  by  Pius  III.  which  now  belongs 
to  Prince  Corsini  and  is  preserved  in  the  National  Museum  at  Florence. 


DEATH    OF   PIUS  III.  20/ 

"  The  death  of  this  Pope,"  wrote  the  Ambassador  of 
Ferrara  on  19th  October,  "  will  be  lamented  at  all  the  courts 
of  Europe,  for  he  was  by  universal  consent  held  to  be  good, 
prudent,  and  pious.  In  spite  of  the  rainy  weather  at  the 
time  all  Rome  hastened  to  kiss  the  feet  of  the  dead  Pope, 
whose  features  were  quite  unaltered.  People  think  that  he 
died  of  the  labours  of  the  Pontificate,  which  were  too  heavy 
for  his  already  enfeebled  health.  The  night  before  his 
election  he  did  not  sleep  at  all,  and  since  then  he  has 
had  no  rest.  He  was  continually  giving  audience  to  the 
Cardinals  ;  then  came  the  fatiguing  ceremonies  of  his  con- 
secration and  coronation.  On  the  previous  Wednesday  a 
long  Consistory  was  held,  the  Pope  remaining  con- 
scientiously to  the  end.  On  the  Friday  he  gave  some  very 
long  audiences ;  kept  the  abstinence  and  ate  fish,  although 
he  had  taken  medicine  only  the  day  before.  Then  he 
got  the  fever,  which  never  left  him  till  he  died."  *  As  the 
Siennese,  Sigismondo  Tizio,  says,  "The  death  of  Pius  III. 
was  a  great  loss  to  the  Church,  to  the  city  of  Rome,  and 
to  us  all,  but  perhaps  we  deserved  no  less  for  our  sins."  f 

"We  hear  of  nothing  but  the  election  of  the  new  Pope," 
wrote  the  Mantuan  Ambassador  on  the  day  of  Pius  III.'s 
death,  "  but  it  is  very  difficult  to  say  which  name  will 
come  out  of  the  urn."|  Eight  days  later  the  question 
was  decided. 

He  left  100  ducats,  300  volumes  of  his  library,  and  the  chalice  which 
when  Pope  he  had  used  every  day,  to  the  German  Hospice  del  Anima. 

KiRCHBAUMER,  I9-20. 

*  See  Appendix,  N.  16,  the  *Report  of  Costabili  of  19th  Oct.,  1503,  in 
the  State  Archives,  Modena.  Cf,  also  the  *Despatch  of  Ghivizano  of 
15th  Oct.,  1503.  Every  one  at  the  Court  lamented  la  morte  e  perdita 
de  un  tan  to  homo  dal  quale  si  sperava  grand°^  bene  per  s'^  chiesa. 
Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

t  NUTI,  Lettera  di  Sigismondi  Tizio,  1 5. 

X  Qui  non  si  attende  altro  cha  a  le  pratiche  del  nuovo  pontefice  ;  mal 


208  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Burchard  relates  that  one  Sunday,  the  29th  of  October, 
1503,  Cardinal  Giuliano  della  Rovere  and  the  other  Spanish 
Cardinals  with  Caesar  Borgia  assembled  in  the  Papal  Palace, 
and  drew  up  an  Election-capitulation  in  which,  among  other 
things,  Cardinal  Giuliano  undertook  if  he  were  made  Pope 
to  appoint  Caesar  standard-bearer  to  the  Church,  and  to 
allow  him  to  retain  all  his  possessions,  Caesar  on  his  part 
undertaking  to  support  the  Pope  in  all  things.  All  the 
Spanish  Cardinals  promised  to  vote  for  Giuliano  at  the 
election.* 

Thus,  by  means  of  Caesar's  help,  against  whom  the  Orsini 
now  no  longer  dared  to  attempt  anything,  and  supported 
by  the  Spanish  Cardinals,  Giuliano,  according  to  the  best 
informed  diplomatists,  was  nearer  than  ever  to  attaining 
the  highest  dignity.-f     All  that  was  now  needed  was  to 

se  po  indicare  in  che  mon  il  debba  caschare.  Hozi  questi  rev""  cardinal 
fanno  congregatione  in  S.  Petro  ;  se  extima  se  afrezarano  presto  per  far 
un  novo  papa.  Despatch  of  Ghivizano,  Rome,  i8th  Oct.,  1503.  Gon- 
zaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

*  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  293.  See  also  the  Despatch  of  Machia- 
veUi  of  4th  Nov.,  1503.  Cf.  Opere  ed.  Passerini,  II.,  214;  Dispacci  di 
A.  Giustinian,  II.,  271  ;  and  Leopardi,  Bonafede,  p.  58  seq.  The 
^Despatches  of  the  Ferrarese  Envoy  Costabili  are  also  interesting.  On 
2ist  Oct.,  1503,  he  writes:  "The  Spanish  Cardinals  do  not  intend  to 
be  poor  when  they  come  out  of  the  Conclave."  On  24th  Oct. :  "Va 
crescendo  la  opinione  per  S.  Petro  in  vincula  il  quale  fa  ogni  cosa  per 
havere  per  se  Spagnoli.  Napoli  anchora  e  in  migJior  opinione  al  pre- 
sente  del  solito.  De  Ascanio  ancora  se  judica  bene.  Tutta  volta  qui  se 
dice  per  proverbio  :  Chi  intra  in  conclavi  papa,  ne  esce  cardinale."  On 
26th  Oct.  :  Attendono  ale  pratiche  del  papato  maxime  Rohano,  Napoli. 
S.  Petro,  S.  Praxede  Ascanio.  (State  Archives,  Modena.)  Ghivizano 
writes  on  29th  Oct.,  1503  :  *I1  rev.  S.  Petro  ad  vincula  me  pare  anchor 
lui  esser  in  bonissima  disposition,  ma  starsene  pare  piu  sobrio  e  cum 
animo  piu  altero  secondo  il  solito  suo.  And  in  a  second  letter  on  the 
same  day,  *Domani  intrano  in  conclavi ;  extimase  S.  Petro  ad  vincula 
intrarli  papa,  se  non  lui  S.  Praxedia.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

t  Dispacci   di   A.   Giustinian,  II.,  271.       Costabili   also    says    in   a 


PROSPECTS  OF  THE  ELECTION.  209 

secure  the  majority  of  two-thirds.  GiuHano,  whom  the 
popular  voice  seemed  to  indicate  as  the  only  possible  Pope, 
was  as  unscrupulous  as  any  of  his  colleagues  in  the  means 
which  he  employed.*  Where  promises  and  persuasions 
were  unavailing,  he  did  not  hesitate  to  have  recourse  to 
bribery.-j- 

Before  the  Conclave  began  Giuliano  already  had  on  his 
side  the  majority  of  the  Italian  Cardinals,  the  Venetians 
in  compliance  with  the  wishes  of  their  government, 
Caesar  Borgia,  and  the  Spaniards,  and,  what  was  still  more 
important,:!:  the  French  party  and  d'Amboise  with  them, 
who  before  had  threatened  to  create  a  schism,  yet  now, 
like  Ascanio  Sforza,  turned  to  adore  the  rising  sun.§ 

*Despatch  of  30th  Oct.,  1503,  "Giuliano  will  certainly  be  Pope,  for  he 
has  gained  the  Spaniards."     State  Archives,  Modena. 

*  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  255,  262,  and  Machiavelli's  Despatch 
of  30th  Oct.     Cf.  Heidenheimer,  14. 

+  Sagmuller,  133,  says  it  seems  probable  that  the  election  of 
Julius  II.  was  simoniacal ;  I  should  say  rather  it  was  certain.  The 
Ferrarese  Envoy  Costabili,  in  his  ^Despatch  of  ist  Nov.,  1503  (State 
Archives,  Modena,  French  translation  in  Petrucelli,  I.,  464),  makes 
this  more  clear  than  A.  Giustinian  and  MachiaveUi,  as  he  furnishes  the 
exact  amounts  of  the  bribes  given  to  the  different  electors.  Cf.  also  the 
^Despatch  of  Costabili  of  30th  Oct.,  cited  supra.  There  is  no 
doubt  that  what  Priuli  says  of  the  bribing  of  the  Spanish  Cardinals  is 
true.  See  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  17,  ed.  3,  2\so  supra.  But  the  report 
of  Cardinal  Adriano  da  Corneto  to  Henry  VII.,  4th  Jan.,  1504 
(Gairdner,  II. j  112),  which  says  that  very  few  of  the  electors  were 
quite  unimpeachable  in  the  matter,  is  more  universally  received.  Of 
the  innumerable  promises  made  by  Giuliano,  Costabili  writes  in  a 
^Despatch  (partly  in  cypher)  of  8th  Nov.,  1503,  (Rohano)  poi  me 
subiunse  formaliter  credo  che  S.  S'^  (in  cypher)  habi  promesso  tanto  in 
questa  sua  electione  (cypher)  che  h'  haria  da  fare  asai  ad  observalo. 
State  Archives,  Modena. 

\  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  276.  C/!  TOMMASINI,  MachiaveUi,  288. 

§  Cf.  Ibid..,  II.,  258,  271,  and,  corroborating  him,  MachiaveUi.  See 
Heidenheimer,  12. 

VOL.   VI.  P 


2IO  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

When,  on  the  30th  of  October,  the  Orsini  and  SaveUi  had 
been  induced  to  withdraw  from  Rome,  the  preparations  for 
the  Conclave  were  complete  and  it  began  on  the  following 
day.  On  the  31st  of  October,  Giuliano,  with  thirty-seven 
other  Cardinals,*  entered  it,  practically  as  Pope-elect.-f  Not 
many  hours  later  his  election  was  an  accomplished  fact, 
and  on  the  following  morning,  ist  November,  the  de- 
cision of  the  Conclave,  which  had  been  the  shortest 
known  in  all  the  long  history  of  the  Papacy,  was  formally 
announced.]: 

Contemporary  writers  without  exception  express  the 
greatest  astonishment  at  the  almost  unanimous  election  of 
one  who,  like  Giuliano,  was  hated  by  many  and  feared  by 
all.§  Sigismondo  de'  Conti  notices  as  a  curious  fact  that 
the  second  successor  of  Alexander  VI.  was  a  Cardinal  who 
had  been  persecuted  by  the  Borgia.  ||  The  Roman  people 
accorded  a  hearty  welcome  to  the  new  Pope,  who  took 
the  title  of  Julius  II.,  and  still  greater  was  the  rejoicing 

*  See  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  291.  According  to  this,  Reumont, 
II.,  8,  andVlLLARl,  Machiavelli,  I.,  388,  who  give  thirty-five,  are  in  error, 
as  also  CiPOLLA,  796,  and  BroSCH,  97,  who  give  thirty-six  as  the  number. 

t  Tommaso  Foschi  writes  in  a  "^Letter,  dated  31st  Oct.,  1503  :  Quella 
si  tegno  per  firmo  che  sel  conclavi  dura  oltra  dui  di  le  cose  del  Vincula 
haveranno  garbuglio  perche  del  mo[mento]  che  lo  h  intrato  in  conclavi 
ogni  homo  tenue  per  certo  che  al  primo  scrutinio  lo  habbia  ad  esser 
electo  et  bene  valeat  Ex.  V.     State  Archives,  Modena. 

t  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  294  seg'.  ;  SiGlSMONDO  DE'  CONTi,  II., 
294  seg. ;  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  273-275  ;  and  *Acta  Consist., 
f,  16.  (Consistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican.)  All  the  Envoys  forwarded 
their  reports  on  31st  Oct.  ;  both  Giustinian  and  Ghivizano  wrote  to  the 
Marquess  of  Mantua.  The  latter  says  :  *A  questhora  che  sono  cinque 
S.  Petro  in  vincula  he  stato  pubhcato  papa  Julio  secondo  el  quale  intro 
fato  in  conclavi.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

§  P.  Delphini,  Oratiunculae,  XVI 11.,  should  be  added  to  the  list  in 
HEroENHElMER,  Machiavelli,  13-14. 

II  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  II.,  293. 


ELECTION    OF   GIULIANO   DELLA   ROVERE.  211 

in  Liguria,  his  native  province.*  Francesco  Guidiccioni, 
writing  on  2nd  November,  1503,  from  Rome  to  Ferrara, 
says:  "People  here  expect  the  reign  of  Julius  II.  to  be 
glorious,  peaceful,  genial,  and  free-handed.  The  Roman 
people,  usually  so  addicted  to  plunder,  are  behaving  so 
quietly  that  every  one  is  in  astonishment.  We  have  a 
Pope  who  will  be  both  loved  and  feared."  f 

After  his  election  the  Pope  confirmed  once  more  the 
Election-capitulation.  Amongst  its  conditions  were  the 
prosecution  of  the  war  against  the  Turks,  and  the  restora- 
tion of  discipline  in  the  Church.  To  this  end  it  stipulated 
that  a  General  Council  should  be  summoned  within  two 
years,  that  the  Pope  should  not  make  war  against  any  of 
the  Powers  without  the  consent  of  two-thirds  of  the  Cardinals, 
and  that  the  Sacred  College  should  be  consulted  on  all 
important  occasions,  especially  in  the  choice  of  new 
Cardinals.  In  order  to  secure  the  freedom  and  safety 
of  the  next  Council  the  place  of  meeting  was  to  be 
determined  by  the  Pope  and  two-thirds  of  the  Cardinals, 
and  in  case  any  hindrance  to  its  meeting  should  be 
alleged,  this  must  be  proved  to  the  satisfaction  of  a  similar 
majority  4 

The  motives  of  the  Cardinals  in  framing  this  capitulation, 
which  so  unduly  and  unlawfully  limited  the  rights  of  the 

*  Senarega,  578;  Olivieri,  Carte,  p.  i,  Stor.  Genovese,  9;  Atti  di 
Soc.  Savon.,  I.,  437  seq.,  452.  See  also  p.  434  seq.,  440  seq.,  448  on 
the  Pope's  affection  for  his  native  province. 

t  *Vienne  extimato  sara  lo  suo  pontificato  molto  glorioso,  pacifico  at 
ameno  et  non  meno  liberale.  Questo  populo  assueto  ad  latrocinii  et 
rubarie  tanto  modificatemente  se  ne  e  deputato  che  e  una  maraviglia.  Lo 
ameranno  et  temeranno  parimente.     State  Archives,  Modena. 

I  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1503,  n.  3-9;  Hergenrother,  VIIL,  396. 
SCHEUERL,  in  his  Chronicle,  states  that  the  Election-capitulation  was 
communicated  to  all  the  Princes  of  Christendom.  Hofler,  Zur  Kritik, 
II.,  59. 


212  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Pope,  were  no  purer  than  formerly.*  Certain  of  its  pro- 
visions, as  for  example  the  one  requiring  the  consent  of 
two-thirds  of  the  Cardinals  before  a  declaration  of  war,  were 
utterly  unreasonable  and  impracticable,  as  a  glance  at  the 
political  state  of  Italy  at  the  time  will  shew.  In  the  South, 
Spain  had  taken  possession  of  Naples  and  Sicily ;  in  the 
North,  France  was  constantly  struggling  to  extend  her 
influence,  while  Venice  at  the  same  time  was  attacking 
the  possessions  of  the  Holy  See  in  the  Romagna.  "  Both 
as  a  Pope  and  as  an  Italian,  Julius  II.  found  himself  in  a 
most  difficult  position.  To  remain  a  passive  spectator  of 
this  scene  of  seething  confusion  would  have  been  a  clear 
dereliction  of  duty  in  a  ruler  and  still  more  in  a  Pope.  To 
prevent  himself  from  being  overwhelmed  by  circumstances 
and  falling  helplessly  into  the  clutches  of  one  or  other  of 
the  great  Powers,  it  was  indispensable  that  Julius  should 
act  at  once  and  with  decision,  and  if  necessary  take  the 
sword  into  his  own  hands ;  "  f  and  for  this  he  was  admirably 
fitted. 

The  Pope's  countrymen  were  wont  to  say  that  he  had 
the  soul  of  an  Emperor,:j:  and  his  outward  appearance  was 
distinguished,  grave,  and  dignified.  The  deep-set  eager 
eyes,  compressed  lips,  pronounced  nose,  and  massive, 
rather  than  handsome  head,  denoted  a  strongly-marked 
and  powerful  personality.^  His  scanty  hair  was  nearly 
white,  but  the  fire  of  youth  glowed  beneath  the  snows  of 
age.     From  his  florid  complexion  and   erect  carriage,  no 

*  Cf.  Vol.  IV.,  9-10,  of  this  work. 

t  Rohrbacher-Knopfler,  287. 

X  Caesareus  animus,  he  is  called,  in  the  Letter  of  congratulation  on 
his  election  from  Genoa,  printed  in  the  Atti  d.  Soc.  Sav.,  I.,  437. 

§  On  the  medal  portraits  of  Julius  II.,  see  Jahrb.  der  Preussischen 
Kunstsammlungen,  II.,  8-9;  III.,  140.  There  are  excellent  reproduc- 
tions of  the  medal  of  Caradosso  in  "  Le  Vatican."  On  the  portrait  by 
Raphael,  see  infra,  Chap.  10. 


CHARACTER   OF   THE   NEW   POPE.  213 

one  would  have  guessed  that  the  new  Pope  was  already  on 
the  threshold  of  old  age.  Still  less  was  there  any  trace  of 
declining  years  in  his  general  demeanour.  Restless,  and 
ever  in  motion,*  ceaselessly  active  and  perpetually  occupied 
with  some  great  design,  self-willed  and  passionatej-  to  the 
highest  degree,  he  was  often  extremely  trying  to  those  who 
were  brought  in  contact  with  him. 

The  Venetian  Ambassadors  speak  of  the  Pope  as 
extremely  acute,  but  terribly  violent  and  difficult  to  deal 
with.  "  He  has  not  the  patience  to  listen  quietly  to  what 
you  say  to  him,  and  to  take  men  as  he  finds  them.  But 
those  who  know  how  to  manage  him,  and  whom  he  trusts, 
say  that  his  will  is  always  good.  No  one  has  any  influence 
over  him,  and  he  consults  few,  or  none.|  One  cannot  count 
upon  him,  for  he  changes  his  mind  from  hour  to  hour. 
Anything  that  he  has  been  thinking  of  overnight  has  to 
be  carried  out  immediately  the  next  morning,  and  he 
insists  on  doing  everything  himself  It  is  almost  im- 
possible to  describe  how  strong  and  violent  and  difficult  to 
manage  he  is.  In  body  and  soul  he  has  the  nature  of  a 
giant.  §      Everything  about  him   is  on  a  magnified  scale, 

*  See  Paris  de  Grassis  in  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  15 12,  n.  38. 

t  Cf.  Sanuto,  II.,  730 ;  VII.,  32  ;  Paris  de  Grassis,  280,  ed  Frati. 
Ariosto,  who  was  in  danger  of  being  included  in  the  wrath  of  Pope 
JuHus  II.  against  the  Duke  of  Ferrara,  playfully  alludes  to  this  in  the 
well-known  verses  of  his  first  satire  : — 

Andar  piu  a  Roma  in  posta  non  accade, 
A  placar  la  grand'  ira  di  Secondo. 

X  P.  Capello  in  his  narrative  of  the  year  15 10  in  SanUTO,  X.,  73. 
Cf.  Grumello,  130. 

§  See  the  extracts  from  the  Reports  of  the  Venetian  Ambassador,  G. 
Lippomano,  and  of  P.  Capello  in  Sanuto,  XL,  722,  725,  729,  730, 
741,  746,  772-773,  781,  843  ;  XII.,  12,  32  ;  XIV.,  482.  Cf.  the  Report 
of  the    Orvieto   Envoy  in  FUMI,  Carteggio,  151,   and    D.    Trevizano's 


214  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

both  his  undertakings  and  passions.  His  impetuosity  and 
liis  temper  annoy  those  who  live  with  him,  but  he  inspires 
fear  rather  than  hatred,  for  there  is  nothing  in  him  that  is 
small  or  meanly  selfish."*  Everything  had  to  bow  to  his 
iron  will,  even  his  own  poor  gout-tormented  body.  "  He 
had  no  moderation  either  in  will  or  conception ;  whatever 
was  in  his  mind  must  be  carried  through,  even  if  he  him- 
self were  to  perish  in  the  attempt."f 

The  impression  produced  on  his  contemporaries  by  this 
mighty  scion  of  the  Renaissance  is  summarised  by  them  in 
the  Italian  word  "  terribile,"  which  could  only  be  rendered 
in  English  by  a  string  of  adjectives.^     Julius  H.  applied 

narrative  of  the  year  1510,  modernised  and  not  always  quite  accurate,  in 
Alberi,  2  Serie,  III.,  29  seq.  It  is  better  given  in  Sanuto,  X.,  'j']  seq. 
The  description  of  Julius  II.  here  is  :  "  II  papa  e  sagaze,  gran  pratichon, 
a  anni  65,  a  mal  vechio,  e  gote  tamen  e  prosperoso,  fa  gran  faticha, 
niun  pol  con  lui,  aide  tutti,  ma  far  quelle  li  par.  ^  .  venuto  {sic) 
e  di  la  bocha  e  di  altro  per  voler  viver  piu  moderato.  Instead  of  e 
venuto  Alberi  writes,  e  ritenuto  ;  Ranke  (Lives  of  the  Popes,  Vol,  III., 
App.  8,  ed.  6).  ^  tenu/o,  as  he  remarks,  "  I  understand  that  people  think 
it  would  be  better  if  he  were  more  moderate  in  eating  and  drinking  and 
in  every  other  respect." 

*  Springer,  Rafael  und  Michelangelo,  loi.  Cf.  Inghirami  in  Fea, 
Notizie,  54. 

t  MOCENIGO,  Lib.  IV.;  Havemann,  II.,  349.  On  his  gout  see  Paris 
DE  Grassis,  369,  ed.  Dollinger. 

X  The  common  translation  of  "  terribile,"  "  fearful "  (given  in  Reumont, 
III.,  2,  388)  is  not  correct.  Grimm,  Michaelangelo,  II.,  532,  ed.  5,  says 
truly  that  Vasari  in  the  adjective yf^r^?  means  to  give  the  impression  of 
something  out  of  the  common  ;  "  there  is  no  question  of  good  or  bad  in 
the  matter,  but  just  as  with  the  word  terribile  used  by  him  with  the  same 
meaning,  and  really  as  the  superlative  ol  Jiero^  he  intends  to  imply  that 
which  creates  astonishment  by  its  mighty  individuality."  Cf.  Vischer, 
Signorelh,  200  seq.  Gregorovius,  VII I.,  iio,  ed.  3,  had  already  re- 
marked, "  This  Pope  is,  as  a  man,  one  of  the  most  original  figures  in  the 
Renaissance  period,  so  rich  in  powerful  personalities."  "The  word 
Italians  have  for  such  natures  is  terribile.     It  is  macrnanimo  with  the 


HIS   COURAGE  AND   STRENGTH   OF  WILL.  215 

this  term  himself  to  Michael  Angelo,  but  it  suits  the  Pope 
quite  as  well  as  the  painter.  Both  were  extraordinary  and 
Titanic  natures,  in  stature  beyond  that  of  ordinary  men, 
and  such  as  no  other  age  has  produced.  Both  possessed 
an  unusual  strength  of  will,  indomitable  courage  and 
perseverance,  and  great  strategic  abilities. 

The  life  of  Julius  II.  had  hitherto  been  one  of  incessant 
combat  and  hard  work,  and  these  things  had  become 
necessary  to  him.  He  belonged  to  that  class  of  men  who 
cannot  rest,  whose  natural  element  is  perpetual  activity. 
At  the  same  time,  he  was  by  no  means  unsusceptible  to 
feelings  of  a  gentler  kind.  He  was  deeply  affected  and 
shed  tears  as  he  watched  the  funeral  procession  of  his  sister 
Lucchina  in  May,  1509.* 

Julius  II.  can  only  be  called  a  diplomatist  by  using  the 
word  in  a  very  restricted  sense.  If  he  did  not  altogether 
despise  the  arts  of  statecraft  so  universally  practised  in  his 
day,  and  could  at  a  pinch  resort  to  dissimulation,*!-  he  was 
by  nature  sincere  and  plain-spoken,  and  often  his  language 
overstepped  all  due  bounds  in  its  rudeness  and  violence. 
This  fault  increased  perceptibly  as  he  grew  older. J  In  the 
beginning  of  his  Pontificate  he  was  able  to  restrain  his 
expressions  within  the  limits  of  diplomatic  form  ;  later  on, 
in  speaking  of  the  Emperor  Maximilian,  he  permitted  him- 
self to  use  the  most  contemptuous  and  injurious  terms 
without   the   least   reserve.§      Disguise    of  any   kind   was 

added  meaning  of  strong  personality."  I  found  the  expression  ierribile 
used  of  Julius  II.,  and  most  frequently  in  the  Reports  of  the  Venetian 
Ambassador,  G.  Lippomano,  in  Sanuto,  XL,  725  (a  cuor  e  animo 
terribile),  772  (a  cuor  terribile  in  ogni  casso),  778  (non  stima  ni  fredo 
ni  neve  ;  natura  terribile). 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  390,  ed.  Dollinger ;  cf.  386. 

+  Cf.  infra,  Chaps.  2  and  7. 

X  MaULDE,  La  Diplomatie,  III.,  21  seq. 

§  See  the  Venetian  Reports  in  Sanuto,  X.,  79  (I'imperador  lo  stima 


2l6  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

contrary  to  his  nature.  Any  idea  which  laid  hold  of  his 
mind  engrossed  him  entirely  ;  you  could  see  it  in  his  face, 
his  lips  quivered  to  utter  it.  "  It  will  kill  me,"  he  would 
say,  "if  I  don't  let  it  out."* 

Paris  de  Grassis,  his  Master  of  Ceremonies,  who  has 
handed  on  to  us  so  many  characteristic  features  of  his 
master's  life,  says  that  he  hardly  ever  jested.-f  He  was 
generally  absorbed  in  deep  and  silent  thought,  and  thus 
Raphael  has  painted  him.  The  plans  concocted  in  these 
uncommunicative  hours  were  announced  with  volcanic 
abruptness  and  carried  out  with  iron  determination.  His 
bitterest  opponents  could  not  deny  his  greatness — he  was  a 
man  of  spontaneous  impulses  carrying  everything  before 
them,  himself  and  others,  a  true  Roman. 

Doubtless  such  a  nature  was  in  itself  more  suited  to  be  a 
King  or  a  warrior,  than  a  priest, "  but  he  was  the  right  Pope 
for  that  time,  to  save  Rome  from  becoming  a  second 
Avignon  with  all  its  disastrous  consequences  for  the 
Church. "  t 

To  Julius  n.  the  restoration,  consolidation,  and  ex- 
tension of  the  temporal  possessions  of  the  Church  pre- 
sented itself  as  the  prime  necessity  of  the  moment,  and 
to  this  he  devoted  himself  with  all  the  energy  of  his 
choleric  temperament  and  strong  practical  genius.  A 
new  monarchy  must  be  created  which  should  command 
respect  abroad,  be  the  rallying  point  of  the  Italian 
States,  and  secure  the  freedom  and  independence  of  the 
Church.     The  Pope  must   no   longer   be  dependent  upon 

infantem  nudum)  and  p.  72  (dice  e  una  bestia,  merita  piu  presto  esser 
recto  e  rezudo  che  rezer  altri). 

*  Ranke,  Rom.  und  Germ.  Volker,  211.,  to  which  we  may  add  the 
powerful  description  of  him  by  Carpesanus,  V.,  19. 

t  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  261. 

X  Rohrbacher-Knopfler,  287. 


JULIUS   II.   THE  "SAVIOUR   OF  THE   PAPACY."       21/ 

the  support  of  this  Power  or  that,  but  must  be  able  himself 
to  control  the  political  situation.* 

The  aim  which  he  set  before  himself  from  the  first 
waf  to  revive  the  temporal  power  of  the  Papacy,  and 
to  establish  the  independence  of  the  Holy  See  on  a  firm 
basis  by  the  creation  of  a  strong  ecclesiastical  State. 
Fearlessly  confronting  the  hindrances  which  the  evil 
rule  of  the  Borgia  had  put  in  his  way,  shrinking  from  no 
sacrifices,  and  ready  to  employ  any  means,  he  threw  the 
whole  strength  of  his  will  into  this  one  endeavour.  This 
he  pursued  with  unwearied  persistence  and  clear  insight 
to  his  very  last  breath,  and  thus  became  the  "  Saviour  of 
the  Papacy."  f 

Even  Guicciardini,  much  as  he  hated  the  state  policy 
of  Julius  II.,  is  forced  to  admit  that  he  had  no  private 
or  selfish  desires.J  "  Although  in  his  youth  he  had  lived 
very  much  as  the  other  prelates  of  that  day  did,  and  was 
by  no  means  scrupulous,  he  devoted  himself  to  the  exalta- 
tion and  welfare  of  the  Church  with  a  whole-hearted ness 
and  courage  which  were  very  rare  in  the  age  in  which 
he  was  born.  Without  neglecting  his  relations,  he  never 
sacrificed  the  interests  of  either  the  State  or  the  Church 
to  them,  or  carried  his  nepotism  beyond  due  bounds. 
In  all  his  ways  and  aims,  as  well  as  in  his  stormy  and 
fervid  character,  he  was  the  exact  contrary  of  the 
Borgia."  § 

His  dislike  of  this  family  was  so  strong  that  on  the 
26th  of  November,  1507,  he  announced  that  he  would  no 
longer  inhabit  the  Appartamento  Borgia,  as  he  could  not 

*  II  papa  vol  esser  il  dominus  e  maistro  dil  mondo,  says  Trevisano 
in  his  narrative  of  the  year  15 10  in  Sanuto,  X.,  80. 
t  See  BURCKHARDT,  Cultur,  I.,  in,  ed.  3. 
t  Guicciardini,  XL,  c.  4. 
§  ViLLARi,  Machiavelli,  I.,  389.     Cf.  Springer,  ioi. 


2l8  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

bear  to  be  constantly  reminded  by  the  fresco  portraits  of 
Alexander  of  "  those  Maranas  of  cursed  memory."  *  The 
Bull  in  which,  in  the  year  1504,  Julius  II.  took  the 
Duchy  of  Sermoneta  away  from  Rodrigo  Borgia  and 
restored  it  to  the  Gaetani,  contains  even  more  severe 
language  than  this  in  condemnation  of  his  predecessor. 
In  the  same  year  he  reinvested  Giovanni  Sforza,  who  had 
returned  to  Pesaro  immediately  after  Alexander's  death, 
with  the  fiefdom  of  that  place.  He  also  gave  back  their 
castles  to  the  Colonna  and  Orsini.-j- 

The  contrast  between  Julius  II.  and  Alexander  is 
equally  manifest  in  the  way  in  which  the  former  treated 
his  relations.  He  wholly  repudiated  the  system  of 
nepotism,  and  though  he  was  not  free  from  a  natural 
partiality  for  his  own  blood,  comparatively  speaking  he 
did  very  little  for  them.  Even  on  his  death-bed  he  steadily 
refused  to  admit  a  near  kinsman  to  the  College  of 
Cardinals,  whom  he  did  not  consider  worthy.  "  His 
nephew  Francesco  Maria  was  heir  presumptive  of  Urbino 
and  to  him  he  granted,  with  the  consent  of  the  College 
of  Cardinals,  the  Vicariate  of  Pesaro,  formerly  a  fief  of 
the  Sforzas  (Giovanni  Sforza  died  in  1510),  and  this  was 
the  only  portion  of  the  States  which  he  ever  withdrew 
from   the   immediate   rule   of   the    Holy    See."|      On    the 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  383,  ed.  Bollinger.  Cf.  MiJNTZ,  Les  Historiens 
de  Raphael,  131- 132.  Yriarte,  Autour  des  Borgia,  72,  thinks  that 
De  Grassis  lays  too  much  stress  on  this  incident. 

t  GREGOROVIUS,  VIII.,  397-398,  ed.  3,  with  the  correction  in 
Balan,  v.,  442.     See  also  Ratti,  I.,  164. 

\  Reumont,  III.,  2,44  ;  Ratti,  I.,  169  seq. ;  cf.  Creighton,  IV.,  71. 
Machiavelli  says  of  Julius  II.  (Principe,  c.  11):  fece  ogni  cosa  per 
acrescere  la  Chiesa,  non  alcun  privato.  Brosch  does  not  altogether 
exonerate  Julius  II.  from  nepotism,  but  here  again  he  exaggerates.  Cf. 
TOMMASINI,  Machiavelli,  I.,  323.  Besides,  Brosch  admits  in  another 
place  (p.  113)  that  Julius  was  more  moderate  in  the  favours  shewn  to  his 


HIS   FREEDOM   FROM    NEPOTISM.  219 

2nd  of  March,  1505,  Francesco  Maria  was  married  by  pro- 
curation to  Leonora,  daughter  of  the  Marquess  Francesco 
Gonzaga.  Julius  took  no  part  in  the  wedding  festivities 
at  the  Vatican,  excusing  himself  on  the  ground  of 
decorum.* 

Out  of  the  twenty-seven  Cardinals  whom  Julius  II. 
created,  only  a  very  small  number  were  relations  of  his 
own,  and  none  of  these  had  any  influence,  although  the 
Pope  was  extremely  fond  of  Galeotto  della  Rovere.  This 
Cardinal  was  a  man  of  refined  culture,  the  son  of  the 
Pope's  sister  Lucchina  by  her  first  marriage  with 
Franciotto  of  Lucca.  He  was  raised  to  the  Cardina- 
late  on  the  29th  of  November,  1503.  At  the  same  time 
Fran(^ois  Guillaume  de  Clermont,  Archbishop  of  Auch, 
Juan  de  Zuniga,  and  Clemente  Grosso  della  Rovere  were 
nominated.f  Galeotto,  who  was  Vice  -  Chancellor  from 
1505,  held  a  large  number  of  benefices  in  accordance 
with  the  evil  custom  of  the  times,  "  but  he  made  a  noble 
use  of  his  large  revenues."  Artists  and  men  of  learning 
found  in  him  a  most  generous  patron.J      "  He  understood 

relations  than  was  customary  at  the  time.  In  contradiction  to  the 
exaggerations  of  Brosch,  his  critic  in  the  article  in  the  Allg.  Zeitung 
(1878),  No.  73,  Suppl.,  remarks  justly  that  Julius  II.  always  acted  prima- 
rily in  the  interests  of  the  Papal  Chair. 

*  GREGOROVIUS,  VIII.,  39,  ed.  3  ;  cf.  Luzio,  Mantova  e  Urbino,  157, 
164. 

t  On  the  creation  of  Cardinals  of  29th  Nov.,  1503  (not  22nd  Nov. 
as  Paris  de  Grassis  says  in  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1 503,  n.  20),  see  *Acta 
Consist.,  f.  16  (Consistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican) ;  Burchardi 
Diarium,  III.,  309,  311;  Cardella,  307  seq.  With  the  *Letter  of 
Francesco  Guidiccioni,  dated  Rome,  29th  Nov.,  1503,  cf.  the  *Report 
of  Costabili  of  4th  Dec,  1 503,  both  in  the  State  Archives,  Modena. 
The  Cardinal's  hat  was  given  to  Zuniga  on  the  24th  of  Feb.,  1504. 
See  the  *Brief  of  that  date  to  him  in  *Lib.  brev.  22,  f  25.  Secret 
Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

X  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  40,  ed.  3       Cf.  ClACONlUS,  III.,    252  seq.\ 


220  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

how  to  soothe  his  uncle  in  his  violent  moods  by  his  tact 
and  gentleness."  He  was  an  intimate  friend  of  Cardinal 
Medici  (afterwards  Leo  X.),  whose  tastes  were  similar  to  his 
own,  and  who,  even  as  Cardinal,  was  lavish  in  his  liberality 
to  artists  and  scholars.* 

The  second  nomination  of  Cardinals  under  Julius  II. 
was  preceded  by  tedious  negotiations,  for  the  majority 
of  the  College,  from  self-interested  motives,  did  not  wish 
their  number  to  be  increased.-]-  The  Pope,  however^ 
insisted,  and  the  Cardinals  then  endeavoured  to  persuade 
him  at  least  to  defer  it.j  But  Julius  held  that  it  was 
absolutely  necessary  to  fill  up  the  vacancies,  as  in  the 
year  1504  alone  six  had  died.§  The  College  still  con- 
tinued its  resistance,  but  the  Envoys  were  convinced  that 
the  Pope  would  conquer.  They  thought  the  creation 
would  take  place  on  the  28th  of  November,  1505.il 

On  the  1st  December,  after  a  long  and  stormy  discussion, 
the  Consistory  having  lasted  eight  hours,  Julius  carried  his 
point  so  far  as  to  have  it  arranged  that  in  the  approach- 

L.  DE  ViLLENEUVE,  Recherches  sur  la  famille  de  la  Rovere.  Contribu- 
tion pour  servir  k  I'histoire  du  P.  Jules  II.,  42  seq.^  68  seq.  (Rome,  1887)  \ 
Ambrosius,  B.  Mantuanus,  78;  Cian,  Cortegiano,  180;  Giorn.  d. 
Lett.  Ital.,  IX.,  115.  The  lucrative  and  important  office  of  Vice- 
Chancellor  (see  Vol.  III.  of  this  work,  p.  459)  was  given  to  Galeotta 
after  the  death  of  Ascanio  Sforza  in  June  1505.  See  *Lib.  brev.  22, 
f-  330^-  (Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican.)  Galeotto  was  also  made 
Legate  of  Bologna.  Cf.  the  *Letter  of  Julius  II.  to  Bologna,  dated 
Rome,  26th  May,  1 504.     State  Archives,  Bologna. 

*  Albertini,  VIII.-IX.,  ed.  Schmarsow.  Further  particulars  of  Leo  X. 
as  a  patron  of  Art  will  be  found  in  our  forthcoming  vol. 

t  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  III.,  287,  305,  309,  413,  462. 

X  See  *Consistoraha  Raph.  Riarii  Card.  s.  Georgii  in  Cod.  J.,  1 11.^ 
89,  f.  'J'],  in  the  Chigi  Library. 

§  Panvinius,  348,  349. 

II  Brognolo's  *Despatch,  dat.  Rome,  28th  Nov.,  1505.  Gonzaga 
Archives,  Mantua. 


CREATION    OF   CARDINALS.  221 

ing  Ember  week  nine  out  of  ten  candidates  whom  he  had 
proposed  should  receive  the  Red-hat.*  The  official  nomina- 
tion and  publication  took  place  in  the  Consistory  of  the 
1 2th  of  November. f 

The  new  Cardinals  were  :  Marco  Vigerio,  Bishop  of  Sini- 
gaglia ;  Robert  Challand,  Bishop  of  Rennes,  and  French 
Ambassador  in  Rome ;  Leonardo  Grosso  della  Rovere,  the 
brother  of  Cardinal  Clernenti ;  Antonio  Ferreri,  Bishop  of 
Gubbio  ;  Francesco  Alidosi,  Bishop  of  Pavia  ;  Gabriello  dei 
Gabrielli,  Bishop  of  Urbino ;  Fazio  Santori,  Bishop  of 
Cesena ;  Carlo  Domenico  di  Carretto,  Count  of  Finale ;  and 
Sigismondo    Gonzaga.     With   the    exception    of  the    last 

*  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  408  seq.;  Paris  de  Grassis  in  Raynald- 
US,  ad  an.  1505,  n.  41-42,  and  Dollinger's  edition,  368  seq.  See  also, 
p.  371,  the  story  of  how  J.  Burchard  tried  by  trickery  to  get  made  a 
Cardinal.  Grassis  is,  however,  so  veiy  bitter  against  Burchard  {ob.  26th 
May,  1 506),  and  speaks  against  him  so  much,  that  what  he  says  is  not  to 
be  trusted.  See,  further,  *Acta  Consist.,  f.  18,  here  the  names  are  given 
of  the  twenty-five  Cardinals  who  at  last  gave  their  consent  to  the  new 
creation.  (Consistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican) ;  Sanuto,  VI.,  252, 
262,  265  seq.,  268,  269  ;  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  IL,  342  seq.;  Report 
of  the  Ferrarese  Embassy,  Rome,  4th  Dec,  1505  (State  Archives, 
Modena) ;  Scheurl,  Briefbuch,,  1 1  seq. ;  Alidosi's  Letter  in  Fanti, 
Imola,  12-13.  Girolamo  Arsago  in  a  *Letter  dated  Rome,  24th  Nov., 
1505,  privately  sent  to  F.  Gonzaga  a  Hst  of  those  who  were  to  be 
made  Cardinals  at  Christmas.  Brognolo  in  a  ^Despatch  of  ist  Dec, 
mentions  the  nomination  of  Sigismondo  Gonzaga.  (Both  letters  are  in 
the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.)  There  is  also  a  *Letter  of  congratula- 
tion from  "  Cardinal  S.  Praxedis  "  to  the  Marquess,  dat.  Romae  in  aedibus 
nostris  Campi  Maitii,  ist  Dec,  1505.  The  Pope  himself,  in  a  ^Letter 
written  on  ist  Dec.  to  the  Duke  of  Urbino,  mentions  the  nomination  of 
Sigismondo.  *Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  410.  Cf.  also  Appendix,  Nos.  47,  49,  the 
two  *Briefs  of  ist  and  24th  Dec,  1 505,  to  Queen  Anne  of  France.  Secret 
Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

t  Paris  de  Grassis  in  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1505,  n.  43  ;  Burchardi 
Diarium,  III.,  409  J^^.;  *Acta  Consist.,  f  18.  Cardella,  311,  says  nth 
of  Dec. 


222  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

named,  they  were  all  in  Rome  at  the  time,  and  on  the  17th 
of  December  they  each  received  their  hats  and  titular 
churches.*  The  ascendency  of  Julius  II.  over  the  Cardinals 
was  now  secured,  although  all  opposition  was  not  wholly 
overcome  till  somewhat  later.-f 

To  the  great  grief  of  the  Pope  and  the  Roman  people, 
Galeotto  della  Rovere  died  on  the  nth  September,  1508. 
Julius  transferred  his  Cardinal's  hat  and  all  his  benefices  to 
Sixtus  Gara  della  Rovere,^  Galeotto's  half-brother,  who  un- 
happily was  far  from  resembling  him  in  character,  either 
intellectually  or  morally.§ 

Besides  these  three  creations,  Julius  II.  in  the  year  1507 
nominated  four  Cardinals,  eight  in  151 1,  and  one  in  15 12, 
but  none  of  these  were  in  any  way  related  to  him.||  Thus 
the  historian  of  the  city  of  Rome  only  states  the  exact  truth 
when  he  says,  "  Alexander  VI.  aimed  at  nothing  but  the 
aggrandisement  of  his  children;  the  one  care  of  Julius  II. 
was  to  build  up  the  States  of  the  Church,  he  spent  nothing 
on  his  nephews." If     He  was  also  moderate  in  his  personal 

*  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  410  seq.;  Sanuto,  VI.,  272  ;  *Acta 
Consist.,  loc.  cit.  Undoubtedly,  S.  Gonzaga  (see  Vol.  V.  of  this  work, 
p.  171)  and  F.  Alidosi  were  unworthy  of  the  dignity  conferred  on  them. 
G.  de  Gabrielli,  on  the  contraiy,  was  an  excellent  man.     See  Amiani, 

t  11  papa  si  fa  temer  e  la  fa  imperiose,  writes  the  Venetian  Ambassador. 
Sanuto,  VI.,  269. 

X  Paris  de  Grassis,  385-386,  Bollinger's  edition  ;  Sanuto,  VII., 
629,  632,  639;  Cardella,  339  seq.\  and  in  Appendix,  N.  79,  Cos- 
tabili's  Report  of  nth  Sept.,  1508.     State  Archives,  Modena. 

§  Gregorovius,  VIIL,  41,  ed.  3. 

II  The  particulars  of  these  nominations  will  be  found  infra^  in  Chaps. 
3  and  5.  On  the  further  development  of  the  rights  of  option  of  the 
Cardinals  since  the  time  of  Julius  II.,  see  O.  Panvinius,  De  episco- 
palibus  titulis  et  diaconiis  cardinalium,  42  seq.     Paris.,  1609. 

IT  Gregorovius,  VIIL,  41,  ed.  3.  Cf.  Rohrbacher-Knopfler, 
287-288. 


ECONOMY  OF  JULIUS   II.  223 

expenditure,  though  he  kept  a  better  table  than  Alexander 
VI. ;  the  monthly  bill  for  this  was  between  2000  and  3000 
ducats,  that  of  his  successor  was  8000.*  His  expenditure 
for  plate  was  by  no  means  extra vagant.f 

Julius  II.  was  so  economical  in  his  house-keeping  |  that  he 
was,  quite  unjustly,  accused  by  many  of  being  a  miser.§ 
It  is  quite  true  that  he  was  very  careful  to  keep  his  treasury 
always  well  filled.||  He'  quite  realised  the  futility  of  any 
pretensions  that  had  not  physical  force  to  back  them,  and 
knew  that  an  efficient  army  meant  plenty  of  money.H  In 
the  beginning  of  his  reign,  Julius  II.  had  great  financial 
difficulties  to  contend  with,  in  consequence  of  the  extrava- 
gance of  his  predecessor.  He  had  to  borrow  money,  and 
to  pay  Alexander's  debts,  even  down  to  the  medicine  which 
he  had  required  in  his  last  illness.** 

*  For  particulars  on  this  point  see  GregorOVIUS  in  Sybels  Hist. 
Zeitschr.,  XXXVI.,  158,  162  seq.^  founded  on  the  account-books  in  the 
Roman  State  Archives.  I  found  here  disbursements  for  wine,  which 
seldom  appear  in  the  household  expenses  of  the  earlier  Popes.  He  pre- 
ferred foreign  wines,  Levantine  and  Corsican.  That  he  was  addicted  to 
drink  is  an  invention  of  his  political  enemies. 

t  Reumont,  IIL,  2,  48. 

%  Sanuto,  X.,  80. 

§  ^^^len  it  was  a  question  of  Art  or  of  the  dignity  of  his  position,  Julius 
IL  never  grudged  expense.  On  his  very  costly  mitre,  see  Paris  de 
GraSSIS,  415,  ed.  Dollinger,  and  LUZIO,  F.  Gonzaga,  21. 

II  On  the  financial  policy  of  Julius  II.,  cf.  COPPI,  Discorso  sulle  finanze 
dello  stato  ponteficio  dal  sec.  xvi.,  etc.  (Roma,  1855  [Opusculi,  II.]), 
I  seq.;  Reumont,  III.,  2,  47  seq.;  GOTTLOB,  Cam.  Ap.,  276  seq.\ 
Ranke,  I.,  268  seq.^  ed.  6. 

IT  Creighton,  IV.,  73. 

**  Paulus  Sauli  (depositarius)  lent  to  the  Treasury  sede  vacante  per 
obitum  Pii  III.  on  a  bond  from  the  notary  of  the  treasury,  Bonif  de 
Montefalco,  endorsed  by  the  Cardinals  Neapolitanus,  Alexandrinus,  and 
the  Treasurer,  7289  due.  de  camera,  64  bol.  *Introit.  et  exitus,  vol.  535, 
f.  156.     Heinricus  Fucher  (Fugger)  et  fratres  mercatores  alamanni  had 


224  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Some  of  the  means  which  he  adopted  for  the  replenish- 
ment of  his  treasury  were  of  a  very  objectionable  kind. 
His  subjects  were  certainly  not  oppressed  with  taxation, 
but  it  cannot  be  denied  that  he  not  only  sold  offices,*  but 
also  benefices.-f-  This  formed  a  serious  hindrance  to  the 
reform  which  was  so  much  needed  ;  for  if  that  were  carried 
out,  it  would  mean  the  abolition  of  all  such  sales.  It  is 
true  that  under  Julius  II.  the  money  was  employed  for  the 
interests  of  the  Church,  and  not  for  the  enrichment  of  his 
family  ;  but  this  is  no  justification  for  persistence  in  simony. 
The  complaints  of  contemporaries  both  in  Italy  and  abroad 
shew  how  strongly  this  abuse  was  resented.^  Another 
great  evil  was  that  grants  of  occasional  Indulgences  were 
so  often  employed  as  a  means  of  obtaining  money.     In  the 

lent  in  assumptione  Pii  III.  universis  conclavistis  2570  due.  auri.  On 
7th  March,  1 504,  they  received  from  the  ApostoHcal  Treasury,  3480  due. 
de  camera,  13  bol.  *Exitus,  vol.  535,  f.  167.  Julius  II.  on  the  day  of  his 
Coronation  gave  to  "  diversis  personis"  56  due.  68  bol.,  and  again  747 
due.  36  bol.,  which  he  borrowed  from  the  Treasurer,  Rafifaele  Riario. 
*Exitus,  vol.  535,  f.  155b.  "Pro  suis  et  sedis  apostoliee  necessitatibus," 
he  took  from  the  Treasuiy  on  19th  January,  1504,  5416  due.  48  bol.,  on 
1st  February,  20,312  due.  36  bol.,  on  29th  June,  1814  due.  42  boL,  etc. 
(see  *Exitus,  vol.  535,  f  158^,  161,  201),  and  also  in  the  following  years 
large  sums  under  the  same  title.  At  first  there  are  many  entries  for 
the  discharge  of  debts,  later  for  troops.  *Exitus,  vol.  535,  f  182  :  Dicta 
die  (scil.  14  Mai,  1505)  solvit  (seil.  thesaurius)  floren.  centum  septuaginta 
sex  ....  Lueretie  uxori  Francisci  de  Montepuleiano  aromatario  (!)  pro 
diversis  aromatis  et  medieis  (!)  datis  fe.  re.  pape  Alexandro,  ut  apparet  ex 
computo  dato  in  camera  apostolica.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

*  GOTTLOB,  Cam.  Ap.,  250  seq.;  Ranke,  I.,  263  j^^.,  ed.  6;  Arch. 
d.  Soc.  Rom.,  IV.,  263  seq. 

t  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  124.  On  the  bribery  which  prevailed  in  the 
Roman  Court  under  Julius  II.,  see  the  Swiss  Ambassadorial  Report  in  the 
Anz.  i.  Schweiz.  Gesch.  (1892),  373. 

X  Cf.  ClAN,  Cortegiano,  157;  Sitzungsberichte  der  Wiener  Akad., 
X.,  402. 


FINANCIAL   ABILITY   OF  JULIUS   II.  22$ 

case  of  the  Jubilee  Indulgences,  powers  for  which  were  con- 
ceded by  the  Pope  to  the  German  Orders,  the  Chapter  of 
Constance,  and  the  Augsburg  Dominicans,  the  half  of  the 
proceeds  were  to  be  handed  over  to  Rome.* 

The  Pope's  fixed  income  in  the  year  1510  was  estimated 
by  the  Venetian  Ambassador  at  200,000  ducats,  and  his 
floating  income  at  150,000,  a  very  small  sum  for  one  in  the 
position  of  Head  of  the  Church.-j-  The  accounts  of  the 
treasure  in  the  Castle  of  St.  Angelo  during  the  reign  of 
Julius  II.  are  of  such  a  nature  that  it  is  impossible  to  arrive 
at  any  certain  conclusion  as  to  the  exact  amount ;  but  we 
know  that  at  his  death  it  was  more  than  had  been  left  by 
any  previous  Pope  since  John  XXI I.  ;j: 

By  his  good  management  in  matters  of  finance,  Julius  II. 
was  enabled  not  only  to  carry  on  his  wars  for  the  recon- 
struction of  the  States  of  the  Church,  and  to  carry  out  many 
noble  artistic  undertakings,  but  also  to  be  very  generous  in 
the  matter  of  alms-giving,§  and  amply  to  provide  for  all 

*  Paulus  in  the  Hist.  Jahrb.,  XVI.,  37  seq.  Julius  II.'s  Brief  of  In- 
dulgence for  King  Maximilian  I.,  published  in  the  Romisch.  Quartal- 
schrift,  IV.,  278,  by  Schlecht,  is  interesting,  because  it  affords  a  clear  de- 
finition of  the  doctrine  of  the  Church  in  regard  to  Indulgences,  shortly 
before  the  outbreak  of  the  great  theological  disputes  on  that  subject. 

t  Reumont,  III.,  2,  282  ;  Ranke,  III.,  8*  ed.  6. 

\  Fea,  Notizie,  60  ;  Brosch,  273. 

§  From  the  "^Divers.  Juhi  II.,  1507-15 13  (State  Archives,  Rome),  we 
find  that  the  Pope  not  only  assisted  the  refugees  from  the  East,  but  did 
a  great  deal  for  other  needy  persons,  and  especially  for  poor  convents. 
In  f.  66  we  find  in  July  15 12,  an  entry  of  alms  pro  monialibus  S.  Cos- 
matis,  Turris  pendentis,  mentis  Magnanapoli,  S.  M.  Annunc.  di  Firenze, 
S.  Cath.  de  Senis  ;  in  f  130,  under  the  head  of  Subventiones,  Januarii 
1509,  and  f  133,  mensis  Decemb.  A"  Julii  II.  sexto,  many  of  the  same 
names  recur,  but  with  the  addition  of  others.  In  f  138  there  is  a  pay- 
ment on  23rd  July,  1 51 1,  for  the  hospital  of  S.  Maria  in  porticu  de  urbe. 
Also  numerous  disbursements  for  the  Papal  Swiss  Guards  ;  cf.  i7tfra. 
p.  226,  note  f.     On  the  assistance  given  by  Julius  II.  to  the  hospital  of 

VOL.   VI.  Q 


226  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

necessary  works  in  the  city  and  in  the  States  of  the  Church. 
Perfect  order  reigned  in  Rome  under  the  strong  hand  of 
Niccolo  de'  Fieschi  of  the  family  of  the  Counts  of  Lavagna, 
who  was  Captain  of  the  Watch.  The  murderous  outrages 
which  had  become  so  frequent  in  the  reigns  of  Innocent 
VIII.  and  Alexander  VI.  had  entirely  ceased.  The  streets 
of  Rome,  which  the  Pope  was  constantly  widening  or  em- 
bellishing, could  now  be  traversed  in  peace  and  security.* 
Raphael's  fresco  of  the  Mass  of  Bolsena  has  made  us  familiar 
with  the  outward  appearance  of  the  Swiss  Guards  ;  they 
numbered  200  men,  upon  whom  the  Pope  could  absolutely 
depend.  They  also  formed  a  permanent  central  body, 
serving  as  a  nucleus  for  a  larger  army  when  more  troops 
were  needed,  and  their  officers  brought  the  best  families  in 
Switzerland  into  close  and  confidential  relations  with  Rome.f 
The  regulations  of  Julius  II.  defining  the  authority  of  the 
Judges  of  the  Capitol,  and  also  of  the  Vicar,  Governor,  and 
Senators,  in  cases  of  disputes  and  quarrels  within  the  city, 
were  of  great  service.^  Still  more  valuable  was  the  work 
of  reorganising   the   coinage   which   he    carried   through, 

S*°  Spirito,  see  *Brief  to  Laur.  de  Anguillara,  dat.  3  ist  Octob.,  1 504.  *Lib. 
brev.  22,  f.  202.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

*  Reumont,  III.,  2,  48.  Cf.  also  infra,  Chap.  8,  on  the  embellish- 
ment of  the  streets.  We  see  from  the  *Brief  to  Alex,  de  Neronio  famil. 
et  comiss.,  dat.  1505,  Jan.  6,  in  which  he  is  commanded  to  demolish 
the  houses  of  some  turbulent  persons  as  an  example  to  others,  how 
severely  Julius  II.  punished  the  disturbers  of  the  peace.  *Lib.  brev.  22, 
f.  244.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

t  LiJTOLF,  Die  Schweizergarde  zu  Rom,  4  seq.  (Einsiedeln,  1859). 
Cf.  NOVAES,  VI.,    50,  note.      Caspar   Sillinus,  Capitaneus  Elvetiorum 
custodie  palatii  apost.,  received,  pro  suo  et  suorum  salariis,  every  month, 
1 151  due.  63  bol.     Kindly  communicated  to  me  by  Dr.  Gottlob  out  of" 
"■Jntroit.  et  exit,  in  the  Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

%  Bull.,  v.,  533  seq.,  511  seq. ;  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  536.  On  the 
Roman  magistracy  and  Julius  II.,  see  Atti  dei  Lincei,  Scienz.  moral., 
4  Serie,  III.,  169  seq.  ;  X.,  10, 


STORAGE   OF   PROVISIONS   IN   ROME.  227 

correcting  the  discrepancies  between  the  nominal  and  real 
value  of  the  different  kinds  of  money,  and  introducing  into 
the  currency  the  silver  coins,  originally  called  Giiili,  but 
afterwards  known  as  Paoli.  Both  trade  and  the  revenue 
were  immensely  benefited  by  these  operations.*  The 
Jewish  coiners  of  counterfeit  money  were  put  down  by  him 
with  a  strong  hand.f 

The  misrule  in  the  Campagna,  where  the  turbulent  Barons 
and  landowners  made  it  impossible  for  the  farmers  to 
cultivate  their  fields,  repeatedly  caused  a  great  scarcity  of 
corn  in  Rome,  especially  in  the  years  1504  and  1505- 
Julius  II.,  always  careful  that  the  city  should  be  well 
supplied  with  provisions,  at  once  came  energetically  to  the 
rescue.  In  1 504  the  dearth  was  so  great  that  he  had  not 
only  to  apply  to  Ferdinand  of  Spain  for  leave  to  import 
grain  from  Sicily,  but  also  to  obtain  a  similar  permission 
from  the  Kings  of  France  and  England. |  The  purchase- 
able  office  of  agent  for  the  importation  of  grain  was  created 
by  this  Pope.§ 

*  Reumont,  III.,  2,  282.  Cf.  Senarega,  606;  Moroni,  XLVI., 
117;  NovAES,  VI.,  152;  Ranke,  III.,  8*  ed.  6;  Garampi,  App., 
ii\seq.^  230  seq.  In  MiJNTZ,  L' Atelier  monetaire  de  Rome,  12  seq. 
(Paris,  1884),  there  are  interesting  new  documents  relating  to  the  coins 
of  Julius  II.,  and  also  particulars  about  the  celebrated  Caradosso.  See 
also  Jahrb.  der  Preuss.  Kunstsammlungen,  III.,  136  j^^. 

t  Cf.  his  *Brief  to  the  Marquess  of  Mantua,  28th  Dec,  1505,  in  the 
Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua,  on  Jew  coiners  in  the  vicinity  of  Rome. 
Draft  in  *Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  \'^seq.  See  *Brief  Petro  de  Valentibus  legrim 
doctori,  dat.  13th  Nov.,  1505  :  Jewish  coiners  in  Benevento  must  be  pun- 
ished.    *Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  391.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

X  Cf.  *Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  116,  to  King  Ferdinand  of  Spain,  19th  July, 
1504  ;  f.  119  to  the  same,  13th  July,  1504  ;  f.  157^  :  Regi  Francorum, 
13th  Aug.,  1504  {cf  GOTTLOB,  Cam.  Ap.,  222).  The  *Brief  to  the  Con- 
servators of  Rome  in  f.  281,  loth  April,  1505,  Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican,  is  also  worth  noticing. 

§  GOTTLOB,  Cam.  Ap.,  251.     On  Julius  II.'s  operations  in  regard  to 


228  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

The  dangers  which  in  those  days  beset  the  channels  of 
traffic,  whether  by  land  or  sea,  explain  the  anxiety  of  all 
the  Popes  to  promote  tillage  in  the  Campagna,  in  spite  of 
manifold  hindrances,  in  order  to  depend  as  little  as  possible 
on  imports  for  the  necessaries  of  life.  Julius  II.  achieved 
considerable  success  in  this  direction.  Under  him  the 
conditions  of  life  in  the  Campagna  improved  so  much  that 
agricultural  operations  could  be  carried  on  steadily  and 
methodically.  He  found  means  to  prevent  the  passage 
of  large  bodies  of  troops  through  the  country  in  the  neigh- 
bourhood of  Rome,  and  greatly  to  moderate  the  feuds  of 
the  Barons.  Under  those  more  favourable  circumstances, 
the  ordinances  of  Sixtus  IV.  were  revived  with  much 
better  effect,  and  the  amount  of  land  under  cultivation 
increased.  He  also  inflicted  severe  penalties  on  all  land- 
owners who  in  any  way  hindered  the  cultivators  from 
carrying  whatever  grain  they  could  spare  to  the  Roman 
market.* 

The  commencement  of  a  stable  and  uniform  system  of 
administration  in  the  States  of  the  Church  dates  from  the 
reign  of  Julius  II.,  though,  of  course,  it  would  not  bear,  at 
that  early  period,  to  be  judged  in  these  respects  by  a 
modern  standard.-j-  A  Brief  of  22nd  July,  1506,  dealing 
very  severely  with  all  malversations  or  acts  of  oppression 
on  the  part  of  either  secular  or  ecclesiastical  authorities 
within  these  provinces,  and  requiring  all  state  or  communal 

the  corn  trade,  and  on  his  coinage,  see,  in  general,  Pfeiffer-Ruland, 
Pestilentia  in  nummis,  13  seq.  (Tiib.,  1882).  See  also  Laurent. 
Parmenius,  309,  and  RODOCANACHI,  Corporations,  I.,  69,  and,  in 
regard  to  the  Annona,  the  works  cited  in  Vol.  IV.  of  this  work,  426, 
note  *. 

*  Reumont,  III.,  2,  289  ;  HiLLEBRAND,  Italia,  II.,  162.  Cf.  also 
Ardant,  Papes  et  Paysans,  44  (Paris,  1891),  and  Gottlob  in  the  Hist. 
Jahrbuch  (1895),  XVI.,  131  seq. 

t  Gottlob  in  Bruders  Staatslexikon,  III.,  795. 


GOVERNMENT   OF   THE  PAPAL   STATES.  229 

officials  to  submit  their  accounts  annually  to  the  Com- 
missioners ot  the  Roman  Treasury  for  revision,  was  an 
important  step  in  this  direction.* 

Constantly  harassed  as  he  was  by  political  or  ecclesiastical 
anxieties,  Julius  II.  always  found  time  to  attend  to  the 
government  of  his  States.  In  151 1,  in  spite  of  the  war,  and 
in  detestable  weather,  he  went  to  Cervia,  to  see  for  him- 
self how  the  salt  works  there  were  going  on.-j-  Whenever 
he  had  the  power  he  looked  after  the  welfare  of  his  subjects, 
put  down  abuses  and  oppression,  and  did  all  he  could  to 
improve  the  administration.]:  Nothing  escaped  his  notice  ; 
he  issued  enactments  against  thefts  of  wood  and  cattle,  § 
against  the  exactions  of  the  judges,|l  faction  fights,1[  pirates,** 
robbers,-["|-  and  murderers  ;  J  J  he  endeavoured  to  adjust  long 
standing  boundary  disputes  §§  and  promoted  public  works, 

*  Bull.,  v.,  418  ;  see  Gottlob,  Cam.  Ap.,  120  seq.^  145,  170,  on 
other  measures  of  reform. 

t  Sanuto,  XII.,  89,  93. 

X  Cf.  Appendix,  Nos.  55,  59,  66,  68,  69,  70,  71,  *Briefs  of  loth  Dec, 
1506,  and  in  1507,  January  i,  6,  23,  and  27,  February  21  and  24.  Secret 
Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

§  See  *Briefs  of  3rd  and  4th  Dec,  1 506.  *Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  31  and  331D. 
Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

II  See  Appendix,  No.  67. 

IF  Cf.  the  **Brief  to  Ferdinand  of  Spain  concerning  Benevento, 
Bologna,  ist  Feb.,  1507.  *Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  167'=.  Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican. 

**  Cf.  the  *Brief  of  20th  Feb.,  1507,  in  *Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  i88b. 

tt  Cf.  the  *Warrant  against  Alexander  Membrini  de  Corchiano,  dated 
Rome,  22nd  April,  1507.  *Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  280  ;  ibid.,  273^,  a  Warrant, 
dated  Rome,  31st  May,  1507,  against  Augustinus  Symonis  de  Fiano 
notorius  homicida. 

JJ  *Brief  to  "  Joh.  Fehria  de  Ruvere,"  dated  Rome,  loth  Mar.,  1 505. 
*Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  274.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

§§  As,  for  instance,  in  the  Marches  of  Ancona  ;  see  *Brief  to  Thomas, 
Bishop  of  Forli,  Vice-Legate  of  the  Marches,  Rome,  24th  April,  1 504. 
*Lib.  brev.  25,  f  276". 


230  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

such  as  the  building  of  bridges*  and  the  control  and 
utilisation  of  rivers.f 

Like  the  great  mediaeval  Pt)pes,  such  as  Gregory  IX., 
whose  last  Brief  was  written  for  the  protection  of  a  poor 
Polish  peasant,  Julius  II.  was  always  on  the  alert  to  shield 
the  humblest  of  his  subjects  from  oppression.  Thus,  on  the 
7th  January,  1507,  a  time  when  he  was  heavily  burdened 
with  political  cares,  we  find  him  writing  to  the  governor  of 
Cesena  and  Bertinoro :  "  A  citizen  of  Bertinoro  has  com- 
plained to  the  Pope  that  the  Castellan  has  taken  wood  from 
him  and  injured  him  in  other  ways.  Let  the  Castellan  and 
his  abettors  be  punished  without  fail,  and  take  care  that  no 
harm  comes  to  the  complainant."  | 

In  order  to  form  a  just  estimate  of  the  merits  of  Julius 
II.  in  regard  to  the  government  of  the  States  of  the  Church, 
it  is  necessary  to  realise  the  state  of  utter  confusion  in  which 
he  found  these  provinces  when  they  came  into  his  hands. 
It  required  a  man  of  first-rate  powers  to  bring  order  into 
such  a  chaos.  Julius  II.  has  been  justly  Hkened  to  Virgil's 
Neptune  overawing  and  calming  the  turbulent  waves  by 
his  majestic  countenance.  §  He  won  the  devoted  affection 
of  the  whole  population.  He  granted  large  liberties  to  the 
municipalities  in  the  towns.  1|     "  The  Pope,"  says  Guicciar- 

*  Cf.  the  *Brief  for  Nicolaus  Calcaneus  provincie  Marchie  Anconitan. 
Thesaurarius  et  eius  in  officio  successoribus.  Grant  of  250  ducats  for 
the  repairs  of  a  bridge.  Bologna,  30th  Dec,  1 506  (A°  4°).  Lib.  brev.  25, 
f.  1 5.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

t  *Brief  to  the  Mayor  and  Council  of  Spoleto,  dat.  Bologna,  2nd  Jan., 
1 507  :  severe  penalties,  if  within  twenty  days  the  banks  of  the  river  are 
not  in  proper  order.  *Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  81.  (Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.)  On  the  works  for  the  improvement  of  the  water-highway  on 
the  Tiber  and  the  Anio,  see  Albertini,  52. 

X  *Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  86^ 

§  T.  Inghirami  in  Fea,  Notizie,  57, 

II  Ranke,  Papste,  I.,  n,  251,  ed.   6;    Fanti,  Imola,  3   seq.      The 


POPULARITY   OF   THE   POPE.  23 1 

dim', "  took  pains  to  attach  the  people  to  the  representatives 
of  the  Church,  so  that  when  the  oath  of  fealty  was  taken 
at  Bologna,  the  change  was  described  as  a  passing  out  of 
the  state  of  serfdom  under  the  Bentivogli  into  that  of  a 
free  commonwealth,  in  which  the  citizens  had  their  share 
in  the  government,  and  in  the  revenues."  *  In  spite  of 
some  mistakes  which  Julius  made  in  the  selection  of  his 
LegateSjf  the  conditions  of  life  in  the  States  of  the  Church 
were  such,  that  even  such  a  bitter  foe  of  the  temporal 
power  of  the  Papacy  as  Machiavelli  is  forced  to  admit  that 
the  inhabitants  had  no  desire  to  throw  off  its  yoke.| 

Original  of  the  *Bull  of  Julius  II.,  dat.  Rom,  4th  Nov.,  1504,  confirming 
the  privileges  and  liberties  of  the  town  of  Imola,  is  to  be  found  in  the 
Arch.  Comunale  of  Imola,  which  is  rich  in  interesting  documents. 

*  GUICCIARDINI,  VII.,  c.  i;  IX.,  c.  5;  DoLLiNGER,  Kirche  und 
Kirchen,  530. 

+  For  further  particulars,  see  infra,  303  seq. 

X  Principe,  c  l.l ;  DOLLINGER,  loc.  cit.^  5^1. 


CHAPTER  TI. 

Difficulties  in  the  position  of  Julius  II.  on  his  Accession. 
— Fall  and  Death  of  Caesar  Borgia. — Disputes  with 
Venice. 

The  position  in  which  the  new  Pope  found  himself  on  his 
accession  was  one  of  singular  difficulty.  Disorder  and 
confusion  prevailed  on  all  sides  and  he  had  no  money 
and  no  army  worth  mentioning.* 

In  the  Patrimony  itself  the  state  of  things  was  so  bad 
that  on  the  8th  of  November,  1503,  Julius  was  obliged  to 
issue  a  severe  edict  against  Barons  and  municipalities  who 
did  not  put  down  robbery  and  brigandage  in  their  districts. 
The  States  of  the  Church  were  hardly  anything  more  than 
a  name.-j-  On  all  sides  the  towns  were  in  revolt,  and  the 
old  dynasties  which  had  been  driven  out  by  the  Borgia  were 
returning.  In  the  South,  war  was  raging  between  the 
Spaniards  and  the  French,  and  in  the  North,  where  their 
policy  had  completely  upset  the  relations  hitherto  sub- 
sisting, Venice  was  taking  advantage  of  the  confusion  to 
enlarge  her  borders  at  the  expense  of  the  possessions  of 
the  Church. 

Even  during  the  short  reign  of  the  gentle  Pius  III.,  she  had 

*  Gottlob,  Cam.  Ap.,  78.  The  Pope  did  not  get  possession  of  the 
Castle  of  St.  Angelo  until  the  12th  November,  1503  ;  see  Dispacci  di  A. 
Giustinian,  II.,  292.  Costabili  in  a  ^Despatch  of  Nov.  1 1,  1 503,  mentions 
the  joy  of  Julius  when  this  was  achieved.     State  Archives,  Modena. 

t  Reumont,  III.,  2,  10  ;  9^  Fea,  Notizie,  56  seq.  The  Edict  of  8th 
Nov.,  1 503,  is  in  Bull.,  V.,  399-400 


VENICE   AND   THE   ROMAGNA.  233 

already  contrived,  partly  by  force  and  partly  by  diplomacy, 
to  obtain  possession  of  Bertinoro,  Fano,  Montefior,  and 
other  places.  It  soon  became  evident  that  the  Venetians 
were  forming  connections  in  all  quarters  throughout  the 
Romagna,  with  a  view  to  getting  the  whole  province  under 
their  power.*  If  they  succeeded  in  this,  Caesar  would 
soon  be  a  landless  Duke.  Already  things  had  gone  so 
far  that  the  only  castles  still  remaining  in  the  hands  of 
his  captains  were  those  of  Forli,  Cesena,  Forlimpopoli,  and 
Bertinoro.  Everything  depended  on  the  attitude  taken 
up  by  the  new  Pope,  whose  coronation  took  place  with 
great  pomp  on  28th  November,  I503.-I- 

*  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  94. 

t  Ghivizano  relates  in  two  ^Letters  of  3rd  November,  1503,  that  the 
preparations  for  the  Coronation  were  begun  during  the  public  rejoicings 
over  the  election.  The  same  authority  tells  us  that  the  Pope  had  given 
orders  that  it  was  to  cost  from  fifty  to  sixty  thousand  ducats,  (Gonzaga 
Archives,  Mantua.)  See  also  Appendix,  N.  18,  *Desp.  of  Nov.  20.  On 
the  Coronation  itself,  the  day  for  which  had  been  fixed  in  accordance  with 
the  horoscope  taken  by  the  astrologers  (Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II., 
295)1  cf-  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  307-309  ;  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian, 
XL,  312-314;  Arch.  St.  Napolit.,  I.,  75  ;  *Acta  Consist,  in  Consistorial 
Archives  of  the  Vatican  ;  *Report  of  F.  Guidiccioni,  Rome,  26th  Nov., 
1 503  ;  *Report  of  CostabiH  of  the  same  date,  which  describes  the  illu- 
minations (State  Archives,  Modena)  ;  and  a  characteristic  *Letter  from 
Ghivizano,  dated  Rome,  26th  Nov.,  1 503.  "  Hogi  se  fata  la  Coronatione 
del  Papa  in  S.  Petro  a  la  quale  non  he  intervenuto  molta  gente,  etc.  Dat. 
ha  tre  hore  senza  mangare  e  senza  here  in  modo  mai  piu  volio  vedere 
Coronatione  di  Papa."  A  *Report,  dated  27th  Nov.,  from  the  same  Envoy 
repeats  that  there  were  not  many  people  present  at  the  ceremony  (pro- 
bably on  account  of  the  previous  rainy  weather  and  the  uncertain  state  of 
affairs),  and  adds  :  *Zobia  se  fark  omnino  la  processione  a  Laterano  la 
quale  se  stima  deba  esser  pomposissima.  (Both  ^Reports  in  Gonzaga 
Archives,  Mantua.)  On  the  inscriptions  put  up  in  Rome  at  that  time, 
see  Chroniken  der  Deutschen  Stadte,  XXIII.,  103.  Most  of  the  letters  in 
which  Julius  II.  announced  the  fact  of  his  election  are  dated  from  the 
day  of  Coronation,  e.g.^  those  to  Florence  (copy  in  the  State  Archives, 


234  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Unfortunately,  Julius  II.  was  greatly  indebted  to  Caesar 
Borgia  and  Cardinal  d'Amboise,  as  well  as  to  the  Republic 
of  Venice,  for  his  election,  and  this  still  further  complicated 
the  situation.*  He  satisfied  the  claims  of  d'Amboise  by 
bestowing  on  him,  in  spite  of  the  opposition  of  many  of 
the  Cardinals  and  of  the  citizens  of  Rome,-]-  the  legations  of 
Avignon,  Venaissin,  and  France,  J  and  a  Cardinal's  hat  on 
one  of  his  relations,  Francois    Guillaume  de  Clermont.  § 

Florence),  to  F.  Gonzaga  (original  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua),  to 
the  King  of  Poland  (Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1503,  n.  12),  to  Fabrizio 
Colonna  (original  in  the  Colonna  Archives,  Rome,  Bull,  n,  58).  He  had 
already  on  the  6th  of  November  sent  a  notice  of  his  election  to  the  Doge 
of  Venice,  and  thanked  him  for  the  support  that  the  Venetian  Envoys 
had  given  him.  See  Sanuto,  V.,  292-293.  He  also  sent  a  notice  of 
his  election  to  the  Genoese,  as  his  countrymen,  before  the  Coronation. 
See  Atti  d.  Soc.  Savon.,  I.,  438.  The  Fossesso,  which  was  separated 
from  the  Coronation  for  the  first  time  by  Julius  II.,  did  not  take 
place  until  Dec.  5.  Cf.  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  312  Si'g'.;  Dispacci 
di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  329  seg'.;  Cancellieri,  Possessi,  56  seg'.;  and 
NOVAES,  VI.,  135.  See  also  the  *Letter  of  Don  Ferrante  d'Este 
to  the  Duke  of  Ferrara,  dated  Rome,  6th  Dec,  1 503.  State  Archives, 
Modena. 

*  Brosch,  105. 

t  Costabili  relates  in  a  *Report  dated  27th  Nov.,  1 503,  that  Cardinal 
S.  Giorgio  had  instigated  the  Conservators  to  go  to  the  Pope  and  entreat 
him  not  to  give  the  French  legation  to  d'Amboise  :  per  lo  interesse  di 
questa  cita.  S.  S'a  ha  risposto  essere  necessario  compiacere  Rohano  et 
postponere  tutti  li  altri  rispecti  a  questi  tempi  che  la  S'^  Sua  ha  bisogno 
del  Re  di  Francia  per  li  portamenti  di  Venetiani  li  quali  quando  Sua 
S'a  Hon  fusse  adiutata  dal  Re  di  PVancia  se  insegnoregiariano  di  tutta 
la  Romagna  el  che  la  non  ge  vole  comportare.  (State  Archives,  Modena.) 
F.  Guidiccioni,  in  a  *Document  of  27th  Nov.,  1503,  also  states  that 
d'Amboise  was  certain  to  be  made  French  Legate.  Gonzaga  Archives, 
Mantua. 

t  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1503,  n.  23.  Cf.  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II., 
276,  281,  and  Fantoni,  351. 

§  Cf.  supra,  p.  219 


JULIUS   II.   AND   C^SAR   BORGIA.  235 

The  Pope  hoped  by  this  means  to  secure  France  as  a 
reserve  force  against  Venice.* 

To  shake  off  his  connection  with  Csesar  Borgia  was, 
however,  a  more  difficult  matter.  Heartily  as  Julius  II. 
hated  the  Borgia,  he  did  not  wish  openly  to  break  through 
tlie  engagements  he  had  made  with  the  Duke,  nor  did  it 
seem  wise  "  to  throw  away,  unused,  so  valuable  a  tool  as 
Ccesar  could  be,  while  the  Holy  See  in  the  Romagna  was 
in  such  danger  from  her  powerful  neighbour,  that  the  most 
unsatisfactory  Vicariate  would  be  preferable  to  the  present 
situation."f 

At  first  it  seemed  as  if  the  Pope  had  quite  forgiven  the 
Borgia.  "  Cardinal  Borgia,"  writes  Costabili  on  November 
1st,  "  has  been  given  the  Penitentiary.  I  understand,  too, 
that  one  of  the  Rovere  family  is  to  marry  Cardinal  Borgia's 
sister.  All  the  other  Spanish  Cardinals  have  been  rewarded, 
and  they  seem  for  the  moment  to  stand  in  higher  favour 
than  ever."|  In  his  relations  with  Caesar  himself  the  Pope 
maintained  considerable  reserve,  but  in  such  a  way  as  not 
to  deprive  him  of  all  hope,  while  still  allowing  him  to  feel 
that  his  position  was  precarious.  § 

The  first  and  greatest  danger  to  the  States  of  the  Church 

*  See  below,  note  %.  See  Burchardi  Diarium,  III.,  317,  and  *Re- 
port  of  Costabili,  8th  Dec,  1 503,  on  the  departure  of  d'Amboise.  State 
Archives,  Modena. 

t  Reumont,  III.,  2,  12. 

X  *Despatch  of  Costabili,  ist  Nov.,  1503.  (State  Archives,  Modena.) 
Cf.  also  Ghivizano's  Report  of  3rd  Nov.,  1503.  Gonzaga  Archives, 
Mantua. 

§  See  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  283  ;  cf.  286  seq.,  and  the  *Report 
of  Costabili,  dated  Rome,  6th  Nov.,  1 506  :  El  Duca  spera  multo  in  N.  S. 
per  haverlo  multo  servito  ne  la  assumptione  del  ponteficato  de  S.  B°e. 
(State  Archives,  Modena.)  On  the  17th  Nov.,  Julius  II.  addressed  a 
*Brief  in  favour  of  Jofre  Borgia  to  F.  Maria  deUa  Rovere.  State 
Archives,  Florence. 


236  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

came,  not  from  Caesar,  but  from  Venice,  which  was  trying 
to  obtain  the  same  command  of  the  Italian  sea-board  as 
she  had  of  that  of  Dalmatia.  The  gravity  of  this  danger 
was  brought  forcibly  home  to  Julius  II.  by  the  tidings  of 
Venetian  intrigues  which  reached  him  on  7th  November, 
1503,  through  his  old  friend  Gabriele  da  Fano.  He  at  once 
sent  a  strong  remonstrance  to  the  Republic,  and  declared 
that  he  had  no  intention  of  permitting  territories  which 
were  properly  in  immediate  subjection  to  the  Church,  and 
had  now  returned  to  their  obedience,  to  be  filched  away  from 
her.  On  the  loth  of  November  Machiavelli  reports  that 
Julius  had  said  to  Cardinal  Soderini,  "  I  always  have  been, 
and  still  am,  a  friend  of  the  Venetians,  as  long  as  they  do 
not  hanker  after  things  to  which  they  have  no  right.  But 
if  they  persist  in  robbing  the  Church  of  her  property,  I 
shall  take  the  strongest  measures,  and  call  upon  all  the 
Princes  of  Christendom  to  help  me  in  resisting  them."  On 
the  following  day,  he  spoke  in  a  very  friendly  manner  to 
the  Venetian  Ambassador  and  expressed  great  affection 
for  the  Republic,  but  at  the  same  time  repeated  that  he 
was  determined  to  restore  the  dominion  of  the  Church  in 
the  Romagna.* 

On  the  1 8th  of  November  the  Venetian  Ambassador, 
Antonio  Giustinian,  had  a  long  conversation  with  the  Pope, 
chiefly  about  the  Romagna.  Julius,  in  language  which  left 
nothing  to  be  desired  in  the  way  of  directness,  announced 
his  firm  determination  to  restore  to  the  Church  all  the 
possessions  there  which  she  had  lost ;  they  must  not  remain 
under  the  power  of  Caesar  or  of  any  one  else,  and  it  was 
for  this  purpose  that  he  had  on  the  previous  day  sent  the 

*  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  285-289  seq. ;  Machiavelli, 
Letter  XL,  dat.  loth  Nov.,  1503.  The  Ferrajese  Envoy  and  d'Amboise 
stirred  up  the  Pope  against  Venice.  Cf.  Costabili's  *Letter  partly  in 
■cypher,  dat.  Rome,  8th  Nov.,  1503.     State  Archives,  Modena. 


THE   ROMAGNA   TO   BE   RECOVERED.  237 

Bishop  of  TivoH,  Angelo  Leonini,  as  Nuncio,  to  Venice. 
*'  Words  fail  me,"  adds  Giustinian,  "  to  describe  with  what 
resolution  he  spoke,  and  that  not  once,  but  again  and 
again."  Nevertheless  the  Ambassador  did  not  give  up  the 
attempt  to  change  the  Pope's  mind.  It  was  not  from  the 
Church,  he  represented,  but  from  an  enemy  of  hers,  and  a 
bitter  enemy  of  the  Pope  and  of  the  Republic,  that  Venice 
had  taken  these  places.  His  Holiness  must  see  that  it 
would  be  impossible  for  the  Church  herself  to  administer 
this  territory  ;  he  would  have  to  give  it  to  some  one  else. 
This  would  be  hard  upon  Venice,  and  she  had  not  deserved 
to  be  so  treated.  When  the  Pope  was  a  Cardinal,  he  had 
himself  encouraged  the  Republic  to  undertake  an  expedition 
against  the  Romagna.  Julius  replied  that  this  was  against 
Caesar  Borgia,  not  against  the  Church ;  with  all  his  love 
for  the  Republic,  he  said,  he  could  not  in  honour  consent 
to  any  curtailment  of  the  States  of  the  Church.* 

However  strongly  the  Pope  might  feel  about  the 
Venetian  encroachments,  in  his  present  helpless  state,  as 
Machiavelli  well  knew,  he  could  only  temporise.f  This 
was  equally  the  case  in  regard  to  Caesar  Borgia.  He  had 
sent  the  promised  Briefs  in  the  Duke's  favour  to  the  cities 
of  the  Romagna,  but  with  a  secret  hope  that  they  might 
arrive  too  late,J  and   did   not  bestow  on  him  the  coveted 

*  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  297,  300.  Cf.  *Report  of  the 
Mantuan  Envoy,  Rome,  19th  Nov.,  1503.  (Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.) 
On  the  Nunciature  of  Leonini,  cf.  *Exitus,  535,  f  151^  :  20th  Nov.,  1503. 
Solvit  due.  100  auri  de  camera  domino  Angelo  episcopo  Tiburtino 
nuntio  apud  Venetos  pro  eius  porvisione  unius  mensis  incep.  19  prae- 
sentis  mensis  Novembris.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

t  Letters  from  Machiavelli,  21st  Nov.  and  ist  Dec,  1503.  Cf. 
Heidenheimer,  Machiavelli,  18  seq.,  32  ;  Alvisi,  App.,  95  ;  Yriarte, 
Cesar  Borgia,  II.,  196. 

X  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  281  ;  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  99  .y^^.  ; 
TOMMASINI,  Machiavelli,  I.,  292. 


238  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

post  of  Standard-bearer  to  the  Church.  This  disappoint- 
ment, together  with  the  bad  news  from  the  Romagna,  seem 
to  have  produced  an  extraordinary  effect  on  Csesar  ;  he  was 
completely  altered.  The  Envoys  found  him  utterly  dis- 
pirited and  broken.  Machiavelli  describes  his  vexation 
and  despair.  The  Pope  told  the  Venetian  Ambassador 
that  he  had  become  so  changeable  and  incomprehensible, 
that  he  could  not  say  anything  for  certain  about  him. 
Cardinal  Soderini  found  him  irresolute,  petulant,  and 
feeble ;  he  thought  he  had  been  stunned  by  the  disasters  of 
the  last  few  weeks.  The  Spanish  Cardinal  Iloris,  said  the 
Duke,  seemed  to  him  to  have  lost  his  senses ;  he  did  not 
know  what  he  wanted,  and  was  confused  and  uncertain. 
In  Rome  all  sorts  of  strange  reports  were  current  about 
him.  Every  one  agreed  that  he  was  ruined  ;  "not  from  any 
faithlessness  on  the  part  of  the  Pope,  but  by  the  force  of 
circumstances  which  no  one  could  alter."  Julius  would  not 
do  anything  against  Caesar  while  the  fate  of  the  Romagna 
was  still  pending,  but  he  was  determined,  when  he  could, 
to  place  these  territories  under  the  immediate  government 
of  the  Church.*  Csesar  held  frequent  conversations  with 
Machiavelli,  the  representative  of  Florence  in  Rome;  and 
on  the  1 8th  of  November  he  despatched  an  Envoy  to  that 
city,  offering  his  services  as  a  captain,  and  begging  them  to 
supply  him  with  troops  for  the  conquest  of  the  Romagna ; 
he  would  come  to  Leghorn  to  complete  the  negotiations.! 
With  the  permission  of  the  Pope,  who  was  only  too  glad  to 
get  him  out  of  Rome,  he  started  for  that  place  on  the  19th 
November.    He  embarked  before  day-break,  "  to  the  joy  of 

*  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  281,  297  ;  Letters  from  Machia- 
velli, 14th  and  i8th  Nov.,  1503.  Cf.  Reumont  in  the  Allg.  Ztg.  (1877), 
No.  277,  Suppl.,  and  in  the  Gott.  Gel.  Anz.  (1876),  II.,  844. 

t  Sanuto,  v.,  482,  497-499.  Cf.  HEroENHElMER,  Machiavelli, 
22  seq. 


ARREST  OF  C^SAR  BORGIA.  239 

every  one,"  in  a  boat  on  the  Tiber,  and  went  down  to 
Ostia,  whence  he  intended  to  sail.* 

Shortly  afterwards  the  news  arrived  that  another  im- 
portant town,  Faenza,  had  surrendered  to  the  Venetian  5. 
Julius  II.,  already  unable  to  sleep  from  anxiety,  became 
violently  excited,  and  sent  the  Cardinals  Soderini  and 
Remolino  to  Cassar,  to  require  him  to  deliver  up  all  the 
other  strong  places  in  the  Romagna  to  him,  so  as  to 
prevent  any  more  from  falling  into  the  hands  of  the 
Venetians.     This  the  Duke  resolutely  refused  to  do.f 

Meanwhile,  tidings  reached  Rome  that  Venice  had  also 
got  possession  of  Rimini  by  an  agreement  with  Malatesta.J 
Evidently  the  only  chance  of  saving  what  remained  lay  in 
prompt  action.  The  Venetians  declared  that  their  only 
object  was  to  get  rid  of  their  enemy  Caesar.§  On  this  the 
Pope  resolved  to  compel  him  to  relinquish  the  forts  of  Forli 
and  Cesena.  He  sent  orders  that  the  Duke  should  be 
arrested  and  brought  to  Rome.]]  Caesar  appeared  utterly 
overwhelmed ;  the  Mantuan  Envoy  reports  that  he  wept.H 

*  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  302.  Cf.  Appendix,  N.  18,  Ghivi- 
zano's  Report,  20th  Nov.,  1503.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

t  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  305,  307-308  ;  Letter  from  Machia- 
velli,  22nd  Nov.,  1503.  Cf.  HEmENHElMER,  Machiavelli,  24  seq.  In 
a  *Brief  of  the  8th  Dec,  1503,  the  Pope  himself  directly  addressed 
Caesar,  commanding  him  to  deliver  up  the  fortresses.  I  found  this 
Brief  in  *Lib.  brev.  22,  i.  2.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

X  ROMANIN,  v.,  165  ;  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  310. 

§  Reumont,  III.,  2,  14,  says  :  "With  every  fortress  that  Csesar  lost 
in  the  Romagna  the  necessity  for  the  Pope's  intervention  became  more 
and  more  imperative."  Even  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  99,  says  that  the 
Pope  was  obliged  to  proceed  against  Csesar. 

II  Cf.  Alvisi,  433  seq.^  and  Ghivizano's  Report,  Rome,  24th  Nov., 
1503.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

IT  Cf  Cataneo's  Despatches,  22nd  Dec,  1503.  (Gonzaga  Archives, 
Mantua.)  Luzio,  Mantova  e  Urbino,  152,  where,  however,  the  con- 
cluding words  after  "  Torre  Borgia  fatta  da  so  patre  Alexandre  :  qual  h 


240  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

He  "had  every  reason  to  expect  a  dungeon  and  death, 
and  in  fact  Guidobaldi  of  Urbino  and  Giovanni  Giordano 
Orsini  advised  the  Pope  to  put  an  end  to  him"* 

Julius  II.  scorned  these  counsels.  Csesar  was  treated 
with  the  greatest  consideration,  and  apartments  in  the 
Vatican  were  assigned  to  him.  The  Pope  hoped  by  this 
means  to  obtain  the  peaceable  surrender  of  the  keys  from 
his  governors.  Caesar  apparently  sent  the  requisite  orders, 
but,  according  to  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  this  was  only  a 
feint.  Though  there  is  no  proof  of  it,  it  seems  very  pro- 
bable that  he  was  endeavouring  to  hoodwink  the  Pope, 
who  had  broken  his  promises  to  him.  At  any  rate  the 
governor  of  Cesena  declared  that  he  would  not  take  any 
orders  from  Csesar  while  he  was  a  prisoner,  and  detained 
the  Papal  messengers.  When  Julius  heard  this,  his  first 
thought  was  to  throw  the  Duke  into  one  of  the  dungeons 
in  St.  Angelo,  but  yielding  to  the  Duke's  urgent  entreaties, 
he  sent  him  to  the  Torre  Borgia  instead.  All  his  property, 
however,  was  confiscated.  A  contemporary  remarks  that 
the  Divine  justice,  no  doubt,  decreed  that  he  should  be 
imprisoned  in  that  very  chamber  which  he  had  stained  with 
the  blood  of  his  brother-in-law  Alfonso.  All  the  adherents 
of  the  Borgia  were  filled  with  terror,  expecting  that  the 
vials  of  the  Pope's  wrath  would  be  poured  out  upon  them 
also.  The  Cardinals  Remolino  and  Lodovico  Borgia  fled 
from  Rome  on  the  night  of  the  20th  December.f 

in  lo  palatio  a  la  parte  retro  confine  a  le  camare  dove  dorme  el  Papa," 
are  wanting. 

*  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  24,  ed.  2;  Costabili's  *Report.  State  Archives, 
Modena. 

t  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  II.,  336-337 ;  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian, 
II.,  318,  327-328,  332-333>  340  seq.,  350-351  ;  Burchardi  Diarium, 
III.,  320-321  ;  ROSSBACH,  69,  'J']  ;  ALVISI,  442  seq.  ;  GOTTLOB,  Cam. 
Ap.,  229,  note.  See  also  Cataneo's*Despatch,  22nd  Dec,  1503.  (Gonzaga 
Archives,   Mantua.)      On   the  flight  of  the  Cardinals  and  the    Pope's 


AGREEMENT   BETWEEN    THE    POPE   AND   C^SAR.    24I 

The  succeeding  weeks  were  occupied  with  negotiations 
between  JuHus  and  Caesar,  which,  owing  to  the  well-founded 
distrust  which  prevailed  between  the  two  parties,  were  ex- 
tremely complicated.  In  the  beginning  of  the  new  year  the 
Pope  began  to  think  of  possessing  himself  by  force  of  Cesena.* 

On  the  3rd  of  December,  1503,  Machiavelli  had  said 
that  Caesar  was  nearing  the  edge  of  the  precipice.  At  this 
juncture  an  event  occurred  which  at  once  immensely  raised 
the  prestige  of  the  Duke's  friends,  the  Spanish  Cardinals. 
On  the  28th  of  December,  Gonsalvo  de  Cordova  obtained 
a  complete  victory  over  the  French  at  Garigliano.  On  the 
first  day  of  the  new  year  Gaeta  capitulated,  and  on  the  4th 
the  news  reached  Rome.-f     The  French  had  lost  Naples. 

Under  the  influence  of  this  occurrence,  on  the  29th  of 
January,  1504,  the  negotiations  between  Julius  and  Caesar 
were  at  last  brought  to  a  conclusion.  It  was  agreed  that 
the  Duke  was  to  surrender  the  Castles  of  Cesena,  Forli,  and 
Bertinoro  to  the  Pope  within  forty  days.  When  this  condi- 
tion was  fulfilled,  he  would  be  free,  but  till  then  was  to  re- 
main at  Ostia  under  the  surveillance  of  Cardinal  Carvajal ; 
if  he  failed  to  carry  out  his  agreement  he  was  to  be  im- 
prisoned for  life.J 

annoyance  at  it  (maxime  de  Borja),  cf.  F.  Guidiccioni's  *Letter,  dat. 
Rome,  22nd  Dec,  1503.  (State  Archives,  Modena.)  On  the  2nd  Jan., 
1 504,  Juhus  addressed  a  very  friendly  *Brief  to  Cardinal  Borgia,  telling 
him  to  return  to  Rome  as  soon  as  possible.  *Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  5b.  Secret 
Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

*  Cf.  the  Brief  of  5th  Jan.,  1504,  in  Alvisi,  App.,  n.  100  which, 
however,  has  been  already  printed  in  GOZZADINI,  XCIII.),  and  the 
*Brief  to  Joh.  Sforzia  de  Aragonia.  Lib.  brev.  29,  f.  17b  (Secret  Archives 
of  the  Vatican),  which  is  undated,  but  evidently,  both  in  time  and  pur- 
port, belongs  to  this  episode. 

t  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  326. 

X  Ibid..,  in.,  331  ;  ROSSBACH,  72  seq.  ;  Yriarte,  Cesar  Borgia,  II. 
204  seq. 

VOL.  VI.  R 


242  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

On  the  evening  of  the  i6th  February,  while  the  Carnival 
was  being  celebrated  in  Rome,*  Caesar  Borgia,  accompanied 
by  only  a  few  servants,  embarked  in  a  boat  from  the  Ripa 
Grande,  and  was  taken  down  to  Ostia.-f 

The  negotiations  for  the  surrender  of  Cesena,  Bertinoro^ 
and  Forli  caused  the  Pope  a  great  deal  of  vexation,  and 
the  Archbishop  of  Ragusa,  Giovanni  di  Sirolo,  was  sent  to 
the  Romagna  to  hasten  their  conclusion.^ 

The  governors  of  Cesena  and  Bertinoro  at  first  insisted 
on  Caesar's  liberation.  The  Pope  in  a  rage  drove  the 
bearers  of  this  message  out  of  his  room  ;  in  the  end,  how- 

*  See  BuRCHARDi  Diarium,  III.,  382.  Marius  Bonaventura  reports, 
ex  urbe,  14th  Jan.,  1504  :  *La  S'^  di  N.  S.  ha  decreto  se  faccia  delle 
representatione  et  ludi  nostri  solid.  Petrus  Gentilis  writes  from  Rome,. 
1 8th  Feb.,  1504  :  *Hogi  sono  corso  li  palii.  These  ^Letters  are  in  the 
Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

t  Alvisi,  446,  in  his  otherwise  extremely  careful  work,  wrongly 
gives  the  14th  as  the  date  ;  Yriarte,  I.,  205,  the  13th  Feb.  The  latter 
date  is  taken  from  Burchardi  Diarium,  III.,  332.  It  is  clear,  however, 
from  the  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  437-438,  440,  that  Caesar  bade  the 
Pope  farewell  in  the  Castle  of  St.  Angelo  on  the  14th,  and  left  Rome  on 
the  night  of  the  1 6lh.  This  practically  agrees  with  Cataneo's  statement 
that  Caesar  was  brought  to  the  Castle  on  the  1 3th,  and  taken  to  Ostia 
on  the  15th.  (^Letters  of  13th  and  15th  Feb.,  1504,  in  the  Gonzaga 
Archives,  Mantua.)  I  am  induced  to  decide  against  Rossbach,  74,  and 
in  favour  of  the  i6th,  by  GlUSTlNlAN,  440,  and  the  *Brief  of  Julius  11. 
to  Card.  Carvajal  of  i6th  Feb.,  1504,  desiring  him,  dux  Valentinus  ita 
facere  custodiri,  so  that  it  may  be  possible  either  to  set  him  free  or  to 
remove  him,  in  accordance  with  the  provisions  of  the  agreement  con- 
tained in  a  certain  Bull.  *Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  19.  (Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.)  Carvajal  left  Rome  on  the  17th  Feb.  :  *Heri  si  partite  el 
card't  de  S.  Croce  e  ando  ad  Ostia,  dove  prima  fa  conducto  Valentino  et 
mo  non  e  in  mane  del  papa  ma  del  dicto  cardinale.  G.  L.  Cataneo's 
^Report,  dat.  Rome,  18th  Feb.,  1504.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

t  Cf.  SiGiSMONDO  de'  Conti,  II.,  338.  There  are  a  large  number 
of  *Briefs  in  the  Lib.  brev.  22  (Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican),  referring 
to  the  Mission  of  G.  di  Sirolo.     Cf.  Appendix,  Nos.  19,  20,  21,  24,  25. 


CvESAR   BORGIA   ARRESTED   IN    NAPLES.  245 

ever,  he  found  himself  compelled  to  come  to  terms  with 
them.  On  the  loth  of  March,  1504,  he  concluded  a  new- 
agreement  with  the  Duke,  by  which  Csesar  bound  himself 
to  obtain  the  evacuation  of  Bertinoro  and  Cesena,  and 
made  himself  responsible  for  a  sum  of  money  which  the 
Castellan  of  Forli  demanded  as  the  price  of  his  surrender. 
As  soon  as  these  conditions  had  been  fulfilled,  and  Bertinoro 
and  Cesena  delivered  over  to  the  Pope,  Carvajal  allowed 
his  prisoner  to  depart,  on  the  19th  of  April,  without  asking 
any  further  leave  from  Rome.* 

Caesar  had  already  provided  himself  with  a  letter  of  safe 
conduct  from  Gonsalvo  de  Cordova,  and  hastened  to  Naples, 
to  the  house  of  his  uncle,  Lodovico  Borgia.  Here  it  soon 
became  evident  that  he  had  by  no  means  relinquished 
all  hope  of  eventually  recovering  his  possessions  in  the 
Romasfna.  Gonsalvo  received  the  Duke  with  all  due  marks 
of  respect,  apparently  entered  into  his  plans,  and  even 
agreed  to  furnish  him  with  troops.  In  this  way  he 
managed  to  keep  his  dangerous  guest  quiet  until  he  had 
received  instructions  from  King  Ferdinand.  Then,  how- 
ever, he  acted  promptly.  On  the  27th  of  May,  1 504,  Caesar 
was  arrested  and  taken  to  the  Castle  of  Ischia.  The 
Spaniards  announced  that  they  intended  to  keep  this  fire- 
brand in  their  own  hands.  So  says  the  Spanish  historian 
Zurita,  and  Guicciardini  corroborates  him.f  According  to 
Jovius,  Julius  II.  had  advised  that  Caesar  should  be  im- 
prisoned to  prevent  him  from  invading  the  Romagna.^ 
This  is  confirmed  by  documents  in  the  Secret  Archives  of 

*  Alvisi,  447-448  ;  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  103-104  ;  Dispacci  di  A. 
Giustinian,  III.,  68-69,  5^9  5  Rossbach,  75  ;  Yriarte,  Cesar  Borgia, 
II.,  207-208.     See  also  the  *Brief  to  Carvajal,  Appendix,  N.  23. 

t  Zurita,  V.,  c.  72  ;  Guicciardini,  VI.  Cf.  Tommasini,  Machia- 
velli,  I.,  295,  and  Hofler,  Bastarddynastien,  58. 

X  Jovius,  Vitae,  I.,  274. 


244  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

the  Vatican.  There  is  a  letter  there  from  Julius  II.  to  Gon- 
salvo  de  Cordova  dated  nth  May,  1504,  in  which  the  Pope 
requests  the  Spanish  General  to  keep  guard  over  the  Duke, 
so  as  to  hinder  him  from  undertaking  anything  against  the 
Church,  and  to  induce  him  to  give  up  the  Castle  of  Forli.* 
On  the  same  day  Julius  wrote  a  letter  to  Ferdinand  and 
Isabella  complaining  of  the  conduct  of  both  Carvajal  and 
Gonsalvo ;  the  former  had  let  Caesar  go  free  on  his  own 
responsibility  and  not  in  the  manner  agreed,  the  latter  was 
allowing  him  to  hatch  plots  against  the  Church  in  Naples. 
He  accused  the  Duke  himself  of  having  sent  money  to  the 
Castellan  of  Forli  and  encouraged  him  to  go  on  holding 
the  castle.  This  remarkable  letter  closes  with  a  request 
that  their  majesties  would  not  permit  a  person  who  was 
under  their  control  to  disturb  the  peace  of  the  Church.j- 
In  regard  to  Forli  the  appeal  to  Spain  was  effectual,  and 
Julius  II.  at  last  obtained  possession  of  the  fortress.^ 
Gonsalvo  promised  Caesar  that  he  would  release  him  if  he 
would  order  the  Castellan  to  hand  it  over  to  the  Pope's 
Lieutenant.  Upon  this  the  Duke  yielded,  and  on  the  loth 
of  August  the  castle  was  given  up.  But  now  it  was 
Gonsalvo's  turn  to  break  his  word  ;  and  instead  of  re- 
gaining his  liberty,  Caesar  was  sent  off  to  Spain  on  the 
20th  of  August.§ 

*  See  Appendix,  N.  28,  the  *Brief  of  nth  May,  1504,  in  the  Secret 
Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

t  This  Brief,  of  which  unfortunately  we  only  possess  a  fragment,  was 
first  published  by  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1504,  n.  12.  The  copy  in  Alvisi, 
App.,  102,  is  not  quite  accurate. 

X  On  the  8th  of  June,  1 504,  the  Pope  wrote  to  Carolus  marchio  Finarii 
elect.  Theban.,  that  Caesar  was  a  prisoner  and  that  L.  de  Ordelafifi  had 
lately  died  in  Ravenna,  quibus  ex  rebus  speramus  nos  arcem  Forlivii  per 
pactionem  facilius  recepturos.  *Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  76.  (Secret  Archives 
of  the  Vatican.)     Cf.  also  Appendix,  N.  26,  31. 

§  Alvisi,  450-451.    C/.  Gottlob,  Cam.  Ap.,  230,  note. 


DEATH   OF   C^SAR   BORGIA.  245 

From  this  moment  Caesar  Borgia  vanishes  from  the  stage 
of  Italian  history,  and  by  the  beginning  of  May  most 
people  in  Rome  seemed  to  have  quite  forgotten  him.* 
Ferdinand  sent  him  first  to  the  Castle  of  Chinchilla  f  and 
then  to  that  of  Medina  del  Campo.  Here  the  former  lord 
of  Rome,  bereft  by  his  political  shipwreck  of  all  his  luxuries, 
was  kept  in  close  confinement  in  a  room  in  the  tower,  with 
only  one  servant.  No  one  was  allowed  to  see  him.  "  All 
his  plans  had  failed,  nothing  remained  of  all  that  he  had 
sought  to  achieve  by  his  crimes,  his  cruelties,  and  his 
murders."  In  this  miserable  life  his  only  occupation  con- 
sisted in  flying  his  falcons,  his  only  joy  was  to  see  them 
catch  a  helpless  bird  and  tear  it  to  pieces  with  their  talons.J 
In  spite  of  the  strict  guard  kept  over  him,  on  the  25th 
of  October,  1506,  Caesar  succeeded  in  escaping  from  his 
prison  and  fled  to  his  brother-in-law,  Jean  d'Albret,  King 
of  Navarre.  Julius  II.  was  greatly  disturbed  when  the 
news  reached  him,  for  he  was  well  aware  that  the  Duke 
still  had  many  adherents  in  the  Romagna.§  But  his 
anxiety  was  not  destined  to  last  long,  for  on  the  12th  May, 
1 507,  Caesar  died  "  honourably,  a  soldier's  death  "  at  Viana 
in  Navarre,  fighting  for  his  brother-in-law  against  the  Count 
of  Lerin.     He  was  only  in   his  thirty-second  year.  ||     The 

*  Cf.  *Report  of  G.  L.  Cataneo,  dat.  Rome,  3rd  May,  1504  (Dil 
Valentino  non  si  parla  piu).     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

t  Not,  as  Gregorovius,  Lucrezia  Borgia,  274-275,  and  Hofler, 
Katastrophe,  17,  have  it,  to  Seville. 

X  See  Hofler,  Katastrophe,  23.  Cf.  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  III., 
207,  268,  410-41 1. 

§  ZURITA,  VII.,  c.  23. 

II  Reumont,  III.,  2,  16;  Alvisi,  453-454.  We  have  the  fullest 
accounts  of  his  residence  in  Spain  and  his  death  in  Yriarte, 
II.,  215-277;  cf.  also  328  seq.  Cf.  Hofler,  Bastarddynastien,  61 
seq..,  and  Katastrophe,  23  seq.  There  is  a  picture  of  the  castle  in 
Yriarte  and  in  Graus,  Rundreise  in  Spanien  (Wiirzburg,  1894);   see 


246  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

greatness  of  the  House  of  Borgia  had  come  and  gone  Hke 
a  meteor  flashing  across  the  sky.* 

There  is  no  contemporaneous  account  of  the  effect  pro- 
duced on  Julius  II.  by  the  tidings  of  Caesar's  death  ;-|-  but 
he  must  have  rejoiced  to  find  himself  relieved  of  an  enemy 
who  still  could  have  been  extremely  dangerous  to  him  and 
to  the  Church.  Caesar  had  many  faithful  adherents  in  the 
cities  of  the  Romagna,  and  he  could  never  have  felt  quite 
secure  there  while  the  Duke  still  lived. 

It  is  a  curious  coincidence  that  the  man  who,  if  Alexander 
VI.  had  lived,  would  have  done  the  most  of  all  others 
to  secularise  the  States  of  the  Church,  and  with  whom 
Machiavelli  in  consequence  was  secretly  in  full  sympathy ,| 
should,  unintentionally  of  course,  have  been  the  founder  of 
the  revival  there  of  the  Papal  authority.  Most  people  are 
familiar  with  Machiavelli's  opinion  on  this  point  expressed 
in  the  Prince,  where  he  says :  "  The  Duke  by  no  means 
wished  to  exalt  the  Church.  Nevertheless  all  that  he  did 
tended  to  her  advantage ;  when  he  was  gone,  his  heritage 
fell  to  her."  That  this  was  the  case  was  no  doubt  greatly 
due  to  the  character  of  Julius  II.,  who  never  for  a  moment 
lost  sight  of  the  one  object  that  he  had  proposed  to  himself, 
and  made  use  of  every  means  that  came  to  hand  for  attain- 
ing it.     When,  on  the  nth  August,  1504,  the  news  of  the 

also  J.  M.  QUADRADO,  Recuerdos  y  Bellezas  de  Espana.  Barcelona, 
1861. 

*  HOFLER,  Katastrophe,  27. 

t  The  Ferrarese  Envoy  Costabili  only  says  in  a  *Despatch,  dated 
Rome,  4th  Apr.,  1 507,  that  the  news  of  his  death  was  held  to  be  certain. 
(State  Archives,  Modena.)  On  the  arrival  of  the  tidings  at  Venice  and 
Ferrara,  and  how  Lucrezia  took  them,  cf.  Sanuto,  VII.,  47,  50,  51,  54, 
56.  These  authentic  accounts  relegate  "  Lucrezia's  tears "  (see  F. 
Gregorovius,  Lucrezia  Borgia,  293)  to  the  region  of  the  author's 
fertile  imagination. 

J  See  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  p.  167. 


RELATIONS   OF   VENICE   AND  JULIUS   IL  247 

surrender  of  Forli  at  last  arrived,  and  he  was  asked  whether 
orders  were  to  be  given  for  the  public  demonstrations  of 
joy  usual  on  such  occasions,  his  reply  was  characteristic. 
"  No,"  answered  the  Pope,  so  the  Florentine  Ambassador 
reports,  "we  will  put  off  all  rejoicings  until  we  have  much 
more  important  and  difficult  successes  to  celebrate." 
"  Julius  meant,"  the  Ambassador  adds,  "  the  reconquest  of 
Faenza  and  Rimini."*  The  relations  between  Venice  and 
Rome  had  from  month  to  month  been  growing  more  and 
more  unsatisfactory  owing  to  the  obstinate  refusal  of  the 
Republic  to  give  back  these  cities  which  had  been  taken  by 
force  from  the  Church.  The  conduct  of  the  Venetians  on 
this  occasion  shews  that  the  invariably  astute  diplomacy  of 
the  Republic  was  utterly  at  fault  in  regard  to  the  character 
of  Julius  II. 

As  Cardinal  Giullano  della  Rovere  had  always  been 
friendly  to  Venice,  and  the  Venetians,  out  of  dread  of  a 
French  Pope,  had  heartily  supported  him  in  the  Conclave, 
they  fully  believed  that  he  would  in  return  leave  them  a 
free  hand  in  the  Romagna.  This  of  course  was  an  utter 
delusion,  as  from  the  first  Julius  was  firmly  determined 
not  to  permit  the  Church  to  be  despoiled  of  a  single 
rood  of  her  possessions.-j-     He   never  for  a  moment  gave 

*  G.  Acciaiuoli's  Despatch  of  13th  August,  1504,  in  Dispacci  di 
A.  Giustinian,  III.,  198,  n.  i.  In  a  *BuU  of  the  30th  August,  1504, 
JuHus  II.  deprived  Caesar  of  the  governorship  of  the  Citadel  of 
Bologna  and  restored  it  to  the  municipality  of  the  city.  State  Archives, 
Bologna. 

t  Ulmann,  Maximilian,  II.,  139,  characterises  the  proceedings  of 
Venice  as  a  plundering  of  the  Church.  In  regard  to  the  question  of 
legal  rights  the  term  is  perfectly  correct.  {Cf.  also  Reumont  in  Gott. 
Gel.  Anz.,  1876,  II.,  846.)  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  105  seq.^  evades  this 
point ;  he  takes  the  Venetian  side  from  the  first,  relying  for  the  most 
part  entirely  on  Venetian  authorities  and  suppressing  almost  all  others. 
The  annexations  of  Venice  are  always  justifiable  in  his  eyes  ;  even  when 


248  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

• 
the  Republic  any  reason  for  doubting  that  he  meant  to 
insist  on  the  restoration  of  the  stolen  property  of  the 
Church  in  the  Romagna.*  Nevertheless  the  Venetians 
thought  they  could  do  as  they  liked  and  need  not  be 
afraid  of  a  Pope  who  had  neither  money  nor  troops.-j- 
"  Ambition  and  greed  of  land,"  says  the  contemporaneous 
Venetian  chronicler  Priuli,  "  were  so  strong  in  them  that 
they  were  resolved  at  any  cost  to  make  themselves  masters 
of  the  whole  of  the  Romagna."  |  When,  on  the  22nd  of 
November,  1503,  the  news  of  the  investment  of  Faenza 
arrived  in  Rome,  the  Pope  at  once  sent  for  the  Venetian 
Ambassador  and  repeated  that  all  the  Church's  possessions 
must  come  back  to  her,  and  that  he  hoped  the  Republic 
would  not 'carry  matters  to  extremes.  §  Three  days  later 
the  report  was  current  in  Rome  that  Rimini  also  was  in 
the  hands  of  the  Venetians.  The  Ambassador  was  in 
despair,  for  his  government  had  given  stringent  orders  that 
this  should  be  kept  secret.    "  Thus,  even  before  his  Corona- 

the  Venetians  repudiated  their  sworn  agreement  with  the  Pope,  he  sees 
in  this  proceeding  only  "  a  vindication  of  that  prescriptive  right  of  self- 
preservation  without  the  exercise  of  which  it  is  impossible  to  conceive  any 
independent  State  being  able  to  maintain  its  existence"  (p.  193).  On  the 
other  hand,  where  Julius  II.  is  concerned,  he  becomes  the  strictest  of 
moralists.  The  ordinary  evasions  of  diplomacy,  even  things  which  are 
understood  as  such  by  all  diplomatists,  are  stigmatised  as  criminal 
duplicity  when  they  come  from  JuHus  II.  Even  his  friends  (see  Allg. 
Zeitung.,  1880,  N.  83,  Suppl.)  blame  the  violence  of  his  language.  On 
the  spirit  of  partisanship  displayed  by  Brosch,  see  Vol.  IV.  of  this  work, 
p.  322,  n.  +,  354,  n.  *.     See  also  Arch.  d.  Soc.  Rom.,  III.,  177. 

*  Cf.  supra,  p.  235,  and  Reumont  in  the  Gott.  Gel.  Anz.  (1876), 
II.,  845. 

t  Cf.  Fr.  Guidizonus'  *Report,  dated  Rome,  25th  Nov.,  1503.  State 
Archives,  Modena. 

J  Reumont,  III.,  2,  12  ;  Romanin,  V.,  164. 

§  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  305-306.  On  the  23rd  Giustinian 
reports  fresh  complaints  from  the  Pope,  loc.  cit.,  306. 


THE   VENETIANS   IN    THE   ROMAGNA.  249 

tion,  Julius  saw  two  of  the  jewels  with  which  he  desired 
to  adorn  the  Tiara  snatched  away  by  the  Signoria,"  * 
On  the  28th  November,  at  a  meeting  of  the  Cardinals,  he 
complained  of  the  proceedings  of  the  Venetians ;  on  the 
29th  a  Consistory  was  held.  The  Venetian  Ambassador 
reports  that  "  the  Pope  spoke  very  angrily  of  the  Republic 
in  Consistory ;  he  had  previously  told  Cardinal  Cornaro 
that  he  meant  to  appeal  to  France  and  Spain  for  the 
protection  of  the  interests  of  the  Holy  See."-]-  In  a  con- 
versation with  the  Venetian  Ambassador  on  the  30th  of 
November  Julius  spoke  more  gently,  and  dwelt  on  the 
friendly  feelings  he  entertained  towards  the  Republic ;  I 
for  he  was  well  aware  of  his  weakness,  and  for  that  reason 
most  anxious  for  a  close  union  with  France. §  On  the 
loth  of  December  he  again  remonstrated  with  the 
Ambassador  against  the  proceedings  of  Venice  in  the 
Romagna.  li  The  tidings  which  came  from  Angelo 
Leonini,  Bishop  of  TivoH,  who  had  been  sent  to  Venice^ 
only  increased  the  Pope's  displeasure.  Leonini  was  com- 
missioned to  demand  the  withdrawal  of  all  the  Venetian 
troops  from  the  Romagna  and  that  the  Republic  should 
desist  from  any  further  conquests  from  Caesar  Borgia,  as 
the  whole  of  his  possessions  belonged  to  the  Church. 
"  The  answer  was  far  from  satisfactory.  Venice  promised 
to  make  no  further  acquisitions  in  the  Romagna,  but  she 
would    not   withdraw   her   troops."     She   was   determined 

*  BrOSCH,  Julius  II.,  106,  and  supra,  p.  239. 

t  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  318.  Brosch  abstains  from  men- 
tioning this  ;  if  he  had  done  so,  he  could  not  have  expressed  himself  as 
so  much  scandalised  at  what  the  Pope  said  to  Machiavelli. 

X  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  321.  I  am  far  from  wishing  to 
defend  the  Pope's  conduct  in  every  respect ;  but  Brosch  distorts  the 
words  of  Julius  in  a  most  unfair  manner. 

§  Cf.  supra,  p.  234  seg'. 

II  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  335. 


250  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

to  keep  Faenza,  Rimini,  and  all  the  other  places  on  which 
she  had  so  unjustly  laid  hands.* 

The  Venetian  Envoy  Giustinian  said  everything  he 
could  to  induce  the  Pope  to  see  things  in  a  different 
light.  He  proposed  that  the  conquered  territories  should 
be  bestowed  on  Venice  as  a  fief  To  this  Julius  II.  replied 
that  the  governorships  in  the  Romagna  had  always  been 
bestowed  on  captains  who  had  deserved  well  of  the 
Church,  but  not  upon  powerful  chiefs  ;  it  was  impossible 
to  put  Venice  in  this  position,  she  would  never  let  them 
out  of  her  hands  again.  He  would  rather  not  be  Pope 
at  all  than  endure  such  a  curtailment  of  the  States  of  the 
Church  at~  the  very  beginning  of  his  reign.  Giustinian 
made  no  answer  to  these  sort  of  expressions,  talked 
vaguely  of  false  reports  circulated  by  the  enemies  of  the 
Republic,  and  avoided  as  far  as  possible  all  direct  nego- 
tiations in  regard  to  the  evacuation  of  the  conquered 
territories.  He  seems  to  have  been  possessed  with  the 
delusion  that  Venice  had  no  cause  to  apprehend  any 
serious  resistance  from  the  new  Pope ;  ■]-  and  not  in  the 
least  to  have  understood  the  character  of  the  man  with 
whom  he  was  dealing.  He  was  incapable  of  conceiving 
a  Pope  devoid  of  selfish  ambition  and  really  aiming  at 
nothing  but  the  exaltation  of  the  Church,  and  had  no 
suspicion  of  the  dangers  of  the  game  that  his  Govern- 
ment was  playing.|     On  the  contrary,  he  flattered  himself 

*  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  108;  the  Brief  of  17th  Nov.,  1503,  on 
Leonini's  mission  is  in  Sanuto,  V.,  480.  Leonini  {cf.  Marini,  I., 
303  seq)  was  considered  by  his  contemporaries  an  excellent  diplomatist. 
Machiavelli  calls  him  a  truly  right-minded  prelate,  a  prudent  man 
and  experienced  in  state  affairs.  None  of  this  appears  in  Brosch's 
account. 

t  Balan,  v.,  435. 

X  ToMMASiNi,  Machiavelli,  I.,  290. 


REMONSTRANCES   OP'   JULIUS   II.  2$ I 

that  he  could  easily  succeed  in  mollifying  Julius  II.  with 
fair  words  and  promises. 

The  Ferrarese  Agent  understood  the  situation  far  better. 
*'The  Pope,"  he  reports  on  the  25th  November,  1503,  "is 
far  from  satisfied  with  the  way  things  are  going  in  the 
Romagna;  where  he  had  hoped  to  see  light,  he  finds 
nothing  but  darkness.  I  know  his  nature  and  am  well 
assured  that  he  will  not  submit  patiently  to  this  ;  though 
other  people  imagine  that  they  will  be  able  to  deceive 
him."  *  Giustinian  ought  to  have  been  able  to  see  how 
impossible  this  would  prove.  When,  on  the  23rd  of 
December,  he  again  repeated  his  tale  of  slanderous  reports 
set  afloat  by  the  enemies  of  Venice,  the  Pope  replied, 
*'  My  Lord  Ambassador,  you  always  bring  me  fair  words, 
and  the  Signoria  foul  deeds.  We  have  accurate  informa- 
tion of  all  that  goes  on  in  the  Romagna,  and  know  how, 
one  after  another,  places  are  being  occupied  that  have 
hitherto  always  been  under  the  direct  rule  of  the 
Church ;  to-day  we  have  heard  that  the  Venetians  are 
endeavouring  to  induce  Cesena  to  submit  to  them,  and 
have  occupied  Sant'  Arcangelo.  Can  we  be  expected 
to  look  quietly  on  when  those  who  ought  to  be  sup- 
porting us  ,  are  daily  robbing  us  ?  At  present  we 
have  not  the  means  to  defend  ourselves  by  arms  and 
can  only  remonstrate ;  but  we  mean  to  turn  to  the 
Christian  Powers  for  aid,  and  trust  that  God  will  pro- 
tect us." 

The  Ambassador  had  no  answer  to  give  except  that 
this  was  unnecessary ;  if  Cesena  wished  to  put  herself 
under  Venetian  rule  it  was  because  the  government  of 
the  Republic  was  just  and  beneficent.  As  to  Sant' 
Arcangelo,  the  Pope  had  nothing  to  complain  of,  as  that 

*  F.  Guidizonus'  **Report,  dated  Rome,  2Sth  Nov.,  1503.  (State 
Archives,  Modena.)     Cf.  also  Appendix,  N.  17. 


252  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

place  was  already  in  the  hands  of  Venice  before  Leonini 
was  sent.* 

Three  days  later  Julius  II.  again  sent  for  Giustinian 
and  said  to  him :  "  We  have  still  to  complain  of  the 
state  of  things  in  the  Romagna.  Letters  arrive  daily 
telling  us  of  the  intrigues  of  your  agents  in  Cesena, 
Imola,  and  other  places.  Throughout  the  whole  country- 
efforts  are  being  made  to  seduce  the  people  from  their 
obedience  to  the  Church  and  persuade  them  to  place 
themselves  under  the  rule  of  Venice.  Our  worst  enemy 
could  not  do  more  against  us.  When  we  ascended  the 
Chair  of  S.  Peter  we  did  so  with  the  full  purpose  of  being 
a  father  to  all  as  a  Pope  should  be,  and  observing  strict 
neutrality ;  but  we  now  fear  that  we  shall  find  ourselves 
forced  to  entertain  other  thoughts." 

The  Ambassador  tried  to  make  the  usual  excuses  for 
his  government,  but  could  not  conceal  in  his  report  the 
fact  that  they  were  not  accepted.  It  ends  with  the  words : 
"Julius  II.  requires  that  all  the  places  that  have  been 
occupied  in  the  Romagna  shall  be  restored  to  him. 
Possibly  events  might  occur  which  would  induce  him 
and  the  Sacred  College  to  leave  Faenza  and  Rimini  in 
the  hands  of  the  Republic,  but  he  will  not  consent  to 
anything  until  all  the  other  places  are  evacuated." -f- 

*  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  339,  347,  356-357.  Cf.  Reumont,^ 
III.,  2, 13,  and  G.  Castellani,  La  dominazione  veneta  a  Sant'  Arcangelo. 
Sant'  Arcangelo,  1895.  (Only  100  copies  of  the  work  have  been 
printed.) 

t  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  360-363.  Even  after  all  this, 
Giustinian  still  flattered  himself  that  success  was  possible.  On  New 
Year's  Day  he  presented  himself  before  the  Pope  and  requested 
"with  courteous  importunity"  that  as  on  that  day  it  was  customary 
to  make  presents  to  one's  friends,  Julius  would  gratify  the  Republic,, 
which  was  so  devoted  to  him,  with  the  gift  of  Rimini  and  Faenza. 
The  Pope   smiled,  but  answered  that  Venice  must. begin  by  restoring 


THE   POPE'S   LETTER   TO   THE   DOGE.  253 

On  the  loth  January,  1504,  Julius  addressed  the  follow- 
ing letter  to  the  Doge  : — 

"  To  our  beloved  Son, — Greeting  and  apostolical  benediction  : 
Through  Our  Reverend  brother  the  Bishop  of  TivoU  and  by 
various  letters  We  have  announced  to  your  Serene  Highness  Our 
firm  resolution  to  demand  the  restoration  of  Our  cities  of  Faenza 
and  Rimini,  together  with  their  castles  and  the  other  places  which 
your  Highness  has  occupied  since  the  death  of  Alexander  VI.; 
and  We  have  repeatedly  made  the  same  demand  to  your 
Ambassador.  Therefore  We  cannot  sufficiently  express  Our 
surprise  at  not  having  yet  received  any  definite  answer.  Since 
We  now  learn  from  the  aforenamed  Bishop,  Our  Envoy,  that  the 
subject  is  again  to  be  laid  before  the  Senate,  it  will  be  plain,  We 
trust,  to  your  own  wisdom  and  that  of  the  assembly,  that  it  is  not 
permissible  to  keep  unlawful  possession  of  that  which  belongs 
to  the  Holy  Roman  Church,  and  that  We  are  bound  to  use  all 
the  means  in  Our  power  to  obtain  its  restoration.  From  the 
beginning  of  Our  reign  it  has  been  Our  steadfast  purpose  to 
restore  to  the  Church  the  territories  of  which  she  has  been 
despoiled  ;  to  this  We  hold  fast,  and  ever  shall  do  so.  If  your 
Highness's  Ambassador  or  any  one  else  has  written  anything 
different  to  your  Highness  or  held  out  any  hopes  that  We  shall 
come  to  an  agreement  on  this  point,  he  has  written  falsely; 
for  it  is  Our  duty  not  to  permit  such  an  injury  to  be  done  to 
God  and  to  the  dignity  of  Our  position.  We  have  always  enter- 
tained a  just  love  and  esteem  for  your  Highness  and  the  Re- 
public, in  the  belief  that,  especially  during  Our  Pontificate,  you 
would  prove  the  defenders  and  not  the  usurpers  of  the  rights  of 
the  Church.  Now,  since  nothing  shall  induce  Us  to  desist  from 
demanding  the  restitution  of  these  places,  since  God  and  our 
Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  who  has  committed  the  care  of  His  Church 
to  Us,  and  Our  office,  impose  this  duty  upon  Us,  We  declare  that 
any  one  who  writes  or  thinks  otherwise,  writes  and  thinks  falsely. 
Therefore  We  again  admonish  your  Highness  with  all  paternal 
kindness,  and  command  you  in  the  name  of  the  Lord  to  do  freely 
and  at  once  that  which  in  justice  you  are  bound  to  do."* 

Tossignano ;   after  that,   negotiations    in    regard  to   the   other    places 
might  be  entered  upon.     See  Bembus,  258  ;  Havemann,  II.,  215. 
*  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1 504,  n.  i  ;  Sanuto,  V.,  733,  cf.  732,  736. 


254  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

All  was  in  vain  ;  the  Venetians  were  determined  not 
to  part  with  their  spoils.  Secure  of  their  strength,  they 
mocked  at  the  Pope's  threats.*  Sooner  or  later,  the  battle 
would  have  to  be  fought  out. 

In  Venice  there  were  stormy  passages  of  arms  between 
the  Papal  Nuncio  Leonini  and  the  Doge.  The  French 
Envoy  vainly  tried  to  act  as  a  peacemaker.f  In  Rome 
Giustinian  continued  with  his  "  courteous  importunity "  to 
press  the  Pope  to  bestow  the  unjustly  gotten  lands  on 
Venice  as  a  vicariate.  The  exasperation  of  Julius  at  this 
persistence  increased  from  day  to  day,  especially  as  he  now 
thought  he  perceived  that  the  Republic  was  beginning  to 
aim  at  Forli  also.  J  The  Doge  in  conversation  with 
Leonini  denied  this,  but  admitted  that  the  Venetians 
would  never  give  up  the  territories  that  they  had  once 
occupied.  They  would  sacrifice  everything  they  had, 
sooner  than  do  this.§  In  Rome,  Julius  said  plainly  to  the 
Venetian  Ambassador  that  he  would  never  rest  till  he 
got  back  his  lost  possessions,  and  as  he  was  not  strong 
enough  to  conquer  them  himself,  he  would  seek  for  help 
abroad.  II 

He  kept  his  word  ;  but  he  was  well  aware  that,  beset  and 
unarmed  as  he  was,  there  was  great  risk  of  finding  himself 

*  Cf.  *Cataneo's  Report,  dated  Rome,  25th  Jan.,  1504,  which  says  : 
*Venetiani  persisteno  in  tenire  che  hanno  in  Romagna  ne  stimano  chel 
papa  tenti  tirarli  ruina  a  le  spalle  cum  ajuto  de  questi  Re  che  sperano 
uscirne  cum  honore.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

t  Sanuto,  v.,  805,  835,  847.  Cf.  in  Appendix,  N.  22,  the  *Brief  to 
Leonini,  of  the  7th  Feb.,  1504.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

\  Cf.  in  Appendix,  N.  23,  the  *Brief  to  Carvajal,  of  the  28th  Feb.,  1 504. 
(Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican.)  Cf.  also  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian, 
III.,  427  seq.,  and  *Cataneo's  Report  of  the  Sth  Feb.,  1504.  Gonzaga 
Archives,  Mantua. 

§  Sanuto,  V.,  847  ;  De  Leva,  I.,  83. 

II  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  415. 


THE    POPE   SEEKS   HELP   AGAINST   VENICE.  255 

under  galling  bondage  to  the  allies  whom  he  might  call  in 
against  Venice*  vStill  he  trusted  to  be  able  to  find  means 
to  escape,  and  he  was  convinced  that  there  was  no  other 
way  open.  A  State  so  powerful  and  unscrupulous  as 
Venice  could  only  be  mastered  by  a  coalition ;  and  from 
the  Spring  of  1504  the  Pope  directed  all  his  efforts  to 
bringing  this  about.  He  addressed  himself  to  Louis  XII. 
of  France,f  and  to  Maximilian,  as  King  of  the  Romans 
and  Protector  of  the  Church.  On  the  2nd  of  March;  1504, 
Mariano  Bartolini  of  Perugia  was  sent  to  the  German  Court. 
The  Nuncio  was  charged  to  urge  Maximilian  to  help  the 
Church  against  Venice,  because  it  would  be  impossible 
for  the  Pope  to  refrain  any  longer  from  laying  the  Re- 
public under  ban.J  The  instructions  of  the  Nuncio  in 
France,  Carlo  de  Carretto,  Marquess  of  Finale,  dated  14th 
May,  1504,  were  of  wider  scope.  He  was  to  propose  the 
formation  of  a  League  between  France,  Maximilian,  and 
the  Pope.§     In  the  early  spring  Cosimo  de'  Pazzi,  Bishop 

*  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  III.,  66  ;  cf.  277. 

t  Cf.  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1 504,  n.  4. 

X  *Insiructio  data  dil,  filio  magistro  Mariano  de  Bartolinis  de  Perusio 
causarum  palatii  apost.  auditor!  nuntio  et  oratori  nostro.  Dat.  Rom.  die 
22  Febr.,  1504,  not  only  in  CI.  IX.,  Cod.  42  in  the  S.  Mark's  Library, 
Venice  (see  Valentinelli,  V.,  231,  and  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  112,  326), 
but  also  in  Cod.  Urb.,  864,  in  Ottob.  1888  in  the  Vatican  Library;  in 
Cod.  LV.  in  the  Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican  (^  PlEPER,  Nuntiaturen, 
45);  and  in  Cod.  818  in  the  Corsini  Library,  Rome.  Concerning  the 
mission  of  M.  de  Bartolinis,  cf.  Nuntiaturenberichte,  I.,  XLI.  seq.;  PiEPER, 
loc.  cit.;  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1504,  n.  5-6,  24  ;  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian, 
HI.,  178  ;  and  in  Appendix,  N.  27,  32,  33,  34,  35,  36,  -^T,  39,  the  *Briefs 
of  the  26th  April,  loth  and  28th  July,  12th  Sept.,  ist,  17th  and  28th  Oct., 
1 504.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

§  Brosch  in  Sybels  Hist.  Zeitschr.,  XXXVII.,  302  seq..,  and  Julius  II., 
112,  326,  was  the  first  to  make  use  of  Carretto's  *Instruction,  dat.  Rom., 
14th  May,  1504,  out  of  the  Codex  in  the  Lib.  S.  Marco.  The  Instruc- 
tion is  also  in    Cod.  LV.  of  the  Varia  Polit.   (Secret  Archives  of  the 


256  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

of  Arezzo,  had  been  sent  to  Spain,  but  his  mission  proved 
a  total  failure.*  Ferdinand  refused  to  receive  him  on  the 
ground  that  he  was  a  Florentine  and  a  partisan  of  France, 
so  that  Julius  II.  was  obliged  to  recall  him  in  November, 
I504.-|-  How  unfriendly  Ferdinand's  sentiments  towards 
the  Holy  See  were  at  that  time,  may  be  gathered  from  the 
fact  that  in  the  Spring  of  1504  his  representative  in  Rome 
made  overtures  to  the  Venetians  for  an  alliance  with 
them. J  Julius  II.  also  endeavoured  to  induce  Hungary  to 
put  a  strong  pressure  upon  Venice  to  constrain  her  to  give 
up  her  booty.  § 

Vatican) ;  in  Cod.  Urb.,  864,  Ottob.  2515;  and  in  Cod.  1 1 5  in  the  Capilupi 
Library,  Mantua.  Cf.  in  Appendix,  N.  29,  30,  the  *Brief  to  Queen  Anna, 
of  the  1 6th  May,  and  to  Louis  XIL  of  the  8th  June,  1 504.  In  a  *Brief  to 
C.  de  Carretto,  which  unfortunately  bears  no  date,  we  find  :  *Ages  etiam 
gratias  dil.  fil.  nostro  G[eorgio]  card^i  Rothomagen.;  ejus  auctoritate  et 
benignitate  a  rege  et  regina  christianissimis  omnia  faciHus  impetrabis  in 
quo  nos  praecipuam  fiduciam  gerimus  cognita  eius  in  nos  et  ad  honorem 
s.  apost.  sedis  tarn  prona  constantique  voluntate.  *Lib.  brev.  29,  f.  23. 
Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

*  See  *Instructiones  dat.  r.  episc.  Aretino  praelato  domestico  ad  regem 
et  reginam  Hispaniae,  dat.  Rome,  1 4th  March,  1 504  ;  cf.  the  Codex  in 
the  Library  of  S.  Mark  (Brosch,  JuUus  II.,  113  seq..,  326) ;  Cod.  8 1 8  in  the 
Corsini  Library,  Varia  Poht.,  55,  f.  420-433,  in  the  Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican  ;  and  Cod.  Urb.  864  in  the  Vatican  Library.  A  *Brief  from 
Julius  II.  to  Louis  XII.,  dat.  20th  Feb.,  1504,  is  extant,  in  which  Cosmus 
episcopus  Aretinus  quem  in  Hispanias  cum  pot.  legati  de  latere  mittimus 
is  recommended  to  him  as  a  trustworthy  man  :  *Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  26b. 
In  the  same  place,  f.  39!^,  a  similar  *Brief  to  Florence,  dated  Rome,  22nd 
March,  1 504.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

t  In  regard  to  C.  de'  Pazzi's  mission,  Brosch,  113,  is  so  confused 
that  he  expresses  a  doubt  as  to  whether  he  ever  actually  started.  Here, 
as  elsewhere,  he  has  overlooked  Rayn ALDUS,  ad  an.  1504,  n.  21.  The 
*Brief  recalling  him,  29th  Nov.,  1504,  is  in  Appendix,  N.  41.  Secret 
Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

X  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  III.,  505  seq. 

§  See  Theiner,  Mon.  Ung.,  II.,  558-560,  and  in  Appendix,  N.  32, 


VENICE   BEGINS   TO   GIVE   WAY.  2$/ 

Meanwhile  the  missions  to  France  and  Germany  had 
produced  some  good  results.  On  the  22nd  of  September, 
1504,  an  agreement  directed  against  Venice  had  been 
concluded  at  Blois.*  In  Rome,  in  November,  it  began  to 
be  said  that  the  Pope  was  going  to  pronounce  the  censures 
of  the  Church  on  the  Republic.  It  was  quite  true  that 
he  was  fully  determined  to  cut  the  claws  of  the  Lion  of 
S.  Mark.  On  the  4th  of  December  he  put  a  long  list  of 
grievances  before  the  Consistory,  and  remarked  that,  all 
else  having  failed,  it  would  be  necessary  to  have  recourse 
to  spiritual  weapons.-j- 

Alarmed  by  the  clouds  which  now  seemed  gathering  on 
all  sides,  the  Venetians  at  last  made  up  their  minds  to  give 
way  to  a  certain  extent.  Hitherto  they  had  "  put  off  the 
Pope  with  words  and  nothing  else,"  now  they  endeavoured 
to  conciliate  him  "  by  some  concessions  which  were  of  real 
practical  value."  J  Meanwhile  it  was  of  great  advantage 
to  them  to  have  been  able  to  procrastinate  for  so  long. 
The  agreement  of  Blois  broke  down,  Spain  was  not  to  be 
won,  Maximilian  and  Louis  XII.  fell  out  with  each  other. 
In  March  1505,  Venice  at  last  withdrew  from  several  of 
the   towns   in    the  Romagna,  amongst  others    from  Sant' 

37,  42,  the  *Briefs  to  Leonini  of  the  loth  July,  17th  Oct.,  and  17th  Dec, 
1 504.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

*  HUBER,  III.,  359  ;  Ulmann,  II.,  155  seq.;  HOFLER,  A.  del  Burgo, 
457  seq. 

t  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  III.,  324.  Cf.  Costabili's  *Despatch  of 
the  2 1  St  Aug.,  1504  (State  Archives,  Modena),  from  which  there  is  an  ex- 
tract in  Balan,  v.,  437  ;  the  Briefs  in  Theiner,  Mon.  Ung.,  II.,  560-562; 
and  in  Appendix,  N.  42,  the  *Brief  to  Leonini  of  17th  Dec,  1504. 
On  the  29th  Dec  Julius  addressed  a  *Letter  to  the  Ant.  Surianus 
elect.  Venetiar.,  in  which  he  complained  bitterly  of  the  retention  of  Faenza 
and  Rimini  by  the  Republic.  *Lib.  brev.  22;  f  248.  Secret  Archives 
of  the  Vatican. 

X  BROSCH,  Julius  II.,  118. 

VOL.  VI.  S 


2'SS  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Arcangelo,  Montefior,  Savignano,  Tossignano,  and  Porto 
Cesenatico.  The  Duke  of  Urbino  assured  the  Doge  that 
the  Repubhc  would  not  be  troubled  any  more  about 
Rimini  and  Faenza.  "  No  doubt,"  says  Sigismondo  de' 
Conti,  "  the  Duke  wished  that  this  might  be  the  case ;  but 
he  had  little  knowledge  of  the  mind  of  Julius  II.,  who  had 
no  notion  of  relinquishing  these  places."* 

In  recompense  for  this  act  of  partial  restitution  effected 
in  March  1505,  Julius  now  consented  to  receive  the  Vene- 
tian profession  of  obedience,  but  still  only  under  protest 
(May  5,  iS05).f  Hieronymus  Donatus  pronounced  the 
oration ;  it  was  full  of  the  usual  extravagant  phrases  of 
the  new  style  of  oratory.  The  Pope's  reply  was  brief  and 
formal4 

The  Venetian  Envoys  for  the  profession  of  obedience 
entered  Rome  with  great  pomp,  and  flattered  themselves 
with  the  hope  of  persuading  Julius  to  consent  to  the 
retention  by  the  Republic  of  Faenza  and  Rimini,  but 
had  not  the  smallest  success.  "The  Pope,"  writes  the 
Florentine  Envoy,  "  holds  fast  to  his  rights,  and  every  one 
thinks  that  he  will  get  them."  § 

*  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  II.,  340.  Cf.  Brosch,  loc.  cit.^  and  Tom- 
MASINI,  Machiavelli,  I.,  326. 

t  Cf.  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Bollinger,  366.  Burchardi  Diarium, 
III.,  387  ;  and  Sanuto,  VI.,  160  seq.,  164,  165  seq.,  168,  171  seq. 

X  Giov.  Acciaiuoli's  Report  in  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  III.,  542. 
Donato's  speech  was  printed  at  the  time  and  is  to  be  found  with  other 
obedience-orations  addressed  to  Julius  II.  in  an  old  large  octavo  volume 
in  the  Library  of  S.  Peter  at  Salzburg :  Hieronymi  doctoris  apud  Julium 
II.  P.  M.  oratoris  Veneti  in  obedientia  oratio.     8  folio  leaves. 

§  G.  Acciaiuoli's  Despatch  of  the  15th  May,  1505,  loc.  cit.^  543. 


CHAPTER   III. 

Subjugation  of   Perugia  and  Bologna. — Downfall  of  the 
Baglioni  and  Bentivogll 

Julius  II.  was  not  so  absorbed  in  his  efforts  to  regain 
all  that  the  Church  had  lost  in  the  Romagna,  as  to  ne- 
glect the  equally  necessary  work  of  restoring  her  authority 
in  the  other  provinces.  In  February  1504,  he  induced  the 
Florentines  to  give  back  Citerna  in  the  neighbourhood 
of  Perugia,  which  they  had  occupied  after  the  death  of 
Alexander  VI.*  In  May  of  the  following  year  Anticoli 
and  Nepi  were  again  brought  under  the  immediate  rule  of 
the  Church ;  f  but  the  reconstitution  of  the  States  of  the 
Church  could  never  be  solidly  effected  until  the  feuds 
of  the  Roman  Barons  were  appeased  and  their  adhesion 
secured.  This  Julius  II.  sought  to  accomplish  by  means 
of  family  alliances. 

In  November  1505,  Niccol6  della  Rovere,  a  younger 
brother  of  Galeotto,  was  married   to   Laura    Orsini,  only 

*  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  II.,  299. 

t  *Julius  II.  Joh.  Antonio  de  Forlivio,  provinciae  Campaniae  et 
Maritimae  gubematori,  dat.  29th  Maii,  1505.  Rediit  ad  immediatam 
curam  oppidum  Anticoli ;  in  consequence  of  the  death  of  Card.  A.  Sforza, 
he  is  to  occupy  Anticoli  in  the  Cardinal's  name.  Similar  orders  in 
regard  to  Nepi  were  given  on  the  same  day  to  Alexander  of  Neronibus. 
*Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  295.  (Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican.)  In  Sept.  1505, 
Julius  II.  made  a  short  tour  through  the  States  of  the  Church,  in  the 
course  of  which  he  visited  Nepi;  see  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III., 
400  seq.^  and  *Acta  Consist.,  f.  18.  Consistorial  Archives  of  the 
Vatican. 


26o  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

daughter  and  heiress  of  Orso  Orsini  and  GiuHa  Farnese.* 
A  month  later  the  Mantuan  Agent  announces  the  approach- 
ing betrothal  of  Madonna  Felice,  natural  daughter  of 
Cardinal  Giuliano  della  Rovere,  with  the  youthful  Marc- 
antonio  Colonna.-]-  This  project,  however,  as  well  as  some 
others  of  the  same  nature,  was  given  up.|  On  the  24th  of 
May,  1506,  Felice  was  married  to  Giovanni  Giordano,  the 
head  of  the  Orsini  of  Bracciano,  in  the  Vice-Chancellor's 
Palace.§  The  Venetian  Ambassador  remarks  on  the  con- 
trast between  the  ways  of  Julius  II.  and  those  of  Alexander 
VI.  on  this  occasion.  The  wedding  was  privately  cele- 
brated, all  public  tokens  of  rejoicing  being  forbidden  ;  the 
wedding  festivities  were  deferred  till  the  arrival  of  the  young 
couple  at  Bracciano,  where  they  spent  their  honeymoon.|| 
Felice's  dowry  also  was  by  no  means  a  large  one.lf  Two 
months  later,  another  alliance  between  the  Colonna  and 
Rovere  families  took  place,  in  the  marriage  of  Marcantonio 
Colonna  to  a  niece  of  the  Pope's.  Frascati  was  given  to 
Marcantonio,  together  with  Julius  II.'s  former  Palace  of  the 
SS.  Apostoli.**    By  these  means  Julius  trusted  that  he  had 

*  Gregorovius,  Lucrezia  Borgia,  128  seq. 

t  *Brognolo's  Report,  dated  Rome,  12th  Dec,  1505.  Gonzaga 
Archives,  Mantua. 

t  Sanuto,  v.,  771,  784,  798,  935  ;  VI.,  128.  Cf.  Dispacci  di  A. 
Giustinian,  III.,  334  seq.,  354  seq.,  390,  393,  409  seq.,  437  seq.  On 
Card.  Giuliano's  daughters,  see  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  p.  369,  note  t. 

§  On  Orsini's  eccentricities,  for  which  he  was  called  "  pubblico  pazzo," 
see  Luzio,  Mantova  e  Urbino,  178  seq.  On  the  Pope's  intervention 
with  Ferdinand  of  Spain  in  favour  of  G.  G.  Orsini,  see  in  Appendix, 
N.  60,  65,  the  *Brief  of  Jan.,  1507  In  regard  to  Madonna  Felice,  cf. 
CiAN,  Cortegiano,  318. 
11  Sanuto,  VI.,  347,  359. 

IT  It  is  most  frequently  estimated  at  15,000  ducats.  G.  Arsago,  in  a 
*Report  on  the  marriage,  dat.  Rome,  24th  May,  1 506,  makes  it  20,000 
ducats,  of  which  12,000  came  from  the  Pope.    G  onzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

**  COPPI,  Mem.  Colonnesi,  251  ;  GREGOROVIUS,  VIII.,  44,  ed.  3. 


BOLOGNA   AND    PERUGIA   TO   BE   RECOVERED.        261 

now  secured  the  loyalty  of  the  most  powerful  of  the  Roman 
families,  and  could  turn  his  attention  without  danger  from 
that  quarter  to  the  restoration  of  the  authority  of  the  Holy 
See  in  Bologna  and  Perugia. 

Without  any  legal  title,  and  simply  by  force  of  arms,  the 
Baglioni  had  made  themselves  masters  of  Perugia,  and  the 
Bentivogli  of  Bologna  ;  the  only  trace  of  the  Pope's  authority 
that  still  remained  was  an  insignificant  toll  on  the  revenues 
of  these  two  wealthy  cities.  In  Bologna  especially,  which 
was  the  largest  city  but  one  of  the  States  of  the  Church, 
and  its  bulwark  on  that  side,  all  power  was  practically 
entirely  in  the  hands  of  Giovanni  Bentivoglio.  His  govern- 
ment, though  not  so  bad  as  that  of  the  licentious  Giampaolo 
Baglione  in  Perugia,  was  anything  but  satisfactory.  His 
haughty  consort,  and  more  especially  his  four  sons,  had  made 
the  name  of  Bentivoglio  thoroughly  detested  in  the  city 
by  their  tyranny  and  violence.  Numbers  of  exiles  from 
Bologna  and  Perugia,  who  had  taken  refuge  in  Rome,  were 
perpetually  urging  the  Pope  to  intervene  and  deliver  their 
cities  from  the  tyrants  who  oppressed  them.*  Julius  H. 
listened  to  all  their  representations,  but  took  his  time.  He 
made  his  preparations  quietly,  collecting  money  and  troops. 
At  last,  when  a  favourable  turn  in  the  political  situation 
seemed  to  promise  success,  he  resolved  to  make  the  attempt.^ 

*  Cf.  GUICCIARDINI,  VII.,  C.  I  ;  SUGENHEIM,  393,395  ;  TOMMASINl, 
Machiavelli,  I.,  333,  335.  On  the  cruelties  of  the  BagHoni,  see  Alfani, 
248  ;  cf.  Fabretti,  III.,  129  seq..,  233.  On  the  Bentivogli,  see  JOVIUS, 
Elog.,  lib.  v.,  171  ;  cf.  also  Ratti,  II.,  148  seq.  ;  GOZZADINI,  Memorie 
per  la  vita  di  Giovanni  II.  BentivogHo  (Bologna,  1839),  152  j-^j'.,  and 
GOZZADINI,  Alcuni  awenimenti,  67  seq.  On  the  importance  of  Bologna, 
see  *Letter  to  Thomasino  Barbiero  macciero  de  N.  S.  papa  to  the  40 
presides  libert.  Bonon.,  dated  Rome,  4th  May,  1 507.  Here  Bologna  is 
called  la  piu  florida  et  triomphante  citta  de  Italia.  *Lettere  di  ambascia- 
tori  e  diversi  da  Roma.     State  Archives,  Bologna. 

t  Lanz,  Einleitung,  86. 


262  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

It  was  not  till  March  1506,  that  news  first  reached  Venice 
that  the  Pope  was  seriously  considering  plans  for  bringing 
Perugia  and  Bologna  back  again  under  the  direct  govern- 
ment of  the  Church.  At  first  this  was  not  believed  ;  but 
later  accounts  left  no  room  to  doubt  its  truth.  It  appeared 
that  Julius  II.  expected  the  co-operation  of  France,  and 
counted  on  a  neutral  attitude  on  the  part  of  the  Republic. 
The  Signoria  did  their  best  to  dissuade  him  from  this 
undertaking,  repeatedly  urging  the  danger  that  Maximilian 
might  enter  Italy,  a  possibility  that  had  been  already  a 
good  deal  talked  of*  In  Rome  several  of  the  Cardinals, 
and  especially  Caraffa,  were  against  it  ;-|-  but  the  Pope  was 
not  to  be  moved.  It  seemed  to  him  that  the  favourable 
opportunity  had  now  arrived  for  getting  rid  of  the  Bentivogli, 
who  had  given  him  much  cause  to  complain  of  them  when 
he  was  Bishop  of  Bologna.  "  Rome,"  says  Paris  de  Grassis, 
the  Papal  Master  of  Ceremonies,  "  was  quiet,  the  pre- 
parations for  war  were  completed.  Julius  II.  himself 
headed  the  expedition,  accompanied  by  all  his  Court  and 
nearly  all  the  Cardinals ;  only  such  members  of  the  Sacred 
College  as  were  incapacitated  by  age  or  sickness  were  per- 
mitted to  remain  behind.  The  Legation  of  Rome  was 
given  to  Cardinal  S.  Giorgio."  | 

In  order  to  be  prepared  for  all  contingencies,  Julius  II. 

*  Sanuto,  VI.,  322,  349,  377,  385-386,  394  ;  cf.  Appendix,  N.  50, 
*G.  Arsago's  Report  of  15th  Aug.,  1506.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

t  Sanuto,  VI.,  394,  407. 

X  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  3-4  ;  cf.  20-21.  Gregorovius, 
VII.,  44,  ed.  3;  Reumont,  III.,  2,  20;  and  Creighton,  IV.,  87,  are 
mistaken  in  their  statement  that  B.  Cibo  was  left  behind  as  Regent.  S. 
Giorgio  is  named  as  Regent,  not  only  by  P.  de  Grassis  but  also  by  SlGlS- 
MONDO  de'  Conti,  II.,  348,  and  Arsago  in  a  *Letter,  dated  Rome,  20th 
Aug.,  1 506.  The  latter  says  that  only  the  Rota  remained  in  Rome  ;  all 
the  auditors  have  gone  with  the  Pope  ;  to-morrow  200  Albanian  mer- 
cenaries are  coming  from  Naples.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 


ATTITUDE    OF   FRANCE   AND   VENICE.  263 

had  concluded  alliances  with  Florence,  Siena,  Mantua, 
Ferrara,  and  Urbino,*  Still  the  expedition  was  "  a  bold 
undertaking,  and  would  be  a  master-stroke  if  it  succeeded. 
Now  that  the  Papacy  was  hemmed  in  on  the  South  by 
Spain  in  Naples,  it  was  essential  to  provide  for  greater 
expansion  on  the  northern  side ;  the  fulcrum  of  politics 
for  the  States  of  the  Church  was  pushed  upwards  into 
Central  Italy  ;  and  Umbria,  Tuscany,  and  the  Romagna 
acquired  a  new  importance  for  the  Holy  See."-|- 

The  hazards  of  the  enterprise  were  increased  by  the 
attitude  of  Venice  and  France,  from  neither  of  whom  could 
the  Pope  obtain  any  certain  answer. 

In  France  the  difficulties  came  chiefly  from  Cardinal 
d'Amboise.  Julius  II.  had  hoped  to  conciliate  his  former 
rival  by  making  him,  soon  after  his  election,  not  only 
Legate  of  France,  but  also  of  Avignon  and  Venaissin  ;  he 
trusted  by  this  means  to  put  an  end  to  the  perpetual 
wranglings  between  the  vassals  of  the  Papacy  and  those 
of  France.  But  the  conduct  of  d'Amboise  as  Legate  was 
far  from  satisfactory  ;  he  embezzled  the  money  that  he  had 
to  collect,  and  took  no  pains  to  conceal  that  he  wished  and 
hoped  to  be  the  next  Pope.ij:  Julius  II,  was  well  aware  of 
all  this,  but  in  his  present  position  he  could  not  afford  to 
engage  in  an  open  conflict  with  the  all-powerful  minister, 
or  his  master.  He  continued,  therefore,  on  friendly  terms 
with  both,  and  endeavoured  to  meet  their  wishes  in 
everything,  as  far  as  he  could. §     But  it  was  not  possible 

*  SUGENHEIM,  393.  In  a  *Brief,  dated  Rome,  19th  April,  1506, 
Julius  II.  promised  the  Sienese,  in  return  for  their  faithfulness,  to 
protect  the  hberties  of  their  city  both  by  arms  and  censures.  State 
Archives,  Siena,  Cassa  della  Lupa. 

t  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  45,  ed.  3. 

X  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1503,  n.  23  ;  1505,  n.  13;  Hergenrother, 
VIII.,  402. 

§  Cf.  the  *Brief  to  d'Amboise,  dated  Rome,  i6th  May,  1505,  in  which 


264  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

that  this  state  of  things  should  be  of  long  duration.  In 
the  Summer  of  1505  serious  differences  with  France  arose 
in  connection  with  the  allotment  of  the  benefices  which 
had  been  held  by  Cardinal  Ascanio  Sforza,  and  to  these 
were  added  disputes  about  appointments  to  Bishoprics.* 
The  creation  of  Cardinals  which  took  place  on  the  12th  of 
December,  1505,  in  which  the  Ambassador  of  Louis,  Robert 
Chaland,  received  the  purple,  gave  rise  to  new  misunder- 
standings. The  King  was  extremely  annoyed  because  the 
Archbishop  of  Auch  and  the  Bishop  of  Bayeux  had  not 
also  been  admitted  into  the  Sacred  College.  Alluding  to 
the  dangerous  illness  which  he  had  had  in  the  Spring  he  ex- 
claimed, "In  Italy  they  think  I  am  dead  ;  but  I  will  shew 
the  Holy  Father  that  I  am  still  alive."  To  revenge  him- 
self, he  confiscated  the  revenues  of  all  benefices  belonging 
to  the  Pope's  nominees  in  the  Milanese.-f  Julius  II.,  whose 
position  in  the  States  of  the  Church  was  still  very  insecure, 
was  obliged  to  control  himself  He  tried  to  conciliate  the 
King,  and  on  Christmas  Day  sent  him  a  consecrated  sword 
by  the  hands  of  Pierre  le  Filleul,  Bishop  of  Sisteron.  J 
This  accomplished  diplomatist  succeeded  in  establishing 
better  relations   between   Rome  and   France.     In   matters 

the  Pope  expresses  his  satisfaction  at  the  recovery  of  Louis  XII.,  and  his 
willingness  to  comply  with  the  wishes  of  the  King  and  the  Cardinal  in 
regard  to  the  Bishopric  of  Clermont.  On  the  19th  May  he  writes  a 
*Letter  expressly  for  the  purpose  of  congratulating  the  French  King  on 
his  recovery.  *Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  288,  307,  309.  (Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.)  The  Pope  composed  besides  special  prayers  of  thanksgiving 
on  this  occasion.  See  the  Bull  of  the  i6th  May,  1505,  in  the  Arch,  du 
Puy-de-D6me,  Maulde,  Origines,  318-319. 

*  Sanuto,  VI.,  176,  228  ;  Desjardins,  II.,  103. 

t  Desjardins,  II.,  153-154  ;  Sanuto,  VI.,  275. 

J  Sanuto,  VI.,  279,  282.  Cf.  Appendix,  N.  48,  the  ^Report  of  the 
Mantuan  Envoy,  dated  Rome,  24th  Dec,  1505.  Gonzaga  Archives, 
Mantua. 


THE   POPE   SETS   OUT   FOR   BOLOGNA.  265 

concerning  the  Church,  Louis  XII.  gave  in  to  the  Pope,  and 
in  April  1505,  negotiations  commenced  for  obtaining  the 
assistance  of  France  in  the  expedition  against  Perugia  and 
Bologna.*  The  King  began  by  endeavouring  to  persuade 
Julius  to  relinquish  his  plans,  and  tried,  in  June,  to  take 
advantage  of  the  situation  by  requesting  that  two  French 
prelates  should  be  made  Cardinals.-]-  The  negotiations 
dragged  on  interminably,  without  any  result,  and  the 
patience  of  the  Pope  was  sorely  tried.  Venice  reiterated 
her  warnings  against  the  expedition  in  a  menacing  tone. 
At  last  the  brave  old  Pontiff  determined  to  try  the  effect  of 
the  accomplished  fact.  The  step  he  took  "  furnished 
Machiavelli  with  a  proof  of  his  thesis,  that  what  never 
could  have  been  accomplished  by  ordinary  means,  is  often 
achieved  by  precipitation  and  daring."  "  The  Pope," 
writes  the  famous  Florentine  politician,  "  knew  that  it  was 
impossible  for  him  to  drive  the  Bentivogli  out  of  Bologna 
without  help  from  France  and  neutrality  on  the  part  of 
Venice.  When  he  saw  that  he  could  get  nothing  from 
either  but  uncertain  and  evasive  answers,  he  resolved  to 
bring  both  to  the  point  by  giving  them  no  time  to 
deliberate.  He  started  from  Rome  with  as  many  soldiers 
as  he  could  collect,  sending  word  to  the  Venetians  that 
they  were  not  to  interfere,  and  to  the  King  of  France  that 
he  must  send  troops  to  support  him.  Thus  they  had 
hardly  any  time  to  consider,  and  as  it  was  plain  that  if  they 
hesitated  or  refused  the  Pope  would  be  extremely  angry, 
they  did  what  he  wanted  ;  the  King  of  France  sent  him 
help,  and  the  Venetians  remained  neutral."^ 

*  Desjardins,  II.,  164^1?^.;  Sanuto,  VI.,  311. 

t  Sanuto,  VI.,  351. 

t  Disc,  sopra  la  I.  Deca  di  T.  Livio,  III.,  c.  44  ;  Brosch,  Julius  II., 
127.  On  the  astonishment  produced  by  this  bold  action  on  the  part  of 
the  Pope,  cf.  the  Report  of  the  Florentine  Ambassador  at  the  French 


266  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES, 

In  a  Secret  Consistory  on  the  17th  August,  1506,  Julius 
II.,  after  enumerating  the  crimes  of  Giovanni  BentivogHo, 
mentioned  for  the  first  time  his  intention  of  taking  the 
field  in  person  against  him.  On  the  21st  it  was  decided 
that  the  expedition  should  start  from  Rome  on  the  24th, 
On  the  following  day  Briefs  were  despatched  to  the  allied 
Princes  of  Mantua  and  Urbino,  desiring  them  to  join  the 
Papal  army  on  its  march.*  Eventually  its  departure  was 
put  ofT  to  the  26th.t 

To  avoid  the  mid-day  heat  the  start  was  made  before  sun- 
rise. The  Pope  first  heard  a  low  Mass,  and  gave  his  part- 
ing blessing  to  the  people  at  the  Porta  S.  Maria  Maggiore. 
He   was  accompanied    by    nine    Cardinals    and   500  fully 

Court  in  Desjardins,  II.,  179.  From  the  documents  here  published, 
p.  182,  we  see  that  as  late  as  the  middle  of  September  the  King  had 
denounced  the  expedition. 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  4,  20.  See  Appendix,  N.  51,  the  Brief 
to  Fr.  Gonzaga  of  the  22nd  August,  1506.  On  the  15th  of  August  the 
Mantuan  Envoy  stated  in  his  Report  that  the  Pope  would  set  forth  with- 
out fail  in  eight  days.  (Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.)  The  *Brief  to  the 
Duke  of  Urbino,  dat.  Aug.  22,  says  that  the  Pope  hopes  to  see  him  in 
Perugia  on  the  2nd  or  3rd  of  Sept.  *Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  548.  Secret  Archives 
of  the  Vatican. 

t  This  date  is  often  given  incorrectly.  Ranke,  Rom.  und  Germ. 
Volker,  215,  names  the  20th  ;  Reumont,  III.,  2,  20,  the  23rd ;  GOZZA- 
DINI,  Avvenimenti,  70,  the  27th  August.  Even  in  contemporary  writers 
it  is  often  inaccurate,  e.g.,  SiGlSMONDO  DE'  CONTI,  II.,  348,  says  the  28th 
August  ;  the  chronicle  in  the  Varia  Polit.,  50,  f.  61  (Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican),  the  25th  August ;  and  Sanuto,  VI.,  407,  the  2nd  August.  But 
the  26th  is  established  as  the  true  date  by  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati, 
21  ;  Cardinal  Adriano  di  Corneto's  poem  on  the  Pope's  expedition  (Iter 
Julii  Pont.  Ro.  per  Hadrianum  Card.  S,  Chrysogoni  as  an  appendix  to 
the  work  De  sermone  latino  [Basle,  1518],  in  Ciaconius,  III.,  235  seq., 
and  ROSCOE,  I.,  519) ;  and  the  *Acta  Consist.  (Consistorial  Archives  of 
the  Vatican.)  On  the  dissatisfaction  in  Rome  at  the  Pope's  departure 
owing  to  the  fears  entertained  that  it  might  entail  a  new  Avignon,  see 
Scheurl,  Briefbuch,  28. 


HIS   ARRIVAL   AT   VITERBO.  26/ 

armed  knights,  who,  with  their  retainers,  made  up  a  much 
larger  force  than  the  number  mentioned.*  Their  first 
halting-place  was  Formello,  where  the  Pope  was  received 
by  Giovanni  Giordano  Orsini  and  his  wife.  On  the  follow- 
ing day  Julius  went  on  to  Nepi,  where  three  more  of  the 
Cardinals  joined  him.  The  march  was  always  begun 
before  sunrise.  On  the  28th  August  they  arrived  at  the 
little  town  of  Civita  Castellana,  which  possesses  a  noble 
castle  with  which  Julius  was  delighted.  Here  a  halt  was 
made  on  account  of  the  Feast  of  S.  John  the  Baptist ;  and 
Machiavelli,  then  Florentine  Envoy,  promised  the  support 
of  his  government  towards  the  subjugation  of  Bologna^ 
On  the  way  from  Nepi  to  Civita  Castellana  good  news  had 
arrived  from  the  French  Court,  which  greatly  rejoiced  the 
Pope.  On  the  other  hand,  he  also  heard  that  Giovanni 
Bentivoglio  was  determined  to  resist.f 

It  was  still  quite  dark  when  on  Sunday,  the  30th  August, 
after  hearing  Mass,  the  Pope  set  off  for  Viterbo.  At 
Fabrica  refreshments  were  provided  by  Cardinal  Girolamo 
Basso  della  Rovere.  In  the  evening  a  solemn  entry  was 
made  into  Viterbo,  which  was  decorated  for  the  occasion. 
According  to  the  usual  custom  the  Blessed  Sacrament  was 
carried  before  the  Pope,  who  was  attended  by  seventeen 
Cardinals.  During  his  stay  in  this  place  Julius  II.  drew  up 
further  regulations  for  the  maintenance  of  the  reconciliation 
between  the  contending  parties  there  which  he  had  suc- 
ceeded in  effecting  in  the  previous  year.  The  Legation 
was  given  to  Cardinal  Leonardo  Grosso  della  Rovere.  At 
the  same  time  the  Archbishop  of  Siponto  was  despatched 
as  Nuncio  to  Bologna  with  a  stern  message,  and  the  Arch- 

*  Grimm,  I.,  291,  ed.  5. 

t  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  21  seq.-,  Machiavelli's  Letter  of  the 
28th  August,  1 506 ;  and  *Acta  Consist.  Con&istorial  Archives  of  the 
Vatican. 


268  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

bishop  of  Aix  to  Milan,  to  lead  the  French  army  of  assist- 
ance against  Castelfranco ;  the  Pope  also  sent  money  for 
the  hire  of  a  troop  of  Swiss  foot-soldiers.* 

On  the  4th  September  Julius  II.  hurried  on  to  Monte- 
fiascone,  where  he  inspected  the  castle  and  stopped  for  the 
mid-day  meal.f  The  house  in  which  this  was  provided  was 
in  such  a  rickety  condition  that  the  floor  had  to  be  sup- 
ported with  props.  With  a  playful  allusion  to  the  famous 
wine  of  the  place,  Julius  II.  observed,  "These  are  wise 
precautions  lest  we  should  fall  through,  and  people  might 
say  we  had  had  too  much  Montefiascone,"  On  the  5th  he 
set  off  again  for  Orvieto,  as  usual  two  hours  before  sunrise.J 
It  was  so  dark,  says  Paris  de  Grassis,  who  accompanied  the 
expedition  as  Grand-Master-  of  Ceremonies,  that  nothing 
could  be  distinguished.  A  number  of  people  had  spent 
the  night  in  the  open  air  in  hopes  of  seeing  the  Pope,  who 
had  to  have  torches  carried  before  him.  Orvieto  gave  him 
a  festive  reception.  An  oak  tree,  to  correspond  with  the 
arms  of  his  family,  adorned  the  principal  square.  Instead 
of  acorns,  little  boys  dressed  as  angels  were  perched  on  the 
extremities  of  its  branches  and  on  its  topmost  boughs. 
Orpheus  leant  against  the  trunk  and  recited  Latin  verses 
in  praise  of  the  Pope,  to  which  the  angels  responded  in 
chorus.  A  girandola  was  lighted  to  greet  him  on  his  return 
from  the  Cathedral,  whither  he  had  gone  to  venerate  the 
famous  Corporal  and  give  his  blessing  to  the  people.  Here 
also    an    immense    crowd     from    the    neighbDurhood    had 

*■  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  27-30  ;  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  II., 
348  ;  and  *Acta  Consist.     Consistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

t  In  the  Frati  ed.  the  text  of  Paris  de  Grassis  has  :  Die  6  Veneris. 
But  the  Friday  in  1 506  fell  on  the  4th,  and  that  is  the  date  also  given  in 
the  *Acta  Consist. 

J  Here,  too,  the  text  of  Paris  de  Grassis  in  Frati,  32,  is  incorrect :  in 
die  Sabbati  septimo  Septemb.  The  right  date  is  in  *Acta  Consist. 
Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 


SUBMISSION   OF   GIAMPAOLO   BAGLIONE.  269 

assembled  to  receive  his  blessing.  The  Duke  of  Urbino 
and  Antonio  Ferreri,  the  Legate  of  Perugia,  arrived  at 
Orvieto  on  the  same  day  as  the  Pope.*  Both  had  been 
negotiating  with  Giampaolo  Baglione,  who  had  hesitated  for 
some  time  as  to  whether,  considering  the  strength  of  his 
citadel  and  the  troops  that  he  had  with  him,  it  might  not 
be  worth  while  to  resist.  But  he  had  little  confidence  in 
the  loyalty  of  the  citizens,  who,  he  knew,  preferred  the 
Papal  government  to  his,  and  also  feared  the  hostility  of  the 
Oddi  party.  He  knew,  too,  the  character  of  his  adversary 
and  that  he  was  not  one  to  do  anything  by  halves.^-  Hence 
he  finally  resolved  to  accept  the  conditions  proposed  by  the 
Papal  Envoys  and  to  submit.  He  came  himself  to  Orvieto 
and  promised  to  hand  over  all  the  defences  of  Perugia 
and  the  fastnesses  in  the  neighbourhood  to  the  Papal  com- 
manders, to  recall  most  of  the  exiles,  to  send  his  two  sons 
to  Urbino  as  hostages,  and  finally  to  join  the  expedition 
against  Bologna  with  150  men.  On  the  8th  September 
he  returned  to  Perugia,  accompanied  by  the  Legate  and  the 
Duke  of  Urbino,  to  prepare  for  the  entry  of  the  Pope. 

On  the  following  day  Julius  H.  left  Orvieto.  On  his 
journey  he  received  a  letter  from  the  Marquess  of  Mantua 
announcing  that  he  would  arrive  at  Perugia  on  the  12th 
of  September  and  take  part  personally  in  the  expedition 
against  Bentivoglio.|  When  they  came  to  the  little  village 
of  Castiglione  on  the  Lake  of  Thrasimene,  which  contained 
neither   accommodation   nor  food   enough  for  the   Pope's 

*  Julius  had  announced  Ferreri's  nomination  to  the  Perugians  on  the 
4th  April,  1506.  See  the  *Brief  of  that  date  in  the  City  Archives, 
Perugia. 

t   REUMONT,  III.,  2,  20,  and  SUGENHEIM,  393. 

X  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  36,  and  *Acta  Consist.  (Consistorial 
Archives  of  the  Vatican.)  Cf.  in  Appendix,  N.  52,  the  Brief  to  F.  Gonzaga 
of  the  loth  Sept.,  1506.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 


270  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

retinue,  to  the  dismay  of  his  suite  he  announced  his  inten- 
tion of  remaining  there  some  days.  He  did  this,  Paris  de 
Grassis  says,  in  order  to  give  BagHone  time  to  organise  his 
men.  But  the  commissariat  at  Castiglione  presented  such 
difficulties  that  on  the  nth  JuHus  was  obhged  to  move  on 
across  the  lake  to  the  Isola  Maggiore,  and  thence  to 
Passignano. 

On  the  1 2th  they  proceeded  to  Corciano.  They  were 
joined  on  the  way  thither  by  the  Condottiere  Giovanni 
Soffatelli  with  700  men.  At  Corciano  Cardinal  Francois 
Guillaume  Clermont  arrived  with  a  letter  from  Louis  XII. 
about  Bologna.*  It  was  soon  known  that  he  was  charged 
with  the  hopeless  task  of  trying  to  persuade  Julius  to  give 
up  his  enterprise."!" 

On  Sunday,  the  13th  September,!  Julius  made  his  entry 
into  Perugia  with  great  pomp.  The  eight  Priors  in  gala 
dress  met  him  at  the  Porta  San  Pietro  with  the  keys  of  the 
city.  All  the  bells  were  rung,  the  streets  were  thronged 
with  people  and  decorated  with  triumphal  arches.  Twenty 
Cardinals,  the  Duke  of  Urbino,  Giovanni  Gonzaga,  and  many 
of  the  Roman  Barons  accompanied  the  Pope.  He  went 
first  to  the  Cathedral,  where  the  Papal  choir  sang  the  Te 
Deum,  which  was  followed  by  the  solemn  Benediction  of  the 
people  and  the  proclamation  of  an  Indulgence.^     Julius  II. 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  37-39,  and  *Acta  Consist.  Consis- 
torial  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

+  Cf.  Machiavelli's  Letters  of  the  13th  and  14th  Sept.,  1506. 

J  Not  on  1 2th  Sept.  as  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  45,  ed.  3,  states. 

§  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  40  seq. ;  cf.  Alfani,  249  seq.  Guic- 
CIARDINI,  VII.,  c.  I,  says  :  il  pontefice  entro  in  Perugia  senza  forze  ed  in 
modo  che  era  in  potesta  di  Giampagolo  di  farlo  prigione,  etc.  Machia- 
velli,  in  his  letter  of  13th  Sept.,  remarks  that  the  Papal  troops  were 
stationed  close  to  the  Gate,  and  those  of  Baglione  at  a  short  distance 
from  it,  so  that  the  Pope  and  Cardinals  were  completely  in  the  power  of 
the  latter.     Later,  in  his  speech  on  the  first  Decas  of  Livy,  Machia- 


JULIUS   11.    IN    PERUGIA.  27 1 

took  up  his  abode  in  the  Palace  of  the  Priors.  On  the  17th, 
the  Marquess  Francesco  Gonzaga  arrived.  Three  days 
later  the  Pope  celebrated  a  solemn  High  Mass  in  the  church 
of  the  Franciscans ;  he  had  commenced  his  studies  in  early 
youth  as  a  poor  scholar  in  this  convent ;  now  he  wished 
to  thank  God  and  S.  Francis  for  his  elevation  to  the  high- 
est dignity  in  the  world.* 

The  Pope  was  so  much  inspirited  by  the  success  which 
had  thus  far  attended  his  expedition  that  his  thoughts 
soared  now  to  higher  flights.  He  began  to  talk  of  setting 
forth  to  deliver  Constantinople  and  Jerusalem  out  of  the 
hands  of  the  unbelievers  as  soon  as  things  had  been  set  in 
order  in  Italy;  not  of  course,  however,  until  the  Church  had 
got  back  her  States — that,  he  said  emphatically,  was  an  in- 
dispensable preliminary.  He  commanded  the  celebrated 
preacher  Aegidius  of  Viterbo,  of  the  Order  of  the  Hermits  of 

velli  blamed  Baglione  and  accused  him  of  cowardice  for  not  having  the 
courage  to  make  himself  master  of  the  Pope's  person.  (See  Vol.  V.  of  this 
work,  p.  165.)  It  is,  however,  evident,  from  the  clear  account  given  by- 
Paris  de  Grassis,  who  was  an  eye-witness,  from  the  words  of  Aegidius  of 
Viterbo  (in  Hofler,  384),  and  the  description  in  the  Annal.  dec.  (cum 
maximo  gentium armorum  et  aliorum  numero,  in  Fabretti,  III.,  i94)that 
Julius  was  far  from  having  entered  Perugia  unarmed,  and  that  his  troops 
practically  occupied  the  city.  The  risk  for  him  cannot  therefore  have 
been  so  great  as  it  is  made  out  to  be  by  Guicciardini  and  Machiavelli ; 
their  statement  that  he  came  in  without  troops  is  simply  false.  The 
Venetian  Envoy  (Sanuto,  VI.,  421)  reports  2000  armed  men  entered 
the  city  with  the  Pope,  though  he  adds  :  et  k  frato  intrar  in  la  terra  500 
fanti  di  note  per  dubito.  Naturally,  the  troops  were  for  the  most  part 
quartered  outside  the  city.  No  doubt  Julius  shewed  some  courage  in 
acting  as  he  did  ;  but  he  was  not  as  rash  as  Machiavelli  makes  him 
appear.  F.  Cubello  also  in  a  *Letter  to  F.  Gonzaga,  dated  Perugia,  the 
14th  Sept.,  1506,  reports  :  *Hieri  il  papa  intro  in  pompa  con  tuta 
la  corte  in  ordine  et  tute  le  gente  d'arme  in  ordine  cum  1 50  stradioti,  etc. 
Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 
*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  44.    Cf.  Fabretti,  III.,  200  seq. 


2/2  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

S.  Augustine,  to  deliver  a  sermon  on  this  subject  while  he 
and  the  Cardinals  were  at  Perugia ;  and  again  later  at 
Bologna  he  desired  him  to  preach  in  a  similar  sense.  In 
his  review  of  the  reign  of  Julius  II.  Aegidius  says  that  it 
was  generally  thought  that  the  Pope  would  have  carried 
out  this  project  if  he  had  not  been  hindered  by  the  blind- 
ness of  men.* 

Julius  remained  eight  days  in  the  nev/ly-won  city.  He 
spent  this  time  in  labouring  earnestly  to  bestow  on  its 
unfortunate  inhabitants  the  blessings  of  a  settled  peace.f 

*  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  45,  ed.  3,  is  mistaken  in  supposing  that  the 
report  of  Aegidius  has  never  been  printed  ;  it  has  been  published  by 
HOFLER,  p.  387.  Cerri,  176,  also  quotes  it,  and  his  sermons  on  the 
Turkish  question  are  mentioned  by  Sanuto,  VI.,  427.  Aegidius  was 
also  to  have  delivered  a  discourse  on  peace  at  Perugia,  but,  to  the  great 
annoyance  of  Julius,  preached  a  panegyric  on  the  Pope  instead.  See 
Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  46.  Albertini,  XXI 1 1.,  also  alludes 
to  the  crusading  projects  of  Julius.  Zinkeisen,  Oriental.  Frage,  554, 
though  unacquainted  with  these  authorities,  is  of  opinion  that  he  had  the 
war  against  the  Turks  very  much  at  heart.  Cf.  also  PiCHLER,  I.,  503, 
and  Frakn6i,  Liga  von  Cambrai,  1 1  seq.^  23  seq.,  34  seq.,  43  seq., 
54  seq.  But  though  numerous  Briefs  in  Raynaldus  shew  that  the  atten- 
tion of  Julius  II.  was  repeatedly  turned  towards  the  defence  of  Christen- 
dom against  the  Turks  {cf.  also  PARIS  DE  GraSSIS'  Report,  ed.  Dollinger, 
390),  still  Zinkeisen  and  Pichler  appear  to  judge  him  too  favourably  in 
this  respect.  He  was  too  much  engrossed  with  Italian  affairs  to  be  able 
to  give  the  Turkish  question  anything  but  quite  a  secondary  place  in  his 
thoughts  At  the  same  time,  until  Dr.  Gottlob's  Monograph  of  Julius  II. 
has  come  out,  it  will  be  right  to  suspend  our  judgment  on  this  subject. 
The  energetic  support  given  by  this  Pope  to  King  Emmanuel  of  Portugal's 
naval  enterprises,  which  were  regarded  as  crusading  expeditions,  appears 
in  a  great  number  of  Briefs  and  Bulls,  some  of  which  are  dated  from 
Perugia  at  this  very  time.  See  Corp.  dipl.  Portug.,  I.,  61  seq.^  93  seq., 
98  seq.,  99  seq.,  loi  seq.,  102  seq.,  119  seq.  A  letter  from  Rome  of 
1 5th  Oct.,  1 509,  in  the  Acta  Tomic,  I.,  49,  which  has  hitherto  been  over- 
looked, reports  later  projects  of  Julius  II.  for  a  Crusade. 

t  On  the  14th  Sept.  F.  Cubello  reports  to  F.  Gonzaga :    *E1  N.  S. 


JULIUS  ENTERS   URBINO.  273 

The  baneful  and  detested  rule  of  the  Baglioni  was  at  an 
end.  From  henceforth  the  beautiful  city  was  again  to  enjoy 
its  municipal  liberties  and  republican  constitution  under 
the  sovereignty  of  the  Church.  The  exiles  were  allowed  to 
return,  with  the  exception  of  those  only  whose  hands  were 
stained  with  the  blood  of  their  fellow-citizens.  The  magis- 
tracy of  the  Ten  was  abolished.  Julius  left  the  old  liber- 
ties untouched.  Cardinal  Antonio  Ferreri  was  appointed 
Legate.* 

The  ardent  spirit  of  the  Pope  was  too  much  occupied  with 
Bologna  to  remain  any  longer  in  Perugia.f  On  the  21st 
of  September  he  started  for  Gubbio,  which  he  reached  on 
the  22nd;  on  the  23rd  he  was  at  Cantiano,  and  on  the  25th 
entered  Urbino,  crossing  the  Appenines  by  the  pass  of 
Furlo.  The  gates  were  taken  down  by  the  Duke,  while  the 
Prefect  presented  the  keys  of  the  city  to  the  Pope.J  Julius, 
from  the  artistic  side  of  his  nature,  was  charmed  with  the 
Palace  of  Montefeltro;  but  his  mind  was  too  full  of  the 
negotiations  with  Bologna  and  France  to  give  much 
attention  to  anything  else. 

attende  cum  ogni  diligencia  ordinar  le  cose  di  Perosa.  Gonzaga 
Archives,  Mantua. 

*  SiGISMONDO  DE'  CONTI,  II.,  348  seq.  ;   SUGENHEIM,  394  ;   LEO,  V., 

183;  Fabretti,  III.,  302;  Ranke,  Papste,  I.,  251,  ed.  6.  In  the  fol- 
lowing year  fresh  disturbances  broke  out  in  Perugia  (Mariotti,  III., 
564),  in  consequence  of  which  Card.  Ferreri  was  recalled  and  Card. 
Leonardo  della  Rovere  sent  in  his  place.  JuHus  II.  informed  the 
citizens  of  these  changes  in  his  *Briefs  of  the  ist  and  2nd  Feb.,  1507 
(City  Archives,  Perugia),  and  in  Cod.  C,  IV.,  i,  of  the  University  Library, 
Genoa. 

t  Cf.  the  Brief  of  14th  Sept.,  1506  ;  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1506,  n.  24. 

X  DUMESNlL,  66,  incorrectly  gives  the  23rd  as  the  day  of  the  entry, 
and  there  are  other  mistakes  also  in  his  Itinerary  of  the  Pope.  Cf. 
Paris  DE  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  50,  and  *Acta  Consist,  in  the  Consistorial 
Archives  of  the  Vatican.  Among  recent  writers  see  Ugolini,  II., 
137  seq.^  and  Luzio,  Mantova  e  Urbino,  172  seq. 

VOL.  VL  T 


274  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

He  had  sent  Antonio  da  Monte  San  Savino,  Archbishop 
of  Manfredonia,  to  Bologna  to  endeavour  to  arrange  terms 
for  its  return  to  its  allegiance  to  the  Church,*  but 
Giovanni  Bentivoglio  had  anticipated  the  Archbishop  and 
completely  frustrated  his  mission.  At  first,  Sigismondo  de' 
Conti  says,  he  had  been  disposed  to  submit,  but  the  con- 
sciousness of  his  many  misdeeds  led  him  eventually  to 
change  his  mind.  He  succeeded  in  cajoling  the  citizens 
into  assuring  the  Papal  Envoy  that  their  Prince  was  no 
tyrant,  but  a  true  father  to  his  people.  All  the  Archbishop's 
kindly  admonitions  proved  unavailing,  and  when  at  last  he 
threatened  them  with  the  censures  of  the  Church,  Benti- 
voglio and  the  magistrates  appealed  to  a  General  Council.-j- 

The  Pope  had  intended  to  await  the  result  of  the  Arch- 
bishop's mission  at  Urbino,  but  the  moment  he  heard  that 
he  was  on  his  way  back,  in  spite  of  the  dissuasions  of  the 
Duke  and  others,  he  determined  to  set  out  to  meet  him. 

In  the  early  morning  of  the  29th  September  he  started 
for  Macerata.|  The  roads  were  mere  bridle  paths,  the 
weather  had  broken,  and  the  hills  were  covered  with  snow, 
so  that  it  was  not  possible  on  the  30th  to  set  out  till  after 
mid-day.  The  rain  fell  in  torrents  and  the  sumpter-mules 
stumbled  and  fell  on  the  slippery  paths,  but  the  Pope 
struggled  on  with  passionate  haste  towards  San  Marino. 
He  halted  for  the  night  in  the  suburb  of  Borgo,  and  here 
a  letter  reached  him  from  the  King  of  France  promising  to 
send  troops  and  announcing  his  intention  of  coming  him- 
self in   Advent  to  Bologna,  where  he  hoped   to  meet  the 

*  Sanuto,  VI.,  421-422. 

t  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  II.,  349-350.  Cf.  also  Scheurl,  Brief- 
buch,  26  seq. 

X  Sigismondo  de'  Conti  wrongly  gives  the  30th  (II.,  351).  Cf. 
Paris  de  GraSSIS,  ed.  Frati,  53  ;  Letter  of  Machiavelli  of  ist  Oct.,^ 
1 506,  and  *Acta  Consist.,  Consistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 


HE   ENDEAVOURS  TO   CONCILIATE  VENICE.         275 

Pope.*  This  set  Julius  II.  free  from  his  greatest  anxiety. 
The  support  of  the  French  Government  had  been  delayed 
as  long  as  possible,  but  now  that  he  was  assured  of  this  the 
fall  of  Bentivoglio  was  certain.f  There  was  nothing  now 
to  fear  from  Venice.  Nevertheless,  "he  still  felt  it  prudent 
to  take  pains  to  conciliate  the  Venetians."  He  proposed  to 
the  Signoria  to  permit  them  still  to  retain  Faenza  and 
Rimini  as  a  fief  Though  this  offer  was  refused,  he  still 
continued  to  treat  the  Republic  with  all  possible  considera- 
tion. "  He  strictly  forbade  his  troops,  in  their  necessary 
march  through  Venetian  territory,  under  pain  of  death  to 
take  anything  from  the  inhabitants,  and  emphatically  as- 
sured their  Envoy  D.  Pisani,  that  the  Signoria  had  nothing 
to  fear  from  him.  He  was  most  anxious  not  to  afford  the 
least  shadow  of  excuse  to  Venice  for  her  conduct."  I 

Instead  of  taking  the  high  road  from  San  Marino  to 
Rimini  Julius  chose  the  more  difficult  mountain  way,  in 
order  to  avoid  passing  through  the  country  occupied  by  the 
Venetians.  On  the  ist  October  he  spent  the  night  in  the 
miserable  little  village  of  Savignano,  and  on  the  following 
day  crossed  the  Rubicon  and  entered  Cesena,  where  he  took 
up  his  quarters  for  the  night  in  the  castle.  Meanwhile  the 
Bolognese  Envoys  had  arrived.  They  besought  him  "  not 
to  throw  a  peaceful  city,  which  was  thoroughly  loyal  to  the 
Church,  into  confusion  by  demanding  novelties."  Julius 
answered,  "  I  know  that  what  you  are  now  saying  is  not 
what  you  really  think  ;  you  cannot  be  so  foolish  as  to  prefer 
the  rule  of  a  cruel  tyrant  to  mine."  § 

On  the  5th  of  October  a  Consistory  was  held,  at  which 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  54.     On  the  precise  moment  when 
the  King  changed  his  mind,  see  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  331. 
t  Cf.  Machiavelli's  Letter  of  the  3rd  Oct.,  1 506. 
t  Brosch,  JuHus  II.,  129.    C/.  Sanuto,VI.,  453. 
§  SiGiSMONDO  DE'  CONTI,  II.,  351.    The  answer  of  Julius  II.  is  some- 


2/6  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

there  were  twenty  Cardinals  present.  During  the  mid-day 
meal  the  news  arrived  that  the  French  troops  were  on  the 
road  with  sixteen  cannon  and  would  be  at  Modena  on 
Saturday.  The  following  day  brought  tidings  of  the  death 
of  King  Philip  of  Castile.*  On  the  7th  October  it  was 
determined  in  a  Secret  Consistory  that  an  Interdict  should 
be  laid  on  Bologna.  A  review  of  the  troops  took  place  in 
Cesena;  the  army  consisted  of  600  horsemen,  1600  foot- 
soldiers,  and  300  Swiss.-]- 

The  persistent  rain  had  made  the  roads  almost  im- 
passable ;  but  Julius  would  brook  no  delay.  Early  on  the 
8th  October  he  moved  onwards  from  Cesena  to  Forlim- 
popoli,  and  on  the  following  day  to  Forli.  In  entering  the 
city,  he  and  his  suite  had  a  taste  of  the  wild  character  of 
the  people  of  the  Romagna,  who  forcibly  possessed  them- 
selves of  the  Pope's  mule  and  baldacchino.J 

Meanwhile  there  could  no  longer  be  any  doubt  that 
Bentivoglio  had  no  intention  of  relinquishing  his  usurped 
authority  without  a  struggle.  "  He  trusted  in  the  strength 
of  the  city,  the  number  of  his  adherents,  his  high  position, 
and  his  stalwart  sons."  According  to  Sigismondo  de' 
Conti,  Bentivoglio  demanded  that  the  Pope  should  enter 
Bologna  without  troops,  and  make  no  change  in  anything.^ 

what  dififerently  stated  in  Machiavelli's  letter,  cited  supra,  note  t  on  pre- 
ceding page.  According  to  him  the  Pope  said  amongst  other  things  : 
circa  i  capitoH  non  curava  ne  quello  aveva  fatto  gH  altri  papi,  ne  quello 
aveva  fatto  lui  {cf.  Theiner,  Cod.,  III.,  515)  perche  gli  altri  papi  e  lui 
non  avevan  possuto  fare  altro  e  la  necessity  e  non  la  volontk  gli  aveva 
fatti  confermare. 

*  Philip  died  of  a  fever  on  the  morning  of  25th  Sept.  See  Habler, 
130-131  ;  Sanuto,  VI.,  442. 

t  Paris  de  GraSSIS,  ed.  Frati,  58  seq.  ;  Machiavelli's  Letter  of  the 
5th  Oct.,  1506  ;  and  *Acta  Consist.,  Consistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

X  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  60,  and  *Acta  Consist.,  he.  cit. 

§  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  II.,  351 ;  Reumont,  III.,  2,  23. 


THE   POPE   MARCHES    UPON    BOLOGNA.  277 

These  pretensions  so  enraged  Julius  that  he  at  once  pro- 
claimed the  excommunication  of  Bentivoglio  and  an  Inter- 
dict on  Bologna  unless  the  city  returned  to  its  obedience 
within  nine  days.  On  the  i  ith  of  October  these  Bulls  were 
affixed  to  the  doors  of  the  Cathedral  of  Forli.*  The 
Bolognese  were  thoroughly  frightened,  says  Sigismondo 
de'  Conti,  but  Bentivoglio  was  not  yet  subdued.  He  had 
sent  large  bribes  to  the  French  commanders,  and  in  their 
greed  of  gain  they  tried  for  a  time  to  play  fast  and  loose 
between  him  and  the  Pope.  Julius,  however,  threatened 
Louis  that  if  he  did  not  keep  his  word  he  would  publish 
his  faithlessness  to  the  whole  world  ;  and  at  last  the  King 
commanded  his  generals  to  advance.  The  alarm  produced 
by  their  approach  in  Bologna  determined  the  Pope  to 
begin  his  march  from  Forli ;  but  instead  of  taking  the  easy 
road  through  the  fertile  country  of  the  Emilia,  he  chose 
for  his  own  party  the  one  which  led  across  the  mountains. 
This,  Sigismondo  de'  Conti  says,  was  partly  because  he 
did  not  trust  the  Venetians,f  and  partly  because  he  could 
not  endure  to  look  upon  Faenza,  torn  away  from  the 
Church  as  it  now  was.  Thus,  leaving  the  bulk  of  the  army 
and  the  Cardinals  to  take  the  direct  road  by  that  place, 
he  with  a  small  retinue  turned  aside  to  the  left  towards 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  61-62  ;  LiJNlG,  IV.,  194  ;  and  Machia- 
velii's  Letter  of  the  loth  Oct.,  1506.  Portions  of  the  Bull  of  Interdict, 
dated  loth  Oct.,  1506,  taken  from  the  Regest.  in  the  Papal  Secret 
Archives,  are  to  be  found  in  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1506,  n.  25  seq.^ 
and  GOZZADINI,  G.  Bentivoglio,  App.,  XCIII.  seq.,  and  also  in  Frati's 
ed.  of  Paris  de  Grassis,  177-186.  The  Bull  excommunicating 
Bentivoglio,  also  dated  loth  Oct.,  1506,  was  printed  the  same  year  in 
Rome.  Copies  of  it  are,  however,  rare,  as  Bentivoglio  had  as  many 
as  he  could  obtain  destroyed.  I  saw  one  in  the  State  Archives  at 
Modena. 

t  The  Brief  of  the  15th  Oct.,  1506,  printed  in  Appendix,  N.  53,  refers 
also  to  this.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 


278  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

Castrocaro,  a  place  which  had  once  belonged  to  the  Church 
but  was  now  in  the  hands  of  the  Florentines.  This  was  on 
the  17th  October.*  Beyond  Mutilano  the  road  became 
extremely  difficult ;  ten  times  it  was  crossed  by  a  mountain 
torrent ;  in  one  place  the  Pope  had  to  dismount  and 
clamber  up  the  steep  ascent  for  a  mile  with  the  assistance 
of  his  servants.  He  was  half-dead  with  fatigue  when  in 
the  evening  he  arrived  at  the  little  village  of  Marradi 
in  the  valley  of  Lamone,  but  he  only  allowed  himself  a 
short  night's  rest,  and  was  off  again  before  daybreak 
to  Palazzuolo.  There  he  halted  for  a  light  meal  in  the 
afternoon,  and  then  hurried  on  to  Tossignano,  which  he 
reached  in  the  evening.  This  place  belonged  to  the  States 
of  the  Church ;  still  he  would  not  tarry,  but  went  on  at 
once  to  Imola.-j- 

Though  the  Pope  was  now  sixty-four  years  of  age,  and 
suffering  at  the  time  from  gout,  he  had  borne  the  fatigues 
of  the  mountain  journey  as  if  he  had  been  quite  a  young 
man.|  His  attendants  had  to  follow  him  whether  they 
liked  it  or  not.  Paris  de  Grassis,  the  Master  of  Cere- 
monies, travelled  by  the  easier  road  by  Faenza,  but 
before  they  parted  Julius  H.  made  him  hand  over  to  him 
his  costly  cope,  and  his  mitre  and  pectoral  cross,  "  For 
fear,"  he  said,  "  they  should  be  stolen  by  the  Venetians  or 
the  people  of  Faenza."§     When  his  followers  were  almost 

*  Sanuto,  VI.,  451,  and  *Acta  Consist.,  Consistorial  Archives  of  the 
Vatican. 

t  SiGISMONDO  de'  CoNTI,  II.,  352-353.  Cf.  PARIS  DE  GRASSIS 
ed.  Frati,  64-65  ;  Laur.  Parmenius,  313  ;  Machiavelli's  Letters  of  the 
i6th  and  19th  Oct.,  1506  ;  and  *Acta  Consist. 

\   "  Imus  praecipites  per  mille  pericula  rerum 
Turrigerasque  areas,  rupes  et  inhospita  saxa." 

See  Card.  A.  Castellesi's  poem  mentioned  supra,  p.  266,  note  t. 
§  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  64-65. 


FLIGHT   OF   BENTIVOGLIO.  279 

in  despair  at  the  difficulties  of  the  road  to  Tossignano,  the 
Pope  smilingly  quoted  Virgil's  lines : 

Per  varies  casus,  per  tot  discrimina  rerum, 
Tendimus  in  Latium. 

— ^Eneid,   I.,  204,  205. 

In  the  little  town  of  Imola,  which  they  reached  on  the 
20th*  October,  and  where  they  were  received  with  festal 
honours,  it  was  impossible  to  accommodate  the  whole  of  the 
Pope's  suite.  In  consequence,  all  the  officials  and  many 
members  of  the  Court  remained  at  Castro  Bolognese, 
and  the  army  (2000  men)  was  encamped  in  the  neigh- 
bouring country.  The  Duke  of  Urbino  being  laid  up 
with  an  attack  of  gout,  Francesco  Gonzaga  was  appointed 
Commander-in-Chief  on  the  25  th  October.  On  the  same 
day  Julius  received  a  visit  from  the  Duke  of  Ferrara.  On 
All  Souls'  Day,  just  as  the  Pope  was  going  to  Mass,  the 
tidings  of  the  flight  of  Bentivoglio  arrived.f  The  tyrant 
now  saw  the  impossibility  of  making  a  defence,  as  he  had 
made  himself  utterly  detested  by  his  subjects.  He  there- 
fore entered  into  a  compact  with  the  French  Commander- 
in-Chief,  Chaumont,  and  fled  to  Milan  with  a  safe  conduct 
from  him.  According  to  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  as  soon 
as  the  Interdict  was  laid  upon  Bologna,  the  citizens 
completely  deserted  him.  One  by  one,  all  the  priests  left 
the  city,  and  even  his  most  trusted  friends  began  to  say 
that  the  Pope  was  in  the  right.     But  Bentivoglio  still  held 

*  Not  on  the  21st  as  stated  by  ViLLARi,  Machiavelli,  I.,  425.  See 
Sanuto,  VI.,  425  ;  Fanti,  Imola,  17  seq.  (here  the  particulars  in  regard 
to  the  rejoicings  are  to  be  found) ;  and  *Acta  Consist.,  Consistorial 
Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

t  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  66-80.  The  Brief  on  F.  Gonzaga's 
appointment  is  in  DUMONT,  IV.,  n.,  89,  inaccurately  given  in  GOZZA- 
DiNi,  Giovanni  II.  Bentivoglio,  Appendix,  XCVIII.  seq.,  translated  in 
Equicola,  Storia  di'  Mantova  (1610),  247-248. 


28o  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

out  until  he  heard  that  Charles  d'Amboise  had  actually 
arrived  at  Modena  with  an  army  of  600  lancers,  3000 
horsemen,  and  a  large  number  of  guns. 

The  Bolognese  now  sent  Envoys  to  the  Pope,  begging 
for  the  removal  of  the  Interdict,  and  protection  against  the 
French  army.  The  French  troops  were  already  under 
the  walls,  and  the  soldiers  were  hoping  for  a  rich  booty 
from  the  pillage  of  the  city ;  they  were  encamped  along 
the  canal  which  conducts  the  water  from  the  Reno  into 
the  city.  The  citizens  had  taken  up  arms  to  defend  them- 
selves, and  had  flooded  the  French  camp  by  opening  a 
sluice,  which  forced  the  enemy  to  retire,  leaving  their 
baggage  and  heavy  artillery  behind  them.  They  were 
furious,  and  bent  on  vengeance  ;  the  city  was  only  saved 
from  being  sacked  by  the  prompt  action  of  the  Pope,  who 
bought  them  off  with  a  present  of  8000  ducats  to  the 
generals  and  10,000  to  the  soldiers.  Thus  the  splendid 
reception,  which  was  accorded  to  him  when  he  entered 
Bologna,  was  well  earned.*  The  triumphal  entry  was  to 
take  place  on  the  Feast  of  S.  Martin. 

But  it  was  not  in  Julius  II.  to  endure  such  a  long  delay. 
"  On  the  loth  of  November,"  says  the  Master  of  Ceremonies, 
"  his  Holiness  commanded  me  to  look  for  a  suitable  and 
safe  residence  for  him  within  the  city.  This  I  found  in 
the  house  which  had  formerly  belonged  to  the  Templars, 
which  was  only  a  stone's  throw  from  the  gate,  and  the 
Pope  took  possession  of  it  at  once,  bringing  only  a  small 
number  of  his  suite   with   him.     He  would   not  listen  to 

*  GUICCIARDINI,  VII.,  C.  I.  ;  Laurentius  Parmenius,  314  seq.  ; 
SiGiSMONDO  de'  Conti,  II.,  354-355.  PARIS  DE  C.RASSIS,  ed.  Frati, 
83,  gives  a  somewhat  different  account,  evidently  coloured  so  as  to 
shew  his  countrymen  to  the  best  advantage.  Cf.  also  Florus,  De 
expedit.  Bonon.,  20  seq. ;  SCHEURL,  Briefbuch,  35,  36, 37  ;  SUGENHEIM, 
396-307  ;  and  GOZZADINI,  Alcuni  avvenimenti,  74  seq. 


ENTRY  OF   THE   POPE   INTO   BOLOGNA.  28 1 

the  dissuasions  of  the  astrologers,  despising  their  science^ 
and  saying,  '  We  will  go  in  in  the  name  of  God.'  Mean- 
while it  became  known  in  the  city  that  the  Pope  was 
within  its  walls,  and  the  ringing  of  bells  and  thunder  of 
cannon  soon  announced  the  news  to  the  whole  country 
round."  * 

The  triumphal  procession  to  San  Petronio,  the  Cathedral 
of  Bologna,  took  place  on  the  nth  November  in  lovely 
summer-like  weather ;  the  roses  were  still  in  bloom.j-  The 
pageant  was  of  unusual  magnificence,  a  perfect  speci- 
men of  the  festive  art  of  the  Renaissance.|  The  Master 
of  Ceremonies,  Paris  de  Grassis,  has  described  all  its 
details  in  his  own  pedantic  fashion ;  §  other  contem- 
poraries, such  as  the  Venetian  Envoy,  Francesco  Albertini, 
and  the  Bolognese  chronicler  Ghirardacci,  have  painted 
it  in  a  broader  style.  ||  Cardinal  Adriano  of  Corneto 
celebrates  it  in  a  Latin  poem.lT  The  Pope's  humanistic 
secretary,  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  gives  a  very  good  descrip- 
tion of  it  in  his  great  historical  work.  "  Thirteen 
triumphal    arches,"   he    says,   *'  were   erected,  bearing   the 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  84-85. 

t  Albertini,  p.  xxii. 

X  On  the  pageantry  and  festal-art  of  the  Renaissance  in  general,  see 
BURCKHARDT,  Cultur,  I.,  143  seq.,  ed.  3. 

§  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  85-96. 

II  Albertini,  pp.  xxi-xxil.  The  Report  of  the  Venetian  Envoy  is 
in  Sanuto,  VI.,  491  seq.  Erasmus,  who  was  present,  gives  no  descrip- 
tion, but  laments  its  pomp.  To  give  greater  weight  to  his  strictures,  he 
says  that  he  had  also  seen  the  entry  of  Julius  II.  into  Rome.  This  is  un- 
true, though  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  50,  ed.  3,  maintains  it;  cf.  Nolhac, 
Erasme  en  Italic,  17.  Ghirardacci's  account  is  in  Lib.  38,  Cod.  768,  of 
the  University  Library,  Bologna.  Cf.  also  Scheurl,  Briefbuch,  34,  39, 
and  Laurentius  Parmenius,  315. 

'^  Cf.  Gebhardt,  Adrian  von  Conieto,  11 4-1 15;  BURCKHARDT,. 
Cultur,  I.,  112,  ed.  3. 


282  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

inscription  in  large  letters:  '  Julius  II.,  our  Liberator  and 
most  beneficent  Father ! '  A  hundred  young  noblemen 
formed  a  cordon  to  keep  the  people  back.  First  came 
a  number  of  horsemen  as  outriders  to  clear  the  way, 
then  the  light  cavalry,  the  infantry  in  glistening  armour, 
the  baggage  of  the  Pope  and  the  Cardinals,  and  finally 
the  bands  of  the  regiments.  These  were  followed  by 
sixteen  Bolognese  and  four  Papal  standard-bearers  with 
their  banners,  the  ten  white  palfreys  of  the  Pope  with 
golden  bridles,  and  lastly  the  officials  of  the  Court.  Next 
to  these  came  the  Envoys,  Duke  Guido  of  Urbino,  the 
Marquess  Francesco  Gonzaga,  Francesco  Maria,  the 
Prefect  of  Rome,  Costantino  Areniti,  the  Duke  of  Achaia 
and  Macedonia,  fourteen  lictors  with  silver  staves  to  keep 
the  crowd  back,  and  the  two  Masters  of  Ceremonies,  the 
iirst  of  whom,  Paris  de  Grassis,  was  the  organiser  of  the 
Avhole  pageant.  The  Papal  Cross  was  carried  by  Carlo 
Rotario ;  he  was  closely  followed  by  forty  of  the  clergy 
with  lighted  candles  and  the  Papal  choir  accompanying  the 
Sacred  Host.  The  Cardinals  walked  immediately  in  front 
of  Julius  II.,  who  was  carried  in  the  Sedia  Gestatoria  ; 
his  purple  cope,  shot  with  gold  thread  and  fastened  across 
the  breast  with  the  formale  pretiosinn  set  with  emeralds 
and  sapphires,  was  a  splendid  work  of  art.  On  his  head 
he  wore  an  unusually  large  mitre  glistening  with  pearls 
and  jewels.  He  was  accompanied  by  his  two  private 
chamberlains,  his  secretary  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  and  his 
physicians,  the  Roman  Mariano  dei  Dossi,  and  the  Sienese 
Arcangelo  dei  Tuti.  He  was  followed  by  the  Patriarchs, 
the  Archbishops  and  Bishops,  the  Protonotary,  the 
ecclesiastical  Envoys,  the  Abbots  and  Generals  of  religious 
orders,  the  Penitentiaries  and  Referendaries.  The  whole 
procession  was  closed  by  a  body  of  the  Papal  guard. 
It  moved  very  slowly,  owing   to   the  immense  concourse 


THE   GOVERNMENT   OF   BOLOGNA   REORGANISED.    283 

of  spectators,  all  decked  in  holiday  garb,  who  had  come 
in  from  the  country  round  to  receive  the  Pope's  bless- 
ing. Gold  and  silver  coins,  struck  for  the  occasion,  were 
scattered  by  servants  amongst  them.  At  the  Cathedral 
the  Pope  first  made  his  act  of  thanksgiving  and  then 
solemnly  blessed  the  people.  It  was  dusk  before  he  got 
back  to  the  palace,  now  attended  by  the  magistrates  of  the 
city,  who  joined  the  procession  after  it  left  the  Cathedral."  * 
The  work  of  reorganising  the  Government  of  the 
city  was  begun  by  Julius  II.  as  soon  as  possible  after 
his  arrival.  "  He  was  anxious  to  make  the  government 
of  the  Church  popular  at  Bologna,  and  for  this  end  he 
confirmed  their  ancient  liberties  and  gave  them  a  new 
constitution  which  left  a  large  measure  of  autonomy  to 
the  municipality,  and  also  considerably  lightened  the 
burden  of  taxation  which  had  pressed  on  them  so  heavily 
of  late."  -j-  The  Council  of  Sixteen  was  abolished,  and 
on  the  17th  of  November  a  Senate,  consisting  of  forty 
members,  chosen  for  the  most  part  from  amongst  the 
best  burgher  families  of  Bologna,  was  appointed  in  its 
place.  This  Senate  was  to  act  as  the  Legate's  Council, 
"  but  was  granted  far  greater  and  more  independent 
powers  by  Julius  II.  than  the  city  had  ever  enjoyed 
under  the  Bentivogli "  ;  and  he  also  diminished  the  taxes. 
"  Pie  wished  to  create  a  really  free  city  which  should  be 
loyal  to  him  out   of  gratitude   for   his  protection."  J     On 

*  SiGISMONDO  de'  Conti,  II.,  358-362.  The  inscription  on  the  coins 
was  :  Bon[onia]  p[er]  Jul[ium]  a  tirano  liberat[a]  ;  cf.  Frati,  Delia 
monete  gettate  al  popolo  nel  solenne  ingresso  in  Bologna  di  Giulio,  II. 
(Bologna,  1885).  See  also  Jahrb.  derPreuss.  Kunstsammlungen,  III.,  44 
seq. 

+  SUGENHEIM,   397.       Cf.   Paris   de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,   99  seq.; 

SlCrSMONDO  DE'  CONTI,  II.,  360  seq. 

X  Ranke,  Rom.  und  Germ.  Volker,  217.  On  the  reduction  of  the 
Taxes,  see  Sanuto,  VI.,  521,  and  Florus,  23. 


284  HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES. 

the  26th  of  November  the  anniversary  of  the  Pope's 
Coronation  was  celebrated  with  great  pomp.  On  this 
occasion,  by  his  special  desire,  his  favourite  nephew, 
Galeotto  della  Rovere,  was  the  celebrant  at  the  High 
Mass. 

Louis  XII.  and  his  minister  d'Amboise  demanded  an 
exorbitant  price  for  the  assistance  they  had  rendered.  In 
addition  to  a  large  payment  in  money,  they  demanded  the 
right  of  appointing  to  benefices  throughout  the  Milanese 
territory,  the  confirmation  of  Cardinal  d'Amboise's  Legation, 
and  the  nomination  of  three  French  Cardinals,  all  near 
relations  of  his.*  The  last  condition  was  the  hardest 
for  the  Pope ;  for  the  Cardinals  strongly  objected  to  this 
increase  of  French  influence  in  the  Sacred  College,  with 
the  consequent  enhancement  of  d'Amboise's  prospect  of 
some  day  obtaining  the  Tiara,  and  the  danger  of  the  Court 
being  transferred  to  Avignon.-j-  This  creation,  the  third  in 
the  reign  of  Julius  II.,  took  place  on  the  i8th  December, 
1 506,  in  a  Secret  Consistory  and  was  not  published  at  first.J 
The  three  Cardinals  were :  Jean  Francois  de  la  Tremoille, 

*  Sanuto,  VI.,  452  ;  GoLDAST,  278  ;  Havemann,  II.,  233. 

+  /did.,  so?- 

X  This  is  the  reason  of  the  variations  in  contemporaneous  statements 
on  this  subject.  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  119,  says:  Die  veneris 
18  (Dec.)  papa  fecit  consistorium  pro  novis  cardinalibus  creandis,  licet 
postea  nihil  fecerit ;  and  133  :  Die  4  Januarii,  1507  ....  creavit  secrete 
cardinales  Franciae  nonnullos.  On  the  other  hand,  a  Report  in  Sanuto, 
VI.,  518,  unfortunately  without  a  proper  date,  says  the  nomination  had 
already  taken  place  in  December.  My  chief  reason  for  beheving  that,  in 
spite  of  Oldoin'S  (III.,  261)  correction,  Ciaconius  is  not  mistaken  and 
that  Cardella,  323,  is  right  in  holding  to  the  year  1 506,  while  I  reject 
the  date  of  14th  Jan.  given  by  Contelorius,  109  (Panvinius,  345,  who 
says  3rd  Sept.,  is  utterly  wrong),  is  that  I  find  i8th  Dec,  1506,  expressly 
mentioned  in  the  official  *Acta  Consist.,  f.  23.  Consistorial  Archives  of 
the  Vatican. 


DISSENSIONS  WITH   LOUIS  XII.  28$ 

Archbishop  of  Auch  ;  Rene  de  Prie,  Bishop  of  Bayeux  ;  and 
Louis  d'Amboise,  Archbishop  of  Alby.  They  were  not 
published  until  the  17th  May,  1507,  after  the  Pope's  return 
to  Rome,  and  at  the  same  time  as  the  nomination  of 
Cardinal  Ximenes  to  the  Sacred  College.* 

In  spite  of  these  concessions  sharp  dissensions,  principally 
on  account  of  the  affairs  of  Genoa,  soon  broke  out  between 
Louis  and  the  Pope.  "  It  was  an  open  secret  in  Rome  that 
d'Amboise  was  working  to  obtain  the  Tiara  at  any  cost, 
while,  on  the  other  hand,  at  the  Court  of  France  every  one 
said  that  the  Pope  was  privately  encouraging  and  even 
helping  the  Genoese  in  their  resistance  to  Louis  XII,"f  In 
the  middle  of  February,  1507,  the  King  said  to  the  Florentine 
Envoy :  "  I  have  sent  word  to  the  Pope  that  if  he  takes 
up  the  cause  of  the  Genoese  I  will  put  Giovanni  Bentivoglio 
back  in  Bologna.  I  have  only  to  write  a  single  letter  in 
order  to  effect  this,  and  Bentivoglio  will  give  me  100,000 
ducats  into  the  bargain.  The  Rovere  are  a  peasant  family  : 
nothing  but  the  stick  at  his  back  will  keep  the  Pope  in 
order."+ 

When  there  could  no  longer  be  any  doubt  that  Louis  XII. 
was  coming  to  Italy,  JuHus  II.  felt  that  it  would  be  better 
to  leave  Bologna  and  so  avoid  a  meeting.  The  French 
King  was  collecting  such  a  large  army  that  it  was  impossible 
to  think  that  its  only  employment  was  to  be  the  reconquest 
of  Genoa.  The  Pope  apprehended  that  there  might  even 
be  personal  danger  for  him  in  remaining  at  Bologna,  and 

*  Cf.  Card.  Gonzaga's  *Letter  to  his  brother,  the  Marquess  of  Mantua, 
dat.  Rome,  17th  May,  1507  (Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua) ;  the  Venetian 
Report  in  Sanuto,  VII.,  82,  and  Costabili's  *Despatch,  dat.  Rome,  20th 
May,  1507.  (State  Archives,  Modena.)  See  also  Scheurl,  Briefbuch, 
23)  39-  On  Card,  de  la  Tremoille,  see  La  Plaque  Barris  in  the  Rev. 
de  Gascogne,  1878. 

t  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  136  ;  Grimm,  I.,  303,  ed.  5. 

X  DeSJARDINS,  II.,  220  ;  cf.  ^ii\  seg. 


286  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

therefore  at  last  decided  on  returning  to  Rome,  to  the  great 
satisfaction  of  his  Court.  On  the  12th  of  February,  1507,  he 
informed  the  Cardinals  in  a  Secret  Consistory  of  his  inten- 
tion. The  Bolognese  were  completely  taken  by  surprise 
when  they  heard  of  this  unexpected  decision,  and  at  first 
extremely  dissatisfied,  as  the  work  of  reorganising  the 
affairs  of  the  city  was  not  by  any  means  concluded.  This 
feeling,  however,  was  soon  dissipated  when  they  found  that 
the  Pope  was  prepared  to  confirm  the  liberties  granted 
to  the  city  by  Nicholas  V.,  and  to  divide  the  executive 
power  between  the  Legate  and  the  Council  of  Forty.* 
Nevertheless  he  had  so  little  confidence  in  the  unruly 
citizens  that  he  ordered  a  new  fort  to  be  built  at  the  Porta 
Galiera.  On  the  20th  of  February  he  laid  its  first  stone. 
The  day  before  this  he  had  appointed  Antonio  Ferreri, 
Legate  of  Bologna ;  an  unfortunate  selection,  as  soon 
appeared.  Cardinal  Leonardo  Grosso  della  Rovere  took 
Ferreri's  place  in  Perugia,  and  was  succeeded  in  Viterbo  by 
Francesco  Alidosi.-f 

On  the  22nd  February,  1507,  as  soon  as  the  Bull  appoint- 
ing the  Council  of  Forty  had  been  published,  the  Pope  left 
the  city  to  the  great  regret  of  the  Bolognese,  and  on  the 
same  day  the  new  Legate  entered  it.J 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  138-142.  Cf.  Sigismondo  de' 
CONTI,  II.,  364,  who  does  not  give  the  real  reason  for  the  Pope's 
departure ;  GOZZADINI,  Alcuni  awenimenti,  76-77. 

t  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  147-148.  Cf.  Sanuto,  VI.,  536, 
551-552  ;  GOZZADINI,  Alcuni  awenimenti,  79  seq.;  *Ghirardacci  for 
the  year  1507,  Cod.  768  of  the  University  Lib.  at  Bologna.  On  the 
laying  of  the  foundation-stone  of  the  fort,  see  Guglielmotti,  I.,  62. 
The  Bull  nominating  A.  Ferreri,  dat.  Bologna,  20th  Feb.,  1507,  which,  as 
far  as  I  know,  has  not  been  printed,  is  in  the  State  Archives,  Bologna. 

X  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  149,  151  seq.;  Sigismondo  de' 
CONTi,  II.,  364  ;  and  *Acta  Consist,  f.  28,  in  the  Consistorial  Archives 
of  the  Vatican. 


RETURN   OF  THE   POPE  TO   ROME.  287 

Julius  II.  Stopped  first  at  Imola  to  make  further  arrange- 
ments for  the  maintenance  of  peace  in  that  city.  He 
then  proceeded  to  Forli  and  Cesena,  again  avoiding  Faenza, 
visited  Porto  Cesenatico,  Sant'  Arcangelo,  and  Urbino,  and 
made  his  way  back  to  Rome  by  Foligno,  Montefalco,  Orto. 
Viterbo,  and  Nepi.*  On  the  27th  of  March,  the  Saturday 
before  Palm  Sunday,  he  reached  the  Tiber  at  Ponte  Molle, 
where  he  was  welcomed  by  a  crowd  of  people.  He  spent 
the  night  in  the  Convent  of  Santa  Maria  del  Popolo.  On 
Palm  Sunday  he  celebrated  High  Mass  in  that  church,  and 
this  was  followed  by  his  triumphal  entry  into  the  city  and 
procession  to  the  Vatican. 

Rome  had  adorned  herself  for  the  occasion  in  that 
curious  mixture  of  Christian  and  Pagan  styles  which 
characterised  the  taste  of  the  period.  The  streets  were  pro- 
fusely decorated  with  hangings  and  garlands,  and  bristling 
with  inscriptions  in  praise  of  the  victor.  Triumphal  arches, 
covered  with  legends,  were  erected  in  all  directions  ;  some 
of  these,  as  for  instance  the  one  put  up  by  Cardinal  Costa 
on  the  Campo  Marzo,  were  also  decorated  with  statues  and 
pictures.  Opposite  the  Castle  of  St.  Angelo  was  a  chariot 
with  four  white  horses  and  containing  ten  genii  with  palms 
in  their  hands,  welcoming  the  Pope;  on  the  prow  of  the 
chariot  a  globe  rested,  from  which  sprang  an  oak  bearing 
gilt  acorns  and  rising  to  the  height  of  the  Church  of  S'^ 
Maria  Traspontina.  In  front  of  the  Vatican  a  copy  of  the 
Arch  of  Constantine  was  erected  representing  the  whole 
history  of  the  expedition.  By  order  of  the  Legate,  Cardinal 
S.    Giorgio,  an    altar   was    prepared    before  every    church 

*  Paris  DE  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  152-169  ;  Sanuto,  VI.,  553  ;  *Acta 
Consist.,  loc.  cit.  On  the  27th  Feb.,  1507,  Julius  took  Alberto  Pio  of 
Carpi  and  his  State  under  his  special  protection,  an  act  which  was 
directed  against  the  Duke  of  Ferrara.  See  Mem.  Stor.  di  Carpi,  II., 
331  seq.;  SEMPER,  Carpi,  7. 


288  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

along  the  route  of  the  procession,  attended  by  the  clergy 
and  choir,  that  the  religious  element  might  not  be  eclipsed 
by  all  the  worldly  pomp.  An  eye-witness  says  that  this 
triumphal  entry  was  even  more  magnificent  than  the  coro- 
nation. Twenty-eight  Cardinals  accompanied  the  Pope,  the 
procession  took  three  hours  to  pass  from  the  gate  of  the 
city  to  S.  Peter's.  The  Master  of  Ceremonies,  Paris  da 
Grassis,  says  that  Julius  knelt  longer  than  was  his  wont  at 
the  tomb  of  the  Apostles,  and  as  he  entered  his  apart- 
ment he  said :  "  Since  we  have  returned  in  safety,  we  all 
have  indeed  good  cause  to  chant  the  Te  Deum."  * 

In  truth  Julius  II.  had  achieved  a  great  success.  It  was 
enthusiastically  celebrated  by  the  poets  of  the  time.f  In 
his  address  in  the  Consistory,  Cardinal  Raffaele  Riario  said : 
"  When  your  Holiness  first  announced  your  project  of 
bringing  Bologna  back  to  a  true  obedience  under  the 
Holy  See,  the  excellence  of  the  object  that  you  had  in 
view  was  plain  to  us  all.  Hence  we  rejoice  with  our  whole 
hearts  now  that  this  noble  and  glorious  end  is  attained. 
The  success  of  your  Holiness  has  immensely  increased  the 
honour  and  consideration  in  which  the  Holy  See  is  held, 
and  covered  your  own  name  with  a  glory  that  will  never 
perish.  Your  Holiness  has  deserved  to  be  ranked  among 
those  illustrious  Popes  who,  casting  aside  all  personal  con- 
siderations or  family  interests,  proposed  no  other  end  to 


*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  172-176.  Cf.  Albertini,  pp.  xxii- 
XXIII ;  Sanuto,  VII.,  43,  63-65.  (Many  of  the  inscriptions  are  very 
characteristic  of  the  period.)  Cf.  also  Laur.  Parmenius,  316,  and  the 
*Report  of  Giov.  Gonzaga,  Rome,  28th  March,  and  that  of  Cardinal 
Gonzaga  of  the  29th  March  (see  Appendix,  N.  73),  in  the  Gonzaga 
Archives,  Mantua,  and  in  Appendix,  N.  72,  Costabili's  *Report,  the  28th 
March,  1507.     State  Archives,  Modena. 

t  Fr.  Ambrosius,  Comment,  de  rebus  gestis  Bapt.  Mantuani,  So, 
Cf.  Piper,  Mythologie,  I.,  366  seq. 


ADDRESS   OF   CARDINAL   RIARIO.  289 

themselves  but  the  care  of  preserving  and  augmenting  the 
authority  and  majesty  of  the  Holy  See."* 

*  *Sicut  ab  initio  S.  V.  fecit  verbum  de  rebus  Bononiensibus  compro- 
batum  fuit,  nihil  posse  praestantius  cogitari  quam  urbem  banc  redigere 
ad  veram  obedientiam  Sedis  apostolicae,  ita  nunc  toto  corde  gaudere  et 
exsultare  debemus,  quod  S.  V.  consecuta  fuerit  ilium  optimum  et  glori- 
osum  finem,  quem  in  animo  suo,  Deo  et  justitia  inspirantibus  praecon- 
ceperat.  S.  V.  mirum  in  modum  corroboravit  et  ampliavit  existima- 
tionem  status  ecclesiastici  et  auxit  immortalitatem  famae  et  nominis  sui 
ita,  ut  merito  jam  fuerit  sortita  locurti  inter  illos  clarissimos  pontifices, 
qui  posthabitis  humanis  affectibus,  etiam  sui  proprii  sanguinis,  nullum 
alium  finem  sibi  proponebant  quam  solam  curam  et  vigilantiam  conserv- 
andi  et  amplificandi  auctoritatem  et  majestatem  Apostolicae  sedis.  *Con- 
sistorialia  Raph.  Riarii  card.  S.  Georgii,  Cod.  J.  III.,  89,  f.  219,  in  the 
Chigi  Library,  Rome. 


VOL   VL 


CHAPTER  IV. 

Changes  in  the  Political  Situation  in  Europe  between 
1507  and  1509. — Julius  II.  threatened  by  Spain  and 
France. — The  Venetians  seek  to  Humiliate  the  Papacy 
BOTH  Ecclesiastically  and  Politically.  —  Resistance  of 
Julius  II.  —  League  of  Cambrai  and  War  against 
Venice.— The  Pope's  Victory. 

The  rapid  subjugation  of  two  such  important  cities  as 
Bologna  and  Perugia  to  the  government  of  the  Church 
had  immensely  enhanced  the  prestige  of  Julius  II.  in  the 
eyes  of  his  contemporaries ;  *  but  he  had  no  notion  of 
resting  on  his  laurels,  knowing  how  far  he  still  was  from 
the  goal  which,  from  the  first  moment  of  his  elevation,  he 
had  proposed  to  himself.  The  "  largest  and  by  far  the  most 
difficult  portion  of  his  task,  the  wresting  from  Venice  of 
the  towns  and  territories  belonging  to  the  States  of  the 
Church  which  she  had  appropriated,  lay  still  before  him."  f 

The  settlement  of  the  year  1505  was  of  such  a  nature 
as,  in  the  words  of  one  of  Julius  II.'s  bitterest  opponents,  to 
set  a  seal  on  the  helpless  condition  of  the  Papacy.J  Even 
a  less  energetic  ruler  than  this  Pope  would  have  been  driven 
to  strive  for  the  evacuation  of  the  Romagna. 

But  meanwhile  other  events  occurred  which  forced  all 
Julius  II.'s  plans  for  repelling  the  usurpations  of  the  Vene- 

*  Villari,  Machiavelli,  I.,  436. 

+  Sugenheim,  397, 

X  Brosch  in  .Sybels  Hist.  Zeitschr.,  XXXVII.,  304. 


ATTITUDE   OF   FRANCE   AND   SPAIN.  29I 

tians  into  the   background.     He    found   himself  seriously 
threatened  by  both  France  and  Spain. 

The  first  dispute  between  the  Pope  and  King  Ferdinand 
of  Spain  arose  out  of  the  suzerainty  of  the  Holy  See  over 
Naples  and  the  feudal  dues  ;  to  this,  others  were  soon  added 
by  the  encroachments  of  the  King  on  the  right  of  the 
Church  in  the  appointments  to  Bishoprics  in  Castile.*  The 
tension  produced  by  their  differences  went  on  increasing, 
although  on  the  17th  May,  1507,  Julius  had  bestowed  the 
Red-hat  on  the  King's  trusted  minister  Ximenes,  the  dis- 
tinguished Archbishop  of  Toledo,  who  was  also  an  ardent 
advocate  of  reform.f  When,  in  June,  1507,  Ferdinand  was 
on  his  way  from  Naples  to  Savona,  Julius  hastened  to 
Ostia  in  hopes  of  obtaining  an  interview  ;  but  the  King 
discourteously  sailed  past  Ostia  without  stopping.^  At 
Savona,  towards  the  end  of  June,  he  met  Louis  XH.,  and 
there  a  reconciliation  between  the  two  Kings  took  place. § 

*  SiGlSMONDO  DE'  CONTi,  II.,  324,  332  ;  RoSSBACH,  Carvajal,  86; 
Lanz,  Einl.,  96. 

t  Gomez,  1003;  Hefele,  Ximenes,  255.  In  the  *Acta  Consist.,  f. 
24  (Consistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican),  the  date  of  Ximenes'  nomina- 
tion is  wanting,  but  it  can  be  determined  with  certainty  from  the  Brief  of 
Julius  II.,  given  by  GOMEZ,  loc.  cit.  The  subject  of  Card.  Ximenes'  zeal 
in  the  cause  of  reform  will  be  dealt  with  further  on.  Cf.  Hefele,  and  also 
HoFLER,  Katastrophe,  26  seq. 

X  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  140-142. 

§  What  passed  at  this  meeting  at  Savona  is  not  yet  fully  known  :  Lanz, 
Einl.,  89  seq.;  Lehmann,  4  ;  Brosch,  142  ;  and,  recently,  G.  FiLIPPI, 
II  convegno  di  Savona  (Savona,  1890),  who  cites  many  Florentine 
Ambassadorial  Reports,  have  cleared  up  a  great  deal,  but  not  all.  There 
seems  to  be  no  doubt  that  an  alliance  against  Venice  was  seriously  dis- 
cussed, and  that  in  a  certain  sense  the  ground  was  prepared  for  the 
League  of  Cambrai.  Cf.  new  particulars  drawn  from  the  Simancas 
Archives  by  Maulde  in  the  Rev.  d'Hist.  Dipl.,  IV.,  583-590,  and 
FiLippi  in  his  treatise,  Ancora  del  convegno  di  Savona,  in  the  Atti  e 
Mem.  d.  Soc.  Stor.  Savonese,  II.,  729  seq.     Still  it  is  by  no  means  certain 


292  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

The  disproportionate  strength  of  the  army  sent  by  the 
French  King  to  quell  the  rebellion  in  Genoa  made  the 
understanding  between  the  two  great  powers  appear  all  the 
more  ominous  for  the  Pope,  since  it  seemed  to  point  to 
some  further  design.  Another  remarkable  thing  was  the 
number  of  Cardinals  at  his  Court.  First,  there  were  the  three 
French  Cardinals  (including  d'Amboise),  then  the  Cardinal 
d'Aragona,  who  had  been  on  the  French  side  ever  since  the 
death  of  Alexander  VI.,  and  Cardinal  Sanseverino,  who 
afterwards  lapsed  into  schism.*  In  May  1507,  Julius  II. 
had  sent  Cardinal  Antonio  Pallavicino,  a  Genoese,  to  the 
King's  camp  and  he  too  was  now  in  Savona.  The  object 
of  this  Legation,  according  to  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  was  to 
persuade  Louis  to  deal  leniently  with  the  Genoese,  and  to 
disband  his  army.-j-     The  magnitude  of  the  French  force 

that  the  agreement  of  the  30th  June,  1507,  contains  the  whole  of  the 
arrangements  entered  into  by  the  two  parties,  and  Maulde  does  not  con- 
ceal from  himself  that  he  is  not  in  a  position  to  furnish  an  exhaustive 
statement  of  the  results  of  the  interview.  Until  some  new  documents 
nave  been  discovered,  we  cannot  get  beyond  this. 

*  Lehmann,  3. 

t  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  II.,  375  ;  Sanuto,  VII.,  73,  76,  82,  88, 
94,  96,  98,  TOO,  104,  113,  114,  119,  132,  133.  The  nomination  of  Palla- 
vicino as  Legate  to  the  French  Court  followed  in  a  Consistory  on  the  5th 
May,  1 507  ;  cf.  ^Cardinal  Gonzaga's  Letter  to  his  brother,  dated  Rome, 
5th  May,  1507  (Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua),  and  *Costabili's  Report, 
Rome,  6th  May,  1507.  (State  Archives,  Modena.)  Cardinal  Pallavicini 
sailed  on  the  19th  May  (*Intravimus  mare  cum  max.  difficultate,  in  the 
Itinerarium.  On  the  20th  the  Pope  wrote  the  Brief  to  Louis  XII.  given 
in  Appendix,  N.  75),  and  after  his  return  on  the  i8th  Aug.  read  a  Report 
of  his  mission  in  Consistory.  He  died  soon  after  (Sanuto,  VII.,  150). 
The  account  of  the  journey,  etc.,  probably  by  some  one  who  had  accom- 
panied him,  is  in  ^Itinerarium  Card'is  S.  Praxedis  ad  Ludovicum  XII. 
in  Cod.  Borghese,  I.,  128,  f.  1-25,  and  Bibl.  Pia,  61,  f.  1 17-149.  (Secret 
Archives  of  the  Vatican.)  No  information  in  regard  to  the  purport  of 
the  Cardinal's  mission  is  to  be  obtained  from  this  document.  (Jean 
D'Auton,   Chroniques,   ed.  Jacob,  IV.,   105,   admits  his  ignorance  on 


LOUIS   XII.   AND   THE   BENTIVOGLT.  293 

had  aroused  alarm  in  Germany  as  well  as  in  Italy,  as  we 
see  from  the  resolutions  of  the  Diet  of  Constance. 

According  to  the  statements  made  by  Pallavicino  to  the 
Florentine  Envoy  in  Savona,  his  instructions  were,  first,  to 
defend  the  Pope  against  the  false  accusation  of  having 
invited  Maximilian  to  invade  Italy,  and  here,  it  seems,  he 
was  successful.  In  the  second  place,  he  was  to  ask  that  the 
Bentivogli  should  be  delivered  over  to  Julius  II.,  and  here 
he  failed.  Louis  XII.  denied  that  Giovanni  and  Alessandro 
Bentivoglio  were  implicated  in  the  plot  against  Bologna; 
and  said  he  could  not  in  honour  give  them  up.*  From 
expressions  let  fall  by  one  of  the  Cardinals  who  was  present 
it  appeared  that  Pallavicino  had  several  long  conversations 

this  point ;  cf.  Knuth,  29.)  It  merely  describes  the  Legate's  journey, 
and  the  ceremonial  observed  at  his  reception  by  Louis  XII.,  and  at  the 
meeting  of  the  two  Kings  at  Savona.  In  politics  it  keeps  entirely  to  ex- 
ternals : — f.  131:  Milan,  7th  June  :  Legatus  et  Rothomagensis  habuerunt 
colloquium  secrete  ;  f.  132  :  Milan,  loth  June  :  Reception  of  the  Legate 
by  the  King.  Rex  dedit  legato  dexteram  et  iverunt  in  cameram  regis 
cum  dictis  cardinalibus  [Rothomag.,  Narbon.,  Esten.],  et  secrete  sunt 
loquuti  per  spatium  duarum  horarum  ;  f.  137  :  Savona,  25th  June  :  Legatus 
et  Rothomagensis  loquuti  sunt  secrete  cum  rege  per  duas  horas.  The 
occasion  of  this  was  the  arrival  of  a  messenger  from  Rome  with  the  Red- 
hats  for  Cardinals  Auximanus  and  Baiocensis,  the  first  of  whom  had 
died  in  Milan  a  few  days  before,  while  the  second  was  lying  seriously  ill 
in  the  same  place.  Finita  loquutione  cum  rege  legatus  et  Rotho- 
magensis ....  venerunt  ad  cameram  Rothomagensis,  in  qua  ambo 
secrete  sunt  loquuti  per  horam.  De  quibus  materiis  loquuti  sunt,  non 
est  meum  quaerere  ;  f.  147  :  Savona,  ist  July  :  The  two  Kings  invited 
the  Legate  to  come  to  them,  quia  erant  secum  loquuturi  ....  Legatus 
ivit  ad  cameram,  ubi  reges  erant  ;  per  duas  horas  stetit  cum  illis  et 
cardinah  Rothomagensi.  The  Itinerarium  then  describes  the  departure 
of  the  King  of  Spain  from  Savona  on  the  2nd  July,  that  of  the  King  of 
France  on  the  3rd ;  the  embarkation  of  the  Legate  on  the  7th  of  that 
month,  and  his  reception  in  the  Consistory  on  the  i8th  Aug. 

*  Florentine  Report,  dated  Savona,  4th  July,  1507,  in  the  Atti  d.  Soc. 
Sav.,  II.,  19-20. 


294  HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES. 

with  Louis  XIL  and  d'Amboise,  in  the  course  of  which  he 
met  with  but  scant  courtesy,  especially  from  the  latter.* 

In  connection  with  the  meeting  of  the  Kings  at  Savona, 
some  things  soon  transpired  which  led  the  Pope  to  appre- 
hend that  an  attack  on  his  spiritual  power  was  contemplated. 
Ferdinand  himself  admitted  that  the  reform  of  the  Church 
had  been  discussed.  It  is  also  certain  that  here  again,  as 
formerly,  he  encouraged  d'Amboise  in  his  aspirations  after 
the  Tiara.f 

Guicciardini  says  that  Julius  II.,  in  his  extreme  need, 
turned  for  help  to  Maximilian.  This  is  not  confirmed  by 
any  recent  investigations.  "  On  the  contrary,  it  is  demon- 
strable that  the  primary  object  of  his  policy  was  to  effect  a 
reconciliation  between  Maximilian  and  Louis  XII.  and  to 
unite  their  forces  against  Venice.     From  the  end  of  the 

*  The  Itinerarlum  mentioned  above  gives  a  similar  impression.  In 
f.  1 39  it  says  of  d'Amboise  :  ipse  est  vere  rex  Franciae.  Secret  Archives 
of  the  Vatican. 

t  Lehmann,  4,  who  also  refers  to  Ferdinand's  menace  in  May  1 508, 
that  he  would  withdraw  aU  his  States  from  the  allegiance  of  the  Holy  See. 
The  letter  which  contains  this  threat  is  addressed  to  the  Viceroy  of 
Naples,  and  in  it  he  is  desired,  without  more  ado,  to  hang  any  one  who 
brings  a  Papal  Bull  which  has  not  received  the  Royal  placet  into  the 
kingdom.  It  was  first  published  by  F.  DE  Quevedo,  Obras,  XI.  (Madrid, 
1792-94),  3-9,  and  afterwards  in  the  Lettres  de  Louis  XIL,  L,  109-114. 
B.  de  la  Fuente  erroneously  supposes  this  letter  to  be  a  Protestant 
invention  of  the  end  of  the  i6th  Century.  The  text  leaves  no  doubt  as  to 
its  origin,  and  the  contents  perfectly  correspond  with  Ferdinand's  policy 
and  with  the  peculiar  views  of  his  royal  rights  which  he  entertained. 
Ferdinand  simply  vetoed  Papal  Bulls  again  and  again.  On  the  31st 
Aug.,  1509,  he  issued  a  decree  punishing  with  death  any  person  who 
should  obtain,  either  from  the  Pope  or  his  Legate,  any  Bull  or  document 
against  the  Spanish  Inquisition.  Llorente,  L,  368-369  ;  Gams,  III., 
128  seq.^  140-142.  Ferdinand  and  his  Envoys  {cf.  Prescott,  II.,  201) 
were  perfectly  indefatigable  in  Rome  in  demanding  concessions,  espe- 
cially in  regard  to  money  matters.  Cf.  Costabili's  *Report,  Rome,  15th 
Aug.,  1 508.     State  Archives,  Modena. 


MISSION   OF   CARVAJAL   TO   THE   EMPEROR.  295 

year  1 506  Costantino  Areniti  had  been  working  by  his  orders 
in  this  direction."* 

The  Pope's  anxiety  in  regard  to  Maximilian's  proposed 
visit  to  Rome  is  a  clear  proof  how  far  he  then  was  from 
thinking  of  applying  to  him  for  assistance.-]-  When  in 
the  Summer  of  1507  it  was  announced  on  all  sides  that 
Maximilian  was  certainly  coming  to  Italy,  Julius  resolved 
to  send  a  Cardinal  as  Legate  to  Germany.|  He  selected  a 
man  who  was  one  of  Maximilian's  most  faithful  friends  at 
the  Roman  Court,  Cardinal  Bernardino  Carvajal.  Furnished 
with  ample  powers,  the  Cardinal  left  Rome  on  the  5  th  of 
August,  1507,  and  passing  through  Siena  met  the  King  at 
Innsbruck  in  the  middle  of  September.^ 

Carvajal  was  charged  to  endeavour  to  dissuade  the  King 
from  coming  to  Italy  with  an  army,  and  to  propose  instead 
that  he  should  be  crowned  Emperor  in  Germany  by  two 
Cardinals  who  would  be  sent  for  this  purpose.  ||     Besides 

*  Ulmann,  II.,  306,  following  Brosch,  138,  332  seq. 

t  Ulmann,  Max.  I.  Absichten,  lo-ii,  shews  what  pains  France  took 
to  increase  the  Pope's  distrust  of  Maximilian.  The  King  had  already  in 
a  Letter  to  the  Pope  in  Aug.  1506,  announced  his  intention  of  making  an 
armed  pilgrimage  to  Rome.  (See,  in  Appendix  50,  Arsago's  *Letter  of 
15th  Aug.,  1506.)     State  Archives,  Mantua. 

X  On  the  8th  July,  1 507,  Card.  Gonzaga  wrote  to  his  brother,  *Si  tiene 
per  certo  la  venuta  del  Re  de  Romani.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

§  Sanuto,  VII.,  132,  says  on  the  loth  ;  Rossbach,  92,  the  8th  ;  the 
*Acta  Consist.,  f.  24,  the  4th  Aug.  (Consistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican.) 
The  authentic  information  which  we  seek  for  in  vain  in  Raynaldus,  ad 
an.  1507,  n.  8,  is  to  be  found  in  the  *Diarium  of  Paris  de  Grassis,  16 
Julii,  1 507 :  Cardinalis  s.  Crucis  D.  Bern.  Carvaglianus  creatus  est 
legatus  ad  partes  Germaniae  obviam  Imperatori  ^enturo  in  Italiam. — 
4  Augusti  fuit  consistorium  publicum.  The  Pope  offered  the  usual 
prayers  for  the  new  Legate,  who  then  retired  to  the  Convent  of  S'^  Maria 
del  Popolo.  Ibi  fecit  prandium  et  in  aurora  sequenti  arripuit  iter.  Cod- 
Lat  140,  f  113a,  ii4bj  of  the  Court  and  State  Library,  Munich. 

II  Machiavelli,  Opere,  ed.  Passerini,  V.,  247,  and  Sanuto,  VIl^ 


296  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

this,  he  was  to  make  two  other  propositions  to  the  King, 
one  for  a  universal  League  amongst  all  Christian  Princes 
against  the  Turks,  and  the  other  for  a  special  alliance 
between  him  and  the  Pope  against  Venice.  The  first 
proposal  was  rejected  but  the  second  was  accepted.*  This 
success,  however,  was  of  little  use  to  Julius  II.  as  long  as 
Maximilian  persisted  in  rejecting  all  overtures  for  a  recon- 
ciliation with  France.  Carvajal,  however,  remained  with  the 
King,  and  did  not  relinquish  his  purpose.  When  he  found 
that  the  Venetians  obstinately  persisted  in  refusing  to  allow 
him  to  pass  through  their  territory  on  his  way  to  Rome, 
Maximilian  began  to  lend  a  more  favourable  ear  to  the 
persuasions  of  the  Legate.  "In  February,  1508,  he  made 
secret  overtures  for  an  offensive  and  defensive  alliance 
against  Venice  to  the  Court  of  France,  which  corresponded 
in  all  essentials  with  the  future  League  of  Cambrai."f 

At  this  time  Maximilian  did  a  thing  which  was  com- 
pletely at  variance  with  all  previous  mediaeval  custom.^ 
On  the  4th  February,  1 508,  through  his  counsellor  Matthaeus 
Lang,  Bishop  of  Gurk,  he  solemnly  proclaimed  in  the 
Cathedral  of  Trent  that  he  had  assumed  the  title  of 
"  Emperor-elect  of  Rome."  He  took  pains  to  explain, 
however,  in  a  letter  to  the  Empire,  and  by  his  Envoys  at 
Rome,  that  this  proceeding  was  not  in  any  way  intended  to 

119;  Brosch,  138,  145;  Ulmann,  II.,  333.  Hergenrother's 
counter  arguments,  VIII.,  444-445,  do  not  seem  to  me  convincing. 

*  So  says  ZURITA,  VI.,  1 52  seq.,  who  had  trustworthy  information  and 
whose  statement  Brosch  has  overlooked.  Cf.  Rossbach,  Carvajal,  93  seq. 
SiGlSMONDO  de'  Conti'S  account,  II.,  38,  is  incomplete.  The  Briefs  in 
Rayn ALDUS,  ad  an.  1507,  n.  9,  and  the  *Brief  of  12th  Feb.,  1508,  printed 
in  Appendix,  N.  76,  refer  to  the-  Crusade.     Kreisarchiv  in  Wiirzburg. 

t  Ulmann,  II.,  334-335 ;  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  154  seq.^  338  seq. 

\  BryCE,  in  his  Holy  Roman  Empire,  quite  oversteps  the  mark  in 
saying  that  the  assumption  of  this  title  signified  "  the  separation  of 
Germany  from  Rome." 


BRIEF   OF   JULIUS   II.   TO   MAXIMILIAN.  297 

contravene  the  Pope's  rights  in  regard  to  his  Coronation. 
On  the  contrary,  he  was  as  determined  as  ever  to  conne  to 
Rome  to  be  crowned  there  by  Julius  II.  as  soon  as  he  had 
conquered  the  Venetians.*  The  explanation  thus  given, 
safe-guarding  the  right  of  the  Holy  See,  enabled  Julius  II. 
to  declare  himself  perfectly  satisfied,  as.  in  fact  he  had 
reason  to  be,  with  an  act  which,  at  any  rate,  put  off  for  a 
time  the  dreaded  visit  to'  Rome.  On  the  12th  of  February, 
1508,  he  addressed  a  Brief  to  "Maximilian,  Emperor-elect 
of  Rome,"  in  which  he  recognised  and  praised  the  correct- 
ness of  his  attitude  towards  the  Holy  See,  and  added  that, 
as  the  Church  already  prayed  for  him  on  Good  Friday  as 
Roman  Emperor,  he  was  fully  justified  in  assuming  the 
title.  The  remaining  contents  of  this  Brief  lead  us  to  infer 
that  the  Pope's  affability  was  not  quite  unmotived.  It  im- 
pressed upon  Maximilian  the  expediency  of  coming  to 
terms  with  France,  and  of  making  his  visit  to  Rome  with- 
out the  accompaniment  of  an  army.-j- 

*  Cf.  the  Report  in  Forschungen  z.  Deutsch.  Gesch.,1.,  71 ;  in  Janssen, 
Reichscorrespondenz,  II.,  742-744  ;  and  Maximilian's  Letters  in  Datt,  De 
pace  publica,  568-570.  Cf.  Huber,  III.,  368,  and  Mittheil.  d.  (Ester- 
reich.  Instituts,  XL,  44.  See  also  the  Riporto  di  uno  esplorator  in 
Sanuto,  VII. ,  293-295,  which  also  says  that  Card.  Carvajal  remained 
at  Botzen.  Cf.  also  Ranke,  Deutsch.  Gesch.,  VI.,  90  seq.;  Tommasini, 
Machiavelli,  I.,  411  seq.;  Heidenheimer,  P.  Martyr,  173  seq.;  and 
ROSSBACH,  Carvajal,  95,  who  gives  Meran  instead  of  Botzen.  A  letter 
of  grace  despatched  by  him  on  4th  Feb.,  1507  (st.  fl.),  from  Botzen,  and 
preserved  in  the  Archives  of  the  monastery  at  Gries,  proves  that  he  was 
certainly  staying  there  on  that  day.  Kiem,  who,  in  the  Zeitschr.  d. 
Ferdinandeums  (1892),  334  seq..,  publishes  a  portion  of  this  letter,  puts  it 
by  mistake  in  the  year  1 507,  instead  of  1 508.  Carvajal  did  not  come 
back  from  Germany  until  the  12th  Jan.,  1 509.  *Acta  Consist.,  f.  24.  Con- 
sistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

t  See  the  *Brief  in  Appendix,  N.  76,  after  a  copy  in  the  Kreisarchiv  in 
Wiirzburg,  and  also  in  Appendix,  N.  'j'j  and  78,  Card.  Gonzaga's  *Letters 
of  the  1 2th  and  24th  Feb.,  1508,  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua, 


298  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

On  the  day  after  hi's  proclamation,  Maximilian  com- 
menced hostilities  against  Venice,  and  his  troops  at  first 
achieved  some  successes.  On  the  ist  of  March  he  wrote 
in  the  highest  spirits  to  the  Elector  of  Saxony :  "  The 
Venetians  portray  their  Lion  with  two  feet  in  the  sea, 
one  on  the  plain  country,  and  one  on  the  mountains.  We 
have  all  but  conquered  the  foot  on  the  mountains  ;  one  claw 
only  holds  fast,  which  will  be  ours,  with  the  help  of  God,  in 
a  week.  Then  we  hope  to  tackle  the  one  on  the  plain."* 
But  in  a  very  short  time  the  tables  were  turned.  Supported 
to  the  great  annoyance  of  Julius  II.,f  by  the  French,  the 
Venetians  carried  everything  before  them.  The  victorious 
army  overran  Tivoli  and  Istria ;  in  May  they  conquered 
Trieste  and  Fiume,  and  by  the  beginning  of  June  they  had 
penetrated  into  Carniola.  On  the  5th  June  the  Emperor 
was  only  too  glad  to  conclude,  through  Carvajal's  mediation 
a  truce  for  three  years,  which  left  to  Venice  nearly  every- 
thing that  her  arms  had  won.|  The  Venetians,  quite 
unaware  of  the  dangers  of  the  path  they  were  treading,  were 
full  of  joy  and  triumph. 

The    land-hunger    of    the    Republic    is    described    by 
Machiavelli  in  his  verses : 

San  Marco  impetuoso,  ed  importune, 

Credendosi  aver  sempre  il  vento  in  poppa, 
Non  si  cur6  di  rovinare  ognuno ; 
Ne'  vide  come  la  potenza  troppa 
Era  nociva  :  e  come  il  me'  sarebbe 
Tener  sott'  acqua  la  coda  e  la  groppa. 

Asino  d'Oro.  § 
*  Ranke,  Deutsche  Geschichte,  I.,  176,  ed.  2. 

+  Cf.  Ludovico  da  Campo  Sampiero's  *Letter  to   the  Marquess  of 
Mantua,  dated  Rome,  17th  March,  1508.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

J  Cf.  Ruber,  III.,  370  seq.,  where  all  the  literature  on  the  subject  is 
carefully  indicated  and  criticised. 

§  Machiavelli,  V.,  400.     Cf.  also  Tommasini,  Machiavelli,  I.,  296. 
See  also  the  complaints  of  the  Florentine  chronicler,  Landucci,  291. 


CONCLUSION   OF   THE   LEAGUE  OF  CAMBRAL        299 

In  consequence  of  this  "  land-hunger,"  by  this  time  there 
was  hardly  one  of  the  great  powers  which  had  not  something 
to  demand  back  from  the  Republic,  and  this  it  was  which 
brought  about  her  ruin.  Greedily  anxious  to  come  to 
terms  with  the  Emperor,  the  Venetians,  in  their  haste,  had 
taken  no  heed  of  the  interests  of  their  ally.  This  produced 
a  complete  revolution  in  the  policy  of  France. 

Towards  the  close  of  November,  Maximilian's  confidential 
counsellor  Matthseus  Lang,  one  English  and  one  Spanish 
Ambassador,  Louis  XIL's  all-powerful  minister  d'Amboise, 
and  the  Emperor's  daughter  Margaret  met  together  at 
Cambrai. 

On  the  loth  of  December,  1508,  the  compact  known  as 
the  League  of  Cambrai  was  here  concluded.  The  only 
portion  of  it  that  was  destined  for  publication  was  the 
treaty  of  peace  between  the  Emperor  and  the  King  of 
France,  which,  among  other  things,  bestowed  Milan  as  a  fief 
on  Louis  Xn.  and  his  descendants.  The  object  of  the 
League  was  ostensibly  the  Crusade  against  the  Turks ;  but 
before  this  could  be  commenced  Venice  must  be  constrained 
to  give  back  her  spoils.  A  second  and  secret  treaty,  to 
which  the  Pope  and  the  King  of  Spain  might  be  parties  if 
they  chose,  was  drawn  up,  binding  the  contracting  powers 
to  oblige  the  Republic  to  restore  all  the  cities  of  the 
Romagna  to  the  Pope ;  the  Apulian  sea-board  to  the  King 
of  Spain  ;  Roveredo,  Verona,  Padua,  Vicenza,  Treviso,  and 
Friuli  to  the  Emperor ;  and  Brescia,  Bergamo,  Cremo,  Cre- 
mona, Chiara  d'Adda,  and  all  fiefs  belonging  to  Milan  to 
the  King  of  France.  If  the  King  of  Hungary  joined  the 
League  he  was  to  get  back  all  his  former  possessions  in 
Dalmatia  and  Croatia  ;  equally  the  Duke  of  Savoy  was  to 
recover  Cyprus,  and  the  Duke  of  Ferrara  and  the  Marquess 
of  Mantua  all  the  territories  wrested  from  them  by  the 
Venetians  if  they  too  joined  the  League.     France  was  to 


300  HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES. 

declare  war  on  the  ist  of  April,  the  Pope  was  to  lay  the  ban 
of  the  Church  and  an  Interdict  on  Venice,  and  to  call  on 
Maximilian,  as  the  lieutenant  of  the  Holy  See,  to  come  to 
his  assistance.  Thus,  at  the  end  of  the  forty  days,  the 
Emperor  would  be  released  from  his  treaty  obligations 
towards  the  Republic,  and  able  to  join  the  French.* 

Even  down  to  the  present  day  Julius  II.  continues  to  be 
blamed  in  unmeasured  terms  for  having  brought  the 
foreigner  into  Italy.  As  a  matter  of  fact  at  this  decisive 
moment  the  Pope  held  back,  and  "  it  was  Venice  herself 
who  drove  him  into  joining  the  League,  which  he  cordially 
disliked,  angry  as  he  was  with  the  Republic.  Pie  knew 
France  and  her  King  well,  and  thoroughly  mistrusted  both, 
and  this  feeling  was  amply  reciprocated  by  Louis  XII.  and 
d'Amboise,  even  while  the  League  of  Cambrai,  in  which  no 
Papal  plenipotentiary  took  part,  was  being  negotiated."t 

Julius  II.  did  not  join  the  League  till  the  23rd  March, 
1509,  after  he  had  exhausted  all  other  means  of  inducing 
Venice  to  acknowledge  his  temporal  and  spiritual  authority. 
In  her  dealings  with  Rome  the  foresight  and  penetration 
which  usually  characterised  the  policy  of  the  Republic 
seemed  to  have  completely  forsaken  her  ;  she  appeared  not 
to  have  the  faintest  presentiment  of  the  storm  which  her 
high-handed  conduct  was  conspiring  to  raise  up  against 
her. 

It   was    not    only  in    her    policy  in  the  Romagna  that 

*  DUMONT,  IV.,  I,  109  seq.  ;  Le  Glay,  I.,  225  seq.  ;  Lanz,  Ein- 
leitung,  93  seq.  ;  HUBER,  III.,  374  seq.  Cf.  also  Arch.  St.  Ital.,  3  Serie, 
IV.,  I,  126  seq. 

t  Reumont,  III.,  I,  26.  CJ.  GuicciARDiNi,  VIII.,  c.  I.;  Have- 
MANN,  II.,  276,  280;  and  Ulmann,  II.,  365.  The  Brief  addressed  by 
Julius  II.  to  d'Amboise  on  the  28th  Dec,  1508  (in  MOLINI,  I.,  54-55), 
merely  congratulates  him  on  the  conclusion  of  peace  between  France  and 
the  Emperor  ;  it  is  couched  in  the  most  flattering  terms,  but  there  is  not 
a  word  in  it  about  Venice. 


VENICE   AND   THE    HOLY   SEE.  3OI 

Venice  persistently  trampled  on  the  clear  rights  of  the  Pope.* 
Fgllowing  her  traditional  practice  she  arrogated  to  the 
State  in  purely  spiritual  matters  a  supremacy  which  would 
have  made  the  government  of  the  Church  by  Rome  an 
impossibility.f  The  Government  repeatedly  forbade  and 
even  punished  appeals  to  Rome  in  ecclesiastical  matters; 
ecclesiastical  persons  were  brought  before  secular  tribunals 
without  the  permission  of  the  Pope ;  for  this  the  deplorable 
corruption  of  many  of  the  clergy  might  have  afforded  some 
excuse.  But  there  could  be  no  justification  for  the  conduct 
of  the  Senate  in  giving  away  benefices  and  even  Bishoprics 
on  their  own  authority.|  Even  staunch  friends  of  the 
Republic  blamed  these  outrageous  violations  of  Canon-law, 
which  no  Pope  could  afford  to  tolerate. §  The  consequence 
was  a  never  ending  series  of  misunderstandings  and  disputes 
on  ecclesiastical  matters  between  Rome  and  Venice.  One 
of  the  most  serious  of  these  was  that  about  the  appointment 
to  the  Bishopric  of  Cremona,  which  had  been  held  by 
Ascanio  Sforza.  After  his  death,  in  the  Summer  of  1505, 
the  Senate  immediately  selected  a  devoted  adherent  of  their 
own,  a  member  of  the  Trevisano  family.  Julius  II.  refused 
to  confirm  this  appointment,  as  he  had  intended  to  give 
it  to  the  excellent  Cardinal  Galeotto  della  Rovere.  The 
Venetians  maintained  that  it  had  always  been  customary 
for  the  Senate  to  elect  the  Bishops  for  all  the  important 

*  See  Reumont  in  the  Gott.  Gel.  Anz.  (1876),  II.,  846. 

t  See  Vol.  IV.  of  this  work,  92  seq. 

X  See,  besides  Julius  II.'s  Bull  of  27th  Apr.,  1509,  which  will  be  cited 
further  on,  A.  GlUSTlNIAN'S  Dispacci,  II,,  439  ;  III.,  288;  and  Brosch's 
(of  course  very  one-sided)  statements  in  Sybels  Zeitschr.,  XXXVIII., 
308  seq.^  as  well  as  the  Briefs  of  the  i6th  and  i8th  Dec,  1506,  in 
Appendix,  N.  57  and  58.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

§  Cf.  the  remarkable  statements  in  LuiGi  da  Porto,  29,  who 
observes  :  Di  modo  che  il  papa  per  queste  ed  altre  cose  ancora  non  e  in 
tutto  papa  sopra  di  essi. 


302  HISTORY   OF  THE  POPES. 

cities  in  their  dominions  and  for  Rome  to  confirm  their 
choice,*  as  if  the  Holy  See  was  bound  in  all  cases  to  ac- 
cept their  nominations.  The  negotiations  on  this  subject 
dragged  on  for  two  whole  years,  until  at  last  Julius  II. 
yielded,  a  sum  of  money  being  handed  over  to  the  Cardinal 
as  compensation.f  This  dispute  had  hardly  been  settled 
when  a  new  and  more  violent  one  arose  over  the  Bishopric 
of  Vicenza,  rendered  vacant  by  the  death  of  Cardinal 
Galeotto  della  Rovere.  Julius  II.  had  given  Vicenza,  to- 
gether with  all  the  other  benefices  which  had  been  held 
by  the  deceased  Cardinal,  to  Sixtus  Gara  della  Rovere, 
while  the  Venetian  Senate  determined  to  appoint  Jacopo 
Dandolo.  In  spite  of  the  Pope's  refusal  to  confirm  his 
nomination,  Dandolo  took  possession  of  the  See  and  had 
the  insolence  to  style  himself  "  Bishop-elect  of  Vicenza 
by  the  grace  of  the  Senate  of  Venice,"J  He  answered  the 
Pope's  citation  with  a  defiant  letter,  knowing  that  he  had 
the  support  of  the  Republic.  § 

It  will  be  seen  that  the  Venetians  were  steadily  pursuing 
their  aim  of  making  the  Pope,  as  Machiavelli  puts  it, 
"their  chaplain,"  1|  while  Julius  II.  as  resolutely  resisted. 
He  told  the  Venetian  Ambassador  that  if  necessary  he 
would  sell  his  mitre  rather  than  relinquish  any  of  the 
rights  that  appertained  to  the  successor  of  S.  Peter.lf 

Side  by  side  with  these  incessant  ecclesiastical  difficulties 

*  ROMANIN,  v.,  178. 

+  Sanuto,  VI.,  177,  188,  194,  327,  335,347  ;  VII.,  126.  Cf.  Balan, 
443  seq.^  and  Brosch,  161  seq.,  who,  however,  gives  the  name  of  the 
Venetian  Cardinal  incorrectly.  Ughelli,  IV.,  614,  curiously,  does  not 
mention  this  dispute  at  all. 

J  GUICCIARDINI,  VIII.,  chap.  I. 

§  Balan,  V.,  450. 

II  Machiavelli,  Opere,  ed.  Passerini,  IV.,  334.  Cf.  Dispacci  di  A. 
GiuSTiNiAN,  III.,  179,  and  TOMMASINI,  Machiavelli,  I.,  298,  324. 

IT  Sanuto,  VII.,  643  ;  cf.  580,  678,  694,  and  Ughelli,  V.,  1066. 


DIFFICULTIES   IN    BOLOGNA.  303 

the  political  ones  still  remained  unaltered.  Julius  II.  did 
everything  he  could  to  bring  about  an  amicable  solution. 
Towards  the  end  of  the  year  1506  he  sent  the  celebrated 
Augustinian  Aegidius  of  Viterbo  to  Venice  to  offer,  if  the 
Venetians  would  give  up  Faenza,  to  say  no  more  about  their 
other  conquests.  But  this  proposal  was  also  rejected.  Then, 
replied  the  Pope,  since  the  Venetians  refuse  my  request 
for  one  city  only,  they  shall  now  be  obliged  by  force  of 
arms  to  give  back  all  they  have  taken.  He  took  no  pains 
to  hide  his  indignation  from  the  Venetian  Ambassador.* 
The  Republic,  however,  still  persisted  not  only  in  defying 
the  Pope  but  in  irritating  him  as  well. 

In  the  insolence  of  their  triumph  after  the  defeat  of 
Maximilian,  the.  Signoria  went  out  of  its  way  to  make 
troubles  in  Bologna,  the  place  of  all  others  about  which 
Julius  would  be  most  sensitive. 

The  position  of  the  Legate  there  was  a  difficult  one, 
as  the  Bentivogli,  favoured  by  France,  never  ceased  con- 
spiring against  the  Government.  Ferreri  kept  them 
down  with  an  iron  hand,  and,  in  addition  to  this,  behaved 
in  so  greedy  and  extortionate  a  manner  to  the  Bolognese, 
tliat  they  appealed  to  Rome  against  his  exactions.j-  Julius 
II.  had  enquiries  made,  and  finding  that  the  Legate  was 
in  fault,  at  once  acted  with  his  wonted  energy.  On  the 
2nd   of  August,    1507,  Ferreri,   on   whom   larger   powers 

*  The  mission  of  Aegidius  of  Viterbo  is  only  briefly  mentioned  in 
Saijuto,  VI.,  528.  Aegidius  himself,  in  Hofler's  ed.,  384,  gives  more 
details.  Cf.  also  the  extracts  from  the  Ferrarese  Despatches  in  Balan, 
v.,  443  seq.  On  the  obstinacy  of  Venice  in  regard  to  the  alum 
monopoly,  see  Gottlob,  Cam.  Ap.,  303. 

t  GOZZADINI,  Alcuni  awenimenti,  81  seq.^  who,  however,  has 
curiously  not  made  much  use  of  the  Briefs  in  the  State  Archives  at 
Bologna.  Amongst  these  I  found  a  *Brief  of  30th  April,  1507,  an- 
nouncing that  1 5,000  gold  ducats  are  being  sent  from  Rome  to  enable 
the  Legate  to  defend  the  city  against  the  rebels  and  tyrants. 


304  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

had  been  conferred  in  the  previous  month  of  May,  was 
deprived  of  his  post  and  recalled  to  Rome.*  Meanwhile 
the  discovery  had  been  made  that  Ferreri  had  employed 
illegitimate  means  to  obtain  the  increase  of  his  powers 
in  May,  and  in  consequence  he  was  imprisoned  in  the 
Castle  of  St.  Angelo,  and  afterwards  interned  in  the  Con- 
vent of  S.  Onofrio  (he  died  in   i5o8).-|- 

The  government  of  Bologna  was  then  carried  on  by 
the  Vice-Legate  Lorenzo  Fiesco,  while  the  Bentivogli  con- 
tinued to  prosecute  their  intrigues.  In  September  it  was 
discovered  that  they  had  been  plotting  to  have  the  Pope 
poisoned.  Julius  II.  sent  the  documentary  evidence  of 
this  conspiracy  by  Achilles  de  Grassis  to  Louis  XII., 
begging  him  to  withdraw  his  protection  from  this  family.J 
On  the  20th  of  September  he  sent  5000  ducats  to  the 
Bolognese  to  help  them  to  defend  themselves  against 
the  Bentivogli.§  In  the  beginning  of  1508  one  of  the 
family  made  a  fresh  attempt  to  get  possession  of  the  city. 
Julius  burst  into  a  violent  rage  when  he  heard  the 
news.  II 

■*  The  *Brief  conferring  fuller  powers  is  dated  26th  May,  1 507.  On 
his  recall,  see  Gozzadini,  Avvenimenti,  149,  and  the  *Brief  of  the  2nd 
Aug.,  1507.  Both  Briefs  are  in  the  State  Archives,  Bologna.  In  a 
*Brief  to  Ferreri,  dated  Rome,  5th  April,  1507,  Julius  II.  gave  the 
ecclesia  S.  Blasii  de  Sala  plebania  nuncupata,  which  had  hitherto  been 
held  by  Ant.  Galeat.  de  Bentivolis,  to  Joh.  Anton,  de  Rubeis.  Lib.  brev.  25, 
f.  292b.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

t  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  319;    cf.  Bollinger's  ed.,  380,383, 

384-385- 

X  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1 508,  n.  22  ;  Nuntiaturberichte,  I.,  XLili ; 
PlEPER,  Nuntiaturen,  42. 

§  *Brief  of  the  20th  Sept.,  1 507.     State  Archives,  Bologna. 

II  Gozzadini,  Alcuni  avvenimenti,  95  seq. ;  Balan,  V.,  449.  Cf.  the 
*Report  of  Lodovico  da  Campo  Sampiero  to  Fr.  Gonzaga,  dated  Rome, 
31st  Jan.,  1508:  *La  S'^  del  papa  sentendo  tal  nova  [that  A.  Benti- 
voglio  had  endeavoured  to  make  himself  master  of  Bologna]  comincio 


INTRIGUES   OF   THE  BENTIVOGLI.  305 

He  faiJed,*  but  tried  again  in  the  Autumn  of  the  same 
year.  Meanwhile  Cardinal  Alidosi  had  been  made  Legale 
of  Bologna.f  Alidosi's  ruthless  severity  had  caused  great 
irritation  in  Bologna  of  which  the  Bentivogli  sought  to 
take  advantage ;  but  their  main  hopes  were  founded  on 
the  support  of  Venice.  However,  they  were  again  un- 
successful.J  Julius  H.  indignantly  remonstrated  with  the 
Venetian    Government    for    harbouring    in    their    territory 

a  mugiar  che  pareva  un  toro  e  non  tanto  la  Ex.  V.  minaciva  ma  ancora 
el  cielo.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

*  Alfonso  of  Ferrara  helped  to  put  down  the  attempt.  Cf.  the  *Brief 
of  Julius  II.  to  Joh.  Luca  de  Pozzo,  Archbishop  of  Reggio,  dated  Rome, 
24th  Jan.,  1 508.  (State  Archives,  Modena.)  In  a  ''^'Brief  of  the  same  date, 
Julius  thanked  Cardinal  d'Este  also  for  the  assistance  given  against  the 
Bentivogli.     *Lib.  brev.  28,  f.  634,  Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

t  GOZZADINI,  Awenimenti,  158-160,  publishes  a  letter  from  the 
Council  of  Forty  to  their  Envoy  in  Rome,  dat.  Bononiae  die  XII.  Mail, 
1508,  in  which  they  acknowledge  the  receipt  of  the  letter  announcing 
Alidosi's  nomination  on  the  XVI 1 1 1,  del  presente.  The  editor,  whose 
work  is  altogether  very  one-sided  and  imperfect,  is  not  in  any  way 
troubled  by  this  contradiction.  It  is  evident  that  XXII.  should  be  read 
instead  of  XII.  1  found  the  *Brief  on  Alidosi's  nomination,  which  is 
not  mentioned  by  Gozzadini,  in  the  State  Archives  at  Bologna.  I  found 
also  in  the  same  place  a  *Brief  of  22nd  May,  1508,  on  the  faculties 
granted  to  Alidosi ;  ^another  of  26th  May,  informing  the  Anziani  of  his 
appointment;  and  ^another,  dat.  Ostia,  ist  June,  1 508,  with  additional 
faculties  for  the  Legate.  The  following  communication  from  Lod.  da 
Campo  Sampiero  to  Fr.  Gonzaga,  dated  Rome,  17th  March,  1508,  is 
interesting  :  Credo  Pavia  vero  legato  a  Bologna  per  aver  mendicato 
quela  legacione  et  al  presente  recede  e  non  la  voria  perche  el  conose 
apertamente  la  roina  sua  andandoli.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

X  Balan,  v.,  450  ;  Gozzadini,  loc.  cii.,  1 14  seg.  Fr.  Gonzaga  sided 
also  at  that  time  with  the  Bentivogli.  Cf.  the  complaining  Brief  of  the 
Pope  to  him,  "dat.  Romae"  (preceded  by  a  fragment  of  27th  Sept.,  1508, 
also  no  doubt  belonging  to  this  time),  in  Lib.  brev.  28,  f.  468.  (Secret 
Archives  of  the  Vatican.)  In  a  *Brief,  dat.  Rome,  loth  Oct.,  1508, 
Julius  II.  desired  the  Legate  to  employ  the  confiscated  property  of  the 
Bentivogli  in  building  the  citadel  at  Bologna.      State  Archives,  Bologna. 

VOL.  VI.  X 


306  HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES. 

the  rebels  whom  Louis  XII.  had  expelled  from  Milan, 
and  "looking  on  with  folded  arms  while  these  men 
endeavoured  to  undermine  the  Papal  authority  in  Bologna 
and  made  war  upon  the  Church."  The  Venetians'  answer 
sounded  like  a  gibe.  They  said  that,  far  from  harbour- 
ing the  refugees,  they  had  done  their  best  to  get  rid  of 
them  ;  but  they  hid  themselves  in  the  convents,  and  the 
Republic,  of  course,  was  powerless  against  the  Church's 
right  of  asylum.  To  do  away  with  this  pretext  the  Pope 
on  the  22nd  August  despatched  a  Brief  to  the  Patriarch 
of  Venice,  desiring  him  to  issue  strict  orders  to  all  the 
convents  in  Venetian  territory  to  refuse  shelter  to  all 
bandits  and  rebels ;  all  such  evil-doers  must  be  driven 
from  the  gates.* 

In  spite  of  all  that  had  happened,  even  now,  at  the 
last  hour,  an  accommodation  between  Rome  and  Venice 
might  still  have  been  possible  if  the  Republic  had  not 
obstinately  persisted  in  all  her  most  unreasonable  de- 
mands. In  the  Autumn  of  1508,  when  the  alienation  of 
France  had  already  definitely  begun,  and  the  anti- Venetian 
League  was  under  consideration,  the  Pope  still  held  aloof. 
The  selfish  aims  of  France   and  the  ever  increasing  con- 

*  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  163-164,  even  here  blames  the  Pope,  and  says 
that  "for  Julius  II.  the  end  of  driving  the  Bentivogli  out  of  Venetia 
sanctified  the  means,  which  was  a  curtailment  of  the  Church's  right  of 
asylum."  Here  he  poses  as  the  defender  of  this  right,  which  elsewhere 
he  condemns  in  the  strongest  terms.  The  Brief  of  22nd  Aug.  is  now 
printed  in  Sanuto,  VI.,  624.  Julius  II.  heard  of  the  attempts  of  the 
Bentivogli  on  nth  Aug.,  and  on  the  20th  complained  to  the  Ferrarese 
Envoy  of  the  conduct  of  the  Republic.  *La  S'a  Sua  dopoi  mi  tenne 
longamente  et  cum  me  multo  se  extese  circa  le  cose  da  {sic)  li  Bentivogli 
communicandomi  el  tutto  li  accade  de  presente  pigliata  occasione  da 
li  Bentivogli  et  altri  suoi  rebelli  a  li  quali  per  Venetiani  se  da  recepto. 
Both  Costabili's  *Letters  of  the  nth  and  the  20th  of  Aug.,  1508,  are  in 
the  State  Archives,  Modena. 


INSOLENCE   OF  THE  VENETIANS.  307 

cessions  that  she  demanded  were  no  doubt  the  cause  of 
this.* 

It  was  far  from  desirable  in  the  eyes  of  Julius  II.  that 
the  power  of  the  King  of  France  should  increase,  or  that 
the  Emperor  should  obtain  a  footing  in  Italy.  He  would 
have  gladly  come  to  terms  with  Venice  if  she  would  have 
withdrawn  her  unjust  pretensions  in  both  temporal  and 
spiritual  affairs.  Bembo  says  that  the  Pope  privately 
sent  Costantino  Areniti  to  Badoer,  the  Venetian  Am- 
bassador in  Rome,  to  tell  him  of  the  formation  of  the 
League  of  Cambrai,  and  to  propose  an  arrangement  if 
Venice  would  restore  Faenza  and  Rimini  to  the  Church. 
Badoer  at  once  wrote  to  inform  the  Council  of  Ten,  but 
received  no  answer.-]-  The  whole  influence  of  the  numerous 
class  of  needy  nobles  whose  interests  were  involved  in  keep- 
ing the  conquests  in  the  Romagna  was  against  their  resti- 
tution, and  this  prevailed.^  The  Venetians  trusted  that  a 
League  composed  of  such  heterogeneous  elements  would 
not  last  long. 

This  view  was  conceivable ;  but  the  infatuation  of  Venice 
in  still  continuing  at  this  critical  juncture  to  flout  and 
irritate  the  Pope  in  every  possible  manner  in  spiritual  as 
well  as  in  temporal  matters,  is  truly  incomprehensible. 
"Those  even  who  are  friendly  to  Venice  blame  her 
insolent  and  domineering  behaviour  towards  the  Holy 
See,  not  only  in  regard  to  the  cities  of  the  Romagna,  to 
which  she  has  not  the  smallest  right,  but  also  in  matters 
concerning  benefices  and  ecclesiastical  jurisdiction."  § 

*  Cf.  the  interesting  *Report  of  Costabili  of  the  5th  Oct.,  1 508.  State 
Archives,  Modena,  an  extract  in  Balan,  V.,  451. 

t  Bembus,  Hist.  Venet.,  298. 

X  Cf.  SiGISMONDO  de'  Conti,  II.,  386,  and  Priuli  in  Cicogna,  I.,  165. 

§  Reumont,  III.,  2,  27,  referring  to  the  extract  from  LUIGI  DA 
Porto,  29,  cited  supra.,  p.  301,  note  §. 


308  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

The  manner  in  which  the  testy  Venetian  Envoy  Pisani 
answered  JuHus  II.'s  complaints  on  these  subjects  is  some- 
thing quite  unique  in  the  whole  history  of  diplomacy. 
When  the  Pope  protested  to  Pisani  against  the  encroach- 
ments of  the  Republic  on  his  ecclesiastical  rights,  and 
added  that  the  Signoria  would  some  day  have  cause  to 
repent  of  their  conduct,  the  Envoy  replied  :  Your  Holiness 
must  grow  a  little  "stronger  before  he  can  expect  much 
from  the  Republic.  Naturally  incensed,  Julius  answered, 
"  I  will  never  rest  until  you  are  brought  down  to  be  the 
poor  fishermen  that  you  once  were."  "  And  we,"  said 
Pisani,  "  will  make  a  priestling  of  the  Holy  Father  unless 
he  behaves  himself."  * 

Such  was  the  manner  in  which  the  Venetian  Envoy 
thought  fit  to  behave  towards  the  Pontiff  in  whose  power 
it  lay  to  have  stifled  the  League  of  Cambrai  at  its  birth. 
Even  yet  the  Pope  did  not  permit  himself  to  be  goaded 
into  any  hasty  action.  He  still  hoped  to  succeed  in 
"  alarming  the  Venetians  enough  to  induce  them  to  comply 
with  his  demands,"  and  then  to  break  up  the  dangerous 
League.f  Pisani  fully  realised  the  Pope's  apprehension  in 
regard  to  Louis  XH.  and  Maximilian,  and  saw  clearly  that 
greater  forbearance  on  his  part  might  have  prevented 
Julius  from  joining  the  League.  Yet  he  continued  to 
behave  as  before. 

When  in  February,  1509,  the  question  of  the  Bishopric 
of  Vicenza    had   reached    the  point   at  which   a  definite 

*  LuiGi  DA  Porto,  29-30.  Cf.  Balan,  V.,  452,  who  in  the  same 
place  refers  to  *Costabili's  Report,  loth  Nov.,  1508  (State  Archives, 
Modena),  which  I  also  have  seen,  and  in  which  Costabili  says  of  Pisani : 
Ognuno  chel  conosce  li  da  voce  de  homo  molto  colerico  et  pensase  chel 
sia  stato  mandato  tale  perche  lo  habii  a  giostrare  col  papa.  Also 
Bembus,  299,  describes  Pisani  as  morosi  admodum  ingenii. 

t  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  55-56,  ed.  3 ;  ^  Lanz,  Einleitung,  103. 


THE   POPE   JOINS   THE   LEAGUE.  309 

answer  could  no  longer  be  deferred,  that  which  the  Pope 
received  sounded  like  a  sarcasm.*  "  The  contemptuous 
insolence  of  the  language  employed  by  the  Venetians 
requires  to  be  known  in  order  fully  to  understand  the 
injustice  of  those  who  reproach  Julius  II.  with  his  partici- 
pation in  the  League  of  Cambrai.  It  was  not  until  every 
means  of  persuasion  had  been  tried,  and  the  last  hope  of 
an  amicable  settlement  had  vanished,  that  he  made  up  his 
mind  to  join  it."-|- 

The  change  in  the  Pope's  mind  was  probably  finally 
caused  by  the  fear  lest  France  should  unite  with  Venice  to 
overpower  him.|  His  decision  was  taken  soon  after  a 
conversation  which  he  had  with  Pisani  in  the  middle  of 
March  at  Civita  Vecchia.  It  was  a  lovely  spring  day ; 
all  nature  seemed  to  breathe  nothing  but  peace  and 
harmony,  and  the  clear  blue  sea  was  like  a  sheet  of  glass. 
The  Pope,  who  was  very  fond  of  sailing,  was  on  the  water, 
accompanied  by  Pisani,  and  turning  to  the  Envoy,  "  How 
would  it  be,"  he  said,  "  if  you  were  to  advise  the  Signoria 
to  propose  to  me  to  grant  Faenza  and  Rimini  as  a  fief  to 
one  of  your  citizens  ?  That  would  set  everything  right." 
Pisani  answered  coldly,  "  Our  State  is  not  in  the  habit  of 
making  kings  of  any  of  her  citizens."  The  Pope's  proposal 
was  never  mentioned  either  to  Pisani's  gentler  colleague, 
Badoer,  or  to  the  Senate.§  Immediately  after  his  return 
from  Civita  Vecchia,  Julius  joined  the  League. 

*  Cf.  Sanuto,  VII.,  719,  724,  738,  760,  763,  780 ;  VIII.,  10. 

t  Rohrbacher-Knopfler,  290.  Cf.  Ranke,  Rom.  und  Germ, 
Volker,  236,  and  Ersch-Gruber,  2,  Section  XXVIII.,  335. 

X  Lanz,  Einleitung,  103. 

§  Bembus,  Hist.  Venet.,  299-300.  Cf.  Ranke,  loc.  cit.  Brosch 
makes  no  mention  of  either  of  the  two  conversations  between  Julius  II. 
and  Pisani.  If  the  Pope  had  been  animated  by  that  implacable  hatred 
against  Venice  which  this  writer  ascribes  to  him,  he  would  certainly  not 
have  made  this  overture,  nor  would  he  afterwards  have  exerted  himself 


310  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

On  the  22nd  of  March  a  Consistory  was  held,  to  which 
the  Venetian  Cardinals  Grimani  and  Cornaro  were  not 
summoned.*  On  the  following  day  Julius  II.  signed  the 
Bull  announcing  his  adhesion  to  the  League,  but  with  the 
condition  that  he  was  to  do  nothing  against  Venice  until 
after  hostilities  had  been  commenced  by  France.-]-  Mean- 
while the  Venetians  had  begun  to  see  that  they  had  been 
premature  in  their  hopes  that  the  League  would  dissolve 
itself.  On  the  4th  of  April  they  determined  to  give  up 
Faenza  and  Rimini,  but  this  offer,  which  was  made  to  the 
Pope  on  the  7th,  came  too  late  ;  to  have  accepted  it  now 

so  earnestly  to  preserve  the  Republic  from  utter  ruin.  After  the 
manner  of  the  Humanists,  Bembo  puts  no  date  to  his  narrative,  but  I 
think  I  can  supply  this  from  the  Venetian  Reports  in  Sanuto.  Pisani 
wrote  on  the  13th  from  Civita  Vecchia :  II  Papa  va  a  piacer  per  mar, 
pescando  ....  Item  che  hessendo  in  batello  con  cardinali  et  oratori, 
tra  i  qual  il  nostro,  S.  S'a  lexe  uno  capitulo  di  latere  auti  di  Portogallo ; 
and  again  on  the  i6th  :  The  Pope  va  a  peschar  e  piacer.  Sanuto, 
VIII.,  23-24,  26.  From  these  Reports  we  also  gather  that  Pisani  never 
forwarded  the  Pope's  proposal  to  Venice  at  all.  It  must  therefore 
remain  doubtful  whether  the  narrative  dated  19th  March  in  Sanuto, 
VIII.,  30,  corresponds  with  facts.  Pisani  was  working  for  a  rupture 
between  Rome  and  Venice,  and  therefore  may  very  well  have  put 
the  assurance  that  he  would  not  sign  anything  against  the  Republic 
into  Julius's  mouth,  in  order  to  embitter  the  feeling  there  against  him, 
when  it  was  found  that  he  had  signed  the  League. 

*  Sanuto,  VIII.,  2>1-  Many  of  the  Cardinals  were  in  favour  of  peace 
{cf.  *Consistorialia  Raph.  Riarii  card.  S.  Georgii  in  Cod.  J.,  III.,  89,  f. 
18'^,  of  the  Chigi  Library,  Rome) ;  but  peace  was  only  possible  by  sub- 
mitting to  the  humiliation  of  the  Church  and  sacrificing  her  most 
important  interests. 

t  This  Bull,  dat.  X.  Cal.  April  (23rd  Mar.),  1508  (st.  fl.),  is  given  by 
DUMONT,  IV.,  I,  116  ;  Creighton  is  wrong  in  dating  it  25th  March.  Cf. 
also  *Pozzi's  Report,  25th  Mar.,  1509  (State  Archives,  Modena),  which 
gives  23rd  Mar.  as  the  date  on  which  the  Pope  joined  the  League. 
Gregorovius,  VIII.,  56,  ed.  3,  must  have  read  the  Bull  very  carelessly 
to  have  said,  as  he  does,  that  Venice  is  not  mentioned  at  all  in  it. 


BULL   OF   EXCOMMUNICATION    AGAINST  VENICE.      3 II 

would  have  involved  him  in  a  war  with  the  allies.*  The 
adherents  of  the  Republic  in  Rome  now  allied  themselves 
with  the  Colonna  and  Orsini,  and  tried  to  induce  them  to 
rise  against  the  Pope  by  offers  of  money  to  both,  and 
by  promising  Urbino  to  the  Colonna.  When  Julius  heard 
this,  he  threatened  to  excommunicate  the  Orsini,  and  sent 
word  to  Pisani,  who  had  been  stirring  them  up  to  revolt 
against  the  Church  under  his  very  eyes,  that  he  would 
thrust  him  into  the  deepest  dungeon  in  Rome.  The 
situation  appeared  so  menacing  that  the  Palace  guard  was 
doubled.  Meanwhile  Felice  Orsini  succeeded  in  breaking 
off  the  bargain  between  Venice  and  the  family.j- 

On  the  27th  of  April  the  greater  excommunication  was 
pronounced  against  Venice  unless  within  twenty-four  days 
all  the  possessions  of  the  Church  in  the  Romagna,  and  the 
revenues  derived  from  them,  were  restored  to  her.  This 
document  was  drawn  up  in  the  clearest  and  strongest  terms, 
describing  the  outrageous  proceedings  of  the  Republic  in 
both  temporal  and  spiritual  affairs,  and  600  copies  were  at 
once  printed  and  circulated.]:     The  Venetians  forbade  the 

*  SiGiSMONDO  de'  Conti,  II.,  386.  Cf.  Sanuto,  VIII.,  80.  See 
also  ROMANIN,  v.,  198,  and  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  169,  341,  who,  however, 
represents  the  whole  matter  in  a  false  light,  ignoring  Pisani's  obstinacy 
and  the  studied  insolence  of  his  words  and  conduct,  as  well  as  the 
position  of  the  Pope  and  the  real  motives  of  the  Republic,  which  are 
clearly  set  forth  by  Sigismondo  de'  Conti. 

t  Sanuto,  VIII.,  41,  72,  89,  96  seq.,  118,  133,  134,  135,  139,  140, 
171,  183.  Cf.  the  authorities  cited  by  Sismondi,  XIII.,  478,  and  in 
Appendix,  N.  82,  the  ^Report  of  Lodovico  de  Fabriano,  24th  April,  1509. 
(Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.)  The  personal  courage  displayed  by  the 
Pope  during  those  trying  days  appears  from  the  *Brief  to  Bologna  of 
I2th  April,  1509  (State  Archives,  Bologna),  which  is  printed  in  Appendix, 
N.  80. 

J  Portions  of  this  Bull  (monitorium)  are  given  in  Raynaldus,  ad 
an.  1509,  n.  6-9,  and  the  complete  document  is  in  Sanuto,  VIII., 
J87-204.     A  contemporaneous  (Latin)  printed  copy  is  cited  by  Soranzo, 


312  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

publication  of  the  Bull  in  their  dominions  under  stringent 
penalties.  They  had  already  prepared  an  appeal  to  a 
future  Council.  This  was  now  posted  during  the  night  on 
S.  Peter's  and  the  Castle  of  St.  Angelo  ;  the  Pope  had  it  torn 
down  at  once.*  The  appeal  was  sent  in  the  beginning  of 
May  to  the  ambitious  Cardinal  Archbishop  of  Gran  and 
Patriarch  of  Constantinople,  Thomas  Bakocs,  as  one  of 
those  Princes  of  the  Church  who  was  entitled  under  the 
old,  though  now  obsolete,  constitutions  to  join  in  the  sum- 
moning of  a  General  Council.  The  Hungarian  Primate 
was,  however,  too  prudent  to  respond  to  this  invitation.-f 

Meanwhile  the  war  had  been  begun  by  the  members  of 
the  League,  which  was  now  joined  by  Ferrara  and  Mantua.]: 
The  Venetians  had,  at  an  enormous  cost,  got  together  an 
army  of  50,000  men,  a  large  force  for  those  times ;  their 
war-cry  was  "  Italy  and  Liberty." §     The  Republic  bent  her- 

Bibliogr.,  79.  The  fact  that  an  Italian  translation  of  the  Bull  was  printed 
at  that  time  in  Rome  has  escaped  the  notice  of  this  learned  bibHographer. 
Examples  of  it  are  very  scarce,  but  I  saw  one  in  the  collection  of  the 
Florentine  antiquary,  Grazzini  {cf.  his  Catalogue  for  1890,  No.  IX.),  and 
a  second  in  the  State  Archives,  Modena.  Cf.  in  Appendix,  N.  83,  the 
*Report  of  L.  de  Fabriano  of  the  24th  April,  1509.  (Gonzaga  Archives, 
Mantua.)  Sanuto,  VIII.,  169,  204-205,  also  the  *Report  of  the 
Ferrarese  Envoy,  of  the  27th  April,  1509.     State  Archives,  Modena. 

*  Sanuto,  VIII.,  161. 

t  Fraknoi,  Ungarn  und  die  Liga  von  Cambrai,  8. 

X  Duke  Alfonso  of  Ferrara  was  appointed  Gonfalonerius  sive  Vexilli- 
ferus  S.  R.  E.  on  the  20th  April,  1509  ;  see*Acta  Consist.  (Consistorial 
Archives  of  the  Vatican.)  According  to  the  *Brief  printed  in  Appendix, 
N.  81,  the  appointment  took  place  on  the  19th  April.  State  Archives, 
Modena. 

§  ROMANIN,  v.,  205-206,  shews  that  the  proposal  of  inscribing 
"  Defensio  Italiae  "  on  the  banners  and  adopting  the  war-cry  mentioned 
in  the  text  was  rejected.  But  we  find  from  Sanuto  that  the  war-cry  was 
actually  used  by  the  soldiers.  Cf.  Senarega,  596.  The  inscription  on 
the  banners  is  incorrectly  stated  as  a  fact  by  SiGlSMONDO  de'  Conti, 
li.,  386,  who  here,  as  elsewhere,  is  unable  to  conceal  his  strong  national 


DEFEAT   OF   THE   VENETIANS.  313 

self  bravely  to  the  task  of  resisting  the  enemy,  overmatched 
as  she  was  ;  but  the  traditional  pride  of  her  citizens  high 
and  low  sustained  her.  The  ban  of  the  Church,  it  was 
maintained,  had  lost  much  of  its  power  ;  it  was  no  longer  so 
dangerous  as  it  used  to  be.  Ferdinand  of  Spain  had  been 
forced  to  join  the  League  against  his  will ;  the  Emperor 
had  no  money  ;  the  Pope's  mercenaries  were  of  no  account ; 
the  League  was  too  numerous,  the  interests  of  its  various 
members  were  too  divergent  for  it  to  hold  together  for 
long ;  the  Republic  would  ride  safely  through  the  storm  this 
time,  as  she  had  ever  done. 

But  one  day  sufficed  to  annihilate  all  the  proud  hopes 
of  the  Venetians,  and  nearly  all  their  power  upon  the 
mainland.  The  decisive  battle  was  fought  on  the  14th 
of  May  on  the  plain  of  Agnadello  near  Vallate  in  the 
province  of  Cremona;  it  ended  in  the  complete  rout  of 
their  army.  The  undisciplined  mercenaries  of  the  Republic 
were  scattered  like  chaff.  While  the  French  pursued  the 
fugitives,  the  Papal  troops,  under  the  Duke  of  Urbino, 
overran  the  Romagna.  All  the  country  up  to  Verona,, 
including  that  strongly  fortified  city  itself,  was  subdued;, 
town  after  town  fell  into  the  hands  of  the  conquerors.* 

The  Venetians  now  no  longer  scorned  the  Pope's  ex- 
communication. A  contemporary  writer  compares  the 
battle  of  Agnadello  with  the  defeat  of  the  Romans  at 
Cannae.-j-     The  position  of  Venice  was  rendered  still  more 

feeling  and  his  predilection  for  Venice.  C/.  Gottlob  in  the  Hist. 
Jahrb.,  VII.,  322  seg".,  though  this  writer  has  overlooked  the  interesting 
remarks  of  the  Venetian  Envoy  on  Sigismondo  in  Brosch,  289. 

*  See  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  II.,  388-390,  who  draws  his  narrative 
from  a  Report  of  Sermonino  da  Vimercate  ;  Pandolfini's  Letters  in 
Desjardins,  II.,  327  seg.  Cf.  Sanuto,  VIIL,  249  seq.;  LuiGI  DA 
Porto,  53  seq. ;  Anshelm,  III.,  200;  Sismondi,  XIII.,  491  seq. 

t  Senarega,  597.  Cf.  also  LuiGi  da  Porto,  62  seq.,  and  Vol.  V.  of 
this  work,  p.  90. 


314  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

critical  by  the  blow  which  the  recent  development  of 
maritime  enterprise  had  inflicted  upon  her  commerce.*  If 
in  this  particular  the  disadvantages  with  which  they  had 
to  contend  were  not  of  their  own  making,  so  much  cannot 
be  said  of  the  causes  which  mainly  contributed  to  bring 
about  their  discomfiture  on  the  mainland.  Machiavelli's 
penetrating  glance  discerned,  and  has  described,  these  with 
admirable  insight  and  clearness.-]-  He  takes  as  the  text  for 
his  criticism  the  saying  of  Livy,  that  the  Romans  were 
never  depressed  by  misfortune  or  elevated  by  success.  "  The 
exact  reverse  of  this,"  he  writes,  "  was  the  case  with  the 
Venetians.  They  imagined  that  they  owed  their  prosperity 
to  qualities  which,  in  fact,  they  did  not  possess,  and  were 
so  puffed  up  that  they  treated  the  King  of  France  as  a  son, 
underrated  the  power  of  the  Church,  thought  the  whole  of 
Italy  too  small  a  field  for  their  ambition,  and  aimed  at 
creating  a  world-wide  empire  like  that  of  Rome.  Then 
when  fortune  turned  her  back  upon  them,  and  they  were 
beaten  by  the  French  at  Vallate,  they  not  only  lost  the 
greater  part  of  their  territory  by  the  defection  of  their 
people,  but,  of  their  own  accord,  out  of  sheer  cowardice  and 
faint-heartedness,  they  gave  back  most  of  their  conquests 
to  the  Pope  and  the  King  of  Spain.  In  their  discourage- 
ment they  even  went  so  far  as,  through  their  Envoy,  to  offer 
to  become  tributaries  of  the  Emperor,  and  to  try  to  move 
the  Pope  to  compassion  by  writing  to  him  in  a  tone  of 
craven  submissiveness.  This  reverse  befell  them  when  the 
war  had  only  lasted  four  days,  and  the  battle  itself  was  only 
half-lost ;  for  only  half  their  troops  were  engaged  and  one 
of  their  Proveditori  escaped.  Thus,  if  there  had  been  a 
spark  of  energy  or  enterprise  in  Venice,  they  might  have 
marched  on  Verona  with  25,000  men  to  try  their  fortune 

*  Ranke,  Rom.  und  Germ.  Volker,  244. 
t  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  172  seq. 


THEY   SURRENDER   THE   ROMAGNA.  315 

again,  and  await  any  favourable  turn  that  might  give  them 
a  chance  of  victory,  or  at  any  rate  of  a  less  ignoble  defeat, 
and  of  obtaining  honourable  terms  ;  but  by  their  unwarlike 
spirit,  the  natural  result  of  the  absence  of  all  military 
organisation,  they  lost  both  heart  and  land  at  a  single 
throw.  The  like  fate  will  befall  all  such  as  behave  them- 
selves as  they  have  done,  for  this  arrogance  in  prosperity, 
and  cowardice  in  adversity,  are  the  effect  of  the  spirit  in 
which  a  man  lives  and  the  education  he  has  received.  If 
these  are  vain  and  frivolous  he  will  be  the  same;  if  the 
reverse,  the  man  will  be  of  a  different  stamp,  and  will  know 
enough  of  the  world  not  to  be  over-elated  when  good 
befalls  him,  or  too  much  cast  down  when  he  meets  with 
reverses.  And  what  holds  good  in  regard  to  individuals 
also  holds  good  in  regard  to  those  many  individuals  who 
live  together  in  the  same  Republic ;  they  will  attain  to  that 
measure  of  perfection  which  the  life  of  the  State,  as  a  whole, 
has  attained.  It  has  often  been  said  before,  that  the  chief 
support  of  all  States  consists  in  a  strong  army,  and  that  no 
system  of  laws  and  no  constitution  can  be  called  good  which 
does  not  provide  for  this,  but  I  do  not  think  it  superfluous  to 
repeat  it ;  for  all  history  proves  its  truth,  and  shews  also 
that  no  army  can  be  strong  that  is  not  well  disciplined,  and 
that  it  is  impossible  to  secure  good  discipline  unless  the 
State  is  defended  by  her  own  subjects."  The  Venetian 
aristocracy  had  purposely  abstained  from  giving  military 
training  to  the  people;  they  expected  to  conquer  Italy 
with  hired  troops. 

The  first  thing  which  the  Venetian  Government  did 
when  the  news  of  their  defeat  at  Agnadello  arrived,  was  to 
evacuate  all  the  places  which  they  had  occupied  in  the 
Romagna,  Ravenna,  Cervia,  Rimini,  Faenza,  and  several 
smaller  places  were  at  once  handed  over  to  the  Legate  of 
the    Romag-na    and   the    Marches   to   Cardinal    Francesco 


3l6  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Alidosi.*  The  cities  on  the  Apulian  coast  were  also 
restored  to  the  Spaniard s.-f  They  were  anxious  beyond 
everything  else  to  win  the  Pope,  and  now  wrote  in  the 
humblest  and  most  submissive  terms.  On  the  5th  of  June 
the  Doge  wrote  an  appealing  letter  to  Julius  II.,  "The 
hand  that  struck,"  he  said,  "  could  heal  if  it  would."^  At 
the  same  time,  six  Envoys  were  sent  to  Rome  to  sue  for 
peace.  Being  excommunicated,  they  could  only  enter  the 
city  at  night.§  After  all  that  had  happened,  they  were 
not  likely  to  find  men's  minds  in  Rome  very  favourably 
disposed  towards  them.  "  If  the  rebellious  children  who, 
a  few  weeks  before,  had  been  insultingly  defying  the  Pope 
to  his  face,  and  now  came  to  proffer  obedience  only  under 
the  stress  of  extreme  need,  asked  to  be  received  at  once 
with  open  arms,  the  request  could  only  be  deemed  diplo- 
matically permissible  because  the  person  to  whom  it  was 
addressed  was  the  Holy  P^ather."|| 

On  the  8th  of  July  one  of  the  Envoys,  Girolamo  Donato, 
whom  the  Pope  had  known  in  former  days,  was  personally 
absolved  from  excommunication  and  granted  an  audience. 

*  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  175.  In  order  to  conciliate  the  citizens  of 
Ravenna,  Julius  II.  not  only  confirmed  their  ancient  municipal  constitu- 
tion, but  also  exempted  them  from  all  tribute  for  the  next  ten  years. 
Fantuzzi,  v.,  433  seq. 

t  SiGlSMONDO  de'  Conti,  II.,  394.  "El  Principe  de  Melfi,"  on  the 
1 7th  June,  1 509,  wrote  from  Barletta  to  congratulate  the  King  of  Spain 
on  the  recuperacione  de  Trane  con  speranza  fra  poco  tempo  posserne 
gratulare  non  solo  de  la  recuperacione  de  dicta  citk,  ma  ancora  de  tutti 
li  altri  lochi  tenea  la  S"^  de  Venetia  in  questa  marina  de  Puglya.  I  found 
the  original  *Brief  in  F.  Espag.,  318,  f.  114,  of  the  National  Library, 
Paris. 

X  Sanuto,  VIII.,  2)7o-2>72,  and  Senarega,  597-598.  There  is  a 
Spanish  translation  with  a  wrong  date  (2nd  June)  in  Bernaldez,  II., 
338-340. 

§   SiGISMONDO  DE'   CONTl,  II.,  400. 

II  Rohrbacher-Knopfler,  291. 


THE   pope's   conditions   OF   PEACE.  317 

Julius,  deeply  incensed  at  the  appeal  of  the  Venetians 
to  a  General  Council  which  had  just  been  published,*  pro- 
posed crushing  conditions.  The  Republic  must  make  com- 
plete restitution  of  all  her  spoils,  she  must  give  up  Tre- 
viso  and  Udine  to  the  Emperor.  "She  must  renounce 
her  possessions  on  the  mainland,  and  all  pretensions  to 
interfere  in  matters  connected  with  benefices,  or  to  im- 
pose taxes  on  the  clergy.  She  must  equally  renounce  her 
claim  to  exclusive  rights  of  navigation  in  the  Adriatic, 
which  from  Ravenna  to  Fiume  she  had  hitherto  regarded 
as  a  Venetian  lake.  When  she  had  agreed  to  these  things 
he  would  begin  to  speak  of  absolution."-]-  The  Senate 
was  furious  when  these  demands  were  communicated  to  it. 
The  Doge  exclaimed  that  "he  would  rather  send  fifty 
Envoys  to  Constantinople  to  beg  for  help  from  thence, 
than  comply  with  them."  In  fact  the  Sultan  was  asked 
whether  the  Republic  might  count  upon  his  assistance.:[ 

Just  at  this  time  events  on  the  scene  of  the  war  began  to 
take  a  more  favourable  turn  for  the  Venetians.  Padua  was 
recovered  on  the  17th  of  July,  and  a  month  later  news 
came  to  Rome  that  they  ha.d  captured  the  Marquess  of 
Mantua.  The  Pope  was  deeply  moved  with  vexation,  and 
gave  passionate  vent  to  his  feelings.  §  When,  later  in  the 
Autumn,  they  had  also  been  successful  in  repelling 
Maximilian's  attack  on  Padua,  their  old  arrogance  began 
to  revive.  It  was  decided  to  break  off  the  negotiations 
with    Julius.     "  All   the    Venetian    Envoys,   with   the   ex- 

*  On  the  1st  July  he  had  proclaimed  anew  the  censures  formulated  by 
Pius  II.  against  such  appeals,  and  laid  an  Interdict  on  Venice.  Bull,  V., 
479-481. 

t  Sanuto,  VI 1 1.,  511  ;  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  177. 

t  Bembus,  Hist.  Venet.,  348  seq.;  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  177,  343; 
HOPF,  168. 

§  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  343. 


3l8  HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES. 

ception  of  Doiiato,  who  was  still  to  remain  at  the  Court, 
were  recalled.  When  the  Pope  heard  of  this  (Cardinal 
Grimani  applied  on  the  5th  November  for  permission  for 
departure  of  the  five  to  leave  Rome),  he  exclaimed  :  All 
the  six  may  go  home;  if  the  Republic  wants  to  be 
released  from  the  ban,  she  must  send  twelve."*  Such 
and  similar  things  were  said  in  moments  of  excitement; 
in  calmer  seasons,  Julius  must  have  said  to  himself  that  it 
would  be  necessary  to  come  to  terms  with  the  Republic ; 
Louis  XII.  and  Maximilian  could  not  be  allowed  to  carry 
the  war  to  a  point  that  would  involve  her  destruction.  If 
Venice  were  annihilated,  not  only  the  freedom  of  Italy,  but 
also  the  independence  of  the  Holy  See  would  fall  with 
her.-j-  The  enormous  preponderance  which  the  course  of 
recent  events  had  conferred  on  the  King  of  France  shewed 
that  it  was  absolutely  necessary  that  the  Republic  should 
be  rehabilitated.  Louis  XII.  was  absolute  master  of 
Northern  Italy,  Ferrara  and  Florence  were  his  allies,  he 
was  sure  of  the  Emperor,  and  the  King  of  Spain  having 
got  what  he  wanted  from  the  League,  would  be  satisfied 
now  to  stand  aside  and  let  things  take  their  course.^ 

Just  about  that  time,  in  the  month  of  October,  the  King 
of  France  had  made  the  Pope  painfully  sensible  of  his 
power  by  obliging  him  by  force  to  give  way  in  a  dispute 
about  a  Bishopric.^  In  addition  to  these  considerations, 
Julius  was  at  heart  an  Italian  patriot,  and  keenly  felt,  from 
this  point  of  view,  the  disgrace  of  foreign  domination. 
Hence  he  was  bent  on  a  reconciliation  with  Venice,  and  all 

*  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  181. 

t  See  Desjardins,  II.,  388  ;  Bembus,  343  seq.  Cf.  CiPOLLA,  817  ; 
Hergenrother,  VIII.,  423  ;  and  Rohrbacher-Knopfler,  292. 

X  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  185. 

§  Ibid.,  184-185.  Cf.  Desjardins,  II.,  415  seq.;  Lehmann,  7,  where 
the  agreement  of  Biagrassa  is  correctly  characterised. 


PEACE  CONCLUDED   WITH   VENICE.  319 

the  efforts  of  the  new  French  Ambassador,  Alberto  Pio, 
Count  of  Carpi,  and  of  the  French  Cardinals  to  hold  him 
back  were  unavailing.*  After  a  long  struggle  with  diffi- 
culties of  the  most  various  kinds,  the  peace  negotiations 
were  at  last  brought  to  a  successful  issue  on  the  15  th  Feb- 
ruary, 1 5 10.  Venice  withdrew  her  appeal  to  a  Council, 
admitted  the  right  of  the  Pope  to  pronounce  ecclesiastical 
censures,  the  immunity  of  the  clergy  from  taxation,  and 
the  jurisdiction  of  the  ecclesiastical  courts,  recognised  the 
liberty  of  the  Church  in  regard  to  appointments  to 
benefices,  renounced  all  pretensions  to  interfere  in  the 
affairs  of  Ferrara,  and  granted  free  navigation  in  the 
Adriatic  to  all  the  Pope's  subjects  and  to  the  Ferrarese; 
she  also  repudiated  all  treaties  concluded  with  towns 
belonging  to  the  Pope,  and  promised  not  to  afford  pro- 
tection to  rebels  against  the  Church,  and  to  restore  all 
goods  that  had  been  wrested  from  religious  associations.-j- 

The  solemn  absolution  of  the  representatives  of  Venice, 
shorn  of  most  of  the  customary  humiliating  adjuncts,  took 
place  in  the  Court  of  S.  Peter's  on  the  24th  February. 
The  Pope  himself  held  the  Gospel,  the  Envoys  laid  their 
hands  on  it  and  swore  to  observe  all  the  conditions  of  the 
treaty.  In  Rome  demonstrations  of  joy  were  universal  | 
and  in  Venice  also  public  thanksgivings  were  celebrated ; 
but  on  the  1 5th  February  the  Council  of  Ten  had  secretly 

*  Cf.  Alberi,  2  Serie,  III.,  34.  Carpi  had  been  French  Ambassador 
in  Rome  since  Jan.,  1510.     See  Maulde,  III.,  437. 

t  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  i5io,n.  1-6  ;  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  422  seq.\ 
Brosch,  Julius  II.,  186-191.  The  "  Don  Sigismondo"  here  mentioned 
as  concerned  in  the  negotiations  is  Sigismondo  de'  Conti.  Cf.  his  Report, 
II.,  400  seq. 

\  Paris  de  Grassis  in  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1510,  n.  7-11  ;  <r/;  also  the 
Despatch  of  the  Venetian  Ambassador  in  Brosch,  288-289,  and 
Sanuto,  X.,  9-13.  Ranke,  Rom.  und  Germ.  Volker,  249,  even  in  his 
last  edition,  misdates  the  absolution,  and  places  it  on  Feb.  20. 


320  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

■drawn  up  a  protest  against  the  conditions  of  the  absolution, 
declaring  them  null  because  the  Republic  had  been  driven 
by  force  to  sign  them.* 

The  Venetians,  however,  found  means  to  revenge  them- 
selves on  the  Pope  who  had  so  humbled  them  and  had 
forced  them  to  yield  on  all  the  important  points.  They 
began  to  disseminate  pamphlets  and  libels  against  Julius 

11.  The  first  of  these,  in  the  form  of  a  letter  from  Christ  to 
the  Pope,  was  still  couched  in  fairly  temperate  language :  it 
mourned  the  horrors  of  the  war,  as  if  Julius,  in  merely 
demanding  what  was,  by  every  title,  simply  his  own  from 
Venice,  was  responsible  for  these.f 

*  The  text  of  this  disgraceful  document  is  in  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  290- 
293.  ROMANIN  (v.,  241),  however,  already  knew  it.  Brosch's  defence 
of  this  piece  of  perjury  is  commented  upon,  supra,  p.  247,  note  t.  On  the 
thanksgiving  services  in  Venice,  see  Bembus,  409. 

t  Lettera  fenta  che  Jesu  Cristo  la  manda  a  Julio  papa  II.  in  questo 
anno  1 509,  in  Sanuto,  X.,  567-570 ;  cf.  ibid.,  VI.,  444,  463,  on  a 
satirical  poem  against  the  Pope.  The  accusations  against  Julius,  of  being 
addicted  to  Greek  vices,  came  in  part  from  Venice.  The  Despatches  of 
the  Envoys  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua,  which  retail  every  sort  of 
scandal,  contain  nothing  to  justify  this  charge.  The  Pope's  liking  for, 
and  notice  of,  the  young  and  good-looking  Federigo  Gonzaga,  who 
resided  in  Rome  for  some  time  as  a  hostage,  might  well  in  those  corrupt 
times  have  given  rise  to  unfavourable  comment  (see  LUZIO,  F.  Gonzaga, 

12,  20,  21,  23,  24,  32, 35),  but  nothing  of  the  sort  can  be  found.     Cf.  infra, 
Chap,  v.,  p.  351,  note  *. 


CHAPTER  V. 

Wars  of  Julius  II.  to  secure  the  Independence  of  the 
Holy  See  and  to  deliver  Italy  from  the  French. — 
Alliance  with  the  Swiss,  and  War  with  Ferrara. — Schism 
IN  the  College  of  Cardinals. — Sickness  of  the  Pope  and 
Perilous  Situation  in  Bologna. —His  Winter  Campaign 
against  Mirandola. — Loss  of  Bologna.  —  Attempts  of 
Louis  XII.  and  Maximilian  I.  to  create  a  Schism. — Pseudo- 
Council  AT  Pisa  and  General  Council  in  Rome. 

The  Peace  concluded  by  Julius  II.  with  Venice,  consequent 
on  the  danger  to  the  independence  of  the  Holy  See  and 
the  freedom  of  Italy  caused  by  the  increasing  preponderance 
of  France  in  the  Peninsula,  brought  the  Pope  at  once  into 
collision  with  Louis  XI I.  and  Maximilian  I.,  who  both 
desired  the  complete  ruin  of  the  Republic.  The  estrange- 
ment between  him  and  these  two  powers  was  further 
intensified  by  his  determination  to  resist  all  their  efforts 
to  increase  their  possessions  in  Italy.  He  now  addressed 
himself  with  characteristic  energy  to  the  second  great  task 
of  his  Pontificate  :  that  of  shaking  off  the  yoke  of  France 
which  pressed  so  heavily  on  the  Holy  See  and  on  his 
native  land,  and  driving  the  foreigner, "  the  barbarians,"  out 
of  Italy.  "  His  great  soul  was  filled  with  plans  for  the 
welfare  of  his  country."  * 

The  diflficulties  and    dangers  of  the  undertaking  were 

*  See  Ranke,  Rom.  und  Germ.  Volker,  249.  In  regard  to  Venice, 
Julius  himself  said  to  Trevisano :  Si  quella  terra  non  fusse,  bisogneria 
fame  un'  altra.     Sanuto,  X.,  82. 

VOL.  VI.  Y 


322  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

plain  enough.  Julius  had  understood  from  the  first  that 
it  would  be  no  easy  task  to  lay  the  spirits  which  he  had 
invoked  in  his  time  of  need.  His  thoughts  were  perpetu- 
ally occupied  in  devising  ways  and  means  for  freeing  Italy 
from  the  French ;  *  he  knew  well  enough  both  the  strength 
of  France  and  her  love  of  glory.  He  saw  her  influence 
paramount  in  Florence  and  Ferrara,  Milan  subjugated, 
a  new  fortress  erected  in  the  midst  of  his  own  Genoa  to 
hold  her  down,  Venice  humbled  to  the  dust  at  a  single 
stroke.  "  Had  he  not  cause  enough  to  tremble  for  the  See 
of  Rome,  which  certainly  could  not  be  saved  if  Italy  were 
sul3dued  ?  "  t 

From  the  first  moment  that  Julius  II.  recognised  the 
necessity  of  breaking  the  power  of  France  in  Italy,  he  gave 
his  whole  mind  to  the  task  with  the  inflexible  will  and 
indomitable  courage  that  characterised  him  and  all  his 
actions  ;  it  was  not  in  his  nature  to  hesitate  or  delay.  Thus 
in  the  eyes  of  Italian  patriots  he  is  the  hero  of  his  century.| 

From  the  outset  Julius  had  one  great  advantage  over  his 
opponent  in  the  swiftness  with  which  he  saw  and  resolved 
upon  the  measures  to  be  adopted.     On  one  day  Louis  XII. 

*  Julius  II.  said  to  the  Venetian  Envoy,  Donato,  on  the  14th  May, 
1510  :  Questi  francesi  mi  k  tolto  la  fame  e  non  dormo  e  questa  note  mi 
levai  a  pasizar  per  camera  che  non  poteva  dormir,  il  cor  mi  dice  bene, 
ho  speranza  di  bene,  son  stato  in  gran  affanni  per  il  passato,  concludendo 
e  volonta  di  Dio  di  castigar  el  ducha  di  Ferrara  e  liberar  Italia  de'  man  de 
Francesi :  Sanuto,  X.,  369.  FUMAGALLI,  Chi  I'ha  detto  (Milano,  1894), 
has  not  succeeded  in  proving  that  Julius  II.  ever  actually  uttered  the  well- 
known  and  often  quoted  exclamation,  "  Away  with  the  barbarians."  But 
there  can  be  no  doubt  that  he  said  something  of  the  kind.  Many  passages 
in  Sanuto  corroborate  this,  and  Guicciardini  says  that  he  used  to  say 
again  and  again  how  he  wished  that  Italy  rimanesse  libera  die  barbari. 
Cf.  Jovius  (Vita  Leonis  X.,  lib.  III.,  p.  59),  who  is  another  contempo- 
raneous writer. 

t  Jovius,  Vitae,  II.,  31  ;  Havemann,  1 1.,  323, 

X  Cf.  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  202-203. 


DEATH   OF   CARDINAL   D'AMBOISE.  323 

would  break  out  into  violent  diatribes  against  the  Pope,  who, 
in  tlie  words  of  the  French  Cardinal,  had  plunged  a  dagger 
into  his  heart  by  making  peace  with  Venice,*  and  on  the 
next  he  would  again  talk  of  a  reconciliation  with  Rome. 
On  the  25th  May,  15 10,  Cardinal  d'Amboise,  Louis'  ablest 
councillor  and  the  most  dangerous  enemy  of  Julius,  whom 
he  was  burning  to  supersede,  died.f  The  effect  of  his  death 
was  greatly  to  increase  the  vacillations  of  the  French  King.| 
For  Julius  this  event  was  a  fresh  incentive  to  pursue  with 
redoubled  energy  the  noble  aim  "  which  it  is  his  greatest 
glory  to  have  succeeded  in  achieving  even  partially."§  The 
first  necessity  was  to  find  coadjutors  interested  like  himself 
in  checking  the  predominance  of  France  in  Italy.!!  The 
Pope  sent  out  feelers  in  all  directions  and  entered  into 
relations  with  Maximilian,  with  Henry  VIII.  of  England, 
with  the  King  of  Spain,  and  with  the  Swiss.  He  met  with 
many  bitter  disappointments.  The  negotiations  with  Ger- 
many and  England  failed  completely.  He  had  counted 
on  securing  the  open  support  of  the  King  of  Spain  by  be- 
stowing on  him  in  the  beginning  of  July,  15 10,  the  investi- 

*  See  Relazione  di  D.  Trevisano  (15 10)  in  Alberi,  2  Serie,  III.,  34. 

t  II  papa  vuol  essere  il  signore  e  maestro  del  ginoco  del  mondo,  writes 
Trevisano,  in  the  Relation  referred  to  in  the  preceding  note,  teme  di 
Francia  per  Roano,  il  quale  certo  sark  papa,  per  i  voti  che  poi  avrk,  se  non 
fa  altri  cardinali  italiani.  On  d'Amboise's  plans  for  securing  the  Tiara, 
see  supra,  pp.  263,  294.  On  d'Amboise  (whose  splendid  tomb  is  in  the 
Cathedral  at  Rouen),  see  the  monographs  by  SiRMOND  (Paris,  1631), 
Baudier  (Paris,  1634),  Legendre  (Paris,  1723,  Rouen,  1724,  2  vols.)^ 
Sacy  (London,  1776),  and  GOYON  d'Arsac  (Montaub.,  1784),  though 
these  even  all  together  do  not  by  any  means  exhaust  the  results  of 
modern  research  in  regard  to  him.  A  new  biography  of  this  remarkable 
man  is  much  to  be  desired. 

X  Desjardins,  II. ,  513.  Cardinal  Chaland  became  Legate  of  Avig- 
non upon  the  death  of  d'Amboise.     See  Fantoni,  352. 

§  BrOSCH,  Julius  II.,  202. 

II  Ibid.,  185 


324  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

ture  of  Naples  without  any  regard  to  the  claims  of  the 
Valois,*  but  here,  too,  he  was  unsuccessful  at  first.  On  the 
other  hand,  he  was  successful  in  obtaining  the  help  of  the 
Swiss.  Here  Louis  XII.'s  want  of  tact  in  his  conduct  to- 
wards the  Swiss  Federation  came  to  his  assistance,  and 
also  the  exertions  of  the  Swiss  Bishop  of  Sitten,  Matthaeus 
Schinner,  who  had  always  been  a  determined  opponent  of 
the  French  policy.  This  remarkable  prelate  had  great 
influence  over  his  fellow  countrymen  on  account  of  his 
blameless  life  and  his  strictness  in  all  ecclesiastical  matters. 
He  was  a  man  of  immense  energy,  one  of  the  greatest  his 
country  has  ever  produced.  "  His  eloquence  stirred  all 
hearts  in  a  wonderful  way."-|-  His  love  for  the  Church  and 
her  visible  head  was  the  niainspring  of  his  life,  which  was 
in  great  part  devoted  to  persevering  efforts  to  enlist  the 
whole  martial  spirit  and  power  of  his  nation  in  her  defence. 
He  always  disliked  the  French;  in  the  year  1501  he 
preached  with  such  vigour  and  effect  against  France  that 
those  who  belonged  to  that  party  tried  to  have  him  silenced. 
He  was  penetrated  with  the  old  mediaeval  idea  of  the  two 
swords :  the  spiritual  sword  wielded  by  the  Pope,  Christ's 

*  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1510,  n.  24  seq.  Cf.  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  196- 
201.  Creighton,  IV.,  118,  erroneously  makes  the  date  of  the  investiture 
17th  June,  and  Sismondi,  XIV.,  71,  July  7th.  The  Bull  which  con- 
tains the  clause  precluding  the  King  of  Naples  from  the  imperial  crown, 
and  from  ever  combining  the  lordship  of  Tuscany  and  Lombardy  with 
that  of  Naples,  is  dated  3rd  July.  It  was  not,  however,  communicated 
to  the  Cardinals  till  the  Consistory  of  5th  July  (see  Acta  Consist.,  Con- 
sistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican),  and  this  is  corroborated  by  Sanuto, 
X.,  727,  745-746.  Later,  Ferdinand  also  obtained  the  remission  of  the 
fief  dues  in  return  for  the  annual  gift  of  a  white  palfrey,  and  an  engage- 
ment to  supply  300  soldiers  for  the  defence  of  the  States  of  the  Church 
if  they  should  be  attacked.  Prescott,  II.,  501,  note  16.  On  the  8th 
April,  1 5 10,  the  Golden  Rose  was  sent  to  Henry  VI 1 1.,  in  hopes  of  gaining 
his  support.     See  WiLKlNS,  III.,  652. 

t  DiERAUER,  II.,  401. 


LEAGUE   OF  JULIUS    IL   AND   THE   SWISS.  325 

Vicar  on  earth,  and  the  temporal  by  the  Head  of  the  Holy- 
Roman  Empire,  the  protector  of  the  Church.  Thus  he  con- 
sidered that  it  was  the  first  duty  of  Switzerland,  and  would 
be  the  path  of  glory  for  her,  to  stand  by  the  Emperor  in 
defending  the  Roman  Church  against  France,  whose  pre- 
dominance in  Italy  was  a  permanent  danger  to  the  freedom 
and  independence  of  the  Holy  See.* 

Julius  n.  quickly  recognised  the  valuable  qualities  of 
the  Swiss  prelate,  and  on  the  loth  September,  1508,  made 
him  a  Cardinal,  though  his  proclamation  was  deferred  for 
the  present.-]-  The  Swiss  had  withdrawn  from  the  League 
with  France  in  the  Summer  of  1509,  and  now  Julius  turned 
to  Schinner  for  assistance.  In  the  close  of  that  year  the 
Bishop,  not  without  personal  risk,  hastened  to  Rome  to 
arrange  the  details  of  an  agreement  between  the  Pope 
and  the  Swiss  Federation. J  In  February,  15 10,  as  Papal 
Legate,  he  laid  the  proposals  of  Julius  II.  before  his 
countrymen  at  Schwyz,  and  then  at  Lucerne  on  the 
same  day.  His  enthralling  eloquence  overcame  all 
objections.  On  the  14th  of  March,  15 10,  the  district  of 
Wallis  and  all  the  twelve  Cantons  ratified  a  treaty  for 
five  years  with  the  Pope.  "  The  Federation  undertook 
the  defence  of  the  Church  and  of  the  Holy  See.     They 

*  FUCHS,  Mailandische  Feldziige,  II.,  18,  19  {cf.  Joller,  52). 
Schinner's  *Letter  to  the  Castellan  of  Sitten,  dat.  28th  April,  1 506,  is  very 
interesting,  as  shewing  how  he  regarded  the  Holy  Roman  Empire,  "  out 
of  which,"  he  says  in  it,  "  all  our  liberties,  both  in  Church  and  State,  have 
sprung."  (State  Archives,  Sitten.)  The  Emperor  Maximilian  met 
Schinner  at  the  Diet  of  Constance,  and  there  became  personally 
acquainted  with  him.     See  Diebold  Schilling,  Chronik,  173. 

+  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1508,  n.  25. 

X  On  6th  Jan.,  15 10,  Julius  wrote  to  Uri  to  announce  Schinner's 
mission  (Letter  in  Lanz,  Grundriss,  I.,  759),  and  another  letter  on  the 
same  day  to  the  Abbot  of  Dissentis.  See  MOHR,  Regesten  von 
Dissentis,  N.  664  ;  cf.  FuCHS,  II.,  155. 


326  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

promised,  whenever  the  Pope  should  require  their  help, 
to  furnish  6000  men  to  meet  the  foe,  provided  they  were 
not  themselves  engaged  in  war.  Further,  for  the  term  of 
their  agreement  they  engaged  not  to  ally  themselves  with 
any  third  power  without  the  Pope's  permission,  nor  to 
supply  any  other  power  with  troops.  The  Pope  on  his 
part  bound  himself  to  consult  the  interests  of  the  Federa- 
tion in  any  treaties  of  peace  or  alliances  that  he  might 
make,  to  defend  them  with  his  spiritual  weapons  against 
their  enemies,  to  pay  to  each  Canton  and  to  Wallis  a 
yearly  sum  of  1000  florins,  6  francs  monthly  to  each 
soWier  in  the  army,  and  twice  that  sum  to  each  officer."* 
Trusting  to  his  alliance  with  the  Swiss  and  to  the 
support  of  Venice,  Julius  II.  made  no  secret  of  his  in- 
tention of  going  to  war  with  France.  "  These  French," 
he  said  on  the  19th  June  to  the  Venetian  Ambassador, 
"  are  trying  to  reduce  me  to  be  nothing  but  their  King's 
Chaplain  :  but  I  mean  to  be  Pope,  as  they  will  find  out 
to  their  discomfiture."  He  spoke  in  similar  terms  to  the 
Florentine  Envoy.-f  Cardinal  Clermont,  who  attempted 
against  the  Pope's  wishes  on  the  29th  June  to  escape  to 
France,  was  arrested  and  taken  to  the  Castle  of  St.  Angelo. 
Other  Cardinals  who  were,  as  Julius  II.  knew,  secretly 
working  on  the  French  side,  were  threatened  with  a  similar 
fate.  When  the  Cardinals  Briconnet,  Louis  d'Amboise, 
de  Prie,  and  Sanseverino  interceded  with  the  Pope  for  his 
release,  he  told  them  to  their  faces  that  it  looked  as  if  they 
too  wished  to  be  provided  with  lodgings  in  St.  Angelo.| 

*  DiERAUER,  II.,  402-403. 

t  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  203-204,  348.  The  exact  words  to  the  Floren- 
tine Envoy  are  in  *Cerretani,  Cod.  II.,  III.,  76,  f.  344,  of  the  National 
Library,  Florence. 

t  Cf.  Sanuto,  X.,  565,  696,  700,  720,  725,  728,  732,  734,  746-747, 
761,  803, 806,  856,  857,  871  ;  see  *Cerretani,  loc.  cit.,  f.  348.     The  *Acta 


RUPTURE   WITH    LOUIS   XII.  327 

At  the  same  moment  Louis  XII.  attacked  the  Pope 
in  his  spiritualities  by  reviving  a  considerable  number  of 
the  provisions  of  the  Pragmatic  Sanction,  especially  those 
relating  to  benefices.*  In  the  beginning  of  July  a  sharp 
exchange  of  high  words  took  place  between  Julius  and 
the  French  Ambassador.  Carpi  remonstrated  with  the 
Pope  on  his  intention  of  helping  the  Genoese  to  shake 
off  the  yoke  of  France,  which  he  said  was  a  line  of  con- 
duct on  the  part  of  Julius  that  his  King  had  not  deserved. 
The  Pope  replied,  "  I  look  upon  your  King  as  my  personal 
enemy,  and  do  not  wish  to  hear  anything  more,"  The 
Ambassador  was  shewn  to  the  door  and  Julius  refused 
to  hear  any  further  explanation.-]-  The  rupture  with 
Louis  XII.  was  now  definitive.  The  Venetian  Envoy 
writes  that  "the  French  in  Rome  stole  about  looking 
h'ke  corpses."  | 

The  Pope's  plan  was  to  attack  the  French  in  Italy  on 
all  sides  at  once  ;  in  Genoa,  Verona,  Milan,  and  Ferrara. 
The  Venetians  were  to  throw  themselves  on  Verona,  the 
Swiss  to  invade  Milan,  the  Fregosi  in  Genoa,  supported 
by  Papal  and  Venetian  troops,  were  to  rise  against  France, 
and  Francesco  Maria  della  Rovere,  also  in  combination  with 
Venice,  was  to  march  against  Duke  Alfonso  of  Ferrara. 

Julius  II.  was  especially  exasperated  against  the  Duke 
of  Ferrara,  who  had  thrown  himself  completely  into  the 
arms  of  France  and  continued  to  harass  Venice  in  spite 
of  the  Pope's   repeated    commands.     The  Prince  was  not 

Consist.,  f.  27,  mention  Clermont's  imprisonment :  *Dicta  die  (29th 
June)  R.  D.  F.  card.  Auxit.  cum  uno  ex  suis  et  sine  habitu  cardinalitio 
extra  domum  suam  per  urbem  a  Barizello  captus  et  per  Tyberim  ad 
castrum  S.  Angeli  introductus  et  ibi  detentus.  Consistorial  Archives  of 
the  Vatican. 

*  Maulde,  Origines,  135. 

t  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  206,  349-350.    Cj.  Maulde,  III.,  459. 

X  Sanuto,  X.,  829. 


328  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

only  his  own  feudatory  vassal,  but  was  also  bound  to 
him  by  ties  of  gratitude  for  quite  recent  services.  During 
the  past  Winter  he  had  restored  Comacchio  to  Alfonso, 
and  prevented  the  Venetians  from  attacking  him.  Now, 
protected  by  Louis  XII.,  in  defiance  of  that  monarch's 
treaty  with  Julius  II,*  the  Duke  went  on  with  the  war 
against  Venice,  and  did  everything  in  his  power  to  injure 
the  Holy  See.  He  harried  the  inhabitants  of  the  States 
of  the  Church,  ignored  the  Pope's  authority  even  in 
ecclesiastical  matters,  and  persisted  in  working  the  salt 
marshes  of  Comacchio  to  the  detriment  of  the  Papal 
monopoly  at  Cervia,  asserting  that  he  held  this  town  in 
fief  from  the  Emperor  and  not  from  the  Holy  See.  All 
the  Pope's  demands  were  either  "  evaded  or  met  by  a 
direct  refusal  or  an  evasion ;  Alfonso  was  determined 
not  to  obey  him."  f  Finally  Julius  II.  commenced  legal 
proceedings  against  his  insubordinate  vassal.  A  Bull  of 
9th  August  excommunicates  Alfonso  as  a  rebel  against 
the  Church,  and  declares  him  to  have  forfeited  all  his 
dignities  and  fiefs.  In  it  he  is  severely  blamed  J  for  his 
adhesion  to  Cardinal  d'Amboise,  who,  it  says,  was  plotting 
to  obtain  the  Tiara  during  the  lifetime  of  the  lawful  Pope, 
and  sowed  dissension  between  France  and  Rome.§ 

*  Lanz,  Einleitung,  109. 

t  See  Ranke,  Rom.  und  Germ.  Volker,  251.  Cf.  the  authorities 
referred  to  here  and  in  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  424  seq.  See  also 
Balan,  v.,  472,  and  Rob.  Boschetti,  II.,  46  seq.  Cf.  also  in 
Appendix,  N.  84,  the  *Brief  of  the  5th  June,  15 10.  (State  Archives, 
Modena.)  A  *Brief  from  Julius  II.  to  Alfonso,  unfortunately  undated, 
but  apparently  belonging  to  the  end  of  1507,  contains  complaints  of 
outrages  committed  by  Ferrarese"  officials  on  the  inhabitants  of  various 
places  named  in  it,  which  now  belonged  to  the  Holy  See.  *Lib.  brev.  25, 
f.  20^.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

I  See  P.  Martyr,  XXIII.,  N.  443. 

§  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  15 10,  n.  13  seq.     Cf.  *Acta  Consist.,  f.  27,  and 


EXASPERATION   OF  THE   KING  OF   FRANCE.  329 

The  Pope's  attempt  to  wrest  Genoa  from  France  was 
violently  resented  by  Louis  XII.  Machiavelli,  who  was 
then  an  Envoy  at  the  French  Court,  describes  the 
exasperation  of  the  King  and  his  courtiers.  "  As 
regards  the  Pope,"  he  writes  from  Blois  on  the  21st  July, 
"  you  can  imagine  what  is  said  of  him ;  obedience  is  to 
be  renounced  and  a  Council  hung  upon  his  neck.  The 
complete  annihilation  of  his  power,  both  temporal  and 
spiritual,  is  the  least  of  the  penalties  with  which  he  is  to 
be  visited.  Louis  is  determined  to  vindicate  his  honour 
even  if  he  loses  everything  he  possesses  in  Italy."  Machi- 
avelli gratified  his  hatred  of  Popes  by  fanning  the 
flame  with  all  his  might.  He  advised  the  King  to  set 
the  Roman  Barons  on  Julius ;  he  would  then  be  fully 
occupied  at  home  and  have  to  let  the  King  of  France  alone. 

Fortunately  for  the  Pope,  Louis  did  not  follow  this 
advice,  but  resolved  to  attack  his  enemy  just  where  he 
was  invincible — in  his  purely  spiritual  power.*  This- 
Pope,  who  was  such  an  obstacle  to  French  domination 
in  Italy,  was  to  be  hurled  from  his  throne  by  means  of 
a  Synod  creating  an  ecclesiastical  revolution.  Thus, 
"the  great  tournament  of  the  European  powers  was 
transferred  from  the  field  of  battle  and  the  realm  of 
diplomacy  to  that  of  the  life  of  the  Church."! 

On  the  30th  of  July,  Louis  XII.  issued  a  summons  ta 
all  the  Bishops  in  his  kingdom  to  send  representatives 
of  their  Dioceses  in  September  to  Orleans,  there  to  meet 

Sanuto,  XL,  108  seq.,  112  seg.,  114  seq.  I  saw  a  contemporaneous 
printed  copy  of  the  Bull  (impressum  Bononiae  15 10,  die  XXIII.)  in  the 
State  Archives  at  Modena.  There  is  also  here  a  notice  that  the  Bull 
was  posted  in  the  church  of  S.  John  Lateran  on  the  13th  Aug. 

*  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  208.  Cf.  TOMMASINI,  Machiavelli,  I.,  504  seq.  \. 
Creighton,  IV.,  121. 

t  Fraknoi,  Ungam  und  die  Liga  von  Cambrai,  85. 


330  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

together  and  hold  a  consultation  on  the  liberties  and 
privileges  of  the  Galilean  Church.*  By  a  royal  ordin- 
ance of  i6th  August,  1 510,  all  French  subjects  were 
forbidden  to  visit  the  Court  of  Rome.-j-  The  Assembly 
met  at  the  appointed  time,  not,  however,  at  Orleans  but 
at  Tours,  whither  Louis  also  betook  himself,  forbidding 
the  Papal  Nuncio  Leonini  to  follow  him.j  The  French 
Court-Bishops  answered  the  questions  set  before  them 
in  the  sense  desired  by  their  master.  The  Pope  did 
wrong  in  making  war  on  any  Prince  who  was  not  one 
of  his  vassals,  and  such  a  Prince  had  a  right  to  defend 
himself  with  arms,  and  even  to  invade  the  States  of  the 
Church  if  necessary,  and  to  withdraw  his  kingdom  from 
its  obedience  to  such  a  Pope.  The  term  at  which  the 
renunciation  of  obedience  should  take  place  must  be 
decided  by  ancient  custom  and  the  provisions  of  the 
Pragmatic  Sanction,  founded  on  the  decrees  of  the  Council 
of  Basle.  It  was  further  declared  that  a  King  when  thus 
attacked  had  a  right  to  protect  his  allies  against  the  Pope, 
and  to  hold  all  his  censures  as  null  and  void.  At  the 
same  time  it  was  agreed  that  before  taking  any  further 
steps  the  Galilean  Church  should  send  Envoys  to  the 
Pope  to  warn  him  not  to  proceed  in  his  present  conduct, 
and  to  demand  a  General  Council.  When  this  had  been 
done,  they  would  have  a  right  to  take  other  measures. 
Finally  they  granted  a  considerable  subsidy  to  the  King 
for  the  prosecution  of  the  war  in  Italy.§  On  that  point 
Louis  XII.'s  plans   were   of  a   very   extensive   character. 

*  Sandret,  Concile  de  Pise,  427-428.    Cf.  Maulde,  Origines,  1 34, 325. 

+  Maulde,  Origines,  135. 

X  Cf.  PlEPER,  Nuntiaturen,  42-43. 

§  Lehmann,  8-9  ;  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  432  seq. ;  Guett^e, 
VIII.,  108  seq.  \  Lettres  de  Louis  XII.,  II.,  29,  46  seq. ;  GlESELER,  II., 
4,  183  seq. 


RESOLUTION    OF   THE   POPE.  33 1 

"  He  intended  to  create  a  new  heaven  and  a  new  earth 
in  Italy."  He  proposed  to  lead  an  army  to  Rome  and 
himself  depose  the  Pope.*  "  But  his  mood  varied  from 
day  to  day  ;  one  day  he  seemed  quite  determined  to  begin 
at  once,  the  next  he  shrank  back  alarmed  at  some  appre- 
hended danger,  or  at  the  expenses  of  the  war.  The 
Ferrarese  Envoy  complained  that  he  changed  his  mind 
every  morning.  He  allowed  the  precious  time  in  which 
action  was  possible  to  slip  away,  while  he  amused  himself 
with  the  fatuous  contemplation  of  the  power  which  he 
possessed,  but  did  not  know  how  to  use."  Finally  he 
decided  upon  waiting  till  the  Spring,  and  till  he  could  be 
sure  of  Maximilian  and  Henry  VHI.-f 

Not  so  Julius  n.  He  knew  nothing  of  fear  or  irresolu- 
tion, and  difficulties  only  roused  him  to  greater  exertions. 
His  character  corresponded  curiously  with  his  family  crest, 
which  was  the  unbending  oak, — the  resolution  which  he 
now  formed  was  in  complete  harmony  with  his  fearless  and 
eager  temperament.  Though  he  was  far  from  well  he 
determined  to  accompany  his  army  in  the  campaign 
against  Ferrara,  the  most  advanced  outpost  of  the  French 
in  Italy,  and  thus  hold  his  untrustworthy  and  irresolute 
generals  to  their  work.  By  superintending  the  whole  enter- 
prise in  person  he  hoped  "  to  decide  everything  himself, 
and  get  his  decisions  promptly  carried  out,  and  to  be 
again  as  successful  as  when  he  had  boldly  taken  his  own 
line  against  the  Bentivogli,  and  refused  to  be  intimidated 
by  any  warnings  or  prognostications  of  evil.  He  had  no 
presentiment  that  he  was  going  forth  to  meet  one  of  the 
most  terrible  trials  of  his  whole  life."  J 

*  Cf.  Machiavelli's  Letters  of  the  21st  July  and  the  i8th  Aug.,  15 10. 
+  Lehmann,   9.      Cf.  Creighton,    IV.,  120;    Ranke,   Rom.   und 
Germ.  Volker,  256. 

X  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  2og. 


332  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

The  Pope's  irritation  with  Louis  XII.  increased  from  day 
to  day.  He  began  to  talk  of  excommunicating  the  King^ 
and  the  Cardinals  of  the  French  party  were  threatened  with 
the  severest  penalties  if  they  took  any  part  in  the  calling 
of  an  anti-Papal  Council.  Cardinal  Clermont  was  kept  in 
strict  confinement  in  St.  Angelo,  and  Cardinal  de  Prie  only 
escaped  the  same  fate  by  swearing,  at  the  Consistory  of 
1 8th  August,  not  to  leave  Rome ;  if  he  did,  he  would  at 
once  be  deprived  of  his  cardinalate.  These  severe  measures 
seemed  to  be  rendered  necessary  by  the  conduct  of  Cardinal 
d'Este,  who,  though  summoned  on  the  27th  July,  with  all 
the  other  absent  Cardinals  belonging  to  the  Court,  to  return 
to  Rome,  had  not  come  back.*  On  the  17th  of  August  the 
Pope  went  down  to  Ostia  f  and  thence  to  Civita  Vecchia, 
where  he  inspected  the  ships  destined  for  Genoa,  and  cele- 
brated the  conquest  of  Modena.j  All  the  Cardinals,  with 
the  exception  of  the  aged  Caraffa,  were  summoned  to  join 
him  at  Viterbo,  but  Briconnet  and  de  Prie  took  no  notice  of 
the  command.^  From  Viterbo  Julius  went  to  Montefiascone, 
and  started  from  thence  for  Bologna  with  400  men  on  the 
1st  September,  making  his  way  to  Ancona  through  Orvieto,. 
Assisi,  Foligno,  Tolentino,  and  Loreto,  where  he  said  Mass 
on  the  Feast  of  the  Nativity  of  the  Blessed  Virgin  (8th 
September).  || 

*  Sanuto,  XL,  143,  189,  192,  198.  Cf.  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed. 
Dollinger,  III.,  392,  and  ed.  Frati,  197-198  ;  also  Raynaldus,  ad  an. 
1510,  n.  18-19.  The  *Brief  to  Cardinal  d'Este  of  the  27th  July,  1510, 
in  Appendix,  N.  85.     State  Archives,  Modena. 

t  *Acta  Consist.,  f.  27.     Consistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

X  Cf.  Sandonini,  Modena,  11,  i^f)  seq. 

§  Sanuto,  XL,  220,  263. 

II  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  189  seq.^  and  *Acta  Consist.,  loc. 
cit.  From  Ancona,  on  the  9th  Sept.,  the  Pope  despatched  a  *Brief  to 
the  Bolognese  saying  that  he  had  heard  how  much  they  had  suffered  from 
the  enemy,  and  would  compensate  them.     On  the  7th  May  he  had  sent 


THE   POPE'S  JOURNEY  TO   FERRARA.  333 

At  this  place  some  attempts  were  made  by  Cardinal 
Fiesco  and  Lionello  da  Carpi  to  persuade  him  to  enter  into 
diplomatic  relations  with  France,  but  were  angrily  repulsed.* 
From  Ancona,  Julius  II.  proceeded  to  Rimini  j-  by  water, 
and  thence  pressed  on  to  Cesena  by  the  ancient  Via  Emilia, 
in  spite  of  the  rain  which  poured  down  like  a  waterspout. 
Paris  de  Grassis,  who.  travelled  with  the  Pope,  says, "  When 
the  people  saw  our  train 'toiling  along  in  such  weather,  they 
burst  out  laughing,  instead  of  greeting  the  Pope  as  they 
ought  to  have  done.  Although  the  following  day  was  just 
as  bad,  he  insisted  on  going  on  to  Forli,  whither  the  rain 
perseveringly  accompanied  us."  Here  they  only  spent  the 
night,  and  then  proceeded  at  once  to  Bologna,  which  they 
entered  on  the  22nd  of  September.  Everywhere  along  the 
road  ample  provision  was  made  by  the  inhabitants  for  the 
wants  of  the  Pope  and  his  people ;  at  his  desire  all  remains 
of  food  were  distributed  to  the  convents  and  the  poor.J 

a  *Brief  praising  the  fidelity  and  obedience  of  the  Ancients  of  Bologna  ; 
and  in  a  second  *  Brief,  dat.  Rome,  19th  May,  15 10,  he  again  praises  the 
Magistrates  for  their  loyalty,  and  assures  them  that  he  has  such  powerful 
alHes  that  he  has  no  apprehensions.  All  these  *Briefs  are  in  the  State 
Archives,  Bologna,  Q.,  lib.  5. 

*  Sanuto,  XL,  336  ;  Brosch,  JuHus  II.,  209. 

t  From  here  Julius  II.  sent  the  Bishop  of  Monopoli,  Michiel  Claudio, 
to  Venice  as  permanent  Nuncio.  See  Sanuto,  XL,  449;  Pieper, 
Nuntiaturen,  2)1  ^^l- 

X  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  191  seq.  Cf.  Fanti,  Imola,  24. 
The  entrance  into  Bologna  is  wrongly  dated  the  20th  by  Gozzadini, 
Alcuni  Avvenimenti,  VII.,  169.  Also  the  *Acta  Consist,  say  the  22nd, 
and  describe  it  as  :  magno  apparatu  receptus.  In  a  *Brief,  dat.  Pesaro, 
15th  Sept.,  1 5 10,  Julius  announced  his  arrival  to  the  Bolognese  ;  he  sent 
two  Commissarii  to  make  all  necessary  preparations.  (State  Archives, 
Bologna,  Q.,  lib.  5.)  On  the  19th  Sept.  a  letter  of  thanks  was  sent  to 
Perugia  for  the  promise  of  400  men  to  help  against  Ferrara.  City 
Archives,  Perugia,  and  Cod.  C,  IV.,  i,  of  the  University  Library, 
Genoa. 


334  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

Even  during  the  course  of  his  hurried  journey,  tidings  had 
reached  Julius  which  filled  him  with  anxiety;  he  heard 
from  Verona  that  the  expedition  against  Genoa  seemed 
likely  to  break  down.  In  Bologna  itself  he  found  great 
dissatisfaction  with  Alidosi's  government.  He  was  already 
suffering  from  fever,  and  found  it  hard  to  bear  up  against  all 
these  cares  ;  but  anything  in  the  way  of  better  news  revived 
him  at  once,  and  his  resolution  never  failed  for  a  moment, 
not  even  when  there  could  no  longer  be  any  doubt  that 
the  King  of  France  meant  to  summon  a  Council,*  and 
the  Swiss,  after  having  come  as  far  as  Chiasso,  yielding  to 
French  and  imperial  intrigues,  suddenly  turned  back  and 
gave  up  the  campaign.-}-  But  still  worse  news  was  yet  to 
come.  On  the  30th  September  he  had  made  the  Marquess 
of  Mantua  Standard-bearer  to  the  Church,^  and  on  the 
r4th  October  had  excommunicated  the  French  general. § 
Now,  on  the  17th,  tidings  arrived  from  Florence  that  the 
Cardinals  Carvajal,  Francesco  Borgia,  Briconnet,  Rene  de 
Prie,  and  Sanseverino,  instead  of  obeying  the  Pope's  com- 
mand  to  join   him  at   Bologna,   had  betaken   themselves 

*  Cf.  Corp.  dipl.  Portug.,  I.,  133. 

t  Sanuto,  XL,  425,  427,  455,  457,  466.  Cf.  the  Portuguese  Report 
from  Rome  of  the  15th  Oct.,  15 10,  in  the  Corp.  dipl.  Portug.,  I.,  133. 
The  unexpected  defection  of  the  Swiss  {cf.  Dierauer,  405)  disturbed 
the  Pope  more  than  anything  else,  as  his  *Brief  of  30th  Sept.,  1510, 
shews.  This  Brief  is  printed  in  the  Eidgenoss.  Abschieden,  III.,  2, 
519-520,  and  in  German  in  Anshelm,  III.,  229-231.  TOMMASINI, 
MachiaveUi,  I.,  704-705,  who  has  reprinted  it,  and  CreiGHTON,  IV., 
120,  have  overlooked  this.  The  Latin  text  of  the  Letter  from  the 
Federation,  dat.  Lucerne,  14th  Sept.,  15 10,  with  which  FUCHS,  II.,  200, 
is  not  acquainted,  and  to  which  the  Brief  was  an  answer,  is  to  be  found 
in  Cod.  Regin.,  557,  f.  115^,  in  the  Vatican  Library. 

J  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  195  ;  Sanuto,  XL,  486.  Cf.  Luzio, 
F.  Gonzaga,  8,  who  shews  that  it  was  the  Pope  who  had  released  the 
Marquess  from  his  imprisonment. 

§  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1510,  n.  16. 


SCHISM   IN   THE  SACRED   COLLEGE.  335 

to  the  camp  of  the  enemy  in  Milan.  For  various  reasons 
these  men  were  all  dissatisfied  with  Julius  II.  and  his 
policy.  They  cared  for  nothing  but  their  own  aggrandise- 
ment,* and  hoped  to  secure  that  by  helping  the  King  of 
France  to  depose  the  Pope,  whom  he  rightly  considered  the 
chief  obstacle  to  the  establishment  of  his  supremacy  in 
Italy.  "  Thus  a  schism  in  the  Sacred  College  was  added 
to  Louis'  threatened  Council."  f  Julius  had  long  been  mis- 
trustful of  the  French  Cardinals ;  but  it  was  a  terrible  blow 
to  him  when  the  two  Spaniards,  especially  Carvajal,  who 
was  so  highly  thought  of,  went  over  to  the  French  ;  never- 
theless he  still  by  no  means  lost  heart. 

At  this  critical  moment,  when  nothing  but  the  greatest 
prudence  could  have  saved  him,  the  Pope  committed  a 
fatal  error  in  allowing  himself  to  be  completely  deceived 
by  Cardinal  Alidosi.  This  worldly  and  greedy  prelate  was 
accused  by  his  enemies  of  the  worst  vices — whether  justly 
or  not  we  have  no  means  of  determining.^  He  had  cruelly 
oppressed  the  Bolognese  and  was  suspected  of  conspiring 
with  the  French.  §  In  consequence,  the  Duke  of  Urbino 
had  him  arrested  as  a  traitor  and  carried  in  chains  from 

*  Cf.  Moroni  in  the  Miscell.  di  storia  patria,  IL,  179. 

t  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  197 ;  Guicciardini,  IX.,  3  ;  Le 
Clay,  I.,  372  ;  BrOSCH,  Julius  II.,  211  ;  Lehmann,  27-28  ;  HergeN- 
ROTHER,  VIII.,  435  seq.  The  beginning  of  the  tension  between  Julius 
II.  and  Carvajal  dated  from  the  liberation  of  Caesar  Borgia  {cf.  supra^ 
p.  242).  Later  Carvajal,  who  was  both  passionate  and  ambitious,  had 
been  far  from  respectful  in  his  conduct  towards  the  Pope.  Nevertheless 
the  latter  continued  to  treat  him  with  great  consideration,  appointed  him 
to  honourable  posts,  and  gave  him  valuable  benefices  {cf.  Rossbach, 
Carvajal,  84,  89,  90).  Even  now  Carvajal  and  F.  Borgia  were  treated 
with  greater  leniency  than  the  others.     See  GuiCClARDINl,  loc.  cit. 

X  Cf.  Fanti'S  investigations,  Imola,  10  seq.^  which  have  not  been 
noticed  by  any  modern  writer.     See  also  infra,  p.  350,  note  t. 

§  Cf  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  199.  Cf  Sanuto,  IX.,  253,  and 
GOZZADINI,  Alcuni  awenimenti,  VII.,  171  seq. 


33^  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

Modena  to  Bologna  on  the  7th  of  October.  The  Bolognese 
now  hoped  that  their  hated  tyrant  would  pay  for  his  mis- 
deeds with  his  life.  But  in  his  very  first  conversation  he 
contrived,  by  insinuating  manners  and  plausibility,  so  to 
get  round  the  Pope  that  not  only  was  he  at  once  released, 
but  very  shortly  after,  on  the  i8th  October,  made  Bishop 
of  Bologna.*  The  citizens,  irritated  to  the  highest  degree, 
were  preparing  to  give  vent  to  their  anger,  when  suddenly 
the  French  army  under  the  command  of  the  excommuni- 
cated Chaumontf  appeared  at  the  gates  of  the  city,  which 
was  inadequately  garrisoned  with  only  900  men.  With 
the  French  were  the  Bentivogli,  thirsting  for  revenge.  The 
people  now,  says  Paris  de  Grassis,  took  up  arms,  not  to 
defend  the  Legate  or  the  Pope,  but  their  own  liberty.^ 
Alidosi  thought  of  nothing  but  his  personal  safety,  and 
said  openly  that  he  was  arming  his  people  not  against  the 
French  but  to  protect  himself  against  the  Bolognese. 

To  make  matters  worse  and  add  to  the  general  confusion, 
Julius  II.  now  broke  down  under  the  long  continued  strain, 
and,  as  the  astrologers  had  predicted,§  fell  seriously  ill  of 
fever ;  so  seriously  that  negotiations  for  the  supposed 
impending  election  were  set  on  foot.||  Now  at  last  for  a 
moment  his  indomitable  spirit  seemed  to  falter.     On  the 

*  Contemporaneous  writers  seem  utterly  at  a  loss  to  explain  this  event. 
Cf.  the  conjectures  of  P.  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  201. 

t  The  Bull  of  Excommunication  of  the  14th  Oct.,  15 10,  in  the  Bull. 
Rom.,  ed.  Luxemb.,  X.,  12-14.  Cf.  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1510,  n.  16; 
Lettres  de  Louis  XII.,  I.,  282  ;  and  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  426  seq. 

X  The  text  of  P.  DE  Grassis  in  Raynaldus  (populus  arma  capit  pro 
pontificis  tutelaque  sua)  is  inaccurate  throughout.  In  Frati,  201,  it  does 
not  make  sense.  The  correct  text  in  Bollinger's  edition  runs  thus  : 
populus  arma  capit  non  utique  pro  legato  nee  tam  pro  pontificis  tutela 
quam  sua  ipsorum  defensione. 

§  Cf.  the  Portuguese  Report  in  the  Corp.  dipl.  Portug.,  I.,  133. 

II  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  204  ;  cf.  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  350  seq. 


ILLNESS   OF   THE   POPE.  337 

19th  of  October  he  sent  for  the  Venetian  Ambassador  and 
told  him  that  if  the  troops  of  the  Republic  had  not  crossed 
the  Po  within  twenty-four  hours,  he  would  come  to  terms 
with  Chaumont.  The  Ambassador  relates  how,  on  the 
following  night,  tossing  on  his  sleepless  bed,  he  declared 
in  his  feverish  wanderings  that  he  would  rather  kill  himself 
than  fall  into  the  hands  of  the  French.*  With  the  dawn 
of  the  20th  October  the  fever  subsided,  and  the  sick  man 
recovered  his  self-command  with  a  celerity  which  shews 
the  extraordinary  elasticity  of  his  temperament.  When 
he  heard  that  the  armed  citizens  were  calling  his  name  he 
sprang  from  his  bed  and  had  himself  carried  out  on  one  of 
the  balconies  of  the  palace,  from  whence  he  gave  his  bless- 
ing to  the  people,  whose  temper,  owing  to  a  variety  of 
circumstances,  had  undergone  a  favourable  change  during 
the  preceding  days. 

Paris  de  Grassis,  as  an  eye-witness,  narrates  how  Julius, 
after  having  blessed  the  people,  crossed  his  arms  upon  his 

*  Cf.  the  extracts  from  the  Reports  of  the  Venetian  Ambassador  in 
Sanuto,  XI.  Here  on  the  26th  Sept.  it  is  said  that  the  Pope  is  in  bed 
con  terzanella  (p.  467)  ;  on  2nd  Oct.  that  he  is  ill  of  fever  :  H  medici 
dubita  non  si  buti  in  cuartana  (p.  494) ;  on  i8th  Oct.:  il  papa  k  pur  febre, 
quasi  ogni  giomo  uno  pocho,  e  como  I'ha  qualche  bona  nova,  I'ha  mancho, 
e  come  1'  k  cativa,  el  sta  in  letto  (p.  546)  ;  on  the  19th,  the  declaration  to 
the  Ambassador  mentioned  in  the  text.  On  the  20th,  it  has  been  decided 
to  come  to  terms  with  the  French.  El  papa  e  in  letto  con  la  febre  ;  it  is 
thought  that  he  cannot  live.  Tuta  questa  note  il  papa  rasonando  diceva  : 
Moriro,  moriro,  orsu,  vogho  morir !  Poi  diceva  :  Andaro  presone  de' 
Francesi,  de'  Francesi !  Questo  non  sera  vero.  Toro  il  veneno  da  mi, 
toro  il  veneno  al  tutto  !  E  cussi  tuta  questa  notte  su  queste  pratiche  ha 
rabiato,  non  k  mai  dormito  tutta  questa  notte  (pp.  548-550).  Brosch, 
Julius  1 1.,  202,  in  his  usual  fashion,  quotes  these  words  so  as  to  produce  a 
misleading  impression,  suppressing  what  the  Ambassador  says  of  the 
severity  of  the  fever,  and  anticipations  of  the  death  of  the  Pope.  The 
word  "  rabiato  "  indicates  mental  disturbance,  so  that  CreiGHTON,  IV., 
123,  correctly  makes  use  of  the  term  delirium. 

VOL.  VI.  Z 


338  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

breast,  as  though  confiding  his  person  to  their  honour  and 
care.  The  action  met  with  a  sympathetic  response,  and  a 
shout  went  up  from  the  crowd  with  a  promise  to  stand  up 
against  the  foe  as  one  man.  "  Now,"  exclaimed  the  Pope, 
as  they  carried  him  back  to  his  bed,  "  we  have  conquered 
the  French."  * 

The  hopes  of  Julius  II.  were  justified  by  the  conduct  of 
the  French  commander,  who,  instead  of  pressing  forward 
at  once,  began  to  negotiate,!  and  thus  gave  time  for  the 
Venetian  and  Spanish  troops  to  arrive.  Soon  the  French 
army,  encamped  on  the  Reno  three  miles  from  the  city, 
began  to  suffer  severely  from  want  of  provisions  and  the 
inclemency  of  the  weather,  and  was  forced  to  retire  to 
Castelfranco.  Julius,  who  had  broken  off  his  negotiations 
with  Chaumont,  was  now  anxious  that  his  troops  should 
sally  forth  and  fall  upon  the  French,  who  were  retiring 
slowly,  plundering  as  they  went.  His  vexation  at  not 
being  able  to  get  this  done  was  so  great  that  it  brought 
on  a  dangerous  relapse  on  the  24th.  Again  the  worst 
began  to  be  feared,  but  again  also  his  iron  constitution  was 
victorious.  In  two  days  he  began  to  improve,  and  by  the 
end  of  the  fourth  day  the  danger  was  over.  His  recovery, 
however,  was  retarded  by  his  obstinacy  in  refusing  to  spare 
himself  in  any  way  or  to  follow  the  advice  of  his  physicians. 
In  consequence,  he  had  many  relapses.  *'  The  Pope's  con- 
stitution," writes  the  Venetian  Ambassador  on  the  25  th 
November,  "  is  marvellous ;  if  he  would  only  take  care  of 
himself  he  would  soon  be  able  to  get  up."| 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  202,  203 ;  cf.  333.  Sanuto,  XL, 
551  seq. 

t  Semper,  Carpi,  7.    On  Chaumont's  motives,  cf.  Havemann,  II.,  346. 

X  Sanuto,  XI.,  634  ;  cf.  on  the  various  phases  of  his  sickness  and  his 
behaviour,  554,  556,  568,  569,  583,  586,  601,  603,633,642,  668,  and 
Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  204  seq 


CAMPAIGN   AGAINST   FERRARA.  339 

Far  from  attending  to  his  health,  the  mind  of  the  Pope 
was  occupied  day  and  night  with  his  plans  for  subduing 
Ferrara  and  driving  back  the  French.  He  caused  a  circular 
letter  to  all  the  Christian  Princes  of  Europe  to  be  drawn 
up,  in  which  he  accused  Louis  XII.  of  thirsting  for  the 
blood  of  the  Roman  Pope  and  sending  his  army  to  Bologna 
to  destroy  him.  He  declared  that  until  Ferrara  had 
capitulated  he  would  listen  to  no  more  overtures.  He 
urged  the  Venetians  with  redoubled  energy  to  join  their 
forces  to  his  and  at  once  commence  the  siege  of  that  city. 
But  his  impatience  was  doomed  to  disappointment.  The 
union  of  the  two  armies  took  place  in  due  course,  but  the 
combined  forces  waited  in  vain  for  the  Marquess  of  Mantua. 
At  the  same  time  the  Venetian  fleet  met  with  a  reverse.* 
Julius  II.  had  on  the  nth  December  appointed  Cardinal 
Marco  Vigerio,  Legate  of  the  Papal  troops ;  eight  days  after, 
news  came  of  the  conquest  of  Concordia.f  His  Master  of 
Ceremonies  reports  that  on  the  15th  December  he  had  so 
far  recovered  as  to  be  able  to  leave  the  house  of  his  friend, 
Giulio  Malvezzi,  where  he  had  been  staying  since  the  6th 
November,  and  return  to  his  own  palace.  Externally  he 
was  very  much  altered  in  appearance,  as  during  his  illness 
he  had  grown  a  long  beard.|     At  Christmas  he  was  able  to 

*  GUICCIARDINI,  IX.,  Chap.  3. 

t  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  211  seq.  Cf.  Sanuto,  XL,  681,  689, 
and  GOZZADINI,  Alcuni  avvenimenti,  VII.,  184. 

X  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  213,  241.  A  Bolog-nese  chronicler  (in 
GOZZADINI,  loc.  cif.,  182)  reports  :  Portava  la  barba  per  vendicarsi  et 
diceva  che  non  la  voleva  piu  rasar  per  insino  a  tanto  che  non  aveva  anco 
fuora  scazato  el  re  Ludovico  de  Franza  d' Italia.  See  Petrus  Martyr, 
Lib.  XXIV.,  ep.  451.  Cf.  also  Luzio,  F.  Gonzaga,  65.  For  several 
centuries  no  Pope  had  ever  worn  a  beard,  and  at  the  Conclave  of 
1455  even  Bessarion's  oriental  beard  had  been  blamed  by  some. 
(See  Vol.  II.  of  this  work,  p.  323.)  See  generally  on  the  wearing  of 
beards  during  the   Renaissance   period,    MuNTZ,   Hist,  de   I'A.,    III., 


340  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES 

say  Mass,  but  only  in  his  private  chapel  and  sitting.  On 
S.  Stephen's  Day  he  wished  to  attend  the  High  Mass  at 
the  Cathedral,  but  heavy  snow  and  a  slight  return  of  fever 
obliged  him  to  give  up  his  intention.*  It  can  therefore  be 
imagined  what  the  amazement  of  his  Court  must  have 
been  when  he  informed  them  on  the  29th  of  December  that 
he  intended  to  join  the  army  before  Mirandola,  in  order  to 
see  why  his  troops  were  putting  off  their  attack  in  spite 
of  his  repeated  commands.  Although  every  one,  the 
Cardinals,  the  Prelates,  the  Bolognese,  and,  at  first,  even  the 
Venetian  Envoys,  did  their  utmost  to  dissuade  him,  they 
could  not  alter  his  determination ;  he  was  convinced  that 
nothing  but  his  presence  in  person  could  defeat  the 
machinations  of  those  who  were  hindering  the  progress  of 
the  campaign.-f- 

On  the  2nd  of  January,  151 1,  the  world  was  called  upon 
to  witness  the  strange  spectacle  of  a  Pope,  regardless  of 
his  dignity,  his  advanced  age,  his  health,  and  the  rigours 
of  an  unusually  severe  Winter,  setting  forth  to  join  his  army 
in  their  camp  before  Mirandola.  Amongst  those  who 
accompanied  him  were  the  Cardinals  Isvalies,  d'Aragona, 
and  Cornaro,  and  the  famous  architect  Bramante.:[:  The 
Venetian  Envoy,  Girolamo  Lippomano,  who  had  attached 
himself  to  the  Papal  train,  gives  utterance  in  his  Reports  to 
the  universal  astonishment.  "Julius  II.,"  he  writes  on  the 
6th  January,  "  has  appeared,  contrary  to  all  expectation. 

jCjb  seq.  It  was,  however,  "quite  in  character  for  JuHus  II.  to  be  the 
first  to  assume  this  note  of  virility."  Gregorovius,  Grabdenkmaler, 
124.     See  also  Novaes,  VI.,  136. 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  223. 

t  Sanuto,  XL,  712  seq.,  719.  From  a  Portuguese  Report  of  15th 
Oct.,  1 5 10,  it  appears  that  even  in  the  Autumn  the  Pope  had  expressed 
his  intention  of  personally  taking  part  in  the  war.     Corp.  dipl.  Portug.,  I., 

X  Cf.  Semper,  Carpi,  8. 


ENERGY   OF  JULIUS  II.  34I 

He  hates  the  French  worse  than  ever.  Apparently  he  has 
quite  recovered  ;  he  goes  about  in  all  the  wind  and  weather, 
and  watches  the  clearing  away  of  the  snow  from  his 
balcony ;  he  has  the  strength  of  a  giant.  Yesterday  and 
to-day  the  snow  has  been  falling  without  intermission,  and 
is  half  the  height  of  a  horse,  and  yet  the  Pope  is  in  the 
Gamp.  Our  Republic  is  being  splendidly  served.  His 
Court,  who  have  no  heart  for  Italy,  and  think  of  nothing 
but  their  money,  are  dying  to  get  back  to  Rome  ;  but  they 
are  quite  helpless;  Julius  H.  thinks,  dreams,  and  talks 
to  satiety  of  nothing  but  Mirandola."  *  In  a  Report  on 
the  following  day  he  says,  "  To-day  the  Pope  reviewed  the 
troops  in  the  snow.  His  spirit  and  courage  are  marvellous, 
but  he  is  not  supported  by  his  people."  The  consciousness 
of  this  sometimes  angered  him  almost  to  madness,  and  he 
would  storm  and  rave  at  his  generals  for  their  tardiness.^ 

At  first  Julius  II.  had  taken  up  his  abode  in  a  farm- 
house; when  the  batteries  opened  fire,  he  withdrew  to 
Concordia,  but  his  impatience  soon  became  so  great  that 
in  a  few  days  he  returned  to  take  up  his  quarters  in  the 
Convent  of  S'*  Giustina,  which  was  quite  close  to  the 
battery  and  nearer  to  the  fortress  than  the  farm-house. 
His  Court  were  lost  in  wonder  :  "  His  Holiness  lives  in  the 
kitchen  of  the  Convent,"  writes  the  Venetian  Paolo  Capello 
on  the    13th  January,  "  and  I  inhabit  an  open   stable  that 

*  Sanuto,  XL,  722-723  ;  cf.  721.  See  also  the  interesting  Mantuan 
Despatch  in  Luzio,  F,  Gonzaga,  65  seq.;  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati, 
225  ;  Grumello,  124  seq.;  and  Carpesanus,  V.,  N.  2.  On  the  unusual 
severity  of  the  Winter  of  1 5 1 1,  ^  Landucci,  306,  and  Cambi,  XXL,  251, 
who  are,  not  without  reason,  scandalised  at  the  Pope's  conduct  in  joining 
the  camp.  His  armour  is  still  preserved  in  the  Vatican,  and  will  be 
placed  in  the  new  Museum  in  the  Appartamento  Borgia. 

t  Sanuto,  XL,  724,  725,  726  ;  c/.  729,  730,  731,  732,  740.  See  further, 
the  Mantuan  Despatches  in  LuziO,  F.  Gonzaga,  66,  and  the  Report  of 
the  Envoy  from  Orvieto  in  FUMI,  Carteggio,  134-135. 


342  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

anywhere  else  would  not  be  thought  fit  even  for  a  servant ; 
but  here  it  is  so  much  prized  that  Cardinals  Cornaro  and 
d'Aragona  have  been  asking  for  it.  The  weather  is 
detestable ;  to-day  we  have  a  furious  snow  storm,  and  yet 
the  Pope  has  gone  out.  His  health  and  spirit  are  super- 
human, nothing  seems  to  hurt  him."  The  Venetian  Envoy 
Lippomaiio  said  to  Cardinal  Alidosi,  who  Avas  also  in  the 
camp,  "  It  ought  to  be  recorded  in  all  histories  that  a  Pope, 
only  just  out  of  his  sick-bed,  has  taken  the  field  himself  in 
January  and  in  the  midst  of  such  snow  and  cold.  The 
rivers  are  all  frozen  ;  it  is  Winter  with  a  vengeance."  A 
report  of  the  17th  January  states  that  on  that  day  a 
cannon-ball  had  entered  the  room  where  the  Pope  was 
lying  asleep,  and  had  wounded  two  of  his  servants.  After 
this  Julius  moved  into  the  house  of  Cardinal  Isvalies.  But 
here  too  he  found  that  shots  were  occasional  visitors,  and 
so,  in  spite  of  the  remonstrances  of  his  people,  he  returned 
to  his  former  quarters.  "  The  Pope  displays  extraordinary 
courage,"  writes  the  Venetian  Envoy.  "  He  is  burning 
with  impatience  to  march  on  Ferrara."  The  long  sustained 
resistance  of  the  defenders  of  Mirandola  so  enraged  Julius 
that  he  rated  his  own  generals  in  violent  terms,  and  talked 
of  giving  the  town  over  to  pillage.*'  When  at  last,  on 
the  20th  of  January,  it  capitulated,  his  people  succeeded  in 
persuading  him  to  grant  milder  terms.  He  was  in  such  a 
hurry  to  set  foot  in  his  new  conquest  that  he  would  not 
wait  to  have  the  gates  unbarred,  but  clambered  in  through 
the  breach  on  a  wooden  ladder.  On  the  following  day  he 
declared  that  he  would  at  once  proceed  to  Ferrara,  and 

*  Sanuto,  XL,  740,  741,  743,  744,  746,  747,  750,  755.  Cf.  Gozza- 
DINI,  Alcuni  awenimenti,  VII.,  197  seq.;  Mem.  della  Mirandola,  II.,  179 
seq.^  183  ;  and  Balan,  Assedii  della  Mirandola,  12  seq.^  14.  Julius  sent 
the  cannon-ball  to  the  Sanctuary  of  Loreto,  where  it  is  still  preserved.. 
Cf.  GozzADiNi,  loc.  cit.^  VII.,  198,  and  Tursellinus,  169  seq. 


THE   DUKE   OF   FERRARA   REFUSES   TO    TREAT.      343 

appointed  Count  Gianfrancesco  Pico,  Lieutenant  of  the 
conquered  fortress.* 

His  personal  experience  of  the  difficulties  which  he 
would  have  to  encounter  in  subduing  Ferrara  induced 
Julius  to  enter  into  communication  with  Alfonso  in  order 
to  persuade  him  to  abandon  his  alliance  with  France.  He 
also  endeavoured  to  detach  Maximilian  from  Louis  XH., 
by  handing  Modena  over  to  the  imperial  commander.j- 
The  Duke  of  Ferrara  let  the  Pope  know  through  an 
indirect  channel  that  he  would  not  treat  with  him,  and  so 
the  war  had  to  go  on. 

For  a  time  Julius  still  clung  to  his  purpose  of  personally- 
pursuing  the  campaign;  but  the  representations  of  his 
Court,  and  his  dread  of  being  taken  prisoner  by  the  French, 
induced  him  for  the  present  to  return  to  Bologna  until 
he  could  collect  a  larger  army.  When  he  found  that  his 
return  to  Bologna  (on  the  6th-7th  February)  had  at  once 
encouraged  the  French  to  advance  again,  he  proceeded  on 
the  nth  by  Imola  to  Ravenna  in  order  to  attack  Ferrara 
from  that  side. J  In  Ravenna,  which  he  reached  on  the 
1 8th  of  February,  the  Pope  on  the  loth  of  March  created 
several  new  Cardinals,  "  to  strengthen  himself  against  the 
schismatics    and    to    fulfil    his    engagements     to    certain 

*  Sanuto,  XI.,  760,  763,  765,  766,  770,  772,  773,  776,  77Z,  787.  Cf. 
LUZIO,  F.-^  Gonzaga,  66  ;  Mem.  della  Mirandola,  II.,  185  seq.;  Balan, 
Assedii  della  Mirandola,  15  seq.;  GozzADiNi,  Alcuni  awenimenti,  VII., 
200  seq.,  where  aU  particulars  about  the  ring  (now  in  the  Museum  at 
Modena)  which  Julius  gave  to  the  inhabitants  of  Mirandola  may  be 
found. 

t  In  January,  151 1.     See  Sandonini,  Modena,  141. 

X  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  234  seq.,  and  Sanuto,  XL,  795,  800, 
801,  805,  813,  821,  831,  832,  838,  843;  FUMI,  Carteggio,  138,  139,  140- 
141  ;  Fanti,  Imola,  24-25.  Cf.  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  216  seq.  On  the 
day  that  he  left  Bologna,  the  Pope  wrote  to  M.  Lang  asking  him  to  come 
to  him.     See  Lettres  de  Louis  XII.,  II.,  112-113. 


344  HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES. 

powers."  *  Two  of  those  nominated  were  ultramontanes, 
the  Englishman  Bainbridge  and  the  Swiss  Bishop,  Matthseus 
Schinner,  the  other  six  were  Italians:  Antonio  Ciochi  di 
Monte  Sansovino,  Archbishop  of  Liponto  ;  Pietro  Accoli  of 
Arezzo,  Bishop  of  Ancona  ;  Achilles  de  Grassis  of  Bologna  ; 
Francesco  Argentino  of  Venice ;  Bandinello  Sauli  of 
Genoa ;   and  Alfonso  Petrucci  of  Siena. 

The  College  of  Cardinals  had  strenuously  resisted  these 
fresh  nominations,  but,  as  the  Venetian  Envoy  had  predicted, 
Julius  carried  his  point.  The  same  Envoy  says  that  some 
of  the  new  Cardinals  had  to  pay  large  sums  for  their  eleva- 
tion. The  nomination  of  de  Grassis  was  obviously  made  to 
please  the  Bolognese  ;  the  English  Cardinal  Bainbridge  was 
appointed  Commander-in-Chief  of  the  troops,  which  caused 
great  surprise.-j- 

Besides  these  eight  Cardinals  another  was  nominated,  but 
reserved  in  petto.  This  was  Maximilian's  confidant,  Matthaeus 
Lang,  Bishop  of  Gurk,  who  just  at  this  time  had  arrived  in 
Mantua,  where  the  Envoys  from  England,  France,  and 
Spain  were  also  present.  He  brought  proposals  of  peace 
from  his  master. 

Julius  II.  wished  to  treat  with  Lang  personally.  As 
Ravenna  was  too  insignificant  a  place  to  make  it  possible 
there  to  receive  the  representative  of  the  Emperor  with 
fitting  honours,  the  Pope,  though  extremely  dissatisfied 
with  the  slackness  of  his  generals  in  their  way  of  carry- 
ing on  the  war,  had  to  leave  that  city  on  April  3  and 
return  to  Bologna,  which  he  reached  on  the  7th  of  April, 

*  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  68,  ed.  3.  On  this  creation,  cf.  PARIS  DE 
Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  242  seq.\  Le  Glay,  I.,  388;  Fumi,  Carteggio,  143, 
145-146;  Cardella,  340  J^^. ;  and  *Acta  Consist,  f.  28.  Consistorial 
Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

t  Sanuto,  XII.,  25,  55-56,  69,  87  seq.\  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati, 

251. 


THE   ENVOYS  OF   MAXIMILIAN.  345 

1 5 II.*  On  the  loth  of  the  month,  Matthsus  Lang  and 
Giovanni  Gonzaga,  as  Envoys  from  the  Emperor,  and 
James  Conchilles  representing  Ferdinand  of  Spain,  entered 
the  city  in  state,  having  previously  had  a  private  audience 
with  the  Pope.-f-  It  was  observed  with  dissatisfaction  that 
even  in  this  procession  Lang  appeared  in  secular  dress. 
The  pedantic  Master  of  Ceremonies,  Paris  de  Grassis, 
characteristically  relates :  "  I  entreated  Lang  in  vain  to 
attire  himself  as  an  ecclesiastic,  especially  in  view  of  his 
approaching  admission  to  the  Sacred  College,  but  he  put 
me  off  by  saying  that  he  would  appear  in  the  garb  which 
he  wore  when  the  Emperor  sent  him.  When  I  asked  the 
Pope  about  it  he  said  that  it  was  his  wish  that  I  should 
let  the  matter  rest,  and  this  I  did,  although  many  were 
displeased  with  me  on  this  account,  and  still  more  with 
Lang."t 

When,  on  the  following  day,  the  Envoys  had  their  public 
audience,  Lang,  at  the  Pope's  express  command,  was  given 
the  place  of  honour  immediately  below  the  Cardinal- 
Deacons.  This  and  other  marks  of  distinction  were  received 
by  the  Envoy  with  such  unmannerly  arrogance,  that  he 
appeared  to  the  courteous  Italians  a  perfect  savage.  "  He 
is  a  barbarian,"  de  Grassis  writes  in  his  Diary,  "  and  behaves 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  260;  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  68, 
ed.  3  ;  and  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  219,  make  30th  Mar.  the  day  of  the 
Pope's  departure  from  Ravenna.  Both  have  read  de  Grassis  very 
superficially.  The  extract  naturally  begins  with  the  title  Discessus  ponti- 
ficis  ex  Ravenna  ad  Bononiam,  immediately  followed  by  the  words.  Die 
Dominica  30  Martii,  but  if  they  had  only  read  a  few  lines  more  they 
would  have  found  that  the  decision  to  leave  Ravenna  was  adopted  on 
that  day,  and  that  de  Grassis  then  goes  on  to  say  :  Itaque  die  Jovis 
tertia  Aprilis  inde  movit. 

t  Idi'd.,  263;  Ulmann,  II.,  426,  erroneously  puts  off  the  private 
audience  to  the  nth  of  April.     C/.  Lettres  de  Louis  XII.,  II.,  139. 

:j:  /dzd.,  265. 


346  HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES. 

like  a  barbarian,"  At  the  audience  he  curtly  explained 
that  Maximilian  had  sent  him  to  Italy  because  he  preferred 
to  obtain  his  rights  by  peaceful  means  rather  than  by  war, 
but  that  the  only  conditions  under  which  he  would  treat 
were,  that  the  Venetians  should  restore  everything  that 
they  had  taken  on  any  title  whatever,  whether  these  lands 
belonged  to  the  Empire  or  were  hereditary  possessions 
of  Austria.  When  three  Cardinals  were  deputed  by  Julius 
II.  to  carry  on  the  negotiations,  Lang  declared  it  to  be 
beneath  his  dignity  to  deal  personally  with  any  one  but  the 
Pope  himself,  and  commissioned  three  of  the  nobles  who 
accompanied  him  to  meet  the  Cardinals.  Julius  had  hoped 
to  win  him  by  bestowing  on  him  the  highest  dignity  and 
rich  benefices,  but  all  these  favours  seemed  only  to  encourage 
him  to  greater  insolence.  He  behaved  as  though  his  im- 
perial master  had  already  donned  the  Tiara.  The  Venetian 
Envoy  reports  with  amazement  with  what  pomp  the  Bishop 
of  Gurk  surrounded  himself,  and  how  seldom  he  visited  the 
Pope.  "  At  the  audience  he  conducted  himself  as  if  he  were 
a  King  rather  than  an  Ambassador,  and  claimed  the  right 
of  conversing  with  the  Pope,  sitting,  and  with  his  head 
covered."  It  is  not  surprising  that  these  never  very 
promising  negotiations  should  have  come  to  nothing.  On 
the  1 6th  April  all  Louis  XII.'s  adherents  had  been  excom- 
municated,* and  the  views  and  desires  of  both  the  parties 
concerned  were  diametrically  opposed  to  each  other.f 

*  The  Bull  in  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  151 1,  n.  50.  Lang  aimed,  "in 
accordance  with  his  master's  wishes,  at  reconciling  the  Pope  with  France, 
and  thus  completely  isolating  Venice  and  renewing  the  League  of 
Cambrai  in  its  earlier  form,  perhaps  with  the  addition  of  England. 
On  the  other  side  the  Pope  and  Venice  sought  to  win  the  Bishop,  and 
through  him  the  Emperor,  to  combine  with  them  in  attacking  France." 
Ruber,  III.,  389-390. 

t  Sanuto,  XII.,  126-129,  139)  HOj  147)  160  ;  Lang's  letters  in  Lettres 
de  Louis  XII.,  II.,   107  seq.^  139,   182,  205  seq.  ;    Paris  DE  GraSSIS, 


FAILURE   OF   THE   NEGOTIATIONS.  34/ 

On  the  25th  of  April  the  Bishop  of  Gurk*  left  the  Papal 
Court  suddenly,  "  almost  without  taking  leave,  and  with  an 
angry  mien."  The  Venetian  Envoy  reports  that  Lang's 
followers  cried  out  as  they  were  passing  through  the  city 
gates,  "  Long  live  the  Emperor,  long  live  France,  long  live 
the  Bentivogli."  It  is  not  wonderful  that  it  was  commonly 
said  in  Bologna  that  the  Pope  was  at  daggers  drawn  with 
all  the  Powers,  and  that' he  was  to  be  called  before  a  Council 
and  deposed.-}- 

Lang's  threats  were  something  more  than  empty  words, 
for  the  French,  who  had  suspended  their  hostile  operations 
while  the  negotiations  were  going  on,  at  once  recommenced 
them.  It  now  became  plain  that  Chaumont's  death,  which 
took  place  on  the  nth  February,  was  a  godsend  for  them. 
He  had  allowed  Modena  to  fall  into  the  hands  of  the 
enemy,  had  not  attacked  Bologna  in  time,  and  had  not 
relieved  Mirandola.  On  his  death  the  command  was 
assumed  by  the  veteran  Trivulzio.     The  first  thing  he  did 

ed.  Frati,  265  seq.,  271-272  (here  the  printer's  error,  27  Aprilis, 
should  be  the  25th).  COCCINIUS,  De  bellis  itaUcis  (in  Freher,  II.,  542 
seq.) ;  GUICCIARDINI,  IX.,  Chap.  5,  who  observes  :  La  quale  indegnita 
divorava  insieme  con  molto  altro  il  pontefice,,  vincendo  la  sua  natura  I'odio 
incredibile  contro  ai  Frances! ;  Le  Glay,  I.,  394  seq. ;  BREWER,  State 
Papers  of  Henry  VIII.,  I.,  168.  Cf.  Havemann,  II.,  358  seq.  ;  Brosch, 
Juhus  II.,  220,  353  ;  ROMANIN,  v.,  256  ;  Ulmann,  II.,  426  seq. ; 
HUBER,  III.,  389-391  ;  Creighton,  IV.,  127-128,  and  in  regard  to  the 
description  in  Coccinius,  Krieger's  investigations,  Ueber  die  Bedeutung 
des  vierten  Buches  von  Coccinius'  Schrift  De  bellis  Italicis,  p.  27  seq.^ 
which,  however,  are  inadequate  and  even  partially  incorrect,  as  e.g..,  on 
p.  32  we  find  :  "  Coccinius'  statement  that  Lang  had  been  fourteen  days 
in  Bologna  is  erroneous.  He  arrived  on  the  8th  April,  and  went  away 
again  on  the  iSth,"  in  confirmation  of  which  he  cites  Lettres  de  Louis 
XII.,  II.,  205.  Here,  however,  we  find  that  Lang  left  on  the  25th. 
Thus  it  is  Krieger  rather  than  Coccinius  who  needs  correction. 

*  Not  Archbishop,  as  Grimm,  Michelangelo,  I.,  ed.  5,  designates  him. 

t  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  272  ;  Brosch,  loc.  cit. 


348  HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES. 

was  to  reconquer  Concordia,  and  the  next,  to  advance 
against  Bologna.  As  soon  as  Julius  heard  this,  he  started 
in  haste  for  the  camp,  in  order  to  stir  up  his  generals  and 
set  the  army  in  motion.  He  meant  to  have  slept  the  first 
night  at  Cento,  but  was  obliged  to  stop  at  Pieve,  as  a  troop 
of  1000  foot  soldiers  who  were  encamped  in  the  former 
place  refused  to  leave  it  until  they  were  paid.  He  was  so 
much  annoyed  at  this,  that  on  the  following  day  he  returned 
to  Bologna ;  but  it  was  evident  that  if  he  remained  there, 
he  would  again  run  the  risk  of  being  captured  by  the 
French.  He  resolved  therefore  to  return  to  Ravenna. 
Before  his  departure  he  called  the  Council  of  Forty  together, 
laid  before  them  all  the  advantages  which  Bologna  had 
derived  from  belonging  to  the  Church,  and  admonished 
them  to  remain  faithful  to  him.  On  their  solemn  promise 
to  be  always  true  to  him,  he  confided  the  defence  of  the 
walls  and  gates  to  the  citizens.* 

The  fate  of  Bologna  after  the  Pope's  departure,  which 
took  place  on  the  15th  May,-|-  did  not  depend  so  much 
upon  the  conduct  of  her  citizens  as  upon  that  of  Alidosi 
and  the  Duke  of  Urbino,  who,  with  his  army,  lay  encamped 
before  the  city.  The  enmity  between  these  two  made  all 
co-operation  between  them  impossible ;  the  hatred  which 
Alidosi  had  drawn  upon  himself,  and  the  consequent  dis- 
loyalty of  the  inhabitants,  did  the  rest.  The  moment  the 
Pope  was  gone,  the  Bentivogli  party  began  to  stir  and  was 

*  COCCINIUS,  loc.  at.  On  his  account,  which  differs  in  part  from 
that  of  Guicciardini,  see  Krieger,  33  seq.  The  speeches  in  Guicciar- 
dini  are  certainly  invented — Julius  was  by  no  means  a  ready  speaker. 
Cf.  Paris  DE  Grassis  in  Ch.  G.  Hoffmann,  Nova  collectio  scriptor.,  I., 
450  (Lips.,  1731).     On  the  danger  for  Bologna,  see  FUMi,  Carteggio,  147. 

t  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  274  ;  Sanuto,  XII.,  183  ;  *Acta 
Consist.,  f.  28.  The  *Brief  addressed  by  Julius  II.  on  the  i6th  May, 
1 5 II,  to  Alidosi  and  the  Bolognese  shews  how  little  he  apprehended  the 
tlow  that  was  about  to  fall. 


THE  BENTIVOGLI   RECOVER  BOLOGNA.  349 

joined  by  all  who  disliked  the  government  of  the  Church. 
The  city  was  soon  in  a  turmoil,  and  Alidosi,  without  strik- 
ing a  blow,  at  once  fled  in  disguise,  first  to  the  fort,  and  then^ 
when  he  heard  that  the  Sanfelice  gate  had  been  traitorously 
given  up  to  the  Bentivogli,  to  Castel  Rio  near  Imola.  The 
Duke  of  Urbino  behaved  no  better.  When  the  news 
reached  him  of  what  was  going  on  in  Bologna  he  gave  the 
signal  for  a  retreat  which  soon  degenerated  into  a  flight. 
All  the  artillery,  and  most  of  the  baggage  and  colours,  fell 
into  the  hands  of  the  enemy.  On  the  23rd  May  Trivulzio 
entered  Bologna,  and  the  Bentivogli  resumed  the  govern- 
ment of  the  city.*  They  at  once  began,  with  brutal  van- 
dalism, to  destroy  all  reminiscences,  however  valuable,  of 
the  Papal  occupation.  The  bronze  statue  of  the  Pope,  a 
splendid  work  of  Michael  Angelo's  which  was  placed  over 
the  doorway  of  the  Cathedral  in  1508,  fell  a  sacrifice  to 
this  bitter  spirit.f 

The  loss  of  Bologna,  which,  next  to  Rome,  was  the  most 
beautiful  and  the  wealthiest  of  all  the  cities  in  the  States  of 
the  Church,  was  "  the  hardest  blow  of  fate  which  had  ever 
fallen  upon  Julius  II.  He  now  found  himself  in  the  eighth 
year  of  his  Pontificate  and  the  sixty-eighth  of  his  life  with 
all  his  hard-won  conquests  torn  from  his  grasp  and  every- 
thing that  he  had  built  up  thrown  down.":]:  Nevertheless, 
when  the  news  came,  he  received  it  without  losing  his 
self-command  for  a  moment.  In  a  brief  address,  he 
informed  the  Cardinals  that  the  place  had  been  lost  through 

*  CocciNius,  loc.  cit.  Cf.  Krieger,  34-36 ;  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed. 
Frati,  275  seq. ;  Alfani,  257  ;  Prato,  284 ;  Nardi,  I.,  398  seq.  ; 
Lettres  de  Louis  XIL,  IL,  233-235,  243  seq.^  250  seq.  ;  Sanuto,  XIL, 
190.  Cf.  Ranke,  Rom.  und  Germ.  Volker,  160  seq.  ;  Havemann, 
IL,  363  seq. ;  GOZZADINI,  Alcuni  awenimenti,  215  seq. 

t  More  on  this  subject  will  be  found  in  Chap.  IX. 

X  Brosch,  Julius  IL,  222. 


350  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

the  treachery  of  the  citizens  and  of  the  Duke  of  Urbino, 
who  should  pay  for  it  with  his  life.  He  then  at  once  gave 
the  necessary  orders  for  the  concentration  and  reorganisa- 
tion of  the  army.* 

Alidosi  and  the  Duke  of  Urbino,  perhaps  with  equal 
justice,  each  laid  the  blame  on  the  other ;  both  hastened 
to  the  Papal  Court  to  justify  themselves.  Alidosi's  friends 
had  done  their  best  to  strengthen  the  Pope's  conviction 
that  the  fault  lay  with  the  Duke,  and  he  overwhelmed  his 
nephew  with  violent  reproaches.  As  he  left  his  uncle's 
presence,  furious  and  smarting,  under  these,  he  met  Alidosi, 
wlro  was  on  horseback,  coming  to  visit  the  Pope.  The 
Cardinal  saluted  him  smilingly,  but  the  young  Duke,  with 
the  passionate  blood  of  the  South  boiling  in  his  veins,  drew 
his  sword,  and  exclaiming,  "  Traitor,  art  thou  here  at  last ! 
Receive  thy  reward ! "  stabbed  him  mortally,  and  fled. 
Alidosi  only  lived  an  hour :  his  last  words  were,  "  I  reap 
the  reward  of  my  misdeeds."-|- 

The  fact  that  every  one  except  Julius  II.  rejoiced  at  the 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  277.  Cf.  Sanuto,  XII.,  191,  and 
Aegidius  Viterbo,  ed.  Hofler,  386. 

t  COCCINIUS,  loc.  Cit.  ;  cf.  KrIEGER,  36-37  ;  PARIS  DE  GRASSIS 
ed.  Frati,  278  seq.  (The  punctuation  in  Bollinger's  ed.,  406,  is  better ; 
the  text  in  Creighton,  IV.,  271,  is  worse  than  that  which  had  been 
printed  previously.)  Sanuto,  XII.,  198  seq.\  Bembus,  472;  CarpE- 
SANUS,  v.,  5,  pp.  1 273-1 274  ;  Lettres  de  Louis  XII.,  II.,  246  ;  Belcarius, 
365  ;  Landucci,  308-309 ;  Guicciardini,  IX.,  Chap.  5.  On  Alidosi, 
cf.  JOVIUS,  Vita  Leonis  X.,  Lib.  II.,  p.  34,  and  Elogior.,  Lib.  IV.,  p.  134. 
See  also  Sugenheim,  406  seq..,  and  Gozzadini,  Alcuni  avvenimenti, 
106  seq,.,  227  seq.;  cf.  231  seq.  Fanti,  Imola,  10  seq.^  has  recently 
endeavoured  to  defend  Alidosi.  Many  of  his  arguments  deserve  con- 
sideration, though  he  carries  the  inferences  from  them  too  far.  But  the 
last  word  about  Alidosi  has  not  yet  been  spoken.  A  tablet  was  inserted 
in  the  wall  in  the  Via  S.  Vitale  in  1863  to  mark  the  spot  where  the 
murder  took  place.  Alidosi's  skull  is  preserved  in  the  Bibl.  Classense  at 
Ravenna.     See  Gozzadini,  loc.  cit.,,  228-230  ;  Fanti,  Imola,  13-14- 


DEATH   OF   CARDINAL   ALIDOSI.  35  I 

Legate's  death  shews  how  universally  detested  he  had 
made  himself.  He  was  regarded  by  all  as  a  traitor,  and 
the  person  who  was  really  responsible  for  the  fall  of 
Bologna.  "  Most  righteous  God,"  writes  Paris  de  Grassis 
in  his  Diary,  "how  just  are  Thy  judgments!  Thanks  are 
due  to  Thee  from  all  for  having  punished  this  traitor  as  he 
deserved.  The  hated  villain  has  indeed  been  removed  by 
a  human  instrument,  but  not,  as  we  believe,  without  Thy 
concurrence,  and  for  this  again  we  thank  Thee."* 

At  the  very  time  that  the  crime  was  committed,  a  meet- 
ing of  the  Cardinals  was  taking  place,  at  which  Cardinal 
Isvalies,  who  was  universally  beloved,  had  been  appointed 
Legate  of  Bologna.  To  add  to  the  sorrow  caused  by  the 
murder  of  his  favourite,  Julius  II.  deeply  resented  the 
outrage  committed  against  the  highest  dignity  in  the 
Church.f     He  left  Ravenna  at  once  |  and  went  to  Rimini. 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  278;  cf.  319.  Julius  II.'s  obstinate 
confidence  in  Alidosi  has  been  made  to  serve  as  a  ground  for  the  very 
worst  accusations  of  immorality  against  him.  In  relation  to  this,  Brosch 
(224),  one  of  Julius  II.'s  most  violent  critics,  remarks  :  "Italy  during 
the  Renaissance  could  not  have  been,  as  Burckhardt  describes  it,  such  a 
school  of  vice  as  the  world  had  never  before  seen,  if  such  relations 
between  a  distinguished  but  thoroughly  worldly  Pope  and  a  dissipated 
Cardinal  had  not  furnished  matter  for  the  worst  insinuations.  The 
revolting  charges  which  have  been  heaped  upon  Julius  II.  recoil  on  the 
scandal-mongers  of  the  time,  and  are,  no  doubt,  the  echo  of  their  talk, 
but  their  truth  is  extremely  doubtful."  Creighton,  IV.,  130,  writes: 
It  is  hard  to  account  for  the  infatuation  of  Julius  II.  towards  Cardinal 
Alidosi,  and  we  cannot  wonder  that  contemporary  scandal  attributed  it 
to  the  vilest  motives.  "  II  papa  era  molto  vitioso  e  dedito  alia  libidine 
Gomorrea,"  says  a  relazione  of  Trevisan,  printed  by  Brosch,  Julius  II., 
296.  The  charge  was  often  repeated  with  reference  to  Alidosi.  It  was 
a  rude  way  of  explaining  what  could  not  be  explained.  Cf.  also  supra^ 
p.  320,  note  t. 

t  See  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1511,  n.  61. 

X  Ranke,  Rom.  und  Genn.  Volker,  261,  incorrectly  says  28th  May. 


352  HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES. 

There  another,  and  perhaps  a  still  more  painful,  surprise 
awaited  him.  On  the  28th  of  May  a  citation  to  the  Council 
of  Pisa,  to  be  opened  on  the  ist  of  September,  was  found 
affixed  to  the  door  of  the  church  of  S.  Francesco,  close 
to  the  Pope's  residence.  The  document  was  dated  i6th 
May,  15 1 1.  It  stated  that  the  delegates  of  the  Roman 
and  German  Emperor  and  the  most  Christian  King  pro- 
posed to  summon  a  universal  Council.  This  action  on 
their  part  had  become  necessary  in  order  to  comply  with 
the  decree  Frequens  of  the  Council  of  Constance,  owing  to 
the  negligence  of  the  Pope,  who  had  not  kept  the  oath 
which  he  had  sworn  to  in  the  Conclave.  They  declared  that 
Julius  II.'s  opposition  to  the  Council  fully  justified  the 
Cardinals  in  thus  taking  the  matter  into  their  own  hands. 
They  also  declared  that  the  majority  of  the  members  of 
the  Sacred  College  who  were  free  to  do  so,  supported  their 
action,  and  entered  a  protest  beforehand  against  all  cen- 
sures that  he  might  pronounce  upon  them.  The  Pope 
was  requested  to  give  his  consent  to  the  calling  of  this 
Council  and  also  to  attend  it  either  personally  or  through 
a  representative.  All  Cardinals,  Bishops,  Chapters,  and 
Universities,  as  well  as  all  secular  Princes,  were  summoned 
and  invited  to  take  part  in  it.  Meanwhile  the  Pope  was 
not  to  create  or  promulgate  any  new  Cardinals,  to  abstain 
from  instituting  proceedings  against  any  of  the  older 
Cardinals  or  the  Prelates  who  favoured  the  Council,  and 
also  from  doing  anything  to  hinder  it  from  meeting,  and 
further  from  any  alterations  or  alienations  in  regard  to  the 
possessions  of  the  Roman  Church  ;  any  such  acts  would  be 
invalid.  As  the  Pope  gave  no  safe-conducts,  and  often 
resorted  to  force,  the  publication  of  the  summons  in 
Modena,  Parma,  and  Reggio  must  be  deemed  sufficient. 

Cf.  Paris  DE  GraSSIS,  ed.  Frati,  280  ;  ibid.^  319  seq.^  on  the  popularity 
of  Isvalies. 


PROPOSED   OBJECTS   OF   THE   COUNCIL.  353 

The  Council  was  to  be  convoked  in  the  names  of  Car- 
dinals Carvajal,  Briconnet,  Philip  of  Luxemburg,  Francesco 
Borgia,  Adriano  da  Corneto,  de  Prie,  Carlo  del  Carretto^ 
San  Severino,  and  Ippolito  d'Este.*  The  summons  was  to 
be  published  "  throughout  the  four  nations  "  ;  on  the  23rd  of 
May  letters  were  sent  to  each  of  the  several  Princes  calling 
upon  them  to  send  their  Ambassadors  and  Prelates  to  the 
Assembly.^ 

"The  objects  of  the  Council  or,  more  correctly,  the 
banners  under  which  the  forces  of  hypocrisy  and  ambi- 
tion were  to  be  marshalled,  were  the  pacification  of 
Christendom,  a  crusade  against  the  infidels,  and  the  reform 
of  the  Church  in  its  Head  and  in  its  members."  I 

The  convocation  of  a  Council  under  these  futile  pretexts^ 
by  a  body  of  schismatic  Cardinals  was  an  act  of  open  re- 
bellion, a  daring  attack  upon  the  most  indisputable  pre- 
rogative of  the  Supreme  Head  of  the  Church.  At  first  no 
one  ventured  to  tell  the  Pope,  but  of  course  it  was  not  a 
matter  of  which  he  could  long  be  kept  in  ignorance.  From 
the  Report  of  the  Venetian  Ambassador  we  can  see  how 
deeply  he  felt  this  blow.il  Bereft  of  almost  all  his  political 
power — for  the  States  of  the  Church  were  lying  open  at 
the  mercy  of  the  French  army — he  now  saw  his  spiritual 
authority  threatened  and  in  the  greatest  danger ;  for 
behind  the  disloyal  Cardinals  stood  not  only  the  King  of 

*  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1511,  n.  61  ;  Mansi,  V.,  349-353;  Sanuto, 
XII.,  250-254  ;  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  437  se^. 

t  GOLDAST,  1 196  ;  Lettres  de  Louis  XII.,  II.,  235-241. 

X  See  Lehmann,  12.  Cf.  Sandret,  Concile  de  Pise,  440  seg.,a.ndon 
the  motives  of  Cardinal  .Sanseverino,  Ul.MANN,  Absichten,  20. 

§  C/.  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  438  se^.  Lehmann,  29,  observes  :  "  It 
is  superfluous  to  say  anything  of  the  legal  status  of  the  Council ;  its  pro- 
moters had  no  legal  standing  ground  whatever." 

II  Sanuto,  XIL,  203,  218,  223  ;  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  281 

VOX.  VL  2  A 


354  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

France,  but  also  the  Emperor,  both  bent  on  completely 
crushing  his  power  and  annihilating  Venice.*  The  ill- 
success  of  the  war  against  Venice  had  thrown  Maximilian 
into  the  arms  of  Louis  Xll.f  Since  then  he  had  sought 
his  fortune,  both  in  secular  politics  and  in  his  dealings  with 
the  Church,  in  those  "tortuous  foreign  ways"  which  had 
formerly  been  so  distasteful  to  him.  In  many  circles  in 
Germany  a  distinctly  anti-Roman  spirit  reigned  and 
vented  itself  in  constant  complaints  of  the  conduct  of 
the  Roman  Court,  both  in  politics  and  in  Church  affairs. J 

*  From  the  year  1 503  the  aim  of  Maximilian's  policy  had  been  to  secure 
for  himself  a  preponderating  influence  in  Rome,  and,  if  possible,  to  place 
a  Pope  in  the  Chair  of  S.  Peter  who  should  be  dependent  upon  him.  In 
that  year,  his  fear  that  d'Amboise  might  be  elected  was  so  great,  that  he 
directed  his  Envoy  in  Rome  not  to  shrink  from  any  measures  that  might 
be  necessary  to  prevent  this,  not  even  from  creating  a  schism.  (Bibl.  de 
I'Ecole  des  Chartes,  XXXI.,  70  ;  Arch.  Veneto,  I.,  85  seq.;  Petrucelli 
DELLA  Gattina,  I.,  459  ;  Ulmann,  I.,  136  seq.)  When  again,  in  the 
following  years,  Louis  XII.  was  doing  all  he  could  to  obtain  the  Tiara 
for  d'Amboise,  Maximilian  naturally  strained  every  nerve  to  frustrate 
these  efforts.  It  is  easy,  therefore,  to  understand  what  he  meant  by  saying 
in  his  letter  of  loth  June,  1507,  to  George  of  Neideck,  Bishop  of  Trent, 
that  he  meant  to  come  to  Rome  to  have  himself  made  Pope  as  well  as 
Emperor  (a  portion  of  this  document,  which  has  been  since  1830  in  the 
Court  Library  at  Vienna,  is  given  in  the  periodical,  Ferdinandeum,  IX., 
55-56) ;  of  course,  as  a  married  man,  he  could  not  think  of  obtaining  the 
Tiara  for  himself  personally.  A  report  was  widely  circulated  that  he  was 
eager  to  add  the  States  of  the  Church  to  his  possessions,  but  this  is  ex- 
tremely unlikely  ;  it  is  far  more  probable  that  this  notion  was  a  spectre 
conjured  up  by  the  apprehensions  of  the  French,  Spaniards,  and  Italians. 
"  The  truth  underlying  all  fancies  was  that  it  was  Maximilian's  most 
ardent  wish  to  be  crowned  Emperor  at  Rome,  and  to  revive  the 
supremacy  of  the  Empire  and  its  ancient  rights  over  the  whole  of  Italy, 
to  the  exclusion  of  French  influence."  (Sagmuller  against  Ulmann 
in  the  Literar.  Rundschau  (1889),  p.  242.) 

+  HUBER,  III.,  383  seq. 

\  Cf.  Gebhardt,  Gravamina,  58  seq. 


THE   EMPEROR   SIDES   WITH   LOUIS   XII.  355 

As  long  ago  as  the  year  1495,  shortly  before  the  Diet  of 
Worms,  inspired  by  a  somewhat  groundless  fear  that 
Alexander  VI.  was  purposing  to  bestow  the  Imperial 
Crown  on  Charles  VIII.  of  France,  Hans  von  Hermanns- 
griin,  a  Saxon  nobleman,  published  a  pamphlet  which 
aptly  mirrors  the  ferment  of  the  time.  He  proposes,  in  case 
the  Pope  should  take  this  step,  to  make  a  formal  renuncia- 
tion of  obedience  for  the  time,  to  appoint  a  German 
Patriarch  in  his  place,  and  to  arrange  with  Poland,  Bohemia, 
and  Hungary  to  summon  a  Council  and  cite  the  Pope  to 
appear  before  it.* 

The  Emperor  gave  vent  to  his  grudge  against  Julius  II. 
for  having  made  peace  with  Venice,  by  following  the 
example  of  France  and  attacking  the  Pope  on  the 
spiritual  side.-f  In  September,  15 10,  at  the  same  time 
that  Louis  XII.  was  consulting  his  courtier  Bishops, 
Maximilian    sent   his    Secretary    Spiegel  with  a   copy   of 

*  Ulmann,  Der  Traum  von  Hans  von  Hermannsgriin  in  the  For- 
schungen  zur  Deutschen  Geschichte,  XX.,  69  seq.  Here  is  also  to  be 
found,  p.  \%seq.,  the  Memorial  which  DOLLINGER,  Beitrage,  HI.,  91  seq.^ 
afterwards  published  with  a  wrong  date  and  a  faulty  text.  Grauert  in 
his  interesting  essay,  "  Alte  Prophezeiungen  iiber  Kaiser  und  Reich,"  in 
Deutschen  Hausschatz  Jahrg.,  XVII.,  No.  45,  suggests  that  possibly 
the  occasion  of  Hermannsgriin's  pamphlet  may  have  been  a  work 
written  by  the  Catalan  Hieronymus  Paulus,  contesting  the  light  of  the 
Germans  to  elect  the  Emperor.  Paulus  was  a  member  of  the  Papal 
Court  under  Alexander  VI.  He  says  that  it  would  be  much  better,  both 
for  the  Empire  as  well  as  for  the  Church,  if  one  were  chosen  not  in 
Germany  alone,  but  from  amongst  all  the  Christian  Princes,  whom  all 
should  be  bound  to  obey,  and  who  would  be  powerful  enough  to  subdue 
the  barbarian  and  heathen  nations.  Italy  more  especially  needed  a  single 
temporal  ruler,  and  a  strong  one,  for  the  country  was  torn  to  pieces  by 
tyrants  and  factions,  and  in  constant  danger. 

t  Ulmann,  Absichten,  1 5,  rightly  concludes  from  a  *Despatch  of  Pan- 
dolfini  of  30th  Sept.,  15 10  (State  Archives,  Florence),  that  the  example 
of  France  had  a  great  effect  on  Maximilian. 


356  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

the  French  Pragmatic  Sanction  to  the  learned  Jakob 
Wimpheling.  Spiegel's  instructions  state  that  the  Em- 
peror is  resolved  to  take  measures  to  deliver  Germany 
from  the  tyranny  of  the  Roman  Court,  and  to  prevent 
large  sums  from  being  sent  to  Rome  which  are  employed 
by  the  Pope  merely  in  injuring  him.  Wimpheling  is  to- 
give  his  opinion  on  three  special  points  :  the  best  way  of 
defeating  the  quibbles  and  tricks  of  the  Roman  Court 
officials,  the  abolition  of  Annates,  and  the  appointment 
of  a  permanent  Legate,  who  should  be  a  native  of  Germany, 
to  adjudicate  on  all  affairs  and  grievances  there,  and  the 
advantages  that  would  accrue  from  such  an  appointment.* 
The  Emperor's  last  proposition  was  a  very  far-reaching 
one,  and  went  beyond  anything  that  had  been  thought  of 
in  France.  The  appointment  of  a  permanent  Legate  for 
Germany  meant  "  a  permanent  change  in  the  organisation 
of  the  Church,  a  sort  of  national  independence  for  the 
German  Church."t  This  plan,  in  combination  with  the 
introduction  of  a  Pragmatic  Sanction,  was  the  first  step 
towards  a  severance  of  the  German  Church  from  Rome,  in 
other  words,  towards  a  schism.  Wimpheling,  who  was  a 
loyal  son  of  the  Church,  at  once  recognised  this  ;  his  answer 
was  prudent  and  reserved.  He  gave  his  opinion  distinctly 
against  the  introduction  of  the  Pragmatic  Sanction,  and  in 
regard  to  the  Legate,  he  spoke  mistrustfully  and  doubtingly^ 
On  the  other  hand,  he  laid  great  stress  on  the  necessity  for 
an  improvement,  on  conservative  lines,  in  the  relations  of 
the   German    Church   with    Rome.     He   enlarged   on   the 

*  Ulmann,  Maximilians  Kirchenreformplan,  204  seq.\  Gebhardt, 
Gravamina,  67. 

t  Ibid.^  208.  Cf.  Maurenbrecher,  Kathol.  Reformation,  99,  where,, 
however,  the  fact  that  political  considerations  were  the  mainspring  of  all 
Maximilian's  proceedings  is  not  made  sufficiently  clear.  Cf.  Ulmann, 
loc.  cit.,  203,  and  Gebhardt,  Gravamina,  76. 


HIS   OBJECT    ENTIRELY   POLITICAL.  357 

injuries  inflicted  on  Germany  by  the  members  of  the 
Roman  Court,  and  recapitulated,  with  some  alterations,  the 
well  known  gravamina  of  1457.  He  dwelt  principally 
on  the  financial  side  of  the  question,  "  and  from  his  point 
of  view  he  had  every  right  to  believe  that  a  thorough 
administrative  reform  would  do  away  with  the  necessity  for 
a  Council  and  probably  make  it  possible  to  diminish 
pleadings  before  Roman  Courts  and  improve  the  inner  life 
of  the  Church."  * 

But  at  that  time  the  Emperor  took  very  little  interest  in 
the  reform  of  abuses  ;  his  only  object  was  the  political  one 
of  forcing  Julius  II.  to  join  the  League  of  Cambrai.  Every 
means  was  tried,  negotiation,  threats  of  schism  and  of  a 
General  Council.f  In  regard  to  the  Council,  at  first,  in 
January  15 11,  Maximilian  stipulated  that  the  consent  of 
the  Pope  and  Cardinals  must  be  obtained ;  but  when  the 
negotiations  with  Lang  had  proved  a  failure,  and  Louis 
XII.  in  his  anger  had  issued  his  citation,  the  Emperor,  on 
the  5th  of  June,  15 11,  threw  himself  unreservedly  into  the 
French  plans.|  Soon  after,  he  forwarded  the  letter  of 
invitation  to  the  Queen  of  Hungary  and  Poland,  begging 
her  to  send  representatives  to  the  Council  and  enable  her 
Prelates  to  attend  it.§ 

In  the  year  15 11  Louis  carried  his  hatred  against  Julius 
II.  so  far  as  to  permit  the  representation  on  the  stage 
of  a  satirical  play  directed  against  the  Head  of  the  Church. 
One  of  his  political  pamphleteers,  Pierre  Gringoire,  com- 
posed   a    burlesque,   for   the  production    of  which    in  the 

*  Gebhardt,  Gravamina,  69. 

t  Ulmann,  IL,  ^xc)  seq.;  Hergenrother,  VIIL,  451. 

X  GoLDAST,  411,  428  seq.\  Ulmann,  IL,  434-435.  Cf.  also  Janssen, 
Reichscorrespondenz,  IL,  840,  and  BlANCHi,  Materie  polit.  degli  Archivi 
Piemontesi,  200.     Bologna,  1876. 

§  Acta  Tomiciana,  I.,  205,  212  ;  Fraknoi,  Ungam  und  die  Liga  von 
Cambrai,  85-86. 


358  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

principal  market  place  in  Paris  (Aux  Halles)  a  Royal 
privilege  was  granted.  The  Prince  of  Fools  appears  on 
the  boards  with  his  Court,  fools  of  all  sorts,  current  events 
are  discussed,  the  disputes  with  England,  the  conflict  with 
the  Church,  and  one  of  the  fools  assures  the  public  that 

Le  Prince  des  sotz  ne  pretend 
Que  donner  paix  a  ses  suppotz, 
to  which  another  replies  : 

Pource  que  I'Eglise  entreprent 
Sur  temporalite  et  prent 
Nous  ne  pouvons  avoir  repos. 

^Amongst  the  courtiers  is  the  General  d'Enfance.  He 
prances  on  to  the  stage  on  a  hobby-horse  brandishing  a 
mock  battle-axe,  and  shouting,  "  Hon,  hon,  men,  men,  pa, 
pa,  tetet."  When  the  council  are  all  assembled,  the  Prince 
appears,  and  the  Seigneur  de  la  Joie  gives  the  password : — 

Arriere  bigotz  et  bigottes, 

Nous  n'en  voulons  pomt,  par  ma  foy. 

La  "  Sotte  commune,"  supposed  to  represent  the  views  of 
the  mass  of  the  people,  is  allowed  to  take  part  in  the 
council,  but  gets  nothing  but  jibes  and  jeers  from  the  fine 
gentlemen.  When  she  complains  that  they  are  always 
interfering  and  manage  everything,  while  she  has  to  suffer 
and  pay,  they  simply  laugh  her  down. 

Suddenly  a  new  figure  appears  on  the  scene,  a  woman 
in  ecclesiastical  attire  and  calling  herself  Mother  Church. 
She  is  accompanied  by  two  other  female  fools,  "  Confiance  " 
and  "  Occasion,"  the  latter  of  whom  specially  supports  and 
aids  her.  The  great  lady  is  very  truculent,  flings  curses 
and  anathemas  at  every  one,  and  declares 

Bien  sgay  qu'  on  dit  que  je  radotte, 
Et  que  suis  fol  en  ma  vieillesse ; 
Mais  grumeler  vueil  a  ma  porta 
Men  fils  le  Prince,  en  telle  sorte, 
Qu'  il  diminue  sa  noblesse. 


FRENCH   ATTACKS   ON    THE   POPE.  359 

She  tries  to  get  the  nobles  and  prelates  on  her  side  and 
to  persuade  them  to  desert  the  Prince.  The  prelates  follow 
her,  and  finally  they  come  to  blows  in  which  the  Sotte 
Commune  gets  the  worst  of  it.  In  the  melee  Mother 
Church's  mantle  is  torn  off,  and  she  is  discovered  to  be  an 
impostor.  She  is  not  the  Church  at  all,  but  only  la  Mere 
Sotte,  and  is  deposed  and  driven  out  with  indignity. 

The  meaning  of  this  was  plain,  but  the  after-piece  made 
it  still  clearer.  The  French  and  Italian  nations  appeared 
on  the  stage,  and  with  them  "  I'homme  obstine"  with  two 
female  companions.  Simony  and  Hypocrisy.  L'homme 
obstine  was  Pope  Julius  II.,  "the  sword  of  divine  justice 
was  hanging  over  his  head,  he  consorted  with  robbers 
and  murderers,  and  could  not  refrain  from  crime  and 
rapine,"* 

In  May  15 ii,  at  Louis  XII.'s  desire,  a  pamphlet  was 
written  to  pave  the  way  for  the  Council,  Its  title  was  : 
"  The  difference  between  divisions  in  the  Church  and 
Assemblies  of  the  Church,  and  the  advantages  of  Synods 
of  the  Galilean  Church,"  The  writer  was  a  Belgian,  Jean 
Lemaire.-f  He  endeavours  to  prove  that  all  divisions  are 
caused  by  the  Popes,  and  all  dissensions  healed  by  means 
of  general  assemblies  convoked  by  secular  Princes.  It  was 
divided  into  three  parts.  The  first  tries  to  shew  that  the 
donations  of  temporal  possessions  have  been  the  source 
of  all  those  corruptions  in  the  Church  which  had  necessi- 
tated the  calling  of  the  earlier  Councils  to  remedy  them. 

*  See  F.  LOTHEISSEN,  Politik  auf  der  Biihne,  in  the  Frankf.  Zeitimg  of 
the  3rd  Jan.,  1880  (morning  edition) ;  AUg.  Zeitung  ( 1 870),  N.  168,  Suppl. 
("  Zur  Rabelaisliteratur ")  ;  and  Champfleury,  Hist,  de  la  Caricature 
sous  la  reformat.,  3.     Paris,  s.  a. 

t  C/.  Becker,  Jean  Lemaire  der  erste  humanistische  Dichter  Frank- 
reichs,  162  seg.  (Strassburg,  1893),  from  whose  account  what  follows  is 
taken.     C/.  also  Maulde,  Origines,  272. 


360  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

The  second  is  devoted  to  pointing  out  the  great  services 
rendered  to  the  Catholic  faith  by  the  Synods  of  the 
Gallican  Church.  The  third  treats  of  the  divisions  in  the 
Church  in  general,  and  the  coming  schism,  which, 
according  to  prophecy,  is  to  be  the  worst  of  all.  These 
things,  Lemaire  says,  have  injured  the  Church  more  than 
anything  else ;  the  desire  for  power,  which  is  the  mother 
of  greed,  the  neglect  of  Councils,  and  the  compulsory 
celibacy  of  the  priests  of  the  Latin  Church. 

Lemaire  is  never  weary  of  denouncing  the  arrogance, 
greed,  and  wickedness  of  the  bad  Popes.  He  is  unsparing 
in. his  satire  of  the  "  present  Pope,  who  rigs  himself  out  in 
martial  attire,  and  tries  to  pose  as  a  warrior,  but  only  looks 
like  a  monk  dancing  in  spurs.  All  the  same  he  will  not 
succeed  in  creating  the  new  and  abnormal  world  that  he 
hopes  for,  for  pigs  will  always  eat  acorns,  and  oaks  will 
shed  their  leaves  at  the  proper  time,  and  where  wood  is 
wanted,  wood  will  be  used."  The  pamphlet  contains  many 
other  similar  passages  all  directed  against  Julius  II.  It 
was  written  in  the  vulgar  tongue  with  the  object  of  giving 
it  as  wide  a  circulation  as  possible. 

Louis  accepted  the  dedication  of  the  work,  and  also 
permitted  the  publication  of  caricatures  of  the  Pope.  One 
of  these  represents  him  standing  surrounded  by  corpses 
with  his  flag  lying  on  the  ground.  Close  by  is  the 
empty  Papal  throne,  over  which  France,  depicted  as  a 
crowned  warrior,  keeps  guard.  The  figure  holds  a  banner 
with  the  oriflamme  and  the  inscription,  "  Louis  is  master."* 
Another  picture,  in  a  book  in  the  private  library  of  the 
King,  represents  the  Church  as  a  desolate  woman  in  a 
Basilica  ;  not  far  off  is  a  figure  wearing  a  Tiara  with  the 
inscription  "  Dissolution,"  who  is  knocking  down  a  pillar 
so  that  the  roof  seems  in  danger  of  falling.  Another 
*  Lacroix,  Louis  XII.  et  Anne  de  Bretagne,  497. 


THE   pope's   answer   TO   THE   CITATION.  36 1 

figure,  "  Charity,"  lays  her  hand  on  the  shoulder  of  the 
King  of  France,  who  is  supporting  the  tottering  edifice.* 
Thus  the  French  painters  and  the  pamphleteers,  such  as 
Lemaire,  Jean  d'Auton,  de  Seyssel,  and  others,  who  were 
in  the  pay  of  the  King,  all  combined  to  tell  the  same 
story ;  Louis  was  to  be  the  reformer  of  the  Church,  and 
that  without  delay.f 

Though  thus  attacked  and  threatened  with  a  schismatic 
Council  by  the  two  chief  powers  of  the  West,  while  in 
addition  France  and  the  revolted  Cardinals  were  doing 
their  utmost  to  obtain  the  adhesion  of  Henry  VIII,  of 
England  and  the  King  of  Hungary,  Julius  II.  did  not 
lose  heart.  On  the  contrary,  misfortune  seemed  only  to 
stimulate  his  powers  and  rouse  all  his  energies.  He  saw 
at  once  the  weak  points  in  the  citation,  and  before  he  left 
Rimini  he  had  issued  a  declaration  exposing  it.J  The 
schismatical  Cardinals  had  had  the  audacity  to  issue  the 
summons  in  the  name  of  the  Sacred  College,  and  on  their 
own  authority  to  affix  to  the  document  the  names  of 
several  absent  members.  Julius  affirmed  that  two  of 
these  latter   had    expressly  told    him    that   this   had  been 

*  Musee  de  FEremitage  in  Petersburg;  Maulde,  Origines,  273,  358. 

+  Maulde,  loc.  cit.,  273.  A  curious  error  is  to  be  found  in  this 
author,  pp.  117-118,  in  regard  to  an  ordinance  of  Louis  XII.,  promul- 
gated in  1 5 12,  commanding  that  the  stanza,  "O  salutaris  Hostia,"  for 
peace  should  be  sung  in  all  churches  after  the  elevation  at  Mass.  Maulde 
observes,  "  La  liturgie,  comma  on  sait,  a  conserve  I'usage  de  ces  deux 
versets  qu'elle  interprete  au  point  de  vue  mystique,  mais  qui  originaire- 
ment  sei-viraient  solliciter  I'appui  celeste  contre  les  exces  du  pape  Jules 
II."  The  hymn  is  well  known  to  have  been  composed  by  S.  Thomas 
Aquinas  !     Cf.  Bull.  Crit.,  XI.  (1890),  159. 

%  Cf.  the  Brief  from  the  MS.  ViteUius,  B.  II.,  in  the  British  Museum,  in 
Creighton,  IV.,  289-291.  In  regard  to  Hungary,  which,  under  the 
influence  of  the  wily  Bakocs,  at  first  remained  neutral,  see  Frakn(')I, 
loc.  cit. 


362  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

done  without  their  sanction.  To  this  serious  charge 
Carvajal  and  his  associates  significantly  answered  that 
their  powers  without  the  others  were  amply  sufficient  to 
make  the  act  valid.* 

Bowed  down  with  sickness  and  anxiety,  Julius  II.  left 
Rimini  on  the  3rd  June,  151 1.  On  the  5th  he  was  at 
Ancona,  on  the  nth  he  arrived  at  Loreto,  on  the  20th 
at  Terni,  where  to  his  great  vexation  he  witnessed  a  fight 
between  its  inhabitants  and  those  of  Spoleto.  Torrents 
of  rain  forced  him  to  halt  for  a  time  at  Civita  Castellana. 
Here  a  deputation  arrived  from  the  people  of  Rome  beg- 
ging him  to  return  without  delay.  On  the  26th  of  June 
he  entered  the  city  by  the  Porta  del  Popolo  and  on  the 
following  day  under  a  burning  sun  proceeded  in  full 
pontificals  to  S.  Peter's,  where  he  arrived  completely 
exhausted.  "  This  was  the  end  of  our  toilsome  and  use- 
less expedition,"  writes  Paris  de  Grassis.f  An  utterly 
broken  man,  both  in  health  and  in  power,  Julius  returned 
to  the  palace  from  which  he  had  started  nine  months 
before  full  of  brilliant  hopes  and  confident  that  the 
French  would  be  driven  out  of  Italy.  The  Papal  and 
Venetian  troops  were  now  completely  dispersed  and  there 
was  nothing  to  hinder  the  enemy  from  taking  possession 
of  the  Papal  States  and  of  Rome,  and  deposing  him. 

In  this  extreme  need,  with  no  one  to  rely  on  but  him- 
self, Julius  again  shewed  how  immensely  superior  he  was 
in  genius  and  character  to  his  enemies.  While  they  were 
"hesitating,  irresolute   and   divided,  he,  fully  knowing  his 

*  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  151 1,  n.  7  ;  Hergenrother,  VIII. ,  453. 

t  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  284-293  ;  Sanuto,  XII.,  231,  243,. 
257,  273  ;  and  *Acta  Consist.,  f.  29  (Consistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican), 
and  the  ^Chronicle  in  Varia  Polit.,  50,  f.  61.  (Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.)  Cf,  also  Atti  dei  Lincei  (1892),  4  Serie,  Scienz.  Mor.,. 
X.,  15. 


VACILLATION    OF   LOUIS   XII.  363 

own  mind,  firmly  refused  to  give  himself  up  for  lost."* 
His  chief  hopes  of  assistance  rested  on  the  King  of 
Spain,  to  whom  a  special  Envoy  was  sent  with  a  long 
letter.f 

Guicciardini  writes  that  Italy  and  the  whole  world 
were  watching  with  trembling  anxiety  to  see  what  use 
Louis  XII.  was  going  to  make  of  his  victory.  Julius  II. 
had  absolutely  nothing  to  protect  him  except  the  dignity 
of  the  Papacy.  Whether  from  religious  awe  or  from  the 
fear  of  rousing  the  whole  world  against  him,  the  King  of 
France  resolved  not  to  go  all  lengths.  He  desired  Trivulzio 
to  retire  on  Milan  and  made  overtures  of  peace  to  the 
Pope  ;  if  Julius  would  pardon  the  schismatical  Cardinals 
he  would  give  up  the  proposed  Council ;  and  he  induced 
Bentivoglio  to  declare  that  he  had  never  thought  of  wish- 
ing to  throw  off  the  suzerainty  of  the  Church.^: 

The  schismatical  Cardinals  were  equally  wanting  in  that 
resolution  and  union  amongst  themselves  which  alone 
could  have  secured  a  victory.  For  one  thing  Cardinals 
Philip  of  Luxemburg,  Adriano  da  Corneto,  and  Carlo 
del  Carretto,  whose  names  had  been  affixed  to  the  citation 
without  consulting  them,  protested  loudly  against  the  un- 
warrantable proceeding,  and  declared  they  would  have 
nothing   to   do   with   the   anti-Papal   Council. §      Cardinal 

*  BroSCH,  Julius  IL,  225.  On  the  passionate  resentment  of  the  Pope 
against  the  faithless  Bolognese,  see  FUMl'S  Report,  Carteggio,  1 50. 

t  Hefele,  Ximenes,  434. 

t  Guicciardini,  X.,  Chap,  i ;  Lettres  de  Louis  XIl.,  II.,  250  ;  Leh- 
MANN,  13. 

§  Sanuto,  XII.,  218  ;  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  437-438  ;  Gebhardt, 
Adriano  von  Corneto,  21-22.  Here  also,  p.  17  segf.,  are  some  particulars 
about  the  mysterious  flight  of  Card.  Adriano  in  1507  from  Rome.  Geb- 
hardt has  not  availed  himself  of  a  *Brief  of  Julius  II.  to  the  King  of 
England  (unfortunately  undated,  but  certainly  belonging  to  this  time,  as 
the  preceding  paper  is  of  4th  Nov.,  1505)  about  Card.  Adriano,  in  which 


364  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

d'Este  adopted  an  ambiguous  attitude  which  finally  led 
to  his  reconciliation  with  the  Pope.*  Cardinal  Gonzaga, 
whom  the  schismatics  had  made  great  efforts  to  win, 
had  already  joined  Julius  II.  at  the  end  of  May.f  The 
Venetian  Envoy,  a  man  of  considerable  penetration,  wrote 
on  the  3rd  of  July,  1511,  that  the  Council  of  Pisa  was  at 
an  end.;]: 

While  the  negotiations  with  France  were  going  on, 
Julius  II.  determined  to  deprive  the  revolted  Cardinals 
of  all  pretext  for  keeping  up  the  schism  by  turning  their 
own  weapon  against  them.  On  the  25th  of  July,  151 1,  a 
Bull  dated  the  i8th  was  affixed  to  the  doors  of  S.  Peter's 
summoning  a  universal  Council  to  assemble  in  Rome  on 
the  19th  of  April,  15 12.  In  the  preamble  the  Pope  set 
forth  the  supreme  dignity  of  the  Roman  Church,  sanctified 
by  the  blood  of  martyrs,  preserved  from  all  error,  and 
endowed  with  the  primacy  over  all  other  Churches,  which 
entailed  upon  her  and  her  Head  the  duty  of  withstanding 
all  schismatical  attempts  to  destroy  her  unity.  He  then 
described  the  proceedings  of  the  revolted  Cardinals,  deny- 
ing their  statements,  and  refuting  their  arguments ;  he 
declared  that,  both  as  Cardinal  and  Pope,  he  had  done 
his  best  to  further  the  assembling  of  a  Council,  and  it 
had  not  been  his  fault  that  it  had  been  so  long  delayed. 
The  Bull  goes  on  to  emphasise  the  point  that  a  Council 
can  only  be  lawfully  summoned  by  the  Pope.  Any  that 
is  not  so  called  must  be  held  of  no  account.  This  was 
especially  the    case   in    regard  to   the   pretended    Council 

he  says :  Card'is  predictus  apud  nos  nunquam  honori  tuo  detraxit. 
*Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  256.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

*  In  Oct.  151 1,  Ippolito  joined  his  brother  at  Ferrara,  with  the  Pope's 
consent ;  Le  Glay,  I.,  441. 

t  Paris  DE  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  283. 

X  Sanuto,  XII.,  267. 


THE   POPE   SUMMONS   AN    (ECUMENICAL   COUNCIL.      365 

at  Pisa ;  the  mere  impossibility  of  its  assembling  within 
the  specified  term  (September  ist)  deprives  it  of  all 
authority. 

The  Pope  then  declares  that,  in  order  to  withstand 
these  dangerous  schismatical  tendencies  and  defend  the 
rights  of  the  Holy  See,  he,  with  the  approval  of  the 
Cardinals  and  in  the  plenitude  of  his  apostolic  power, 
pronounces  the  edict  of  convocation  dated  Milan,  i6th 
IMay,  1 5 II,  to  be  in  both  its  contents  and  effects  illegal, 
null  and  void  ;  all  who  adhere  to  it  bring  upon  themselves 
the  severest  penalties  of  the  Church,  its  authors  and  their 
abettors  are  deprived  of  all  their  dignities,  and  all  cities 
and  districts  which  harbour  and  support  them  are  laid 
under  Interdict.  On  the  other  hand,  the  Pope,  desirous 
of  fulfilling  his  engagements,  and  further,  wishing  to  make 
a  complete  end  of  heresy,  and  stifle  the  beginnings  of 
schism,  to  bring  about  a  reform  of  morals  both  in  the 
clergy  and  laity,  union  and  peace  in  Christendom,  and 
a  holy  war  against  the  Turks,  now  calls  an  (Ecumenical 
Council  to  meet  in  Rome  at  the  Lateran  Church  after 
Easter,  on  the  19th  April  of  the  year  15 12.* 

*  See  the  Bull  in  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1511,  n.  9-15  ;  Bull.,  V.,  499 
seq.\  Labbe,  XIX.,  681  seq.;  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  454  seq.  Cf. 
FUMi,  Carteggio,  1 51-152,  and  Sanuto,  XII.,  304,  321,  332  seq.,  330, 
362,  371.  According  to  the  *Acta  Consist.,  f.  29,  the  BuU  of  the  Council 
Avas  read  in  a  Secret  Consistory  on  the  i8th  July,  1511.  Consistorial 
Archives  of  the  Vatican. 


CHAPTER  VI. 

Julius  II.  forms  an  Alliance  with  Spain. — His  dangerous 
Illness. — His  Recovery, — The  Holy  League  of  15 ii.— 
Deposition  of  the  Schismatical  Cardinals. — Maximilian 
endeavours  to  possess  Himself  of  the  Tiara. — Failure 
^OF  the  French  Pretence  of  a  Council  at  Pisa. — The 
Battle  of    Ravenna  on  Easter  Sunday,   15 12. 

Julius  II.,  by  issuing  his  summons  for  a  General  Council, 
had  effectually  checkmated  the  schismatical  Cardinals  even 
before  they  had  begun  their  game.  This  bold  stroke  was 
entirely  the  Pope's  own  idea.  From  the  reports  of  the 
Venetian  Envoys  we  find  that  the  plan  was  already  in  his 
mind  when  he  was  at  Bologna  in  the  Spring  of  151 1,  and 
the  resolution  to  carry  it  out  was  taken  at  Rimini  on  the 
appearance  of  the  citation  of  the  Cardinals.*  During  his 
journey  to  Rome  the  details  of  the  plan  were  thought  out 
and  discussed  with  Cardinal  Antonio  de  Monte  and  the 
Dominican,  Thomas  de  Vio.f  A  report  from  Tolentino  of 
the  Venetian  Envoy  on  14th  June,  151 1,  says  that  the  draft 
of  the  proclamation  had  already  even  then  been  laid  before 
the  Consistory,  and  the  posting  up  of  the  schismatical  cita- 
tion in  Rome  on  the  9th  June  naturally  only  had  the  effect 
of  strengthening  his  resolve.J  But  he  was  determined  to  do 
nothing  hastily  ;  and  the  Bull  was  not  allowed  to  appear 
till  the  1 8th  of  July,  when  it  had  been  thoroughly  considered 

*  Sanuto,  XII.,  166,  219. 

t  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  457. 

X  Sanuto,  XII.,  243,  267. 


PAPAL   ALLIANCE   WITH   SPAIN.  367 

and  thought  out  in  substance  and  in  form.  Whatever  suc- 
cesses might  be  achieved  in  this  direction  would,  however, 
have  no  effect  on  the  other,  and  equally  serious,  danger 
arising  from  the  preponderating  power  of  France  in  Italy. 
Here,  for  Julius  II.,  everything  depended  upon  the  interest 
which  Spain  had  in  checking  this  power. 

The  Pope's  confidence  in  Ferdinand's  perception  of  what 
the  situation  required  was  not  disappointed.  In  this  case, 
where  the  King's  interest  coincided  with  that  of  the  Church, 
he  was  perfectly  willing  to  accept  the  honour  of  posing  as 
the  defender  of  the  Holy  See.  With  the  consent  of  his 
Grandees  and  with  the  approval  of  Cardinal  Ximenes 
summoned  to  Seville,  it  was  decided  to  suspend  the  military 
operations  in  Africa,  and  send  the  army  that  had  been  em- 
ployed there  to  Italy.  In  compliance  with  the  Pope's 
request,  the  rebellious  Cardinal  Carvajal  was  deprived  of 
the  Bishopric  of  Siguenza ;  and  a  considerable  sum  of 
money  was  forwarded  to  Rome  in  aid  of  the  war.*' 

Immediately  after  Julius's  arrival  in  Rome  the  Spanish 
Ambassador  was  desired  by  Ferdinand  to  offer  him  the 
assistance  of  Spain  for  the  reconquest  of  Bologna.  He 
also  offered  to  endeavour  to  influence  England  to  join  in 
an  alliance  against  France,  and  this  Louis  knew.j* 

It  appears,  however,  that  it  was  only  with  much  hesitation 
and  against  his  will  that  Julius  II.  finally  brought  himself 
to  accept  the  alliance  with  Spain.  He  continued  his 
negotiations  with  Louis  XII.  as  long  as  he  could,  and  only 
broke  them  off  at  last  when  the  King  refused  to  comply 
with  the  indispensable  condition  that  the  revolted  Cardinals 
should  obey  their  citation  to  Rome.|     In  the  early  part  of 

*  Hefele,  Ximenes,  434  seq.  \  Gams,  III.,  2,  142. 
t  Sanuto,  XII.,  273-274,  330.    Cf.  Brewer,  Henry  VIII.,  I.,  17, 
n.  4.     See  also  FUMi,  Carteggio,  151. 
X  See  Ranke,  Rom.  und  Germ.  Volker,  267.     Brosch,  Julius  II., 


368  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

August  the  provisions  of  the  League  between  the  Pope, 
Venice,  Spain,  and  England  were  substantially  agreed  upon, 
and  all  that  was  wanting  to  its  conclusion  was  the  arrival 
of  the  necessary  powers  from  England  and  Spain.*  The 
Swiss  were  also  being  approached  to  obtain  help  from  them. 
At  this  moment  an  event  occurred  which  seemed  likely  to 
upset  everything. 

Entirely  absorbed  in  the  labour  and  cares  of  the  last  few 
months,  the  Pope  had  wholly  neglected  the  most  ordinary 
care  of  his  health.  He  trusted  to  his  iron  constitution 
without  considering  that  there  is  a  limit  to  everything. 
Since  the  end  of  July  he  had  been  incessantly  at  work,  pre- 
paring for  the  Council,  sending  Briefs  and  Nuncios  in  all 
directions  ;  he  had  begun  legal  proceedings  against  the 
Duke  of  Urbino  and  gone  on  personally  conducting  the 
negotiations  with  Spain  and  England  in  spite  of  an  attack 
of  fever  in  the  beginning  of  August.  On  the  17th  he  had 
another,  but  would  not  desist  from  his  work,  and  saw  the 

226-227,  thinks  it  is  certain  that  the  Pope  was  not  in  earnest  in  the 
negotiations  with  France,  because  he  employed  G.  Giordano  Orsini,  a 
man  who  had  had  no  experience  and  was  unskilled  in  political  affairs,  tO' 
carry  them  on.  He  also,  and  still  more  positively,  infers  the  same  thing- 
from  the  conditions  proposed.  On  this  point  he  says  :  "  The  proposals 
in  regard  to  Ferrara  and  Bologna  might  perhaps  have  been  accepted,  or 
at  any  rate  have  formed  a  basis  for  negotiations,  but  the  King's  honour 
forbade  any  answer  but  a  refusal  to  the  demand  that  he  should  give  up 
the  Cardinals."  But  neither  of  these  arguments  is  really  convincing. 
Secular  Princes  have  never  had  much  scruple  in  throwing  away  their 
clerical  tools  when  they  have  served  their  purpose  ;  and  it  was  impossible 
for  Julius,  without  completely  abdicating  his  authority,  to  relinquish  his 
claim  to  have  the  Cardinals  sent  to  Rome.  The  true  cause  of  the 
failure  of  their  negotiations  is  stated  later  by  Brosch  himself ;  it  was  plain 
that  Louis  intended  to  resume  the  war  as  soon  as  the  conditions  became 
more  favourable.  On  the  citation  of  the  Cardinals,  see  Sanuto,  XII., 
321-322. 
*  Sanuto,  XII.,  372-373- 


ILLNESS   OF   THE   POPE.  369 

Ambassadors  while  in  bed.  On  the  20th  it  came  on  again 
with  such  violence  that  his  physicians  declared  that  the 
next  attack  must  prove  fatal.  The  news  spread  like 
lightning  throughout  Rome  that  the  Pope  was  dying. 
The  Cardinals  began  at  once  to  prepare  for  the  approach- 
ing Conclave.  The  Spanish  Envoy  summoned  the  Colonna 
to  Rome,  saying  that  the  Pope  was  in  extremity  and  that 
there  was  great  danger  that  the  Orsini,  supported  by 
France,  would  get  possession  of  the  city.  On  the  23rd  of 
August  the  Venetian  Ambassador  Lippomano  reports  that 
"the  Pope  is  passing  away;  Cardinal  Medici  tells  me  he 
cannot  live  through  the  night.  Medici  is  trying  for  the 
Tiara,  but  it  is  thought  that  it  will  fall  to  one  of  the  French 
party,  Rafifaele  Riario  and  Fiesco  are  named.  The  city 
is  in  a  turmoil ;  every  one  is  armed."  On  the  24th  Julius 
received  the  Holy  Viaticum,  removed  the  Interdict  from 
Ferrara  and  Bologna,  absolved  the  Duke  of  Urbino,  and 
made  all  his  dispositions  for  death.*  Paris  de  Grassis  writes : 
"  I  think  I  may  close  my  Diary  here ;  for  the  Pope's  life 
is  coming  to  an  end  through  his  obstinacy  in  refusing  to 
follow  the  advice  of  his  physicians.  He  has  commended 
his  servants  to  Cardinal  Rafifaele  Riario  and  given  him 
34,000  ducats  to  divide  amongst  them.  After  he  had  taken 
a  little  food  he  seemed  better.  But  on  Monday  the  25th 
he  refused  all  nourishment,  he  had  a  relapse  and  his  con- 
dition became  hopeless.  On  Wednesday  there  was  still  no 
change ;  and  as  he  had  eaten  nothing  for  four  days,  every 

*  Sanuto,  XIL,  330,  362,  370,  371,  395,  398,  403  seq.,  434  seq.,  441, 
449  ;  cf.  484.  See  also  FUMI,  Carteggio,  157,  158-159,  and  Luzio,  F. 
Gonzaga,  22.  Philip  Bervald  the  younger,  who  defended  the  Duke  of 
Urbino,  succeeded  in  convincing  the  Pope  of  Alidosi's  treason,  and  Alfonso 
was  absolved  and  reinstated  in  all  his  dignities.  Cf.  in  Denistoun,  IL, 
328,  the  notice  in  the  *Acta  Consist,  of  the  22nd  Aug.,  151 1.  Con 
sistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

VOL.    VI  .  2  B 


370  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

one,  including  his  physicians,  gave  him  up.  The  doors  of 
his  chamber  were  opened  and  some  of  the  people  made 
their  way  to  his  bed-side.  He  lay  on  his  couch  with  closed 
eyes  and  seemed  barely  alive.  Disturbances  began  in  the 
city,  many  outlaws  returned,  confusion  prevailed  every- 
where. All  the  public  officials,  even  those  in  the  courts  of 
law,  left  their  work,  the  Governor  of  the  city  took  refuge  in 
the  Palace,  and  the  Minister  of  Police  in  the  Castle  of  St 
Angelo.  The  Sacred  College  met  and  desired  me  to  make 
arrangements  for  the  funeral  obsequies  and  for  the  Con- 
clave. Then  it  occurred  to  the  Pope's  relations  and  ser- 
vants to  send  for  a  very  indulgent  physician*  and  suggest 
to  him  that  he  should  give  him  permission  to  eat  whatever 
he  liked.  By  agreeing  to  this  he  succeeded  in  persuading 
his  patient  to  consent  to  take  some  food.  The  Pope  asked 
for  peaches,  nuts,  plums,  and  other  fruits,  which  he  chewed 
but  did  not  swallow.  After  that  he  had  small  onions  and 
strawberries,  which  he  likewise  only  chewed.  But  presently 
he  swallowed  several  peaches  and  plums  and  then  fell  into 

*  From  Berliner,  Gesch.  der  Juden,  II.,  8i,  and  Gregorovius, 
VIII.,  76,  ed.  3,  one  would  be  led  to  believe  that  this  was  the  Jewish 
physician  Samuel  Zarfati  {cf.  Marini,  II.,  249  seq.,  and  *Introit.  et  exit, 
536,  f.  148,  where  it  says  :  magister  Samuel  Ebreus,  "medicus  S.  D.  N.," 
who,  on  the  14th  July,  1505,  received  125  flor.  auri  largi,  ad  bonum 
computum  pro  eius  provisione.  Mag.  Joh.  de  Vico  was  chirurgus  to  the 
Pope.  [Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican.] ).  But,  from  the  Venetian 
Report  in  Sanuto,  XII.,  449,  which  those  authors  have  overlooked,  it 
seems  clear  that  this  could  not  have  been  the  case,  as  at  that  time  the 
Rabbi  was  very  much  out  of  favour  with  the  Pope.  And  in  the  Report 
of  26th  Aug.,  we  find  :  Marco  Scipio  heri  li  lasso  mangiare  uno  per- 
sicho  ;  parve  stesse  meglio.  The  date  here  certainly  does  not  agree  with 
de  Grassis,  but  JoviUS,  Vita  Pomp.  Col.,  240,  expressly  says  :  Medicus 
qui  Julio  poma,  persica  obtulit,  fuit  Scipio  Lancelotus.  Marini,  I.,  299, 
has  overlooked  this  passage,  as  well  as  the  one  in  Sanuto.  In  regard  to 
Jewish  physicians  employed  by  Popes,  see  besides  Marini,  I.,  292  seq.^ 
GiJDEMANN,  237. 


SCHEMES  OF   POMPEO   COLONNA.  37I 

a  light  sleep.  This  state  of  things  went  on  for  two  days, 
during  which  those  who  attended  him  alternately  hoped 
and  despaired.  Great  apprehension  was  felt  for  the  future ; 
dangers  of  all  sorts  seemed  hanging  over  our  heads,  dis- 
turbances, war,  and  scarcity."*  The  reports  of  the  Envoys 
then  in  Rome  shew  that  the  account  of  the  Master  of 
Ceremonies  is  not  by  any  means  exaggerated. 

"  Never,"  writes  the  Venetian  Ambassador  Lippomano, 
"  has  there  been  such  a  clang  of  arms  round  the  death-bed 
of  any  former  Pope  ;  never  has  the  danger  been  greater 
than  it  is  now.  May  God  help  us."f  Some  of  the  nobles 
endeavoured  to  take  advantage  of  the  turmoil  in  the  city 
to  bring  about  a  rising  against  the  Government  of  the 
Church.  The  ambitious  Pompeo  Colonna,  whose  relations 
had  forced  him  into  Holy  Orders  against  his  will,  was  at 
the  head  of  the  revolutionary  party.  Not  content  with  the 
dignities  of  Bishop  of  Rieti  and  Abbot  of  Grottaferrata  and 
Subiaco,  Pompeo  aimed  at  the  purple  and  felt  confident  of 
obtaining  it  after  the  deaths  of  Cardinals  Orsini,  Colonna, 
SavelH,  and  Cesarini.  But  he  was  disappointed,  and  was 
now  bent  on  making  Julius  II.  pay  for  this  neglect  of  a 
member  of  one  of  the  great  Roman  families.  He  hastened 
to  the  Capitol  and  from  thence  harangued  the  mob,  urging 
them  to  cast  off  the  domination  of  the  priesthood  and 
restore  the  republican  constitution  and  liberties.  It  was 
resolved  at  the  next  election  to  demand  many  concessions 
from  the  new  Pope,  and  amongst  others  insist  on  the 
nomination  of  a  Roman  Cardinal.^ 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  DoUinger,  41 1-4 12.  Cf.  Luzio,  F.  Gonzaga, 
22-23. 

t  Sanuto,  XII.,  449 ;  cf.  Luzio,  22. 

X  JOVIUS,  Vita  P.  Columnae  ;  GUICCIARDINI,  X.,  Chap,  i  ;  Sanuto, 
XII.,  482  ;  Luzio,  F.  Gonzaga,  23.  Gregorovius'  account  of  this  at- 
tempted revolt  is  in  some  points  incorrect,  as  has  been  pointed  out 


372  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

Julius  now  began  to  recover  from  his  state  of  death-like 
prostration.  The  free  use  of  fruit  and  liquids,  which  it  had 
been  supposed  would  have  killed  him,  had  really  been  his 
salvation.  The  fever  was  gone  and  by  the  28th  he  was 
completely  convalescent* 

Deadly  fear  seized  upon  all  those  who  had  been  reckon- 
ing on  his  death,  the  Cardinals  who  had  been  busy  about 
the  Conclave,  and  the  Roman  revolutionists.  On  the  28th 
the  nobles  assembled  in  the  Capitol,  and  there,  in  order  to 
make  their  former  proceedings  appear  innocent,  concluded 
one  of  those  pacific  conventions  which  were  so  familiar  and 
§0  transitory.  Then  they  parted  :  Pompeo  Colonna  fled  to 
his  fastness  in  Subiaco,  the  others  to  France  ;  for  the  Pope 
who  had  been  thought  to  be  dead  began  at  once  to  talk  of 
retribution.f 

The  recovery  of  Julius  was  somewhat  retarded  by  his 
perverseness  in  the  matter  of  diet,  but  he  at  once  turned 
his  attention  to  the  resumption  of  the  negotiations  for  the 
League  against  France.  An  alliance  of  all  the  Christian 
Princes  was  to  be  formed,  to  take  the  Pope,  the  Council,  and 
Rome  under  their  protection.]:  The  intrigues  of  the  schis- 
matical  Cardinals,  the  refusal  of  Louis  XII.  to  dissociate 
himself  from  the  Bentivogli,  and  his  threats  of  setting  up 

by  Reumont  in  a  dissertation  in  the  Allg.  Zeit.  (1874),  No.  358,  Suppl., 
on  the  Nuptiali  di  Altieri,  published  by  Narducci.  As  Gregorovius,  in 
his  3rd  ed.  in  1881  (VIII.,  78  seq.\  has  taken  no  notice  of  this,  it  will  not 
be  superfluous  to  mention  it  again.  Cf.  also  L.  Passarini,  Memorie 
intomo  alia  vita  di  S.  Aldobrandini,  219.  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati, 
174,  shews  that  even  in  the  year  1507  many  of  the  Romans  were 
unfriendly  to  Julius  II. 

*  Sanuto,  XII.,  455,  48.1,  482-483.  Cf.  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed. 
Bollinger,  412. 

t  Sanuto,  XII.,  483  ;  Fioravante,  Denarii,  161  seq. ;  COPPI,  Mem. 
Colonnesi,  257  seq.  ;  Mazio,  Saggiatore,  IV.,  13,  21. 

X  Lanz,  Einleitung,  121. 


THE   LEAGUE   AGAINST   FRANCE.  373 

an  anti-Pope  filled  Julius  II.  with  anxiety.  On  the  1st 
of  October  he  had  appointed  Cardinal  Medici,  Legate  of 
Bologna  and  the  Romagna,*  and  now  he  awaited  with 
trembling  impatience  the  definite  formation  of  the  League 
which  was  to  protect  him  from  his  enemies  and  recover 
the  lost  States  for  the  Church. j- 

The  League  was  finally  arranged  and  signed  on  the  4th 
October,  15  ii,  and  on  the  following  day  was  solemnly 
announced  in  Rome  in  S'^  Maria  del  Popolo.  The  primary 
contracting  parties  were  Julius  II.,  Ferdinand  of  Spain,  and 
the  Republic  of  Venice,  but  it  was  expressly  provided  that 
the  Emperor  and  the  King  of  England  were  at  liberty 
to  join  it  if  they  wished.  "  Europe  was  invited  to  rally 
round  the  Pope,  and  all  Kings  and  Princes  were  asked  to 
unite  for  one  common  object,  namely,  the  preservation  of 
the  unity  of  the  Church  and  of  the  integrity  of  her  patri- 
mony." I  The  adhesion  of  Henry  of  England,  which 
actually  followed  on  the  17th  November,  was  regarded  at 
that  time  as  certain,§  and  the  Swiss  could  also  be  counted 
upon  to  invade  Milan.|| 

*  Paris  DE  GraSSIS,  ed.  Frati,  299  ;  Corp.  dipl.  Portug.,  I.,  137. 
t  Cf.  Sanuto,  XII.,  488,  500,  536,  538,  545. 

I  Lanz,  Einleitung,  122. 

§  DUMONT,  IV.,  I,  137  ;  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1511,  n.  34  ;  Theiner, 
Cod.,  III.,  n%seq.  ;  Mittheil.  d.  CEsterreich.  Instituts  (1884),  p.  618  seq.^ 
Lettres  de  Louis  XII.,  III.,  60  seq.^  65  seq.  ;  Opere  ined.  di  F. 
Guicciardini,  VI.,  21  seq.  ;  PARIS  DE  Grassis,  ed.  DoUinger,  412.  Cf. 
Mem.  stor.  di  Mirandola,  I.,  197  seq. ;  Semper,  Carpi,  8  ;  the  Portuguese 
Report  of  Franc.  Juzarte  to  King  Manuel  in  Corp.  dipl.  Portug.  I.,  137, 
138-139;  Lehmann,  15  seq.\  and  on  the  adhesion  of  England, 
Brewer,  State  Papers,  I.,  N.  1980 ;  *Acta  Consist.,  f.  35  (Consistorial 
Archives  of  the  Vatican) ;  Sanuto,  XIII.,  75  seq.^  87  seq.  ;  cf.  130  seq., 
201. 

II  Cf.  Dierauer,  II.,  407.  A  Brief  of  Julius  II.  to  the  Swiss,  of  the 
27th  October,  1511,  in  the  Abschieden,  III.,  2,  586;  a  duplicate  to  the 


374  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

Now  that  his  position  was  so  far  secured,  Julius  II.  was 
able  to  take  the  last  step  in  regard  to  the  schismatical 
Cardinals.  When  the  term  appointed  in  the  letter  of 
citation  had  expired,  in  an  open  Consistory  held  on  24th 
OQtober,  at  which  there  were  eighteen  Cardinals  present, 
he  pronounced  the  sentence  of  excommunication  and  de- 
position on  Cardinals  Carvajal,  Brigonnet,  Francesco  Borgia, 
and  de  Prie,  as  rebels.  Cardinals  Sanseverino  and  d'Albret 
were  threatened  with  the  same  punishment  if  they  continued 
disobedient.* 

**  Thus  before  the  Council  had  met,  the  Cardinals  who 
had  convoked  it  had  been  deposed.  It  is  true  that  the 
day  fixed  for  its  opening  had  been  the  ist  of  September, 
but  they  had  themselves  put  off  their  arrival."f  Their 
prospects  were  about  as  bad  as  they  possibly  could  be. 
Spain  and  England  would  have  nothing  to  say  to  them, 
and  in  Italy  and  Germany  the  Council  called  forth 
no  enthusiasm.  Even  in  France  they  met  with  so  little 
sympathy  that  on  the  20th  of  September  Cardinal  de  Prie 
wrote  to  Louis  XII.  to  say  that,  unless  he  would  exert  his 

Mayor  and  Council  of  Basle,  dat.  28th  Oct.,  151 1,  in  the  Basle  Archives, 
n.  2673. 

*  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1511,  n.  33,  35,  36;  Paris  de  Grassis, 
Bollinger's  ed.,  412-413  ;  ^  414,  the  striking  remarks  on  the  position 
of  the  schismatical  Cardinals  ;  Sanuto,  XIII.,  177,  178,  201  seq. ; 
Desjardins,  II.,  571,  N.  I  ;  Lehmann,  15  ;  Atti  dei  Lincei  (1892), 
4  Serie,  Scienz.  mor.,  X.,  15.  Cf.  *Acta  Consist.,  f.  34^-35.  It  is 
here  stated  that  in  a  Secret  Consistory  on  22nd  Oct.,  Sigismondo  de 
Conti  read  the  judgment  to  the  Cardinals,  and  they  agreed  to  it.  (Con- 
sistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican.)  On  the  24th  Oct.  the  deposition  of 
the  Cardinals  was  announced  to  all  the  Princes  of  Europe.  See  the 
State  Archives  in  Turin.  Mazzo  18,  N.  26.  A  copy  of  the  announce- 
ment sent  to  Maximilian,  dat.  Rom.,  24th  Oct.,  is  in  the  State  Archives, 
Bologna. 

t  Lehmann,  15. 


FAILURE   OF   THE   ANTI-PAPAL  COUNCIL.  3/5 

royal  power  in  favour  of  the  assembly  at  Pisa,  it  would  be 
a  complete  failure  and  effect  nothing.  "  Thus  at  its  very 
inception  the  free  Council  was  to  owe  its  existence  to 
State  despotism."*  On  the  ist  September  the  number  of 
those  who  were  prepared  to  attend  it  was  so  small  that  it 
had  to  be  put  off  till  the  ist  November. 

From  the  first  even  its  originators  had  no  confidence 
in  the  success  of  their  undertaking.  In  the  beginning  of 
September,  the  Spanish  Cardinals  knowing  the  position 
that  their  King  was  taking  up,  were  prepared  to  repudiate 
it  if  the  Pope  would  have  allowed  them  to  remain  at  Siena.f 

To  the  hostile  attitude  of  the  King  of  Spain  was  now 
added  an  unfavourable  change  in  that  of  Maximilian. 
From  the  first  the  Emperor  had  disapproved  of  the  choice 
of  Pisa  as  the  place  for  holding  the  Council.  In  July  he 
said  very  decidedly  that  it  could  only  be  held  in  some  town 
belonging  to  the  Empire  ;  Verona  and  Constance  were 
mentioned-!  Also,  not  only  Hungary  and  Poland  but  the 
Empire  itself  hung  back  from  committing  itself  to  an  anti- 
Papal  Council,!  and  the  Emperor  received  letters  from 
various  quarters  warning  him  against  it,  amongst  others 
from  his  daughter  Margaret  and  from  the  learned  Abbot 
Trithemius,  The  latter  strongly  urged  him  to  have  nothing 
to  do  with  an  assembly  which  was  unlawfully  convoked  and 
must  necessarily  lead  to  a  schism,  and  assured  him  that 

*  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  151 1,  n.  8  ;  Hergenrother,  VIIL,  480. 

+  MORSOLIN,  L'Abbate  di  Monte  Subasio,  15. 

t  Le  Glay,  L,  417;  Acta  Tomiciana,  I.,  211;  ZURITA,  248b; 
Frakn6i,  Liga  von  Cambrai,  86  (note  i),  92;  Ulmann,  II.,  436  seq.^ 
who  justly  remarks  that  the  proposal  in  the  Emperor's  instructions  to 
his  secretary ,  Pigello  Portinari,  that  the  Council  should  be  held  in 
Florence,  was  mainly  a  pecuniary  speculation.  Ulmann  is  mistaken  in 
thinking  that  this  instruction  has  not  been  printed.  It  is  published  by 
Tommasini  in  his  Machiavelli,  I.,  702-703. 

§  Ulmann,  II.,  435. 


376  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

Germany  would  not  follow  him  in  this  path.*  The  attitude 
of  the  German  clergy  shewed  that  the  Abbot  of  Sponheim 
was  not  mistaken  on  this  point ;  and  in  addition  to  all  this 
there  was  the  difference  between  him  and  the  King  of 
France  as  to  the  place  of  meeting.  It  is  not  surprising, 
therefore,  that  the  Emperor's  interest  in  the  Council  began 
to  slacken. 

When  Julius  II.  was  so  dangerously  ill  in  August  151 1, 
Maximilian,  like  every  one  else,  supposed  the  Pope  to  be 
dying.f  He  at  once  nominated  three  Envoys  for  the 
Conclave,  and  also  intended  to  send  his  trusty  Lang  to 
Rome  to  unite  with  Cardinal  Adriano  Castellesi  in  looking 
after  his  interests  in  the  new  election.  He  told  the  English 
Ambassador  that  this  Cardinal  was  his  candidate.  At  the 
same  time,  Carvajal  also  hoped  this  time  to  attain  the  object 
of  his  ambition. J 

At  first  no  one  at  the  Imperial  Court  could  believe  in  the 
reality  of  the  Pope's  sudden  and  rapid  recovery.  They 
were  still  convinced  that  his  days  were  numbered,  and  it 
was  in  this  conviction  that  Maximilian  wrote  those  much 
discussed  letters  in  which  he  expressed  his  visionary  notion 
of  adding  the  Tiara  to  the    Imperial  crown.§     In  one  of 

*  Trithemius,  Annal.  Hirsaug.,  II.,  669  seq. 

t  Cf.  supra,  p.  368  seq.;  also  Frakn6i,  Erdodi  Bakdcz  Tamds,  108  seq. 

X  Ulmann,  Absichten,  22,  and  Maximilian,  II.,  440. 

§  Maximilian's  aspirations  to  the  Papacy  have  produced  an  extremely 
extensive  literature.  A.  Jager  has  collected  the  earlier  writings  on  this 
subject  in  the  Transactions  of  the  Academy  of  Vienna,  XII.,  igi^  seq. 
(1854).  This  writer  justly  holds  the  authenticity  of  these  letters  to  be 
beyond  doubt.  (Maximilian's  Instructions  to  George  of  Neideck  of 
loth  June,  1 507,  mentioned  supra,  p.  354,  note  *,  in  a  sense  corroborate  his 
view.)  At  the  same  time  he  thinks  it  is  a  mistake  to  interpret  the  letters 
too  strictly  in  a  literal  sense,  while,  on  the  other  hand,  he  combats 
the  view  that  they  are  not  to  be  taken  seriously  at  all.  Jager,  relying 
very  much  on  Schreck  (Biografia  del  Card.  Adriano  [Trento,  1837]), 


MAXIMILIAN'S   LETTERS   TO   HIS   DAUGHTER.         377 

these  letters  addressed  to  his  daughter  Margaret,  Regent 
of  the  Netherlands,  and  dated   i8th  September,   151 1,  he 

solves  the  problem  by  giving  the  letters  an  allegorical  meaning,  and 
considers  that  the  purpose  of  the  Emperor  in  them  was  to  signify  his 
intention  of  obtaining  the  Tiara  for  Card.  A.  Castellesi,  who  had  taken 
refuge  in  the  Tyrol  and  was  completely  devoted  to  him.  Against  Jager, 
Lanz,  118,  and  BoHM  and  Huber,  III.,  394,  have  pointed  out  that  the 
plain  sense  of  the  words  will  not  admit  of  such  an  interpretation, 
especially  in  the  letter  to  P.  von  Lichtenstein.  In  spite  of  Jager,  most 
historians  continue  to  think  that  Maximilian  really  aimed  at  uniting  the 
dignities  of  Emperor  and  Pope  in  his  own  person.  Brosch  (p.  335) 
brought  forward  a  proof  from  the  Venetian  Archives  that  in  December 
there  had  been  negotiations  on  the  subject  between  Maximilian  and 
Ferdinand  of  Spain  ;  he  speaks  very  contemptuously  of  Jager's  work. 
In  consequence,  however,  of  further  researches  by  Gebhardt  and 
Ulmann,  Jager's  theory,  though  in  some  points  his  investigations  are 
wanting  in  thoroughness,  came,  to  a  certain  degree,  into  favour  again. 
Gebhardt  (Adrian  v.  Cometo,  23  seq.)  discovered  a  Report  from  the 
English  Ambassador  at  the  Imperial  Court  of  4th  Sept.,  151 1,  in  which 
he  says  that  Maximilian  wished  to  obtain  the  Tiara  for  Card.  Adriano  in 
the  place  of  Julius  II.,  who  was  hopelessly  ill.  Maximilian's  biographer, 
Ulmann,  in  1888  published  a  treatise  dealing  with  this  question  alone. 
Although  we  are  not  in  possession  of  the  complete  text  of  the  Imperial 
Instruction  of  1 507,  Ulmann,  unlike  Bohm,  considers  this  document  of 
the  first  importance  in  deciding  the  question.  In  that  year  the  Empress 
was  still  living,  consequently,  so  this  author  argues,  Maximilian  could 
not  then  have  had  any  thought  of  himself  becoming  Pope.  Since  in 
1 51 1,  after  the  Empress'  death,  he  expresses  himself  in  exactly  the 
same  terms  as  are  employed  in  the  Instruction,  Ulmann  infers  "  that  his 
meaning  must  also  have  been  the  same,  and  that  therefore  the  true 
kernel  of  his  project  could  not  have  been  a  personal  occupation  of  the 
Chair  of  S.  Peter."  Ulmann  thinks  he  finds  this  "  true  kernel "  in  the 
Emperor's  favourite  idea  of  the  secularisation  of  the  States  of  the  Church. 
As  this  would  be  incompatible  with  his  being  himself  the  wearer  of  the 
Tiara,  all  this  seems  to  imply  that  it  is  to  be  taken  as  a  diplomatic  circum- 
locution. The  one  thing  that  is  certain  is  "  that  in  the  years  from  1 507- 
151 1  he  cannot  have  dreamt  of  obtaining  the  Papal  Crown  for  himself, 
whether  as  Papal  and  Imperial  Sovereign,  or,  laying  aside  the  pomp  of 
Empire,  as  real  spiritual  Head  of  the  Church  ;  the  thing  he  aimed  at 


378  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

says :    "  To-morrow  I  am  going  to  send  Matthseus  Lang, 
Bishop  of  Gurk,  to  Rome,  to  arrange  with  the  Pope  about 

was  to  arrogate  to  himself  the  '  dominium  temporale '  of  the  Papacy. 
....  The  possession  of  Rome  would  secure  to  him  the  mastery  in 
Upper  Italy,  and  at  the  same  time,  by  making  him  Suzerain  of  Naples, 
protect  him  against  injury  from  Spain  on  the  southern  side  of  the  States 
of  the  Church.  If  I  am  right  in  my  view,  he  intended  to  issue  a 
summons  from  Rome  to  the  whole  of  Christendom  to  range  itself  under 
the  Imperial  standard  for  a  Crusade  against  the  Turks"  (pp.  47-49). 
This  theory  has  found  unconditional  acceptance  from  very  few  scholars. 
Ulmann  himself,  however,  while  acknowledging  it  to  be  only  a  hypo- 
thesis (II.,  441),  still  holds  firmly  to  it  in  the  2nd  Vol.  of  his  Biography  of 
Maximilian.  SaGMULLER,  in  the  Literar.  Rundschau  (1889),  p.  242, 
agrees  with  Ulmann  that  Maximilian  had  not  thought  of  being  Pope  as 
well  as  Emperor,  but  sees  objections  to  the  view  that  he  aimed  at 
possessing  himself  of  the  temporal  power  of  the  Papacy.  J.  Bern  AYS,  on 
the  contrary,  looks  upon  this  latter  point  as  proved  from  the  Instruction 
of  1507,  but  holds  that  in  Sept.,  151 1,  Maximilian  aspired  also  to  the 
Papal  dignity  itself  (Gott.  Gel.  Anz.,  1888,  pp.  1023-1024).  One  of 
Bernay's  objections  in  regard  to  the  suzerainty  is  answered  beforehand 
by  Ulmann,  II.,  440  ;  but  that  does  not  affect  his  view  of  the  Imperial 
letter  of  the  i8th  Sept.  Quite  independently  of  Bernays,  G.  SULIGER 
decisively  rejects  both  the  reasoning  and  conclusions  in  Ulmann's  work 
while  fully  recognising  the  clear  insight  into  the  political  situation  which 
it  displays.  "  The  reports  of  a  Florentine  living  in  the  French  camp," 
he  observes,  "  on  which  Ulmann  mainly  depends,  cannot  be  of  greater 
authority  than  the  Emperor's  own  words.  In  the  endeavour  to  fathom  : 
his  secret  intentions  they  must  be  our  first  guide,  and  their  clear,  literal 
meaning  cannot  be  ignored"  (Deutsche  Literaturztg.,  1888,  p.  1607).  L. 
G[eiger]  in  the  Suppt.  to  the  Allg.  Zeit.  (1888),  No.  320,  says  that  he 
cannot  agree  with  Ulmann,  and  brings  forward  some  notable  objections 
to  his  hypothesis.  Both  Ulmann  (p.  32)  and  Geiger  might  have  avoided 
the  mistake  of  translating  "  adoratio  "  by  the  word  "  worship  "  if  they  had 
possessed  even  a  slight  knowledge  of  Catholic  doctrine.  A  letter  from 
Card.  S.  Gonzaga  to  the  Marchesa  Isabella,  dat.  Macerata,  2nd  Oct., 
151 1,  is  valuable  as  evidence  on  this  question,  certainly  much  more  so 
than  the  documents  cited  by  Brosch.  It  says  :  S.  B"^  voleva  mandare 
un  monitorio  al  rev^o  Card,  di  S.  Severino  et  a  Labretto,  che  com- 
paressero  personalmente  dinanzi  a  lei  infra  certo  termine  sotto  pena  de 


HIS  DESIGN    UPON   THE   PAPACY.  379 

choosing  me  as  his  coadjutor  with  the  reversion  of  the 
Papacy  on  his  death,  and  allowing  me  to  take  holy  orders, 
so  that  I  may  possibly  be  canonised  and  you  may  have 
to  revere  me  as  a.  saint  after  my  death,  which  I  should 
value  much.  I  have  sent  an  Envoy  to  the  King  of  Spain, 
asking  him  to  support  me ;  which  he  has  willingly  promised 
to  do  on  condition  of  my  abdicating  the  Imperial  crown  in 
favour  of  my  grand-son  Charles,  to  which  I  cordially  agree. 
The  people  and  nobles  of  Rome  have  entered  into  a  com- 
pact with  each  other  against  the  French  and  Spaniards; 
they  can  arm  20,600  men,  and  have  assured  me  that  they 
will  never  consent  to  the  elevation  of  a  Frenchman,  a 
Spaniard,  or  a  Venetian,  but  will  choose  a  Pope  who  shall 
be  dependent  on  me  and  acceptable  to  the  German  nation. 
I  am  already  beginning  to  canvass  the  Cardinals,  for  which 
purpose  from  200,000  to  300,000  ducats  would  be  very 
useful.  The  King  of  Spain  has  sent  word  to  me  through 
his  Envoy  that  he  will  desire  the  Spanish  Cardinals  to 
support  my  candidature.  I  beg  you  to  keep  all  this  pro- 
foundly secret,  although  I  fear  that  in  a  very  short  time 
the  whole  world  will  know  it,  as  too  many  people  have 
to  be  employed  in  the  business  and  too  much  money  is 
required.  I  commend  you  to  God.  Written  by  the  hand 
of  your  good  father,  Maximilian,  future  Pope.  September 
1 8th. 

" P.S. — The  Pope  has  had  a  return  of  fever;  he  cannot 
live  much  longer. "  * 

la  privatione  e^  qiiesto  faceva  per  essersi  inteso  che  havevano  proposto 
alio  hnperatore  defarlo  papa,  cosa  non  fnai  vista  et  inaudtta.  I  found 
the  original  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua,  and  it  has  now  been 
pubUshed  by  MORSOLIN  in  L'Abbate  di  Monte  Subasio,  14.  Morsohn 
thinks  he  detects  a  squib  on  Maximilian's  plan  of  becoming  Pope  in  a 
satirical  medal  of  the  i6th  Century.  See  Riv.  Ital.  di  Numismatica  A°, 
VIII.,  fasc.  2. 

*  After  the  original  in  the  Archives  at  Lille  in  Le  Glay,  1 1.,  37 ; 


3^0  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

This  letter  might  quite  possibly  have  been  meant  as  a 
playful  refusal  of  a  project  for  a  fresh  marriage  presented 
to  him  by  Margaret,  as  he  had  been  a  widower  since 
the  31st  of  December;  for  he  was  fond  of  writing  jesting 
letters  to  her.*  But  another  addressed  to  the  Tyrolese 
Land-Marschall,  Paul  von  Lichtenstein,  and  dated  i6th 
September,  151 1,  cannot  be  thus  humorously  interpreted. 
Maximilian  writes : — 

"  Most  noble,  beloved,  and  faithful  friend  !  We  do  not 
doubt  that  what  we  have  imparted  to  you  at  various  times 
as  to  our  reasons  for  intending  and  desiring  to  obtain 
the  Papacy  is  still  fresh  in  your  memory;  as  also  we 
ourselves  have  never  ceased  to  keep  this  purpose  in  mind. 
Moreover  we  feel  in  ourselves,  and  in  fact  it  is  so,  that 
there  can  be  no  aim  more  noble,  loftier,  or  better  than 
that  of  attaining  to  the  said  dignity. 

"  And  as  the  present  Pope  Julius  has  lately  been 
dangerously  ill,  so  much  so  that,  as  our  Court  Chancellor 
for  the  Tyrol,  Cyprian  of  Serentin,  has  informed  us,  every 
•one  in  Rome  thought  that  his  last  moment  had  come,  we 
have  resolved  to  take  the  necessary  measures  for  carrying 
out  our  intention,  and  to  act  in  such  a  manner  as  shall 
win  for  us  the  Papacy.  Consequently  we  have  laid  these 
matters  before  Cardinal  Adriano  who,  as  you  know,  has 
been  for  some  time  past  with  us  in  Germany ;  who,  when 
he  heard  it,  wept  for  joy,  and  advised  us  strongly  to 
proceed,  and  thinks  that  there  are  many  Cardinals  who 
will  be  of  the  same  mind.  And  since,  as  you  yourself 
also  must  see,  it  is  very  likely  that  the  Pope  will  die  (for 
he  eats  little,  and  that  nothing  but  fruit,  and  drinks  so  much 

cf.^oy,  541.     The  date  of  the  year  is  wanting  in  the  original,  but  it  must 
bei5ii.     C/.^bnu,  i/^  seq. 

*  Ulmann,  Absichten,  31  seq.,  and  Bernays  in  Gott.  Gel.  Anz. 
<i888),  p.  1021. 


HIS   LETTER   TO   PAUL   VON    LICHTENSTEIN         381 

more  that  his  life  has  no  substance  in  it),  if  he  does  die,  we 
have  prepared  the  Bishop  of  Gurk  to  post  at  once  to  Rome 
to  help  us  in  this  affair  of  the  Papacy ;  but,  as  this  cannot 
be  done  without  a  considerable  sum  of  money  which  we 
must  provide,  we  have  promised  the  Cardinals  and  several 
other  persons,  to  expend  3(X),ooo  ducats  for  the  needs  of 
our  undertaking  and  to  arrange  that  this  money  shall  be 
obtainable  from  the  Fugger  Bank  at  Rome.  As  you  know, 
at  the  present  time  we  have  no  money,  and  the  only  way  in 
which  it  will  be  possible  for  us  to  satisfy  Fugger  in  regard 
to  this  sum  will  be  by  pledging  our  jewels." 

The  Emperor  then  proceeds  to  give  detailed  instructions 
as  to  the  negotiations  for  the  loan  ;  the  jewels  that  are 
to  be  pledged,  to  which  the  feudal  mantle  worn  by 
Charlemagne  is  to  be  added,  which,  he  says,  does  not 
belong  to  the  Empire,  but  is  an  Austrian  heirloom,  the 
property  of  the  Hapsburgs,  and  will  be  no  longer  wanted 
by  him  when  he  is  Pope ;  the  manner  in  which,  and  the 
persons  to  whom,  the  money  is  to  be  paid,  and  how  and 
when  the  articles  pledged  are  to  be  redeemed.  Von 
Lichtenstein  is  admonished  to  use  all  possible  diligence 
to  get  the  matter  arranged  quickly  and  secretly,  to  take 
no  denial,  but  persist,  even  if  at  first  he  is  met  by  a  refusal, 
and  to  keep  the  Emperor  thoroughly  informed  of  every 
step  in  the  proceedings,  and  is  assured  that  his  faithful 
service  will  be  remembered  and  amply  rewarded. 

In  the  concluding  paragraph  the  Emperor  says:  "We 
also  wish  you  to  know  that  to-day  we  have  heard  by  a 
private  post  from  our  secretary  John  Colla,  that  the  Orsini, 
Colonna,  and  the  populus  Romanus  are  quite  resolved, 
and  have  engaged,  not  to  accept  any  Pope  who  is  a 
Frenchman  or  a  Spaniard,  or  a  candidate  of  either  of 
these  nations.  And  they  have  sent  an  Envoy  privately 
to  ask  us  not  to  fight  with  the  French,  so  that  they  may 


382  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

be  induced  to  remain  neutral  in  regard  to  the  Papal 
election.     Given  at  Brixen,  September  16,   Anno  15 11."* 

There  can  be  no  doubt  that  "  in  the  letter  there  is  no 
trace  of  banter  of  any  sort.  Also,  it  is  not  conceivable  that 
Maximilian  should  have  amused  himself  by  mystifying 
his  confidential  servant,  to  whom  he  had  quite  lately  given 
instructions  in  regard  to  his  purposes,  and  whom  he 
habitually  employed  in  conducting  his  political  affairs  in 
Italy.    The  letter  must  be  understood  in  its  plain  meaning. "f 

It  is  true  that  we  are  confronted  here  by  another 
difficulty  which  cannot  be  held  to  be  unimportant.  The 
original  letter  to  Lichtenstein  has  never  been  found,  and 
the  historical  trustworthiness  of  the  author  who  published 
it  a  hundred  years  after  the  Emperor's  death  without 
indicating  the  source  from  which  he  obtained  it,  is  open 
to  grave  doubts.J 

In  the  present  state  of  our  knowledge  it  is  impossible 
to  say  with  certainty  that  Maximilian  did  seriously  think 
of  uniting  the  Imperial  and  Papal  crowns  in  his  own 
person,  and  thus  realising  his  aspirations  after  complete 
sovereignty  in  Italy.     Many  things  seem  to  indicate  that 

*  GOLDAST,  Polit.  Reichshandel,  428-429  (Frankfurt,  1614) ;  and  Ul- 
MANN,  Absichten,  24  seq.  The  text  of  the  Letter  on  account  of  its  great 
length,  has  been  placed  in  the  Appendix,  N.  90. 

t  Bern  AYS,  loc.  cit,  1023  ;  cf.  de  Leva,  L,  124. 

J  BOHM,  7  seq.,  and  Ulmann,  2  seq.,  think  the  letter  genuine  (see 
Appendix,  N.  90),  but  the  latter  expressly  observes  that  the  source  from 
which  it  comes  does  not  guarantee  its  accuracy  in  details.  Some 
portions  are  evidently  incorrect ;  cf.  those  which  I  have  indicated  by 
parentheses.  But  the  letter  contains  details  which,  as  Ulmann  points 
out,  Absichten,  2,  note  4,  could  hardly  have  been  known  by  a  forger. 
My  honoured  colleague,  Prof.  Seemiiller,  had  the  kindness  to  investigate 
this  document  for  me  from  a  philological  point  of  view,  and  can  find  no 
warrant  for  supposing  it  to  be  a  forgery.  On  Goldast,  cf.  WeGELE, 
Historiographie,  368  ;  Allg.  Deutsch.  Biographic,  IX.,  329 ;  Janssen- 
Pastor,  Gesch.  d.  Deutsch.  Volkes,  V.,  546,  578  seq.,  13th  and  14th  ed. 


HIS   DISSATISFACTION   WITH   FRANCE.  383 

this  dream  did  actually  cross  his  mind  for  a  short  time  as 
a  practical  possibility ;  *  but  all  plans  founded  on  the 
expected  vacancy  of  the  Chair  of  S.  Peter  were  soon 
dissipated  by  the  complete  recovery  of  Julius  II. 

Maximilian  was  growing  daily  more  and  more 
dissatisfied  with  the  conduct  of  Louis  XII.,  and  alarmed 
at  his  increasing  preponderance  in  Italy,-j-  and  the  Pope 
now  strove  to  win  him  to  his  side  by  the  offer  of  an 
advantageous  peace  with  Venice.  He  was  not,  however, 
immediately  successful,  for  "on  the  21st  of  October,  1511, 
the  Emperor  desired  the  Papal  Envoys  who  were  on 
their  way  to  several  of  the  electoral  Princes  to  be  stopped 
at  Innsbruck  and  other  places  ;  but  when,  in  November, 
England  also  definitely  joined  the  League  for  the  pro- 
tection of  the  Church  and  her  possessions,  Maximilian 
began  to  change  his  policy."  On  the  12th,  at  the 
instigation  of  the  King  of  Spain,  he  asked  Julius  to  act 
as  intermediary  between  him  and  Venice.]:  He  began 
also  to  cool  towards  the  anti-Papal   Council.     No  doubt 

*  In  addition  to  the  letter  of  Card.  S.  Gonzaga,  which  has  been  already 
cited,  it  seems  to  me  that  Zurita'S  testimony  (IX.,  c.  37,  38,  40,  43)  is 
very  important  in  regard  to  Maximilian  having  really  cherished  the 
thought  of  .becoming  Papal  coadjutor  and  eventually  Pope  himself. 
Ranke,  Rom.  und  Germ.  Volker,  284,  and  BOHM,  16,  also  Lehmann, 
20  seq.^  attach  great  weight  to  the  statements  of  the  Spanish  historian, 
and  with  reason,  for,  as  a  rule,  wherever  they  have  been  tested  they 
have  proved  singularly  trustworthy. 

t  Cf.  MORSOLIN,  L'Abbate  di  Monte  Subasio,  14. 

X  Ulmann,  Maximilians  Absichten,  46.  L.  Trevisano  reports  on  the 
25th-26th  November,  151 1,  from  Rome  :  Et  ^  da  saper,  che  quando  fo 
fata  la  liga,  fo  dato  al  Papa  una  corniola  anticha  ligata  in  argento,  ch'  h  uno 
caro  tirato  da  doy  galli  e  sopra  il  caro  era  una  aquila,  qual  havia  una 
bacheta  in  man,  zoe  in  le  zaffe  e  bateva  li  galli,  la  qual  auta  il  Papa  la 
man  do  a  I'Imperador  dicendoli  questa  esser  profetia  e  lui  come  difensor 
di  la  Chiexia  doveva  intrar  in  liga  e  bater  francesi  ch'  h  nemici  di  la 
Chiexia,  maxime  questo  presante  Re.     Sanuto,  XIII.,  285-286. 


384  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

the  adverse  attitude  of  the  German  Episcopate  had  much 
to  do  with  this.  The  Bishop  of  Brixen  refused  to  act  as 
Imperial  representative  at  the  Council,  on  the  ground  that 
he  was  more  bound  to  the  Pope  than  to  the  Emperor. 
The  Archbishop  of  Salzburg  declared  himself  precluded 
by  his  ecclesiastical  oath  from  sending  even  one  of  his 
Counsellors  to  it*  Now  that  England  and  Spain  also 
had  pronounced  against  it,j-  while  Hungary  held  aloof  for 
the  present  from  the  opponents  of  the  Pope,|  the  schis- 
matics had  no  power  but  France  to  support  them.  The 
Court  Bishops,  of  course,  followed  the  King;  but  "all 
who  could,  as  the  Flemish  clergy,  who,  in  spite  of  Louis's 
complaints  never  appeared  at  Lyons,  tried  to  keep  clear 
of  the  Council.  The  French  disliked  the  Italian  policy 
of  their  King,  the  people  and  the  nobles  objected  to  the 
cost  of  the  war,  and  the  Queen  implored  her  husband  to 
withdraw  from  a  conflict  with  the  Pope  which  might  be 
extremely  prejudicial  to  the  interests  of  the  future  heir 
to  the  throne."§ 

*  Ulmann,  II.,  435-436.  Dr.  Mayr  has  sought  in  vain  throughout 
the  Statthaher's  Archives  at  Innsbruck  for  M.  von  Wolkenstein's  Report 
to  MaximiHan  which  is  here  cited.  It  is  a  pity  that  Ulmann  hardly 
ever  gives  the  numbers  of  the  Documents  he  quotes. 

t  Ferdinand  had  caused  the  Bull  of  Indiction  for  the  Lateran  Council 
to  be  solemnly  announced  at  Burgos  on  the  i6th  Nov.,  1511,  and  desired 
the  Bishops  to  meet  for  consultation  on  it.  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  463 
seq.,  gives  a  full  account  of  the  proposals  for  Reform  which  were  to  be 
laid  before  the  Council,  drawn  from  the  documents  published  (some  of 
them  very  carelessly)  by  DOLLINGER,  Beitrage,  III.,  200  seq.,  out 
of  the  Simancas  Archives. 

X  Frakn6i,  Liga  von  Cambrai,  92  seq. 

§  Lehmann,  31.  Girolamo  Aleandro,  who  had  been  chosen  by  his 
colleagues  to  represent  the  High  School  of  Paris  at  the  Council  of  Pisa, 
refused  the  dangerous  honour.  See  Nuntiaturberichte,  III.,  Einl.,  31. 
Lehmann  has  not  observed  that  the  Rector's  declaration  had  been  already 
published  by  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  488-489. 


LOYALTY   OF   THE    ITALIAN    CLERGY.  385 

The  Italian  clergy  as  a  body  were  faithful  to  the  lawful 
Pope.  The  exceptions  consisted  only  of  a  few  such  men 
as  the  restless  Abbot  Zaccaria  Ferreri  and  Cardinal  San- 
severino,  who  was  so  deeply  compromised.  Many  warning 
voices  were  heard  from  amongst  them.  The  pious  hermit 
Angelo  of  Vallombrosa  adjured  Carvajal  not  to  rend  the 
unity  of  the  Church  ;  what  he  was  doing,  he  said,  was  like 
the  crime  of  Lucifer  and  would  draw  down  God's  judg- 
ments upon  him.*  Angelo,  like  many  other  Italians,  as 
Francesco  Poggio,f  was  diligent  with  his  pen  in  defence  of 
the  rights  of  the  Holy  See  against  the  schismatics.  The 
most  eminent  of  these  writers  were  Domenico  Jacobazzi  I 
and  the  celebrated  theologian  and  philosopher,  Thomas  de 
Vio  of  Gaeta,  better  known  as  Cajetanus,  who,  since  1508, 
had  been  General  of  the  Dominicans.  In  several  works 
which  obtained  the  honour  of  being  publicly  burnt  by  Louis 
XII.,  Cajetanus  dealt  in  a  masterly  and  classical  style  with 
the  false  Conciliar  theory  of  which  the  Council  of  Pisa  was 
the  latest  offshoot.  He  maintained  that  the  power  of  the 
Pope  in  the  Church  was  supreme  and  monarchical,  demon- 
strated the  difference  between  the  authority  of  Peter  and 
that  of  the  other  Apostles,  denied  the  superiority  of  Councils 
over  the  Head  of  the  Church,  and  refuted  the  objections 
drawn  from  the  Councils  of  Constance  and  Basle.  The 
theses  which  he  defended  were  the  following: — (i)  A 
Council  does  not  derive  its  authority  immediately  from 
Christ.  (2)  It  does  not  represent  the  whole  Church  unless 
it  includes  the  Pope.     (3)  A  doubtful  Pope,  such  as  the  one 

*  Angelo  also  addressed  Louis  XH.  himself.  See  Raynaldus,  ad 
an.  151 1,  n.  30,  31. 

+  De  potestate  papae  et  concilii  liber,  s.  I.  et  a.  (probably  Romae, 
1 5 12).    Cf.  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1511,  n.  19. 

4:  Particulars  concerning  his  Tract,  de  Concilio  (written  15 12,  printed 
1538)  are  to  be  found  in  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  438  seq.^  476  seq. 

VOL.  VI.  2  C 


386  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

who  presided  at  Constance,  holds  a  very  different  position 
from  one  whose  legitimacy  is  certain.* 

In  Italy  the  only  writers  who  advocated  the  schismatic 
Council  and  the  oligarchical  revolution  in  the  constitution 
of  the  Church  at  which  it  aimed,  were  the  Milanese  jurist 
Decius  f  and  Zaccaria  Ferreri.  This  latter,  a  learned  but 
restless  and  changeable  man,  had  first  been  a  Benedictine 
monk,  and  then  joined  the  Carthusians.  Here  too,  he  could 
not  bear  the  quiet  of  the  cloistered  life,  and  threw  himself 
eagerly  into  politics,  labouring  to  enlist  public  opinion  in 
^  support  of  the  League  of  Cambrai  and  turn  it  against  the 
Venetians,  whom  he  hated,  and  continued  to  oppose  even 
after  the  Republic  had  been  absolved.  He  wrote  poems 
in  praise  of  the  French  and  was  thus  brought  into  con- 
nection with  Marshal  Trivulzio,  and  initiated  into  the  anti- 
Papal  plans  of  Louis  XII.  As  Carvajal  and  he  had  always 
been  close  friends,  he  was  now  completely  drawn  into  the 
schismatical  camp.  Later  he  fought  so  energetically  by 
letters,  addresses,  and  tracts  on  the  side  of  the  mock  Council^ 
that  he  came  to  be  regarded  as  its  chief  literary  champion.| 

*  This  summary  is  taken  from  HerGENROTHER,  VIII.,  474.. 
Maurenbrecher,  Kath,  Ref.,  105,  says,  referring  to  Cajetanus,  "It 
may  be  truly  said  that  the  Court  party  had  the  best  of  the  encounter 
from  a  literary  as  well  as  from  a  historical  point  of  view." 

t  GOLDAST,  Monarchia,  II.,  1167  seq.;  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  471. 
On  Decius,  cf.  Savigny,  Gesch.  d.  Romischen  Rechts,  VI.,  374^^^.,  and 
SCHULTE,  Quellen,  II.,  361  seq. 

\  Ferreri's  career  was  described  a  hundred  years  ago  by  Tiraboschi, 
Delia  vita  e  delle  opere  di  Z.  Ferreri  (Modena,  1799),  ^^^t  by  MORSO- 
LIN  in  a  (scarce)  monograph  which  appeared  at  Vicenza  in  1877,  and 
again  in  his  valuable  work,  L'Abbate  di  Monte  Subasio,  3  seq.  Cf.  also 
MORSOLIN,  Un  Latinista  del  Cinquecento  imitatore  del  Dante  (Venezia, 
1894),  and  Apologia  del  popolo  Vicentino  di  Z.  Ferreri  (Venezia,  1895). 
Ferreri's  important  influence  on  the  Council  of  Pisa  has  been  quite 
overlooked  by  Lehmann,  and  also  by  Maurenbrecher,  Kath.  Ref, 
105  seq. 


CHARACTER   OF   CARDINAL   CARVAJAL.  387 

The  character  of  Carvajal  very  much  resembled  that 
of  Ferreri.  He  had  early  adopted  the  false  theory  of 
Councils ;  *  in  addition  to  which  he  could  not  forget  that 
he  had  once  very  nearly  obtained  the  Tiara.  *'  He  had 
been  forced  to  yield  to  Julius  II.,  but  he  did  not  relinquish 
his  ambitious  plans."  Especially  since  the  death  of 
d'Amboise,  he  had  become  more  engrossed  with  the  hope 
of  attaining  the  highest  dignity.  He  threw  himself  into 
the  French  movement  entirely,  because  he  thought  it 
might  be  serviceable  to  him.  He  had  long  ago  quarrelled 
with  the  Pope ;  he  loved  pomp  and  show,  and  cared  for 
reform  as  little  as  his  associates  did.  Like  Ferreri  he  was 
utterly  untrustworthy.  Zurita  relates  that  he  simultaneously 
asked  Ferdinand  for  a  safe-conduct  for  Naples,  wrote  to 
the  Spanish  Envoy  in  Germany  to  use  all  his  influence  to 
prevent  any  German  prelates  from  coming  to  the  Council, 
and  begged  the  Emperor  to  send  them.  "  He  was  sincere 
in  nothing,  and  it  was  this  hypocrite  who  was  the  President 
of  the  Council,  to  which  he  was  only  held  by  the  impossi- 
bility or  extreme  peril  of  drawing  back."-f  He  was  so 
much  alarmed  at  the  small  amount  of  sympathy  which  the 
Council  had  evoked,  that  even  at  the  last  moment  he  made 
an  attempt  to  be  reconciled  with  the  Pope.  He  had  broken 
with  Cardinal  Bri9onnet,  whose  heart  like  his  own  was  set 
on  obtaining  the  Tiara;  but  both  he  and  his  companions 
were  too  ambitious  and  too  proud  to  bring  themselves  to 
comply  with  the  stern  requisitions  of  Julius  H.,  who  insisted 
on  their  coming  to  Rome  and  asking  for  absolution,|     The 

*  ROSSBACH,  Carvajal,  1 5  seg.,  which  unwarrantably  brands  the  elder 
Carvajal  as  an  adherent  of  the  false  Conciliar  theory ;  on  the  errors  in 
this  book,  cf.  PASTOR,  Gesch.  Papste,  II.,  376  seg.,  ed.  2. 

+  Lehmann,  26-29,  who  gives  his  proofs.  On  Carvajal's  nepotism 
and  ostentation,  see  Rossbach,  Car\^ajal,  100  scg. 

X  MORSOLIN,  L'Abbate  di  Monte  Subasio,  17  seq. 


388  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

prospects  of  the  schismatics,  "  not  one  of  whom  possessed 
the  support  of  a  genuine  conviction,"  *  were  rendered  still 
more  gloomy  by  the  behaviour  of  the  Florentines.  Florence 
had  for  many  years  been  the  ally  of  France  and  at  first 
agreed  to  the  choice  of  Pisa  as  the  meeting  place  for  the 
Council,  but  very  soon  she  began  to  hesitate.  Machiavelli 
was  commissioned  to  persuade  the  schismatical  Cardinals 
to  delay,  and  to  represent  the  true  state  of  things  to  the 
French.  His  instruction  of  the  loth  December  says:  "No 
one  seems  to  wish  to  attend  the  Council ;  it  therefore  only 
serves  to  set  the  Pope  against  us,  and  we  must  consequently 
request  that  it  may  either  not  be  held  in  Pisa,  or  at  least 
may  be  put  off.  Not  a  single  prelate  is  coming  from 
Germany  and  only  a  few  from  France,  and  these  are  linger- 
ing on  the  way.  People  are  surprised  at  the  announcement 
of  a  Council  consisting  of  only  three  Cardinals,  while  the 
others  who  were  given  out  as  supporting  them  hide  them- 
selves and  do  not  appear."  Louis  XII.  was,  however, 
determined  to  have  the  Council  at  Pisa,  and  the  Florentines 
were  forced  to  yield,  though  much  against  the  grain. 
Meanwhile  their  vacillating  conduct  did  not  satisfy  France, 
and  incensed  the  Pope.  He  laid  an  Interdict  on  the  city, 
against  which  the  Florentines  appealed  to  a  Council,  but 
did  not  make  it  clear  whether  to  that  of  Pisa  or  of  Rome.f 
It  was  not  till  the  middle  of  October  that  some  Frenchmen 
began  to  appear  at  Pisa,  as  yet  they  were  not  the  Bishops, 
but  only  the  Bishops'  officials.  They  found  the  popular  feel- 
ing so  much  against  them  that  no  one  would  let  lodgings 
to  them  and  they  had    to   seize  their  quarters  by  force.  | 

*  Lehmann,  29-30. 

t  Cambi,  XXL,  266  ;  ViLLARi,  Machiavelli,  II.,  133-135  ;  Perrens, 
II.,  481  ;  TOMMASINI,  Machiavelli,  I.,  540  seq.;  Frey,  Regesten,  loi  ; 
the  Instructions  MACHIAVELLI  in  the  Opere,  ed.  Passerini,  I.,  132  seq. 

X  MORSOLIN,  L'Abbate  di  Monte  Subasio,  20-21. 


ARRIVAL   OF   THE   CARDINALS   AT   PISA.  389 

Further  difficulties  arose  when  the  Cardinals  proposed  to 
come  to  Pisa  escorted  by  French  troops.  Florence  now- 
announced  that  if  they  came  with  armed  men  they  would 
be  treated  as  enemies.  Upon  this  they  consented  to  be 
satisfied  with  a  small  company  of  archers  commanded  by 
Odet  de  Foix  and  Chatillon.*  It  was  on  the  30th  October 
that  Cardinals  Carvajal,  Briq'onnet,  de  Prie,  and  d'Albret 
arrived  in  Pisa  with  this  small  escort,  and  in  pouring  rain. 
They  were  provided  with  powers  from  Francesco  Borgia, 
Sanseverino,  and,  they  asserted,  from  Philip  of  Luxemburg. 
The  proxy  for  Borgia  lapsed  almost  immediately  through 
his  death.-j- 

In  the  course  of  their  journey  the  schismatical  Cardinals 
had  encountered  so  much  hostility  on  the  part  of  the 
population,  that  they  arrived  much  discouraged  and  with 
little  confidence  in  the  success  of  their  undertaking.^  "  In 
Prato  and  in  Pistoja,"  the  Florentine  chronicler  Cerretani 
says,  "  they  found  the  churches  and  inns  closed,  every  one 
fled  from  them.  In  Pisa  itself  they  could  only  get  lodgings 
at  the  command  of  the  Florentine  Commissioners."  § 

On  the  1st  November  the  Council  ought  to  have  com- 
menced its  sittings  in  the  cathedral,  but  in  accordance  with 
the  Pope's  commands  the  Canons  had  locked  all  the  doors. 

*  ViLLARl,  Machiavelli,  IL,  137.  Inconsequence  of  this  action  on  the 
part  of  the  Florentines,  the  Pope  suspended  the  Interdict  for  fourteen 
days.     See  Landucci,  312  and  315,  on  further  suspensions. 

t  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  483  ;  MoRSOLiN,  loc.  at.,  22. 

%  Desjardins,  II.,  541. 

§  *In  questo  tempo  che  fu  al  fine  d'Ottobre  giunsono  li  cardinali  del 
concilio  in  Pisa  con  300  cavalli  in  loro  compagnia  alii  quali  in  Prato,  in 
Pistoja  fu  serrato  le  chiese  e  negato  loro  il  mangiare  e  ciascuno  gli  fuggiva 
et  in  Pisa  se  non  s'interponeva  il  commandamento  de  commissarii  man- 
dato  dalla  Signoria  non  erano  accommodati  ne  di  vettovaglie  ne  di 
allogiamenti.  Cerretani's  Chronicle  in  Cod.  1 1.,  III.,  76,  f.  376,  of  the 
National  Library,  Florence. 


390  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

They  therefore  betook  themselves  to  the  Church  of  S. 
Michele,  close  to  which  Carvajal  was  lodged.  It  was  a 
small  building,  but  contained  room  and  to  spare  in  it  for 
the  accommodation  of  the  "  General  Council."  The  assembly 
consisted  of  the  four  Cardinals,  the  Archbishops  of  Lyons 
and  Sens,  fourteen  French  Bishops,  five  Abbots,  all  French 
except  Ferreri,  and  a  small  number  of  theologians  and 
jurists.  The  citizens  of  Pisa  held  almost  entirely  aloof; 
according  to  an  eye-witness  there  were  not  more  than  ten 
present.  Ferreri  delivered  an  address  on  the  necessity  that 
a  General  Council  should  be  held  for  the  reform  of  the 
Church,  and  announced  at  its  close  that  the  proceedings 
would  begin  on  the  5th  of  November.  All  who  failed  to 
present  themselves  were  threatened  with  the  censures  of 
the  Church.  Finally  an  individual  who  announced  himself 
as  the  Procurator  of  the  King  and  the  Emperor  came  for- 
ward as  notary  to  execute  the  deed  of  constitution.  The 
whole  city  was  searched  in  vain  for  two  citizens  to  act 
as  witnesses ;  none  would  consent  to  officiate,  and  two 
unknown  persons  had  to  be  taken.* 

Meanwhile  orders  had  been  sent  from  Florence  that  the 
use  of  the  cathedral  was  to  be  granted  to  the  Council, 
but  that  none  of  the  clergy  need  attend  if  they  were  not 
so  inclined.-]-  Thus  the  General  Council  was  opened  in 
the  cathedral  as  announced,  on  the  5th  November,  in  the 
presence  of  the  four  Cardinals  and  about  eighteen  Bishops 
and  Abbots.  Of  the  inhabitants  of  Pisa,  about  fifty 
appeared.     The    ceremonies    were    well    carried    out,   we 

*  In  addition  to  the  important  ambassadorial  Reports  in  MORSOLIN, 
L'Abbatedi  Monte  Subasio,  37  seq.  (in  the  deed,  p.  38,  line  32),  a  comma 
should  be  inserted  after  "  Franzesi,"  and  the  two  points  after  "  cipta " 
should  be  erased  ;  cf.  Sanuto,  XIII.,  330.  See  also  Sandret,  Concile 
de  Pise,  436  seq. 

t  ViLLARl,  Machiavelli,  II.,  137. 


OPENING  OF  THE   COUNCIL.  39I 

are  told  by  an  eye-witness,  but  the  attendance  of  Prelates 
was  so  miserable,  that  many  who  had  hitherto  been 
sanguine  of  its  success,  now  gave  up  all  hope.  Carvajal 
said  the  Mass,  and  then,  as  President  of  the  assembly, 
seated  himself  on  the  semi-Papal  throne  prepared  for  him. 
Odet  de  Foix  was  declared  Gustos.  It  seems  almost 
incredible,  but  nevertheless  it  is  a  fact,  that  this  gathering 
had  the  audacity  to  declare  solemnly  that  it  was  a  lawfully 
convoked  General  Council  and  to  proclaim  all  the  censures 
and  measures  taken  against  it  by  Julius  II.  to  be  null 
and  void.*  In  the  second  sitting  on  the  7th  of  November 
a  resolution  was  passed  which  sheds  a  curious  light  on 
the  amount  of  confidence  which  the  schismatics  entertained 
in  each  other.  It  was  decided  that  the  Council  could  not 
be  dissolved  by  the  withdrawal  of  any  individual  Prelates 
whoever  they  might  be.-|- 

The  hopes  cherished  by  some  that  the  Council  might, 
as  time  went  on,  increase  in  numbers  were  not  fulfilled, 
and  Cardinals  d'Este  and  Sanseverino  gave  no  sign.J 
However  earnestly  the  Pisan  assembly  might  contend  that 
it  was  the  "  salt  of  the  earth,  and  the  light  of  the  world," 
history  had  accustomed  Christendom  to  see  the  Church 
represented  after  a  very  different  fashion.  §  The  indifference 
of  all  from  whom  they  hoped  for  support,  including  the 
Florentines,  their  unprotected  situation  in  Pisa,  and  the 
marked   hostility   of    the   population    had    from    the   first 

*  Report  of  Joh.  Borromeus  in  MORSOLIN,  loc.  cit.,  40  seq. ;  cf.  Sanuto, 
XIII.,  233,  330  seq.,  and  on  the  Florentine  Reports,  Villari,  Machia- 
velli,  II.,  138.  Cf.  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  484  and  480,  note  i,  for 
details  concerning  the  acts  of  the  mock  Council. 

t  Ibid.,  42  seq.;  SanutO,  XIII.,  234,  331  seq.;  LehMANN,  32  ;  HER- 
GENROTHER, VIII.,  484  seq. 

X  JOVIUS,  Vita  Alfonsi ;  the  Duke  of  Ferrara  persuaded  his  brother 
not  to  attend  the  Council. 

§  Havemann,  II.,  376. 


392  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

seriously  alarmed  the  schismatics.  Now,  in  addition  to 
this,  on  the  9th  of  November  a  sanguinary  conflict  broke 
out  between  the  Florentine  troops  combined  with  the 
Pisans  on  one  side,  and  the  French  soldiers  and  the 
servants  of  the  Cardinals  on  the  other.  A  crowd 
assembled  under  the  windows  of  the  palace  inhabited  by 
the  President  of  the  Council,  where  the  schismatics  were 
gathered  together,  shouting  "  kill  them."*  The  terrified 
reformers  held  a  hasty  sitting  on  the  12th  instead  of  the 
14th,  which  had  been  the  day  appointed  for  the  next 
meeting,  and  passed  three  resolutions  : — (i)  The  Synod  was 
hot  to  be  dissolved  until  the  whole  Church  had  been 
reformed  in  faith  and  morals,  in  its  head  and  members, 
all  heresies  and  divisions  purged  away,  and  all  impending 
strife  between  Christian  Princes  appeased.  (2)  The  decrees 
of  the  fifth  sitting  of  the  Council  of  Constance  were  to  be 
confirmed  and  made  more  stringent  (though  they  did  not 
apply  to  the  present  situation,  as  there  was  no  question 
of  the  legitimacy  of  the  Pope,  nor,  strictly  speaking,  any 
schism).  (3)  The  Synod,  without  being  dissolved,  was  to 
be  removed  from  Pisa,  where  a  hostile  spirit  has  been 
displayed  and  it  has  not  the  requisite  security,  to  Milan, 
where  its  fourth  sitting  was  to  be  held  on  the  13th  of 
December.-|- 

*  Mantuan  Despatch  of  the  9th  Nov.,  1 5 1 1,  in  MORSOLIN,  44 ;  ViLLARi, 
Machiavelli,  II.,  138.  Cf.  also  the  account  in  Cambi,  XXL,  276,  and 
*Cerretani,  Cod.  II.,  III.,  76,  f.  377.     National  Library,  Florence. 

t  Hergenrother,  VIIL,  485-486  ;  cf.  Morsolin,  45,  and  Sanuto, 
XI 1 1.,  332.  A  *Letter  without  address,  signature,  or  date,  apparently 
belongs  to  this  time,  it  says  :  S.  Severino  e  S.  Croce  in  Pisa  ogni  giomo 
visitati  per  ambasciatori  da  S^i  Fiorentini  e  dal  magco  Juliano  et  da  loro 
presentati.  Domani  se  expectano  qua  e  cossi  a  quest'  hora  m'ha  afifiirnia- 
to  el  p*^"  mag'=°  Juliano.  Da  voce  populare  hogi  se  dicto  11  summo  ponte- 
fice  esser  sta  com  pericolo  de  veneno  quale  gli  debbe  havere  exhibito  al- 
cuni  cardinali.     (State  Archives  in  M-ilan.)     In  Rome,  at  first,  a  report  was 


TRANSFER   OF   THE   COUNCIL   TO   MILAN.  393. 

In  Milan,  even  under  the  shelter  of  the  French  cannon,. 
the  same  general  dislike  of  the  Council  was  displayed  as 
in  Pisa ;  both  people  and  clergy  kept  away  and  could 
not  be  constrained  to  receive  the  schismatics  with  any 
tokens  of  respect.  When  they  made  their  entry  into  the 
city  on  the  7th  of  December  no  Bishop  or  Prelate  of  any 
importance  appeared  on  the  occasion.*  In  spite  of  the 
threats  of  the  French  Governor,  the  majority  of  the  clergy 
observed  the  Interdict  and  the  populace  openly  jeered  at 
the  "  Anti-Papal  masqueraders."-]-  Nevertheless,  these 
latter,  if  less  confidently,  still  obstinately  persevered  in 
their  enterprise.  The  ambition  of  the  Cardinals  and  the 
fanaticism  of  Ferreri  seemed  proof  against  all  rebuffs. 
Neither  the  scorn  of  the  Milanese,  nor  yet  a  fresh  and 
sterner  admonition  from  the  Pope  on  the  3rd  of  December,^ 
nor  even  the  abstention  of  a  large  portion  of  the  French 
Episcopate,  could  make  them  pause  or  consider.  They 
still  continued  to  call  themselves  a  General  Council,, 
hoping  everything  from  the  victorious  arms  of  France  and 
the  strong  hand  of  Louis  XII.  A  letter  from  Cardinal 
de  Prie,  of  12th  January,  15 12,  to  the  King  asking  him 
to  confiscate  the  revenues  of  all  the  "  papistical "  Bishops,, 
is  very  significant  of  this  attitude. |     At  the  same  time  the 

circulated  that  the  Conciliabulum  was  to  adjourn  to  Vercelli.  Julius  II.. 
endeavoured  to  prevent  this  by  *Briefs  addressed  to  the  Chapter  at  Ver- 
celli and  Duke  Charles  of  Savoy,  on  the  27th  Nov.,  151 1.  On  the  17th 
Dec,  1 51 1,  he  wrote  to  Francesco  Gonzaga,  that  if  the  schismatical 
Cardinals  entered  his  territory,  he  was  to  have  them  arrested.  (See  Ap- 
pendix, N.  %'].')  I  found  all  these  *Briefs  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

*  Desjardins,  II.,  545-546.  Cf.  Sanuto,  XIII.,  352  ;  Perrens,. 
II.,  487  seq. 

t  Prato,  285-287. 

X  Mansi,  v.,  356-362. 

§  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1512,  n.  2.  On  the  sittings  of  the  pseudo-synod, 
cf.  Lehmann,  33,  and  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  486.     The  phrase  with 


394  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

French  members  of  the  Council  also  addressed  Louis, 
claiming  the  reward  of  their  services  in  cash.  He  does  not 
seem  to  have  had  much  confidence  in  the  honesty  of  the 
reformers,  for  he  refused  to  pay  without  a  voucher  attesting 
that  they  had  been  present  both  at  Pisa  and  Milan.* 

The  piteous  failure  of  the  pseudo-Council,  which  from 
the  first  seemed  at  the  point  of  death  from  sheer  anaemia,-}- 
was  an  immense  gain  for  the  spiritual  authority  of  Julius 
II.  It  was  universally  recognised  that  the  motives 
of  the  schismatical  Cardinals  were  purely  personal  and 
ambitious,!  ^"^  ^^^^  ^^  combination  with  the  French 
Court  Bishops  it  was  the  interests  of  Louis  XII.  and  not 
those  of  the  Universal  Church  that  they  were  serving.  § 
"  The  Pope  could  afford  to  wait  without  any  great  anxiety  " 
for  the  inevitable  collapse  of  this  little  band  of  "  ambitious 
hypocrites,  in  whom  no  one  believed  and  whom  no  one 
respected,  thus  masquerading  before  the  world  while  in 
daily  fear  for  their  lives." i|  "But  he  shewed  his  pene- 
tration and  prudence  in  not  over-prizing  the  success  which 
their  wretched  failure  had  prepared  for  him.  This  triumph 
was  only  a  negative  one ;  to  turn  it  into  a  real  victory, 
it  was  necessary  to  oppose  to  this  effete  assembly  a 
Council  at  the  Lateran  which  should  be  universally 
recognised  as  truly  oecumenical.  To  this  achievement 
the  Pope  devoted  himself  with  all  his  might,  and  in  the 

which  the  Milanese  chronicler,  Prato,  287,  passed  over  the  resolutions 
adopted  at  the  fourth  sitting  is  very  significant ;  Li  quali  io  per  aver  poco 
inchiostro  non  mi  euro  di  raccontare. 

*  Sandret,  Concile  de  Pise,  446,  calls  attention  to  this  voucher,  to  be 
found  in  the  National  Library,  Paris,  MS.  Lat.  1559,  f.  16. 

t  Maurenbrecher,  Kath.  Ref.,  104. 

f  Guicciardini  says  that  the  Cardinals  were  quite  as  much  in  need  of 
reform  themselves  as  the  people  they  proposed  to  set  to  rights. 

§  Brosch,  Julius  IL,  236. 

II  Gregorovius,  VI IL,  84,  ed.  3. 


PAPAL   MEASURES   AGAINST   FRANCE.  395 

wisest  and  most  practical  manner."  To  meet  the  pressing 
need  of  the  moment  it  had  to  give  way  to  the  political 
and  military  measures  which  claimed  immediate  attention. 
No  effort  was  spared  to  equip  a  sufficient  army.  Julius  II. 
strained  his  financial  resources  to  their  utmost  limit 
to  accomplish  this,  but  his  efforts  to  be  ready  in  time  were 
frustrated  by  the  "tardiness  of  the  Spaniards,  which  made 
it  impossible  for  him  to  strike  at  the  right  moment."*  As 
Venice,  also,  was  too  late,  and  allowed  the  opportunity 
to  pass,  the  French  succeeded  in  repelling  the  attack 
of  the  Swiss  on  Milan.  The  hardy  mountaineers,  however, 
whom  Louis  had  treated  with  the  utmost  contempt, 
announced  their  intention  of  returning  in  the  Spring. 
They  had  got  the  French  into  Italy,  they  said,  and  they 
would  drive  them  out  of  it.f  On  the  7th  January,  1512, 
Julius  nominated  Cardinal  Schinner  as  Cardinal-Legate  for 
Lombardy  and  Germany  with  extraordinary  powers.  In 
an  open  Consistory  he  gave  him  his  Legate's-cross  with 
the  words,  saying,  "  In  this  sign  of  the  Holy  Cross  mayest 
thou  begin,  prosper,  and  vanquish."| 

In  the  same  month  the  Pope  decided  on  taking  further 
measures  against  the  rebellious  Cardinals  —  "  the  sect  of 
Carvajal,"  as  they  were  called.  Almost  anything  might 
be  apprehended  from  the  sort  of  blind  fury  which  possessed 
these  Cardinals,  and  it  was  seriously  feared  in  Rome  that 
they  might  set  up  an  anti-Pope.  On  the  30th  of  January  a 
Consistory  was  held,  at  which  Cardinal  Bakocs  was  not 
present,  though  he  had  lately  arrived  in  Rome.  At  this 
meeting  the  deprivation  of  Cardinal  Sanseverino,  who 
still  persisted  in  his  revolt,  and  had  even  sent  agents  to 
Rome  to  endeavour  to  stir  up  an  insurrection  there,  was 

*  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  237-240. 

t  Ranke,  Rom.  und  Germ.  Volker,  271. 

X  Paris  de  Grassis  in  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1512,  n.  4. 


396  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

pronounced.  In  February  several  of  his  benefices  were 
given  to  others,  Cardinal  Schinner  received  the  Bishopric 
of  Novara.  On  the  13th  of  February,  Zaccaria,  Ferreri, 
and  Philip  Decius  were  also  condemned  as  schismatics.* 
At  the  end  of  January  the  League  at  last  commenced 

*  Sanuto,  XI 1 1.,  445,  446,  447,  470,  471,  490.  Cf.  *Acta  Consist, 
f.  35  (Consistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican),  and  the  *Chronicle  in  Varia 
PoHt.,  50,  f.  61.  (Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican.)  On  Bakocs' journey 
and  his  pompous  entry  into  Rome,  cf.  Frakn6i,  Erdodi  Bakocz  Tamds, 
III  seq.^  116  seq.;  see  also  Atti  dei  Lincei  (1892),  4  Serie,  Scienza 
mor.,  X.,  15.  Card.  Schinner  had  been  forced  in  July,  1511,  to  give 
way  to  his  enemy,  the  "bold  demagogue"  (Dierauer,  II.,  384),  J  org 
auf  derFlue(Georg  Supersaxo).  He  fled  disguised  as  a  leper  (FuCHS,  II., 
247)  to  Venice  and  then  to  Rome,  where  in  Aug.  151 1,  he  received  his 
Cardinal's-hat  and  impeached  Supersaxo  as  a  traitor.  A  narrative  of  the 
disputes  between  Schinner  and  Supersaxo  is  to  be  found  in  the  house  of 
the  late  Pfarrer  Joller  (to  whose  kindness  I  owe  my  acquaintance  with 
this  document)  at  GHs  near  Brieg  in  Switzerland,  It  is  the  work  of  a 
bitter  partisan,  representing  Supersaxo  as  an  innocent  and  persecuted 
man,  and  painting  the  Cardinal  in  the  blackest  tints  as  a  tyrant  and  a 
man  to  whom  nothing  is  sacred.  It  is  the  source  from  which  Boccard, 
temperately,  and  Furrer,  intemperately  and  uncritically,  have  taken  the 
material  for  their  accounts  of  the  conflict  between  Supersaxo  and  Schinner. 
But  is  it  a  trustworthy  source  ?  far  from  it !  It  is  drawn  up  in  a  tone  of 
venomous  hatred,  and  entirely  based  on  the  accusations  of  Supersaxo's 
party.  It  denies  many  undoubted  facts,  contradicts  contemporaneous 
authorities,  and  a  considerable  portion  of  it  was  written  after  Supersaxo's 
death.  This  part  cannot  have  been  composed  till  after  1574,  as  Josias 
Simmler's  Comment,  is  mentioned  in  it.  Schinner  was  a  man  of  strong 
temper  {cf.  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  258),  and  may  have  been  faulty  in  his 
manner  of  dealing  with  his  opponents,  but  in  substance  he  was  in  the 
right,  for  they  were  rebels  against  his  rightful  authority,  both  temporal 
and  spiritual.  A  biography  of  Schinner  is  much  to  be  desired.  Joller 
(see  Biicherverzeichniss)  and  G.  Blosch  in  a  lecture  delivered  at  Berne 
in  1 890,  but  unfortunately  not  published,  have  collected  valuable  materials 
for  such  a  work.  Schinner's  name  appears  in  the  list  of  the  benefactors 
of  the  Collegiate  Church  at  Domodossola,  the  building  of  which  was 
begun  in  15 12.     His  coat  of  arms  is  still  to  be  seen  there. 


SIEGE   OF    BOLOGNA   RAISED.  397 

operations,  attacking  simultaneously  in  different  places. 
On  the  25th  of  January  the  Venetians  appeared  before 
Brescia,  and  on  the  26th  the  combined  Spanish  and 
Papal  army,  commanded  by  Raymond  of  Cardona, 
Viceroy  of  Naples,  invested  Bologna.  On  the  2nd  of 
February  Brescia  fell,  and  it  seemed  as  if  Milan  would  be 
lost  to  France.*  At  this  critical  moment  Louis's  nephew 
Gaston  de  Foix  appeared  on  the  scene  as  the  saviour  of 
the  French.  Young  as  he  was  in  years  he  was  already 
an  experienced  general.  With  that  marvellous  prompti- 
tude which  won  for  him  the  sobriquet  of  "  foudre  dc 
ritalie,"  he  swooped  down,  not  upon  Modena  where 
the  enemy  was  waiting  for  him,  but  seawards  on  Finale. 
By  forced  marches  he  led  his  troops  through  deep  snow 
and  over  frozen  marshes  and  streams  to  Bologna,  in  a 
space  of  time  hitherto  unparalleled  for  shortness.  In  the 
night  of  4th-5th  February,  under  cover  of  a  snowstorm,  he 
slipped  into  the  city  unobserved  by  the  enemy.  On 
hearing  that  he  and  his  troops  were  actually  within  the 
walls  the  besiegers  broke  up  their  camp.  Gaston  im- 
mediately took  advantage  of  this  to  march  rapidly  on 
Brescia,  which,  after  a  sanguinary  conflict  in  the  streets, 
was  taken  on  the   i8th  of  February.-j- 

Bembo  says  that  the  Pope  flew  into  a  violent  rage 
when  he  heard  of  the  withdrawal  of  the  troops  from 
before  Bologna,  but  was  calmed  by  the  news  of  the 
taking  of  Brescia.  Though  the  night  was  cold  and 
stormy,  he  immediately  sent  for  the  Venetian  Am- 
bassador and  kept  him  in  conversation  for  two  hours, 
shedding  tears  of  joy.j     How  great    therefore  must  have 

*  Havemann,  II.,  384  seq.  ;  Ranke,  Rom.  und  Germ.  Volker,  272. 
t  Ibid.^  II.,  388-396.     Cf.  Krieger,  49  ;  FUMI,  Carteggio,  160-161  ; 
Landucci,  313. 
:;:  Bembus,  516-517  ;  Lettres  de  Louis  XII.,  III.,  1S7  ;  Havemann, 


398  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

been  his  distress  when  he  heard  of  its  loss  only  a  few 
days  later.*  To  add  to  his  vexation  at  the  torpor  of  the 
Spaniards,  fresh  troubles  now  sprung  up  in  Rome 
itself.f  The  intrigues  of  Cardinal  Sanseverino  amongst 
the  Roman  Barons  found  the  soil  only  too  well  pre- 
pared, and  set  up  a  ferment  which  seemed  likely  to 
become  very  dangerous.  Julius  II.  was  most  afraid  of 
the  Orsini  party  who  were  devoted  to  France.  He 
strengthened  the  city  guard  at  the  gates,  and  himself 
withdrew  for  a  time  to  the  Castle  of  St.  Angelo.  Many 
.arrests  were  made,  and  it  was  said  that  a  plot  had  been 
discovered  for  getting  possession  of  the  Pope's  person.^ 
But  there  was  worse  to  come. 

Louis  XII.  saw  that  everything  depended  on  striking 
such  a  blow  as  would  paralyse  the  Papal  and  Venetian 
army  before  the  Swiss  had  time  to  invade  Milan,  and 
King  Ferdinand  to  attack  Navarre,  and  before  Henry 
VIII.  could  land  in  Normandy,  or  the  Emperor  distinctly 
declare  against  him.  A  victory  should  be  immediately 
followed    up    by    the    dethronement    of    the    Pope,    the 

II.,  389.  Bembus  as  usual  gives  no  date  for  the  arrival  in  Rome  of  the 
good  tidings  from  Brescia.  From  Sanuto,  XIII.,  490-491,  we  gather 
that  it  was  on  the  loth  Feb.  ;  he  also  gives  details  of  the  rejoicings  in 
Rome.  On  the  14th  and  15th  Feb.  JuHus  II.  addressed  three  *Briefs  to 
the  Marquess  Francesco  Gonzaga  of  Mantua  pro  transitu  gentium  armi- 
gerorum  militum  favore  ecclesiae  pro  tuenda  civitate  Bononiae  contra 
Gallos.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

*  On  the  passionate  grief  of  Julius  II.,  see  Lettres  de  Louis  XII.,  III., 
188 ;  Sanuto,  XIV.,  7-8,  11  ;  and  Desjardins,  II.,  567.  On  the  25th 
Feb.,  1512,  the  very  day  on  which  the  disastrous  tidings  reached  Rome, 
Julius  II.  had  addressed  a  *Brief  to  universis  civibus  ac  populo  dilect. 
civit.  nostrae  Bononiae,  warning  them  against  coming  to  terms  with  the 
enemy  and  the  Bentivogii,  and  commanding  them  to  return  to  their 
allegiance  to  the  Holy  See.     State  Archives,  Bologna,  Q.,  Lib.  5. 

t  Cf.  Desjardins,  II.,  568,  571. 

X  Sanuto,  XIII., 490;  XIV.,  7-8  ;  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  241  seq.,  357. 


BATTLE   OF   RAVENNA.  399 

occupation  of  the  Papal  States  by  Cardinal  Sanseverino, 
and  the  expulsion  of  the  Spaniards  from  Naples.*  At 
the  end  of  March,  Gaston  de  Foix  left  Brescia  and  began 
to  march  southward  on  the  Romagna.j-  Raymond  of 
Cardona  prudently  retired  before  his  too  able  adversary, 
but  the  latter  succeeded  in  forcing  a  battle  by  turning 
aside  to  besiege  Ravenna.  At  any  cost  this  city,  which 
contained  the  magazines  for  supplying  the  army,  had  to 
be  defended.  Thus,  on  Easter  Sunday,  the  nth  of  April, 
15 12,  the  two  hosts  met  on  the  banks  of  the  Ronco  about 
two  miles  from  Ravenna.  "  This  battle  was  the  most 
sanguinary  that  had  been  fought  on  Italian  soil  since 
the   days   of  the    Hutis    and   Goths."  |     Gaston's  infantry 

*  Desjardins,  II.,  576;  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  85,  ed.  3. 

t  On  his  campaign  of  15 12  see  Ad  AMI  and  LuciANl'S  papers  in 
the  Riv.  Milit.  Ital.,  1890-91. 

f  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  244  ;  cf.  2,S7-  On  the  battle  of  Ravenna,  cf.  in 
the  first  place  the  numerous  contemporary  reports  in  Sanuto,  XIV., 
126  seq.,  132,  145,  148,  151,  154  seq.,  lyo  seq.,  176 seq. ;  J.  Guicciardini's 
letter  printed  in  the  Arch.  St.  Ital.,  XV.,  308  seq.  ;  Fr.  GuiCClARDiNi, 
X.,  c.  4;  Fr.  Pandolfini's  Report  in  Desjardins,  II.,  581  seq.; 
COCCINIUS,  loc.  cit.  (see  Krieger,  52  seq.)  ;  Memoires  de  Fleurange 
(Robert  de  la  Marck),  p.  xxix. ;  Petrus  Martyr,  XXV.,  c.  483- 
484  ;  JOVIUS,  Vita  Alfonsi  Ferrar.,  Leonis  X.,  Davali  Pescarae  ;  Lettres 
de  Louis  XII.,  III.,  227  seq.  ;  SCHEURL,  Briefbuch,  86  seq.  ;  LuiGl  DA 
Porto,  296  seq.;  the  Portuguese  Report  of  the  23rd  April,  15 12,  in 
Corp.  dipl.  Portug.,  I.,  164  seq. ;  Guido  Postumo  Silvestri's  Report, 
published  by  Renier  on  the  special  occasion :  Nozze  Cian-Sappa- 
Flandinet  (Bergamo,  1894),  244  seq.  ;  Colec.  d.  documentos  inedit., 
LXXIX.,  231-299  (Relacion  de  los  sucesos  de  las  armas  de  Espafia  en 
Italia  en  los  anos  de  1 5 1 1  a  1 5 1 2  con  la  jornade  de  R^vena) ;  finally, 
Giov.  da  Fino's  Report  from  Cod.  Vat.  Urb.  490,  in  Tommasini,  Machi- 
aveUi,  I.,  706-708.  I  also  saw  this  Report  in  the  Cod.  Urb.  15 12,  f. 
58-60,  of  the  Vatican  Library.  Here,  and  in  GuicciARDlNi  and 
Landucci,  315,  the  number  of  the  slain  is  stated  as  in  the  text ;  in  some 
other  writers  it  is  still  higher.  But  the  lowest  figure  gives  a  much  larger 
comparative  loss  than  is  found  even  in  modern  battles.     Cardinal  Cesi 


400  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

was  composed  of  German  and  Italian  as  well  as 
French  soldiers ;  his  army  numbered  about  25,000,  that 
•of  the  League  20,000. 

The  fight  was  begun  by  the  artillery,  the  Duke  of 
Ferrara's  guns  especially  doing  splendid  service.  Jacopo 
Guicciardini,  writing  to  his  brother  Francesco,  then  Floren- 
tine Envoy  in  Spain,  says :  "  It  was  horrible  to  see  how 
€very  shot  made  a  lane  through  the  serried  ranks  of  the 
men  at  arms,  sending  helmets  and  heads  and  scattered 
limbs  flying  through  the  air.  When  the  Spaniards  found 
themselves  thus  being  blown  to  pieces  without  breaking  a 
lance  they  dashed  forward,  and  then  the  hand  to  hand  fight 
began.  It  was  a  desperate  one,  and  lasted  four  hours. 
When  the  first  onset  of  the  men  at  arms  had  been  repulsed 
and  those  behind  them  had  suffered  severely,  the  rest  turned 
and  fled  with  the  light  cavalry.  The  Spanish  foot  soldiers 
held  their  ground  alone  and  made  a  stubborn  resistance, 
but  they  were  for  the  most  part  ridden  down  by  the  heavy 
cavalry.  On  the  French  side  the  men  of  Gascony  and 
Picardy  fought  badly,  the  Germans  very  well."* 

The  battle  lasted  from  8  a.m.  till  4  p.m.  and  was  finally 
won  by  the  Ferrarese  artillery  and  the  steady  endurance  of 
the  German  troops.  Of  the  10,000  corpses  left  on  the  field, 
one-third  belonged  to  the  French  army,  and  the  other  two- 
thirds  to  their  enemies.  The  Papal  Legate,  Giovanni  de' 
Medici,  and  two  generals,  Fabrizio  Colonna  and  the 
Marquess  of  Pescara,  were  taken  prisoners,  and  the  whole 
army  train  of  the  League  with  their  artillery  and  banners 
was  captured.     But  the  shouts  of  triumph  from  the  French 

ill  1557  erected  the  well-known  Colonna  dei  Francesi  on  the  bank  of 
the  Ronco  in  memory  of  this  fight.     On  the  picture  of  it  in  the  Palace 
of  the  Signoria  at  Florence,  see  Vasari,  Opere  (Florence,  1832  seq.), 
lyjoseq. 
*  Arch.  St.  Ital.,  XV.,  308  seg. 


DEATH   OF   GASTON   DE  FOIX.  40I 

ranks  were  quickly  silenced  when  it  became  known  that 
Gaston  de  Foix  had  fallen  on  the  battlefield.  The  corpse 
of  the  young  hero  was  brought  into  Ravenna  on  the 
following  day ;  eighteen  captured  banners  were  borne  before 
it*  In  a  few  more  days  the  whole  of  the  Romagna  was 
in  the  hands  of  the  French.  The  warlike  Cardinal 
Sanseverino  entered  Flaminia  bent  on  the  conquest  of 
Rome  and  the  deposition  of  Julius  Il.-f  The  coalition 
against  France,  from  which  such  great  things  had  been  ex- 
pected, had  utterly  broken  down.  The  greatest  excitement 
prevailed  throughout  the  whole  of  Italy.  It  was  said  that 
various  monstrous  births  had  taken  place  in  Ravenna,  which 
were  supposed  to  denote  that  the  French  had  been  sent 
into  Italy  by  God  as  a  punishment  for  the  sins  of  the 
Italians-! 

On  the  14th  of  April  the  news  of  the  disaster  at  Ravenna 
reached  Julius  II.;  when  it  became  known  in  Rome  the 
whole  city  was  terror-stricken.  Every  one  knew  that  Gaston 
had  threatened  to  conquer  Rome  and  have  a  new  Pope 
elected,   and    it   seemed   as   if  the  enemy   might    at  any 

*  Ravenna  was  cruelly  plundered  ;  see  RiCCi,  Ravenna  dopo  il  sacco 
del  1 512  (Bolognaj  1883).  In  1515  Francis  I.  ordered  a  splendid  monu- 
mental tomb  to  be  erected  in  honour  of  Gaston  de  Foix,  but  it  was 
never  completed,  and  portions  of  it  are  now  scattered  over  the  world  in 
various  places.  See  MuNTZ,  Hist,  de  I'Art,  II.,  550  seq.  The  famous, 
delicately  finished  statue  of  Gaston  by  Agostino  Buste  is  in  the  Museo 
Archeol.  Milan.  Cf.  Bossi,  Monumento  di  Gastone  di  Foix  (Milano, 
1852).  The  young  hero  is  represented  in  a  peaceful  sleep,  a  touch  of 
triumph  in  the  expression  of  the  face  recalling  his  victory,  as  Vasari 
says. 

t  Cf.  Morone's  Letter  of  the  21st  June,  15 12,  in  the  Lett,  di  G. 
Morone,  ed.  PromiS-Muller,  Miscell.  di  storia  Ital,  T.  II.  Torino, 
1863. 

X  Landucci,  314,  315 ;  Bernaldez,  II.,  372  seq.\  Lange,  Papst- 
esel,  24. 

VOL.  VI.  2  D 


402  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

moment  appear  at  the  gates,  for  all  had  heard  of  the  light- 
ning-like swiftness  of  his  movements.  The  Florentine 
chronicler  Cerretani  states  that  it  was  feared  that  Rome 
would  be  sacked  and  the  Prelates  murdered.*  For  a 
moment,  even  the  Pope's  courage  gave  way  and  he  talked 
of  flight,  which  the  Spanish  Envoy  strongly  advised.f  But 
while  the  terror  of  the  Cardinals  and  Romans  continued 
and  could  not  be  tranquillised,  Julius  II,  recovered  himself 
immediately  and  shewed  his  usual  resolution  and  the  re- 
sourcefulness which  he  always  displayed  under  misfortune. 
On  the  15th  of  April  he  told  the  Venetian  and  Spanish 
Ambassadors  that  he  would  spend  100,000  ducats  and  pledge 
his  crown  to  drive  the  French  out  of  Italy.  Orders  were  at 
once  issued  for  the  equipment  of  fresh  armaments.^  The 
news  brought  to  Rome  on  the  15th  April  by  the  Knight 
of  S,  John,  Giulio  de'  Medici,  who  had  been  sent  thither 
with  a  French  safe-conduct  by  the  captive  Cardinal  Legate, 
had  no  doubt  much  to  do  with  the  "  marvellous  elasticity  " 
displayed  by  Julius  II.  after  such  a  crushing  blow.§  Giulio 
reported  that  the  French  loss  had  been  enormous  and  that 
the  army  was  completely  demoralised  by  the  death  of  its 
ablest  leader.  The  new  commander.  La  Palice,  was  not  in 
the  King's  confidence  and  was  at  daggers  drawn  with  the 

*  *Cerretani  in  Cod.  II.,  III.,  76,  f.  381,  of  the  National  Library, 
Florence. 

t  So  says  the  Venetian  Envoy,  an  abstract  of  whose  Despatch  is  pre- 
served in  Sanuto,  XIV.,  158-159.  The  speeches  of  the  Spanish  and 
Venetian  Envoys  in  Guicciardini,  X.,  c.  5,  which  are  repeated  by 
most  modem  writers,  can  hardly  be  authentic.  Cf.  also  Lettres  de  Louis 
XII.,  III.,  230,  240,  244. 

X  Sanuto,  XIV,  124,  Cf.  Senarega,  613  ;  Jovius,  Vita  Leonis  X., 
II.,'  47  ;  Aegidius  of  Viterbo,  ed.  Hofler,  386-387  ;  and  the  Portu- 
guese Envoy's  Report  of  i6th  April,  15 12,  in  Corp.  dipl.  Portug.,  I., 
161-163,  which  has  hitherto  escaped  notice. 

§  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  92-93,  ed.  3. 


IMPROVEMENT   OF   THE   POPE'S   POSITION.  403 

liaughty  Cardinal  Sanseverino.  It  would  be  quite  out  of 
the  question  for  the  French  to  march  immediately  upon 
Rome  and  there  was  a  rumour  that  the  Swiss  were  on  their 
way  to  Italy.  It  was  becoming  more  and  more  evident 
that  the  battle  of  Ravenna  was  a  Pyrrhic  victory  for  France. 
It  was  significant  of  the  change  in  the  situation  that  the 
Duke  of  Ferrara  had  retired  into  his  own  territory  and  the 
Duke  of  Urbino  had  offered  to  send  troops  to  the  Pope.* 
In  compliance  with  the  wishes  of  the  Cardinals,  who  still 
continued  to  urge  the  Pope  to  make  peace,  he  commenced 
negotiations  with  the  French ;  but  it  is  hardly  conceivable 
that  a  statesman  like  Julius  II.  could  be  seriously  anxious 
to  come  to  terms  just  then  when  he  would  have  had  to 
purchase  peace  at  the  highest  price.f  He  himself  admitted 
that  his  only  object  in  these  negotiations  was  "to  quiet 
down  the  French."|  If  Spain  and  England  remained 
faithful  he  had  still  resources  enough  to  prosecute  the  war, 
and  every  motive  for  desiring  to  do  so,  against  an  enemy 
who  had  wounded  him  both  on  the  temporal  and  spiritual 
side  where  he  was  most  susceptible,  and  mocked  him  on 
the  stage  and  in  satirical  poems.§ 

At  the  same  time  the  Pope's  dii^culties  at  this  particular 
time  were  increased  by  the  unsatisfactory  state  of  his  im- 
mediate surroundings;  but  Julius  II.  faced  this  additional 
peril  with  unflinching  courage,  and  in  a  wonderfully  short 


*  GuiCCiARDlNl,  X.,  chap.  5.  The  rapid  revulsion  of  feehng  in 
Rome  is  shewn  in  the  veiy  cautious  letter  of  the  Envoy  from  Orvieto  ot 
the  i8th  April,  1512,  in  FUMI,  161-162.  There  is  a  markedly  resolute 
ring  in  the  **Brief  to  Cardinal  Gonzaga  of  the  29th  April,  15 12. 
Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

t  Such  is  the  opinion  expressed  in  almost  identical  terms  both  in 
Reumont,  III.,  2,  and  Rohrbacher-Knopfler,  299. 

t  Sanuto,  XIV.,  185  ;  ^/  189. 

§  Cf.  supra,  P-  358  seq. 


404  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

space  of  time  succeeded  in  winning  one-half  of  the  Roman 
Barons  with  the  Colonna,  and  overawing  the  others,  as  was 
the  case  with  the  Orsini.* 

*  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  247.  The  bitter  hostility  of  many  in  Rome 
to  the  authority  of  the  Church  may  be  gathered  from  *Cerretani,  loc. 
cit.     National  Library?,  Florence. 


CHAPTER  VII. 

Arrogance  and  Downfall  of  the  Schismatics. — Success  ok 
THE  Fifth  CEcumenical  Council  at  the  Lateran. — The 
Swiss  as  the  Saviours  of  the  Holy  See.  —  Annihilation 
of  the  Power  of  France  in  Italy. 

The  issue  of  the  battle  at  Ravenna  gave  fresh  courage  to 
the  schismatics  at  Milan.  While  the  fortunes  of  war  seemed 
still  hanging  in  the  balance  they  had  been  chary  of 
carrying  their  proceedings  against  the  Pope  too  far.  Now, 
on  the  2 1st  April,  15 12,  it  was  resolved  that  he  should  be 
suspended  from  all  spiritual  or  temporal  administration  and 
threatened  with  further  punishments.  His  powers  were 
held  to  have  lapsed  to  the  "  Holy  Synod."  "  But  even  the 
magic  halo  of  victory  which  now  encircled  the  French  arms 
had  not  power  enough  to  infuse  life  into  the  still-born 
offspring  of  the  schismatics."*  The  aversion  and  scorn  of 
the  Milanese  was  not  lessened,  and  even  Louis  XII.  admitted 
to  the  Spanish  Envoy  that  the  Council  was  a  mere  farce,  a 
bogey  set  up  to  intimidate  the  Pope.f  The  schismatics  had 
to  endure  the  humiliation  of  seeing  the  Milanese  in  troops 
throwing  themselves  on  their  knees  before  the  captive 
Cardinal  Medici,  and  imploring  him  to  absolve  them  from 
the  censures  they  had  incurred  by  their  participation  in  the 
war  against  the  Pope.j 

*  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  249  ;  Lehmann,  33  ;  Hergenrother,  VIII.j 
486  seq. 

t  Garnier,  Hist,  de  France,  XXII.,  358.     Paris,  1788. 
X  Jovius,  Vita  Leonis  X.,  lib.  2  ;  ROSCOE,  I.,  510. 


406  HISTORY   OF  THE   POPES. 

Meanwhile  in  Rome  Julius  IL  pursued  his  task  with 
unwearied  energy  and  undaunted  courage.  The  prepara- 
tions for  the  CEcumenical  Council  *  were  never  interrupted 
even  for  a  moment  by  all  the  alarm  and  anxiety  caused 
by  the  disaster  at  Ravenna.  The  war  had  obliged  him 
to  put  off  its  opening  to  the  3rd  May,-]-  and  although  the 
situation  was  still  full  of  difficulties,  it  took  place  at  the 
appointed  time. 

The  Lateran  Council  forms  a  landmark  in  the  history 
of  the  world.  More  than  eighty  years  had  elapsed  since 
the  opening  of  that  of  Basle,  which,  instead  of  effecting  the 
hoped-for  reforms  in  the  Church,  had  proved  a  source  of 
revolutionary  movements  and  endless  confusion  through- 
out all  Christendom.  Now  another  lawful  Council  was 
assembling  in  Rome,  in  the  first  place  to  defend  the 
liberties  of  the  Church  against  the  revolutionary  pretensions 
of  France,  and  after  that  to  deal  with  the  great  questions  of 
the  century,  the  reform  of  the  Church  and  the  war  against 
the  Turks. 

A  triduum  of  impetratory  processions  was  held  on  the 
preceding  days,  and  on  the  evening  of  the  2nd  May  the 
Pope  went  in  solemn  state,  surrounded  by  the  Swiss  guards 
and  with  a  strong  military  escort,  to  the  Lateran  Palace, 
where  he  spent  the  night.  As  disturbances  from  the  French 
party  were  apprehended,  the  whole  of  the  neighbourhood 
was  occupied  by  a  detachment  of  troops.  On  the  follovv-ing 
day,  the  Feast  of  the  Invention  of  the  Holy  Cross,  the 
Council  was  formally  opened  in  that  venerable  Basilica 
which  bears  the  honourable  title  of  "  Mother  and  Queen  of 
all  Churches."  Besides  the  Pope,  16  Cardinals  (two  had 
been  prevented  from  attending  by  sickness)  were  present, 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Dollinger,  416  seg.    Cf.  Desjardins,  II.,. 
574  seq. 
t  Rayn ALDUS,  ad  an.  1512,  n.  28-30. 


OPENING   OF   THE   LATERAN   COUNCIL.  407 

100  Prelates  (mostly  Italian),  of  whom  yo  were  Bishops,  1 2 
Patriarchs,  and  3  Generals  of  religious  Orders;  in  addi- 
tion to  these  were  the  representatives  of  Spain,  Venice, 
and  Florence,  and  of  the  Roman  Senators  and  Conservators, 
and  finally  a  number  of  the  Roman  nobles.  The  office  of 
guard  of  honour  to  the  Council  was  undertaken  by  the 
Knights  of  Rhodes.  They  formed  an  imposing  body  in  their 
splendid  uniform,  embroidered  with  gold  and  silk  and  with 
the  white  cross  on  their  breasts.  An  immense  crowd  filled 
the  church.*  The  Mass  of  the  Holy  Ghost  was  said  by 
Cardinal  Riario ;  after  which  an  address  in  classical  Latin 
was  delivered  by  the  General  of  the  Augustinians,  Aegidius 
of  Viterbo,  which  was  universally  admired.  He  began  with 
a  frank  exposition  of  the  great  evils  prevailing  in  the  Church, 
and  the  benefits  to  be  derived  from  General  Councils.  The 
preacher  explained  the  overthrow  of  the  troops  of  the 
League  at  Ravenna  as  a  Divine  providence,  intended,  by 
allowing  the  Church  to  be  defeated  when  she  trusted  in 
alien  arms,  to  throw  her  back  on  her  own  weapons,  piety  and 
prayer,  the  armour  of  faith  and  the  sword  of  light.  With 
these  she  had  conquered  Africa,  Europe,  and  Asia ;  since 
she  had  taken  up  with  strange  adornments  and  defences 
she  had  lost  much.  It  was  the  voice  of  God  which  had 
summoned  the  Pope  to  hold  the  Council,  to  renovate  the 
Church,  to  give  peace  to  the  nations,  to  avert  further  blows 
and  wounds  in  the  future.  "  Thou,"  said  the  Lord  to  Peter, 
"  being  once  converted  confirm  thy  brethren  "  (St.  Luke,xxii., 
32).  "  Hear  ye  this,  most  illustrious  Princes  of  the  Apostles, 
protectors  and  defenders  of  the  city  of  Rome.  Hearken  to 
the  sighs  and  moanings  of  the  Church  which  You  founded 
with  your  blood,  which  now  lies  prostrate,  overwhelmed 
*  Sanuto,  XIV.,  203  seq.  ;  PARIS  DE  GrassiS,  ed.  DoUinger,  417. 
See  also  Cerretani's  *Report  in  Cod.  II.,  III.,  76,  of  the  National 
Library,  Florence. 


408  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

beneath  a  flood  of  calamities.  Have  you  not  seen  how  in 
this  very  year  the  earth  has  drunk  more  blood  than  rain  ? 
Bring  us  help  and  lift  her  up  out  of  the  waves  under 
which  she  is  submerged.  Hear  the  supplications  of  all  the 
peoples  of  Christendom,  prostrate  at  your  feet.  The  Pope 
unites  with  the  Fathers,  the  Senate  and  the  whole  world 
to  implore  your  assistance  for  himself,  for  the  Church,  the 
city  of  Rome,  these  temples,  these  altars  which  enshrine 
your  sacred  relics,  this  Council  which  is  taking  up  arms 
with  the  support  of  the  Holy  Ghost  for  the  salvation  of 
Christendom.  We  beg  of  you  to  obtain  the  reconciliation 
of  all  Christian  Princes  with  each  other,  so  that  all  may  turn 
their  swords  against  Mahomet  the  enemy  of  Christ,  and 
that  the  charity  of  the  Church,  instead  of  being  extinguished 
by  all  these  waves  and  storms,  may,  through  the  merits  of 
the  Holy  Cross  and  the  inspiration  of  the  Holy  Ghost, 
which  are  commemorated  together  in  the  festival  of  to- 
day, be  cleansed  from  all  stains  and  glow  again  in  all  its 
pristine  purity  and  splendour."* 

When  Aegidius  had  concluded,  the  Pope,  having  taken 
his  place  with  the  Cardinals  in  the  Choir  of  the  Basilica, 
bestowed  the  solemn  Benediction  and  announced  a  plenary 
indulgence.  He  then  intoned  the  first  line  of  the  "Veni 
Sancte  Spiritus"  and  proceeded  to  the  tribune  for  the  Council 
which  was  erected  in  the  nave.  There  the  Litanies  of  the 
Saint  were  sung  with  the  usual  prayers,  and  the  Cardinal- 
Deacon  Luigi  d'Aragona  read  the  Gospel  which  narrates 
the  sending  forth  of  the  disciples.  To  spare  the  Pope's 
failing  strength,  Cardinal  Alessandro  Farnese  read  his 
address  for  him.  In  it  he  briefly  set  forth  the  reasons  for 
summoning  the  Council  and  the  advantages  that  were  to 
be  hoped  for  from   its    assembling.     He   had   long   been 

*  Labbe,  XIV.,  i%seq. ;  Hardouin,  IX.,  1573^^^.  ;  Hergenrother, 
VIII.,  501  seg.  ;  Rohrbacher-Knopfler,  413  seq. 


FIRST  SITTING  OF  THE  COUNCIL.  409 

desirous,  he  said,  of  calling  a  Council,  but  had  deferred  it 
on  account  of  the  incessant  wars  between  the  Christian 
Princes ;  now,  however,  the  need  for  it  seemed  to  him  to 
have  become  urgent,  in  order  to  prevent  the  division  which 
Satan  had  caused  in  the  House  of  God  from  spreading 
further  and  infecting  the  whole  flock  of  Christ.  He  prayed 
that  all  might  have  the  fear  of  the  Lord  before  their  eyes, 
express  their  opinions  freely,  and  seek  rather  to  please 
Him  than  man.  He  hoped  that,  with  the  assistance  of 
Almighty  God,  all  evil  customs  might  be  amended,  peace 
be  re-established  among  Christian  Princes,  and,  under  the 
banner  of  the  Cross,  all  the  artifices  of  the  ancient  enemy  be 
brought  to  naught.  He  now  declared  the  Council  opened 
and  fixed  the  loth  of  May  for  its  first  sitting.* 

When  the  ceremonies  w«ere  concluded  the  Pope  made 
his  thanksgiving  in  the  Church  of  S.  Pietro  in  Vincoli. 
He  was  delighted  at  the  way  in  which  the  solemnities  had 
been  carried  through,  referred  laughingly  to  his  anxiety 
beforehand  lest  there  should  be  disturbances,  and  promised 
de  Grassis  a  Bishopric  as  a  reward  for  the  admirable  way 
in  which  he  had  organised  and  conducted  the  whole 
function.f 

The  first  sitting  took  place  as  arranged,  under  the 
presidency  of  the  Pope,  on  the  loth  of  May.  Cardinal 
Grimani  sang  the  Mass  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  and  Bernardino 
Zane,  also  a  Venetian,  was  the  preacher.  In  his  sermon 
he  first  touched  briefly  on  the  Turkish  danger  and  then 
proceeded  to  treat  of  the  unity  of  the  Church.  This  he 
defined  as  consisting  :  (i)  in  the  union  of  the  members  with 
each  other  ;  (2)  in  their  subordination  to  the  Head,  the  Vicar 
of  Christ ;  hence  all  who  do  not  obey  the  Head,  and  who 

*  Sanuto,  XIV.,  203  seq. ;  PARIS  DE  Grassis  in  Raynaldus,  ad  an. 
15 12,  n.  35-39  ;  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  506-507. 
t  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Dollinger,  418. 


4IO  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

separate  themselves  from  the  other  members  of  the  body, 
are  schismatics.  As  it  is  a  law  of  justice,  both  human  and 
divine,  that  offenders  should  be  punished  according  to  the 
nature  of  their  offences,  schismatics  fall  under  a  double 
penalty;  they  are  cut  off  from  the  communion  of  the 
faithful,  and  they  lose  all  their  apostolical  privileges,  offices^ 
and  dignities.  It  is  the  duty  of  the  Pope  and  the  Fathers 
in  Council  to  suppress  heretics  and  schismatics,  and  render 
them  powerless  to  do  harm,  so  that  the  evil  may  not  spread 
nor  the  spark  burst  into  a  flame.  The  Pope  then  delivered 
a  short  address,  reminding  those  present  of  what  were  the 
objects  of  the  Council.  He  described  these  as  the  rooting 
out  of  schism,  the  reform  of  the  Church,  and  the  Crusade. 
Then  the  Bulls  of  July  151 1,  and  April  15 12,  were  read,  and 
the  officers  of  the  Council  appointed  and  sworn  in  by  the 
Pope  himself.* 

The  second  sitting,  at  which  the  Council  of  Pisa  was  pro- 
nounced null  and  void,  was  held  on  the  17th.  Over  lOQ 
Prelates  were  present  at  it.-f  The  High  Mass  was  sung  by 
the  Hungarian  Cardinal,  Thomas  Bakocs.  The  sermon, 
preached  by  the  General  of  the  Dominicans,  Thomas  de 
Vio  (Cajetanus),  was  a  very  remarkable  one.  The  subject 
was  the  Catholic  doctrine  regarding  the  Church  and  Synods. 
He  described  the  Church  as  the  Holy  City  of  Jerusalem  seen 
by  S.John  (Apoc,  xxi.,  i  seq.^  with  her  healing  powers  (the 
Sacraments),  her  apostles,  pastors,  teachers,  and  gifts,  and 
the  close  mutual  union  subsisting  between  her  inhabitants, 
like  that  between  all  the  members  of  the  same  body.  He 
pointed  out  how  the  Church  was  a  city,  how  she  was  holy, 
the  city  of  peace,  Jerusalem,  how,  unlike  the  synagogue,, 
she  remains  ever  new  and  strong,  how  she  has  come  down 
from  Heaven  and  is  built  after  the  pattern  of  the  heavenly 

*  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  507-514;  Sanuto,  XIV.,  224,  228, 
+  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  DoUinger,  419. 


SERMON    OF   CAJETANUS.  4^  I 

kingdom.  This  Church,  he  went  on  to  say,  is  governed  by 
the  Vicar  of  Christ,  to  whom  all  the  citizens  owe  allegiance, 
not  only  each  individually  but  as  a  body.  The  Pisan  Synod 
possessed  none  of  the  notes  of  the  true  Church,  and  appeared 
rather  to  have  risen  up  out  of  Hell  than  descended  from 
Heaven.  It  represented  only  one  nation  and  that  but 
partially,  was  not  universal,  could  not  claim  to  be  the  city 
to  which  the  strength  of  the  Gentiles  had  come,  or  the 
multitude  of  the  sea  had  been  converted  (Isaias,  Ix.,  5). 
This  assembly  was  neither  holy  nor  lawfully  convened,  was 
stained  with  error,  subordinated  Peter  to  the  Church,  the 
Pope  to  the  Council,  set  the  members  above  the  head,  and 
the  sheep  before  the  shepherd.  It  cannot  be  called 
Jerusalem,  for  it  possesses  neither  peace  nor  order,  but  on 
the  contrary  aims  at  undermining  the  noble  order  of  the 
Roman  Church  and  wages  war  against  her ;  and  is  like  the 
city  and  tower  of  Babel,  generating  nothing  but  confusion. 
She  is  new,  but  in  a  very  different  sense  from  the  newness 
of  the  true  Church ;  she  is  the  offspring  of  Constance  and 
Basle.  The  Pope  should  be  the  mirror  of  the  Power,  the 
Perfection,  and  the  Wisdom  of  God.  He  manifests  the 
power  of  God  when  he  girds  himself  with  his  own  sword, 
for  he  possesses,  two  swords,  one  which  he  shares  with 
temporal  princes  and  another  which  is  reserved  to  him 
only.  This  latter  is  the  sword  of  the  spiritual  power  for 
the  destruction  of  errors  and  schisms.  The  power  of  the 
Pope  should  be  combined  with  the  image  of  the  Divine 
Perfection,  which  consists  in  loving-kindness.  To  this  must 
be  added  wisdom,  and  this  wisdom  is  specially  displayed 
in  the  calling  of  the  present  Council,  which  should 
manifest  it  more  and  more  by  realising  the  hopes  that  are 
entertained  of  it  and  making  the  Church  such  as  the  spirit 
shewed  it  to  the  beloved  disciple.* 
*  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  514-516. 


412  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

It  is  significant  of  the  change  which  had  come  about  in 
the  views  of  the  majority  of  theologians  at  that  time,  that 
this  outspoken  condemnation  of  the  false  Conciliar  theory 
called  forth  no  contradiction.*  The  evils  which  this  theory, 
the  offspring  of  a  period  of  almost  boundless  confusion,  had 
brought  upon  the  Church  and  the  world  had  come  to  be 
very  widely  recognised.  The  weakness  of  the  schismatics 
and  the  success  of  the  Lateran  Council  shewed  how  com- 
pletely the  Catholic  view,  that  no  Council  could  be  salutary 
for  the  Church  that  was  not  held  with  and  under  the  Pope, 
had  gained  the  upper  hand. 

At  the  conclusion  of  Cajetan's  address,  a  letter  from  the 
King  of  England  on  his  alliance  with  the  Pope  was  read  ; 
and  then  another  from  the  King  of  Spain,  accrediting  his 
Counsellor,  Hieronymus  de  Vich,  as  Envoy  from  himself 
and  his  daughter  Joanna,  Queen  of  Castile,  to  act  as 
their  representative  at  the  Council,  and  support  Julius,  the 
rightful  Pope,  against  the  schismatics.  Next  followed  the 
reading  of  the  Papal  Bull  confirming  and  renewing  the 
censures  pronounced  against  the  pseudo-Council.  At  the 
same  time,  in  view  of  the  political  situation,  and  the  prob- 
ability that  representatives  of  other  nations  might  be  ex- 
pected later,  and  also  the  coming  Summer  heats,  the  next 
sitting  was  adjourned  to  the  3rd  of  November.j* 

While  England  had  now  definitely  joined  the  League 
against  France,  the  Emperor  of  Germany  also  was  gradu- 
ally drawing  nearer  to  the  Pope,  who  held  out  hopes  of  an 

*  Maurenbrecher,  Kathol.  Reformation,  107.  Cf.  also  Paris  de 
Grassis,  ed.  Bollinger,  423-424.  On  Cajetan,  cf.  Wetzer  und  Welte, 
Kirchenlexikon,  II.,  1675  seq..,  ed.  2.  At  the  same  time,  the  resolutions 
of  the  Castilian  Royal  Council,  amongst  other  things,  in  DoLLlNGER,  III., 
200  seq.^  shew  that  the  Conciliar  ideas  still  survived  to  a  considerable 
extent. 

+  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  516-517;  cf.  Sanuto,  XIV.,  242  seq. 
267. 


ARRIVAL  OF  THE  SWISS   IN   ITALY.  413 

advantageous  peace  with  Venice.  That  Julius  should  have 
been  successful  in  persuading  Maximilian  to  conclude  an 
armistice  with  the  Republic  for  ten  months  "  was  a  great 
step  in  advance.  The  Emperor  did  not  join  the  League, 
and  his  friendship  with  France  remained  ostensibly  intact  ; 
but  the  position  he  now  took  up  was  unfavourable  to 
her  and  advantageous  fpr  the  allies."  In  April,  through 
Cardinal  Schinner,*  he  gave  permission  to  the  Swiss,  who 
were  marching  to  help  the  Pope,  to  pass  through  his 
dominions  and  supplied  them  with  provisions.-j- 

At  the  end  of  May,  the  Swiss  contingents,  numbering  in 
all  18,000  men,  met  in  Verona,  where  Cardinal  Schinner 
presented  to  his  countrymen,  "  as  loyal  and  chivalrous 
defenders  and  protectors  of  the  Holy  Church  and  the 
Pope,"  a  cap  of  honour  adorned  with  gold  and  pearls, 
and  an  ornamented  sword,  as  gifts  from  Julius  II.  and 
symbols  of  the  political  independence  of  the  Confederation.^ 
This  acknowledgment  was  well-deserved,  for  it  was  reserved 
to  these  brave  mountaineers  to  strike  the  final  blow  which 

*  The  Brief  addressed  by  Julius  II.,  on  i8th  April,  15 12,  to  Schinner, 
and  which  the  latter  forwarded  to  the  Confederation,  is  to  be  found  in 
German  in  FUCHS,  II.,  331.  The  original  is  in  the  State  Archives, 
Zurich. 

t  HUBER,  III.,  396;  Ulmann,  II.,  447;  Gisi,  46  seq.  Hitherto  it 
has  been  supposed  that  the  Papal  diplomatist,  Ennio  Filonardi,  had 
been  sent  by  Julius  II.  to  Switzerland.  WiRZ,  E.  Filonardi  (Zurich, 
1 894),  shews  that  he  did  not  go  there  till  1 5 1 3,  when  he  was  sent  as 
Nuncio  by  Leo  X. 

X  DiERAUER,  II.,  412  seq.;  GiSI,  63  seq.  The  hat  and  sword  were, 
in  accordance  with  a  resolution  of  the  Diet  of  Baden,  left  at  Zurich,  and 
are  still  preserved  in  the  City  Library  there.  They  are  engraved  and 
described  by  G.  v.  WySS  in  the  Neujahrsblatt  for  1859  of  the  City 
Library  at  Zurich,  "Die  Geschenke  Papst  Julius  II.  an  die  Eidgenossen." 
The  sword  is  also  reproduced  in  the  work,  Zurich  und  das  Schweizerische 
Landesmuseum  (1890),  plate  21.  See  also  Dandliker,  Gesch.  der 
Schweiz,  II.,  313. 


414  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

decided  the  issue  of  the  war  in  Italy ;  they  were  the  saviours 
of  the  Holy  See.     Though,  no  doubt,  political  and  financial 
considerations  had  their  weight  in  determining  this  expedi- 
tion, a  spirit  of  very  genuine  religious  enthusiasm  was  by 
no  means  wanting  amongst  the  Swiss.*     Zwingli,  the  open- 
air   preacher   of  Glarus,  writing   to  his    friend  Vadian  in 
Vienna,  says  :  "The  Swiss  have  seen  the  deplorable  state  to 
which  the  Church  of  God,  the  mother  of  Christendom,  has 
been  reduced,  and  they  think  it  both  wrong  and  dangerous 
to  permit  this  rapacious  tyrant  to  remain  unpunished."  f 
-^     Almost  simultaneously  with  the  arrival  of  the  Swiss  in 
Italy,  Maximilian  recalled  the  German  foot-soldiers,  which 
formed  practically  the  core  of  the  French  army,  and  had 
materially  contributed  to  its  victory  at  Ravenna.     At  the 
very    moment  that  it  was   thus  weakened  it  found  itself 
threatened  by  four  armies  at  once — the  Papal  troops  under 
the  Duke  of  Urbino,  and  the  Spaniards,  Venetians,  and  Swiss. 
No  reinforcements  could  be  hoped  for  from  France,  as  the 
army  at  home  had  not  a  man  to  spare  from  the  defence  of 
the  frontiers  against  the  attacks  of  England  and   Spain. 
Since  the  death  of  Gaston  de  Foix,  the  French   force  in 
Italy  had  been   left  without  organisation,  spirit,  or  plans. 
The  Romagna  was  first  evacuated,  and  soon  Upper  Italy 
was  also  abandoned.     On  the  14th  June  the  Swiss  sat  down 
before  Pavia,  which  capitulated  after  a  short  siege.     Upon 
this  the  whole  Duchy  of  Milan  rose  against  the  French,  who 
had  made  themselves  universally  hated.J 

Now  that  it  was  becoming  more  and  more  evident  that 
the  battle  of  Ravenna  had  been  but  a  Pyrrhic  victory,  the 

*  GiSl,  48,  and  Dierauer,  II.,  413. 

t  ZwiNGLll  Opera,  ed.  Schuler  et  Schulthess,  IV.,  169  (Turici,  1841). 
Cf.  Heer,  U.  Zwingli  als  Pfarrer  von  Glarus,  22  seq,  (Zurich,  iJ 
Dierauer  and  Gisi,  loc.  cit. 

X  Cf.  Gisi,  53  seq. 


THE   FRENCH   DRIVEN    OUT   OF   ITALY.  415 

schismatics  found  their  position  untenable.  On  the  4th  of 
June  they  decided  to  remove  to  Asti.  Their  departure  was 
more  like  a  flight  than  anything  else,  and  gave  Cardinal 
Medici  the  opportunity  of  escaping.*  But  even  at  Asti 
they  found  it  impossible  to  remain,  and  soon  had  to  move 
on  to  Lyons.  Here  the  only  act  of  the  assembly  was  to 
demand  a  subsidy  from  the  French  clergy  and  the  Uni- 
versity of  Paris,  and  thus  "  without  any  formal  dissolution, 
the  French  Council  disappeared  from  the  scene."  j- 

Genoa  also  had  cast  off  the  yoke  of  France,  chosen 
Giovanni  Fregoso  as  Doge,  and  declared  herself  independ- 
ent.! Rimini,  Cesena,  and  Ravenna  returned  to  their 
allegiance  to  the  Pope.  On  the  13th  of  June  the  Duke  of 
Urbino  took  possession  of  Bologna  in  the  name  of  the 
Church.§  The  Papal  troops  now  turned  back  to  subdue 
Parma  and  Piacenza,  which  Julius  II.  claimed  as  heir  to  the 

*  On  the  3rd  June  to  Pieve  del  Cairo  on  the  Po.  See  Raynaldus, 
ad  an.  1512,  n.  59;  Lehmann,  34;  Creighton,  IV.,  152;  and  Arch. 
St.  Lomb.,  X.,  381-395  (with  Doc's  of  Leo  X.).  Their  flight  is  painted  by 
Vasari  in  the  Palazzo  Vecchio  in  Florence  ;  there  is  also  a  picture  in 
Pieve  which  has  reference  to  this  event.  In  my  opinion,  it  is  a  mistake 
(cf.  infra^  Chap.  10)  to  connect  Raphael's  picture  of  the  deliverance  of 
S.  Peter  in  the  Stanze  with  this  occurrence. 

t  MaURENBRECHER,  Kath.  Ref,  105  ;  HERGENROTHER,  VIII.,  518- 
520 ;  Lehmann,  34  ;  Sandret,  Concile  de  Pise,  453  ;  Maulde,  Ori- 
gines,  135,  325-326.  The  report  of  a  correspondent  in  France  which 
reached  Venice  on  the  nth  Sept.,  15 12,  says  ironically  :  Papa  Bernardin 
[  =  Car\'ajal]  stava  mal  in  tal  modo  che  credo  ch'  el  lassera  la  mitria. 
On  Papa  Bernardino,  see  also  Grumello,  138. 

X  Cf.  Giov.  Fregoso's  triumphant  **Letter  to  King  Ferdinand,  dat. 
Genoa,  6th  July,  15 12.  I  found  the  original  in  Fonds  Espagn.,  318,  of 
National  Library,  Paris. 

§  On  the  15th  of  June,  15 12,  Julius  II.  granted  faculties  to  the  Card. 
Leg.,  Giov.  de'  Medici,  for  absolving  the  city  of  Bologna  from  all  the 
Church  censures,  only  excepting  the  adherents  of  the  Bentivogli.  Lib.  Q.  5. 
State  Archives,  Bologna. 


4l6  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

Countess  Matilda.  On  the  20th,  Ottaviano  Sforza,  Bishop 
of  Lodi,  entered  Milan  as  the  Pope's  lieutenant.*  On  the 
28th,  La  Palice,  with  the  remnants  of  his  army,  arrived, 
broken  and  hopeless,  at  the  foot  of  the  Alps.  Thus  Louis 
XII.,  after  having  stirred  up  a  schism  and  striven  to  anni- 
hilate the  Pope,  ended  by  losing  in  ten  weeks  not  only  all 
the  fruits  of  his  victory  at  Ravenna,  but  also  all  his  posses- 
sions in  Italy,  including  even  Asti,  which  belonged  to  his 
own  family.  "  The  soldiers  of  Louis  XII.  have  vanished  like 
mist  before  the  sun,"  writes  Francesco  Vettori,  without 
having  fought  a  single  battle,  and  almost  without  having 
defended  a  single  town.f  That  which  Julius  had  been 
striving  with  all  his  might  for  years  to  achieve,  was  now 
brought  about  by  a  sudden  turn  of  events,  so  unexpected, 
that  Raphael  in  his  fresco  in  the  Vatican  has  symbolically 
represented  it  as  a  miracle.]: 

It  was  on  the  22nd  of  June  that  Julius  II.  received  the 
first  detailed  account  of  the  rout  of  the  French  in  a  letter 
from  Pavia  from  Cardinal  Schinner.  He  read  the  whole 
letter  through  first  in  silence  ;  then,  turning  with  a  beam- 
ing countenance  to  the  Master  of  Ceremonies,  "  We  have 
won,  Paris,"  he  exclaimed,  "  we  have  won  ! "  "  May  God 
give  your  Holiness  joy  of  it,"  answered  de  Grassis,  to  which 
the  Pope  immediately  added,  "  And  to  all  the  faithful  souls 
whom  He  has  at  last  deigned  to  deliver  from  the  yoke 
of  the  barbarians."  Then  he  unfolded  the  letter  again 
and  read  it  from  beginning  to  end  to  all  who  were  present. 
Immediately  afterwards  he  announced  his  intention  of 
going  on  the  following  day  to  his  former  titular  Church, 
S.  Pietro  in  Vincoli,  to  give  thanks  there  to  God.     Though 

*  DiERAUER,  II.,  414  ;  Gisi,  56  seq. 

t  Vettori,  ed.  Reumont,  287.    See  also  Paris  de  Grassis'  diatribes 
against  the  French,  Dollinger's  ed.,  420,  and  Gisi,  62. 
X  See  on  Raphael's  picture,  infra^  Chap.  10. 


REJOICINGS   IN   ROME.  417 

far  from  well,  he  had  himself  carried  thither  on  the  23rd 
and  remained  for  a  long  time  absorbed  in  prayer  before 
the  High  Altar.  How  wonderfully  everything  was 
changed.  S.  Peter's  chains  were  indeed  broken ;  the 
Italian  poets  sang  of  Julius  as  the  liberator  of  Italy.* 
On  the  27th  he  received  four  delegates  from  Bologna, 
who  had  been  sent  to  sue  for  pardon.-f  In  the  evening 
the  whole  city  suddenly  burst  into  a  flood  of  light.  This 
was  to  celebrate  a  fresh  victory,  the  liberation  of  Genoa, 
his  own  native  city.  Cannon  thundered  from  St.  Angelo 
and  fireworks  blazed  all  over  the  city.  The  Pope  returned 
to  the  Vatican  in  a  solemn  triumphal  procession,  accom- 
panied by  his  whole  Court  and  all  the  officials,  carrying 
torches.  The  cry  of  "  Julius,  Julius,"  rose  on  all  sides. 
"  Never,"  says  the  Venetian  Envoy,  "  was  any  Emperor 
or  victorious  general  so  honoured  on  his  entry  into  Rome 
as  the  Pope  has  been  to-day."  A  universal  amnesty  was 
proclaimed  and  alms  distributed  to  all  the  convents. 
"  Now  God  has  left  us  nothing  more  to  ask  from  Him," 
he  said,  "  we  have  only  to  pour  forth  our  gratitude  for 
the  splendour  of  our  triumph."  I 

Commands  were  issued  for  a  triduum  of  processions 
of  thanksgiving,  and  other  rejoicings  to  be  held  through- 
out the  States  of  the  Church  as  well  as  in  Rome.  On 
the  same  day,  27th  June,  Briefs  were  despatched  to  all 
parts  of  Christendom  desiring  the  faithful  to  celebrate 
the  liberation  of  Italy  and  of  the  Holy  See.  As  a  last- 
ing memorial  of  these  events  the  Pope  presented  to  the 
Church  of  S.  Peter  some  splendid  vestments  and  a  golden 

*  ROSCOE,  Leo  X.,  II.,  404  seq. 

+  Paris  DEGrassis,  ed.  Frati,  321,  323-327,  which  contradicts  Guic- 
ciardini's  statement  that  Julius  wanted  to  destroy  Bologna.  On  earlier 
accounts  of  the  victory,  see  Sanuto,  XIV.,  401,  404. 

I  Sanuto,  XIV.,  450,  453,  457-458  ;  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati, 
327-330. 

VOL.   VL  2  £ 


41 8  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

altar-frontal  with  an  inscription,  saying  that  it  was  a  votive 
offering  to  God  and  the  Princes  of  the  Apostles  in  thanks- 
giving for  the  "  liberation  of  Italy."  *  At  the  same  tirfie 
Julius  was  far  from  forgetting  to  whom  next  to  God  he 
was  most  indebted  for  his  victory,  and  showered  rewards 
on  the  stalwart  Swiss.  In  a  Bull  of  6th  July,  1512,  he 
bestowed  on  them  in  perpetuity  the  title  of  "  Protectors 
of  the  liberty  of  the  Church,"  and  also  sent  them  two 
large  banners.-f-  One  of  them  bore  the  Papal  tiara  with 
the  keys  and  the  inscription,  "Pope  Julius  II.,  nephew  of 
Sixtus  IV.,  of  Savona " ;  on  the  other  the  family  arms 
of  the  Pope  were  depicted  with  the  keys  and  the  motto: 
Dominus  mihi  adiutor,  non  timebo  quid  faciat  mihi 
homo  (The  Lord  is  my  helper;  I  will  not  fear  what 
man  can  do  unto  me).  Every  township  which  had  sent 
a  contingent  to  the  army  received  a  silken  banner,  with 
the  arms  of  the  place  and  a  religious  picture,  the  subject 
of  which  they  were  permitted  to  choose,  embroidered  or 
painted  upon  it.  These  gifts  admirably  corresponded 
with  the  character  of  the  people,  at  once  martial  and 
pious.  Many  of  these  banners  have  been  preserved  to  the 
present  day.|     In  addition  to  these  marks  of  honour,  Julius 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  330-331.  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  97, 
ed.  3,  gives  a  fragment  of  the  Brief  to  the  Florentines  ;  they  permitted 
the  clergy  to  hold  the  processions,  but  refused  to  allow  any  other 
festivities.  Nardi,  I.,  431.  Cf.  Tommasini,  I.,  574.  On  the  26th  of 
July  a  deputation  from  Piacenza  came  to  Rome  to  do  homage  to  the 
Pope,  and  a  similar  one  from  Reggio  arrived  in  September.  Raynaldus, 
ad  an.  15 12,  n.  70-71. 

t  Brief  of  the  5th  July  in  Eidgenoss.  Abschiede,  III.,  2,  632-633. 
Cf.  Anshelm,  IV.,  260  ;  new  edition,  III.,  327  seq..,  and  Oechsli,  Quel- 
lenbuch,  259. 

J  Cf.  Bridel,  Drapeaux  donnas  par  les  Papes  aux  Suisses.  Conser- 
vateur  Suisse,  III.  (1813),  344  seq.;  GiSl,  239  seq.;  VOGELIN,  Gesch.  der 
Wasserkirche  und  d.  Bibl.  zu  Zurich,  120  j  Ziiricher  Neujahrsblatt(i859), 
p.  6  seq.;  Dierauer,  Das  Toggenburg  unter  abtischer  Herrschaft,  St. 


THE   DUKE   OF   FERRARA   IN    ROME.  419 

granted  several  spiritual  favours  to  the  Swiss,  and  bestowed 
the  Countship  of  Vigevano  on  Schinner.* 

To  no  one  was  the  complete  discomfiture  of  the  French 
so  crushing  a  blow  as  to  Duke  Alfonso  of  Ferrara.  It  left 
him  absolutely  helpless  at  the  mercy  of  the  Pope  whom  he 
had  treated  with  such  insolence.  Trusting  to  the  friend- 
ship of  the  Colonna  and  of  his  brother-in-law  Gonzaga  of 
Mantua,  and  also  armed  with  a  safe-conduct  from  Julius, 
he  came  to  Rome  on  the  4th  of  July  to  endeavour  to  save 
what  he  could.  The  Pope  willingly  absolved  him  from 
all  ecclesiastical  censures,  but  insisted  on  his  giving  up 
Ferrara  and  accepting  Asti  instead.  The  Colonna  strove 
in  vain  to  mediate  in  his  favour ;  and  soon  he  began  to 
feel  that  he  was  not  safe  in  Rome.  In  this  he  was  not 
mistaken,  for  Julius  would  have  had  no  scruple  in  de- 
taining and   imprisoning   him.     He  resolved,  therefore,  to 

Galier  Neujahrsblatt  for  1875  (here  there  is  an  engraving  of  the  Tog  gen- 
burg  banner);  Fricker,  Ein  Fanner  JuHus  II.  in  Baden,  Anz.  fiir 
Schweiz.  Gesch.(i874),  p.  45  ;  J.  Meyer  and  H.  Stahelin,  Die  papstl. 
Fahne  der  Stadt  Frauenfeld,  in  d.  Thurg.  Beitragen,  XXVII.  (1887). 
The  comer-pieces  of  the  banner  sent  by  the  Pope  to  Berne  were  dis- 
covered and  are  described  by  Pfarrer  J.  Stammler,  Der  Paramenten- 
schatz  im  Hist.  Museum  zu  Bern,  i2()seq.  (Bern,  1895).  Also  the  banner 
belonging  to  the  district  of  Saanen  with  its  puzzling  inscription,  which  I 
think  has  been  correctly  interpreted  by  Stammler  in  the  Anz.  fiir 
Schweizer.  Alterthumskunde  (1895),  No.  3,  is  in  the  Museum  at  Berne. 
In  a  Brief  of  the  20th  Dec,  15 12  (to  be  found,  as  H.  Jos.  Joller  kindly 
informs  me,  in  the  Niederwald  Archives  at  Wallis),  Julius  II.  bestowed 
a  decoration  on  the  Niederwald  flag.  On  the  favours  granted  to  Basle 
see  Desimoni,  Fiorino  d'oro  di  Basilea  al  nome  di  Papa  Giuho  II.  dell' 
anno  1513,  in  Atti  d.  Soc.  Sav.,  II.,  691  seq.,  and  Julius  II.'s  Letters  of 
the  loth  Sept.  and  the  20th  and  29th  Dec,  15 12,  in  the  City  Archives, 
Basle.  On  the  origin  and  significance  of  Papal  gifts  of  honour,  such  as 
the  Rose,  Hat,  Swords,  etc.,  see  R.  Dowling  in  the  Dublin  Review 
(1894),  p.  619.?^^. 
*  Gisi,  63,  24a 


420  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

fly,  and  with  the  help  of  the  Colonna  succeeded  in  getting 
away  on  the  19th  of  July.  The  Pope  was  extremely 
indignant  and  instituted  proceedings  against  him  as  a 
rebellious  vassal.* 

A  Congress  of  the  interested  powers  was  held  in 
Mantua  in  August  for  the  reorganisation  of  political 
relations  which  the  war  had  left  in  utter  confusion. 
Here  it  soon  became  plain  that  victory  had  sown  dis- 
.sension  amongst  the  members  of  the  League.  There 
was  only  one  point  upon  which  all  the  allies  were  agreed, 
and  that  was  that  Florence  must  be  punished  for  holding 
to  France  as  she  had  done  and  refusing  to  join  the  League, 
and  for  harbouring  the  schismatics.  It  was  resolved  that 
the  Medici  should  be  restored,  and  a  combined  Papal  and 
Spanish  army  was  despatched  to  effect  this.  On  the 
30th  August  the  Spaniards  conquered  Prato,  and  cruelly 
sacked  it.  Upon  this  the  Florentines  yielded,  and  in 
September  the  Medici  returned,  first  the  gentle  and 
attractive  Giuliano,  later  the  Cardinal,  and  took  the 
government  of  the  city  into    their  hands.j*     The  question 

*  Sanuto,  XIV.,  479,  480-482,  484-485,  491,  509,  510, 5",  514,  524, 
538,  570,  594  ;  XV.,  34,  76-77  ;  Lettres  de  Louis  XII.,  III.,  299  seq.\ 
Paris  deGrassis  in  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1512,  n.  71  seq.\  and  Creighton, 
IV.,  273-274  ;  SCHEURL,  Briefbuch,  98  ;  Carpesanus,  1286  ;  Letter  of 
Alfonso's  from  Rome  to  Card.  Ippolito  on  Julius'  demands  in  Cappelli, 
Lettere  di  L.  Ariosto  (Bologna,  1866),  p.  cxuil ;  GiSi,  57;  Brosch, 
Julius  II.,  255  seq.\  Luzio,  F.  Gonzaga,  ■^'j^  n.  2  ;  SEMPER,  Carpi,  9. 
Alfonso's  flight  is  mentioned  in  the  *Acta  Consist.,  f.  36.  (Consistorial 
Archives  of  the  Vatican.)  The  original  of  the  letter  of  safe-conduct  for 
Alfonso,  in  which  Julius  explains  that  it  is  only  for  the  Duke's  person  and 
not  for  his  State  (Sanuto,  XIV.,  455),  is  in  the  State  Archives,  Modena, 
Bolle. 

t  Cf.  ViLLARi,  Machiavelli,  II.,  151  seq.;  Perrens,  II.,  497  seq.\ 
Guasti,  II  Sacco  di  Prato  (Bologna,  1880),  2  vols.  On  Julius  II.'s  dis- 
simulation in  regard  to  Card.  Soderini,  see  Vettori,  ed.  Reumont,  290. 
See  also  the  Report  in  Sanuto,  XV.,  29  seq.,  52  seq.,  57  seq.,  loi,  105 


MASSIMILIANO   SFORZA   DUKE   OF   MILAN.  42 1 

as  to  who  should  have  the  Duchy  of  Milan  was  decided 
at  the  Congress  of  Mantua.  Ferdinand  of  Spain  and 
Maximilian  desired  to  secure  it  for  their  grand-son  Charles, 
but  the  Swiss  and  Julius  II.,  who  did  not  wish  to  see 
any  foreign  power  established  in  Lombardy,  succeeded 
in  arranging  that  it  should  be  bestowed  on  Massimiliano 
Sforza,  the  son  of  Lodovico  Moro ;  who  became  a  fast 
friend  of  the  Swiss  Confederation.*  On  the  8th  of  October, 
however,  Parma  and  Piacenza  were  separated  from  the 
Duchy  and  included  in  the  States  of  the  Church.  Reggio 
had  already,  on  the  4th  of  July,  submitted  to  the  Pope ; 
and  sent  Envoys  later  to  Rome  to  make  their  profession  of 
obedience,  expressing  themselves  in  very  humble  terms. 
A  contemporaneous  historian  remarks  that  this  was  the 
first  time  since  the  donation  of  King  Pepin  that  a  Pope 
had  possessed  this  city.f 

But  in  spite  of  all  these  successes  there  was  still  a  reverse 
side  to  the  medal.  "  With  the  exception  of  the  Pope  and 
the  Swiss  none  of  the  allies  were  completely  satisfied. 
The  Emperor,  whose  chief  object  had  been  to  push  a  for- 
midable rival  out  of  Italy,  now  realised  with  dismay  that 
he  had  only  succeeded  in  substituting  the  Pope  for  France."  J 
The  appropriation  of  Parma,  Piacenza,  and  Reggio  by  Julius 

seq.,  123,  141  seq.^  and  in  Appendix,  N.  88,  *Giuliano  de'  Medici's 
Letter  of  the  31st  Aug.,  15 12.     Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua. 

*  DiERAUER,  IL,  418  seq.;  GiSi,  67  seq.  JuHus  IL  congratulated 
M.  Sforza  in  a  Brief  of  19th  Aug.,  1512,  printed  in  Lettres  de  Louis  XII^ 
in.,  308-309. 

t  Carpesanus,  1288;  Gregorovius,  VIIL,  102,  ed.  3;  ROSCOE, 
IL,  401  seq.  ;  LuziO,  F.  Gonzaga,  39.  Cf.  Sanuto,  XV.,  252.  On  the 
submission  of  Reggio  see  "^Riformag.,  15 12,  July  4.  (Archives  in 
Reggio.)  Cf.  L.  Chiesi,  Reggio  nell'  Emilia  sotto  Giulio  II.,  Leone  X., 
Adriano  VI.,  11  seq.  (Reggio,  1892).  Here  also  are  the  particulars  of 
the  mission  from  Reggio. 

X  Brosch,  Julius  IL,  263.     Cf.  GiSl,  66  seq. 


422  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

was  felt  as  a  blow  at  the  Imperial  Court,  and  it  is  not 
surprising  that  Maximilian's  attitude  was  far  from  friendly 
when  the  Pope's  further  wishes  came  to  be  dealt  with.  The 
feeling  in  Spain  was  very  much  the  same  as  in  Germany. 
Under  these  circumstances  Ferrara  had  to  be  left  alone, 
especially  as  the  behaviour  of  the  Duke  of  Urbino  did  not 
inspire  confidence  in  his  intentions.*  The  power  of  the 
Swiss  also  somewhat  weighed  on  the  Pope  ;  but  his 
greatest  anxiety  was  the  uncertainty  as  to  the  intentions 
of  King  Ferdinand.  He  heard  with  alarm  that  the  Spanish 
army  was  marching  from  Tuscany  towards  Lombardy. 
"  If,  as  rumour  now  whispered,  and  as  indeed  became 
partially  the  fact  afterwards,  he  was  going  to  embark  in  a 
private  war  of  acquisition  here  without  troubling  himself 
about  the  rights  of  the  League  or  the  claims  of  Venice,  he 
would  then  obtain  a  point  of  vantage  in  the  north  of  the' 
peninsula  from  which,  in  combination  with  his  legitimate 
claims  in  the  south,  he  could  stretch  out  his  arms  over  the 
whole,  and  have  the  Holy  See  entirely  at  his  mercy."  j- 
This  made  it  of  the  highest  importance  for  Julius  to  be  on 
the  most  friendly  terms  with  the  Emperor  in  order  to 
counterbalance  the  power  of  Spain.  To  ensure  the  com- 
plete success  of  the  Lateran  Council,  also,  the  co-operation 
of  the  Emperor  was  most  necessary.  The  majority  of  the 
Christian  Princes  (Spain,  Portugal,  England,  Scotland, 
Hungary,  Norway,  and  Denmark)  J  had  all  declared  in  its 
favour,  and  France  had  been  laid  under  Interdict  in 
August ;  §  but  to  complete  her  isolation  and  that  of  the 

*  Luzio,  Mantova  e  Urbino,  206. 

+  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  263.  Cf.  Leo,  V.,  260.  The  Brief  of  rst  Oct., 
1 5 12,  in  which  Julius  II.  warns  Card.  Schinner  against  Spain,  is  in 
Sanuto,  XV.,  217  seq. 

X  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  15 12,  n.  53,  82-84;  Corp.  Dipl.  Portug.,  I., 
154,  173  seq.  ;  Sanuto,  XIV.,  56  seq. 

§  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1512,  n.  97,  and  Sanuto,  XV.,  9,  32. 


MATTH/EUS   LANG   CREATED   CARDINAL.  423 

■Council  of  Lyons,  the  adhesion  of  the  Emperor  was 
essential.*  Thus,  when  in  the  late  Autumn  of  15 12 
Matthaeus  Lang,  Maximilian's  most  trusted  and  influential 
adviser,-]-  appeared  in  Rome,  the  Pope's  joy  knew  no 
bounds.  The  haughty  prelate  assumed  the  air  of  an 
emperor,  but  every  effort  was  made  to  satisfy  and  win 
him.|  In  all  the  cities,  of  the  States  of  the  Church  he  was 
received  with  honours,  and  the  Pope  gave  special  orders  to 
his  Master  of  Ceremonies  that  in  Rome  his  entry  should 
be  accompanied  with  every  possible  manifestation  of  con- 
sideration and  welcome.^ 

Lang  is  described  by  contemporary  writers  as  a  hand- 
some man  with  fair  hair,  looking  about  forty  years  of  age.|| 
He  arrived  in  Rome  on  the  evening  of  the  4th  November, 
and  sent  his  people  to  the  apartments  prepared  for  them, 
while  he  himself  went  at  once  incognito  to  the  Vatican, 
where  Julius  IL  was  burning  with  impatience  to  meet  him. 
That  no  manifestation  of  regard  might  be  wanting  in  the 
welcome  of  the  man  upon  whom  so  much  depended,  the 
Pope  came  out  as  far  as  the  first  antechamber  to  receive 
him.  On  the  same  evening  they  had  a  long  private  inter- 
view, and  Lang  spent  the  night  in  the  Vatican.  On  the 
following  day  he  made  his  official  entry  into  Rome  with 

*  CREIGHTON,  IV.,  160  ;  HUBER,  III.,  398. 

t  Vettori,  296,  remarks  that  Gurk  ruled  the  Emperor  :  lo  govemava 
come  voleva  e  si  usava  dire  in  quel  tempo,  non  che  il  primo  uomo  che 
avesse  in  corte  sua  lo  Imperatore  fusse  il  vescovo  (Gurgense),  ma  che  il 
primo  Re  avesse  il  vescovo  appresso  di  se,  era  lo  Imperatore.  As  yet, 
unfortunately,  we  have  no  satisfactory  biography  of  Matthaeus  Lang  ;  A. 
SchOPF's  work,  Ein  Diplomat  Kaiser  Maximilian's  (Wien,  1882),  is 
■quite  inadequate.     Cf.  Reumont  in  the  Hist.  Jahrb.,  III.,  501  seq. 

X  SCHEURL,  Briefbuch,  112. 

§  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Bollinger,  424;  Sanuto,  XV.,  307,  318; 
Landucci,  331  ;  and  GuiCClARDlNl,  Op.  ined.,  VI.,  147. 

II  Sanuto,  XV.,  327. 


424  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

all  possible  pomp.  "  During  my  whole  term  of  office," 
writes  the  Papal  Master  of  Ceremonies,  "  I  have  never 
seen  a  more  splendid  pageant :  it  was  like  a  triumphal 
procession/'  At  first  it  was  proposed  that  the  College  of 
Cardinals  and  the  whole  of  the  clergy  should  meet  him 
outside  the  gates.  But  the  majority  of  the  Cardinals  ob- 
jected to  this  as  an  honour  which  had  never  been  accorded 
to  any  but  crowned  heads  ;  but  in  every  other  particular  his 
reception  was  that  of  a  King.  Cardinals  Bakocs  and  Leon- 
ardo Grosso  della  Rovere  met  him  at  the  foot  of  Monte 
Mario,  and  placed  him  between  them,  a  token  of  respect 
which  he  at  first  declined  with  affected  humility.  At  the 
Ponte  Molle  the  Senator  of  Rome  and  his  officials  awaited 
him.  At  the  Porta  del  Popolo,  in  accordance  with  the 
usual  etiquette,  the  Cardinals  took  their  leave,  and  were 
replaced  by  the  Governor  of  Rome  and  the  Maggiordomo 
of  the  Palace.  The  streets  were  lined  with  spectators,  all 
the  Envoys  took  part  in  the  procession,  and  the  guns  of  St. 
Angelo  shook  the  old  building  to  its  foundation  with 
their  noisy  welcome.  Night  had  fallen  before  the  proces- 
sion reached  the  Vatican,  which  was  illuminated,  and  where 
Lang's  official  reception  by  the  Pope  now  took  place.* 

The  principal  difficulty  in  the  negotiations  of  the  first 
few  days  lay  not  in  the  relations  between  the  Pope  and  the 
Emperor,  but  in  those  of  the  latter  with  Venice.  Through- 
out the  Summer  Julius  had  been  labouring  to  induce  the 
Venetians  to  yield  as  far  as  possible  to  the  Emperor.  But 
the  negotiations  had  all  failed,  for  Maximilian  required  the 
Republic  to  give  up  Verona  and  Vicenza,  and  to  pay  down  a 

*  Pierius  Valerianus  in  Freher,  II.,  292  seq.^  and  the  Venetian 
Envoys  in  Sanuto,  XV.,  325  seq.^  describe  Lang's  arrival  and  entry  as 
eye-witnesses.  Sanuto  gives  the  3rd  as  the  day  of  arrival,  while  Pierius 
Valerianus  and  the  *Acta  Consist,  name  the  4th.  Cf.  also  Paris  de 
Grassis,  ed.  Dollinger,  424. 


ALLIANCE   OF   THE   POPE   WITH   MAXIMILIAN.        425 

sum  of  250,000  ducats  for  the  fiefsliip  of  Padua  and  Treviso, 
with  the  addition  of  a  yearly  toll  of  30,000  ducats.  The 
Venetians  refused  to  accede  to  these  terms,  and  demanded 
the  retrocession  of  Verona,  for  which,  however,  they  were 
willing  to  pay  an  annual  tribute  to  the  Emperor  during  his 
life.  When,  on  the  7th  November,  the  Venetian  Envoys 
gave  to  the  Pope,  who  ,had  acted  as  intermediary  between 
them  and  Maximilian,  their  final  answer  declining  to  accept 
his  terms,  Julius  II.  for  the  third  time  reversed  his  political 
course.  In  spite  of  the  urgent  remonstrances  of  the  repre- 
sentatives of  the  Republic  and  many  of  the  Cardinals  and 
the  efforts  of  the  Spanish  Envoy,  who  tried  to  induce  him 
to  defer  his  decision,  the  Pope  determined  at  once  to  con- 
clude a  close  alliance  with  the  Emperor.  He  was  firmly 
convinced  that  both  ecclesiastical  and  political  considera- 
tions imperatively  demanded  this  measure,  and  on  the 
evening  of  the  29th  of  November  the  agreement  between 
Julius  11.  and  Maximilian  was  signed.  The  Emperor 
engaged  to  defend  the  Pope  against  all  attacks,  repudiated 
the  schismatics,  acknowledged  the  Lateran  Council,  washed 
his  hands  of  the  Duke  of  Ferrara  and  the  Bentivogli,  and 
handed  over  Reggio  and  Modena  for  the  present  to  the 
Pope.  Julius  II.  promised  to  support  Maximilian  against 
Venice  with  both  spiritual  and  temporal  weapons  if  she 
persisted  in  her  refusal  to  relinquish  Verona  and  Vicenza, 
and  to  pay  tribute  for  the  other  imperial  fiefs ;  to  assist 
him  with  spiritual  arms  against  the  Flemings,  and  to  grant 
him  in  Germany  a  tax  of  a  tenth  on  the  clergy  if  the 
electors  would  also  consent.* 

On  the  same  day,  in  a  Secret  Consistory,  Lang  was 
admitted  into  the  College  of  Cardinals  ;  but,  at  his  own 
express  wish,  his  nomination  was  not  yet  published,  and 

*  Sanuto,  XV.,  333,  336,  337,  339,  350,  384  seq.;  LE  Glay,  I.,  513 
seq. ;  Lanz,  Einl.   128  seq. ;  GiSl,  80  seq. 


426  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

the  Pope  also  dispensed  him  from  the  obligation  of  wearing 
a  Cardinal's  dress.  On  the  24th  of  November  an  open  Con- 
sistory was  held,  at  which  the  Swiss  Envoys  were  received, 
and  Lang's  elevation  to  the  Cardinalate  was  also  announced, 
although  he  still  refused  to  assume  the  insignia  of  his  rank. 
The  reason  which  he  gave  for  this  was  that  he  was  anxious 
"  that  the  object  of  his  mission  should  not  be  misunder- 
stood."* On  the  25th  of  November  the  new  alliance  was 
formally  announced  in  S'^  Maria  del  Popolo.-j-  Ferdinand 
of  Spain  also  promised  to  help  against  Venice  if  she 
refused  to  yield. 

The  answer  of  the  Republic  consisted  in  entering  into 
close  relations  with  France,  which  led,  in  March  15 13,  to 
a' definite  alliance.  The  Pope  had  been  anxious  to  prevent 
this,  and  in  consequence  had  not  as  yet  pronounced  the 
censures  of  the  Church  against  Venice.  The  result  of  this 
union  with  France  was  again  to  prevent  the  allies  from 
doing  anything  against  Ferrara.J 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Bollinger,  425  seq.\  Sanuto,  XV.,  361  ; 
Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1512,  n.  90;  Le  Glay,  I.,  515  ;  and  Landucci, 
332  ;  also  J.  DEL  Badia.  According  to  this  passage,  Ulmann'S  state- 
ment, II.,  454:  "  Gurk  successfully  resisted  the  publication  of  his 
elevation  to  the  Cardinalate,  which  took  place  in  the  Secret  Consistory," 
is  not  quite  correct.  Ulmann  cites  elsewhere,  loc.  cii.,  a  Letter  from 
Lang  to  Maximilian  of  24th  Nov.,  1513  (Archives,  Vienna),  which  makes 
it  appear  as  if  he  had  not  accepted  the  Red-hat  until  then.  In  the  *Acta 
Consist.,  f.  36,  there  is  no  mention  of  Lang's  nomination  ;  on  the  3rd  Dec. 
he  is  still  called  electus  Gurcensis. 

t  Cf.  Luzio,  F.  Gonzaga,  40. 

X  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  266  seq. ;  Lanz,  Einl.,  129.  On  the  announce- 
ment of  Treaty  on  the  25th,  see  Sanuto,  XV.,  380,  383  seq.  The 
address  delivered  by  Aegidius  on  that  occasion  appeared  in  a  (scarce) 
contemporaneous  tract  of  which  I  found  a  copy  in  the  Manzoni  Library, 
which,  alas  !  has  since  (1892)  been  scattered  to  the  winds  :  Oratio  habita 
post  Tertiam  Sacri  Lateran.  Concilii  Sessionem  :  in  EcclTa  diue  Marie 
uirginis   de    Populo  :   per   Fratrem  Egidiu    Viterbien.     Ordinis    sancti 


/  ANNOUNCEMENT   OF   THE   ALLIANCE.  427 

The  price  which  Julius  II.  consented  to  pay  in  order  to 
secure  the  adhesion  of  MaximiHan  to  the  Council,  shews 
how  far  this  Pope  was  from  being  the  mere  politician  that 
many  have  tried  to  make  him  out.  Any  one  who  had 
counted  on  finding  him  so  absorbed  in  politics  as  to  be 
indifferent  to  the  intrigues  of  the  schismatics,  would  have 
been  utterly  mistaken.  .  On  the  contrary,  there  is  no  doubt 
that  the  revolt  in  the  Church  was  a  heavier  blow  to  Julius 
II.  than  any  of  his  political  reverses.  Although  it  was 
plain  that  the  attempts  of  the  schismatics  had  completely 
failed,  he  could  not  be  satisfied  till  the  movement  was 
entirely  extirpated.*      /" 

The  winning  over  ofthe  Emperor  was  the  crowning  victory 
in  the  rapid  succession  of  the  Pope's  triumphs,  and  was  to 
be  published  to  all  the  world.  The  third  sitting  of  the 
Council  was  held  on  the  3rd  of  December.  Though  the 
Pope  had  long  been  ailing,  and  the  weather  was  stormy 
and  rainy,  he  was  determined  to  be  present  at  it.  One 
hundred  and  eleven  members  attended  it.  The  H.igh  Mass 
was  sung  by  Cardinal  Vigerio  and  the  usual  sermon 
preached  by  the  Bishop  of  Melfi,  the  subject  being  the 
unity  of  the  Church.  After  this  the  Secretary  of  the 
Council,  Tommaso  Inghirami,  then  read  the  letter  from  the 
Emperor  accrediting  Lang  as  his  plenipotentiary  and  pro- 
curator at  the  Council,  and  denouncing  the  Conciliabula 
set  up  by  the  King  of  France  at  Tours  and  at  Pisa.  Lang, 
who    appeared  in   lay  attire,  read  a  declaration  from  the 

Augustini  Eremitar.  Generale :  de  Federe  inito  inter  luliu  Secudu 
Pont.  Max.  et  111'.  Maximilianu  Imperatorem.  s.  a.  et  I.  (probably  Rom., 
1 5 12),  in  4°. 

*  It  appears  from  the  Reports  of  the  Venetian  Envoys  in  the  beginning 
of  December,  in  SaNUTO,  XV.,  411,  that  Julius  still  feared  that  a  French 
Anti-pope  might  be  set  up.  The  same  Reports  also  shew  {loc.  ctt.,  344- 
350)  that  his  first  object  in  allying  himself  with  Maximilian  was  to  secure 
a  complete  victory  over  the  schismatics. 


428  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

Emperor  repudiating  the  schism  of  Pisa,  and  announcing 
his  adhesion  to  the  Lateran  Council,  and  at  the  same  time 
made  his  profession  of  obedience  to  the  Pope  in  his  own 
name  and  that  of  his  colleague  Alberto  da  Carpi.  At  the 
close  of  the  proceedings  the  Bishop  of  Forli  read  a  Papal 
Bull  again  declaring  all  the  acts  of  the  Pisan  Council  null 
and  void,  laying  France  under  Interdict,  and  appointing 
the  loth  of  December  for  the  next  sitting.* 

Encouraged  by  his  recent  successes,  the  Pope  now  deter- 
mined to  lay  the  axe  to  the  root  of  the  schismatic  move- 
ment in  France.  It  was  decided  that  proceedings  should 
be  commenced  against  the  Pragmatic  Sanction.  It  had,  in 
fact,  become  urgently  necessary  to  do  away  with  this  law, 
which  had  been  revived  by  Louis  XII.  No  lasting  triumph 
of  the  Church  over  these  schismatic  tendencies  was  possible 
as  long  as  it  remained  in  force.f 

The  fourth  sitting  of  the  Council  was  held  under  the 
presidency  of  the  Pope  himself  on  the  loth  of  Decem- 
ber. Nineteen  Cardinals,  96  Patriarchs,  Archbishops,  and 
Bishops,  4  Abbots,  and  4  Generals  of  religious  Orders 
were  present,  besides  the  representatives  of  the  Emperor^ 
the  King  of  Spain,  the  Florentines,  and  the  Swiss  Confedera- 
tion. The  first  business  was  the  reading  of  the  letter  from 
the  Venetian  Government  of  10th  April,  15 12,  accrediting 
Francesco  Foscari  as  their  representative  at  the  Council ; 
and  after  this  Louis  XL's  letter  of  27th  November,  146 1,]: 
on  the  abolition  of  the  Pragmatic  Sanction.  Upon  this 
a  monition  was  issued,  summoning  all   upholders  of  the 

*  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  525  seq.  The  Report  in  Sanuto,  XV., 
359  seq.,  384  seq.,  should  be  added  to  the  references  there  given.  Lang 
had  another  conversation  with  the  Pope  after  the  sitting,  and  then, 
without  returning  to  his  residence  at  the  Orsini  Palace  on  Monte 
Giordano,  started  at  once  for  Milan.     Loc.  clL,  384. 

t  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  528. 

X  Cf.  Pastor,  Hist.  Popes,  III.,  138  seq. 


PANEGYRIC  ON   THE   POPE.  429 

Sanction  in  France,  whether  laymen  or  ecclesiastics,  to 
appear  before  the  Council  within  sixty  days  to  give  an 
account  of  their  conduct.  The  fifth  sitting  of  the  Council 
was  fixed  for  the  i6th  February,  15 13,  at  the  close  of  this 
term,  and  at  it  the  Pragmatic  Sanction  would  be  dealt  with 
and  resolutions  in  regard  to  it  adopted,  in  accordance  with 
Canon  Law.  A  special  commission  was  appointed  to 
institute  the  necessary  preliminary  investigations.  Then 
a  Bull  was  read  confirming  former  Papal  decrees  on  the 
Pragmatic  Sanction,  the  nullity  of  the  acts  of  the  Pisan 
Council,  and  the  reform  of  the  Court  officials.  The  address 
at  this  Council,  the  last  at  which  Julius  II.  was  present, 
was  delivered  by  the  Apostolical  Notary  Cristoforo  Mar- 
cello  of  Venice.  It  substantially  consisted  of  an  enthu- 
siastic panegyric  on  the  Pope.  "Julius  II.,"  the  speaker 
said,  "  in  a  most  just  war  against  an  enemy  far  stronger 
than  himself,  had  personally  undergone  the  extremes  of 
heat  and  cold,  all  sorts  of  fatigues,  sleepless  nights,  sickness, 
and  even  danger  of  death  without  flinching.  At  his  own 
expense,  with  unexampled  generosity,  he  had  equipped  an 
army,  liberated  Bologna,  driven  the  enemy  (the  French) 
out  of  Italy,  subdued  Reggio,  Parma,  and  Piacenza,  brought 
joy  and  peace  to  his  country,  and  earned  for  himself  an 
immortal  name.  Still  greater  was  the  glory  that  awaited 
him  at  this  present  time  in  the  works  of  peace,  the  reform 
and  exaltation  of  the  Church,  which  was  groaning  under  so 
many  evils  and  threatened  by  traitors  within  and  enemies 
without ;  which  had  brought  up  children  who  despised  her, 
and  had  so  often  poured  forth  her  complaint  in  mournful 
chants,  but  now  raised  her  eyes  full  of  joy  and  hope  to 
the  bridegroom  who  had  come  to  deliver  her.  The  Pope 
would  be  her  physician,  pilot,  husbandman,  in  short,  her  all 
in  all,  almost  as  though  God  were  again  on  earth."  * 
*  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  528-531,  in  referring  to   Marcello's  con- 


430  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

Certainly  Julius  II.  had  good  cause  to  be  satisfied  with 
the  splendid  successes  of  the  last  half-year.  Nevertheless, 
both  as  an  Italian  and  as  a  Pope,  the  preponderance  of 
Spain  in  Italy  could  not  but  fail  to  be  a  source  of  anxiety 
and  vexation  to  him.  The  knowledge  that  this  was 
"  largely  due  to  his  own  action  must  have  made  the  trial  all 
the  greater,  and  the  prospect  for  the  future  was  not  improved 
by  the  fact  that  the  heir-presumptive  of  the  King  of  Spain 
was  also  heir-presumptive  of  the  Emperor  in  whose  hands 
so  large  a  portion  of  Venetian  territory  was  now  gathered."* 
In  his  near  surroundings  on  all  sides  Julius  could  not 
escape  from  the  consciousness  of  Spanish  influence.  He 
felt  it  in  his  dealings  with  the  Colonna,  at  Florence,  in 
Siena,  and  in  Piombino,  and  an  utterance  of  his,  preserved 
by  Jovius,  shews  how  it  galled  him.  Cardinal  Grimani,  in 
conversation  with  him  one  day,  made  an  allusion  to  the 
foreign  sovereignty  in  Naples,  and  the  Pope,  striking  the 
ground  with  his  stick,  exclaimed  :  "  If  God  grants  me  life 
I  will  free  the  Neapolitans  from  the  yoke  which  is  now 
on  their  necks."-]-     No  doubt  his  restless  spirit  was  again 

eluding  words,  remarks  :  "  This  phrase,  which  had  already  been  employed 
by  Gregory  II.,  Ep.  I.  ad  Leon.  Isaur.,  in  speaking  of  S.  Peter,  is  an 
oratorical  figure  borrowed  from  the  language  of  Scripture  (Ps.  LXXXI,,  i  ; 
St.  John,  X.,  lo,  34,  35).  In  terris  adjoining  Dens  indicates  the  limits 
of  its  application."  On  this  sittings  cf.  also  Sanuto,  XV.,  411  seq.^  and 
Rohrbacher-Knopfler,  423  seq.  The  truly  Catholic  Duke  George 
of  Saxony,  although  not  invited  to  the  Council,  fully  realising  that  the 
reform  of  the  Church  could  only  be  effected  in  the  closest  union  with  its 
centre,  appointed  the  General  of  the  Dominicans,  Thomas  de  Vio  (Cajetan), 
to  act  as  his  Procurator  there  (the  9th  Feb.,  1513)  ;  see  Brieger'S 
Zeitschr.,  III.,  603,  606  seq. ;  BUDDEE,  Nik.  von  Schonberg,  3. 

*  Reumont,  III.,  2,  43. 

t  Jovius,  Vita  Alfonsi.  Sanuto,  XIII.,  319,349,  shews  how  much 
the  power  of  Spain  was  dreaded  in  Rome,  even  at  the  end  of  1 5 1 1 .  Cf. 
also  Gisi,  89  seq. 


FAILURE  OF  THE  POPE'S   HEALTH.  43 1 

meditating  new  efforts  and  enterprises  when  the  body  at 
last  finally  broke  down. 

For  a  long  time  past  Julius  II.  had  been  ailing.  He  had 
never  wholly  recovered  from  his  serious  illness  in  August 
15 1 1,  although  his  iron  will  enabled  him  to  conceal  his 
sufferings  so  effectually  that  even  those  who  were  constantly 
in  contact  with  him  were  for  some  time  deceived.  At  last, 
however,  he  had  to  confess  to  himself  that  his  days  were 
numbered.  On  the  eve  of  Pentecost,  15 12,  he  felt  so  weak 
after  Vespers  that  he  told  his  Master  of  Ceremonies 
that  in  future  he  would  not  attempt  to  officiate  in  solemn 
functions,  he  had  not  strength  enough  to  go  through  the 
ceremonial.  When  some  of  the  Cardinals  congratulated 
him  on  the  freshness  of  his  complexion  and  said  he  looked 
younger  than  he  had  done  ten  years  earlier,  he  said  to  de 
Grassis :  "  They  are  flattering  me  ;  I  know  better ;  my 
strength  diminishes  from  day  to  day  and  I  cannot  live 
much  longer.  Therefore  I  beg  you  not  to  expect  me  at 
Vespers  or  at  Mass  from  henceforth."  All  the  same  he 
took  part  in  the  procession  on  Good  Friday.  On  the  eve 
of  the  Feast  of  S.  John  the  Baptist  he  made  a  pilgrimage 
to  the  Church  of  S.  Pietro  in  Vincoli,  which  brought  on  an 
attack  of  fever.* 

At  the  end  of  November  he  paid  one  of  those  short 
visits  to  Ostiaf  which  he  always  thoroughly  enjoyed,  and 
returned  so  much  refreshed  that  he  was  able  to  attend 
the  third  and  fourth  sittings  of  the  Lateran  Council.  But 
even  then  it  was  observed  that  the  Pope  was  singularly 
restless.  On  the  second  Sunday  in  Advent  he  went  to  his 
Palace  at  S.   Pietro  in  Vincoli  because  he  could  go  out 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Bollinger,  419  seq.     Cf.  supra,  p.  417. 

t  Julius  II.  went  down  to  Ostia  with  Lang  and  some  of  the  other 
Envoys  on  the  27th  Nov.,  15 12,  returning  to  Rome  on  ist  Dec.  *Acta 
Consist.,  f.  36.     Consistorial  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 


432  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

walking  there  with  greater  freedom ;  but  from  that  time 
forth  he  changed  his  residence  almost  daily.  One  day  he 
went  to  S.  Croce,  the  next  to  S'^  Maria  Maggiore,  then 
back  to  S.  Lorenzo  fuori  le  Mura,  or  S.  Eusebio ;  striving 
in  vain  to  escape  from  the  sense  of  distress  which  always 
pursued  him.  On  Christmas  Eve,  when  Paris  de  Grassis 
came  to  tell  him  that  it  was  time  for  Vespers,  Julius  said : 
"  You  had  better  tell  the  Sacred  College  and  the  Sacristan 
of  the  Palace  to  bring  me  the  holy-oils,  for  I  feel  very  ill. 
I  shall  not  live  much  longer."  *  The  Master  of  Cere- 
monies could  not  believe  that  he  was  so  ill  as  he  thought 
himself,  but  others,  as  the  Venetian  Envoy,  saw  plainly 
that  his  condition  was  serious,  though  his  strong  will 
upheld  him  and  enabled  him  still  to  attend  to  affairs  as 
usual.  At  the  end  of  December  one  of  the  Captains  of 
the  Swiss  Guards  predicted  that  the  end  was  not  far  off.f 
The  health  of  the  aged  Pontiff  was  no  doubt  unfavourably 
affected  by  the  constant  vexations  and  anxieties  caused  by 
the  Spanish  preponderance  in  Italy.  After  Christmas  he 
was  unable  to  leave  his  bed.  He  could  not  sleep  and  dis- 
liked all  food.  He  was  attended  by  eight  physicians  con- 
sidered the  ablest  in  Rome,  but  none  of  them  could  find 
out  the  cause  of  his  malady.j  "  The  Pope  is  not  exactly 
ill,"  writes  the  Venetian  Envoy  on  the  i6th  January,  15 13, 
"  but  he  has  no  appetite  ;  he  eats  nothing  but  two  eggs  in 
the  whole  day;  he  has  no  fever,  but  his  age  makes  his 
condition   serious;    he    is    harassed    with    anxieties."     In 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Bollinger,  426-427. 

t  Sanuto,  XV.,  412,  449. 

%  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Bollinger,  427.  Here  it  is  distinctly  stated 
that  the  Pope  had  been  ill,  and  kept  his  bed  ever  since  Christmas  ; 
thus  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  273,  is  completely  in  error  in  writing,  "  In 
the  last  days  of  January,  15 13,  the  Pope,  then  seventy  years  old, 
sickened." 


LAST   ILLNESS   OF   JULIUS   IL  433 

addition  to  his  uncertainty  as  to  what  King  Ferdinand 
meant  to  do,  JuHus  II.  had  reason  to  fear  that  the  Swiss 
were  preparing  to  ally  themselves  with  France.* 

All  the  efforts  of  the  physicians  failed  to  relieve  the  sleep- 
lessness and  want  of  appetite.  Though  they  recommended 
as  much  rest  as  possible,  the  Pope,  trusting  in  the  strength 
of  his  constitution,  would  not  give  up  his  work,  and  received 
both  Cardinals  and  Envoys  while  in  bed ;  -f  but  he  did  not 
conceal  the  truth  from  himself  that  he  was  slowly  passing 
away.  On  the  4th  of  February  he  called  Paris  de  Grassis  to 
his  bed-side  and  told  him  with  great  seriousness  and  resigna- 
tion that  his  end  was  very  near  ;  he  put  himself  into  God's 
hands,  recovery  was  out  of  the  question ;  he  thanked  God 
for  not  taking  him  away  suddenly,  as  had  been  the  case 
with  so  many  of  his  predecessors,  and  giving  him  time  to  re- 
collect himself  and  die  like  a  Christian  and  make  his  disposi- 
tions for  time  and  eternity.  He  had  confidence,  he  said,  in 
de  Grassis  and  believed  that  he  would  faithfully  carry  out 
all  his  wishes.  In  regard  to  his  funeral,  he  desired  that  it 
should  not  be  penurious,  but  at  the  same  time  that  there 
should  be  no  pomp  or  display.  He  did  not  deserve  honours, 
for  he  had  been  a  great  sinner ;  but,  nevertheless,  he  wished 
to  have  all  things  ordered  decently  and  not  to  be  treated 
in  the  unseemly  manner  that  some  of  his  predecessors  had 
been.  He  would  trust  all  these  matters  to  the  discretion 
of  his    faithful    servant.     He    then    gave    orders    on    all 

*  Sanuto,  XV.,  501,  503-504.  Bembo  also  says  that  his  appre- 
hensions in  regard  to  the  course  of  events  in  Italy  hastened  Julius's 
death. 

t  Sanuto,  XV.,  531-532  ;  cf.  547  ;  Frakn6i,  Erdodi  Bakocz 
Tamds,  128.  See  also  the  Portuguese  Report  in  Corp.  Dipl.  Port.,  I.,  187, 
and  Ludovicus  de  Campo  Fregoso's  *Letter  to  the  Doge  of  Genoa, 
dated  Rome,  the  22nd  Jan.,  .1513.  (State  Archives,  Genoa.)  Roma, 
Lettere,  Mazzo,  i. 

VOL.   VI.  2  F 


434  '  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

necessary  affairs,  entering  into  the  minutest  details,  and 
bequeathed  a  sum  of  money  to  be  given  to  needy  priests  to 
say  Masses  for  his  soul.* 

On  the  loth  November  the  Venetian  Envoy  reports  that 
"  the  Pope  has  shivering  fits,  and  negotiations  are  already 
beginning  for  the  choice  of  his  successor."  The  city  was 
in  a  ferment,  but  the  Cardinals  took  stringent  precautions 
to  preserve  order.  In  the  following  days  the  Pope  grew 
worse,  but  still  did  not  quite  give  himself  up.f  He  was 
able  to  give  orders  for  everything  which  concerned  the  fifth 
sitting  of  the  Council  (on  the  i6th  February),  and  madfe  it 
a  special  point  that  in  this  sitting  the  ordinances  for  the  pre- 
vention of  simony  in  Papal  elections  should  be  re-enacted  and 
made  more  stringent.  On  the  19th  de  Grassis  came  to  him 
to  learn  his  wishes  as  to  the  date  of  the  next  sitting.  "I  found 
his  Holiness,"  he  says,  "  looking  quite  well  and  cheerful,  as 
if  he  had  had  little  or  nothing  the  matter  with  him.  When 
I  expressed  my  surprise  and  joy  at  this,  and  congratulated 
him,  he  answered  smiling,  'Yesterday  I  was  very  near 
dying,  to-day  I  am  well  again.'  He  replied  to  all  my 
questions  as  far  as  he  could.  He  was  anxious  that  the 
Council  should  be  held  on  the  appointed  day,  whatever 
might  happen,  in  order  not  to  put  off  the  term  fixed  for 
the  submission  of  the  King  of  France  and  his  adherents  ; 
but  the  Assembly  was  not  to  deal  with  any  matters  except 
those  which  had  been  arranged  for  at  the  preceding  session. 
Cardinal  Riario  was  to  preside  as  Dean  of  the  Sacred 
College.  He  then  granted  Indulgences  to  me  and  mine, 
and,  to  shew  me  how  well  he  felt,  asked  me  to  drink  a 
glass   of  Malvoisie  with  him.     When'  I   told  this  to  the 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Bollinger,  428. 

t  Sanuto,  XV.,  554,  555.  On  the  excitement  in  the  city,  see  the 
Report  of  the  Swiss.  P.  Falk  in  Anz.  f.  Schweiz.  Gesch.  (1892), 
P-  375. 


HIS   FAREWELL   TO   THE   CARDINALS.  435 

Cardinals,  who  were  weeping,  thinking  him  at  the  point  of 
death,  they  could  hardly  believe  me."* 

The  improvement,  however,  was  only  transitory,  and  the 
faithful  de  Grassis  now  rendered  to  his  master  the  last  and 
kindest  of  services.  Hitherto  the  Pope's  attendants,  in  dread 
of  alarming  him,  had  put  off  sending  for  the  Holy  Viaticum. 
De  Grassis  now  insisted  that  this  should  be  done,  and  he 
relates  how  the  Pope,  having  previously  made  his  confes- 
sion, received  the  Holy  Eucharist  on  the  20th  of  P^ebruary 
with  the  greatest  devotion.f  After  this,  Julius  H.  had  all 
the  Cardinals  summoned  to  his  bed-side,  and  begged  for 
their  earnest  prayers  as  he  had  been  a  great  sinner  and 
had  not  ruled  the  Church  as  he  ought  to  have  done.  He 
admonished  them  to  fear  God,  and  observe  the  precepts  of 
the  Church.  He  desired  them  to  hold  the  election  in  strict 
accordance  with  the  law  and  the  prescriptions  in  his  Bull  on 
the  subject.  The  election  belonged  to  the  Cardinals  only, 
the  Council  had  nothing  to  do  with  it.  All  absent 
Cardinals,  with  the  exception  only  of  the  schismatics, 
were  to  be  invited  to  take  part  in  the  Conclave.  In  his 
own  person  he  forgave  these  latter  with  his  whole  heart, 
but  as  Pope  it  was  his  duty  to  exclude  them  from  the 
Conclave.  He  said  all  these  things  in  Latin,  in  a  grave 
and  impressive  manner,  as  though  he  were  addressing  a 
Consistory.  Then,  in  Italian,  he  expressed  his  wish  that 
the  Vicariate  of  Pesaro  should  be  granted  in  perpetuity  to 
the  Duke  of  Urbino.     After  this  he  bestowed  his  Blessing 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Bollinger,  429-430.  There  is  a  confusion 
here  in  the  clironological  order. 

t  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  DoUinger,  431-432.  The  Portuguese 
Report,  though  essentially  in  agreement  with  that  of  the  Master  of 
Ceremonies,  differs  slightly  in  saying  that  Julius  at  first  refused  the  Viati- 
cum, but  afterwards,  on  Sunday,  20th  February,  asked  for  It  himself.  He 
also  says  that  he  communicated  with  great  devotion  ;  Corp.  Dipl.  Portug., 
I.,  189-190.     Cf.  Sanuto,  XV.,  560,  565. 


43*5  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

on  the  Cardinals ;  all  were  in  tears,  including  the  Pope 
himself.*  He  met  death  with  wonderful  calmness  and 
steadfastness  of  soul.f  He  refused  to  accede  to  some  other 
wishes  expressed  by  his  relations  ;  thinking  only  of  the 
good  of  the  Church.  In  his  last  hours  his  attendants 
gave  him  a  draught  containing  a  solution  of  gold,  which 
had  been  pronounced  to  be  an  unfailing  specific  by  one 
of  the  quacks  of  that  day.| '  During  the  night  of  the 
20th-2ist  February,  15 13,  his  strong  spirit  passed  away, 
clear  and  conscious  to  the  last.§ 

The  body  was  immediately  laid  out  in  S.  Peter's,  and 
afterwards  placed  beside  the  remains  of  Sixtus  IV.  We 
are  told  that  the  people  flocked  to  S.  Peter's  in  extra- 
ordinary numbers,  and  an  eye-witness  says  that  as  much 
honour  was  paid  to  the  corpse  as  if  it  had  been  the  body 
of  S.  Peter  himself. ||     "Rome  felt  that  the  soul  which  had 

*  Paris  de  Grassis  iii  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  15 13,  n.  7-8,  and  Gatti- 
CUS,  434-435.  *Acta  Consist.,  f.  37b.  (Consistorial  Archives.)  The  Tes- 
tamentum  Julii  papae  in  the  Acta  Tomic,  II.,  192-193,  in  part  directly 
contradicts  some  of  de  Grassis'  statements,  and  is  evidently  a  later  com- 
pilation. The  long  speech  in  Bernaldez,  II.,  442  seq.^  is  also  unauthentic. 
A.  Ferronus,  Vita  Ludovici  XII.,  also  adds  a  good  deal  of  unhistorical 
embroidery  to  the  last  words  of  JuHus  II.,  a  fact  which  GUETT^E,  VIII., 
124  seq.^  has  not  observed.  For  a  good  criticism  on  Ferronus,  cf.  Ranke, 
Zur  Kritik,  140  seq. 

t  Venetian  Report  of  the  21st  Feb.  in  Brosch,  Julius  II.,  363,  from 
Sanuto,  XVI.,  f.  4.  Cf.  also  Senarega,  618-619,  and  LuziO,  F.  Gon- 
zaga,  51. 

X  Seethe  Mantuan  Report  in  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  107-108,  ed.  3, 
and  Luzio,  F.  Gonzaga,  51. 

§  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Dollinger,  432.  Cf.  Sanuto,  XV.,  557, 561  ; 
the  contemporaneous  notices  in  GORi,  Archivio,  IV.,  244  ;  Lettres  de 
Louis  XII.,  IV.,  58  ;  and  *Acta  Consist.,  loc.  cit.  Consistorial  Archives 
of  the  Vatican. 

II  See  the  *Reportof  N.  Gadio,  3rd  March,  15 13.  Gonzaga  Archives, 
Mantua. 


DEATH   OF   JULIUS   II.  437 

passed  from  her  had  been  of  royal  mould."  *  Paris  de 
Grassis  writes  in  his  Diary  :  "  I  have  lived  forty  years  in  this 
city,  but  never  yet  have  I  seen  such  a  vast  throng  at  the 
funeral  of  any  former  Pope.  The  guards  were  overpowered 
by  the  crowds  insisting  on  kissing  the  dead  man's  feet. 
Weeping,  they  prayed  for  his  soul,  calling  him  a  true  Pope 
and  Vicar  of  Christ,  a  pillar  of  justice,  a  zealous  promoter 
of  the  Apostolic  Church,  an  enemy  and  queller  of  tyrants. 
Many  even  to  whom  the  death  of  Julius  might  have  been 
supposed  welcome  for  various  reasons  burst  into  tears, 
declaring  that  this  Pope  had  delivered  them  and  Italy  and 
Christendom  from  the  yoke  of  the  French  barbarians."  f 

The  chronicler  Sebastiano  de  Branca  speaks  of  Julius  in 
the  same  tone.|  But  it  was  not  in  Rome  only  that  Julius  II. 
was  popular ;  the  great  services  which  he  had  rendered  to 
the  Holy  See  were  largely  appreciated  in  the  States  of 
the  Church  also,  as  may  be  seen  from  the  enthusiastic 
praises  bestowed  on  him  by  Bontempi  of  Perugia.§ 

At  the  same  time,  there  were  many  who  judged  him  very 
differently.  A  man  who  had  played  such  an  energetic  and 
effective  part  in  the  affairs  of  his  time  could  not  fail  to  have 
bitter  opponents,  who,  as  was  the  custom  of  the  day,  assailed 
him    after    his    death  with  stinging    satires ;  i|    but    setting 

*  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  io8,  ed.  3. 

t  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Dollinger,  432,  who  has  not  found  out  that 
this  passage  had  been  printed  long  ago  in  Gatticus,  435-436. 

X  Creighton,  IV.,  297. 

§  Fo  ricordo  con  le  lacrime  agl'  occhi  e  con  gran  dolore  nel  cuore  come 
papa  Giuiio  passo  da  questa  vita  presente,  la  cui  vita  quanto  sia  stata 
laudabile  et  onorevole  alia  Sedia  Apostolica  e  a  tutta  la  Cristianitk,  e  la 
sua  morte  quanto  sia  pemiciosa,  mai  dire  si  potria,  e  quanto  abbia  esul- 
tato  la  Chiesa  di  Dio  e  le  citta,  quale  lui  ha  ricuperato  alia  prefata  Sede 
Ap.  che  a  tutto  il  mondo  e  noto.     Arch.  Stor.  Ital.,  i  Serie,  XVI.,  2,  263. 

II  Cf.  Sanuto,  XV.,  561  se^.  ;  ROSCOE,  II.,  39  ;  N.  Antologia  (1894), 
pp.    35  se^.,  528  se^.     The  best  known  pasquinade  on  JuHus  II.  is  the 


438  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

aside  this  and  similar  ebullitions  of  party  hatred,  there  is 
no  doubt  that  the  verdict  pronounced  by  many  serious 
historians  on  Julius  II.  has  been  the  reverse  of  favourable  ; 
while  it  is  also  extremely  questionable  whether  this  verdict 
has  been  well-grounded. 

/  It  is  certain  that  the  very  general  acceptance  of  Guicciar- 
dini's  dictum,  that  Julius  II.  had  nothing  of  the  priest  in 
him  but  the  cassock  and  the  name,  is  an  injustice.  When 
the  Florentine  historian  made  use  of  the  phrase,  he  was 
telling  the  story  of  the  Pope's  winter  campaign  against 
Mirandola.*     Undoubtedly   at    that   time   Julius    II.    was 

work  entitled :  F.  A.  F.  Poetae  Regii  libellus  de  obitu  Julii  P.  M.  Anno 
Domini  15 13  (reprinted  in  HUTTENI,  0pp.,  IV.,  421  seq.).  This  work 
is  evidently  written  from  a  French  point  of  view  ;  by  many  Hutten  was 
supposed  to  be  its  author  {cf.  Strauss,  Hutten,  75,  ed.  2).  Luther 
attributed  it  to  Erasmus,  who  denies  it  in  a  letter  to  Campeggio.  From 
this  letter  we  gather  that  even  then  there  was  great  uncertainty  as  to 
who  had  written  it.  "  Some  say,"  Erasmus  writes,  "  Hispanus  quidam 
composed  it,  others  ascribe  it  to  the  poet  Faustus  Andrehni,  others  to 
G.  Balbi "  ;  he  has  made  many  enquiries,  but  can  get  no  certain  answer. 
Recent  investigators  have  been  equally  unsuccessful.  The  anonymous 
translator  of  this  Dialogue  (Julius  11.  Ein  Gesprach  vorder  Himmelsthiire ; 
translated  from  the  Latin  of  G.  Balbi.  Berlin,  1877)  attributes  it  without 
any  proof  to  the  Bishop  of  Gurk,  while  Balbi's  biographer,  Retzer,  con- 
cludes his  examination  with  Non  liquet.  G  eiger  inclines  towards  Erasmus, 
who  was  believed  by  many  of  his  contemporaries  to  have  been  the  author : 
see  Vierteljahrsschrift  fiir  Renaiss.,  IL,  131.  The  most  probable  hypo- 
thesis seems  to  be  that  it  was  written  by  the  poet  Publio  Fausto 
Andrelini,  an  ardent  partisan  of  the  French,  with  whose  opinions  the 
pasquinade  agrees;  see  Giorn,  d.  Lett.  Ital.,  XIX.,  188.  FoRSTER, 
Lucian  in  d.  Renaiss.,  in  the  Archiv  f.  Litt-Gesch.,  XIV.,  344,  362 
(Leipzig,  1886),  thinks  it  certain.  Knod,  Die  Bibliothek  zu  Schlettstadt, 
108  (Schlettstadt,  1889),  is  inclined  to  take  the  same  view,  but  his 
arguments,  as  Geiger  in  the  Zeitschr.  f.  vergl.  Lit.-Gesch.,  III.,  489, 
points  out,  are  not  entirely  convincing. 

*  GUICCIARDINI,  IX.,  c.  4.     The  generalisation  of  the  remark  is  mostly 
due  to  the  passage  in  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  67,  108,  ed.  3. 


JULIUS  II.  AS  AN   ECCLESIASTIC.  439 

carried  away  by  his  eager  temperament  to  violate  the 
decomvi  clericale  in  a  scandalous  manner,  and  deserves 
grave  blame  for  this  as  also  for  the  violent  outbursts  of 
anger  to  which  he  so  often  gave  way.*  But  to  assert  in  a 
general  way  that  Julius  was  "  one  of  the  most  profane  and 
unecclesiastical  figures  that  ever  occupied  the  Chair  of 
S.  Peter,"  that  "  there  was  not  a  trace  of  Christian  piety  to 
be  found  in  him,"  and'  that  he  was  so  utterly  worldly  and 
warlike  that  he  cared  nothing  for  ecclesiastical  obligations 
or  interests,  is  quite  unwarrantable  and  untrue.f 

The  Diary  of  his  Master  of  Ceremonies,  Paris  de  Grassis, 
who  was  by  no  means  blind  to  his  master's  failings,  shews 
in  numberless  places  how  faithfully  Julius  II.  fulfilled 
his  ecclesiastical  obligations.  As  far  as  his  health  would 
allow  he  was  regular  in  his  attendance  at  all  the  offices 
of  the  Church ;  he  heard  Mass  almost  daily  and  often 
celebrated,  even  when  travelling  and  when  the  start  took 
place  before  daybreak.  After  his  illness  in  15 10,  when 
still  unable  to  stand,  he  did  not  permit  his  weakness  to 
prevent  him  from  saying  Mass  on  Christmas  Day,  and 
celebrated  sitting,  in  his  private  chapel.  However  occupied 
he  might  be  with  political  affairs,  Church  functions  were 
never  neglected.^  In  everything  that  regarded  the  govern- 
ment of  the  Church  he  was  equally  exact.  His  name  is 
connected  with  a  whole  series  of  ordinances  and  admin- 

*  Cf.  supra,  p.  340  seq.,  and  p.  397.  Julius  also  sinned  from  time  to 
time  against  clerical  decorum  by  going  out  hunting.  But  Maulde, 
Machiavelli,  II.,  273,  is  wrong  in  supposing  that  fishing  is  also  a  for- 
bidden recreation  for  the  clergy. 

+  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  108,  ed.  3  ;  GiSl,  92  ;  and  Tschackert,  5. 
Cf.  Artaub  de  Montor,  IV.,  213. 

%  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  23,  24,  27,  38,  42,  46,  58,  76,  78, 
79-80,  98,  loi,  103,  105,  108,  109,  119,  121,  123,  124,  125,  127,  128,  130, 
13I)  138,  Us,  149.  151,  157,  158,  161,  166,  171,  190,  204,  207,  223,  227, 
233,  241,  242,  256,  268,  270,  271,  281,  286. 


440  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

istrative  enactments,  some  of  them  of  considerable  im- 
portance. 

Amongst  them  one  that  specially  deserves  mention  is  his 
severe  Bull  against  simony  in  Papal  elections,  designed  to 
prevent  the  repetition  of  the  disgraceful  practices  which 
were  resorted  to  at  the  election  of  Alexander  VI.  This 
document  is  dated  the  14th  January,  1505.  It  declares  all 
simoniacal  elections  from  henceforth  null,  and  pronounces 
the  severest  penalties  of  the  Church  on  all  guilty  of  such 
practices.  Further,  it  ordains  that  all  intermediaries  and 
agents,  whether  lay  or  clerical,  and  whatever  their  rank, 
whether  Prelates,  Archbishops  or  Bishops,  or  Envoys  of 
Kings  or  States,  who  are  implicated  in  a  simoniacal  election 
are  to  be  deprived  of  their  dignities,  and  their  goods  are  to 
be  confiscated.  The  Bull  forbids  all  promises  or  engage- 
ments to  be  contracted  by  Cardinals  or  any  other  persons 
in  connection  with  a  Papal  election  and  declares  them  null 
and  void.*  This  Bull  was  not  published  till  October  15 10, 
from  Bologna  at  the  beginning  of  the  war  with  France,  and 
when  it  had  been  approved  of  by  all  the  Cardinals  then 
present :  it  was  then  sent  to  nearly  all  the  Princes  of 
Christendom.f  At  the  Lateran  Council  it  was  again 
approved,  re-enacted,  and  published  as  is  stated  in  the  Bull 
of  i6th  February,  1513.+ 

In  order  to  carry  out  more  effectually  the  measures  taken 
by  Alexander  VI.  in  1501  for  providing  the  new  American 

*  Bull.,  v.,  405  seq. ;  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1506,  n.  i  seq. ;  Paris  de 
Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  214  seq.  ;  SaGMULLER,  Papstwahlen,  7  seq. 
Phillips,  V.,  2,  839,  erroneously  places  the  Bull  in  the  year  1506, 
although  Mansi  had  already  conclusively  established  its  date  as  1505. 
On  the  Theologians  who  drew  up  the  Bull,  see  Innsbr.  Zeitschr.  f. 
Kathol.  Theol.,  IV.,  342  seq.  ;  Stimmen  aus  Maria- Laach,  VI.,  412  ;  and 
The  Month  (March,  1895),  p.  324  seq. 

t  Sanuto,  XI.,  530  ;  Hergenrother,  VI II.,  533,  note. 

X  Bull,  v.,  536  seq. 


HIS   ZEAL   FOR   THE   MISSIONS.  44 1 

Colonies  with  Bishops,  Julius  II.  in  1504  created  an  Arch- 
bishopric and  two  Bishoprics  in  Espanola  (Hayti)  and 
nominated  prelates  to  these  sees ;  but  the  fiscal  policy 
of  Ferdinand  placed  all  sorts  of  difficulties  in  the  way  of 
the  sending  out  of  the  newly-appointed  Bishops,  and  after 
long  delay  and  much  tedious  negotiation  Julius  at  last  gave 
way  in  order  not  to  interrupt  the  work  of  conversion.  By 
a  Papal  Brief  of  the  8th  of  August,  1511,  the  arrangements 
made  in  1504  were  cancelled,  and  two  new  Bishoprics 
erected  in  S.  Domingo  and  Concepion  de  la  Vega  in 
Espanola,  and  in  S.  Juan  in  Porto  Rico,  and  placed  under 
the  Archbishop  of  Seville,  which  was  the  seat  of  the 
administration  for  the  colonies.*  When  in  1506  Christopher 
Columbus  the  great  discoverer  who  had  done  so  much  to 
enlarge  the  sphere  of  the  husbandry  of  the  Church  died, 
Julius  II.  interested  himself  in  favour  of  his  son  Diego  at 
the  Court  of  Spain.f 

The  Pope  equally  took  pains  to  promote  the  spread  of 
Christianity  in  the  regions  discovered  and  acquired  by 
the  King  of  Portugal  beyond  the  seas,|  to  which  many 
missionaries  were  despatched.  Preachers  were  sent  to 
India,  Ethiopia,  and  to  the  Congo.  In  the  year  15 12, 
Envoys  frorn  the  latter  place  arrived  in  Rome.§  For 
a  short  time  Julius  II.  cherished  magnificent  hopes  of 
the  conversion  of  Ismail  the  Shah  of  Persia,  and  tried 
to   induce  the    King   of  Hungary  to   interest   himself  in 

*  Cf.  Boletin  de  la  R.  Academia  de  Madrid,  XX.  (1892),  261  seq., 
272  seq.^  292  seq.,  and  Ehrle'S  article,  cited  supra,  p.  161.  Julius  con- 
firmed the  partition  of  this  colonial  possession  agreed  upon  between 
Spain  and  Portugal  in  the  Treaty  of  Tordesillas  on  the  25th  Jan.,  1506. 
See  Baum,  26. 

t  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1507,  n.  23;  Hergenrother,  VIII., 
348. 

X   SCHAFER,  III.,  83. 

§  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  405-406. 


442  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

the  question,  but  these  bright  dreams  were  soon  dis- 
pelled.* 

The  Pope  shewed  his  interest  in  the  maintenance  of  the 
purity  of  the  doctrines  of  the  Church  by  appointing  Inquisi- 
tors for  the  Diocese  of  Toul,-|-  for  the  kingdom  of  Naples,| 
and  for  Benevento,§  and  admonishing  them  to  act  with 
decision. 

He  interested  himself  in  the  conversion  of  the  Bohemian 
sectaries,  and  to  facilitate  this  permitted  them  to  take  part 
in  Catholic  worship.  On  the  other  hand,  he  took  strong 
measures  to  put  down  the  Picards.ii  A  new  doctrine,  put 
forward  by  Piero  de'  Lucca,  on  the  Incarnation  of  Christ, 
was  carefully  examined  by  the  Pope's  orders,  with  the  result 
that  it  was  solemnly  condemned  on  the  7th  September, 
15 1 1. IT  In  Bologna  in  1508  a  heretical  monk  who  had 
been  guilty  of  sacrilege  was  burnt.**  In  Switzerland  four 
Dominicans  who  had  imposed  on  the  people  by  false 
miracles  were  executed  by  his  orders  ;  and  in  Rome  in 
1503,  and  again  in  15 13,  he  took  measures  to  repress  the 
Maranas.-f"|-     In  Spain  and  elsewhere  he  did  his  best  to  put 

*  ZiNKEISEN,  II.,  557. 

t  Bull.  Ord.  P.raedic,  IV.,  217. 

t  ^Letter  to  Barnaba  [Capograsso]  ord.  praedic.  in  regno  Neapolit. 
heret.  pravit.  inquisit.  Dat.  u.  s.  (24th  April,  1505).  *Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  293. 
(Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican.)     Cf.  Amabile,  I.,  96  seq. 

§  *Letter  to  Bentivolus  "  commiss.  noster,"  dated  the  29th  July,  1 505. 
*Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  349.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

II  Cf.  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  536,  and  Pieper,  Nuntiaturen,  45. 
IF  Lea,  III.,  603. 
**  Sanuto,  VII.,  393. 

tt  Sybel'S  Hist.  Zeitschr.,  XXXVII.,  313  j,?^.,  and  Corp.  Dipl.  Portug., 
I.,  187.  Cf.  also  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1509,  n.  22,  and  on  their  hypocrisy 
Janssen,  Kritiker,  I.,  17,  and  Deutsche  Gesch.,  II.,  52  seq..,  ed.  15. 
Sanuto,  XV.,  216,  mentions  a  heretical  book  which  was  examined  by 
the  Pope's  orders.  Cf.  also  Fredericq,  Corp.  Doc.  Inquisit.  (Haag, 
1889),  n.  411,  and  Rev.  Hist.,  XLIIL,  165,  169. 


HIS   OPPOSITION   TO   THE   SPANISH   INQUISITION.     443 

a  Stop  to  unjust  or  too  severe  proceedings  on  the  part  of 
the  Inquisitors.* 

In  Sicily  the  Spanish  Inquisition  had  been  introduced  in 
1500,  and  in  15 10  Ferdinand  tried  to  establish  it  in  Naples, 
but  met  with  a  determined  resistance.  Serious  disturb- 
ances ensued  ;  the  nobles  and  citizens  combined  together 
in  opposing  it,  and  the  King,  not  feeling  himself  strong 
enough  to  carry  the  matter  through,  gave  way.  Julius  II. 
gladly  agreed  to  this  ;  in  fact,  the  effect  of  the  Spanish 
Inquisition  was  only  to  diminish  his  authority  ;  and  it  is 
not  certain  that  he  may  not  have  encouraged  the  Neapoli- 
tans in  their  opposition.-f  He  resisted  the  encroachment 
of  the  State  on  the  liberties  and  rights  of  his  Church,  not 
only  at  Venice,^  but  in  many  other  places  also,  and  in  con- 
sequence came  into  collision  with  the  Government  in 
England,  in  the  Netherlands  with  the  Regent  Margaret, 
in  Spain  with  Ferdinand,  with  Louis  XII.  in  France,  and 
with  the  rulers  of  Hungary,  Savoy,  and  others. § 

Julius  II.  was  by  no  means  blind  to  the  need  for  reform 
within  the  Church.     On  the  4th  November,  1 504,  the  subject 

*  See  Hefele,  Ximenes,  316.  Cf.  the  *Brief — Bertono  Facino 
Lacco  :  The  Inquisitors  who  have  been  endeavouring"  to  extort  an 
acknowledgment  from  the  petitioner  on  a  false  suspicion,  are  forbidden 
to  proceed  further  against  him,  as  he  is  prepared  to  clear  himself  on 
oath.  Dat.  Bonon.,  1506,  Dec.  15,  A"  4°.  (*Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  40^^.)  Cf. 
also  the  *Brief  of  the  5th  Nov.,  1509,  to  Antonius  archiep.  Granat.  et 
consil.  consihi  generahs  inquisit.  regnor.  Castelle  et  Legionis.  *Lib. 
brev.  27,  i.  730^.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

t  Amabile,  II  Tumulto  Napolitano  dell'  anno  15 10  contra  la  s.  Inquisi- 
zione  (Napoh,  1888),  and  II  Santo  Offizio,  I.,  93  seg.,  100  seg.,  118  seg. 
See  also  Lea,  II.,  287. 

t  See  supra,  301  seg. 

§  Cf.  BUSCH,  Tudors,  I.,  238  ;  Brosch,  162  ;  Raynaldus,  ad  an. 
1505,  n.  50  ;  *Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  42,  66,  67^,  210  ;  also  28,  f.  55.  (Secret 
Archives  of  the  Vatican.)  Cf.  also  *Brief  of  12th  March,  1505,  in  the 
State  Archives,  Florence. 


444  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

was  discussed  in  Consistory,  and  a  Commission  of  six 
Cardinals  appointed  to  deal  with  it ;  but  those  who  were 
behind  the  scenes  were  of  opinion  that  the  only  practical 
point  to  which  the  Commission  meant  to  give  their  atten- 
tion was  the  prevention  of  any  fresh  creation  of  Car- 
dinals !  *  The  exceptional  difficulties,  both  political  and 
ecclesiastical,  with  which  Julius  was  beset  on  all  sides 
throughout  the  whole  of  his  reign,  drove  the  larger  ques- 
tion of  reform  into  the  background  ;  but  they  did  not 
hinder  him  from  instituting  many  useful  and  salutary 
changes  in  individual  cases,  especially  in  convents.  The 
Pope  shewed  his  strong  interest  in  the  Dominican  Order 
by  a  series  of  enactments  for  the  renovation  of  their  con- 
vents in  Italy,  France,  and  Ireland.-j-  He  forbade  Domini- 
can and  Franciscan  friars  who  were  pursuing  their  studies 
in  Universities  to  reside  out  of  their  convents.|  He  estab- 
lished the  Congregation  of  S.  Justina  on  a  new  footing, 
which  was  of  the  greatest  advantage  to"  it.  The  venerable 
mother-house  of  the  Benedictines,  Monte  Cassino,  which 
had  been  bestowed  in  commendani,  was  returned  to  the 
Order  during  his  Pontificate.  In  the  year  1504  he  ordained 
that  the  Congregation  of  S.  Justina  should  from  henceforth 
bear  the  name  of  Congregatio  Cassinensis  :  §  and  in  1 506  he 
affiliated  the  Sicilian  Congregation  also  to  Monte  Cassino.il 
His  plan  for  reuniting  the  separated  branches  of  the 
Order  of  S.  Francis  into  a  single  body  was  one  which  also 
tended    in  the  direction  of  reform.     The  difficulties,  how- 

*  Dispacci  di  A.  Giustinian,  III.,  286  ;  cf.  289,  299. 

t  Bull.  Ord.  Praed.,  IV.,  217,  219,  221,  225,  241,  254,  260,  263,  26S. 
Cf.  the  *Brief  to  the  vicarius  generalis  fratr.  praedicat.  dat.  Bolognae, 
1507,  Jan.  28.     *Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  133. 

X  Bull.,  v.,  472  seq. 

§  Katholik  (i860),  I.,  203  ;  Stud.  a.  d.  Benediktinerorden,  XL,  583. 

II  Bull  of  1 8th  July,  1506,  in  the  State  Archives,  Palermo.  S.  Martino 
delle  Scale,  n.  913.- 


JULIUS   II.   AND   THE   RELIGIOUS   ORDERS.  445 

ever,  in  the  way  of  carrying  this  out  proved  so  great,  that 
he  was  forced  to  content  himself  with  obHging  all  the 
smaller  separate  communities  to  unite  themselves  with  one 
or  other  of  the  two  main  stems,  the  Conventuals  or  the 
Observantines.  At  the  same  time  he  expressly  ordained 
that  those  which  affiliated  themselves  to  the  Conventuals 
should  have  power  to  retain  their  stricter  rule.  Though 
most  of  the  smaller  communities  very  much  disliked  this 
measure  still  all  finally  submitted  to  the  Pope's  command.* 

A  Bull  was  issued  on  the  i6th  June,  1508,  dealing  with 
the  reform  of  the  Carthusians,  and  another  on  the  24th 
March,   15 11,  with  that  of  the   Italian   Cistercians.-j- 

In  England  Julius  II.  took  measures  for  remedying  the 
abuses  connected  with  ecclesiastical  immunities,!  and  in 
Basle  he  instituted  proceedings  against  the  Augustinian 
nuns  of  Klingenthal  for  immorality.|  Many  enactments 
were  issued  to  put  a  stop  to  the  proceedings  of  unauthorised 
persons  who  went  about  demanding  money  in  the  name  of 
the  Church.l]  He  also  did  what  he  could  for  the  cause  of 
morality  in  general,  by  the  unfailing  support  and  en- 
couragement which  he  bestowed  on  the  outspoken  mission 
preachers,  who  did  so  much  good  amongst  the  mass  of  the 
people.lT 

All  the  religious  orders  found  in  him  a  kind  and  help- 
ful friend.    The  Order  of  S.  John  Gualbert  of  Vallombrosa, 

*  Grammer  in  Wetze  und  Welte's  Kirchenlex.,  I.,  670,  ed.  2.  Cf. 
also  EUBEL,  Gesch.  d.  Minoritenprovinz,  278. 

t  Bull,  v.,  469  seq.^  496  seq. 

X  Ibid.,  404  seq. 

§  In  a  *Brief  of  28th  March,  1 505,  to  the  Burgomaster  and  Council 
of  Basle,  Julias  II.  informs  them  that  he  has  put  the  reform  of  KHngen- 
thal  into  the  hands  of  Bishop  Christopher  of  Basle.  Archives,  Basle, 
2540,  A. 

II  Cf.  Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  154,  294.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

IT  See  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  p.  180,  note*. 


446  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

the  Benedictine  Congregation  of  the  Blessed  Virgin  of 
Monte  OHveto,  the  Augustinian  Hermits  and  the  Regular 
Canons  of  S.  Augustine  were  specially  favoured  by  him, 
and  received  many  privileges,  He  confirmed  the  rule  of 
the  Franciscan  Society  of  S.  John  of  Guadelupe  in 
Granada  and  the  new  Statutes  of  S.  Francis  de  Paula,  and 
settled  many  disputes  between  various  religious  congrega- 
tions. He  had  a  great  liking  for  religious  orders  generally. 
During  the  Lateran  Council  many  of  the  Bishops  strongly 
urged  him  to  take  away  some  of  their  privileges,  but  this 
he  steadily  refused,* 

Amongst  other  ecclesiastical  acts  of  Julius  II.,  we  may 
mention  here  the  revival  of  the  constitutions  of  Boniface 
Vni.,  Pius  n.,  and  Innocent  VHI.  forbidding  persons 
appointed  to  benefices  to  exercise  any  rights  of  ecclesi- 
astical jurisdiction  or  administration  until  they  had 
received  their  Apostolic  Letters  ;j-  his  ordinances  against 
duelling ;  |  and  for  promoting  devotion  to  S.  Anne,§ 
the  Holy  House  at  Loreto,||  the  Passion  of  Christ,1[  and 
the  Blessed  Sacrament ;  **  and  the  introduction  of  the 
Processes  for  the  Canonisation  of  Bishop  Benno  of  Meissen 
and  S.  Francis  de  Paula.-j-j- 

*  For  details  see  Hergenrother,  VIII.,  537.  The  enactments  of 
Julius  II.  in  regard  to  Orders  of  Chivalry  are  in  Raynaldus,  ad  an. 
1505,  n.  6  ;   1507,  n.  29. 

t  Bull.,  v.,  408  seg. 

t  Bull,  v.,  474  seg.,  and  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1508,  n.  29  ;  i5o9,n.  35. 

§  See  Katholik  (1850),  II.,  1^7 seg.;  (1878),  I.,  67  ;  Beissel,  Reliquien- 
verehrung,  134^^^.;  Schaumkell,  24. 

II  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1507,  n.  idseq.;  Tursellinus,  160^^^.,  ijo  seq.; 
ClACONIUS,  III.,  241. 
IT  See  Cod.  Dipl.  Sax.,  II.,  10,  367. 

**  Cf.  Piazza,  442  seq.;  Miguel  Antonio  Alarc6n,  Biografia  de  la 
S.  Doha  Teresa  Enriquez,  llamada  "  La  Loca  del  Sacramento,"  49  seq., 
"Valencia,  1895. 
tt  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1506,  n.  42  ;  Maulde,  Origines,  67.     Julius  II. 


HIS   FOUNDATION   OF   THE   CAPPELLA   GIULIA.        447 

Another  work  of  his  which  was  of  great  value  in 
enhancing  the  solemnity  and  beauty  of  the  Divine  Offices 
in  S.  Peter's,  was  the  endowment  of  the  Papal  Choir  Chapel 
there,  which  from  his  time  has  in  consequence  been  known 
as  the  Cappella  Giulia.*  "  The  motives  which  induced  Julius 
II.  to  found  the  'Cappella  Giulia'  were  partly  the  desire  not 
to  depend  on  foreign  talent,  but  to  train  native  Romans 
as  singers,  and  partly  his  wish  to  create  a  preliminary 
school  in  S.  Peter's  for  the  Papal  Chapel,  and  finally,  in 
order  to  ensure  that  the  offices  in  that  great  sanctuary 
should  be  performed  in  a  manner  befitting  its  dignity/'f 

From  all  these  things  it  is  clear  that  the  reproach  that 
Julius  II.  was  so  absorbed  in  the  building  up  of  the 
external  power  of  the  Holy  See  as  to  pay  hardly  any 
attention  to  the  internal  affairs  of  the  Church,  is  wholly 
unjust  and  untrue.  But  at  the  same  time  he  cannot  be 
exonerated  from  blame  for  having  granted  undue 
ecclesiastical  concessions  to  various  Governments  under 
the  pressure  of  political  considerations.  Such  was  the 
nomination  of  Cardinal  d'Amboise  as  Legate  for  the 
whole  of  France  in  order  to  conciliate  him  and  the  King ;  | 

also  gave  orders  for  the  examination  of  the  miracles  and  virtues  of 
Henry  VI.  See  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1504,  n.  33;  Hergenrother, 
VIII.,  408. 

*  Cf.  Sybels  Hist.  Zeitsch.,  XXXVI.,  162,  and  F.  X.  Haberl  in  the 
Vierteljahrsschrift  f.  Musikwissenschaft,  III.,235  seq.{\ZZ'j\\v\iO remarks  : 
Before  the  20th  Sept.,  1 870,  whenever  the  Pope  celebrated  mass  in  any 
of  the  Roman  churches,  the  music  during  the  mass  was  sung  by  the 
Cappella  Palatina,  but  the  solemn  processional  chant  on  entering  was  that 
of  the  Cappella  Giulia.  And  to  the  present  day  on  solemn  occasions,  as 
in  Holy  Week,  when  strangers  think  they  are  listening  to  the  Sistine 
Choir,  the  style  and  the  chants  are  those  of  the  Cappella  Giulia. 

t  C/;  F.  X.  Haberl,  loc.  cit,  249.  He  has  made  a  mistake,  however, 
in  the  date  of  the  Bull  on  the  Cappella  Giulia,  printed  in  the  Bull.  Vat., 
II.,  348  seq.,  putting  15 12  instead  of  15 13. 

X  Cf.  stipra,  p.  234  seq.    Maulde,  Origines,  132  seq.,  rightly  points  out 


448  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

the  granting  to  the  Spanish  Government  the  patronage  of 
all  the  churches  in  the  West  Indies,*  and  to  the  King  of 
Portugal  the  appointments  to  benefices  in  his  kingdom.f 
Concessions  of  a  different  kind,  but  many  of  them  far 
from  unobjectionable,  were  granted  to  Poland, ij:  Norway,  § 
Scotland,  ||  Savoy, T[  and  the  Swiss,  At  the  same  time 
Julius  II.  refused  the  extravagant  demands  of  the  Zurich 
Council,  having  warned  the  Swiss  beforehand  that  though 
he  was  willing  to  grant  them  ecclesiastical  privileges  he 
could  not  go  beyond  what  was  right  and  fitting.** 

As  regards  questions  of  reform  it  has  been  already 
demonstrated  that  Julius  was  by  no  means  inactive  in 
individual  cases,  and  especially  in  dealing  with  convents. 
He  was  far  too  clear-sighted  not  to  be  aware  that  much 
more  than  this  was  wanted.  The  reform  of  abuses  in  all 
departments  of  the  Church,  and  especially  in  the  Roman 

how  unusual  such  a  concession  as  that  of  making  Card.  d'Amboise  legatus 
a  latere  for  the  whole  kingdom  was. 

*  Bull  of  28th  July,  1508  ;  Coleccion  de  los  Concordatos  (Madrid, 
1848) ;  Hergenrother  in  Archiv.  fiir  Kirchenrecht,  X.,  15  ;  PhillipS- 
Vering,  VI IL,  200.  It  is  doubtful  whether  the  supposed  Bull  of  Alex- 
ander VI.,  dated  25th  June,  1493,  and  granting  to  the  Spanish  Kings 
the  patronage  of  all  churches  and  benefices  in  the  kingdom,  really 
exists.  See  Hergenrother,  loc.  cit.,  and  Phillips-Vering,  loc.  cit. 
On  the  extension  of  the  rights  of  Provision  granted  by  Innocent  VIII. 
to  the  Spanish  Government  for  Sicily  to  all  benefices  belonging  to 
Cathedrals  or  Collegiate  Churches,  see  Sentis,  102. 

t  Corp.  Dipl.  Portug.,  I.,  104  seq. 

X  Caro,  v.,  2,  960  seq. 

§  Paludan-Muller,  240,  289  ;  Hist.  Polit.  Bl.,  CVI.,  346  seq. 

1|  See  **Brief  to  Jacobus  Archiep.  Glasguen.,  dat.  Romae,  1509,  Juli 
28.     *Lib.  brev.  27,  f.  559.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

IF  SCLOPIS,  Antica  legislaz.  del  Piemonte,  484  ;  Lea,  I.,  425. 
**  Cf.  Geschichtsfreund,   XXXIII.,  13   seq.    (Einsiedeln,    1878),  and 
Rohrer,  on  the  so-called  Concordat  of  Waldmann  in  the  Jahrb.  f. 
Schweiz.  Gesch.,  IV.,  3-23. 


HIS   DESIRES   FOR   REFORM.  449 

Court,  was  the  primary  task  of  the  Lateran  Council,  as 
the  Pope  himself  in  June  15 11,*  and  again  on  other 
occasions,  repeatedly  declared.  Previous  to  its  opening  in 
March  15 12,  Julius  had  nominated  a  Commission  of  eight 
Cardinals  to  deal  specially  with  the  reform  of  the  Roman 
Court  and  its  ofificials.-f  On  the  30th  March,  15 12,  a  Bull 
was  issued,  reducing  the  fees  in  various  departments,  and 
intended  to  check  abuses  practised  by  officials  of  the 
Court.J  The  rest  was  to  be  settled  by  the  Council.  It  is 
hardly  fair  to  accuse  Julius  of  indifference  on  this  point, 
because  he  was  interrupted  by  death  just  at  the  time  that 
he  was  beginning  to  take  the  question  seriously  in  hand.§ 
"  It  may,  of  course,  be  asked  whether  it  would  not  have 
been  better  to  have  begun  with  the  internal  reformation 
of  the  Church,  and  then  proceed  to  work  for  her  external 
aggrandisement."  The  answer  is  obvious.  The  conditions 
created  by  the  Borgia  were  such  that,  before  the  new  Pope 
could  do  anything  else,  it  was  absolutely  necessary  to 
secure  some  firm  ground  to  stand  upon.  How  could  a 
powerless  Pope,  whose  own  life  even  was  not  secure,  attempt 
to  attack  questions  of  reform  in  which  so  many  conflicting 
interests  were  involved?  Julius  II.  saw  plainly  that  his 
first  official  duty  was  the  restoration  of  the  States  of  the 
Church  in  order  to  secure  the  freedom  and  independence 
of  the  Holy  See.  _,. 

He  was  firmly  convinced  that  no  freedom  in  the  Church 
was  possible,  unless  she  could  secure  an  independent 
position,  by  means  of  her  temporal  possessions.     On  his 

*  Sanuto,  XII.,  243. 

t  See  Brief,  dat.  loth  Mar.,  15 12,  in  Desjardins,  II.,  575  ;  Rayn AL- 
DUS, ad  an.  1512,  n.  31  ;  and  Corp.  Dipl.  Portug.,  I.,  153  seq. 

X  A  copy  of  this  document  is  in  the  State  Archives,  Bologna. 

§  In  his  last  Bull  of  19th  Feb.,  1513,  the  Pope  mentions  his  plans  of 
Reform.     Bull.  Vat,  II.,  349. 

VOL.   VI.  2  G 


450  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

death-bed  he  declared  that  the  whole  course  of  his  reign 
had  been  so  thickly  strewn  with  anxieties  and  sorrows, 
that  it  had  been  a  veritable  martyrdom.*  This  clearly 
proves  that,  as  far  as  his  wars  were  concerned,  his 
conscience  did  not  reproach  him ;  he  had  no  doubt  of  this 
necessity,  and  his  motives  were  honest  and  pure. 

It  is,  however,  objected,  the  Vicar  of  Christ  should  not 
be  a  warrior.  This  objection  completely  ignores  the  two- 
fold nature  of  the  position  created  for  the  Papacy  by  its 
historical  development.  Ever  since  the  8th  Century  the 
Popes,  besides  being  Vicars  of  Christ,  had  also  been 
temporal  princes.  As  such  they  were  compelled,  when 
necessary,  to  defend  their  rights  against  attacks,  and  to 
make  use  of  arms  for  the  purpose.  During  the  course  of 
the  Middle  Ages  the  great  Popes  were  again  and  again 
placed  in  this  predicament.  Even  a  Saint  like  Leo  IX. 
betook  himself  to  his  camp  without  scruple.  Of  course  it 
is  taken  for  granted  that  the  war  is  a  just  one,  and  for 
purposes  of  defence  and  not  of  aggression.f  This  was 
eminently  the  case  in  regard  to  the  wars  of  Julius  II.  It 
is  undeniable  that  when  he  ascended  the  Throne  the  rights 
of  the  States  of  the  Church  had  been  seriously  violated, 
and  that  later  the  liberty  of  the  Holy  See  was  in  the 
greatest  danger  from  its  enemies.  At  that  time  it  was 
clearly  a  case  of  being  "  either  anvil  or  hammer."J  Thus 
it  was  possible  for  Julius  II.  not  only  openly  to  avow  his 
intentions  but  also  to  maintain  that  his  cause  was  just. 

*  Rayn ALDUS,  ad  an.  1513,  n.  9. 

t  Cf.  Bellarmine's  treatise,  De  Potestate  S.  Pontif.,  c.  n.,  printed 
in  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1513,  n.  12.  See  also  Novaes,  IV.,  162  seq.,  and 
De  Maistre,  Du  Papa,  210  seq,  Inghirami's  contemporaneous  remarks 
on  the  question  are  interesting  ;  see  Fea,  Notizie,  59  ;  Jovius,  De  Vita 
Leonis  X.,  lib.  II.,  33. 

X  BURCKHARDT,  Cultur,  I.,  112,  ed.  3,  with  express  reference  to 
Julius  II. 


NECESSITY   OF   THE   TEMPORAL   POWER.  45 1 

The  world  of  that  day  appreciated  the  recovery  of  the 
States  of  the  Church  as  a  noble  and  religious  enter- 
prise.* 

If  the  necessity  of  the  temporal  power  is  admitted,  then 
the  Head  of  the  Church  cannot  be  blamed  for  defending 
his  rights  with  secular  weapons ;  j-  but  of  course  this 
necessity  is  denied,  and  was  denied,  though  only  by  a  small 
number,  even  in  his  own  day.  Vettori  maintains  that  in 
the  interests  of  religion  the  ministers  of  the  Church,  includ- 
ing her  Head,  ought  to  be  excluded  from  all  temporal  cares 
or  authority  over  worldly  things.J  The  truth  that  the 
care  and  preservation  of  the  States  of  the  Church  entails 
a  danger  of  secularisation  for  the  clergy  lies  at  the  root 
of  this  view.  But  though  this  danger  exists,  the  perils  and 
impossibilities  for  the  Holy  See  and  for  the  whole  Church 
of  the  opposite  situation  are  so  great  that  no  Pope  would 
be  justified  in  allowing  her  temporal  possession  to  be  taken 
away  from  her.  Even  such  a  man  as  Guicciardini,  who  on 
the  whole  in  his  judgment  of  Julius  II.  inclines  to  agree 
with  Vettori,§  is  found  in  another  place  to  admit  that, 
though  in  itself  it  would  be  a  good  thing  if  the  Pope 
had  no  temporal  sovereignty,  still,  the  world  being  what 
it  is,  a  powerless  Head  of  the  Church  would  be  very 
likely  to  find  himself  seriously  hampered  in  the  exercise 

*  Ranke,  Papste,  I.,  37,  ed.  6. 

t  Practically  those  who  reproach  Julius  II.  with  his^  wars,  do  so  because 
they  contest  the  necessity  of  the  temporal  power.  Cf.  Gregorovius, 
VIII.,  no,  ed.  3.  The  writer  of  a  review  of  Brosch,  in  the  Allg.  Zeit. 
(1878),  n.  73  Suppl.,  remarks  :  "The  only  point  that  one  can  blame  in 
Julius  II.  is  the  end  that  he  proposed,  the  founding  (really  the  restora- 
tion) of  the  States  of  the  Church,  in  fact,  that  he  was  more  of  a  temporal 
prince  than  a  spiritual  ruler.  But  all  in  all  he  was  a  great  man,  and  a 
unique  figure  in  the  series  of  the  Popes." 

X  Vettori,  ed.  Reumont,  304. 

§  Reumont,  III.,  i,  49. 


452  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

of  his    spiritual    office,   or    indeed    reduced    to    absolute 
impotence.* 

As  a  matter  of  fact  this  was  a  time  in  which  no  respect 
seemed  to  be  paid  to  anything  but  material  force,  and  the 
secular  powers  were  striving  on  all  sides  to  subjugate  the 
Church  to  the  State.  Purely  ecclesiastical  questions  were 
regarded  merely  as  counters  in  the  game  of  politics,  and 
the  Popes  were  obliged  to  consolidate  their  temporal 
possessions  in  order  to  secure  for  themselves  a  standing 
ground  from  which  they  could  defend  their  spiritual 
authority.  As  practical  politicians  they  thought  and  acted 
in  accordance  with  the  views  of  one  of  the  speakers  at  the 
Council  of  Basle,  who  made  this  remarkable  confession  : 
"  I  used  formerly  often  to  agree  with  those  who  thought  it 
would  be  better  if  the  Church  were  deprived  of  all  temporal 
power.  I  fancied  that  the  priests  of  the  Lord  would  be  better 
fitted  to  celebrate  the  divine  mysteries,  and  that  the  Princes 
of  the  world  would  be  more  ready  to  obey  them.  Now, 
however,  I  have  found  out  that  virtue  without  power  will 
only  be  mocked,  and  that  the  Roman  Pope  without  the 
patrimony  of  the  Church  would  be  a  mere  slave  of  the 
Kings  and  Princes."f  Such  a  position  appeared  intolerable 
to  Julius  II.  Penetrated  with  the  conviction  that,  in  order 
to  rule  the  Church  with  independence,  the  Pope  must  be 
his  own  master  in  a  territory  of  his  own,  he  set  himself 
with  his  whole  soul  to  the  task  of  putting  a  stop  to  the 
dismemberment  of  the  temporal  possessions  of  the  Holy 

*  GUICCIARDINI,  Opere  inedite,  I.,  389.  It  is  worth  noting  that  in 
this  passage,  the  Florentine  historian  who  has  so  little  love  to  the  Popes 
approaches  Bellarmine's  view  ;  the  latter  writes  :  Propter  malitiam  tem- 
porum  experientia  clamat,  non  solum  utiliter,  sed  etiam  necessario  ex 
singulari  Dei  providentia  donatos  fuisse  Pontifici  .  .  .  temporales  aliquos 
principatus.     De  Rom.  Pontif.,  Lib.  v.,  c.  9. 

t  DiTTRiCH,  Contarini,  151  seq.,  298;  De  Leva,  I.,  303  seq.  Cf, 
Arch.  St.  Ital.,  4  Serie,  V.,  90. 


JULIUS   II.    THE   LIBERATOR   OF   ITALY.  453 

See  and  saving  the  Church  from  again  falling  under  the 
domination  of  France,*  and  he  succeeded.  Though  he 
was  unable  to  effect  the  complete  liberation  of  Italy,  still 
the  crushing  yoke  of  France  was  cast  off,  the  independence 
and  unity  of  the  Church  was  saved,  and  her  patrimony, 
which  he  had  found  almost  entirely  dispersed,  was  restored 
and  enlarged.  "  The  kingdom  of  S.  Peter  now  included 
the  best  and  richest  portion  of  Italy,  and  the  Papacy  had 
become  the  centre  of  gravity  of  the  peninsula  and,  indeed, 
of  the  whole  political  world."-!-  "  Formerly,"  says  Machia- 
velli,  "  the  most  insignificant  of  the  Barons  felt  himself  at 
liberty  to  defy  the  Papal  power;  now  it  commands  the 
respect  of  a  King  of  France."J  The  great  importance  of 
this  achievement  was  made  evident  later  in  the  terrible 
season  of  storm  and  stress  which  the  Holy  See  had  to  pass 
through.  If  it  would  be  too  much  to  say  that  without  its 
temporal  possessions  the  Papacy  could  never  have  weathered 
those  storms,§  it  is  quite  certain  that,  without  the  solid 
support  which  it  derived  from  the  reconstitution  of  the 
States  of  the  Church,  it  is  impossible  to  calculate  to  what 
straits  it  might  not  have  been  reduced  ;  possibly  it  might 
have  been  forced  again  to  take  refuge  in  the  Catacombs. 
It  was  the  heroic  courage  and  energy  of  Julius  II.,  which 
Michael  Angelo  thought  worthy  of  being  symbolised  in  his 
colossal  Moses,  which  saved  the  world  and  the  Church 
from  some  such  catastrophe  as^his. 

Thus,  though  Julius  II.  cannot  be  called  an  ideal  Pope, 

*  HOFLER,  Roman.  Welt,  256,  rightly  signalises  this  last  as  the 
greatest  danger. 

t  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  105,  ed.  3.  Cf.  Aegidius  von  Viterbo, 
ed.  Hofler,  387,  and  JOVIUS,  Vita  Leonis  X.,  lib.  III.,  55,  and  Vita 
Pomp.  Col.,  p.  144. 

X  It  is  interesting  to  note  that  Inghirami  speaks  in  a  similar  tone. 
See  Fea,  Notizie,  60. 

§  This  is  what  Creighton,  IV.,  167,  thinks. 


454  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

he  is  certainly  one  of  the  greatest  since  Innocent  III.* 
No  impartial  historian  can  deny  that  Julius  II.  in  all  his 
undertakings  displayed  a  violence  and  want  of  moderation 
that  was  far  from  becoming  in  a  Pope.  He  was  a  genuine 
child  of  the  South,  impulsive,  passionate,  herculean  in 
his  strength ;  but  possibly  in  such  a  stormy  period  as  was 
the  beginning  of  the  i6th  Century  some  such  personality 
as  his  was  needed  to  be  the  "  Saviour  of  the  Papacy."  This 
honourable  title  has  been  bestowed  upon  him  by  one  who 
is  not  within  the  pale  of  the  Catholic  Church,-|-  and  no  one 
will  be  inclined  to  dispute  it.  There  still  remains,  however, 
another  point  of  view  from  which  Julius  II.  is  a  marked 
figure  in  the  history  of  the  world.  He  was  the  restorer  not 
only  of  the  States  of  the  Church,  but  was  also  one  of  the 
greatest  among  the  Papal  patrons  of  the  Arts. 

*  Gregorovius,  Grabmaler,  125,  calls  him  "the  greatest  Pope  since 
Innocent  III."  Sugenheim,  391,  also  compares  him  to  Innocent.  Ar- 
TAUD-MONTOR,  IV.,  2 1 9,  says  of  Julius  II.,  that  as  a  monarch  he  carried 
off  the  palm  amongst  all  the  occupants  of  the  Chair  of  S.  Peter,  and 
though  this  may  not  make  him  one  of  the  greatest  (De  Maistre,  210), 
nevertheless,  it  certainly  entitles  him  to  rank  as  one  of  the  great  Popes. 
Cf.  also  Leo  and  Hase,  in  Mohler,  Kirchengeschichte,  IL,  523. 
Browning  also,  in  The  Age  of  the  Condottieri,  1409-1530  (London, 
1895),  speaks  very  appreciatively  of  JuHus. 

t  BURCKHARDT,  Cultur,  I.,  Ill,  ed.  3,  and  Redtenbacher, 4,  agree 
with  him.  Dollinger,  Kirche  und  Kirchen,  521,  calls  Julius,  "after 
Innocent  III.  and  Albernoz,  the  third  founder  and  restorer  of  the 
States  of  the  Church." 


CHAPTER  VIII. 

Julius  II.  as  the  Patron  of  the  Arts.  —  The  Rebuilding 
OF  S.  Peter's  and  the  Vatican. — Bramante  as  the 
Architect  of  Julius  II. — The  Sculpture  Gallery  in 
the  Belvedere  at  the  Vatican, —  Discoveries  of  Antique 
Remains. — Building  in  the  States  of  the  Church. — The 
Glories  of  the  New  Rome  created  by  Julius  II. 

Nothing  so  impresses  on  the  mind  the  sense  of  the  real 
greatness  of  the  Pontiff  who  occupied  the  Chair  of  S.  Peter 
from  the  year  1503,  as  the  amount  of  attention  that  he 
found  time  to  bestow  on  Art.  When  we  consider  the  in- 
cessant and  harassing  anxieties,  both  political  and  ecclesi- 
astical, and  all  the  labours  of  his  reign,  the  quantity  and 
quality  of  what  he  left  behind  him  in  Rome  and  elsewhere 
in  this  respect  are  really  amazing.  At  the  beginning  of 
the  i6th  Century,  Rome,  representing  as  she  did  the  art  of 
antiquity,  the  Middle  Ages  and  the  Renaissance,  was  already 
the  most  beautiful  and  interesting  city  in  the  world.*  But 
it  is  to  the  patron  of  Bramante,  Michael  Angelo,  and  Raphael, 
to  the  Pope  who,  even  as  a  Cardinal,  was  such  a  generous 
friend  of  artists,  that  she  owes  the  proud  position  that  she 
now  holds  of  being  the  ideal  centre  of  aesthetic  beauty  for 
all  its  devotees  throughout  the  whole  world.-|-  It  was  under 
his  rule  that  the  foundations  were  laid  for  most  of  those  mag- 
nificent creations    of  architecture,  sculpture,  and  painting 

*  Cf.  MiJNTZ,  Raphael,  261  seq. ;  ClAN,  Cortegiano,  165. 
t  See  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  pp.  328,  368,  and  supra,  p.  165. 


456  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

which  constitute  by  no  means  the  smallest  part  of  the 
magic  charm  of  the  Eternal  City,  and  are  a  source  of  never- 
ending  delight  to  both  thinkers  and  poets. 

The  aspirations  of  Julius  II.  were  in  perfect  accordance 
with  those  of  his  great  predecessors  Nicholas  V.  and  Sixtus 
IV.  He  took  up  their  work  where  they  left  it,  and  continued 
it  on  the  same  lines.  He  too  aimed  at  embodying  the 
religious,  regal,  and  universal  spirit  of  the  Papacy  in  monu- 
mental works  of  architecture,  sculpture,  and  painting,  and 
vindicating  the  intellectual  supremacy  of  the  Church,  by 
making  Rome  the  centre  of  aesthetic  development  for  the 
great  Renaissance  movement.  As  with  Nicholas  V., 
family  or  personal  aggrandisement  was  nothing  to  him. 
The  fruit  of  all  his  wars  was  to  be  reaped  not  by  his 
relations  but  by  the  Church ;  and  equally  all  that  "  he  did 
for  Art  was  done  for  the  honour  of  the  Church  and  the 
Papacy."  Thus,  though  under  Julius  II.  Roman,  like  all 
Italian  art  was  under  the  patronage  of  a  Court,  the  spirit 
of  that  patronage  was  wholly  different  from  anything  which 
prevailed  elsewhere.  The  importance  for  art  of  these 
"  Courts  of  the  Muses "  consisted  not  so  much  in  their 
character,  as  a  rule,  as  in  their  number.  The  encourage- 
ment of  art  and  of  artistic  culture  in  general  was  merely 
an  essential  part  of  a  princely  style  of  living.  In  contrast 
to  this,  the  artist  in  Rome  at  the  Court  of  Julius  II.  was 
called  upon  to  bear  a  part  in  the  realisation,  if  only  for  a 
few  years,  of  a  magnificent  dream,  the  perfect  fusion  of  two 
ages,  the  antique  and  the  Christian,  into  one  harmonious 
whole.  Bramante's  S.  Peter's,  Michael  Angelo's  ceiling  in 
the  Sistine,  Raphael's  frescoes  in  the  Stanze,  all  devoted  to 
the  idealisation  of  Christian  worship  and  doctrine  and  the 
supremacy  of  the  Vicar  of  Christ,  are  the  undying  memorials 
of  the  aim  and  purport  of  the  reign  of  Julius  II.* 

*  Springer,  102,  103  (I.,  142-43,  ed.  2) ;  cf.  also  in  Appendix,  N.  89, 


JULIUS   II.   THE   PATRON   OF  THE   ARTS.  457 

In  spite,  however,  of  the  close  resemblance  in  their  aims 
there  is  a  considerable  difference  between  the  spirit  of 
Nicholas  V.  and  that  of  Julius  1 1.  While  Nicholas  V.  patron- 
ised learning  quite  as  much  as  art,  with  Julius  even  more 
than  with  Sixtus  IV.  art  was  the  chief  interest.*     And  in  his 

Aegidius  of  Viterbo's  account  of  the  Pope's  *Declaration  in  regard  to 
the  building  of  S.  Peter's.     Bibl.  Angelica,  Rome. 

*  Julius  II.  was  undoubtedly  not  a  scholar.  Both  Nicholas  V.  and 
Leo  X.  did  much  more  for  literature  and  literary  men  than  he  did. 
Fea'S  attempt,  Notizie,  47,  to  rank  him  with  Leo  X.  in  this  respect  is 
quite  a  failure.  See  Tiraboschi,  VI.,  i,  266  seq.  ;  Reumont,  III.,  2, 
319,  360  seq. ;  and  MuNTZ,  Raphael,  273.  Nevertheless  Julius  II.  was 
far  from  disliking  learning  or  learned  men,  as  is  shewn  by  his  solicitude 
for  the  Universities  of  Perugia  (Ranke,  I.,  251,  ed.  6),  Lisbon  (Corp. 
Dipl.  Portug.,  I.,  56  seq.\  and  Rome  (see  Renazzi,  I.,  200  seq.  ;  Fea, 
68  seq. ;  and  in  Appendix,  No.  54,  *Brief  of  5th  Nov.,  1 507  (Secret  Archives 
of  the  Vatican),  as  well  as  the  patronage  he  bestowed  on  various  scholars, 
and  his  friendly  relations  with  them.  The  most  distinguished  of  these 
were  Sigismondo  de'  Conti  {cf.  Arch.  St.  Ital.,  4  Serie,  I.,  71  seq.  ;  XII., 
265  seq. ;  and  Gottlob  in  Hist.  Jahrb.,  VII.,  309  seq.\  Tommaso 
Inghirami  (see  Marini,  I.,  218  seq.  ;  Nolhac,  Erasme,  68  ;  Anecdot. 
Litt.,  II.,  129  seq.),  the  Saxon  Nic.  von  Schonberg  (Prof  of  Theology 
in  the  Roman  University  from  1510  ;  he  was  frequently  called  upon  to 
lecture  in  the  Pope's  presence  ;  cf.  Buddee,  3),  Sermonino  da  Vimercate 
(see  SiG.  de'  Conti,  II.,  390),  Laurentius  Parmenius  (see  infra\  Theod. 
Gaza  (see  Anecd.  Litt.,  IV.,  368),  Bembo,  who  was  generously  rewarded 
for  succeeding  in  deciphering  a  MS.  written  in  Tyrian  characters  (see 
Ep.  famil,  V.,  8,  and  ROSCOE,  II.,  42  seq.).  While  still  a  Cardinal,  and 
under  great  difficulties,  Julius  had  taken  considerable  interest  in  the 
collection  and  copying  of  MSS.  (Muntz,  La  Bibl.  du  Vatican,  5-6). 
From  this  one  would  naturally  gather  that  as  Pope  it  was  unlikely  that 
he  should  have  added  nothing  to  the  Vatican  libraiy,  though  the  lacunas 
in  the  records  in  the  Roman  State  Archives  and  the  Secret  Archives  of 
the  Vatican  make  it  impossible  to  prove  that  he  did.  This  seems  all 
the  more  improbable,  as  Albertini,  35,  says  that  Julius  II.  adorned  the 
library  of  S.  Pietro  in  Vincoli  and  that  of  SS.  Apostoli  with  paintings,  and 
also  decorated  his  own  private  library.  See  the  Report  of  the  Mantuan 
Envoy  in   Appendix,  Nos.  43  and  44.      (Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.) 


458  HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES. 

patronage  of  art  he  also  displayed  the  true  Revere  spirit, 
confining  his  plans  to  what  was  possible  and  practicable, 
and  not  giving  the  reins  to  his  imagination  to  the  extent 
that  his  two  predecessors  had  done.*  Splendid  as  his 
projects  were,  he  undertook  nothing  without  providing 
ample  means  for  carrying  out  his  plans."f* 

It  is  undeniable  that  Julius  II.  was  singularly  happy  in 
the  time  in  which  he  lived,  which  produced  such  men  as 
those  whose  services  he  was  able  to  command.  But  this 
does  not  lessen  his  merit.  He  deserves  lasting  honour  for 
his  sympathetic  appreciation  of  their  genius,  which  enabled 
him  to  attract  them  to  Rome,  and  to  stimulate  their  powers 
to  the  utmost  by  the  kind  of  work  which  he  demanded 
from  them  —  nothing  small  or  trivial,  but  monumental 
creations  corresponding  to  the  largeness  of  his  own  nature.^ 
Thus,  the  great  masters  found  free  scope  for  their  genius  in 

Under  Julius  II.,  G.  Maffei  of  Volterra,  Archbishop  of  Ragusa  {pb.  1510), 
and  Tommaso  Inghirami  were  Custodians  and  Prefects  of  the  Vaticana, 
also  Demetrio  of  Lucca  and,  after  his  death  in  151 1,  Lorenzo  Parmenio 
and  Jean  Chadel  of  Lyons;  when  the  latter  died  in  1512,  Romulus 
Mammacinus  was  his  successor  (MiJNTZ,  loc.  cit.^  11  seq.).  On 
Demetrio  see  Cian  in  the  Giorn.  d.  Lett.  Ital.,  IX.,  450,  note  4.  The 
extreme  liberality  with  which  MSS.,  since  the  time  of  Sixtus  IV.,  were 
lent  for  the  use  of  scholars  even  outside  Rome  (see  Vol.  IV.  of  this 
work,  458  seq.')  was  still  maintained  with  certain  precautions.  Julius 
found  himself  obliged  to  make  some  stricter  rules  in  regard  to  the  use 
of  documents  in  the  Archives  of  the  Camera  Apostolica,  as  the  privilege 
had  been  seriously  abused  (see  Muntz,  loc.  cii.,  15  seq.).  On  Julius's 
private  library,  cf.  ROSCOE,  II.,  47  ;  Cian  in  the  Giorn.  d.  Lett.  Ital., 
IV.,  450  ;  and  infra,  Chap.  10.  On  the  coronation  of  a  poet  under 
Julius  II.,  see  Luzio,  F.  Gonzaga,  40,  and  Creighton,  IV.,  274-275. 

*  See  Vol.  II.  of  this  work,  173  seq. 

t  Springer,  loc.  cit. 

X  Cf.  Muntz,  Raphael,  274  ;  Springer,  103;  Gsell-Fels,  Rom,  I., 
663.  See  also  Symonds,  Michelangelo,  I.,  128.  (There  was  nothing  of 
the  dilettante  about  him.) 


JULIUS  II.   AND  ARCHITECTURE.  459 

all  its  fulness,  and  nascent  talent  was  fostered  and  developed. 
The  home  of  Art  was  transferred  from  Florence  to  Rome. 
A  world  of  beauty  in  architecture,  painting,  and  the  plastic 
art  sprang  up  in  the  ancient  city,  and  the  name  of  Julius 
II.  became  inseparably  united  with  those  of  the  divinely 
gifted  men  in  whom  Italian  art  attained  its  meridian  glory. 
"  He  began,  and  others  went  on  with  the  work  on  the 
foundation  which  he  had  laid.  The  initiative  was  his ;  in 
reality  the  age  of  Leo  X.  belongs  to  him."*  It  was  through 
him  that  Rome  became  the  classical  city  of  the  world,  the 
normal  centre  of  European  culture,  and  the  Papacy  the 
pioneer  of  civilisation.-]- 

The  resemblance  between  the  spirit  of  Julius  II.  and  that 
of  Nicholas  V.  is  most  apparent  in  his  architectural  under- 
takings. The  laying  out  of  new  streets  and  districts,  the 
enlargement  of  the  Vatican  Palace,  and  the  erection  of 
the  new  Church  of  S.  Peter,  works  which  had  been  inter- 
rupted by  the  premature  death  of  Nicholas  V.,  were 
energetically  resumed  by  him. 

The  Florentine  architect,  Giuliano  da  Sangallo,  was  one 
of  Julius  II.'s  most  intimate  and  congenial  friends  in  his 
earlier  days  while  he  was  still  only  a  Cardinal.  It  was  he 
who  planned  the  magnificent  structure  of  Grottaferrata,  the 
buildings  at  Ostia,  and  the  Palace  at  Savona.  Giuliano 
shared  his  patron's  voluntary  banishment  during  the  reign 
of  Alexander  VI.,  and  during  this  time  (1494)  was  intro- 
duced by  the  Cardinal  to  the  French  King,  Charles  VI I  I.J 

*  Reumont,  III.,  2,  383  ;  cf.  Springer,  ioi  ;  Minghetti,  Raffaello, 
106  ;  and  VON  Geymuller,  344. 

t  Cf.  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  113,  ed.  3,  who  obsen'es,  "The  world- 
wide historical  atmosphere,  the  monumental  and  ideal  grandeur  of  the 
dty  banished  every  trace  of  provincialism  from  Roman  art,  and  im- 
pressed on  it  the  stamp  of  its  own  essential  greatness." 

X  Cf.  Pastor,  Gesch.  Papste,  II.,  627,  ed.  2,  and  MuNTZ,  Hist,  de 
I'Art,  407  ;  J.  de  Lauriere,  Giuliane  de  San  Galle  et  les  monuments 


4^0  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

It  was  not  to  be  wondered  at,  therefore,  if  when  Julius  II. 
became  Pope,  Sangallo  soon  appeared  in  Rome  to  recall 
himself  to  the  memory  of  his  old  master,  and  to  offer  his 
services.  He  was  first  employed  on  some  repairs  in  the 
Castle  of  St.  Angelo,  which  the  troubled  times  made  urgently 
necessary,  and  on  the  30th  of  May,  1504,  he  received  an  in- 
stalment of  pay  for  this  work,  to  be  completed  later  by  a 
larger  sum.*  After  this,  Julius  continued  to  make  use  of 
him  in  various  ways;  in  1505  he  made  a  drawing  for  a 
tribune  for  musicians  (Cantoria),f  and  he  seems  to  have  been 
the  Pope's  chief  adviser  at  this  time  in  all  matters  of  art. 
It  was  through  him  in  the  Spring  of  the  year  1505  that 
Michael  Angelo  and  Andrea  Sansovino  were  invited  to 
Rome.J  Sansovino  was  called  upon  to  erect  a  monumental 
tomb  to  Cardinal  Ascanio  Sforza  in  S'^  Maria  del  Popolo  ; 
Michael  Angelo's  task  was  a  tomb  for  the  Pope  himself. 
The  plan  which  the  great  sculptor  drew,  and  which  Julius 
approved,  was  of  such  colossal  dimensions  that  no  church 
in  Rome,  not  excepting  the  old  S.  Peter's,  could  contain  it 
Later,  it  was  thought  that  the  tribune  begun  by  Rossellino 
for  the  new  church  of  S.  Peter  might  be  adapted  to  receive 
this  monument.  But  this  had  first  to  be  finished  and  con- 
nected with  the  old  building  ;  and  thus  the  work  fell  into 

antiques  du  Midi  de  France,  in  Vol.  45  of  the  Mem.  de  la  Soc.  Nat.  des 
Antiquaires  de  France,  and  Redtenbacher,  97,  102.  All  that  now 
remains  of  the  Palace  of  Savona  besides  the  courtyard  is  the  northern 
facjade,  entirely  of  white  marble,  and  a  portion  of  the  offices  at  the  back. 
See  Gauthier,  Les  plus  beaux  edifices  de  Genes  et  ses  environs  (Paris, 
1850),  PL  64,  65;  Redtenbacher,  102;  Muntz,  Hist,  de  I'Art,  I,, 
199.     See  also  Schmarsow'S  Note  on  Albertini,  55. 

*  Von  Geymuller,  74. 

t  The  work  was  never  carried  out.  See  Redtenbacher,  98  seq. ; 
Von  Geymuller,  74. 

X  Springer,  Raffael  und  Michelangelo,  104  seq. ;  Redtenbacher, 
98 


BRAMANTE   IN    ROME.  46 1 

the  hands  of  the  architects.*  At  this  moment  the  great 
master  appeared  on  the  scene  to  whom  from  henceforth 
almost  all  Julius  II.'s  architectural  works  were  to  be 
entrusted.  This  man  was  Donato  Bramante,  who  had  been 
working  and  studying  in  Rome  since  the  year  1500. 

In  affording  to  "  the  most  original  architect  of  his  time  " 
the  opportunity  of  putting  forth  all  his  powers,  Julius  11. 
rendered  an  inestimable  service  to  Art.  Bramante  very 
soon  came  to  occupy  the  position  of  a  sort  of  minister 
of  public  works  and  fine  arts  at  the  Papal  Court ;  -j-  apart- 
ments in  the  Belvedere  were  assigned  to  him,  as  well  as 
to  the  famous  goldsmith,  Caradosso ;  |  the  great  architect 
accompanied  Julius  in  all  his  journeys  and  planned  all 
his  fortifications ;  to  him  was  entrusted  the  rebuilding 
of  the  Vatican  and  of  the  church  of  S.  Peter,  in  which 
a  suitable  site  was  to  be  provided  for  the  Pope's  tomb.§ 

*  Springer,  loc.  cit.,  105  ;  cf.  Von  Geymuller,  145  seg.,  and 
MuNTZ,  Hist,  de  I'Art,  II.,  384. 

+  Von  Geymuller,  24. 

X  Cf.  Costabili's  *Despatch,  dat.  Rome,  nth  Aug.,  1508,  who  reports 
that  at  that  time  alcuni  maestri  et  architectori  li  quali  sono  Abramante 
et  Caradosso  were  residing  in  the  Belvedere.     State  Archives,  Modena. 

§  The  account  which  follows  is  mostly,  though  not  quite  in  all  points, 
founded  on  the  results  of  Geymiiller's  researches,  which  are  extremely 
thorough,  though  in  several  particulars  JOVANOVITS,  82  seq..,  differs  from 
him  considerably.  Cf.  Redtenbacher'S  articles  in  Liitzow's  Zeitschrift, 
IX.,  261  seq.,  302  seq.  ;  X.,  247  seq.  ;  XL,  Suppl.,  829  seq.  ;  XIII.,  124  seq. 
(against  him  Jovanovits,  Zu  den  Streitfragen  in  der  Baugeschichte 
der  Peterskirche  zu  Rom.  Wien,  1878)  ;  XIV.,  Suppl.,  543  seq.  ; 
XVI.,  161  seq.  Redtenbacher  and  also  Burckhardt-Holtzinger 
(Renaissance,  125)  agree  with  Geymiiller  in  essentials.  It  is  naturally 
impossible  to  enter  into  the  details  of  these  difficult  and  complicated 
controversies.  Many  points  will  be  made  clear  when  Geymuller'S 
2nd  vol.  appears,  in  which  he  and  MiJNTZ  together  will  publish  all  the 
documents  relating  to  the  building  of  S.  Peter's.  Meanwhile,  cf.  MiJNTZ, 
Les  Architectes  de  S.  Pierre  de  Rome  d'apres  des  documents  nouveaux, 


462  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

It  is  impossible  to  determine  with  certainty  when 
Julius  II.  adopted  the  plans  for  the  new  S.  Peter's.  A 
writer  on  architecture,  who  has  made  the  study  of  the 
plans  and  projects  for  the  church  the  special  task  of 
his  life,  believes  that  the  design  of  rebuilding  S.  Peter's 
occupied  the  Pope's  mind  in  connection  with  the  restora- 
tion of  the  Vatican  Palace  as  early  as  1503.*  This  would 
quite  correspond  with  what  we  know  of  the  character  of 
the  new  Pope  ;  but  as  yet  we  have  no  contemporaneous 
testimony  to  support  this  view,  and  the  extremely  con- 
strained and  difficult  position  in  which  Julius  found 
himself  at  the  outset  of  his  reign  is  against  the  pro- 
bability of  his  having  immediately  contemplated  such  a 
work  as  this,  though,  considering  his  sanguine  tempera- 
ment, this  would  have  been  far  from  impossible.  It  is 
not  till  the  year  1505  that  unmistakeable  signs  appear 
that  the  thought  of  the  new  S.  Peter's  and  its  adjuncts 
had  taken  root  in   his    mind.-f     According  to  Vasari  the 

in  the  Gaz.  des  Beaux  Arts,  XIX.  (1879),  353  seq.  ;  XX.,  506  seq.  For 
earlier  works  see  Bonanni,  Hist.  Templi  Vaticani,  50  seq. ;  PUNGI- 
LEONl'S  Vitk  di  Bramante,  and  Plattner,  II.,  i.,  136  seq. 

*  Von  Geymuller,  81. 

t  In  his  zeal  to  defend  Bramante  from  the  suspicion  of  having  ousted 
Sangallo  from  his  post,  von  Geymiiller  goes  so  far  as  to  say  :  "  Bramante 
was  already  in  the  Pope's  service  before  Giuliano  arrived  (in  Rome), 
and  consequently  could  not  have  taken  measures  to  supplant  him." 
But  Redtenbacher  justly  remarks  that  as  yet  we  have  no  proof  that 
Bramante  was  in  the  service  of  Julius  II.  before  Sangallo's  arrival,  and 
that  on  the  30th  May,  1504,  the  latter  was  practically  the  Pope's 
architect.  See  LiJTZOw's  Zeitschrift,  XVI.,  162,  and  Redtenbacher, 
Architektur,  182.  Here  again  he  very  urgently  remarks:  "Even 
though  Bonanni,  on  whom  H.  v.  Geymuller  relies,  asserts  that  Julius 
had  planned  the  Vatican  buildings  as  early  as  1 503 ;  in  the  first  place 
Bonanni  is  not  a  very  trustworthy  authority  (he  ascribes  Raphael's  plan 
of  S.  Peter's  to  Bramante),  and,  secondly,  even  supposing  that  he  is 
right,  this  does  not  necessarily  involve  that  he  had  also  fixed  on  Bramante 


JULIUS   II.   AND   S.    PETER'S.  463 

deliberations  preliminary  to  the  work  constituted  a  sort 
of  duel  between  the  Umbrian  and  Lombard  tendencies 
of  Bramante  and  the  Florentine  spirit  represented  by 
Sangallo  and  his  protege  Michael  Angelo.  It  is  not  un- 
likely that  there  is  some  truth  in  this  statement,  as  Vasari 
knew  the  son  of  Giuliano  da  Sangallo  intimately  ;  but, 
on  the  other  hand,  this  author  is  often  confused  and 
inaccurate.*  However  this  may  be,  it  appears  certain 
that  as  soon  as  Julius  II.  saw  Bramante's  magnificent 
plan  for  S.  Peter's,  he  determined  to  put  the  work  into 
his  hands  ;  f  while  everything  else,  even  his  own  tomb, 
retreated  into  the  background.  Even  for  S.  Peter's  alone 
on  this  scale  the  means  at  his  disposal  were  not  sufficient. 
"  And  knowing  his  disposition,  no  one  can  be  surprised 
that    S.    Peter's  was   the  work    that    lay    nearest   to   the 

as  the  architect."  To  this  I  should  like  to  add,  that  in  his  very  meri- 
torious work,  Von  Geymuller  also  more  than  once  (pp.  81  and  345) 
cites  MiGNANTi,  II.,  II,  who  there  states  that  Julius  II.  determined, 
immediately  on  his  accession  to  the  Papacy,  to  rebuild  S.  Peter's.  He 
believes  that  Mignanti  "rests  his  assertion  on  unnamed  documents"; 
but  the  existence  of  these  documents  is  only  a  hypothesis,  no  one  has 
seen  then:i,  and  Mignanti  gives  no  reference.  In  addition  to  this,  as 
ReumONT,  in  1867,  in  the  Allg.  Zeit.,  N.  266,  has  observed,  historical 
criticism  is  not  the  strong  point  in  this  writer's  book  ;  in  fact,  it  contains 
historical  inaccuracies.  The  only  thing  that  is  certain  is  that  the  rebuild- 
ing had  been  determined  upon  in  Nov.  1505  (see  zn/ra),  and  until 
some  new  documents  turn  up  we  must,  as  Jovanovits,  43,  says,  content 
ourselves  with  this. 

*  Redten  BACKER,  1 83,  does  not  seem  to  have  noticed  this,  for  he 
speaks  of  Vasari's  narrative  as  trustworthy  throughout. 

t  Giuliano  da  Sangallo  felt  himself  aggrieved  and  went  back  to  Flor- 
ence, but  with  liberal  rewards  from  the  Pope.  An  old  German  legend 
represents  the  Pope  surrounded  with  a  multitude  of  models  for  S.  Peter's 
and  laughingly  begging  that  all  these  nuts  might  be  cleared  away  as  he 
had  but  one  church  to  build,  and  had  an  excellent  plan  for  that.  B. 
Ochini,  Apologen.,  Bk.  I.,  Apol.  23,  in  Burckhardt,  Renaissance,  112. 


464  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Pope's  heart.  His  preference  even  in  Art  was  always 
for  the  colossal.  Magnaruin  semper  molium  avidus  was 
said  of  him,  and  though  Michael  Angelo's  design  must  have 
satisfied  him  in  that  respect,  the  tomb  was  only  for  him- 
self, whereas  the  magnificent  Basilica  would  be  a  glory 
for  the  whole  Church.  For  Julius  the  larger  aim,  whether 
for  State  or  Church,  was  always  more  attractive  than 
^anything  that  was  merely  personal."  * 

In  the  history  of  the  building  of  S.  Peter's  in  the  time 
of  Julius  II.  there  are  three  distinct  periods.  The  first 
idea  (March,  1505)  was  to  build  a  Chapel  for  the  Pope's 
tomb.  In  the  second  period  (before  nth  April,  1505) 
the  completion  of  the  works  commenced  by  Nicholas  V. 
and  Paul  II.  was  contemplated  ;  in  the  third  (from  the 
Summer  of  that  year)  it  was  finally  determined  that  the 
building  should  be  on  entirely  new  line'^,  far  more  splendid 
and  more  beautiful.  Even  then,  however,  the  idea  of 
making  use  of  the  buildings  already  commenced  by 
former  Popes  was  not  abandoned,  and  the  attempt  was 
frequently  made,  but  they  were  only  utilised  in  a  frag- 
mentary way  as  portions  of  a  wholly  new  design.-j-  The 
immense  number  of  drawings  for  S.  Peter's  which  are 
still  extant,  shew  with  what  energy  the  work  was  under- 
taken. Some  of  these  were  executed  by  Bramante  him- 
self, then  sixty  years  old  ;  many  others,  from  his  instruc- 
tions, by  artists  working  under  him  ;  amongst  these  were 
the  youthful  Baldassari  Peruzzi  and  Antonio  da  Sangallo.J 

*  Springer,  Raffael  und  Michelangelo,  106. 

t  Von  Geymuller,  145  seq.^  373  seq. 

X  Ibid.,  157  seq.,  160  seq.  ;  cf.  98  seq.  This  writer  thinks  that  the 
influence  of  the  immense  number  of  studies  for  S.  Petei-'s  made  by 
Bramante  between  1505-6  was  so  great,  and  the  staff  employed  by 
him  in  his  office  or  in  the  building  so  large,  that  in  a  very  short  time 
many  young  architects  were  capable  of  carrying  out  less  important 
undertakings  in  the  S.  Peter's  style  of  the  master.     "Thus  we  see  the 


GRANDEUR   OF   BRAMANTE'S   DESIGN.  465 

For  a  long  time  all  that  was  known  on  the  subject 
was  that  the  outline  of  Bramante's  plan  was  a  command- 
ing central  dome  resting  on  a  Greek  Cross,  with  four 
smaller  domes  in  the  four  angles.  It  is  only  quite 
recently  that  modern  research  has  eliminated  out  of 
the  immense  mass  of  materials  afforded  by  the  collec- 
tion of  sketches  in  the  Uffizzi  at  Florence  (about  9000 
sheets),  a  series  of  studies  and  plans  for  S.  Peter's,  from 
which  Bramante's  original  design  can  be  determined. 
With  these  sketches  before  us  we  begin  to  realise  what 
the  world  has  lost  by  the  later  changes  in  what,  as 
originally  conceived,  would  have  been  an  artistic  creation 
of  perfectly  ideal  majesty  and  beauty. 

The  new  Basilica,  "which  was  to  take  the  place  of 
a  building  teeming  with  venerable  memories,  was  to  em- 
body the  greatness  of  the  present  and  the  future,"  and 
was  to  surpass  all  other  churches  in  the  world  in  its 
proportions  and  in  its  splendour.*  The  mausoleum  of 
the  poor  fisherman  of  the  Lake  of  Genesareth  was  to 
represent  the  dignity  and  significance,  in  its  history  and 
in  its  scope,  of  the  office  which  he  had  bequeathed  to  his 
successors.  The  idea  of  the  Universal  Church  demanded 
a  colossal  edifice,  that  of  the  Papacy  an  imposing  centre, 
therefore  its  main  feature  must  be  a  central  dome  of  such 
proportions  as  to  dominate  the  whole  structure.  This, 
Bramante  thought,  could  be  best  attained  by  a  ground- 
plan  in  the  form  of  a  Greek  Cross  with  the  great  dome 

young  Antonio  da  Sangallo  in  the  Church  of  S.  M.  di  Loreto  in  the 
Piazza  Traj ana  in  1507,  and  Peruzzi  in  the  Cathedral  of  Carpi  in  15 14,  and 
in  part  of  the  plans  for  the  completion  of  S.  Petronio  in  Bologna  in 
1 52 1,  introducing  features  in  Bramante's  style  (not  to  mention  Raphael's 
Church  of  S.  Eligio).  The  same  may  very  likely  have  been  the  case  in 
Todi,  as  it  certainly  was  in  the  Madonna  di  Macerato  at  Bisso." 

*  See  Bull  of  Julius  II.  of  19th  Feb.,  1513,  in  Bull.  Vat.,  II.,  349. 

VOL.  VI.  2  H 


466  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

in  the  centre,  over  the  tomb  of  the  Apostles.  In  the 
old  Basilica,  however,  the  tomb  was  at  the  end  of  the 
church,  and  this  created  difficulties  which  led  to  the 
adoption  at  first  of  a  Latin  Cross.*  Bramante's  con- 
temporaries were  enthusiastic  in  their  admiration  of  his 
design,  and  the  poets  of  the  day  sang  of  it  as  the  ninth 
wonder  of  the  world.-f  Bramante  is  said  to  have  him- 
self described  his  design  as  the  Pantheon  reared  on  the 
substructure  of  the  Temple  of  Peace  in  the  Forum 
(Constantine's  Basilica)  ;  a  truly  noble  thought,  worthy  of 
the  great  architect  and  his  large-minded  patron.J 

Two  complete  drawings,^  which  are  still  preserved,  exhibit 
Bramante's  plan  in  detail ;  it  consisted  of  a  Greek  Cross 
with  apsidal  ends  and  a  huge  cupola  in  the  centre  on  the 
model  of  the  Pantheon,  surrounded  by  four  smaller  domes ; 
pillared  aisles  led  into  the  central  space.  In  one  design  the 
arms  of  the  cross  are  enclosed  in  large  semicircular  ambu- 
latories ;  in  the  other  these  do  not  appear.  They  may  be  a 
reminiscence  of  the  very  ancient  Christian  Church  of  San 
Lorenzo  in  Milan,  which  was  justly  very  much  admired  by 
Bramante,  or  they  may  have  been  intended  to  strengthen 
the  great  pillars  which  supported  the  cupola.  In  both 
designs  the  dome  is  of  colossal  proportions.  "  Bramante^ 
borrowing  the  idea  from  older  structures,  designed  with 
admirable   effect   immense   niches  corresponding  with  the 

*  Von  Geymuller,  221.  Cf.  Hoffmann,  Studien  uber  Italien,  5 
(Frankfurt,  1876),  and  JOVANOVITS,  33. 

t  PUNGILEONI,  Vita  di  Bramante,  112. 

X  Redtenbacher  in  Liitzow's  Zeitschrift,  IX.,  304.  BURCKHARDT^ 
Cultur,  I.,  112,  ed.  3,  says  of  this  design  that  perhaps  it  was  a  manifesta- 
tion of  greater  power  than  any  other  single  mind  had  ever  displayed. 
Gregorovius,  VIII.,  Ill,  ed.  3,  remarks  :  "The  man  who  was  capable 
of  conceiving  such  a  work  of  art  as  S.  Peter's,  and  of  beginning  to  execute 
it,  deserves  by  that  fact  alone  to  live  for  ever  in  the  memory  of  mankind." 

§  Marked  by  Von  Geymuller  as  B  and  D. 


HIS   TWO   PLANS   FOR   S.    PETER'S.  467 

pillars,  which  would  also  ingeniously  serve  to  suggest  the 
curved  outline  for  all  spaces  which  is  the  predominant  form 
in  the  whole  scheme  of  building.  The  four  smaller 
cupolas  in  the  corners,  the  diameters  of  which  are  half  that 
of  the  central  dome,  by  dimming  the  light,  were  to  prepare 
the  eye  for  the  vast  central  space  ;  on  the  exterior,  as 
Caradosso's  medal  shews,  they  were  not  to  rise  above 
the  gabled  roofing  of  the  arms  of  the  Cross."  Four 
sacristies  and  chapels  and  beli-towers  were  to  be  distributed 
around  the  external  angles.  As  this  plan  appears  upon 
Caradosso's  medals  it  must  have  been  for  some  time  the 
accepted  one.  The  other  plan,  in  which  the  arms  of  the 
Cross  were  encased  in  spacious  ambulatories,  would  have 
occupied  a  still  larger  area.  Here  the  drum  of  the  central 
dome  would  have  been  encircled  with  pillars  forming  a 
crown  over  the  tomb  of  the  Apostles,  which  would  have 
been  bathed    in  light  from    the  dome.*      The  victory  of 

*  VON  Geymuller,  222  seq.,  233  seq.^  244  seq.^  257  seq.  ;  LiJBKE'S 
Review  in  the  Allg.  Zeit.  (1882),  N.  216,  Suppl. ;  LiJBKE,  Gesch.  d.  Archi- 
tektur,  II.,  361  seq.^  ed.  6  (Leipzig,  1886) ;  Burckhardt-Holtzinger, 
Renaissance,  126.  The  medals  with  the  inscription  Templi  Petri 
Instauracio,  are  reproduced  in  Geymuller,  PI.  2,  and  excellently  in  the 
handsome  work,  Le  Vatican,  532.  It  appears  that  after  the  laying  of  the 
foundation-stone,  the  directors  of  the  works  changed  their  minds  as  to 
the  form  of  the  building,  and  decided,  possibly  for  Liturgical  reasons,  to 
make  it  oblong.  Semper  thinks  that  the  Cathedral  at  Carpi  is  a  faith- 
ful copy  of  this  second  design  of  Bramante's.  Semper  had  already 
expressed  this  opinion  in  1878  in  his  Bramante,  46-47.  In  his  magnificent 
work  on  Carpi,  54  seq.^  he  developed  it  in  greater  detail  in  opposition 
to  Von  Geymuller'S  article  in  LiitzoVs  Zeitschrift,  XIV.,  289  seq.  ; 
cf.  also  JovANOviTS,  46  seq. ;  VoN  Geymuller,  Notizen  iiber  die 
Entwiirfe  zu  S.  Peter  in  Rom,  26  seq.  (Karlsruhe,  1868),  and  in  the 
larger  work,  220  ;  and  Burckhardt-Holtzinger,  125.  The  passage 
out  of  Panvinius  is  in  Mai,  Spicil.,  IX.,  466.  On  Caradosso's  com- 
memorative medals,  see  PlOT  in  the  Cabinet  de  1' Amateur  (3'^  Annee, 
1863),  38. 


468  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Christianity  over  Paganism  was  to  be  represented  by  the 
Cross  on  the  summit  of  the  most  beautiful  creation  of 
antique  architecture. 

The  colossal  dimensions  of  this  majestic  though  singu- 
larly simple  design,  aptly  symbolising  the  world-wide  fold 
into  which  all  the  nations  of  the  earth  were  to  be  gathered, 
will  be  realised  when  we  find  that  Bramante's  plan  would 
have  covered  an  area  of  over  28,900  square  yards,  while  the 
present  church  on  the  plan  of  Michael  Angelo,  without 
Maderna's  additions,  occupies  only  a  little  more  than  17,300, 
more  than  a  third  less.* 

There  is,  however,  one  consideration  which  mars  the 
pleasure  with  which  we  should  otherwise  contemplate 
Bramante's  splendid  conception,  and  this  is  the  regretful 
recollection  that  its  realisation  involved  the  sacrifice  of  one 
of  the  oldest  and  most  venerable  sanctuaries  in  all  Christen- 
dom. "  These  ancient  walls  had  been  standing  for  nearly 
1 200  years  ;  they  had,  so  to  speak,  participated  in  all  the 
fortunes  and  storms  of  the  Papacy  ;  they  had  witnessed  the 
rapid  succession  of  its  triumphs,  its  humiliations,  and  its  re- 
coveries ;  and  again  and  again  been  the  scene  of  epoch-making 
events,  focussed  in  Rome,  and  stretching  in  their  effects  to 
the  furthest  limits  of  Christendom.  The  Vatican  Basilica 
was  scored  all  over  with  mementos  of  this  long  history. 
Though  now  falling  to  pieces  and  disfigured  by  the  traces 
of  the  debased  art  of  the  period  of  its  origin,  it  was  an 
imposing  building,  and  far  more  interesting  from  its  age- 
worn  tokens  of  the  victory  of  Christianity  over  Paganism, 
than  it  could  have  been  in  the  days  of  its  pristine  splendour. 
All  that  might  be  distasteful  in  the  inharmonious  jumble 
of  its  styles  and  materials  was  forgotten  in  retracing 
the  ever-living  memorials  which  recalled  the  times  of 
Constantine,  of  S.  Leo  and  S.  Gregory  the  Great,  Charles 

*  Redtenbacher  in  Liitzow's  Zeitschrift,  IX.,  308. 


OPPOSITION   TO   THE  SCHEME.  469 

the  Great,  and  Otho,  S.  Gregory  VII.,  Alexander  III., 
Innocent  III."* 

This  was  strongly  felt  by  many  of  Bramante's  contem- 
poraries, as  it  had  been  when  the  rebuilding  of  S.  Peter's 
was  contemplated  in  the  time  of  Nicholas  V.,  which  we  see 
from  the  words  of  the  Christian  humanist,  Maffeo  Vegio.f 
This  time  the  opposition  was  even  more  serious,  as  nearly 
the  whole  of  the  Sacred  College  seems  to  have  pronounced 
against  the  plan.  Panvinius  reports  that  people  of  all  classes, 
and  especially  the  Cardinals,  protested  against  Julius  II.'s 
intention  of  pulling  down  the  old  S.  Peter's.  They  would 
have  gladly  welcomed  the  erection  of  a  new  and  splendid 
church;  but  the  complete  destruction  of  the  old  Basilica, 
so  consecrated  by  the  veneration  of  the  whole  world,  the 
tombs  of  so  many  saints,  and  the  memorials  of  so  many  great 
events,  went  to  their  hearts.^ 

The  opposition  to  the  rebuilding  of  S.  Peter's  continued 
even  after  the  death  of  Julius  II.  In  the  year  15 17 
Andrea  Guarna  of  Salerno  published  a  satirical  Dialogue 
between  S.  Peter,  Bramante,  and  the  Bolognese  Alessandro 
Zambeccari.  Bramante  arrives  at  the  gates  of  Heaven  and 
S.  Peter  asks  if  he  is  the  man  who  had  demolished  his 
church.  Zambeccari  replies  in  the  affirmative,  and  adds, 
"  He  would  have  destroyed  Rome  also  and  the  whole  world 
if  he  had  been  able."  S.  Peter  asks  Bramante  what  could 
have  induced  him  to  pull  down  his  church  in  Rome,  which 
by  its  age  alone  spoke  of  God  to  the  most  unbelieving. 
The  architect  excuses  himself  by  saying  that  it  was  not  he 

*  Reumont,  III.,  I,  451. 

t  Cf.  Pastor,  Hist.  Popes,  II.,  179  (Engl,  trans.). 

X  Fea,  Notizie,  41,  was  the  first  to  bring  to  light  this  passage  from 
Panvinius,  De  rebus  antiquis  eccl.  basilicae  S.  Petri ;  it  is  to  be  found 
in  Mai,  Spicil.,  IX.,  365-366.  Panvinius  expressly  mentions  here  a 
model  in  wood  by  Bramante. 


470  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

who  pulled  it  down  but  the  workmen  at  the  command  of 
Pope  Julius.  "  No,"  answers  S.  Peter,  "  that  will  not  serve, 
it  was  you  who  persuaded  the  Pope  to  take  down  the 
church,  it  was  at  your  instigation  and  by  your  orders  that 
the  workmen  did  it.  How  could  you  dare  ? "  Bramante 
replies,  "  I  wanted  to  lighten  the  Pope's  heavy  purse  a  little." 
On  S.  Peter  inquiring  further  whether  he  had  carried  out 
his  design,  he  answers,  "  No  !  Julius  II.  pulled  down  the 
old  church,  but  he  kept  his  purse  closed ;  he  only  gave 
Indulgences,  and  besides  he  was  making  war."  Further 
on,  the  conversation  becomes  broader  and  more  farcical. 
Bramante  refuses  to  enter  Heaven  unless  he  is  allowed  to 
get  rid  of  the  "  steep  and  difficult  way  that  leads  thither  from 
the  earth.  I  will  build  a  new  broad  and  commodious  road 
so  that  old  and  feeble  souls  may  travel  on  horseback.  And 
then  I  will  make  a  new  Paradise  with  delightful  residences 
for  the  blessed."  As  S.  Peter  will  not  consent  to  this, 
Bramante  declares  he  will  go  down  to  Pluto  and  build  a 
new  hell  as  the  old  one  is  almost  burnt  out.  In  the  end 
S.  Peter  asks  him  again,  "  Tell  me  seriously,  what  made  you 
destroy  my  church  ?  "  Bramante  answers,  "  Alas  !  it  is 
demolished,  but  Pope  Leo  will  build  a  new  one."  "  Well, 
then,"  says  S.  Peter,  "  you  must  wait  at  the  gate  of  Paradise 
until  it  is  finished."  "But  if  it  never  is  finished?" 
Bramante  objects.  "Oh,"  S.  Peter  answers,  "my  Leo  will 
not  fail  to  get  it  done."  "  I  must  hope  so,"  Bramante 
replies ;  "  at  any  rate,  I  seem  to  have  no  alternative  but  to 
wait."* 

Julius  II.  is  still  often  blamed  for  having  allowed  the  old 
church  to  be  destroyed,  but  whether  the  reproach  is  just 

*  This  curious  and  rare  Dialogrie  appeared  under  the  title  of  "  Simla  " 
at  Milan  in  1 5 1 7.  An  extract  from  it,  shewing  that  most  people  at  that 
time  did  not  believe  that  Leo  X.  would  finish  S.  Peter's,  v/as  published 
by  Bossi,  Del  cenacolo  da  Lionardo  da  Vinci,  246,  249.     Milano,  18 10. 


DANGEROUS   STATE  OF  S.   PETER'S.  47 1 

seems  very  doubtful.  If  even  under  Nicholas  V.  the  old 
Basilica  had  become  so  unsafe  that  in  145 1  the  Pope  could 
say  it  was  in  danger  of  falling — and  we  have  trustworthy 
testimony  to  this  effect  * — no  doubt  its  condition  must  have 
been  considerably  worse  in  the  reign  of  Julius  ILf  In  the 
well-known  letter  to  the  King  of  England  on  the  laying  of 
the  foundation-stone  of  the  new  S.  Peter's,  the  Pope  dis- 
tinctly asserts  that  the  old  church  was  in  a  ruinous  condi- 
tion, and  this  statement  is  repeated  in  a  whole  series  of 
other  Briefs.:|:     The  inscription  on  the  foundation-stone  also 

*  Cf.  Pastor,  Hist.  Popes,  II.,  179-180. 

t  Cf.  Reumont,  in.,  I,  458  seq. 

X  In  his  Briefs  to  the  King  of  England,  Julius  says  that  he  has  laid 
the  foundation  of  the  new  building  firma  spe  ducti  quod  dominus  et 
salvator  Jesus  Christus,  cuius  monitu  basilicam  ipsam  vetustate  con- 
sumptam  augustiori  forma  et  aedificio  renovare  aggressi  sumus,  mentis 
et  precibus  ipsius  apostoli  vires  nobis  tribuet,  ut  quod  tanto  fervore 
incoeptum  est,  absolvi  et  perfici  possit  ad  laudam  et  gloriam  Dei.  In 
another  *Brief,  also  dated  1 8th  April,  1 506,  addressed  to  Abati  et  conventui 
monast.  S.  Augustini  Ord.  8.  Benedicti :  *Cum  decreverimus  basilicam  b. 
Petri  principis  apostolorum  de  urbe  vetustate  prope  collabentem  dante 
Domino  funditus  reedificare  atque  novo  et  decenti  opere  instaurare  nos 
hodie  processionaliter  una  cum  ven.  fratribus  nostris  S.  R.  E.  cardinalibus 
et  magna  prelatorum  et  populi  multitudine  propriis  manibus  nostris 
in  eius  fundamento  primum  lapidem  ....  posuimus  .  .  .  ,  He  is 
resolved  opus  absque  intennissione  aliqua  concedente  Domino  per- 
sequi,  and  admonishes  him  to  contribute.  Fuerunt  expedita  XXVIII. 
similia  sub  eadem  data.  *Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  489.  (Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.)  The  Brief  to  the  King  of  England  in  App.,  N.  49a,  dated  6th 
Jan.,  1 506,  is  to  the  same  effect.  Cf.  also  the  Encyclical  in  Raynaldus, 
ad  an.  1508,  n.  6,  which  says  :  Quis  merito  non  admiretur  coeptam  a 
nobis  ad  onvnipotentis  Dei  ejusque  intactae  genetricis  Mariae  ac  principis 
apostolorum  b.  Petri  honorem  et  laudem  necessariam  basilicae  eiiisdem 
sancti  iam  vetustate  collabentis  reparationem  et  ampliatiotiem.  Similar 
language  is  employed  in  the  Encychcal  written  shortly  before  his  death, 
already  quoted  from  Bull.  Vat.,  II.,  349.  If  the  old  S.  Peter's  had  not 
been  in  a  dilapidated  condition,  he  could  not  have  so  repeatedly  and  so 


472  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

supports  this  opinion.*  Well-informed  contemporaneous 
writers,  such  as  Lorenzo  Parmino,-|-  Custodian  of  the  Vatican 
Library,  and  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  say  the  same.J  It 
seems,  therefore,  that  he  cannot  be  accused  of  having 
wilfully  pulled  down  the  old  Basilica. 

Considering  what  the  plans  of  the  Pope  and  his  architect 
were,  it  was  clear  that  the  rebuilding  of  S.  Peter's  would 
be  very  costly,  and  on  the  loth  of  November,  1505,  Julius 
commanded  that  the  property  left  by  a  certain  Monserati 
de  Guda  should  be  set  apart  for  the  building  of  S.  Peter's. § 
This  is  the  first  authentic  document  which  shews  that  the 
work  had  been  practically  begun.  On  the  6th  of  January, 
1506,  Julius  wrote  to  the  King  of  England  and  also  to 
the  nobility  and  Bishops  of  that  country  begging  them  to 
help  him  in  this  great  undertaking.]!  A  money  order  for 
Bramante  for  the  payment  of  five  sub-architects  is  dated 
6th  April,  1506;    on   the  i8th  the  Briefs  announcing  the 

distinctly  mentioned  it  as  such.  Most  recent  writers  also  think  that 
it  was  in  a  ruinous  state.  See  Michelangelo  Lualdi,  Romano, 
Canonico  de  S.  Marco,  in  his  *Memorie  del  tempio  e  palazzo  Vaticano, 
II.,  f.  i'^,  4^,  in  Cod.  31,  D.  17,  of  the  Corsini  Library,  Rome. 

*  See  Paris  de  Grassis  in  Thuasne,  III.,  424  N.  :  Aedem  principis 
apostolorum  in  Vaticano  vetustate  ac  situ  squallentem  a  fundamentis 
restituit  Julius  Ligur.  P.  M.  A.  1506.  According  to  Burchardi 
Diarium,  III.,  422,  the  Inscription  was  :  Julius  II.  P.  M.  hanc  basilicam 
fere  collabentem  reparavit  A.D.  1506,  pontif.  sui  anno  3.  The  third 
version  in  Albertini,  53,  refers,  as  the  date  shews,  to  the  laying  of  the 
foundation  -  stones    of  the  other   pillars   in  April  1 507  ;  cf.   Bonanni, 

52-53- 

t  Tu  divi  Petri  principis  apostolorum  aedem  plurimorum  annorum 
ictu  pene  collabentem  instaurare  in  animum  induxisti.  L.  Parmenius, 
310. 

X  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  II.,  343-344  ;  cf.  hifra,  p.  479. 
§  Zaun,  Notizie,  178. 

II  See  text  of  this  ^Document  in  Appendix,  N.  49a,  taken  from  the 
Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 


LAYING   OF   THE   FOUNDATION   STONE.  473 

laying  of  the  foundation-stone  by  the  Pope  himself  were 
sent  out*  At  this  time  Julius  II.  was  preparing  for  the 
campaign  against  Perugia  and  Bologna.-f  It  is  certainly 
a  striking  proof  of  the  courage  and  energy  of  Julius  11.^ 
that  at  his  advanced  age,  and  in  the  face  of  such  arduous 
political  undertakings,  he  should  have  had  no  hesitation 
in  putting  his  hand  to  a  work  of  such  magnitude  as  this. 

We  have  two  accounts  of  the  laying  of  the  foundation- 
stone,  which  took  place  on  "Low  Sunday"  (i8th  April) 
in  the  year  1 506 ;  one  is  by  Burchard,  the  other  by  Paris 
de  Grassis.|  The  Pope,  accompanied  by  the  Cardinals 
and  Prelates  and  preceded  by  the  Cross,  went  down  in 
solemn  procession  to  the  edge  of  the  excavation  for  the 
foundation,  which  was  25  feet  deep.  Only  the  Pope  with 
two  Cardinal-deacons,  some  masons,  and  one  or  two  other 
persons  entered  it.  Some  one  who  is  called  a  medallist, 
probably  Caradosso,  brought  twelve  medals  in  an  earthen 
pot,  two  large  gold  ones  worth  50  ducats  ;  the  others 
were  of  bronze.  On  one  side  was  stamped  the  head  of 
Julius  II,,  and  on  the  other  a  representation  of  the  new 
Church.  The  foundation-stone  was  of  white  marble,  about 
four  palms  in  length,  two  in  breadth,  and  three  fingers  in 
thickness.  It  bore  an  inscription  declaring  that  Pope 
Julius  II.  of  Liguria,  in  the  year  1506,  the  third  of  his  reign, 

*  The  Brief  to  the  King  of  England  in  Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1506, 
n.  45,  is  the  only  one  at  present  known  ;  but  similar  Briefs  must  have 
been  sent  to  most  of  the  Christian  Princes.     Cf.  supra,  p.  471,  note  \. 

t  Cf.  supra,  p.  262. 

X  Both  published  by  Thuasne  in  Burchardi  Diarium,  III.,  422  seq. 
In  some  details  they  differ  from  each  other.  Cf.  also  the  *Brief  in 
SiGiSMONDO  de'  Conti,  II.,  343-344,  quoted  supra,  p.  471,  note  J,  and 
Albertini,  53,  with  a  wrong  date  both  for  the  day  and  the  year,  which 
are  copied  by  Tschackert,  9.  The  *Diarium  in  V.  PoHt.,  50,  f.  61,  only 
says  :  A.  di  XVlll.  de  Aprile,  1 506,  comincio  papa  JuHo  a  murare  in 
S.  Pietro.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 


474  HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES. 

restored  this  Basilica,  which  had  fallen  into  decay.  After 
the  Pope  had  blessed  the  stone  he  set  it  with  his  own  hands, 
while  the  masons  placed  the  vessel  with  the  medals  under- 
neath it.  The  ceremony  concluded  with  the  solemn  Papal 
benediction,  a  prayer  before  the  crucifix,  and  the  granting 
of  a  Plenary  Indulgence,*  which  was  announced  in  Latin  by 
Cardinal  Colonna.  After  this  the  Pope  returned  to  the 
Vatican. 

Entries  of  disbursements  in  April  1 506,  shew  that  7500 
ducats  were  paid  at  that  time  to  five  contractors  for  the 
building  of  S.  Peter's.  These,  as  well  as  other  sums,  all 
passed  through  Bramante's  hands,  who  signed  the  agree- 
ments with  the  builders  in  the  Pope's  name.  Hitherto,  no 
entry  of  any  payment  to  Bramante  for  his  own  services  has 
been  found,  although  he  undoubtedly  acted  as  master  of  the 
works.  He  employed  by  preference  Tuscan  architects,  and 
pushed  on  the  work  with  energy. f  Sigismondo  de'  Conti's 
statement  that  the  building  made  but  slow  progress,  not 
owing  to  want  of  funds,  but  from  Bramante's  supineness,J 
is  unsupported  by  any  other  writer.  It  may  possibly  be  due 
to  personal  spite.  It  comes  from  one  who  knew  nothing 
of  architecture,  and  is  contradicted  by  authentic  documents. 
It  is  quite  possible  that  the  work  may  have  flagged  to  a 

*  On  this  spot  the  pillar  was  erected  which  now  supports  the  loggia 
containing  the  head  of  S.  Andrew. 

t  MiJNTZ  in  the  Gaz.  des  Beaux  Arts,  XIX.  (1879),  363  seq.  ; 
XX.,  506.  The  first  mention  of  Bramante's  name  in  connection  with 
any  payment  occurs  on  30th  Aug.,  1505,  but,  unfortunately,  the  nature  of 
the  work  to  which  it  related  is  not  specified.  The  notice  in  Sanuto, 
VI.,  327,  is  dated,  like  the  other,  in  April  1506.  This  is  tlie  earliest 
statement  relating  to  this  subject  in  the  excerpts  from  the  Venetian 
Ambassadorial  Reports  in  this  author's  compilation.  Those  which  follow 
were  not  accessible  to  Miintz  and  Von  Geymiiller,  and  are  used  for  the 
first  time  in  the  present  volume. 

X  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  II.,  344. 


PROGRESS   OF   THE   WORK.  475  ' 

certain  extent  in  the  year  1506,  but  not  from  any  fault  of 
Bramante,  who,  by  the  Pope's  orders,  accompanied  his 
master  to  Bologna*  A  document  in  the  Secret  Archives 
of  the  Vatican,!  dated  15th  December,  1506,  and  hitherto 
unknown,  shews  with  what  anxious  care  Julius  strove  to 
guard  against  any  interruption  in  the  progress  of  the 
building  during  his  absence  in  that  city.  Many  proofs 
are  extant  of  the  diligence  with  which  it  was  prosecuted 
from  the  moment  the  Pope  returned  to  Rome.  In  March, 
1507,  Giuliano  di  Giovanni,  Francesco  del  Toccio,  and 
others  were  at  work  on  the  capitals  of  the  pillars  of  the 
new  Basilica.J  On  the  7th  of  April  the  Modenese  Envoy 
reports  that  the  Pope  is  delighted  with  the  new  building 
and  visits  it  frequently ;  it  is  evident  that  the  completion 
of  this  work  is  one  of  the  things  that  lie  nearest  to  his 
heart. §  On  the  12th,  he  writes,  "To-day  the  Pope  went 
to  S.  Peter's  to  inspect  the  work.  I  was  there  also.  The 
Pope  brought  Bramante  with  him,  and  said  smilingly  to 
me,  'Bramante  tells  me  that  he  has  2500  men  at  work; 
one  might  hold  a  review  of  such  an  army.'     I  replied  that 

*  There  is  an  entry  on  29th  Dec,  1 506,  of  a  payment  to  magistro 
Bramante,  architectori  S.  D.  N.,  pro  expensis  per  eum  cum  sociis  factis 
€t  faciendis  Bononie  et  in  reditum  ad  urbem  in  Zahn,  Notizie,  180. 

t  Brief  dat.  Bologna,  15th  Dec,  1506.  To  the  Archbishop  of 
Tarento  Henrico  (Bruni),  thesaurar.  generalis.  Redit  Romam  dil.  fil. 
Nicolaus  Nicius,  beneficiatus  basilice  S.  Petri  apostolorum  principis  de 
urbe  homo  valde  aptus  ad  excitandum  fabros  cementarios  ut  operi  fabrice 
dicte  basilice  instent  et  opus  ipsum  sine  intermissione  continuent.  Quare 
volumus  ut  eum  huic  negocio  praeficias.  *Lib.  brev.,  Julii  II.,  25  f.  8. 
Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

%  Von  Geymuller,  355 ;  Muntz,  loc.  cit.,  XX.,  509. 

§  La  S'a  del  papa  si  demonstra  tuta  alegra  e  spesso  v[a]  su  la  fabrica 
de  la  chiesa  de  S.  Petro  demonstrando  ....  presente  non  havere  altra 
cura  magiore  cha  de  finire  la  d  [etta]  fa[brica].  *Costabili's  Despatch  dat 
Rome,  7th  April,  1 507.  I  found  this  and  the  other  very  interesting  one 
(which  follows  it)  in  the  State  Archives,  Modena. 


•476  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

one  could  indeed  compare  such  a  band  with  an  army,  and 
expressed  my  admiration  of  the  building,  as  was  becoming. 
Presently,  Cardinals  Farnese,  Carvajal,  and  Fiesco  came  up, 
and  the  Pope  granted  them  their  audience  without  leaving 
the  spot."  *  This  report  is  in  flat  contradiction  with 
Sigismondo  de'  Conti's  statement.  So  far  from  idling  over 
the  work,  Bramante  can  hardly  be  acquitted  of  the  charge 
of  vandalism  in  the  ruthless  haste  with  which  he  tore 
down  the  venerable  old  church. 

It  is  certainly  startling  to  find  that  apparently  no  expert 
was  consulted,  and  no  attempt  made  to  find  out  whether 
it  might  not  still  be  possible  to  retain  and  repair  the  old 
Basilica.  We  should  have  expected  that  before  proceeding 
to  destroy  so  venerable  a  sanctuary  the  opinion  of  some 
unbiassed  person,  not  included  in  the  circle  of  the  enter- 
prising architects  eager  for  the  fray,  should  have  been 
sought,  as  to  what  could  be  done  in  the  way  of  preserving 
at  any  rate  some  portion  of  the  ancient  building.  We  find 
no  trace  of  any  such  attempt,  and  probablty  this  is  due  to 
the  extravagant  admiration  of  the  votaries  of  the  Renais- 
sance for  their  new  style  of  architecture  which  led  them  to 
look  down  with  utter  contempt  on  all  the  productions  of 
the  preceding  periods.  From  this  point  of  view  Sigismondo 
de'  Conti's  account  of  the  rebuilding  of  S.  Peter's  is  singu- 
larly significant.  Christian  humanist  as  he  was,  he  betrays 
not  the  smallest  trace  of  reverence  for,  or  interest  in,  the 
Basilica  of  Constantine.  Although  he  calls  the  ancient 
building  grand  and  majestic,  he  adds  immediately  that  it 
was  erected  in  an  uncultured  age,  which  had  no  idea  of 
elegance  or  beauty  in  architecture.j- 

*  See  the  text  of  this  *Repoi-t  in  Appendix  N.  74. 

t  Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  II.,  343-344.  In  his  interesting  essay  "  Die 
alte  Peterskirche  zu  Rom  und  ihre  friihesten  Ansichten"  Grisar  re- 
marks :  "  Our  knowledge  of  the  Basilica  of  Constantine,  of  its  early 


DISREGARD   FOR   THE   OLD   S.    PETER'S.  477 

But  what  was  still  more  inexcusable  was  that  no  inven- 
tory should  have  been  taken  of  the  inestimably  precious 
memories  which  it  contained,  and  also  the  way  in  which 
these  venerable  relics  were  treated.  ■  In  truth,  the  men  of 
the  Renaissance  had  as  little  sense  of  reverence  for  the 
past  as  those  of  the  Middle  Ages  ;  *  not  that  they  had  any 
desire  to  break  with  the  past  ;  this  would  have  been  in 
complete  contradiction  to  the  whole  spirit  of  the  Papacy, 
for  which  more  than  for  any  other  power  in  the  world,  the 
past,  the  present,  and  the  future  are  bound  together  in  an 
indissoluble  union ;  but  the  passion  for  the  new  style 
stifled  all  interest  in  the  monuments  of  former  days.-]-     In 

Christian  and  mediceval  decoration,  its  changes  and  its  fortunes,  is  not 
nearly  so  full  as  might  have  been  expected  when  we  consider  the  impor- 
tant position  that  it  occupied.  Although  this  venerable  building,  with  all 
its  memorials  of  Christian  piety  in  so  many  ages  and  so  many  countries, 
survived  for  a  considerable  period  after  the  revival  of  art,  and  well  into 
a  time  when  hundreds  of  draughtsmen  and  painters  were  busily  copying 
the  antique  buildings  in  Rome,  we  have  hardly  any  representation  of  it. 
The  artists  of  the  Renaissance,  in  their  one-sided  enthusiasm  for  classical 
antiquity,  had  not  a  thought  to  spare  for  these  sacred  and  touching  memen- 
tos. Nothing  seemed  worthy  of  notice  to  them  that  was  not  dressed  in 
their  favourite  garb."     Rom.  Quartalschrift,  IX.  (1895),  237-238. 

*  It  would  be  unjust  in  blaming  the  Renaissance  period  for  its  reckless 
destruction  of  precious  memorials,  not  to  point  out  that  the  men  of  the 
Middle  Ages  were  not  one  whit  less  indifferent ;  in  the  13th  Century, 
the  famous  tomb  of  S.  Bardo  at  Mayence  was  demolished,  and  not  a 
trace  of  it  is  left.  When  the  western  choir  in  the  Cathedral  there  was 
built  in  1 200- 1 239,  the  old  building  was  pulled  to  pieces.  The  Caro- 
lingian  tombs  at  S.  Alban  near  Mayence  completely  disappeared  during 
the  early  mediaeval  times.  In  the  13th  Century,  the  old  cathedrals  at 
Cologne,  Spires,  Worms,  etc.,  were  treated  in  a  similar  manner.  The 
feeling  that  we  designate  as  piety,  reverence,  seemed  unknown  in  the 
Middle  Ages. 

+  Reumont  in  the  Allg.  Zeit.  (1858),  N.  67,  Suppl.  Cf.  also,  Gregor- 
OVIUS'  Essay  on  Roman  inscriptions  in  the  Allg.  Zeit.  (1867),  N.  166, 
Suppl.,  and  Nolhac,  Erasme,  81. 


4/8  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

his  strong  consciousness  of  power,  Bramante  was  more 
reckless  than  any  of  the  other  architects  of  his  day  in 
regard  to  ancient  memorials,  or  even  the  creations  of  the 
centuries  immediately  preceding  his  own  time.  His  con- 
temporaries reproached  him  with  this.  Paris  de  Grassis 
says  he  was  called  the  destroyer  {^Ruinante),  because  of  his 
merciless  destructiveness  in  Rome,  as  well  as  in  other  places 
for  instance,  in  Loreto.*  Michael  Angelo  complained  to 
Julius  II.,  and  later,  Raphael  made  similar  representations 
to  Leo  X.  in  regard  to  Bramante's  barbarism  in  knocking 
to  pieces  the  noble  ancient  pillars  in  the  old  church,  which 
might  so  easily  have  been  preserved  if  they  had  been  care- 
fully taken  down.f  Artistic  merit  was  no  more  regarded 
than  antiquity,  and  Mino's  beautiful  later  monuments,  and 
even  the  tomb  of  Nicholas  V.,  the  first  of  the  Papal 
Maecenas,  were  broken  to  pieces,  together  with  those  of 
the  older  Popes.|  There  can  be  no  excuse  for  such 
vandalism  as  this.  Attempts  have  been  made  to  lay  the 
blame  on  the  carelessness  of  the  Papal  Maggiordomo 
Bartolomeo  Ferrantini,  or  on  the  sub-architects.§  No 
doubt,  Ferrantini  and  Julius  himself  are  partially  respon- 
sible, but  it  is  in  consequence  of  Bramante's  ruthless 
methods  that  Christendom  and  the  Papacy  have  been 
robbed  of  so  many  venerable  and  touching  memorials. 
Those  which  are  preserved  in  the  Crypt  and  the  Vatican 
Grottos,  far  from  exculpating  him,  only  bear  witness  to 
the  extent  of  his  guilt.  This  magazine  of  defaced  and 
dismembered  monuments,  altars,  ciboriums,  which  formerly 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  287. 

t  CoNDivi  in  the  Quellenschriften,  VI.,  49  (1874).  Cf.  Grimm, 
Michelangelo,  I.,  381,  ed.  5. 

X  Cf.  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  DolHnger,  428  ;  Gregorovius,  VIII. 
129,  ed.  3,  and  Grabmaler,  31. 

§  PUNGILEONI,  Bramante,  35,  98  seq. 


bramante's  destructive  spirit.  479 

adorned  the  atrium,  the  porticos  and  the  nave  of  the  old 
Basilica,  are  the  clearest  proof  of  the  barbarous  vandalism 
which  began  under  Julius  II.,  and  continued  until  the 
completion  of  S.  Peter's.* 

If  we  may  believe  Aegidius  of  Viterbo,  who  is  usually 
well-informed,  and  was  a  contemporary,  Bramante's  de- 
structive spirit  actually  carried  him  so  far  as  to  lead  him  to 
propose  to  move  the  Tomb  of  the  Apostles,  Here,  how- 
ever, Julius  II.,  usually  so  ready  to  lend  himself  to  all  the 
great  architect's  plans,  stood  firm,  and  absolutely  refused 
to  permit  any  tampering  with  a  shrine  which,  through  all 
the  changes  during  the  centuries  which  had  elapsed  since 
the  days  of  Constantine,  had  been  preserved  untouched  on 
the  spot  where  he  erected  it.f  Aegidius  narrates  in  detail 
the  efforts  made  by  Bramante  to  overcome  the  Pope's 
objections.  He  wanted  to  make  the  new  Church  face 
southwards,  instead  of  to  the  east,  as  the  old  one  had  done, 
in  order  to  have  the  Vatican  Obelisk,  which  stood  in  the 
Circus  of  Nero  on  the  south  side  of  the  Basilica,|  fronting 
the  main  entrance  of  the  new  Church.  Julius  II.  would  not 
consent  to  this  plan,  saying  that  Shrines  must  not  be  dis- 
placed. Bramante,  however,  persisted  in  his  project.  He 
expatiated  on  the  admirable  suggestiveness  of  placing  this 
majestic  memorial  of  the  First  Caesars  in  the  Court  of  the 
new   S.    Peter's  of  Julius   II.,  and   on  the  effect  that  the 

*  Reumont,  III.,  2,  380;  see  also  his  article  in  the  Allg.  Zeit.  (1867), 
N.  266,  on  Mignanti's  Hist,  of  S.  Peter's.  Grimm,  I.,  381,  ed.  5  ;  and 
the  very  interesting  remarks  of  Gnoli,  in  Arch.  St.  deU'  Arte,  II.,  455. 

t  The  fact  has  been  recently  placed  beyond  the  reach  of  doubt  by  the 
researches  of  Fr.  Grisar,  S.J.,  pubhshed  in  his  valuable  work,  Le  tombe 
apostoHche  di  Roma  (Roma,  1892).  Further  particulars  are  to  be  found 
here  also  on  the  Pope's  anxious  care  that  the  remains  of  the  Prince  of  the 
Apostles  should  be  preserved  from  aU  risks  of  desecration  in  any  way. 

J  The  spot  where  the  obelisk  (Guglia)  stood  is  now  marked  by  an  in- 
scription.   Cf.  Pastor,  Gesch.  Papste,  719-720,  ed.  2. 


480  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

sight  of  this  colossal  monument  would  have  in  stimulating 
religious  awe  in  the  minds  of  those  who  were  about  to  enter 
the  church.  He  promised  to  effect  the  removal  of  the  tomb 
in  such  a  manner  that  it  should  be  impossible  that  it  should 
be  injured  in  any  way.  But  Julius  II.,  however,  turned 
a  deaf  ear  to  all  his  arguments  and  blandishments,  and 
assured  him  that  he  would  never,  under  any  pretext,  per- 
mit the  tomb  of  the  first  Pope  to  be  touched.  As  to 
the  Obelisk,  Bramante  might  do  what  he  pleased  with 
that.  His  view  was  that  Christianity  must  be  preferred  to 
Paganism,  religion  to  splendour,  piety  to  ornament.* 

In  addition  to  this  most  interesting  conversation  be- 
tween Julius  II.  and  Bramante,  we  have  other  proofs  that 
in  all  their  undertakings,  religious  interests,  and  not  his 
own  glory,  held  the  first  place  in  his  mind.  One  such  is 
the  Rule  of  19th  February,  15 13,  on  the  Cappella  Giulia, 
which  was  the  last  official  document  issued  by  him 
before  his  death.  In  it  he  sums  up  the  reasons  which  led 
him  to  found  this  institution.  "  We  hold  it  to  be  our 
duty,"  he  says,  "  to  promote  the  solemnity  of  religious 
worship  by  example  as  well  as  by  precept.  While  yet  a 
Cardinal  we  partly  restored  and  partly  rebuilt  many 
churches  and  convents  in  various  places,  and  especially  in 
Rome.  Since  our  elevation  to  the  Chair  of  S.  Peter  we  have 
endeavoured  to  be  more  diligent  and  liberal  in  such  works 
in  proportion  to  our  larger  duties  and  responsibilities.  The 
wise  King  Solomon,  although  the  light  of  Christianity  had 
not  dawned  upon   him,  thought  no  sacrifice  too  great  to 

*  I  found  this  passage  in  the  *Historia  viginti  saecul.  of  Aegedius  of 
Viterbo  in  the  Bibl.  Angehca  in  Rome,  Cod.  C,  8,  19.  It  has  hitherto 
escaped  the  notice  of  all  the  historians  of  the  new  S.  Peter's,  including 
Von  Geymiiller  and  MLintz.  In  view  of  its  great  importance,  I  have 
given  the  original  passage  in  App.,  N.  89.  It  also  indirectly  bears 
additional  witness  to  the  ruinous  condition  of  the  old  church. 


ZEAL   OF   JULIUS   IL  48r 

make  in  order  to  build  a  worthy  House  for  the  Lord  of 
Hosts.  Our  predecessors  also  were  zealous  for  the  beauty 
and  dignity  of  the  sanctuary.  This  was  especially  the 
case  with  our  Uncle,  Sixtus  IV.,  now  resting  in  the  Lord. 
Nothing  lay  nearer  to  his  heart  than  to  provide  for  the 
majesty  of  the  Offices  of  the  Church  and  the  splendour  of 
God's  House."  The  Pope  desired  to  follow  in  his  foot- 
steps.* 

On  the  1 6th  of  April,  1507,  Enrico  Bruni,  Archbishop  of 
Tarento,  laid  the  foundation-stones  of  the  three  other  pillars 
of  the  Dome.  Various  entries  of  payments  and  contracts, 
though,  unfortunately,  scanty  and  unconnected,  mark  the 
progress  of  the  work.  On  the  24th  of  August,  a  Roman, 
Menico  Antonio  di  Jacopo,  undertook  a  contract  for  some 
capitals  of  pillars,  and  in  another  document,  which  only 
bears  the  date  of  the  year  1507,  the  same  sculptor  joins 
with  Giuliano  del  Tozzo,  Franco,  Paolo  Mancino,  Vincenzio 
da  Viterbo  and  Bianchino,  in  an  agreement  for  executing 
the  capitals  of  the  pillars  and  the  balcony  on  the  outside  of 
the  Tribune,  and  the  cornice  inside,  after  Bramante's 
designs.  A  contract  with  Francesco  di  Domenico  of  Milan, 
Antonio  di  Giacomo  of  Pontasieve  and  Benedetto  di 
Giovanni  Albini  of  Rome  for  the  capitals  of  the  large 
pilasters  in  the  interior  is  dated  ist  March,  i5o8.-j-  In 
August  1508,  the  Venetian  Envoy  reports  an  unsuccessful 
attempt  on  the  part  of  the  Pope  to  obtain  the  fourth  part 
of  the  tithes  granted  by  him  to  the  King  of  Spain  for  the 
building  of  S.  Peter's.  In  December,  the  same  Envoy 
mentions  the  zeal  of  the  Pope  for  this  great  work.J  There 
are  no  accounts  of  the  year  1509.     On  the  i6th  January, 

*  Bull.  Vat.,  II.,  ^48seg'.    Provisions  for  the  Cappella  Giulia  follow  on 
this  preamble, 
t  Von  Geymuller,  355-356. 
X  Sanuto,  VII.,  606-678. 
VOL.  VL  2    I 


482  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

1 5 10,  Antonio  di  Sangallo  received  200  ducats  for  prepar- 
ing the  centering  for  the  arches  of  the  Cupola.  A  similar 
payment  is  again  entered  on  the  15th  November.* 

Julius  II.  was  unwearied  in  his  efforts  to  obtain  funds  for 
the  building.  A  portion  of  the  revenue  of  the  Holy  House 
at  Loreto  was  assigned  to  this  purpose,  and  commissioners 
were  appointed  everywhere  for  the  collection  of  charitable 
gifts  with  power  to  grant  Indulgences  on  the  usual  condi- 
tions to  all  contributors.^  How  large  the  sums  thus  obtained 
were,  may  be  gathered  from  the  report  of  the  Venetian 
Envoy  who  says  that  one  lay-brother  alone  brought  back 
from  his  journey  27,000  ducats.  Even  then,  in  April  15 10, 
it  was  plain  that  a  long  time  must  elapse  before  the  work 
could  be  completed.;}:  It  was  no  doubt  a  beautiful  thought 
that  the  whole  of  Christendom  should  bear  a  part  in  the 
erection  of  a  worthy  .shrine  for  the  Princes  of  the  Apostles, 
but  considering  the  hostile  feeling  in  many  places  in  regard 
to  all  such  collections,  and  the  bitter  opponents  who  were 
always  ready  to  misrepresent  everything  that  the  Popes 
did,  there  were  serious  objections  to  the  attempt  to  carry 
it  out.  When  Julius  II.  became  involved  in  the  great  con- 
flict with  France  it  was  asserted  by  many  that  money 
collected  for  the  Church  was  spent  in  the  war.§  When  the 
pressure  was  very  great  this  may  have  been  the  case ;  in  the 
year  1511,  a  slackening  in  the  work  is  observable;  still 
even  in  that  year  there  are  entries  of  payments,  i|  and 
the  Venetian  Envoy's  Report  in  August   1 5 1 1   shews  that 

*  VON  Geymuller,  356. 

t  Cf.  Bangen,  278  seq.  ;  Reumont,  III.,  2,  48;  Paulus,  in  the 
Hist.  Jahrb.,  XVI.  (1895),  38  seq.  On  the  collection  in  Poland,  see  Acta 
Tomic,  I.,  56  ;  in  Hungary,  Theiner,  Mon.  Ung.,  II.,  578  seq.  On 
England,  see  supra.,  p.  473,  note*  and  BUSCH,  Tudors,  I.,  244. 

X  Sanuto,  X.,  80. 

§  Acta  Tomic,  I.,  56. 

II  Von  Geymuller,  356. 


STATE   OF   THE   WORKS   AT   HIS   DEATH.  483 

even  in  the  most  trying  times  Julius  II.  never  forgot  his 
Church.*  The  very  last  document  to  which  the  Pope 
put  his  hand,  the  day  before  he  died,  testifies  to  his  zeal 
in  this  work.f 

The  disbursements  for  the  payment  of  contractors  and 
overseers  for  the  works  of  S.  Peter's  in  the  time  of  Julius 
II.,  amount,  according  to.  the  Papal  registers,  to  70,653  gold 
ducats,  not  too  large  a  sum  compared  with  those  of  succeed- 
ing Popes.  In  the  period  between  the  22nd  December, 
1529  and  the  2nd  January,  1543,  the  building  cost  89,727 
scudi,  and  from  the  9th  January,  1543,  to  the  25th  February, 
1549,  160,774  scudi. J 

When  Julius  died,  the  four  pillars  for  the  Cupola,  each  of 
which  was  more  than  100  paces  in  circumference  at  the 
base,  with  their  connecting  arches,  were  finished.  These 
were  strengthened  by  the  introduction  of  cast-iron  center- 
ings, a  method  which  Bramante  had  rediscovered.  The 
choir,  begun  under  Nicholas  V.  by  Bernardo  Rosselino,  was 
utilised  by  Bramante  in  part  for  the  posterior  walls  of  the 
transept  and  in  part  for  a  choir,  which,  however,  was  only 
meant  to  be  a  provisional  one.  Besides  these,  the  tribunes 
for  the  nave  had  been  begun  and  an  enclosure  adorned  with 
Doric  pillars  for  the  Pope  and  his  Court  at  High  Mass, 
which  was  finished  later  by  Peruzzi,  but  eventually  done 
away  with.  The  high  altar  and  the  tribune  of  the  old 
church  were  still  in  existence  at  that  time,§  but  by  All 

*  Sanuto,  XIL,  362  ;  cf.  370. 
t  Bull.  Vat,  II.,  348  seg. 

t  PUNGILEONI,  Vita  cli  Bramante,  96  ;  and  MiJNTZ,  Hist,  de  I'Art, 
11.,  387  ;  Fea,  Notizie,  32. 

§    PLATTNER,  II.,    I,    136;   JOVANOVITS,    33;   VON   GEYMULLER,  I34 

seg.,  175  ;  especially  on  the  Provisional  Choir  done  away  with  in  1585,  by 
which  the  Pope  and  Bramante  tried  to  keep  up  a  pretence  of  making 
use  of  the  works  of  their  predecessors.  VON  Geymuller  also  shews, 
p.  224  seg.,  that  the  present  pillars  supporting"  the  Dome  are  Bramante's 


484  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Saints'  Day  in  151 1,  the  solemn  masses  were  celebrated  in 
the  Sistine  chapel,  and  no  longer  in  the  old  church.* 

Bramante  had  drawn  out  a  wonderful  design  for  the 
rebuilding  of  the  Vatican  Palace  as  well  as  for  the  church 
of  S.  Peter's.  Here  too,  the  plan,  for  both  precincts  and 
Palace,  was  practically  a  new  building,  but  the  death  of 
Julius  II.  interrupted  it.  Still  even  then,  what  had  been 
accomplished  was  so  important  that  even  in  1 509  Albertini 
could  say  "  Your  Holiness  has  already  made  more  progress 
with  the  Vatican  than  all  your  predecessors  together  have 
done  in  the  last  hundred  years."-]- 

Bramantes  genius  was  not  less  admirable  in  secular 
architecture  than  in  sacred.  Every  one  knows  the  famous 
Cortile  di  Damaso.  The  design  for  this  building,  which  so 
marvellously  combines  dignity  in  composition  with  exquisite 
grace  and  delicacy  in  detail,  was  his,  though  it  was  only 
executed  in   Raphael's  time,  and  part  of  it  even  later. 

A  further  project,  and  one  that  could  only  have  come 
into  such  a  mind  as  that  of  Julius  II.,  was  to  connect  the 
old  Vatican  Palace,  a  mere  heterogeneous  aggregation  of 
houses,  with  the  Belvedere  situated  on  the  rise  of  the  hill 
about  100  paces  higher  up.  Bramante  drew  a  magnificent 
plan  for  this.  In  it  two  straight  corridors  lead  from  the  old 
Palace  to  the  Belvedere.  The  space  between  them,  measur- 
ing about  327  yards  by  70,  was  divided  in  two ;  the  part 
next  the  Palace  (now  the  great  lower  Court)  was  to  form 
the  arena  of  a  theatre  for  tournaments  or  bull-fights  ;  from 
thence,  a  broad  flight  of  steps  led  up  to  a  terrace  and  from 
that  again  a  massive  double  staircase  ascended  to  the  upper 
half,  which  was  laid  out  as  a  garden  (now  the  Giardino  della 

{cf.  JOVANOVITS,  36),  and  vindicates  his  title  to  the  discovery  of  the 
cast-iron  arch-centres. 

*■  Paris  de  GrassiS,  ed.  Bollinger,  415. 

t  Albertini,  ed.  Schmarsow,  19.    Cf.  Laurent.,  Parmenius,  311. 


WORKS   AT   THE   VATICAN   AND   BELVEDERE.        485 

Pigna).  The  two  long  sides  of  the  theatre  were  broken  by 
three  Loggie,  while  the  lower  narrow  side  was  occupied  by  a 
semi-circular  amphitheatre  for  the  spectators.  The  two 
upper  Loggie  joined  the  long  sides  of  the  garden  above  the 
terrace ;  its  narrow  end  was  closed  by  a  colossal  niche 
roofed  with  a  half-dome  and  crowned  by  a  semi-circular 
course  of  pillars  and  facing  the  amphitheatre.*  It  was  a 
design  which,  had  it  beeti  carried  out,  would  certainly  have 
been  unrivalled  in  the  whole  world.f  Although  the  work 
was  energetically  begun,  the  only  portion  that  had  been 
completed  when  Julius  II.  died  was  the  eastern  gallery. 
Later,  so  many  alterations  and  additions  were  made  that 
the  original  plan  is  hardly  recognisable.  It  was  Sixtus  V. 
who  cut  the  large  Court  in  two  by  building  the  Vatican 
Library  across  it.  The  effect  of  the  whole  design  was 
completely  destroyed  by  this,  and  also  that  of  the  great 
niche  which  now  looks  monstrous,  not  having  sufficient 
foreground.^  He  also  walled  up  the  open  Loggie.  The 
long  corridor,  commanding  an  exquisite  view  of  Rome  and 
the  Campagna,  is  now  used  to  contain  the  Vatican  collection 
of  Christian  and  ancient  inscriptions.^  Under  Pius  VII. 
the  Braccio  Nuovo  was  built  parallel  with  the  Library  to 
serve  as  a  museum. 

The  extension  and  embellishment  of  the  Belvedere  was 

*  Bramante's  whole  design  is  in  Geymuller,  Plate  25  ;  Vasari,  IV., 
155  seq.  ;  PuNGlLEONi,  Vita  di  Bramante,  31  ;  Reumont,  III.,  2, 
375-376 ;  BURCKHARDT,  Renaissance,  52,  88,  97,  204,  256.  Von 
Geymuller,  75  seq.^  thinks  it  improbable  that  Bramante  in  any  way 
considered  Rosselino's  plans  ;  but  he  would  naturally  have  arranged  his 
design  so  as  not  to  clash  with  the  axis  of  S.  Peter's.  On  bull-fights  in 
Rome  in  the  time  of  Julius  II.,  see  NOLHAC,  Erasme,  75. 

t  See  BURCKHARDT,  Cicerone,  199. 

\  Semper,  Bramante,  41. 

§  No  one  who  has  seen  the  Vatican  Library  can  ever  forget  this 
corridor. 


486  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

another  of  the  works  undertaken  by  Bramante  to  improve 
and  put  the  Papal  residence  "  into  shape,"  as  Vasari  expresses 
it.  A  new  two-storied  facade  was  added  to  the  whole  build- 
ing, looking  southwards  towards  the  garden,  and  having 
for  its  centre  the  gigantic  niche  already  mentioned,  which 
is  about  80  feet  high.  From  its  exposed  situation  the 
Belvedere  was  often  called  the  tower  of  the  winds  {Tor  de 
venti).  Adjoining  the  Belvedere,  on  the  eastern  side,  was 
the  tower-shaped  hall  through  which  Bramante's  famous 
pillared  spiral  staircase  led  into  the  rampart  garden.  Baths 
and  aviaries  were  also  added  to  this  building  and  decorated 
with  views  of  all  the  principal  cities  in  Italy.* 

The  Belvedere  was  destined  soon  to  contain  the  most 
splendid  collection  of  ancient  sculptures  the  world  then 
possessed.  Julius  II.  was  an  ardent  collector,  and  the 
nucleus  was  formed  out  of  the  numerous  Roman  remains 
which  were  discovered  during  his  reign.  No  doubt,  by  the 
middle  of  the  15th  Century  Rome  was  already  rich  in 
ancient  statues,  but  in  Poggio's  time  only  five  of  these  had 
been  publicly  erected. f  Paul  II.'s  valuable  collection  of 
antique  gems,  vases,  etc.,  had  been  dispersed  at  his  death. 
Sixtus  IV.  opened  a  museum  of  antique  art  in  the  Capitol, 
which  was  the  first  public  collection  of  this  kind  in  Italy, 
and,  indeed,  in  Europe.  It  consisted  for  the  most  part  of 
large  bronzes.  Innocent  VIII.  added  some  newly-found 
works  in  brass  and  the  colossal  head  of  Commodus.;]:  The 
example  of  Sixtus  IV.  at  first  does  not  seem  to  have  found 
any  imitators.     "  During  the  lifetime  of  this  Pope  very  few 

*  VON  Geymuller,  ']']  ;  MiCHAELlS  in  the  Jahrbuch  des  Deutsch. 
Archaol.  Instituts,  V.,  13;  Reumont,  III.,  2,  382.  A  drawing  by 
Letarouilly,  Le  Vatican,  Cour  du  Belvedere,  Plate  5  ;  cf.  Plate  8,  which 
shews  what  the  Belvedere  looked  like  at  the  time  of  Bramante's  death. 

t  MiJNTZ,  Raphael,  589. 

J  Cf.  Pastor  Gesch.  Papste,  II.,  330  j^?^.,  628,  ed.  2  ;  and  MiCHAELIS, 
in  Mittheil.  d.  Kaiserl.  Deutschen  Archaol.  Instituts,  VI.,  1 1  seq. 


THE   VATICAN    SCULPTURES.  487 

in  Rome  seem  to  have  taken  any  interest  in  the  larger 
ancient  marble  sculptures,  or  made  any  attempt  to  form 
collections  ;  whereas  at  the  same  period  in  Florence,  where 
the  opportunities  were  so  much  fewer,  the  famous  Medicean 
gallery  had  long  been  in  existence.  It  was  not  till  the 
close  of  the  15th  Century  that  the  feeling  for  ancient 
sculpture  awoke  in  Rome,  but  once  started  in  such  a  fruit- 
ful soil  it  naturally  developed  rapidly."  * 

As  Cardinal  Giuliano  della  Rovere,  the  Pope  was  a 
diligent  collector.  In  the  time  of  Innocent  VIII.  ap- 
parently he  succeeded  in  obtaining  a  newly  discovered 
statue  of  Apollo,  which  he  placed  in  the  garden  of  S.  Pietro 
in  Vincoli.-j-  It  created  quite  a  furore  amongst  all  lovers 
of  art,  and  soon  acquired  a  world-wide  reputation. | 

When  he  became  Pope  he  transferred  the  statue  to  the 
Vatican  and  placed  it  in  the  Cortile  di  Belvedere.  This 
Cortile  about  100  feet  square,  was  laid  out  as  a  garden  with 
orange  trees  and  running  streamlets.  Bramante  designed 
semi-circular  niches  for  the  statues  which  adorned  it.  Be- 
sides the  Apollo,  an  incomplete  group,  Antaeus  in  the  grasp 
of  Hercules,  and  the  Venus  Felix,  were  placed  here.§ 

*  MiCHAELIS,  Statuenhof,  9  seq. 

t  Not  in  SS.  Apostoli  as  almost  universally  stated  ;   see  MiCHAELIS, 

lO-II. 

X  A  drawing  of  it  in  the  sketch-book  of  an  Italian  artist  of  the  latter 
decade  of  the  15th  Century  is  in  the  Escurial ;  see  MiJNTZ,  Anti- 
quites,  161.  There  can  be  little  doubt  that  Diirer  made  use  of  a  similar 
sketch  for  his  Apollo  with  a  sheaf  of  rays  (before  1 504) ;  see  WiCKHOFF 
in  the  Mittheil.  d.  Instituts,  I.,  422  ;  Thode,  Die  Antiken,  2  ;  MiCHAELIS, 
II.  In  the  Venetian  Ambassadoi-'s  Reports  of  1523  in  Alberi,  2nd 
Series,  III.,  114,  there  is  mention  of  the  Apollo  famoso  nel  mondo. 

§  MiCHAELIS,  13  seq.^  who  quotes  from  the  eariiest  edition  of  the 
Antiquario  of  Julius  II.,  out  of  Albertini's  booklet,  pubhshed  in  15 10. 
But  here  (Schmarsow's  ed.,  39),  only  the  Laocoon  is  mentioned  as 
having  been  placed  in  the  Belvedere  ;  of  the  Apollo  and  Venus  it  is 
merely  said  that  the  Pope  had  them  taken  to  the  Vatican.     At  the  same 


488  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

In  the  year  1506,  a  fresh  discovery  added  another  treasure 
to  these  marbles  which,  in  the  eyes  of  the  art-lovers  of 
that  day,  surpassed  everything  that  had  as  yet  been  known. 
This  was  the  Laocoon  which  was  found  in  a  vineyard  be- 
longing to  a  Roman  citizen,  Felice  de'  Freddi.  The  vine- 
yard was  situated  in  the  so  called  baths  of  Titus,*  which 
later  proved  such  a  veritable  mine  of  art  treasures.  It  was 
discovered  on  the  14th  of  January  in  that  year,  not  far  from 
the  water-tower  of  the  Sette  Sale.  The  moment  the  Pope 
heard  of  it  he  sent  Giuliano  da  Sangallo  to  see  it.  Michael 
Angelo  and  Giuliano's  son,  a  boy  of  nine,  accompanied  him. 
The  latter  says :  "  We  then  set  off  together,  I  on  my 
father's  shoulders.  Directly  my  father  saw  the  statue  he 
exclaimed  'this  is  the  Laocoon  mentioned  by  Pliny;'  the 
opening  had  to  be  enlarged  to  get  the  statue  out."  f 

The  Pope  had  several  rivals  also  desirous  of  purchasing 
the  treasure,  but  iinally  on  the  23rd  of  March,  1506,  a  few 
weeks  before  the  laying  of  the  foundation-stone  of  S.  Peter's, 
he  succeeded  in  obtaining  it.  The  finder  and  his  son 
Federigo  received  in  exchange  for  their  lifetimes  a  charge 
on  the  tolls  of  the  Porta  S.  Giovanni  to  the  amount  of  600 
gold  ducats  annually.^ 

time  we  find  in  the  Report  of  the  Mantuan  Envoy  of  1 2th  July,  1 5 1 1  (in 
Luzio,  F.  Gonzaga,  21) :  II  Papa  ha  fatto  conzar  in  Belveder  un  Apollo, 
et  judicato  non  manco  bello  di  Laocoonte.  Thus  it  does  not  seem 
certain  which  were  first  placed  in  the  Belvedere,  the  three  statues,  or  the 
Laocoon.  Perhaps  some  other  report  may  be  found  later,  which  will 
settle  the  question. 

*  According  to  Prof.  Lanciani  the  ruins  on  the  south-western  slope  of 
the  Esquiline,  which  have  hitherto  been  supposed  to  be  the  baths  of  Titus, 
are  really  only  an  off-shoot  of  the  baths  of  Trajan ;  the  true  baths  of  Titus 
having  only  been  discovered  in  1895  quite  close  to  the  Colosseum. 

+  Fea,  Miscell,  I.,  329  seq.  MiCHAELis  has  enumerated  all  the  other 
early  witnesses  of  the  discovery,  p.  16,  note  36. 

X  Marini,  Iscriz.  Albane,  11,  n.  2 ;  Bull.  d.  1st.  Arch.  (1867),  p.  190 
seq.  ;  Naumann'S  Archiv,  XIII.,  108  ;  MiCHAELis,  17,  note  40. 


DISCOVERY   OF   THE   LAOCOON.  489 

The  Laocoon  was  installed  in  a  niche  in  the  Belvedere. 
It  inspired  the  greatest  enthusiasm  in  Rome :  "  it  was  felt 
to  be  the  most  perfect  embodiment  of  the  life  and  spirit 
of  the  ancient  world  that  had  yet  been  seen.  It  and  the 
Apollo  became  from  henceforth  the  most  admired  and 
most  popular  of  works  of  art."  * 

While  Sadolet  and  other  poets  sang  the  praises  of  the 
Laocoon  in  their  lyrics  the  influence  it  exerted  on  the 
minds  of  contemporary  artists  was  striking  and  important. 
Michael  Angelo's  painting  of  the  execution  of  Haman  on  the 
roof  of  the  Sistine  was  evidently  inspired  by  this  group.-f- 
In  Raphael's  Parnassus  in  the  Camera  della  Segnatura  there 
is  a  suggestion  of  the  Laocoon  in  the  head  of  Homer,  and 
other  figures  in  the  same  fresco  are  also  taken  from  antique 
models.J  Bramante  commissioned  several  sculptors  to 
make  models  in  wax  of  the  Laocoon  for  the  mould  of  a 
copy  to  be  executed  in  brass  ;  he  appointed  Raphael  judge 
of  the  competition ;  the  young  Jacopo  Sansovino  was 
awarded  the  palm.  Federigo  Gonzaga  asked  the  famous 
goldsmith,  Caradossa,  to  copy  the  Laocoon  for  him. 
Another  interesting  point  about  this  group  is  that  it  was 
"  the  subject  of  the  first  attempt  at  antiquarian  criticism." 
The  question  arose  whether  Pliny's  assertion  that  it 
had  been  carved  out  of  a  single  block  of  marble  was 
true.  Michael  Angelo  and  Cristoforo  Romano,  "  the 
first  sculptors  in  Rome,"  were  asked  to  decide  the  point. 
They  found  that  it  consisted  of  several  pieces  and 
shewed  four  joints  in   it,  but  so  skilfully  concealed    that 

*  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  136,  ed.  3.     Cf.  Luzio,  F.  Gonzaga.  21. 

t  Cf.  Janitscheks  Repertorium,  XIII.,  146.  Grimm,  I.,  277,  ed.  5, 
does  not  think  that  the  arm  with  a  snake  twined  round  it,  which  now  hes 
by  the  side  of  the  group,  is  Michael  Angelo's  work. 

X  The  Calliope  which  is  taken  from  the  statue  of  Cleopatra-Ariadne. 
MUNTZ,  Raphael,  594.     Cf.  also  infra,  Chap.  10. 


490  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

it  was  not  surprising  that  Pliny  should  not  have  remarked 
them.* 

Hardly  less  interest  was  aroused  by  the  discovery  of 
another  antique  group,  Hercules  with  the  infant  Telephus 
on  his  arm,  which  was  found  in  May  1507  in  the  Campo  di 
Fiore.  The  Pope  lost  no  time  in  securing  the  statue,  which 
he  placed  at  the  entrance  of  his  museum  with  an  inscrip- 
tion forbidding  any  to  enter  who  had  no  sympathy  with 
ancient  art  {Procul  este  profani).-\ 

Subsequently  the  collection  in  the  Belvedere  was  en- 
larged by  the  addition  of  the  so-called  Tigris  statue  and 
the  reclining  figure  of  Ariadne,  which  was  supposed  to  be 
Cleopatra,  and  celebrated  under  this  name  in  the  poems  of 
Capodiferro  and  Castiglione.|  Finally,  in  January  15 12, 
the  great  statue  of  the  Tiber,  found  near  the  Minerva,  was 
also  brought  to  the  Belvedere.§  The  statues  were  artisti- 
cally arranged  either  beside  the  fountains  or  on  Sarcophagi 
ornamented  with  reliefs,  so  that  the  effect  of  the  whole, 
with  the  orange  grove  in  the  centre,  was  rather  that  of  a 
decorated  garden  than  of  a  museum.     "  From  the  garden 

*  Grimm,  I.,  276,  ed.  5  ;  Michaelis,  18  ;  Arch.  d.  St.  dell'  Arte,  I., 
148  seg. ;  Luzio,  F.  Gonzaga,  40  seg. 

t  Albertini,  ed.  Schmarsow,  39.  Cf.  Michaelis,  18,  to  whom  this 
is  the  only  report  of  the  discovery  known.  There  exists,  however,  a 
more  detailed  one  in  a  letter  of  Georgius  de  Negroponto,  dat.  Rome, 
19th  May,  1507,  which  I  saw  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua,  and 
which  has  since  been  published  by  LuziO,  Lettere  inedite  di  Fra  Sabba 
di  Castiglione,  6,  note. 

J  Michaelis,  18  seg.  Capodiferro's  poems  are  in  Janitscheks 
Repert.,  III.,  55.  Castiglione's  hexameters  are  still  to  be  seen  as  an 
inscription  near  to  the  statue. 

§  On  the  discovery  of  the  statue  of  the  Tiber,  see  the  Mantuan  Report 
in  .Bertolotti,  Artisti  in  relazione  coi  Gonzaga,  70  (Modena,  1885),  and 
LuziO,  F.  Gonzaga,  30-32,  which  shew  that  Michaelis  is  mistaken  in  his 
view  (also  adopted  by  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  139,  ed.  3)  that  this  statue 
was  found  in  the  reign  of  Leo  X. 


DEMAND   FOR   ANTIQUITIES   IN    ROME.  49 1 

it  was  only  a  step  to  the  eastern  balcony,  with  its  exquisite 
view  over  the  city  and  the  wide  plain  to  the  encircling 
hills  beyond.  A  spacious  covered  hall,  enclosing  the 
principal  fountain,  seems  to  have  opened  into  the  cortile,  on 
the  other  side."  Probably  the  statue  of  Hermes,  now  in 
the  Uffizi  Palace  in  Florence,  and  a  sarcophagus  of  Melean- 
der,  which  had  been  dug  up  from  behind  the  church  of 
S.  Peter's,  stood  here.* 

Each  new  discovery,  as  it  stimulated  the  eagerness  of 
the  collectors,  gave  rise  to  fresh  excavations  and  researches 
in  Rome  and  the  Campagna.f  The  demand  for  antiquities 
became  so  keen  that  the  extreme  difficulty  of  procuring 
them  is  often  mentioned.  George  of  Negroponte,  writing 
from  Rome  in  1507,  says,  "The  moment  anything  is 
found,  innumerable  bidders  for  it  start  up."  From  the 
same  letter  we  gather  that  a  flourishing  trade  in  such 
things  was  carried  on  by  speculators,  the  prices  constantly 
rising  and  falling.^  For  some  time  past,  many  antiquities 
had  been  carried  off  by  foreign  dilettanti.^  In  the 
beginning  of  the   i6th  Century  the  demand  for  collections 

*  MiCHAELls,  23.  See  ibid.,  9,  the  plan  of  the  Court  of  Statues  in  the 
Belvedere,  founded  on  Letarouilly'S  Le  Vatican,  Cour  du  Belvedere, 
Plate  I. 

t  Cf.  MuNTZ,  Antiquites,- 53.  In  the  year  1506,  Julius  II.  gave  per- 
mission for  excavations  near  S.  Niccolo  in  Carcere  :  see  Bullet,  di  corrisp. 
Archeol.  (1867),  p.  191.  The  rage  for  discoveries  of  course  produced 
many  forgeries  inspired  by  vanity  or  desire  for  gain.  The  Dominican, 
Titus  Annus  of  Viterbo,  pubhshed  imaginary  writings,  by  no  less  than 
seventeen  authors  of  his  own  invention,  and  also  forged  many  inscrip- 
tions ;  even  Pomponius  Laetus,  the  Principal  of  the  Roman  Academy, 
had  several  forged  inscriptions  in  his  collection.  See  J.  MuLLER,  Alte 
u.  neue  Falschungen,  in  Allg.  Zeit.  (1891),  N.  in,  Suppl.,  14th  May. 

X  Luzio,  Lettere  inedite  di  Fra  Sabba  da  Castiglione,  5-6,  N.  Cf.  also 
Arch.  Stor.  dell'  Arte,  I.,  148. 

§  On  the  exportation  of  Antiques,  see,  besides  Bertolotti's  rather 
inaccurate  writings,  MuNTZ'S  very  valuable  Antiquites,  54  seq. 


492  HISTORY   OF  THE   POPES. 

in  Rome  itself  was  no  less  eager.  Julius  II,  had  to 
compete  not  only  with  Cardinals,  such  as  Riario,  Caraffa, 
Galeotto  della  Rovere,  and,  more  especially,  Giovanni  de' 
Medici,  but  also  with  rich  merchants  such  as  Agostino 
Chigi,  members  of  the  Court,  like  the  German  Goritz,  and 
finally,  with  the  Roman  nobles,  who  loved  to  fill  their 
palaces  with  antiques.  They  set  them  up  in  their  gardens 
and  court-yards,  and  built  inscriptions  and  even  sculptures 
into  their  walls  and  staircases,  a  custom  which  still 
survives.* 

The  good  effect  of  this  "  Pantheon  of  classical  sculpture"j- 
in  the  Vatican,  was  not  confined  to  its  results  in  stimulating 
research  and  the  knowledge  of  antiquity  ;  it  also  furnished 
the  sculptors  of  that  time  with  the  noblest  examples  and 
models.  The  Pope  himself  encouraged  the  revival  of  this 
art  by  giving  employment  to  its  most  distinguished 
masters.  He  took  Cristoforo  Romano,J  Andrea  San- 
sovino  and  Michael  Angelo  into  his  service.  We  shall  deal 
fully  in  the  next  chapter  with  the  commissions  given  by 
Julius  to  the  greatest  sculptor  of  modern  times.|  Andrea 
Sansovino,  who  had  been  residing  in  Rome  from  the  year 
1504,11  was  charged  with  the  erection  of  two  marble  tombs 
in  memory  of  Cardinals  Ascanio  Sforza  and  Girolamo 
Basso  della  Rovere,  in  the  favourite  church  of  the  Rovere, 
S'^  Maria  del  Popolo.  Both  were  completed  before  the 
end   of  the  year    1509.     In  his   main    design    the   master 

*  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  140  seq.^  ed.  3.  Cf.  MuNTZ,  Raphael,  590  seq.^ 
and  Hist,  de  I'Art,  II.,  105  seq. 

t  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  134,  ed.  3. 

X  It  has  not  yet  been  discovered  what  precisely  were  the  works  on 
which  Cristoforo  was  employed.  All  that  is  known  is  that  the  Pope  de- 
sired him  to  make  a  medallion  of  himself  in  the  year  1 506.  See  Arch. 
St.  deir  Arte,  I.,  149. 

§  See  infra  Chap.  9. 

II  SCHONFELD,  Sansovino,  14. 


IMPROVEMENTS   IN    ROME.  493 

adhered  to  the  traditional  form,  but  the  composition  is  free, 
and  the  distribution  of  the  parts  broader  and  clearer.  "The 
figures  recline  in  peaceful  slumber  in  a  sort  of  a  niche  in 
the  wall  surmounted  by  a  triumphal  arch."  * 

In  the  year  15 12,  Sansovino  carved  a  marble  group  of 
the  Madonna  and  Child  and  S.  Anne  for  the  church  of  S. 
Agostino  by  order  of  the  German  Prelate,  Johann  Goritz, 
whose  house  was  the  rendezvous  of  all  the  best  scholars 
and  artists  in  Rome.  "  This  is  one  of  the  most  perfect 
productions  of  the  new  style."  Its  special  characteristic  is 
great  tenderness  and  depth  of  expression,  and  the  wonder- 
ful delineation  of  the  three  different  ages  which  it  re- 
presents.j- 

Our  admiration  of  Julius  II. 's  indefatigable  energy  is 
still  further  increased  when  we  turn  to  the  numerous  other 
works,  which  he  undertook  and  carried  out  in  Rome  for 
the  improvement  of  the  existing  streets,  and  the  laying 
out  and  adorning  of  new  ones.  He  connected  all  that 
he  did  in  these  directions  with  the  works  begun  by  Sixtus 
IV.  and  Alexander  VI.  In  April  1505,  he  determined 
to  complete  the  Via  Alessandrina  ;  the  cost  of  this  work 
was  divided  between  the  Pope,  the  Cardinals,  the  officials 

*  LiJBKE,  Gesch.  der  Plastik,  694;  Schonfeld,  Sansovino,  i/^seg.', 
Semper-Barth,  Bildhauerarchitekten  d.  Renaiss.,  11  seq.  (Dresden, 
1880),  and  Plates  14  and  15  ;  Letarouilly,  Edifices,  III.,  PI.  239-242. 
According  to  VON  Geymuller,  84,  the  tomb  of  Ascanio  Sforza  bears 
traces  of  Bramante's  influence  ;  indeed,  he  thinks  it  possible  that  the 
architectural  part  was  after  a  design  of  his.  The  inscription  on  A. 
Sforza's  grave  is  to  be  found  in  Vairani,  II.,  116  seq.  Julius  II. 
announces  his  intention  of  erecting  a  tomb  for  Ascanio  in  a  *Brief 
addressed  to  Gundisalvo  Fernandi  duci  Terrenove,  dat.  12th  June. 
1505.     *Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  327b.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

t    Cf.  REUMONT,    III.,   2,    385  ;    LtJBKE,   loc.   Cit.,   695  ;   SCHONFELD, 

Sansovino,  21  seq.  On  Andrea  Galletti  who  was  also  employed  by  Julius 
II.,  see  Appendix,  N.  45. 


494  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

of  the  Court,  and  the  Hospital  of  S'°  Spirito.*  Many  other 
streets,  as  the  approach  to  the  Lateran,  the  streets  of  S. 
Celso,  S'*  Lucia  and  many  of  the  Piazza  were  embellished 
by  Julius  I  I.f  Amongst  the  new  streets  which  he  made, 
and  many  of  which  still  determine  the  ground-plan  of 
the  city,  the  Via  Giulia  bears  his  name  up  to  the  present 
day.  Beginning  at  the  Ponte  Sisto  it  runs  westwards  in 
a  straight  line  until  it  reaches  the  Tiber  near  the  ruins 
of  the  old  triumphal  bridge.  This  latter  was  to  have 
been  rebuilt  and  was  already  spoken  of  as  the  Julian 
Bridge,!  ^"^  so  the  whole  would  have  formed  a  new  and 
splendid  approach  to  S.  Peter's.  The  Via  Giulia  was  then 
the  broadest  thoroughfare  in  Rome,  and  was  to  have  been 
made  the  handsomest.  We  still  see  the  trace  of  his  plans 
in  the  now  unfrequented  street  from  which  traffic  has  been 
diverted  to  other  ways.  Between  the  churches  of  San 
Biagio  and  del  Suffragio  we  see  the  commencement, 
consisting  of  huge  rough-hewn  square  stones,  of  the  base- 
ment of  an  immense  building  which  was  intended  to 
contain  the  Law  Courts  and  Notarial  Offices  of  the  city,  and 
also  a  handsome  chapel.  It  was  to  have  had  four  corner 
towers  with  a  loftier  one  in  the  centre  of  the  facade  over 
the  main  entrance.  If  it  had  been  completed,  the  Julian 
Palace  "  would  have  ranked  as  Bramante's  greatest  work 

*  28th  April,  1505.  Rmus  D.  Card.  S.  Giorgii  fecit  verbum  de  via 
Alessandrina  ut  sterni  posset  et  fuit  conclusum  quod  S.  D.  N.  et  colle- 
gium rev.  dominor.  cardinalium  solverent  600  ducatos  et  officiales  800  et 
hospitale  S.  Spiritus  cum  ecclesia  S.  Petri  solverent  100  ducatos. 
(Acta  Consist.,  f.  12  in  Cod.  T.,  8,  12,  in  the  Angelica  Library,  Rome.) 
ClACONius,  III.,  246,  gives  this  memorandum  ex  antiquis  MS.  Vatic, 
with  the  date  of  28th  Aug.,  1 505.  In  Contelorius'  extracts  from  the  Acta 
Consist.,  the  26th  of  April  is  given.  Arm.  2>7i  T.  40,  f.  296.  Secret 
Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

t  Albertini,  ed.  Schmarsow,  42  seg. 

X  Ibid.,  50. 


FORMATION    OF   THE   VIA   GIULIA.  495 

after  S.  Peter's  and  the  Vatican.  The  immense  blocks  of 
travertine,  the  largest  in  Rome,  shew  on  what  a  colossal 
scale  the  edifice  was  designed.* 

The  district  lying  between  the  Via  Giulia  and  the 
Bridge  of  St.  Angelo,  which  had  been  improved  under 
Sixtus  IV.  was  still  further  embellished  by  Julius.  The 
church  of  S.  Celso  was  restored,  and  not  far  from  it  the 
new  Mint  was  erected.-f  The  Banking-house  of  the 
wealthy  and  artistic  Agostino  Chigi,  who  was  on  such 
intimate  terms  with  the  Pope  as  financial  adviser  that 
Julius  received  him  into  the  Rovere  family, ;[:  stood  in  this 
quarter ;  and  Galeotto  della  Rovere  now  inhabited  the 
Cancellaria  which  had  formerly  belonged  to  Rodrigo 
Borgia.  An  inscription  on  marble,  somewhat  in  the  tomb- 
stone style,  was  put  up  in  1 5 1 2  in  the  Via  di  Bacchi  by 
the  ediles  Domenico  Massimo  and  Hieronymo  Pico, 
praising  Julius  II.  for  all  he  had  done  for  the  States  of  the 
Church  and  the  liberation  of  Italy,  and  especially  for  having 
"  made  Rome  the  fitting  capital  of  such  a  state  by  enlarging 
and  embellishing  her  streets."  The  improvements  effected 
in  the  Lungara,  the  street  running  along  the  right  bank  of 
the  Tiber  between  the  Leonine  city  and  the  Trastevere, 
quite  altered  the  appearance  of  that  district.  The  intention 
was  to  carry  it  on  as  far  as  the  Ripa  Grande  as  a  parallel 

*  See  Aegidius  of  Viterbo  in  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  117,  ed.  3.  Cf. 
Von  Geymuller,  57  ;  Zeitschrift  fiir  bildende  Kunst  (1878),  p.  244; 
Albertini,  ed.  Schmarsow,  11,  22  ;  Reumont,  III.,  2,  376,  451  ;  Arch. 
Stor.  d.  Soc.  Rom.,  I.,  147. 

t  Albertini,  49  ;  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  117,  ed.  3. 

:J:  Concerning  A.  Chigi,  of  whom  we  shall  have  more  to  say  in  our 
forthcoming  volume,  cf.  CUGNONi  in  the  Arch.  Stor.  d.  Soc.  Rom.,  II.,  37 
5-^^.,  209  seq.  {cf.  224,  Privileges  from  Julius  II.),  475  seq.  ;  III.,  213  seq., 
291  seq..,  422  seq.  ;  IV.,  56  seq..,  195  seq.  ;  VI.,  139  seq.,  497  seq.  Reu- 
MONT,  III.,  I,  441  seq.,  and  2,  398  seq.  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  118  seq., 
ed.  3,  and  LuziO,  F.  Gonzaga,  24  seq. 


496  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

to  the  Via  Giulia  on  the  other  side,  but  it  did  not  make 
rapid  progress.  The  Riarii  and  Cardinal  Ferarri  had 
country-houses  and  gardens  where  it  terminated,  and  in  the 
time  of  Julius  II.  Agostino  Chigi's  splendid  Villa,  the 
Farnesina,  which  was  celebrated  all  over  the  world  for  the 
decorative  paintings  on  its  walls,  stood  there.* 

Amongst  the  Roman  churches,  for  which  Julius  did  more 
or  less,  Albertini  mentions  S.  Maria  Maggiore,  S.  Pietro  in 
VincoH,  S.  Biagio  della  Pagnotta,  SS.  Apostoli  and  S'^ 
Maria  del  Popolo.f  Clinging  closely  as  Julius  always  did  to 
the  traditions  of  Sixtus  IV.  it  will  be  understood  that  he  took 
a  special  interest  in  this  church.  The  Chapel  of  the  Choir 
was  enlarged  by  Bramante,^  and  the  windows  filled  with 
stained  glass  by  two  French  masters,  Claude,  whose  family 
name  is  unknown,  and  a  Dominican,  Guillaume  de  Marcillat, 
These  artists  were  also  employed  by  the  Pope  for  the  stained 
glass  in  the  Sala  Regia  adjoining  the  Sistine  Chapel, 
and  in  the  Papal  apartments  in  the  Vatican,  and  liberally 
rewarded. I  The  tombs  of  Cardinals  Basso  and  Sforza  were 
placed  in  this  chapel,  and  it  was  further  embellished,  appa- 
rently in  the  year  1505,  with  frescoes  by  Pinturicchio  at  the 
Pope's  command.  The  exquisite  harmony  of  colouring  in 
this  work  even  surpasses  that  of  his  Siena  paintings.  The 
roof  seems  to  open  in  the  centre  to  reveal  a  vision  of  the 
Coronation  of  the  Blessed  Virgin  in  a  blue  sky  surrounded 
with  a  glory  of  cherub  faces.  Four  circular  openings  in 
the  direction  of  the  cross  axes  of  the  central  painting  con- 
tain half-length  figures  of  the  Evangelists,  while  at  the  four 

*  Reumont,  III.,  2,  451  ;  GreGOROVIUS,  VIIL,  117  seq.,  ed.  3. 
Further  particulars  in  regard  to  the  Farnesina  will  appear  in  our  next  vol. 

t  Albertini,  6  seq.  On  the  SS.  Apostoli,  see  Brief  of  nth  Dec. 
1507,  in  Appendix,  N.  56.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

%  MiJNTZ  in  the  Gazette  des  Beaux  Arts  (1879),  P-  366;  VON 
Geymuller,  85. 

§  Reumont,  III.,  2,  393,  856. 


DECORATION   OF    ROMAN   CHURCHES.  497 

corners  of  the  roof  square  architectural  frames  enclose  re- 
clining forms  of  Sybils,  painted  in  colour  on  a  golden 
mosaic  background.  The  depressed  intermediate  spaces 
are  filled  with  highly-coloured  grotesques  on  a  dark  ground 
while  the  architectural  lines  of  the  roof  are  defined  in  pale 
stone-colour.*  It  was  probably  Julius  II.'s  partiality  for 
S'^  Maria  del  Popolo  which  led  Agostino  Chigi  to  commence 
the  building  of  a  chapel  for  himself  there,  which,  however,  was 
only  completed  under  Leo  X.  Julius  II.  had  only  possessed 
a  modest  conventual-looking  house  near  S.  Petro  in  Vincoli 
as  long  as  he  remained  a  Cardinal,  but  when  he  became  Pope 
he  built  himself  a  Palace  by  this  church.f  The  Villa  Mag- 
lione,  which  had  already  been  embellished  by  the  art-loving 
Cardinal  i\lidosi,  was  further  improved  by  Pope  Julius  I  I.J 
Outside  Rome  one  of  the  first  interests  of  this  warrior 
Pope  was  to  strengthen  the  fortresses  in  the  States 
of  the  Church  and  add  to  their  number.  Work  of  this 
description  was  executed  in  Civita  Vecchia,§  Ostia,|| 
Civita   Castellana,    Montefiascone,    Forli,!"    Imola,**    and 

*  SCHIMARSOW,  Pinturicchio  in  Rom,  82  seq.  Cf.  Gruner,  Decora- 
tions des  Palais,  PI.  XIII.,  49. 

t  Albertini,  22  ;  SCHMARSOW,  Pinturicchio,  22  ;  ReUMONT,  III., 
1,418. 

I  Cf.  Plattner'S  Preface  to  L,  Gruner,  I  freschi  della  Villa  Magliana 
(Leipzig,  1S47).  On  Alidosi's  patronage  of  Art,  see  Springer,  108  ;  he 
also  befriended  Erasmus. 

§  Cf.  BURCHARDI  Diarium,  III.,  219  seq.  ;  Sanuto,  VIII.,  23  ; 
CiACONius,  III.,  241. 

II  Cf  Reumont,  III.,  I,  519.  The  Ferrarese  Envoy  mentions  the 
building  in  Ostia  in  a  ^Report  of  30th  Oct.,  1508.  (State  Archives, 
Modena.)  In  August  151 1,  when  he  began  to  recover  from  his  serious 
illness,  one  of  the  first  things  that  Julius  II.  spoke  of  was  the  carrying  on 
of  the  works  in  Viterbo.     Sanuto,  XII.,  482. 

IT  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Bollinger,  26  (Civ.  Castellana),  32  (Monte- 
fiascone), 63  (Forli). 
**  Fanti,  Imola,  19. 
VOL.  \T.  2  K 


49^  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Bologna.*  The  building  of  churches,  however,  was  by  no 
means  neglected.  Julius  assisted  in  the  construction  of  the 
Cathedrals  of  Perugia  f  and  Orvieto,|  and  in  that  of 
churches  in  Bologna, §  Ferrara,||  S.  Arcangelo,1[  Corneto, 
and  Toscanella,**  He  also  gave  a  commission  to  Bramante 
for  very  extensive  works  at  Loreto.  While  yet  a  Cardinal 
he  had  had  the  sacristy  there  decorated  by  Signorelli  with 
a  series  of  paintings ;  ff  now  he  employed  Bramante  to 
embellish  this  venerated  sanctuary,  which  was  a  focus  of 

*  Cf.supra,  p.  286.  See  also  the  *Brief,  dat.  Bologna,  i8tli  Dec,  15 10, 
to  the  Marquess  of  Mantua,  which  says  :  Ceterum  cogitamus  addere  arci 
nostra  Bononiae  quasdam  munitiones  in  quibus  ingenio  at  arte  dil.  filii 
Nicolai  Marie  Griffoni  uti  volumus ;  est  anim  ut  accepimus  har.  rerum 
fabricator  egregius.  This  man  is  to  be  sent  to  him.  Gonzaga  Archives, 
Mantua. 

t  *Brief  of  loth  July,  15 12.     Capitular  Archives,  Perugia. 

J  Studi  e  documenti  (1890),  p.  106  seg'. 

§  *Briaf,  dat.  Bologna,  21st  Feb.,  A°.  4°.  The  church  of  S.  Dominic 
in  Bologna  contains  the  relics  of  this  Saint,  who  is  the  patron  of  the  city, 
and  held  there  in  special  veneration.  In  order  to  encourage  their 
devotion,  and  obtain  funds  for  keeping  the  building  in  good  order,  the 
Pope  granted  an  Indulgence  to  all  who  should  visit  the  church  on  the 
next  Feast-day  of  the  Saint,  confess  their  sins  and  give  a  small  alms  for 
this  purpose.  *Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  i68b;  z'h'd.,  f.  259,  ^Indulgence  (dat. 
Rom,  May  7,  1507),  for  the  restoration  and  decoration  of  the  church  of 
S.  Patronio  in  Bologna.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 

!|  *Indulgance  for  the  building  of  the  church  of  S.  John  in  Ferrara, 
Bologna,  8th  Feb.,  1507,  A°.  40.  Ecclasiarum  fabrice  manus  porrigere 
adiutrices  pium  et  magnum  apud  deum  meriti  esse  putantes  fideles  .  .  . 
ut  per  temporalia,  qua  illis  impenderint  auxilia,  premia  consequi  valeant 
felicitatis  aeternae  etc.     *Lib.  bi-ev.  25,  f.  183K 

U  ^Indulgence  for  the  church  B.  V.  M.  in  terra  nostra  S.  Archangelo 
prope  Rimini,  dat.  Vitei-bo,  3rd  Mar.,  1507.     *Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  218. 

-X-*  *Bi-ief  of  Indulgence  for  the  building  of  the  church  S.  Johannis 
Cornetani  et  S.  Leonardi  de  Tuscanella,  dat.  Viterbo,  19th  Mar.,  1507. 
*Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  219. 

tt  WOLTMANN,  II.,  230. 


THE   HOLY   HOUSE   AT   LORETO.  499 

devotion  to  the  Blessed  Virgin  for  the  whole  of  Italy  and 
a  large  part  of  Europe.  Paris  de  Grassis  gives  an  account 
of  these  works,*  of  which  the  most  important  were  the 
decorated  casing  of  marble  with  which  the  Holy  House 
was  covered,  and  which  belongs  to  Julius  H.,  though  the 
arms  of  Leo  X.  appear  on  the  pedestal,  and  the  Palace  of 
the  Canons,  called  subsequently  the  Palazzo  Apostolico  or 
Palazzo  del  Governo.  This  building  was  to  have  occupied 
the  three  sides  of  the  piazza  in  front  of  the  church,  so 
as  to  form  a  closed  atrium  leading  up  to  it,  but  only  a 
portion  of  the  design  was  completed.-f 

Next  to  the  Sanctuary  of  Loreto  the  decoration  of  the 
Cathedral  of  Savona,  the  Pope's  native  city,  was  the  work 
that  lay  nearest  to  his  heart.J  Before  he  was  made  Pope 
he  had  enriched  it  with  many  gifts,  and  after  his  elevation 
he  spent  no  less  than  27,000  scudi  on  its  endowment  and 
embellishment.  He  also  built  a  new  Palace  for  the  Bishop 
there  and  a  Chapter-house,  finished  the  Chapel  of  S.  Sisto, 
supported  the  Hospital  with  liberal  alms,  and  sent  a  yearly 
contribution  to  the  keeping  up  of  the  harbour.§ 

*  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  286. 

t  Cf.  Von  Geymuller,  93  seq.  ;  Semper,  Bramante,  42.  See  also 
TURSELLINUS,  i£o  seq.;  VOGEL,  II.,  238  seq.\  PUNGILEONI,  94; 
Stimmen  aiis  Maria-Laach,  1891,  I.  (XL.),  p.  168  seq.  P.  Giannizzi, 
La  chiesa  di  S.  M.  di  Loreto  in  the  Rassegna  Naz.,  15  Sett,  1884,  and 
Arch.  St.  dell'  Arte,  I.,  156  seq. 

X  In  a  *Brief  to  de  Alegra  reg.  Savona;  gub.,  dat.  Viterbo,  23rd  Sept., 
1505,  Julius  speaks  of  the  peculiaris  caritas  qua  dilectissimam  patriam 
nostram  Savonam  prosequimur.  (*Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  373.)  Julius  II. 
more  than  once  interceded  with  Louis  XII.  for  the  citizens  of  Savona. 
See  *Briefs  to  Louis  XII.  and  Cardinal  dAmboise,  both  dated  Bologna, 
5th  Jan.,  1507.  *Lib.  brev.  25,  f  82^,  83.  Secret  Archives  of  the 
\^atican. 

.§  See  ASSERTO,  in  the  Atti  d.  Soc.  Savon.,  I.,  451  ;  II.,  466,  and  the 
exti'act :  O.  Varaldo,  Un  inventario  della  Masseria  del  duomo  di  Savona 
(anno  1542)  per  Agost.  Abati.  (Savona,  1891).     See  also  Albertini,  55. 


500  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

But  with  Julius  II.  the  city  in  which  the  Holy  See  had 
its  seat  and  held  its  Court  naturally  took  the  first  place, 
and  under  him  Rome  became  the  true  centre  of  the  Art- 
life  of  Italy.  The  Pope's  love  of  architecture  roused  the 
prelates,  the  aristocracy,  and  the  wealthy  merchants,  to 
follow  where  he  led,  and  builders,  sculptors  and  painters 
were  in  request  in  all  quarters  of  the  city.*  He  did  not, 
however,  content  himself  with  merely  beautifying  Rome ; 
he  aimed  also  at  making  the  city  safe  and  wholesome. 
The  walls  were  restored  in  many  places,  and  the  charge 
of  these  fortifications  and  the  chief  offices  of  the  city  was 
handed  over  to  men  belonging  to  the  noble  Roman  families, 
such  as  the  Massimi,  Altieri,  Frangipani,  Pici,  della  Valle, 
Cassarelli,  Capodiferri,  etc.-]-  The  works  begun  by  Alex- 
ander VI.  for  strengthening  the  defences  of  the  Castle  of 
St.  Angelo  were  continued.  Guglielmo  de  Piemonte,  a 
friend  of  Michael  Angelo,  and  the  younger  Antonio  Picconi 
da  Sangallo  were  the  architects  here  employed,  and  they 
also  completed  the  entrance  and  the  arcade  leading  to 
the  Vatican.  The  handsome  Loggie  at  the  top  of  the 
Castle,  on  which  Julius's  name  is  inscribed,  and  from 
whence  there  is  a  magnificent  panoramic  view  of  Rome 
and  the  Campagna,  are  ascribed  to  Bramante.]:  The 
repairing  of  the  old  Cloacae  and  the  building  of  new 
ones,  an  important  sanitary  improvement,  was  the  work 
of  the  Pope.§  He  also  constructed  a  new  aqueduct 
from  S.  Antonio,  two  miles  out  of  Rome,  to  the  Vatican, 

*  TSCHACKERT,  14  ;  cf.  MuNTZ,  Raphael,  279  seq. 

t  Mazio,  De'  curatori  delle  mura  di  Roma,  in  Saggiatore,  I.,  83  ; 
Reumont,  III.,  2,  452,  859  ;  and  MuNTZ,  Antiquites,  84,  in,  113,  114, 
117,  130.     See  also  p.  151  on  the  restoration  of  the  Ponte  Molle. 

X  Von  GeymuLLER,  92  ;  MuNTZ,  Antiquitds,  60,  67  seq.;  BORGATI, 
112.  The  author  of  this  latter  work,  an  Italian  officej',  laments  the 
partial  destruction  of  these  by  the  Italian  mihtary  administration. 

§  Albertini,  52. 


\ 


ALBERTINl'S   GUIDE   TO   ROME.  50I 

and  repaired  that  of  the  Aqua  Virgo.*  Tommaso 
Inghirami,  in  his  address  to  the  Cardinals  on  the  death 
of  JuHus  II.,  referring  to  all  that  he  did  in  these  respects, 
says,  "  He  found  the  city  mean,  uncleanly,  and  without 
dignity,  and  has  so  purified  and  embellished  it  that  it  is 
now  worthy  of  the  great  name  it  bears.  The  buildings 
erected  by  the  Savonese  Popes  within  the  last  forty 
years  make  Rome  what  it  is  ;  all  the  other  houses,  if  I 
may  be  pardoned  the  expression,  are  merely  huts."f 

During  the  lifetime  of  Julius  II.  the  learned  Canon 
Francesco  Albertini  compiled  a  guide  in  which,  side  by 
side  with  the  old  Rome,  he  describes  the  "  new  city " 
created  by  Nicholas  V.,  Sixtus  IV.,  and  Julius  II.  It  is 
really  enjoyable  to  perambulate  Rome  under  the  guidance 
of  this  contemporary  writer,  and  behold  all  the  glory 
and  beauty  of  the  magic  city  as  it  appeared  in  the  days 
of  Julius  II.  No  other  source  brings  home  to  the  mind 
so  vividly  as  this  little  book  does,  the  almost  universal 
feeling  for  art  which  prevailed  in  that  "  happy  generation 
where  not  a  single  house  was  to  be  found,  belonging  to 
any  one  who  had  the  least  pretence  to  culture,  that  did 
not  possess  some  artistic  feature.  It  might  consist  in 
the  grandeur  of  its  plan,  or  in  some  majestic  pillared 
court,  into  which  all  the  other  rooms  opened,  or  an  ex- 
quisitely decorated  library,  the  beloved  sanctum  of  its 
owner,  or  blissful  resort  of  his  most  congenial  friends, 
or  again,  some  precious  collection  of  statues,  or  gems, 
or  vases,  or  curious  stuffs,  the  admiration  and  wonder 
of  all  who  visited  Rome.  Frescoes  on  the  walls  of  recep- 
tion rooms  or  studies  were  so  common  that  no  attempt 
is  made  to  describe  them  or  name  their  painters.  So 
little  account  was  made  of  them  that  whole  series  would 

*  Albertini,  51  ;  Reumont,  III.,  2,  451. 
t  Fea,  Notizie,  52. 


502  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

be  ruthlessly  wiped  out,  as  was  done  in  the  cloisters  of  the 
Minerva,  founded  by  Cardinal  Torquemada,  to  make  way 
for  new  and  better  ones."  *  Albertini's  little  book  on 
the  Wonders  of  old  and  new  Rome  is  dedicated  to 
Julius  II.  In  the  Preface  he  says  "  Sixtus  IV.  began 
the  restoration  of  the  city,  his  successors  followed  in  his 
footsteps,  but  your  Holiness  has  outstripped  them  all." 
At  the  close  we  find  the  date  3rd  June,  1509.  At  that 
time  Raphael  was  only  just  beginning  to  paint  the 
Camera  della  Segnatura,  and  Michael  Angelo  was  still  at 
work  in  the  Sistina ;  f  so  that  the  greatest  of  all  Rome's 
wonders,  those  immortal  monuments  of  religious  art,  had 
not  yet  been  created. 

*  SCHMARSOW  in  the  Intr.  to  his  ed.  of  Albertini,  XVII.-XVIII. 
t  Albertini,    13,  only  mentions  Michael  Angelo's   work  ;  he  says 
nothing  of  the  Stanza. 


CHAPTER  IX. 

Michael  Angelo  in  the  Service  of  Julius  II.  Tomb  and 
Bronze  Statue  of  the  Pope.  Paintings  of  the  Ceiling 
in  the  Sistine  Chapel. 

Nicholas  V.  and  Sixtus  IV.  while  doing  so  much  for 
architecture  and  painting  had,  owing  to  unfavourable  cir- 
cumstances, paid  but  little  regard  to  plastic  art.  Julius  II. 
following  in  their  footsteps,  had  the  good  fortune  to  be 
able  to  secure  for  sculpture,  as  well  as  for  painting,  the 
services  of  the  greatest  genius  of  his  time.  His  name  will 
always  be  associated  with  that  of  Michael  Angelo,  as  well  as 
with  those  of  Raphael  and  Bramante.  It  was  he  who 
afforded  to  all  three  the  opportunity  for  displaying  and 
developing  their  wonderful  gifts. 

Julius  II.  knew  Michael  Angelo's  Pieta  in  the  Chapel  of 
S.  Petronilla  in  S.  Peter's.  No  doubt,  it  was  his  acquaintance 
with  this  work  which  is  one  of  the  most  noble  and  soul- 
stirring  creations  of  Christian  sculpture,*  which  led  him  in 
the  Spring  of  the  year  1505  to  invite  the  artist  to  Rome. 
The  great  sculptor,  then  33  years  of  age,  put  aside  his 
cartoon  of  the  battle  of  Cascina,  which  he  had  just  begun, 
and  obeyed  the  Pope's  call.  He  arrived  in  March,j-  and 
found  at  once  in  Julius  the  most  artistic  of  all  the  Popes,  a 
patron  who  understood  and  appreciated  his  power.  He 
took  the  strongest  personal  interest  in  the  sculptor's  worlc, 

*  See  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  p.  79,  note  **,  and  K.  Hase,  Erinnerungen 
an  Italien,  184. 

t  Lettere  di  Michelangelo,  ed.  Milanesi,  426;  VON  Geymuller,  147. 


504  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

followed  every  step,  and  pressed  for  its  completion  with  the 
impatience  of  a  boy.  Between  tv/o  such  hot-tempered  men 
as  the  Pope  and  the  artist,  collisions  were  inevitable  ;  but 
they  soon  made  friends  again.  They  understood  each  other, 
both  were  Terribili  in  the  Italian  sense,*  great,  vehement 
souls  and  lovers  of  all  great  and  colossal  things  materially 
and  spiritually  ;  both  crowned  heads,  one  with  the  diadem 
of  Christendom,  the  other  with  that  of  genius.f 

The  first  commission  which  the  Pope  gave  to  the  artist 
was  characteristic  of  both  men.  A  colossal  marble  tomb 
was  to  be  carved  for  him  during  his  lifetime.  Michael 
Angelo  at  once  set  to  v/ork  to  prepare  several  designs,  of 
v/hich  one  was  accepted,  and  an  agreement  was  drawn  up 
binding  the  sculptor  to  complete  the  monument  within 
five  years,  and  fixing  the  price  at  10,000  ducats  ;|  mean- 
while he  was  to  draw  a  monthly  provision  of  100  ducats. 
Michael  Angelo  threw  himself  into  his  task  with  the  greatest 
enthusiasm.  He  went  at  once  to  Carrara  to  obtain  the 
material  for  his  work  and  remained  there  eight  months, 
superintending  with  the  greatest  care,  first  the  quarrying, 
and  then  the  transport  of  the  marble,  which  weighed  in 
round  numbers  about   no  tons.§ 

In  the  beginning  of  the  new  year  (1506)  he  returned  to 
Rome  and  set  up  a  workshop  in  the  Piazzo  San  Pietro.|| 

*  Cf.  supra,  p.  212. 

+  Hase,  Erinnerungen  an  Italien,  183. 

%  Frey,  Studien,  92. 

§  Grimm,  Michelangelo,  I.,  272  seq.,  ed.  5  ;  Frey,  Studien,  93.  Frey 
deserves  credit  for  being  the  first  to  attempt  to  fix  the  dates  of  Michael 
Angelo's  various  works  under  Julius  II. 

II  Lettere  di  Michelangelo,  ed.  Milanesi,  426,  493.  Michael  Angelo 
here  describes  his  workshop  as  una  casa  che  m'  aveva  data  Julio  dietro  a 
Santa  Caterina.  This  church  (S.  Caterina  delle  Cavallerotte)  was  in  the 
Piazza  Rusticucci  (see  Armellini,  175).  The  exact  date  of  Michael 
Angelo's  return  to  Rome  cannot  be  determined.     Frey  says,  correctly, 


MICHAEL   ANGELO   IN    ROME.  505 

He  was  burning  with  eagerness  to  begin  his  work.  "  Most 
honoured  father,"  he  writes  on  31st  January,  1506,  "  I 
should  be  quite  satisfied  with  my  position,  if  only  my 
marble  had  arrived  ;  but  I  seem  to  be  most  unfortunate  in 
this  matter,  for  in  all  the  tinrie  that  I  have  been  here  we 
have  had  only  two  days  of  favourable  weather.  Some  days 
ago  one  of  the  ships  arrived  after  a  narrow  escape  of  run- 
ning aground  owing  to  the  bad  weather.  Then,  while  I  was 
unloading  it,  the  river  suddenly  rose  and  flooded  all  the 
wharf,  so  that  as  yet  I  have  not  been  able  to  do  anything. 
I  have  only  good  words  to  give  to  the  Pope,  and  hope  he 
will  not  get  angry.  I  trust  I  may  soon  be  able  to  begin,  and 
then  to  get  on  quickly.     God  grant  it."* 

There  was,  however,  a  much  worse  difficulty  in  the  way, 
owing  to  the  change  in  the  Pope's  mind  which  was  now  turn- 
ing more  and  more  away  from  the  thought  of  the  tomb  and 
towards  the  building  of  the  new  S.  Peter's.f  In  compensa- 
tion for  this  disappointment  Michael  Angelo  was  to  be  given 
a  commission  to  paint  the  roof  of  the  Sistine  Chapel ;  |  but 
the  master  felt  himself  deeply  aggrieved  :  the  money  he 
had  received  was  not  sufficient  to  pay  even  the  freights  of 
the  marble.  On  the  strength  of  the  Pope's  order  he  had 
set  up  his  workshop  at  his  ow^n  cost  and  procured  assist- 
ance from  Florence.  On  the  17th  of  April,  1506,  he  heard 
that  the  Pope  had  said  to  a  goldsmith  and  to  his  Master 
of  Ceremonies  that  he  would  not  give  another  farthing  for 
stoneSjlarge  or  small.  In  much  astonishment,  Michael  Angelo 
demanded  before  he  left  the  Vatican  a  portion  of  the  money 

before  the  14th  Jan.,  1506  (Studien,  93);  Symonds,  I.,  130 -131,  makes 
it  still  earlier. 

*  Ibid.,  6  ;  GUHL,  I.,  121. 

t  Cf.  supra,  p.  463. 

X  It  is  uncertain  whether  this  plan  was  the  Pope's  own  thought,  or 
was  suggested  by  Bramante.     See  Frey,  Studien,  93. 


5o6  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

that  he  required  for  the  prosecution  of  his  work.  The  Pope 
put  off  seeing  him  till  the  Monday  following,  but  when  the 
day  came  the  promised  audience  was  not  granted.  The 
same  thing  was  repeated  on  the  following  days.  When  on 
the  17th  April  he  appeared  again  he  was  refused  admittance 
by  the  express  command  of  the  Pope.  Upon  this  he  flared 
up.  "  Tell  the  Pope,"  he  is  said  to  have  exclaimed,  "  that  it 
he  wants  me  any  more  he  will  have  to  find  me  wherever  he 
can."  Then  he  rushed  out  of  the  Palace,  desired  his 
servants  to  sell  his  things,  and  mounting  his  horse  left 
Rome  at  once,  with  a  firm  determination  never  to  set  foot 
In  it  again.* 

When  Julius  was  told  of  Michael  Angelo's  flight  (it  was 
on  the  eve  of  the  day  of  the  laying  of  the  foundation-stone 
for  S.  Peter's)  he  commanded  that  the  sculptor  should  be 
pursued  at  once  and  brought  back  by  force  if  necessary. 
But  Michael  Angelo  had  ridden  fast,  and  it  was  not  till  he 
had  arrived  safely  in  Poggibonsi,  on  Florentine  soil,  that 
the  messengers  succeeded  in  overtaking  him  and  handing 
him  a  letter  from  the  Pope,  commanding  him  to  return  at 
once  under  pain  of  his  serious  displeasure.  The  angry 
artist,  however,  had  no  notion  of  complying.  At  1 1  p.m.  he 
wrote  to  the  Pope  that  he  would  never  return  to  Rome. 
"  For  the  good  service  which  I  have  rendered  to  your 
Holiness,  I  have  not  deserved  to  be  turned  out  of  your 
Palace  as  if  I  were  a  worthless  lackey.  Since  your  Holiness 
no  longer  requires  the  monument  I  am  freed  from  my 
obligation,  and  I  will  not  contract  any  new  one."f 

*  Cf.  Grimm,  Michelangelo,  I.,  279  seq.^  519  seq.,  ed.  5.  The 
divergencies  in  Michael  Angelo's  own  accounts  of  the  incident  are  here 
carefully  examined. 

t  CONDivi,  38-39 ;  ed.  Frey,  74.  According  to  this  writer,  Michael 
Angelo  arrived  at  Poggibonsi  a  due  hore  di  notte.  Michael  Angelo  him- 
self says  later,  it  was  circa  a  tre  ore  di  notte.     Grimm,  Michelangelo 


HIS   QUARREL   WITH   JULIUS   IL  507 

Michael  Angelo's  friends,  and  especially  Giuliano  da 
Sangallo,  did  their  best  to  bring  about  a  reconciliation 
between  him  and  the  Pope.  On  the  2nd  May,  Michael 
Angelo  wrote  to  Giuliano  from  Florence,  "  I  beg  you  to 
read  my  answer  to  the  Pope.  I  wish  His  Holiness  to 
know  that  I  am  ready,  indeed,  more  willing  than  ever,  to 
go  on  with  my  work.  If  he  wishes,  whatever  happens, 
to  have  the  tomb,  he  ought  not  to  mind  where  I  execute 
the  work,  provided  I  keep  to  my  agreement,  that  at  the 
end  of  the  five  years  it  shall  be  put  up  in  S.  Peter's  where- 
ever  he  chooses,  and  that  it  shall  be  well  done.  I  am 
certain  that  when  it  is  completed  there  will  be  nothing  to 
equal  it  in  the  whole  world.  If  His  Holiness  will  agree  to 
this  I  should  be  glad  to  receive  his  commission  in  Florence, 
from  whence  I  will  correspond  with  him.  I  have  several 
blocks  of  marble  at  Carrara  at  my  disposal  which  I  can 
have  sent  here,  and  the  persons  that  I  shall  want  to  assist 
me  can  also  come  here.  Though  I  shall  be  considerably 
out  of  pocket  by  doing  the  work  here  I  shall  not  mind 
that.  As  each  portion  is  finished  I  shall  send  it  at  once  to 
Rome,  so  that  His  Holiness  will  have  as  much  pleasure  in 
it  as  if  I  were  at  hand,  and,  indeed,  more,  as  he  will  only 
see  the  finished  work  and  have  no  anxieties  about  it."* 

A  week  later  a  friend  of  Michael  Angelo's  wrote  to  him 
from  Rome,  "  Last  Saturday,  I  and  Bramante  were  called 
up  to  report  to  the  Pope  while  he  was  at  table,  on  a  number 
of  drawings  and  plans :  I  was  first,  and  after  dinner 
Bramante  was  called,  and  the  Pope  said  to  him,  '  to-morrow 

I,  517,  ed.  5,  mistranslates  "2  ore  di  notte"as8  o'clock  p.m.  Frey, 
Studien,  93,  falls  into  the  same  error.  The  night  from  15th  April, 
according  to  the  Italian  reckoning,  begins  about  8  p.m.  (See  Lersch, 
Ewiges  Calendarium,  7.  Miinster,  1877)  ;  thus  between  the  second  and 
third  hours  of  the  night  would  be  between  10  and  1 1  p.m. 

*  Lettere  di  Michelangelo,  ed.  Milanesi,  yj'j  seq.     GUHL,  I.,  123. 


5o8  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Sangallo  is  going  to  Florence  and  will  bring  Michael  Angelo 
back  with  him.'  Bramante  answered,  '  Your  Holiness,  San- 
gallo had  better  not  count  on  it :  I  know  Michael  Angelo 
well,  and  he  has  said  to  me  more  than  once  that  he  did  not 
intend  to  paint  the  Chapel ;  your  Holiness  was  pushing 
him  hard,  but  he  would  not  undertake  anything  but  the 
tomb.'  Bramante  said  further,  '  Holy  Father,  I  do  not 
think  he  trusts  himself  for  this  work  ;  he  will  have  to  paint 
figures  greatly  foreshortened  to  be  seen  from  below ;  that  is 
a  very  different  thing  from  painting  on  the  flat'  The  Pope 
answered,  '  If  he  does  not  come,  it  will  be  a  slight  to  me, 
and,  therefore,  1  believe  that  he  will.'  Then  I  shewed  that 
I  too  was  there  and  spoke  out,  somewhat  as  you  would 
have  done  if  you  had  had  to  speak  for  me.  I  called  him  a 
knave  straight  out  before  the  Pope,  at  which  he  was  struck 
quite  dumb,  for  he  saw  that  he  had  said  what  he  ought  not. 
At  last  I  said, '  Holy  Father,  this  man  has  never  spoken  with 
Michael  Angelo  about  these  things,  if  what  I  say  is  not  true 
may  my  head  fall  at  my  feet.  I  will  stick  to  it ;  this  conver- 
sation never  took  place,  and  Michael  Angelo  will  return  if 
your  Holiness  really  desires  it'  Thus  the  matter  ended, 
and  no  more  was  said.  God  be  with  you.  If  I  can  do 
anything  for  you  you  have  only  to  tell  me.  My  respects 
to  Simone  Pollajuolo."* 

On  the  8th  of  July  the  Pope  made  another  attempt  to 
induce  the  sculptor  to  return,  writing  the  following  Brief 
to  the  Signoria.  "  Beloved  Sons — Greeting  and  Apostolic 
blessing. — Michelangelo  the  sculptor,  who  left  us  without 
reason,  and  in  mere  caprice,  is  afraid,  we  are  informed,  of 
returning,  though  we  for  our  part  are  not  angry  with  him, 
knowing  the  humours  of  such  men  of  genius.  In  order 
then  that  we  may  lay  aside  all  anxiety,  we  rely  on  your 
loyalty  to  convince  him  in  our  name,  that  if  he  returns  to 

*  Grimm,  Michelangelo,  I.,  283-284,  ed.  5. 


REMONSTRANCES   OF   SODERINI.  509 

US  he  shall  be  uninjured  and  unhurt,  retaining  our  Apostolic 
favour  in  the  same  measure  as  he  formerly  enjoyed  it."  * 

Michael  Angelo,  who  apparently  had  now  resumed  work  on 
his  cartoon  and  the  bronze  statues  of  the  Twelve  Apostles 
for  the  Cathedral  of  Florence,  adhered  resolutely  to  his 
refusal.  Meanwhile,  another  letter  arrived  from  the  Pope. 
The  Gonfaloniere  Soderini  sent  for  the  artist,  to  remonstrate 
with  him.  "  You  have  tehaved  towards  the  Pope,"  he  is 
said  to  have  told  him,  "  in  a  way  that  the  King  of  France 
himself  would  not  have  ventured  upon.  There  must  be  an 
end  to  all  this.  We  are  not  going  to  be  dragged  into  a 
war,  and  risk  the  whole  State  for  you.  Make  up  your 
mind  to  go  back  to  Rome."  It  was  all  in  vain  :  it  has  even 
been  asserted  that  Michael  Angelo  now  thought  of  leaving 
Italy,  and  betaking  himself  to  the  Sultan,  who  had  asked 
him  to  build  a  bridge  for  him  from  Constantinople  to  Pera.f 
The  poems  composed  at  that  time,  in  which  he  denounces 
the  corruption  in  Rome  in  the  strongest  terms,  betray 
tension  and  irritation  with  which  his  mind  was  filled  during 
this  period.  I  The  good  offices  of  Cardinal  Alidosi,  the 
Pope's  favourite,  whose  mediation  had  been  invoked  by  the 
Florentine  Government  proved  equally  unavailing. 

Meanwhile  Julius  II.  had  set  out  on  his  march  against 
Bologna,  and  entered  the  city  in  triumph  on  the  nth  of 
November,  i5o6.§  It  was  felt  that  this  magnificent  success 
should  be  immortalised  by  some  monumental  work  of  art. 
A  statue  of  the  Pope  in  stucco  had  already  on  the   17th 

*  Grimm,  Michelangelo,  284-285,  ed.  5  ;  Gotti,  I.,  45  ;  Symonds, 
I.,  180. 

t  Ibid.,  I.,  285  seq.,  ed.  5. 

X  Cf.  Sonnet,  3  (Rime  di  Michelangelo,  ed.  Guasti,  156).  Symonds, 
I.,  182  seq.,  assigns  the  fourth  sonnet  {loc.  ctt.,  157.  Qua  si  fa  elmi  di 
calice  e  spade)  to  this  date,  while  Frey,  Studien,  10 1,  thinks  it  was  not 
written  until  April  15 12. 

§  See  supra,  p.  281  seq. 


5IO  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

of  December  been  put  up  in  front  of  the  Palace  of  the 
Government  at  Bologna.*  But  Julius  II.  had  set  his  heart 
on  a  more  durable  work,  a  colossal  bronze  statue,  to  be  a 
perpetual  memento  always  under  the  eyes  of  the  Bolognese 
of  the  greatness  of  their  new  ruler.  The  natural  result  was 
a  fresh  letter  from  Cardinal  Alidosi  to  the  Florentine 
Government,  requesting  them  to  send  Michael  Angelo  to 
Bologna,  where  he  would  have  no  cause  to  complain  of  his 
reception.  Now  at  last  the  sculptor  gave  way.  Towards 
the  end  of  November  he  started  for  the  city,  provided  with 
a  letter  from  Soderini,  which  ran  as  follows  : — "  The  bearer 
of  these  presents  will  be  Michelangelo  the  sculptor,  whom 
we  send  to  please  and  satisfy  His  Holiness.  We  certify 
that  he  is  an  excellent  young  man,  and  in  his  own  art 
without  a  peer  in  Italy,  perhaps  even  in  the  Universe.  It 
would  be  impossible  to  recommend  him  too  highly.  His 
nature  is  such  that  he  requires  to  be  drawn  out  by  kind- 
ness and  encouragement ;  but  if  love  is  shewn  to  him,  and 
he  is  well  *treated,  he  will  accomplish  things  which  will 
make  the  whole  world  wonder."  The  letter  was  dated 
November  27.  A  postscript  was  added  which  said, 
^'  Michelangelo  comes  in  reliance  on  our  plighted  word." 
Subsequently,  the  artist  said  that  he  had  gone  to  Bologna 
with  a  halter  round  his  neck.f 

His  reception  was  stormy.  "  It  was  your  business  to 
iiave  come  to  seek  us,"  the  Pope  said,  "  whereas  you  have 
waited  till  we  came  to  seek  you ; "  alluding  to  his  march  to 

*  Cf.  PODESTA,  Due  Statue,  109  seq.\  and  Gozzadini,  Alcuni  avve- 
nimenti,  IV.,  ']']. 

t  Gaye,  Carteggio,  II.,  91  ;  GUHL,  Kiinstlerbriefe,  I.,  124-125  ; 
■Grimm,  Michelangelo,  I.,  297  seq.,  ed.  5  ;  Springer,  Raffael  und 
Michelangelo,  109  ;  the  expression  :  Mi  fuforza  an  dare  la  con  la  coreggia 
al  collo,  is  in  his  famous  letter  to  Giov.  Francesco  Fattucci,  of  Jan.  1524. 
Lettere  de  Michelangelo,  ed.  Milanesi,  427. 


HIS   RECONCILIATION   WITH   THE   POPE.  511 

Bologna.  Michael  Angelo  fell  upon  his  knees  and  begged 
for  pardon  in  a  loud  voice.  He  declared  his  flight  had  not 
been  deliberate.  He  had  gone  away  in  a  fit  of  rage  because 
he  could  not  stand  the  way  in  which  he  had  been  driven 
from  the  Palace.  Julius  II.  made  no  answer,  but  sat  there 
frowning,  with  his  head  down,  until  one  of  the  Prelates  who 
had  been  asked  by  Soderini  to  put  in  a  good  word  for 
Michael  Angelo  if  necessary,  intervened  and  said  "  Your 
Holiness  should  not  be  so  hard  on  this  fault  of  Michael 
Angelo ;  he  is  a  man  who  has  never  been  taught  good 
manners,  these  artists  do  not  know  how  to  behave,  they 
understand  nothing  but  their  art."  On  this,  the  Pope,  in  a 
fury,  turned  on  the  unlucky  mediator.  "  You  venture,"  he 
shouted,  "  to  say  to  this  man  things  that  I  should  not  have 
dreamt  of  saying.  It  is  you  who  have  no  manners.  Get 
out  of  my  sight,  you  miserable,  ignorant  clown.'"  Then 
reaching  out  his  hand  to  Michael  Angelo  he  forgave  him,  and 
at  once  commissioned  him  to  execute  a  statue  of  himself  in 
bronze,  which  was  to  be  7  cubits  high  (about  14  feet). 
Then  he  asked  what  the  cost  would  be,  to  which  the 
sculptor  replied,  "  I  think  the  mould  could  be  made  for 
1000  ducats,  but  foundry  is  not  my  trade,  and  therefore  I 
cannot  bind  myself"  "  Go,"  answered  Julius,  "  set  to  work 
at  once,  and  make  as  many  moulds  as  you  like,  until  the 
statue  is  perfect ;  you  shall  have  no  reason  to  complain  of 
your  pay."*  This  famous  audience  which  terminated  the 
estrangement  between  these  two  fiery  spirits,  probably  took 
place  on  the  29th  November,  i5o6.f  It  shews  how  well  the 
Pope  understood  that  genius  levels  all  distinction  of  states. 
Michael  Angelo  now  set  to  work  at  once  at  Bologna. 

*  CONDIVI,  41-42.  Lettere  di  Michelangelo,  ed.  Milanesi,  429  ; 
Grimm,  Michelangelo,  I.,  298  seg.,  ed.  5.  Springer,  Raffael  und 
Michelangelo,  1 10. 

t  Frey,  Studien,  93. 


512  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

The  Pope  often  visited  him.  In  a  letter  to  his  brother  Buo- 
narroti, dated  ist  February,  1507,  he  says,  "Last  Friday 
evening  His  Holiness  spent  half  an  hour  in  my  work-room. 
He  bestowed  his  blessing  on  me  and  gave  me  to  understand 
that  he  was  pleased  with  my  work.  We  have  all  great 
cause  to  thank  God,  and  I  beg  you  to  pray  for  me."  *  On 
the  28th  April  the  wax  model  was  finished,  and  at  the  end 
of  June  the  casting  was  begun,  but  was  unsuccessful ;  only 
the  bust  came  out,  the  other  half  stuck  in  the  mould.f 
Michael  Angelo,  however,  was  not  discouraged,  and  worked 
day  and  night,  until  an  entirely  satisfactory  result  was 
attained.  From  the  i8th  of  February,  1508,  the  statue  was 
exhibited  for  three  days  in  the  Cathedral  of  S.  Petronio. 
The  whole  city  flocked  to  see  it.  The  Bolognese  magis- 
trates wrote  to  Rome.  "  It  is  a  wonderful  work,  equal  to 
your  own  ancient  remains."  On  the  21st  February  the 
statue  was  placed  in  a  niche  over  the  door  of  S.  Petronio 
with  great  demonstrations  of  joy.^ 

The  figure  was  three  times  the  size  of  life.  The  Pope 
was  represented  sitting  in  full  pontificals,  with  the  Tiara 
on  his  head,  the  keys  in  one  hand,  and  the  other  raised 
in  blessing.  The  work  seemed  calculated  to  last  for 
ever;  in  reality,  its  duration  was  of  the  shortest.  On  the 
30th  December,!  ^S^Ij  it  fell  a  victim  to  the  hatred  of  the 

*  Lettere  di  Michelangelo,  ed.  Milanesi,  65.  The  well-known  story 
of  the  sculptor's  having  asked  Julius  whether  he  should  put  a  book  into 
his  left  hand,  and  thei  Pope's  reply,  "  Give  me  a  sword,  I  am  not  a 
scholar,"  sounds  like  a  later  invention.  If  it  had  been  true,  Michael  Angelo 
would  hardly  have  ventured  to  put  S.  Peter's  keys  into  the  hand  of  the 
statue. 

t  Lettere,  loc.  cit.,  148,  78,  79. 

I  Cf.  PODESTA,  Due  Statue,  107,  in,  124  seq.;  Gozzadini,  Alcuni 
awenimenti,  IV.,  79  ;  GOTTI,  I.,  66.  The  date  given  by  Tizio  (in  Fea, 
Notizie,  25)  is  incorrect. 

§  Not  in  September  as  Springer,  hi.,  and  GuHL,  I.,  125,  say. 


DESTRUCTION   OF   THE   STATUE   OF   JULIUS   II.      513 

Bentivogli  party,  who  had  already  in  May  destroyed -the 
stucco  figure  of  the  Pope.*  When  the  immense  mass  of 
metal,  weighing  over  14,000  pounds,  fell  to  the  ground,  it 
made  a  deep  hole  in  the  earth  although  straw  and  bundles 
of  sticks  had  been  prepared  to  receive  it.  The  noble  statue 
was  broken  to  pieces  amidst  gibes  and  jeers,  and  the  Duke 
of  Ferrara  had  a  cannon  made  from  the  metal  which  was 
called  La  Giulia,  in  mockery  of  the  Pope.  The  head  of  the 
figure,  weighing  600  pounds,  was  preserved  -Tor  a  long  time 
in  Ferrara,  but  finally  disappeared.  This  was  the  end  of 
the  finest  statue  in  Italy,  as  the  Bolognese  chronicler  calls 
it.t 

Michael  Angelo  had  returned  to  his  home  in  Florence  as 
soon  as  the  statue  was  finished,  but  he  was  not  allowed  to 
remain  there  long.  In  March  1508,  Julius  II.  recalled  him 
to  Rome,  not,  however,  to  proceed  with  the  tomb,  but  to 
paint  the  roof  of  the  Sistine  Chapel.|  "  It  is  to  the  honour 
of  Julius  that  he  again  set  his  own  personal  glory,  in  em- 
ploying the  artist  on  work  of  a  wider  scope."  §  Michael 
Angelo,  who  only  felt  the  fulness  of  genius  with  chisel  in 
hand,  at  first  resisted,  saying  that  painting  was  not  his  trade.|| 

*  PODESTA,  Due  Statue,  114  seq. 

\  Ibid.,  119  seq.;  GOZZADINI,  Alcuni  awenimenti,  IV.,  243;  Fea, 
Notizie,  25  ;  GrijMM,  Michelangelo,  I.,  401,  ed.  5  ;  Havemann,  II., 
364.  Letters  published  by  Campori  in  the  Atti  dell'  Emilia,  N.  S.  VI., 
I,  131  seq.,  retail  the  anger  of  the  Pope  and  the  lame  excuses  of  the 
Duke.  The  story  of  the  statue  formed  the  theme  of  several  contempo- 
rary poems.  See  Campori,  loc.  cit.,  and  Cappelli,  Prefaz.  alle  Lettere 
di  L.  Ariosto,  LIX.     Bologna,  1866. 

\  Symonds,  I.,  198  ;  Frey,  Studien,  94. 

§  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  147,  ed.  3. 

II  Lettere  di  Michelangelo,  ed.  Milanesi,  17.  Cf.  the  Sonnet  to 
Giovanni  da  Pistoja  (Rime,  ed.  Guasti,  158),  which  closes  with  the  words  : 
ne  io  pittore.  In  almost  all  the  letters  of  this  period,  he  signs  himself 
with  a  touch  of  ostentation  :  Michelangiolio,  ^cultore  in  Roma.  Cf. 
Woltmann,  II.,  577  ;  and  Symonds,  I.,  200. 

VOL.  VL  2  L 


514'  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

But-the  iron  will  of  the  Pope  prevailed,  and  forced  the  brush 
into  the  unwilling  fingers  that  were  tingling  to  clasp  the 
sterner  instrument.  An  agreement  was  concluded  between 
Julius  II.  and  the  artist,  in  which  the  latter  engaged  himself 
to  paint  the  central  vault  of  the  roof  of  the  Sistine  Chapel 
for  a  sum  of  3000  ducats. 

Michael  Angelo,  having  received  500  ducats  on  account 
from  the  Pope,  set  to  work  at  once  on  the  cartoons  with  his 
wonted  energy.  According  to  the  artist's  own  account,  in 
the  first  plan  the  Twelve  Apostles  were  to  be  painted  in  the 
lunettes,  and  all  the  other  spaces  were,  according  to  the 
usual  practice  of  the  time,  to  be  filled  with  decorative 
designs.*  Before  the  end  of  May  the  scaffolding  had 
already  been  put  up.  On  the  eve  of  Pentecost  (loth  June) 
the  Chapel  was  so  full  of  noise  and  dust  that  the  Cardinals 
could  hardly  get  through  the  office.-j- 

Meanwhile  Michael  Angelo  had  conceived  a  more  exten- 
sive plan  for  his  paintings,  connecting  them  with  the  frescoes 
already  existing  in  the  Chapel,  the  superiority  of  which  was 
at  once  appreciated  by  Julius  II.  In  consequence  a  new 
agreement  was  drawn  up  in  the  Summer.  The  whole  roof 
down  to  the  windows  was  to  be  covered  with  figures,  and 
the  fee  was  to  be  6000  ducats  instead  of  3000.  All  the 
materials  were  to  be  supplied  to  the  artist.|     Michael  Angelo 

*  See  his  Letter  to  G.  F.  Fattucci.  Lettere  di  Michelangelo,  ed. 
Milanesi,  427.  Cf.  also  Wolfflin,  in  the  Jahrb.  der  Preuss.  Kunst- 
samml.,  XIII.,  178  ;  and  Frey,  Studien,  94. 

t  Paris  de  Grassis  in  the  Gaz.  des  Beaux  Arts,  2  Periode,  XXV., 
385-386  ;  Frey,  Studien,  loc.  cit.  The  bill  for  the  scaffolding  is  in  Zahn, 
Notizie,  187  {cf.  Symonds,  I.,  201),  also  in  Naumann's  Archiv.,  XIII., 
109.  The  receipt  for  the  500  ducats  on  account  in  Lettere  di  Michel- 
angelo, ed.  Milanesi,  563,  had  already  been  printed  in  FORSTER- 
Kugler,  Kunstblatt,  1844,  N.  105. 

X  Lettere  di  Michelangelo,  ed.  Milanesi,  30,  430.  Frey,  Studien,  95. 
On  Michelangelo's  Studies  for  the  figures  on  the  roof,  see  Robinson, 


MICHAEL   ANGELO   AND   THE   SISTINE   CHAPEL.      515 

now  began  to  look  about  for  assistants,  ordered  his  colours, 
and  probably  began  to  paint  in  the  late  Autumn  of  1508.* 
The  Pope  was  as  usual  desperately  eager  and  impatient, 
and  refused  to  grant  the  artist  a  short  leave  of  absence  for 

o 

a  journey  to  Florence.-j- 

On  the  27th  January,  1 509,  Michael  Angelo  complained  to 
his  father  that  the  work  was  not  getting  on,  as  his  assistants 
had  proved  worthless,  and  he  had  had  to  dismiss  them. 
The  result  of  this  was,  that  this  gigantic  work  was  not  only 
designed  by  Michael  Angelo,  but  almost  entirely  painted  by 
his  own  hands.j  Besides  the  enormous  amount  of  labour  in- 
volved in  this,  he  had  also  to  master  the  technique  of  fresco 
painting,  in  which  he  had  had  no  experience.  In  conse- 
quence, the  hot-tempered  artist  had  many  a  passage  of 
arms  with  his  impatient  patron.  But  the  two  passionate 
natures  understood  each  other,  and  were  soon  friends  again. 
"  Probably  the  alternations  of  merciless  pressure  and  un- 
measured vituperation  with  the  frankest  indulgence  and 
kindness,  which  characterised  the  relations  between  Julius 
II.  and  Michael  Angelo,  were  the  means  of  obtaining  more 
from  him  than  any  other  treatment  could  have  done."  §  In 
June,  1509,  the  Roman  Canon  Albertini  saw  the  paintings 
already  commenced  in  the  central  vault  of  the  roof.|| 

The  drawings  of  Michael  Angelo  and  Raphael  in  the  University  Galleries, 
27  seq.  (Oxford,  1870);  SPRINGER,  Rafifael  und  Michelangelo,  115  seq., 
and  Symonds,  I.,  204  seq. 

*  Cf.  H.  Wilson,  126,  194  ;  Symonds,  I.,  202  seq.;  Frey,  95  seq. 

t  Gave,  IL,  107. 

\  Cf.  Lettere  di  Michelangelo,  ed.  Milanesi,  1 7.  Michael  Angelo's  state- 
ments in  this  letter,  that  he  had  not  for  a  whole  year  received  a  penny  from 
Julius  IL,  is  not  accurate,  as  Frey,  Studien,  97,  shews.  The  same  writer 
says  that  the  work  of  other  hands  can  be  detected,  both  in  the  sacrifice 
and  the  drunkenness  of  Noe,  and  elsewhere  also.     Cf.  Springer,  112. 

§  BURCKHARDT,  Cicerone,  644. 

II  Albertini,  ed.   Schmarsow,  13  ;  cf.  Frey,  Studien,  97-98,  who 


5l6  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

In  May  1510,  after  a  Winter  of  strenuous  labour, 
Michael  Angelo  took  a  short  holiday,  which  he  spent  in 
Florence.*"  With  all  his  diligence  and  energy,  the  painter 
could  not  work  fast  enough  for  his  impatient  task-master. 
Julius  II.  climbed  up  on  the  scaffolding  (Michael  Angelo 
had  to  lend  him  a  hand  to  help  him  up  the  last  ladder) 
with  the  sole  object  of  worrying  the  artist  with  questions 
as  to  when  the  work  would  be  finished.-j- 

But  the  time  was  approaching  when  the  life  or  death 
struggle  for  the  independence  of  the  Papacy  and  the 
liberation  of  Italy  from  the  French  was  to  absorb  the 
Pope's  whole  energies  and  thoughts.  On  the  17th  August, 
1 5 10,  he  left  Rome,  and  on  the  ist  of  September  he  began 
his  march  on  Bologna,  where  he  found  himself  reduced  to 
the  greatest  straits.J  For  the  present  it  was  out  of  the 
question  to  spare  anything  for  Art.|  Already  in  September 
all  payments  ceased,  and  Michael  Angelo  did  not  know  what 
to  do.  At  first  he  wrote  to  the  Pope,  but  at  the  end  of 
the  month  he  decided  on  going  himself  to  Bologna.  In 
October  he  returned  to  Rome  where,  by  the  orders  of 
Julius,  the  Datary,  Lorenzo  Pucci,  gave  him  500  ducats. 
But  the  payments  soon  again  came  to  an  end  ;  on  which  the 
artist  repeated  his  personal  appeal  to  the  Pope  and  was 
once  more  successful.  "  Last  Tuesday,"  he  writes  from 
Rome  to  his  brother  on  the  nth  January,  15 11,  "I  got 
back  here  safely,  and  the  money  has  been  paid  to  me." 

rejects,  I  think  rightly,  the  opinions  of  Grimm,  I.,  526,  ed.  5,  and  WOL- 
FFLIN,  in  the  Jahrb.  der  Preuss.  Kunstsamml.,  XIII.,  272,  and  Symonds, 
I.,  21 1,  who  state  that  Michael  Angelo  had  finished  the  figures  on  the  first 
half  of  the  roof  by  All  Saints'  Day,  1 509. 

*  Frey,  Studien,  99. 

t  Cf.  CONDlvi,  48,  50  ;  and  Frey,  loc.  ck.^  99. 

X  Cf.  supra,  pp.  332,  336. 

§  Springer,  Raffael  und  Michelangelo,  117. 


FINANCIAL  DIFFICULTIES.  517 

He  enclosed  a  bill  of  exchange  for  228  ducats  ;  but  by 
the  end  of  February  the  needs  of  the  campaign  had 
again  absorbed  the  promised  instalments.  "  I  believe," 
he  writes  to  his  brother  on  the  23rd  February,  "that  I 
shall  soon  have  to  pay  another  visit  to  Bologna.  When 
the  Pope's  Datary  with  whom  I  returned  here  last  time, 
went  back  thither,  he  promised  me  that  he  would  see  that 
I  should  have  money  to  go  on  with.  But  now  he  has 
been  gone  a  month,  and  I  have  heard  nothing  from  him. 
I  shall  wait  another  week  and  then,  if  there  is  still  no 
news,  shall  go  to  Bologna,  taking  Florence  on  the  way. 
Tell  my  father  this."* 

He  was  able  to  put  off  this  journey,  for  the  money 
arrived,  and  the  work  was  resumed,  and  in  spite  of  all 
those  difficulties,  was  approaching  completion.  In  the 
short  period  of  22  months  (from  November,  1508,  to 
August,  1 5 10),  not  counting  interruptions,  the  painting 
of  the  whole  central  vault  was  finished.f  But  at  what 
a  cost  of  almost  superhuman  toil.  Day  after  day  the 
artist  had  to  work  lying  on  his  back  with  the  paint 
dropping  on  his  face.  Vasari  says  that  his  eyes  had 
become  so  accustomed  to  looking  upwards,  that  for 
some  time,  when  he  wanted  to  read  a  letter  he  had  to 
hold  it  above  his  head.  In  a  sonnet,  addressed  to 
Giovanni  da  Pistoja,  he  describes  his  sufferings  in  a  vein 
of  somewhat  bitter  humour : 

I'  ho  gia  fatto  un  gozzo  in  questo  stento 
Come  fa  Pacqua  a'  gatti  in  Lombardia, 
O  ver  d'altro  paese  che  si  sia, 
Ch  'a  forza  '1  ventre  appicca  sotto  '1  mento. 

*  Lettere  di  Michelangelo,  ed.  Milanesi,  99,  loi,  109.     Cf.  Grimm,  I., 
389  seq.,  ed.  5  ;  and  Frey,  99-100. 
T  Grimm,  loc.  cit.,  390 ;  and  Frey,  100. 


5l8  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

La  barba  al  cielo,  e  la  memoria  sento 
In  suUo  scrignio,  e  '1  petto  fo  d'  arpia ; 
E  '1  pennel  sopra  '1  viso  tuttavia 
Mel  fa,  gocciando,  un  ricco  pavimento. 

E  lombi  entrati  mi  son  nella  peccia 
E  fo  del  cul  per  contrapeso  groppa 
E'  passi  senza  gli  occhi  muovo  invano. 
Dinanzi  mi  s'  allunga  la  corteccia 
E  per  piegarsi  adietro  si  ragroppa 
E  tendomi  com'  arco  soriano. 

Pero  fallace  e  strano 
Surgie  il  iudizio  che  la  mente  porta ; 
Chb  mal  si  tra'  per  cerbottana  torta. 

La  mia  pittura  morta 
Difendi  orma',  Giovanni,  e  '1  mio  onore 
Non  sendo  il  loco  bon,  ne  io  pittore.* 

*  Rime  di  Michelangelo,  ed.  Guasti,  158.     The  following  translation 
is  by  Mr.  T.  A.  SymonJs  : 

I've  grown  a  goitre  by  dwelling  in  this  den, 

As  cats  from  stagnant  streams  in  Lombardy, 

As  in  whatever  land  they  hap  to  be 
Which  drives  the  belly  close  beneath  the  chin  : 
My  beard  turns  up  to  heaven  :  my  nape  falls  in. 

Fixed  on  my  spine  :  my  breast  bone  visibly 

Grows  like  a  harp  :  a  rich  embroidery 
Bedews  my  face  from  brush- drops  thick  and  thin. 
My  loins  into  my  pannels  like  levers  grind  : 

My  buttock  like  a  crupper  bears  my  weight : 

My  feet  unguided  wander  to  and  fro  ; 
In  front  my  skin  grows  loose  and  long  ;  behind, 

By  bending  it  becomes  more  taut  and  strait  ; 

Crosswise  I  strain  me  like  a  Syrian  bow. 
Whence  false  and  quaint  I  know, 
Must  be  the  fruit  of  squinting  brain  and  eye  ; 
For  ill  can  aim  the  gun  that  bends  awry. 

Come  then,  Giovanni,  try 
To  succour  my  dead  pictures  and  my  fame, 
Since  foul  I  fare  and  painting  is  my  shame, 

Symonds'  Michelangelo,  I.,  234-235. 


COMPLETION    OF   THE   SISTINE   CHAPEL.  519 

In  order  fully  to  estimate  the  amazing  power  and  energy 
of  the  artist  it  must  be  remembered  that  the  surface 
to  be  covered  measured  more  than  10,000  square  feet,  and 
with  its  intersecting  curves,  lunettes,  etc.,  bristled  with 
difficulties  for  the  painter.  The  magic  wand  of  the  artist 
filled  the  whole  of  this  space  with  figures  (343)  in  every 
imaginable  position,  attitude,  and  form  of  foreshortening, 
some  12  feet  high,  the  Prophets  and  Sybils  nearly  18  feet, 
and  all  carefully  and  conscientiously  finished.*  All  the 
details,  the  hairs  of  the  head  and  beard,  the  finger  nails,  the 
creases  in  the  soles  of  the  feet  are  painted  with  the  marvel- 
lous truth  to  nature  of  the  15th  Century,  while  the  whole  is 
steeped  in  the  large  and  restful  spirit  of  consummate  art."t 

The  most  important  portion  of  these  paintings  was 
completed  just  at  the  most  critical  moment  in  the  whole 
Pontificate  of  Julius  II.  The  States  of  the  Church  were 
lying  defenceless  at  the  mercy  of  the  victorious  army  of 
the  King  of  France,  while  at  the  same  time  the  same  foe  was 
attacking  the  spiritual  authority  of  the  Pope  with  the  threat 
of  a  Council.  In  a  powerless,  but  with  a  still  unbroken  spirit, 
the  Pope  had  returned  to  his  Palace  on  the  27th  June,  1511.+ 
On  the  eve  of  the  Feast  of  the  Assumption,  the  patronal 
festival  of  the  Sistine  Chapel,  he  attended  Vespers  there  and 
saw  the  frescoes  unveiled  at  last,  that  is  all  those  of  the 
central  vaults  ;  the  architectural  framework,  historical  groups 
and  single  figures  forming  a  complete  whole  in  itself  § 

*  Symonds,  L,  205.  Goethe  says  that  no  one  who  has  not  seen  the 
Sistine  Chapel  can  have  a  complete  conception  of  what  a  single  man 
can  accomplish. 

t  LiJBKE,  II.,  117,  who  calls  attention  also  to  the  admirable  finish  of 
the  sculptures  in  the  Pantheon. 

t  Cf.  supra,  p.  362. 

§  Frey,  Studien,  100.  The  passage  in  Paris  de  Grassis  on  the 
sight  of  the  picturas  novas  ibidem  noviter  detectas  is  wanting  in 
Dollinger's  edition  ;  he  seems  to  have  no  understanding  of  the  historical 


520  HISTORY   OF  THE   POPES, 

In  the  middle  of  August,  15  ii,  Michael  Angelo  began 
the  cartoons  for  the  paintings  in  the  remaining  interspaces 
and  lunettes.  At  the  end  of  September  he  had  two 
audiences  from  the  Pope,  after  the  last  of  which  he 
received  400  ducats.*  In  May  15 12,  he  was  again  in 
distress  for  money,  which  was  not  surprising,  considering 
the  political  situation  at  that  time.  Michael  Angelo  told 
Cardinal  Bibbiena  that  he  would  throw  up  his  work 
and  go,  on  which  the  Cardinal  managed  to  procure  2000 
ducats  for  him.f  In  July  he  was  again  so  diligent  that 
he  only  wrote  letters  at  night.  On  the  24th  of  July,  15 12, 
tie  wrote  :  "  I  am  working  harder  than  any  man  has  ever 
worked  before,  and  I  am  not  well,  but  I  am  resolved 
to  have  patience,  and  toil  on  to  the  end."  Shortly  before 
this,  he  had  shewn  his  work  from  the  scaffolding  to  Duke 
Alfonso  of  Ferrara  and  been  cheered  by  his  hearty 
appreciation  of  it ;  the  Duke  had  also  given  him  a  commis- 
sion for  a  picture.^  In  October,  he  was  able  at  last  to 
announce  to  his  father  that  all  the  paintings  were  com- 
pleted, and  that  the  Pope  was  extremely  pleased  with 
them. I  With  characteristic  piety  Michael  Angelo  substi- 
tuted for  the  usual  artists'  signature  an  inscription  close  to 
the  prophet  Jeremias,  ascribing  the  honour  of  the  completion 
of  his  work  to  God,  the  Alpha  and  Omega,  through  whose 
assistance  it  had  been  begun  and  ended. || 

value  of  notices  of  this  description.  MuNTZ  published  it  in  the  Gaz.  des 
Beaux  Arts,  2  periode,  XXV.  (1882),  386. 

*  Frey,  Studien,  10 1. 

t  Lettere  di  Michelangelo,  428. 

J  Cf.  Grossino's  undated  Report  in  LUZIO,  F.  Gonzaga,  37,  which  has 
been  overlooked  by  Frey.  This  Report  must  have  been  written  between 
the  5th  and  i8th  of  July. 

§  Lettere  di  Michelangelo,  104,  23  ;  and  also  Frey,  Studien,  102. 

il  Steinmann  has  been  the  first  to  notice  this  inscription  in  the  Reper- 
torium  f.  Kunstwissensch.,  XVII.,  178. 


UNVEILING  OF   THE  CEILING,  $21 

On  All  Hallow's  Eve  (October  31st),  "the  most  sublime 
creation  that  colours  and  brush  have  ever  produced,"  was 
unveiled.*  The  work  called  forth  a  perfect  furore  of 
enthusiastic  admiration.  Its  nobility  of  thought  and  the 
skilfulness  of  the  composition  were  praised  to  the  skies, 
and  still  more  the  perfection  of  the  drawing  and  of  the 
plastic  effects.f  The  Pope,  then  rapidly  nearing  his  end, 
had  the  satisfaction  of  celebrating  High  Mass  in  the 
Chapel,  which  through  him  had  become  a  shrine  of  noble 
art ;  thus  fittingly  closing  a  Pontificate  which  throughout 
had  been  devoted  to  lofty  aims. 

Nearly  four  centuries  have  elapsed  since  the  unveiling  of 
the  roof  of  the  Sistine.  The  smoke  of  candles  has 
blackened  it,  time  has  seamed  it  with  cracks,  the  colours 
have  faded  more  or  less,  but  still  the  effect  is  overpower- 
ing. "  No  doubt  from  the  beginning  colour  was  never  the 
main  consideration  in  this  work,  the  drawing  was  the 
effective  element,  and  continues  to  this  day  to  impress  on 

*  See  WOLTMANN-WOERMANN,  II.,  580.  Cf.  Stolberg,  Reise  in 
Deutschland  der  Schweiz,  Italien  und  Sicilien,  I.,  434  seq.  (Mayence,  1877), 
and  Goethe's  well-known  saying  that  Nature  herself  was  eclipsed  by 
Michael  Angelo,  because  no  one  but  he  could  see  her  with  such  eyes. 
"  One  may  read  any  number  of  treatises  on  the  sublime,"  writes 
Castelar  (Errinerungen  an  Italien,  tj),  "  without  finding  oneself  able 
to  get  a  clear  grip  of  what  is  meant.  But  raise  your  eyes  to  the  vault  of 
the  Sistina,  and  here  you  will  find  what  you  seek,  the  sublime  is  that 
which  bewilders,  and,  as  it  were,  annihilates  us  with  the  sense  of  the 
inadequacy  of  the  relation  between  our  weak  nature  and  the  infinite 
greatness  of  an  idea,  filling  the  soul  with  fear  and  with  joy."  Braun's 
splendid  photographs  make  it  possible  to  study  all  the  details  of  the 
great  work.  Excellent  copies  of  the  creation,  of  Adam,  of  Eve,  the  Fall, 
Isaias,  Jeremias,  the  Delphic  and  Lybian  Sybils,  by  C.  Schwarzer,  are 
to  be  seen  in  the  Schack  Gallery  at  Munich.  The  Report  of  Paris  DE 
Grassis  over  the  unveiling,  which  is  likewise  wanting  in  Bollinger's 
edition,  is  printed  in  the  Gaz.  des  Beaux  Arts,  2  periode,  XXV.,  387. 

t  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  152,  ed  3. 


522  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

the  mind  such  a  sense  of  its  intense  power  and  truthful- 
ness that  for  the  time  the  beholder  forgets  that  there  can 
be  anything  else  in  the  world  worth  looking  at."* 

The  idea  of  framing  his  pictures  in  a  painted  architec- 
tural design,  subdividing  the  plain  surface  of  the  roof,  was 
a  bold  and  novel  thought,  and  might  have  seemed  fanciful, 
but  for  the  purpose  it  was  meant  to  serve,  the  effect  was 
perfect.  "  The  stone  vaulting  disappears,  the  fairy  archi- 
tecture resting  on  the  real,  flings  its  arches  across  the 
intervening  space,  sometimes  with  hangings  stretched 
between  them,  and  sometimes  open  to  the  sky  in  which 
the  figures  seem  to  float."f 

In  regard  to  the  subjects  of  his  paintings  Michael  Angelo 
simply  carried  out  his  scheme  begun  in  the  frescoes  on  the 
walls,  which  had  been  painted  under  Sixtus  IV.,  in  accord- 
ance with  the  triple  division  of  the  Plan  of  Salvation  in  use 
in  the  Middle  Ages.  This  was  divided  into  the  period  pre- 
ceding the  giving  of  the  Law  ;  that  of  the  Law,  and  that  of 
Grace  in  the  Kingdom  founded  by  Christ.|  The  frescoes  on 
the  left  side  represented  the  life  of  Moses,  the  period  of  the 
Law;  those  on  the  right  the  life  of  Christ,the  Reign  of  Grace.| 

*  WOLTMANN-WOERMANN,    II.,    586;    cf.     BURCKHARDT,    Cicerone, 

666,  and  Szecsen,  Rafael,  559. 

t  See  G.  Warnecke'S  striking  article  on  Michael  Angelo's  roof- 
paintings  in  LiitzoVs  Zeitschrift  (1891),  N.  F.  II.,  301.  Warnecke  is 
right  in  saying  that  Michael  Angelo's  painted  architecture  is  in  itself 
fanciful  and  unreal,  but  admirably  effective  for  its  purpose.  Liibke  had 
already  expressed  a  similar  opinion.  The  artist  worked  out  his  archi- 
tectural divisions  in  the  roof  on  ordinary  constructive  lines,  but  he  had 
no  intention  of  representing  a  real  roof,  and  made  no  attempt  to  do  so. 
Unlike  some  of  the  baroque  artists,  and  the  panoramists  of  the  present 
day,  his  object  was  not  to  simulate  a  roof,  but  only  to  create  an  ideal 
framework  by  architectural  divisions. 

X  LuBKE,  II.,  92,  was  the  first  to  point  this  out  correctly.  WOLT- 
mann-Woermann,  II.,  582,  agrees  with  him. 

§  Cf.  Pastor,  Hist.  Popes,  IV.,  468  seq.  (Engl,  trans.). 


PICTURE   OF   THE   CREATION.  523 

Thus  the  period  before  the  Law  from  the  Creation  to  the 
Deluge  was  still  wanting,  and  its  principal  events,  as  nar- 
rated in  Genesis,  were  taken  by  Michael  Angelo  as  the 
subjects  for  his  pictures.  He  depicted  them  in  four  large 
and  five  smaller  rectangular  compartments  on  the  flat 
space  in  the  middle  of  the  roof  running  from  end  to  end. 
His  treatment  of  the  idea  of  the  Creation  which  is  described 
in  revelation  as  the  immediate  act  of  the  Divine  Will 
through  the  efficient  Word,  saying,  "  Be  it  thus,  and  it 
was,"  is  absolutely  unique  in  its  genius  and  power.  We  see 
and  feel  the  rushing  sweep  of  the  breath  of  the  Eternal 
through  those  days  in  which  His  Word  called  forth  the 
heavens  and  the  earth,  the  spiritual  and  the  corporeal 
worlds  into  existence,  out  of  the  void.  "  Michael  Angelo  was 
the  first  of  all  artists  to  grasp  the  idea  of  Creation  not  as  a 
mere  word  with  the  sign  of  Benediction,  but  as  motion. 
Thus  with  him  each  separate  creative  act  can  have  a 
characteristic  form  of  its  own."  * 

God,  appearing  at  first  quite  alone,  calls  heaven  and 
earth,  the  world  of  spirits,  and  the  world  of  matter  into 
existence.  He  divides  light  from  darkness,  which  flies 
away  at  His  word.  Then,  with  angels  now  clustering 
round  him,  and  sheltering  under  his  mantle,  the  Father, 
sweeping  through  space,  creates  the  earth  and  all  the  life 
that  springs  from  her.-f-  "  On  this  follows  the  climax  of 
creation  in  the  bestowal  of  life  upon  Adam,  and  with  it 
that  of  the  genius  of  Michael  Angelo."  Surrounded  by  a 
host  of  heavenly  spirits,  "  the  Almighty  approaches  the 
earth,  and  touching  with  His  finger  the  outstretched  finger 

*  BURCKHARDT,  Cicerone,  643. 

t  The  interpretation  of  the  first  three  pictures  here  given,  differs  of 
course  from  the  one  hitherto  most  usually  received ;  but  it  seems  to 
me  the  most  probable,  both  as  adhering  more  closely  to  the  words  of 
Genesis,  and  also  corresponding  better  with  the  paintings  themselves. 


524  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

of  the  first  man,  in  whom  the  approaching  gift  is  already 
foreshadowed,  communicates  the  vital  spark.  In  the  whole 
realm  of  art  this  master-stroke  of  genius,  in  thus  giving  a 
clear  sensuous  expression  to  a  spiritual  conception,  stands 
unrivalled,  and  the  progenitor  of  the  human  race  is 
worthily  represented  in  the  noble  figure  of  Adam."*  The 
creation  of  Eve  is  an  equally  perfect  conception  in  its 
masterly  purity  and  solemnity.  Adam  lies  in  a  deep 
sleep  ;  God  stands  before  him  ;  Eve  is  rising  ;  she  has  just 
gained  her  feet,  but  one  knee  is  still  bent.  She  appears  at 
the  bidding  of  her  Creator,  with  clasped  hands  stretching 
towards  Him,  thanking  Him  for  the  gift  of  life.f  In  all 
these  pictures  nothing  is  introduced  but  what  is  absolutely 
necessary  to  make  the  situation  clear.  All  accessories  that 
might  distract  the  attention  from  the  main  subject  are 
excluded. 

The  scenes  which  follow,  taken  from  the  early  history 
of  mankind, — especially  that  of  the  fall  and  the  expulsion 
from  Paradise, — the  sin  and  its  punishment,  both  por- 
trayed in   the  same  picture,  are  equally  powerful,  simple, 

*  BURCKHARDT,  Cicerone,  643.  Cf.  Plattner,  II.,  I,  261  seq.  ; 
LiJBKE,  II.,  102  seq.  ;  Grimm,  I.,  341  seq.,  ed.  5  ;  Schaden,  125-126, 
229,  230  seq. ;  RiO,  Michel- Ange,  31  seq.  ;  Ollivier,  64  seq. ;  and 
G0YAU-Perat6,  547  seq.;  BuTTNER,  Adam  und  Eva,  61  seq.  ^KS.- 
NECKE  in  Liitzow's  Zeitschrift,  N.  F.,  II.,  303,  says,  "As  far  as  Art  is 
concerned,  the  only  adequate  representation  of  the,  to  human  reason, 
ever  insoluble  mystery  of  creation,  is  that  conceived  by  Michael  Angelo." 
In  all  later  artists  beginning  with  Raphael  we  can  trace  the  influence  of 
Michael  Angelo's  majestic  conception  of  the  Creator  as  the  "  primal  Fount 
of  elementary  force."  Cornelius  truly  says  that  since  the  time  of  Phidias 
nothing  like  this  had  been  produced. 

t  Stolberg,  Reise,  etc.,  I.,  436.  Cf.  Plattner,  II.,  i,  264,  and 
Symonds,  L,  267.  On  the  creation  of  Eve,  see  also  Rio,  Michel- Ange, 
29  ;  Ollivier,  70  seq. ;  Klaczko  in  the  Rev.  des  Deux  Mondes, 
CXIV.,  882  (1892,  Nov.  to  Dec.) ;  BiJTTNER,  62  seq. ;  and  Kekul6  in 
Jahrb.  d.  Deutschen  Archaol.  Instituts,  V.,  193. 


THE   FALL   OF   MAN   AND   THE   DELUGE.  525 

and  striking.  In  the  picture  of  the  fall  the  tree  of 
knowledge  occupies  the  centre,  the  serpent  (the  upper 
half  a  female  form)  hands  the  forbidden  fruit  to  Eve. 
Immediately  behind  the  tempter  a  startling  effect  is  pro- 
duced by  the  instantaneous  apparition  of  the  avenging 
angel  driving  the  culprits  out  of  Paradise ;  while  Eve, 
holding  back  her  golden  hair,  casts  one  despairing,  long- 
ing look  behind  her.*  The  deluge,  in  one  of  the  large 
compartments,  also  presents  many  striking  scenes ;  in 
the  whole  composition  the  horror  of  the  catastrophe  is 
most  powerfully  rendered.-}-  The  next  picture,  probably 
representing  the  sacrifices  of  Cain  and  Abel,  contains  an 

*  See  KuGLER-BURCKHARDT,  IL,  53 1  ;  Grimm,  L,  345-346,  ed.  5  ; 
BuTTNER,  64  seq. ;  and  MiJNTZ,  Hist,  de  TArt,  IIL,  479. 

t  Cf.  LuBKE,  IL,  105-107.  The  seventh  picture  represents  a  sacrifice, 
according  to  Condivi  and  Vasari,  with  whom  Grimm,  L,  346,  ed.  5,  and 
Ollivier,  75,  agree,  that  of  Cain  and  Abel.  Plattner,  IL,  i,  265  seq.^ 
sees  in  it  Noe's  thank-offering.  Springer,  122,  and  Lubke,  II. ,  104, 
follow  him.  The  three  last  pictures  (the  Sacrifice,  the  Deluge,  and 
Noe's  drunkenness)  were  the  earliest  painted  ;  the  figures  in  them  are 
more  numerous,  and  consequently  smaller,  than  in  the  others.  After 
they  were  finished,  Michael  Angelo  began  to  feel  that  the  distance  from  the 
eye  required  a  larger  scale.  Wolfflin  in  Janitschek's  Repert.,  XIII., 
265  seq.  (1890),  points  out  that  in  the  succeeding  pictures  the  figures  go 
on  increasing  in  size.  "  Compare  the  figure  of  God  the  Father  creating 
the  sun  and  moon  with  the  Divine  form  imparting  life  to  Adam.  This 
crescendo  in  the  scale  of  the  figures  is  the  consequence  of  a  change  in 
the  artist's  feehng  for  space."  The  same  writer,  one  of  those  who  under- 
stand Michael  Angelo  best,  remarks  a  similar  increase  in  the  dimensions 
of  the  captive  forms  ;  those  which  surround  the  last  picture,  the  division 
of  light  from  darkness,  are  the  largest,  and  the  same  holds  good  with 
regard  to  the    Prophets   and   Sybils.      The   style   becomes   gradually 

bolder  and  more   pictorial,   the   figures   grow Even  the  little 

decorative  figures,  which  are  so  profusely  scattered  about,  are  carried 
along  in  the  same  stream  of  development  with  the  coupled  slaves,  and  the 
stone-coloured  children  standing  by  the  walls  of  the  prophets'  thrones,, 
follow  suit  with  the  others." 


526  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

unusually  large  number   of  figures.     The  series  is  closed 
by  the  picture  of  Noe  and  his  sons. 

The  nine  central  paintings  have  the  effect  of  hangings 
stretched  across  the  simulated  architectural  supports  of 
the  roof;  they  form  the  principal  and  most  prominent 
part  of  its  decoration.  Next  in  importance  come  the 
series  of  Prophets  and  Sybils  painted  on  the  descending 
curve  of  the  vaulting  between  the  arches.  There  are 
twelve  in  all,  five  on  each  of  the  long  sides  and  one  at 
each  end,  all  of  colossal  size :  the  giant-spirit  needs  a 
giant-form  to  express  it.  The  effect  of  these  figures,  with 
their  majestic  draperies,  is  intensely  spiritual,*  and  yet  the 
outlines  are  so  strong  and  firm  that  they  look  as  if  they 
were  carved  in  stone.f  The  sides  of  the  marble  seats  in 
which  they  are  enthroned  form  the  main  support  of  the 
imaginary  roof  Attendant  genii  accompany  the  Prophets  of 
the  Messias  for  the  two  worlds  of  Judaism  and  heathenism  ; 
some  sit  absorbed  in  thought  or  vision,  poring  over  their 
books  or  scrolls,  while  others  again  with  impassioned  ges- 
tures proclaim  what  they  have  seen.  The  manner  of  life  of 
those  to  whom  the  Lord  God  "  revealed  His  secrets  "  (Amos, 
iii.  7),  wholly  immersed  in  the  study,  and  contemplation,  and 
announcement  of  the  coming  Salvation,  is  here  expressed 
with  a  perfection  which  classical  art  could  not  conceive  and 
which  modern  art  can  never  hope  to  equal.|  We  need  only 
here  mention  the  most  celebrated.  The  Delphic  Sybil, 
a  singularly  powerful  and  yet  attractive  figure,  seems 
gazing  with  enraptured  eyes  on  the  actual  fulfilment  of 
her  prophecies.  Isaias  is  reading  the  book  of  the  world's 
destiny.  The  curve  of  his  brow  suggests  that  of  a  heavenly 
sphere,  a  source  of  thought  like  the  crystal  reservoirs  on  the 

*  "  Like  moulded  thoughts,"  LiJBKE  says,  Geschichte  der  Plastik,  720. 

t  SCHADEN,  230. 
J  MOLITOR,  255. 


THE   PROPHETS   AND   THE   SYBILS.  527 

mountain  tops  from  which  the  great  rivers  are  fed.  The 
angel  is  calling  him  and  he  gently  raises  his  head  with- 
out lifting  his  eyes  from  the  book,  as  though  balancing 
between  two  infinities.  Jeremias  is  shrouded  in  sackcloth 
and  ashes,  as  befits  the  prophet  who  dwells  under  the 
shadow  of  desolate  Jerusalem.  His  lips  seem  to  vibrate 
to  the  sound  of  the  conqueror's  trumpet.  His  beard  is 
tangled  and  matted,  his  bowed  head  looks  like  the  crown 
of  a  cedar  that  has  been  shattered  by  lightning,  his  half- 
closed  eyes  are  hidden  wells  of  tears.  His  hands  look 
strong,  but  they  are  swollen,  for  they  have  been  bearing 
up  the  tottering  walls  of  the  temple.  We  see  that  the 
groans  of  the  captive  sons  of  Israel  from  the  banks  of 
the  alien  river  and  the  wailings  of  the  Queen  of  the 
nations,  now  widowed  and  deserted,  are  ever  sounding 
in  his  ears.  Ezechias  is  in  a  divine  ecstasy,  interrogating 
his  visions,  stirred  by  the  spirit  which  possesses  him  to 
the  very  depths  of  his  being.  Daniel  is  busily  writing; 
his  mission  was  to  proclaim  the  day  of  deliverance  for 
the  good,  and  judgments  on  tyrants  to  future  genera- 
tions. The  most  admirable  thing  about  these  majestic 
figures,  on  which  one  could  gaze  for  ever  with  unwearied 
interest,  is,  that  they  are  not  mere  decorations  of  a  hall 
or  chapel,  but  men,  real  men,  who  have  felt  the  grief 
that  we  know,  and  been  wounded  by  the  thorns  which 
grow  on  our  earth;  their  brows  are  furrowed  with  human 
thought;  their  hearts  have  felt  the  chill  of  deceptions; 
they  have  seen  conflicts  in  which  whole  generations 
have  perished;  they  have  felt  the  shadow  of  death 
in  the  air  above  them,  and  they  have  striven  with  their 
own  hands  to  prepare  the  way  for  a  new  order  of  things ; 
their  eyes  have  grown  worn  and  dim  through  their  too 
fixed  gaze  on  the  ever-changing  kaleidoscope  of  the  ages ; 
their   flesh   has   been    consumed    by   the   fire   of  burning 


528  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

thoughts.*  The  attitudes  of  some  of  these  figures,  such 
as  the  Lybian  Sybil  and  the  Prophets  Daniel  and  Jonas, 
may  be  to  a  certain  extent  violent  and  exaggerated,  but 
as  a  rule  massive  form  and  ecstatic  emotion  are  ad- 
mirably restrained  within  the  limits  of  harmony  and 
beauty.j-  Those  who  are  inclined  to  find  fault  with 
the  master  in  this  regard  should  consider  the  extreme 
difificulty  of  the  task  he  proposed  to  himself,  which  was  to 
create  twelve  figures,  each  of  which  should  impress  on  the 
mind  the  idea  of  a  being  raised  by  divine  inspiration  into 
the  superhuman  sphere.  For  this,  mere  majesty  of  form 
was  not  enough;  a  variety  of  separate  situations  had  to 
be  imagined,  each  denoting  inspiration,  represented  in  a 
form  that  could  be  apprehended  by  the  senses.     Perhaps 

*  Cf.  this  eloquent  description  of  Castelar,  Errinnerungen  an 
Italien,  70  seq.,  with  Taine  in  MtJNTZ,  Hist,  de  I'Art,  HI.,  483.  See 
also  GOYAU-P^RAT^,  Le  Vatican,  548  seq.  ;  Hoffmann,  88-89 ;  Rio> 
Michel-Ange,  27  seq.  ;  Ollivier,  87  seq..,  118  ;  and  Steinmann  in  the 
Repertorium  f.  Kunstwissensch.,  XVII.,  175  seq. 

t  See  WOLTMANN-WOERMANN,  II.,  585.  Condivi  considered  the 
Jonas  the  finest  of  all  the  figures  on  account  of  its  masterly  foreshorten- 
ing. But  BURCKHARDT  also,  Cicerone,  644,  thinks  Jonas  as  well  as 
Jeremias  and  Joel,  "  wonderfully  majestic."  Opinions  will  always  differ 
in  regard  to  such  details  ;  in  mine  the  Delphic  Sybil  and  Jeremias  bear 
away  the  palm.  Of  the  first,  Plattner,  II.,  i,  269,  says  that  she  is  not 
only  the  most  beautiful  of  all  Michael  Angelo's  prophetesses,  but  also  one 
of  the  most  perfect  female  forms  in  modem  art.  Springer,  130,  con- 
siders the  Jeremias  the  most  typical  of  all  Michael  Angelo's  creations  ;  he 
says:  "This  figure  took  possession,  as  it  were,  of  Michael  Angelo's  ima- 
gination, and  from  this  time  forth  it  was  always  more  or  less  present  in  his 
mind.  In  all  his  creative  moods  the  form  of  the  prophet  hovered  in  the 
background,  and  suggested  reminiscences  of  the  spirit  in  which  it  had 
been  conceived.  The  germs  of  the  Moses  for  the  tomb  of  Julius  II.  and 
of  the  chief  figures  in  the  Medicean  mausoleum  are  contained  in  the 
Jeremias."  It  seems  extremely  probable  that  Michael  Angelo's  Jeremias 
was  his  own  portrait ;  see  Steinmann  in  the  Rep.  f.  KunstwissenscL 
(1894),  Vol.  XVII.,  \^^  seq. 


THE   DELIVERANCES   OF  ISRAEL.  529 

complete  success  in  such  an  undertaking  was  beyond  the 
powers  of  Art  itself."* 

A  third  series  of  pictures,  closely  connected  with  the 
majestic  form  of  the  Prophets  and  Sybils,  occupy  the  arches 
of  the  wall  and  the  triangular  spaces  between  them  and  the 
pendentives,  and  represent  "  the  ancestors  of  Christ  in  simple 
scenes  of  family  life."  The  tone  of  feeling'  in  all  these  figures 
is  that  of  patient  resignation,  waiting  for  the  promise  of 
the  nations.  Here,  as  in  the  Prophets  and  Sybils,  Michael 
Angelo  in  the  plan  of  his  composition  follows  the  received 
mediaeval  conception.^ 

The  fourth  series  consists  of  the  large  pictures  in  the  four 
corners  of  the  vaulting.  These  represent  some  of  the 
miraculous  deliverances  of  Israel  as  types  of  the  future 
Redemption.  The  subjects  are  the  slaying  of  Goliath,  Judith 
going  forth  to  the  camp  of  Holofernes,  the  punishment  of 
Haman,  and  the  Brazen  Serpent.  The  latter,  with  its 
startling  contrasts  of  death  and  deliverance,  is  the  finest  of 
the  whole  set  of  pictures.  "  The  clear  div^ision  between  the 
two  concentrated  groups,  with  the  symbol  of  Salvation 
separating  them  locally  as  well  as  spiritually,  the  one  turn- 
ing away  in  devil-ridden  despair,  the  other  pressing  forward 
with  eager  confidence,  makes  this  picture  perhaps  one  of  the 
most  marvellous  productions  of  Michael  Angelo's  genius, 
especially  when  we  consider  the  difficulties  presented  by 
the  form  of  the  surface  on  which  it  is  painted."| 

To  these  four  cycles  of  paintings   the    master's  prolific 

*  BURCKHARDT,  Cicerone,  loc.  cit. 

t  Cf.  LuBKE,  II.,  loi,  107-108.  As  this  is  not  meant  to  be  a  complete 
description,  these  pictures,  beautiful  as  they  are,  cannot  be  analysed  in 
detail.  C/.,  besides  Lubke, /«?<;.  aV.,  113  seq.^  Kugler-Burckhardt, 
532  seq.^  and  Ollivier,  102  seq. 

\  LiJTZOW,  Ktinstschatze,  439.  Grimm,  I.,  353  seq.^  ed.  5,  minutely 
describes  the  Goliath  and  the  Judith  in  order  to  shew  how  admirably 
Michael  Angelo  could  also  deal  with  historical  subjects. 

VOL.  VL  2   M 


530  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

imagination  added  "  a  whole  world  of  purely  ideal  figures 
simply  as  a  harmonious  living  and  breathing  incarnation  of 
the  ornamental  roof  which  he  had  devised."  *  Michael 
Angelo  evidently  intended  this  roof  to  represent  one  of 
those  festal  artistic  decorations  so  commonly  employed  in 
the  Renaissance  age  even  for  religious  solemnities.  The 
innumerable  ornamental  figures  employed,  some  in  holding 
the  tablets  with  the  names  of  the  Prophets,  some,  in  every 
variety  of  posture,  to  fill  up  the  spaces  between  the  arches, 
others  again  in  supporting  or  crowning,  the  cornices, 
correspond  with  the  living  personifications  so  frequently 
perched  on  various  portions  of  these  festive  erections.  All 
these  nude  figures,  the  sturdy  children  and  strong-limbed 
youths,  are  in  a  sense  members  of  the  architectural  scheme, 
supporting  cornices,  carrying  inscription  tablets  or  shields,, 
or  holding  up  hangings  or  garlands.  Hardly  any  of  them 
are  at  rest,  almost  all  are  at  work  or  in  motion  in  some 
way,  but  none  have  any  relation  to  the  subjects  of  the 
pictures,  they  belong  entirely  to  the  decoration.f     However 

*  LUBKE,  II.,  lOI.  Cf.  LUTZOW,  loc.  cit.,  440,  and  Burckhardt, 
Cicerone,  642  seq.,  on  these  "  impersonations  of  the  dynamics  of  Archi- 
tecture." 

t  I  prefer  this  interpretation,  resting  on  the  views  of  Liibke  and 
Burckhardt,  to  the  many  forced  and  far-fetched  ones  which  have  recently 
been  attempted.  That  of  L.  v.  Scheffler  (Michelangelo,  Eine  Renais- 
sance Studie.  Altenburg,  1892),  which  ascribes  the  "  ideal  system  of  the 
Sistine  Chapel "  to  Michael  Angelo's  Platonism,  has  been  shewn  by  W. 
Henke  in  the  Allg.  Zeit.  (1892),  N.  jy,  SuppL,  to  be  quite  beside  the  mark. 
This,  however,  has  not  prevented  the  last-named  writer  in  his  "  Empiri- 
schen  Betrachtungen  iiber  die  Malereien  von  Michelangelo  an  der 
Decke  der  Sixtinischen  Kapelle,"  in  the  Jahrb.  der  Preuss.  Kunstsamml., 
VII.  (1886),  3  seq.,  82  seq.,  140  seq.,  from  falling  into  the  same  mistake  in 
putting  things  into  the  frescoes  which  are  not  there.  His  singular  inter- 
pretation of  the  Caryatides  at  the  sides  of  the  seats  of  the  Prophets  and 
Sybils  is  especially  baseless  and  mistaken.  In  my  opinion,  the  inscription 
mentioned,  p.  744,  explicitly  excludes  it.     Burckhardt,  with  whom  I  dis- 


THE   ORNAMENTAL  FIGURES.  53T 

one  may  admire  these  undraped  figures  from  the  point  of 
view  of  the  artist,  many  will  feel  them  incongruous  for  the 
decoration  of  a  chapel* 

cussed  this  question  in  March,  1895,  also  thinks  that  both  Scheffler  and 
Henke  are  mistaken.  Wolfflin  in  Jahrb.  der  Preuss.  Kunstsamml, 
XIII.,  181,  conjectures  that  the  slaves  in  the  medallions  were  an  after- 
thought, the  inedallions  having  been  painted  first  without  them,  and  this 
seems  very  probable. 

*  They  afford  no  justification,  however,  for  characterising  the  work  as 
■unchristian,  as  Michael  Angelo's  painting  of  the  nude  is  never  sensual  {cf. 
Hist.  Polit.  Bl.,  XCI.,  755,  and  Janssen,  Soddoma  [Stuttgart,  1870],  1 10); 
and  also  these  nude  figures  are  purely  accessory  :  see  Rio,  Michel-Ange, 
30.  It  is  quite  incomprehensible  to  me  how  Perate,  550,  can  say, 
writing  of  the  roof  of  the  Sistine  Chapel,  "  Est  ce  une  oeuvre  chretienne  ? 
Non  ;  c'est  une  oeuvre  biblique,  la  bible  meme,"  etc.  I  may  be  permitted 
here  to  note  an  appreciation  written  by  Overbeck  of  the  roof  of  the 
Sistine  Chapel  in  18 10,  which  is  but  little  known,  I  found  it  in  a  letter 
printed  in  the  Allg.  Cons.  Monatschrift,  I.  (1888),  40.  He  writes  :  "  In 
truth  it  is  the  grandest  and  noblest  work  in  existence.  Where  can  we 
find  anything  more  marvellously  complete  than  this  roof,  which  portrays 
the  history  of  creation  and  the  last  judgment,  surrounded  by  the  stem 
and  solemn  forms  of  the  Prophets  ?  They  seem  like  colossal  spirits,  ap- 
pearing now,  at  the  end  of  the  ages,  to  confirm  those  who  have  believed 
them,  and  strike  terror  into  the  hearts  of  the  scoffers ;  living  witnesses  of  the 
obstinacy  with  which  they  refused  to  hear  their  warnings,  or  turn  away  from 
the  vanities  of  the  world  ;  now,  like  damning  spectres,  pointing  the  way 
to  hell !  A  Frenchman  is  painting  there  just  now  with  an  enormous 
scaffolding  which  enables  one  to  get  quite  close  to  the  roof  As  he  does 
not  work  on  Sundays,  we  were  able,  to  our  great  delight,  to  take  advan- 
tage of  this,  and  get  a  near  view  of  these  magnificent  works,  especially 
of  the  creation  of  Adam.  Good  heavens  !  what  lies  are  spread  abroad 
about  Michael  Angelo.  One  is  warned  against  him  as  a  mannerist,  a 
caricaturist !  How  is  it  possible  to  be  so  blind  ?  One  must  have  dazed 
one's  eyes  with  looking  at  Maratti  or  Battoni,  or  God  knows  what,  one 
must  have  murdered  all  one's  feeling  for  nature,  if  one  cannot  recognise 
here  the  highest  and  purest  art,  the  simple  reflection  of  nature  glorified 
in  the  pure,  great  soul  of  the  artist.  No  one  who  knows  nature  at  all 
can  fail  at  the  first  glance  to  perceive  her  impress,  to  feel  with  an  electric 
thrill  the  truthfulness  of  these  thoughts,  these  forms,  these  characters  ! 


532  HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES. 

Considered  as  a  spiritual  conception,  Michael  Angelo's 
Sistine  paintings  are  fully  on  a  level  with  their  artistic 
presentation.  They  are  a  mighty  poem  in  colour,  having 
for  its  theme  the  whole  course  of  the  human  race  from  the 
heights  of  creation  down  to  the  need  of  salvation  and 
upwards  again  to  the  dawning  of  the  day  of  deliverance. 
In  their  silence  they  speak  with  an  eloquence  that  can 
never  be  surpassed.  Nowhere  has  the  office  of  the  Old 
Testament  as  the  preparation  for  the  new  and  abiding 
covenant  been  set  forth  with  such  convincing  truth  and 
beauty.*  First  we  have  the  creation  of  nature,  the  standing 
ground  for  the  spiritual  life  of  the  human  race,  then  the 
making  of  man,  his  fall  into  sin,  in  which  the  family  (Cain 
and  Abel),  society  (the  Deluge),  finally,  even  the  best  of  the 
race  (drunkenness  of  Noe),  become  involved.  Under  the 
old  law,  all  humanity  is  yearning  for  deliverance  from  the 
burden  of  guilt.     From  the  midst  of  the  people  God  raises 

Again,  on  the  other  hand,  any  one  who  can  say  that  these  paintings  have 
been  dashed  off  with  a  clever,  hasty  brush  must  either  not  have  given 
himself  time  to  look  at  them,  or  must  purposely  give  a  false  account,  for 
the  exact  contrary  is  the  case,  and  they  are  marked  by  such  delicacy  of 
detail  and  characterisation,  and  such  a  perfection  of  finish,  that  these 
qualities  alone  would  make  them  superior  to  all  other  work  of  the  kind. 
No  doubt  they  are  not  pohshed  up  like  Van  der  Werff  s  ;  but  if  a  smooth 
surface  is  all  that  is  meant  by  finish,  then  our  modern  finnikins  are  the 
only  perfect  painters.  In  this  respect,  Michael  Angelo  is  a  model  for  us 
all.  What  science  he  unites  to  his  Divine  gifts  !  What  knowledge  of 
the  human  body,  of  perspective  and  of  optics  !  How  wonderfully  he 
paints  !  so  that  no  touch  can  be  discerned,  nor  can  one  think  of  the 
brush,  one  sees  the  thing  itself.  In  short,  in  all  ways  he  is  perfect  ; 
everywhere  he  has  gone  down  into  the  depths,  and  plays  with  things 
that  to  others  will  always  remain  a  mystery.  He  can  truly  say  :  Art 
is  my  spouse." 

*  "  It  would  be  impossible,"  says  MOLITOR,  255,  "  to  approach  in  the 
language  of  Art  more  nearly  to  the  force  of  Holy  Scripture  itself  than 
the  great  master  has  succeeded  in  doing." 


MICHAEL   ANGELO   AND   THE    POPES   TOMB.         533 

up  the  Prophets  for  the  Jews,  and  the  Sybils  for  the  heathen, 
as  inspired  seers,  beholding  the  future  salvation,  but  at  the 
same  time  bearing  in  their  souls  the  sorrows  of  their  brethren. 
Four  visible  types  of  this  salvation  appear  in  the  corner 
pictures,  drawn  from  the  history  of  Israel :  the  enemy  who 
desires  to  destroy  the  people  of  God  is  vanquished  in 
Goliath,  Haman,  Holofernes,  and  the  Serpent,  all  only 
types  of  the  victory  wrought  by  the  eternal  sacrifice  of  the 
Son  of  God  unceasingly  celebrated  by  the  Church  on  the 
Altar. 

On  the  completion  of  the  roof  paintings  in  the  Sistina, 
Michael  Angelo  turned  again  to  the  tomb  of  Julius  II., 
apparently  by  the  Pope's  orders.  Ever  since  the  Summer 
of  15 12,  Julius  II.  had  not  disguised  from  himself  the  fact 
that  his  days  were  drawing  to  their  close.*  The  great 
difficulty  about  the  tomb  consisted  in  the  uncertainty  as  to 
where  it  was  to  be  placed.  As  the  Choir  of  S.  Peter's,  which 
had  just  been  erected  by  Bramante,  was  only  temporary, 
it  could  not  be  put  there.  In  consequence  of  this  un- 
certainty Michael  Angelo  had  to  make  several  sketches 
for  his  new  design,  some  complete  on  all  sides,  others  in- 
tended to  stand  against  a  wall.-j- 

According  to  Condivi  and  Vasari,  Michael  Angelo's  bio- 
graphers, the  isolated  plan  was  as  follows.  The  Chapel 
containing  the  Pope's  sarcophagus  was  to  be  enclosed  in  a 
marble  shell,  measuring  about  54  feet  by  36-  The  pediment 
was  to  be  covered  with  symbolical  single  figures  and  groups. 
The  arts  of  painting,  sculpture,  and  architecture  were  to 
be  represented  by  captive  figures  in  order  to  indicate,  so 
Condivi  tells  us,  that  they  were  now,  together  with  the  Pope, 
prisoners  of  death,  since  they  would  never  again  find 
another  Pope  to  encourage  and  promote  them  as  he  had 

*  Cf.  supra,  p.  431. 
+  Springer,  236. 


5.3.4  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

done.  Statues  of  Victory,  with  the  conquered  provinces  at 
their  feet,  were  to  represent  Julius  II.'s  successes  in  regain- 
ing the  lost  possessions  of  the  States  of  the  Church.  The 
pediment  was  to  be  surmounted  by  a  cornice,  above  which 
was  to  rise  a  second  storey,  bearing  four  typical  figures,  two 
of  them  being  Moses  and  S.  Paul.  Above  these  again  was 
to  be  the  figure  of  the  Pope  sleeping,  and  borne  by  two 
angels.  The  whole  work  was  to  measure  about  30  feet  in 
height,  and  to  contain  more  than  40  statues,  not  counting 
the  bas-reliefs  on  which  the  principal  events  in  the  life  of 
Julius  II.  were  to  be  portrayed.* 

While  Michael  Angelo  was  employed  on  this  work,  the 
Pope  died.  Shortly  before  his  death,  on  the  19th  February ^^^ 
15 1 3,  Julius  had  given  orders  that  his  tomb  should  be 
erected  in  the  Sistine  Chapel  of  S.  Peter's,  where  his  uncle 

*  CONDivi,  35-36.  Cf.  Springer,  231  seq.,  236  seq.  On  both  his- 
torical and  artistic  grounds  Springer  assigns  the  date  of  this  design  to 
the  years  1512-1513.  He  admits  (235)  that  the  original  plan  is  un 
known;  he  pronounces  (II.,  15,  ed.  2)  the  drawing  in  the  Uffizzi  at 
Florence,  Shelf  187,  N.  -608  (Braun,  181  ;  Alinari,  3688)  to  be 
unauthentic.  On  the  other  hand,  Schmarsow  in  the  Jahrb.  der  Preuss. 
Kunstsamml.,  V.,  63  seq.,  endeavours  to  prove  that  this  drawing  is  by  the 
master's  own  hand,  and  Burckhardt,  Grimm,  and  Bode  have  accepted  it 
as  such.  Schmarsow  has  also  published  and  explained  another  drawing 
of  the  Tomb  of  Julius  II.,  which  is  in  the  possession  of  H.  A.  von 
Beckerath  of  Berlin.  He  thinks  that  this  sketch  is  the  only  authentic 
representation  of  Michael  Angelo's  design  for  the  Tomb  of  Julius  II. ; 
possibly  not  of  the  original  one,  but  at  any  rate  of  the  not  less  magnifi- 
cent edifice  contemplated  in  1 5 1 3.  This  is  the  only  plan  which  furnishes 
an  adequate  support  for  the  majestic  captives  and  the  colossal  Moses. 
Grimm,  in  Geiger's  Quarterly,  I.  (1886),  49,  announces  that  he  agrees 
in  most  points  with  Schmarsow's  views.  PORTHEIN,  on  the  other  hand^ 
in  his  contributions  to  the  Repert.  f.  Kunstwissensch.,  XII.  (1889),  149, 
on  Michael  Angelo's  works,  holds  with  Springer  that  the  Florentine  sketch 
cannot  be  from  the  hand  of  Michael  Angelo,  and  pronounces  that  be- 
longing to  H.  von  Beckerath  to  be  "  an  old  copy  of  the  smaller 
design." 


MICHAEL  ANGELO   AND  THE  POPE'S   EXECUTORS.      535 

Sixtus  IV.  lay.*  He  left  10,000  ducats  in  his  will  for  the 
monument.  On  the  6th  May,  15 13,  Michael  Angelo  con- 
cluded a  very  detailed  agreement  with  the  executors, 
Cardinal  Leonardo  Grosso  della  Rovere,  and  the  Protono- 
tary,  Lorenzo  Pucci,  which  is  still  extant.-j-  The  monument 
was  to  have  three  faces,  the  fourth  side  was  to  be  against 
the  wall.  Each  face  was  to  contain  two  tabernacles  (niches 
with  side  pilasters  and  a  cornice)  resting  on  a  high  base- 
ment. In  each  niche  there  were  to  be  two  statues  some- 
what larger  than  life.  Against  the  twelve  pillars  dividing 
the  niches  there  were  to  be  statues  of  the  same  size,  so 
that  twenty-four  statues  would  be  required  for  the  sub- 
structure alone.  Above  this  was  to  be  the  sarcophagus 
with  the  Pope's  statue  surrounded  by  four  other  figures  all 
double  life-size,  and  in  addition  to  these,  on  the  same  level, 
six  colossal  statues  seated.  Where  the  structure  joined  the 
wall,  there  was  to  be  a  Chapel  containing  five  figures  which, 
being  further  from  the  eye,  were  to  be  still  larger  than  any 
of  the  others.  The  spaces  between  the  niches  were  to  be 
filled  with  reliefs  in  bronze  or  marble. 

As  this  plan  considerably  exceeded  the  former  one, 
both  in  size  and  in  importance,  the  artist  was  to  receive 
16,500  ducats,  but  the  3500  ducats  already  paid  were  to  be 
deducted  from  the  sum  ;  he  bound  himself  to  undertake  no 
other  large  work  until  this  was  finished. 

During  the  years  from  15 13-16  Michael  Angelo  devoted 
all  his  powers  to  this  gigantic  undertaking.  Sculpture  was 
his  favourite  art;  he  used  to  say  he  had  imbibed  it  with 
his  mother's  milk,  because  his  grandmother  was  the  wife  of 

*  Bull.  Vatic,  II.,  349.  This  authentic  document  shews  that  MiJNTZ 
is  in  error  in  stating,  Hist,  de  I'Art,  III.,  392,  that  Julius  II.  had  desired 
that  his  tomb  should  be  placed  in  S.  Pietro  in  Vincoli. 

t  Printed  in  Lettere  di  Michelangelo,  ed.  Milanesi,  635  seq.  Cf. 
Springer,  237  seq. 


536  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

a  stone  mason  ;  and,  indeed,  as  we  have  seen  in  the  roof  of 
the  Sistine  Chapel,  even  in  painting  he  always  thought  as 
a  sculptor. 

The  masterly  statues  of  the  dying  youth  and  the  youth  in 
fetters  (the  slaves)  which  are  now  in  the  Louvre,  were  exe- 
cuted during  this  period.*  Four  other  statues  intended  for 
the  base  of  the  monuments,  gigantic  figures  of  captives 
or  conquered  warriors,  crouching  and  writhing,  and  only 
roughly  carved,  are  preserved  in  the  Giardino  Boboli  at 
Florence  (on  the  left  of  the  entrance).  In  the  National 
Museum  in  that  city,  there  is  also  the  statue  of  a  victorious 
and  triumphant  warrior ;  and  that  of  a  vanquished  one  in 
St.  Petersburg.-j- 

The  only  one  of  the  statues  designed  for  the  upper  storey 
that  still  exists,  is  the  Moses  begun  in  the  years  15 13-15 16, 
while  the  artist's  mind  was  still  possessed  and  dominated  by 
the  forms  of  the  Prophets  of  the  Sistine  Chapel.J  This 
world-famed  statue,  "  the  triumph  of  modern  sculpture,"  § 

*  The  dying  youth  is  a  singularly  noble  work.  One  can  well  under- 
stand Vasari's  calling  it  "cosa  divina."  From  the  moment  that  the 
two  statues  were  rescued  from  their  concealment  in  the  French  Castle 
they  were  universally  recognised  as  masterpieces  of  Michael  Angelo's 
genius.  Cf.  Springer,  240  seq. ;  Lubke,  Plastik,  728 ;  Muntz,  Hist, 
de  I'Art,  388  seq.  ;  Klaczko,  in  the  Rev.  des  Deux  Mondes,  CXIV. 
(1892),  891,  and  especially  Grimm,  I.,  iflo  seq..  ed.  5.  The  latter  says 
that  the  tender  beauty  of  the  dying  youth  is  perhaps  more  striking  than 
the  power  of  the  Moses.  "  When  I  ask  myself  which  of  the  sculptor's 
works  would  you  mention  first  if  you  were  asked  to  name  his  list,  I 
should  say  at  once— the  dying  youth.  This  figure  will  bear  to  be  com- 
pared to  the  very  best  Greek  work  in  its  faultless  truth  to  nature." 
LiJBKE,  loc.  cit.,  thinks  that  both  the  captives  of  the  Louvre  were 
finished  during  the  life-time  of  Julius  II. 

t  Springer,  241  seq. ;  Muntz,  Hist,  de  I'Art,  III.,  390.  See  also 
Klaczko,  Florentiner  Plaudereien,  42  seq 

X  Springer,  243. 

§  Grimm,  I.,  419,  ed.  5. 


CURTAILMENT   OF   THE   DESIGN.  537 

now  adorns  the  monument  of  Julius  II.  in  S.  Pietro  in 
Vincoli,  where  at  last  the  tomb  was  erected,  though  greatly 
reduced  from  the  dimensions  originally  contemplated. 

The  gradual  curtailment  of  this  noble  design  in  which 
Michael  Angelo  had  hoped  to  have  realised  all  his  loftiest 
and  grandest  conceptions,  and  the  money  disputes  with 
the  Duke  of  Urbino  connected  with  this,  were  the  occasion 
of  such  prolonged  misery,  and  such  paroxysms  of  anger 
and  disappointment  to  the  artist  as  to  make  this  tomb  the 
tragedy  of  his  whole  life.  The  monument  as  completed 
corresponds  with  its  original  plan  as  little  as  it  does  with 
the  first  conception  approved  by  Julius  II.  But  the  magni- 
ficent effect  of  the  statue  of  Moses  compensates  for  all  its 
short-comings.*  The  aspect  in  which  Moses  is  here  pre- 
sented is  that  of  the  fiery  and  resolute  ruler  of  Israel,  who 
led  the  stiff-necked  nation  for  forty  years  through  the 
wilderness,  who  dared  the  wrath  of  God  for  their  sakes,  and 
in  his  fury  at  their  idolatry,  dashed  the  Tables  of  the  Law  to 
pieces  and  commanded  3000  of  the  rebels  to  be  slain.  The 
wise  law-giver,  the  servant  of  Jehovah,  the  humble  penitent 
confessing  himself  unworthy  to  enter  the  promised  land^ 
are  entirely  ignored  in  this  essentially  one-sided  representa- 
tion.-f     The  artist  conceives  the  teacher  and  captain  of  the 

*  This  statue  alone,  Card.  Gonzaga  is  said  to  have  declared,  would 
have  been  in  itself  a  worthy  monument  to  the  great  Pope. 

t  MOLITOR,  215,  rightly  dwells  strongly  on  this.  If,  as  SPRINGER, 
244,  justly  remarks,  we  accept  the  statue  as  it  was  to  have  been  placed 
in  Michael  Angelo's  original  plan,  all  the  common  strictures  on  what  may 
seem  a  certain  uncouthness  and  exaggeration  in  the  Moses,  are  seen  to 
be  unfounded.  "  Moses  was  meant  to  look  down  upon  the  spectator 
from  above  ;  he  was  to  have  been  surrounded  by  other  figures  on  the 
same  scale  and  of  similar  character,  also  seated  on  square  blocks,  and  in 
their  various  forms  and  postures  calculated  to  balance  each  other. 
Lastly,  the  right-side  was  intended  to  be  almost  entirely  withdrawn  from 
sight,  the  attention  was  to  be  attracted  to  the  view  of  the  figure  as  seen 


538  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

chosen  people  exclusively  as  a  man  of  action  like  Julius  II. 
The  head  is  raised,  the  brow  deeply  furrowed,  the  angry 
eyes  are  turned  sideways  towards  the  left,  the  whole  frame 
almost  writhes  under  the  shock  of  conflicting  emotions. 
The  very  hairs  of  the  long  thick  beard,  in  which  the  finger 
tips  of  the  right  hand,  resting  on  the  despised  law,  are  half- 
concealed,  seem  to  quiver.  The  strong  pressure  of  the 
left  hand  against  the  breast  seems  striving  to  keep  down 
the  rising  storm.  But  the  forward  movement  of  the  right 
foot  and  the  tension  of  the  left  leg  drawn  backward,  are  too 
significant ;  in  another  moment  the  giant  will  have  sprung 
from  his  seat  to  wreak  his  wrath  on  the  backsliders.* 

"  Any  one  who  has  once  seen  this  statue  will  never  lose 
the  impression.  The  effect  is  as  of  one  conscious  that  he 
holds  in  his  hands  the  thunderbolts  of  Omnipotence,  and 
waiting  to  see  whether  the  foes  whom  he  means  to  destroy 
will  venture  to  attack  him."-f-  In  fact,  Michael  Angelo's 
Moses  is  the  embodiment  of  the  Pope-king  who  humbled 
Venice,  reconquered  the  States  of  the  Church,  and  drove 
the  French  out  of  Italy.  The  masterful  vehemence  and 
almost  superhuman  energy  of  Julius  II.  are  admirably 
represented  in  this  Titanic  figure ;  but  none  the  less  is  it 
also  a  no  less  faithful  transcript  of  the  sculptor's  own  proud 

from  the  left."  Although  this  is  perfectly  true,  still  it  cannot  be  denied 
that  Michael  Angelo  in  the  Moses  goes  to  the  extreme  limits  of 
intensity  in  expression  that  nature  permits.  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  148, 
€d.  3,  says,  "  He  is  not  far  from  the  edge  of  the  abyss  of  monstrosity 
and  pseudo-Titanism,  in  which  the  followers  of  the  Master  so  soon 
"became  engulfed."  No  one  but  Michael  Angelo  could  safely  dare  as  he 
dared,  no  one  but  he  could  move  freely  on  the  edge  of  the  precipice.  Cf. 
PORTHEIN  in  the  Repert.  f  Kunstwissensch.,  XII.,  154.  On  the  pilgrim- 
age of  the  Roman  Jews  to  Moses,  see  Berliner,  Gesch.  d.  Juden, 
II.,  I.,  103. 
*  Cf.  Hoffmann,  Italien,  60-61  ;  and  Lubke,  Plastik,  727, 
t  Grimm,  I.,  418,  ed.  5. ;  Cf.  also  Rio,  Michel- Ange,  19  seq. 


THE   MOSES   OF   MICHAEL   ANGELO.  539 

and  unbending  character,  and  impetuous,  passionate  tem- 
perament. 

Julius  II.'s  colossal  monument  was  never  completed,  his 
bronze  statue  was  destroyed  ;  but  the  indomitable  spirit  of 
the  mighty  Pope  and  the  equally  kingly  soul  of  the  great 
sculptor  have  been  carved  into  the  Moses  of  Michael 
Angelo.  As  we  gaze  upon  it  we  understand  the  words  of 
Ariosto,  "  Michel  piii  che  terreno,  angel  divino."  * 

*  Cf.  PERATifc,  544;  Brosch,  276,  writes,  "  Michael  Angelo  the  greatest 
of  modern  artists  and  the  noblest  character  of  this  Renaissance  period, 
has  carved  the  name  of  Julius  II.  in  imperishable  characters  on  his 
marble,  and  made  it  immortal." 


CHAPTER  X. 

Raphael  in  the  Service  of  Julius  II. — The  Camera  della 
Segnatura  and  the  Stanza  d'Eliodoro. 

In  Michael  Angelo's  creations  nature  found  herself  outdone 
by  art.  When  she  gave  Raphael  to  the  world  she  saw  herself 
eclipsed,  not  only  in  the  artist  but  also  in  the  man  ;  for  he 
combined  with  the  highest  intellectual  gifts  the  most  win- 
ning grace,  industry,  beauty,  modesty,  and  a  perfect  life.* 
With  these  words  Vasari,  the  father  of  modern  historians 
of  art,  begins  his  description  of  the  life  of  one  who  will 
ever  live  in  the  memory  of  the  world  as  at  once  the  great- 
est master  of  Christian  Art  and  a  genius  of  first-rate 
creative  power. 

Raphael  was  endowed  by  nature  with  the  sweetest  of 
dispositions  and  great  personal  beauty.  Constitutionally, 
he  was  a  true  Umbrian,  and  his  early  works  are  pervaded 
by  the  dreamy  calm  of  the  school  in  which  he  was  reared, 
but  unlike  Michael  Angelo  he  possessed  a  singular  power  of 
absorbing  and  assimilating  the  most  various  external  impres- 
sions. His  genius  did  not  expand  much  until  he  came  to 
Florence,  where  Leonardi  da  Vinci  and  Fra  Bartolomeo 
exercised  a  strong  influence  over  him.  He  arrived  in 
Florence  in  1504,  and  the  April  of  1508  found  him  still 
working  there.  In  the  Autumn  of  that  year,  the  twenty- 
sixth  of  his  life,  he  appears  in  Rome.  On  the  8th  Septem- 
ber, 1508,  he  writes  to  his  friend  the  painter,  Francesco 
Francia,  to  excuse  his  tardiness  in  sending  him  his  promised 

*  Vasari,  ed.  Milanesi,  315-316. 


JULIUS   11.   AND   RAPHAEL.  54 1 

likeness.  "  On  account  of  my  many  and  important  occu- 
pations," he  says,  "  I  was  not  able  sooner  to  paint  it  myself, 
in  accordance  with  our  agreement.  I  could,  indeed,  have 
got  one  of  my  assistants  to  do  it,  and  sent  it  off  thus  ; 
but  that  would  not  have  been  becoming,  or  rather,  perhaps, 
it  would  have  been  becoming,  in  order  to  shew  that  I  do 
not  paint  as  well  as  you  do.  I  beg  you  not  to  be  hard  upon 
me,  for  you,  yourself,  must  have  experienced  what  it  is  to 
have  lost  one's  freedom,  and  have  to  serve  a  master."* 

The  many  and  important  occupations  here  mentioned 
were  the  great  works  in  the  Vatican  with  which  he  had 
been  charged  by  Julius  II.j- 

The  Pope  had  left  the  Appartamento  Borgia,  in  which 
he  had  spent  the  first  four  years  of  his  reign,  on  the  26th 
November,  1 507,  in  order  "  not  to  be  pestered  with  reminis- 
cences   of  Alexander   VI., J"    and   established  himself  in 

*  Malvasia,  Felsina  pittrice,  II.,  48  (Bologna,  1678).  GtJHL,  91-92; 
Crowe-Cavalcaselle,  II.,  5  seq.^  dispute  the  correctness  of  this  date, 
but  their  arguments  are  not  convincing.  See  Frantz,  II.,  725  ;  MuNTZ, 
Raphael,  271,  ed.  2,  and  Janitschek  in  the  Lit.  Centralblatt  (1887), 
p.  682. 

t  VaSARI  says  that  Bramante  had  advised  that  Raphael  should  be 
called  to  Rome.  But  Reumont,  III.,  2,  388  (LiJTZOW  in  Graph. 
Kiinste,  XIII.  [1890]  16,  is  mistaken  in  ascribing  the  hypothesis  to 
Minghetti),  justly  observes  that  probably  the  Pope's  relations  at  Urbino 
had  quite  as  much  to  do  with  determining  him  to  employ  the  young 
artist  as  Bramante's  recommendation.  MiJNTZ,  Raphael,  317,  thinks 
this  is  certain.  Knackfuss,  22,  conjectures  that  Juhus  II.  may  have 
made  acquaintance  with  Raphael  during  his  three  days'  visit  to  Urbino 
in  1506  (see  supra,  p.  273).     See  also  Frantz,  II.,  724 

X  Cf.  supra,  p.  2 1 7,  Paris  DE  Grassis.  From  this  it  is  clear  that  before 
the  26th  Nov.,  1507,  Julius  II.  had,  at  any  rate  for  a  time,  inhabited 
Alexander's  apartments.  It  is  therefore  quite  incorrect  to  say,  as 
Gregorovius,  VIII.,  157,  ed.  3,  does,  that  he  "had  never  set  foot  in 
the  Appartamento  Borgia."  Grimm,  Fiinfzehn  Essays,  IV.,  275,  is 
equally  in  error.  Crowe,  II.,  7,  writes  :  "Julius  II.  established  himself 
in  the  upper  storey  of  the  Vatican  Palace  on  the  day  of  his  Coronation, 


542  HISTORY   OF  THE   POPES. 

another  part  of  the  Vatican  Palace.  He  had  chosen  for 
his  future  residence  a  suite  of  rooms  looking  out  on  the 
Cortile  di  Belvedere,  which  had  been  built  by  Nicholas  V. 
These  were  situated  in  the  vicinity  of  the  same  Pope's 
study,  which  was  adorned  with  Fra  Angelico's  wonderful 
frescoes.*  Perhaps  this  may  have  led  Julius  IL  to  wish 
to  have  the  adjoining  chambers  decorated  in  the  same 
manner.  These  rooms  the  famous  "  Stanze  "  (living  rooms) 
are  the  continuation  of  a  spacious  hall,  the  Sala  di  Costan- 
tino,  which  is  only  lighted  from  one  side.  The  Stanze,  on 
the  contrary,  have  two  large  windows  in  each  room  facing 
each  other  with  marble  seats  in  their  bays.  In  the  two 
first  rooms  these  windows  are  opposite  each  other  in  the 
East  (Stanza  dell'  Incendio),  one  is  in  the  corner  ;  thus,  the 
bad  light,  coupled  with  the  intricacies  of  perspective  created 
by  the  irregular  spaces,  make  the  task  of  the  painter  an 
extremely  difBcult  one.j-  The  only  really  suitable  surfaces 
for  painting  are  the  plain  cross  vaultings  on  the  ceiling. 
The  shape  of  the  rooms  is  oblong ;  their  proportions  are 
simple  but  dignified.  The  doors  by  which  the  rooms 
communicate  with  each  other  are  in  the  corner  at  the  end 
of  the  long  walls,  and  are  not  large,  so  that  on  these  sides 
there  is  a  long  free  space,  semi-circular  at  the  top,  well 
fitted  for  large  historical  compositions,  while  on  the  short 
side,  cut  up  by  the  windows,  there  is  little  room  for  any- 
thing. 

26th  Nov.,  1507,"  and  thus  seems  to  believe  that  the  Pope  was  not 
crowned  till  1507.  Kraus  falls  into  the  same  error,  Camerei,  4  : 
"Dopo  la  sua  incoronazione  (26th  Nov.,  1507),  Giulio,  pur  esso,  scelse  a 
sua  dimora  queste  stanze  superior!  inveci  dell'  Appartamento  Borgia  al 
primo  piano  dove  il  ricordo  di  Alessandro  VI.  I'avrebbe  perseguitato." 
Bole  (68)  ignores  P.  de  Grassis'  Report,  and  says  that  Julius  II.  chose 
the  Stanze  for  his  residence  in  1 503. 

*  Pastor,  Hist.  Popes,  II.,  187  seq.  (Engl,  trans.). 

t  MiJNTZ,  Raphael,  330,  ed.  2. 


RAPHAEL  AND  THE  STANZE.  543 

These  rooms  during  the  Autumn  of  1508  presented  a 
busy  scene.  In  the  Stanza  dell'  Incendio,  Perugino  was 
painting  the  four  round  divisions  of  the  ceiling,  filling  up 
the  interspaces  with  decorative  designs.*  In  the  adjoining 
Camera  della  Segnatura,  Raphael  and  Sodoma  were  at  work 
together,  the  latter  having  undertaken  the  ornamental 
work  on  the  ceiling.-j-  In  addition  to  these  artists  the 
impatient  Pope  had  got  Luca  Signorelli,  Bramantino,  Ber- 
nardino Pinturicchio,  Suardi,  Lorenzo  Lotto,  and  the 
Fleming,  Johann  Ruysch,  all  variously  occupied  in  the 
upper  storey. J  But  this  did  not  last  long..  In  a  very 
short  time  the  Pope  perceived  how  completely  the  works 
of  the  other  artists  were  eclipsed  by  Raphael's  magnificent 
paintings  in  the  Camera  della  Segnatura,  and  took  his 
measures  accordingly.  The  slight  mythological  pictures 
with  which  Sodoma  had  begun  to  adorn  the  ceiling  were 
countermanded,  and  his  work  confined  to  the  purely 
decorative  parts  ;  all  the  serious  pictures  were  given  to 
Raphael,  and  before  long  Perugino  and  Pinturicchio  were 

*  MuNTZ,  Hist,  de  TArt,  II.,  722, 

t  Ibid.^  Raphael,  359,  ed.  2,  severely  and  justly  criticises  these 
paintings  of  Sodoma's.  Wickhoff,  55,  has  clearly  shewn  from  the 
Report  of  Paris,  de  Grassis  that  Vasari's  often  repeated  story  tliat 
Julius  II.  had  destroyed  other  frescoes  on  the  walls,  in  order  to  clear 
them  for  Raphael's  paintings,  is  a  fable.  De  Grassis  (ed.  DoUinger, 
383,  expressly  says  that  Julius  refused  to  allow  the  portrait  of  Alex- 
ander VI.  to  be  destroyed.  Wickhoff  justly  argues  that  if  the  Pope 
would  not  permit  the  destruction  of  a  fresco  containing  the  portrait  of 
his  deadliest  enemy,  he  could  certainly  not  have  sanctioned  that  of  less 
obnoxious  pictures.  Nevertheless,  Knackfuss,  40,  repeats  this  invention 
of  Vasari.  On  the  payments  of  Sodoma,  see  Arch.  St.  de  Soc.  Rom., 
II.,  486.  On  his  paintings,  see  also  Janssen,  76  seq.  486  ;  cf.  CROWE, 
II,,  9-10. 

X  Cf.  Crowe,  II.,  9  seq.  ;  Muntz,  Raphael,  325,  ed.  2.  Particulars 
about  Signorelli's  stay  in  Rome  at  the  close  of  1 508  are  in  ViSCHER, 
Signorelli,  357,  358- 


544  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

also  dismissed.  The  former  returned  to  Perugio  ;  Pintu- 
ricchio  went  to  Siena,  and  never  came  back  to  Rome. 
"  Hard  as  this  must  have  been  for  them  they  could  not 
dispute  the  justice  of  the  Pope's  verdict,  who  had,  indeed, 
fully  appreciated  the  worth  of  what  they  had  accomplished 
in  their  best  days."* 

Raphael's  paintings  in  the  Camera  della  Segnatura, 
which  the  world  owes  to  the  appreciative  insight  of  Julius 
II.,  are  the  most  famous  and  the  most  interesting  of  all  his 
creations.  Though  faded,  and  in  many  ways  damaged  by 
the  ravages  of  time,  they  are  still  the  joy  of  all  artists  and 
art-lovers.f  As  long  as  ever  a  trace  of  them  still  remains, 
they  will  draw  pilgrims  of  every  nationality  to  visit  this 
shrine  of  Art. 

The  importance  of  these  frescoes  is  evinced  by  the  amount 
of  literature  to  which  they  have  given  rise,;]:  and  which  will 
continue  to  increase,  for  they  are  as  inexhaustible  as  the 
heavens,  in  which  new  stars  are  being  perpetually  dis- 
covered. 

*  SCHMARSOW,  Pinturicchio  in  Rome,  85-86,  further  remarks  : 
"The  decision  of  JuHus  II.  corresponded  with  the  law  of  historical 
development  and  the  subsequent  verdict  of  history."  On  the  relations 
between  Julius  II.  and  Raphael,  Perate,  552,  justly  says  :  II  le 
conquit  k  son  oeuvre,  il  I'inspira  et  Fon  peut  meme  dire  qu'il  le  trans - 
forma,  le  grandissant  et  I'echauffant  a  la  flamme  de  son  propre  genie. 

t  On  this  damaged  condition,  see  Plattner,  II.,  i,  318  seq.  Taine, 
Voyage  en  Italie,  I.,  170  seq.^  speaks  in  the  strongest  terms  of  the 
disappointment  with  which  he  beheld  the  frescoes  when  he  saw  them 
for  the  first  time  in  their  present  state.  On  the  other  hand,  Sz^CSEN, 
Raffael,  557,  says  :  Their  sad  condition  leads  one  doubly  to  appreciate 
the  intellectual  grandeur  of  Raphael's  Vatican  frescoes. 

J  On  the  explanatory  literature,  see  infra.  My  description,  for 
which  I  have  consulted  especially  Plattner,  II.,  i,  222  seq.  ;  Pas- 
SAVANT,  I.,  139  seq.\  LiJBKE,  Ital.  Malerei,  II.,  260  seq.;  SPRINGER, 
150  seq.^  and  BOLE's  Studies,  was  drawn  up  before  the  pictures  them- 
selves, and  again  compared  with  them  in  the  Spring  of  1893. 


THE   CAMERA   DELLA   SEGNATURA.  545 

In  the  four  principal  divisions  of  the  stuccoed  ceiling, 
which  is  decorated  in  the  classical  style,  Raphael  painted 
four  female  allegorical  figures  in  large  circular  frames,  with 
descriptive  inscriptions,  supplying  the  clue  to  the  meaning 
of  the  series  of  pictures  below.  These  majestic  forms, 
enthroned  on  clouds,  are  painted  in  vivid  colours,  toned 
down  by  a  background  of  shimmering  gold,  representing 
mosaic  work. 

The  science  of  faith.  Theology,  comprehends  the  know- 
ledge of  divine  things  (divinarum  rerum  notitia),  as  the 
inscription,  borne  by  angels,  announces.  The  figure  of 
Theology  seems  to  have  been  suggested  by  Dante's 
Beatrice,*  the  expression  of  the  face  is  sweetly  serious, 
gentle,  and  yet  full  of  dignity.  The  olive  crown  on  the 
head  denotes  divine  wisdom,  the  floating  veil  is  white,  the 
mantle  green,  the  robe  red  —  the  colours  of  the  three 
theological  virtues.  Faith,  Hope,  and  Charity.  The  two 
principal  sources  of  the  science  of  Theology  are  Tradi- 
tion and  Holy  Scripture,  She  holds  the  sacred  volume 
in  her  left  hand,  and  points  with  the  other  to  the  large 
picture  on  the  wall  in  which  those  to  whom  Tradition 
and  knowledge  have  been  committed  are  represented 
assembled  round  the  Supreme  Mystery  and  Centre  of 
Christian  worship. 

The  representation  of  Poetry  is  even  finer.  Sweetness,, 
sensibility,  and  enthusiasm  are  exquisitely  combined  in 
the  expression  of  the  whole  figure.  In  her  right  hand  she 
holds  a  book,  in  her  left  a  lyre ;  her  laurel  crown  indicates 
the  fame  that  waits  upon  art ;  her  strong  wings,  her  scarf 
strewn  with  stars,  her  azure  drapery,  the  thrill  of  emotion 
which  pervades  her  whole  form,  denote  the  imaginative 
faculty.     The  inspired  eyes  baffle  description  ;  altogether 

*  Dante,  Purgatorio,  XXX.,  31  seq.^  67  seq. ;  cf.  Plattner,    IL, 
I,  323. 

VOL.  VI.  •  2  N 


546  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

as  the  scroll  carried  by  the  cherubs  who  attend  upon  her 
declares,  the  divine  afflatus  is  the  breath  of  her  being.* 

The  next  figure,  Philosophy,  is  treated  classically  and 
with  a  good  deal  of  symbolism.  The  side  of  the  marble 
seat  on  which  she  is  enthroned  bears  a  relief  of  Diana  of 
Ephesus,  copied  from  an  antique  model.  Her  robes  repre- 
sent the  four  elements,  Air  in  the  upper  garment,  which  is 
blue  and  sown  with  stars,  the  drapery,  symbolising  Fire,  is 
red  and  embroidered  with  salamanders,  while  Water  and 
Earth  are  represented,  respectively,  by  fishes  and  plants  on 
a  sea-green  and  an  ochre-brown  background.  The  clasp  of 
the  diadem  which  encircles  her  brow  is  a  carbuncle.  She 
holds  two  large  books  in  her  hands,  the  one  entitled 
"  Moralis,"  the  other  "  Naturalis,"  moral  and  natural  science, 
while  the  winged  genii  on  either  side  carry  tablets  with  the 
inscription,  "  causarum  cognitio,"  "  knowledge  of  causes." 

The  fourth  figure  wears  a  crown :  her  sword  and  scales 
and  the  winged  boy  holding  a  scroll  with  the  inscription 
"Jus  suum  unicuique  tribuit,"  giving  to  each  his  due,  leave 
no  doubt  as  to  whom  she  is  intended  to  represent.  She 
has  four  attendants,  two  of  whom  are  angels. 

In  the  long  pendentives  of  the  vaulting,  Raphael  painted 
four  smaller  pictures  encircled,  like  the  large  ones,  with 
richly  decorated  ornamental  frames.  In  the  one  adjoining 
Theology,  the  Fall  is  represented ;  it  is  perhaps  the  most 
beautiful  of  all  existing  presentations  of  this  scene.!  Next 
to  Poesy  is  the  crowning  of  Apollo  and  the  flaying  of 
Marsyas ;  the  judgment  of  Solomon  illustrates  Justice.  In 
these  three  pictures  narrative  takes  the  place  of  symbolism, 
but  in  the  one  which  accompanies  Philosophy,  Raphael 
reverts  to  allegory.     It  is  a  female  figure  waited  on  by  two 

*  Afflata  est  numine.     ^neid,  VI.,  50. 

t  KUGLER-BURCKHARDT,  II.,  580.  Cf.  also  BuTTNER,  Adam  und 
Eva  in  der  bildenden  Kunst,  60. 


ALLEGORICAL   SUBJECTS.  547 

genii  carrying  books  ;  she  is  bending  over  a  globe  poised  in 
the  midst  of  a  starry  sphere,  to  which  she  points  with  one 
hand.* 

The  paintings  on  the  ceilings,  being  more  out  of  reach  oi 
injury  than  the  wall  frescoes,  are  in  better  preservation  ; 
the  two  series  are  closely  connected  with  each  other  ;  those 
on  the  walls  representing  the  four  great  intellectual  powers 
as  they  act  upon  human  life.  Theology,  unveiling  the 
mysteries  of  revelation,  and  interpreting  the  miracles  of 
faith ;  Philosophy,  searching  out  the  causes  and  natures  of 
things  by  the  light  of  reason  ;  Poesy,  decking  life  with 
grace  and  beauty ;  Jurisprudence,  maintaining  social  order 
and  security.  Nothing  can  be  more  perfect  than  is  the 
artistic  presentation  of  this  majestic  cycle  of  the  intellectual 
forces  in  their  graduated  order,  with  Theology  at  the  head. 

For  the  picture  in  illustration  of  Justice,  Raphael  chose 
one  of  the  smaller  wall  spaces,  cut  up  and  curtailed  by  the 
large  window  in  the  middle  of  it ;  it  is  the  simplest  of  all. 
In  the  semi-circle  over  the  window  the  three  cardinal 
virtues,  Fortitude,  Prudence,  and  Temperance,  the  in- 
separable companions  of  Justice,  are  allegorically  repre- 
sented by  a  charming  group  of  three  female  figures.  "  The 
skilful  arrangement  of  the  lines  in  this  composition,  the 
variety  in  the  forms,  the  unconstrained  grace  of  the  attitudes, 

*  The  Dusseldorf  Professor  Mosler  (see  Passavant,  I.,  139  seq.) 
considers  that  these  pictures  have  a  double  connection  with  the  allegori- 
cal figures,  and  refer  to  those  on  both  sides  of  them.  The  face,  placed 
between  Theology  and  Jurisprudence,  denotes  both  Redemption  and 
Judgment.  The  punishment  of  Marsyas  is  at  once  the  triumph  of  Art, 
and,  with  an  allusion  to  Dante  (Parad.,  I.,  19),  a  symbol  of  regenera- 
tion. The  figure  contemplating  the  globe  is  suggestive  of  Poetry,  as  well 
as  of  Philosophy  ;  the  judgment  of  Solomon  displays  Wisdom  as  well  as 
Justice.  KUGLER-BURCKHARDT,  II.,  580 segr.,  also  adopt  this  interpreta- 
tion, but  it  appears  somewhat  far-fetched.  Cf.  FoRSTER,  Raphael,  I., 
288. 


54^  HISTORY   OF   THE    POPES, 

are  an  inexhaustible  source  of  delight."*  The  pictures  on 
the  two  sides  of  the  window  portray  the  institution  of  Law 
in  the  State  and  in  the  Church,  respectively.  On  the  smaller 
left  side,  the  Emperor  Justinian,  seated  on  an  antique  chair, 
hands  his  Pandects  to  Trebonius,  who  is  humbly  kneeling 
before  him.  On  the  right  of  the  window,  Gregory  IX., 
whose  features  are  those  of  Julius  II.,  gives  the  Decretals 
to  the  Advocate  of  the  Consistory,  who  also  kneels  to 
receive  them.-|-  No  doubt  the  giving  of  the  Decretals  was 
intentionally  placed  in  the  ample  space  and  treated  with 
greater  fulness  to  shew  that  the  law  of  the  Church  ranks 
higher  than  secular  laws.  These  compositions  contain  a 
number  of  admirably  characteristic  heads.J 

The  glories  of  Poesy  are  depicted  on  the  opposite  wall, 
also  broken  by  a  window  looking  into  the  Cortile  di  Belve- 
dere. §      Raphael  here  decided  on   painting  a  continuous 

*   LiJBKE,  II.,  274. 

t  WiCKHOFF,  50,  points  out  that  Raphael  takes  pains  to  make  his 
meaning  clear  by  representing  both  ceremonies  exactly  as  they  were 
usually  described  in  the  introductions  to  the  law  books  in  general  use. 

X  In  the  Cardinals  surrounding  Julius  II.,  Vasari,  IV.,  337,  sees 
Giovanni  de'  Medici,  A.  Farnese,  and  Antonio  di  Monte  ;  but  the  truth 
of  this  is  very  doubtful.  The  fact  that  the  two  first-named  became 
Popes  makes  it  much  more  likely  that  it  was  an  after-thought. 

§  In  spite  of  its  great  beauty  (cf.  Gruyer,  Chambres,  125  seg'.),  this 
fresco  in  recent  times  has  been  much  less  spoken  of  than  the  School  of 
Athens  or  the  Disputa.  Thus  J.  Schrott  has  supplied  a  real  want  in 
devoting  a  separate  article  in  the  AUg.  Zeit.  (1884),  N.  10,  Suppl.,  to  its 
description,  of  which  I  have  availed  myself  in  the  text.  He  defends 
Raphael's  representation  of  Apollo  against  "  one-sided  art  critics,"  and 
in  common  with  Passavant,  I.,  146  ;  III.,  13  ;  and  ForSTER,  Raphael, 
1.,  290  seg'.,  endeavours  to  explain  all  the  twenty-eight  figures  in  the 
picture  ;  but  still  remains  uncertain  in  regard  to  twelve  of  them.  WlCK- 
HOFF,  51  seg.,  has  excellently  pointed  out  the  objections  to  these  attempts 
to  explain  all  Raphael's  figures.     On  the  figure  of  Dante,  see  RiO,  IV., 


REPRESENTATION   OF  POESY.  549 

picture,  and  ingeniously  overcame  the  difficulty  presented 
by  the  window,  by  making  its  circular  top  support  the 
summit  of  Parnassus  from  which  the  sides  of  the  mountain 
naturally  sloped  downwards.  On  the  height,  the  youthful 
Apollo  sits  enthroned  in  a  bower  of  laurels,  surrounded 
with  flowers,  while  the  Hippocrene  fountain  wells  up  from 
beneath  his  feet. 

A  mere  copyist  of  the  antique  would  have  put  a  lyre 
into  Apollo's  hands.  But  this  was  not  Raphael's  mind,  and 
he  has  chosen  the  instrument  most  in  use  in  his  day,  the 
viola  di  braccio  (alto),  which  allows  a  freer  motion  to  the 
hand,  and,  at  the  same  time,  was  better  understood  by  his 
contemporaries.*  The  muses  which  are  grouped  around 
Apollo  also  depart  in  many  ways  from  strictly  classical 
models,  though  they  are  singularly  charming  and  graceful. 
Immediately  below  them  come  the  great  poets  crowned 
with  laurel ;  on  the  left  of  the  God,  Homer,  "  the  king  of 
noble  singers,  soaring  like  an  eagle  above  all  his  compeers," 
stands  in  a  blue  mantle,  his  head  a  little  thrown  back  after 
the  manner  of  blind  people,  his  face  glowing  with  poetic 
inspiration,  as  he  dictates  his  verses,  which  a  youth  at  his 
side  is  transcribing.  Behind  him  is  Dante,  absorbed  in 
introspective  thought,  while  Virgil  is  trying  to  draw  his 
attention  to  Apollo's  playing.  The  poetess  Sappho  desig- 
nated by  an  inscription  on  the  half-open  roll  which  she 
holds  is  also  in  a  prominent  place  on  the  left.     An  aged 

*  Raphael  has  often  been  blamed  for  this  as  an  ignorant  anachronism. 
They  have  not  observed  that  the  figure  of  Poesy  on  the  ceiling,  the 
Muses  in  Parnassus,  finally  Apollo  himself  in  the  School  of  Athens,  and 
the  punishment  of  Marsyas,  are  all  represented  with  the  lyre.  Other 
painters  of  the  same  period,  e.g.,  Pinturicchio  and  Spagna,  introduced  the 
violin  instead  of  the  lyre.  See  MuNTZ,  Raphael,  353-54,  ed.  2.  It  is 
therefore  quite  unnecessary  to  suppose  with  Plattner  and  Passavant  that 
Raphael  wished  to  pay  a  compliment  to  the  celebrated  violinist,  Giacomo 
Sansecondo  {cf.  Cian,  Cortegiano,  138,  181). 


550  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

poet  on  the  other  side,  opposite  to  her,  to  whom  three 
others  are  Hstening  admiringly,  is  supposed  to  be  Pindar, 
The  two  sitting  figures  in  the  foreground  are  "  admirably 
arranged  in  connection  with  the  architectural  lines,  so  as  to 
make  these  latter  appear  rather  to  sustain  and  give  effect  to 
the  fresco  than  to  cramp  it.  On  the  other  side  the  painted 
setting  of  the  window  is  utilised  as  a  support  for  Sappho's 
arm,  who  leans  against  it."  * 

This  fresco  has  been  called  the  most  perfect  specimen 
of  a  genre  painting  that  has  ever  been  produced.-f  The 
spirit  of  music  pervades  the  whole  composition  ;  one  seems 
actually  to  hear  the  music  of  Apollo  and  the  song  of 
Homer,  and  to  share  with  the  delighted  listeners  the  spell 
of  sound  which  unites  them  all  in  one  common  sense  of 
perfect  content. 

The  next  subject,  which  fills  one  of  the  long  side-walls 
under  the  name  of  the  School  of  Athens,  is  of  quite  a 
different  character  from  that  of  the  blissful  company  of 
poets  assembled  on  Mount  Parnassus,|  The  predominant 
tone  of  feeling  which  reigns  throughout  this  imposing 
gathering  of  so  many  various  schools  and  masters  is  that 
of  deep  seriousness,  laborious  and  indefatigable  research. 
The  scene  also  is  very  different ;  instead  of  the  laurel-shaded 
flowery  mount  of  the  gods,  we  have  a  majestic  fane,  with  a 
nave  and  transept  surmounted  by  a  cupola  and  approached 
by  a  broad  flight  of  steps.     This  temple  is  dedicated  to 

*  Springer,  I.,  232,  ed.  2. 

t  SCHROTT,  see  the  Essay  quoted,  supra,  p.  548,  note  §. 

X  On  this  contrast,  cf.  MuNTZ,  Raphael,  351  seg.,  ed.  2.  The  name, 
School  of  Athens,  was  first  applied  to  this  picture  by  the  Marquis  de 
Seignelay,  in  his  account  of  his  travels  in  the  year  1671  :  see  Gaz.  des 
Beaux  Arts,  XIII.,  365.  Cf.  Springer,  Schule  von  Athen,  V.,  80.  I  have 
used  this  treatise  together  with  Milliner's  for  the  description  given  in  the 
text ;  it  is  the  best  of  everything  that  has  been  written  on  this  celebrated 
fresco.     For  further  literature,  see  infra. 


THE   SCHOOL   OF   ATHENS.  55 1 

Minerva  and  Apollo,  whose  statues  adorn  the  facade,  in 
front  of  which  a  raised  platform  in  the  middle  distance  runs 
slantwise  across  the  whole  picture. 

In  the  conception  of  this  building,  and  also  in  the  arrange- 
ment of  some  of  the  groups,  we  seem  to  trace  a  remi- 
niscence of  one  of  Ghiberti's  reliefs  in  the  Baptistery  at 
Florence.*  Down  the  .long  nave  attended  by  a  double 
band  of  disciples,  the  two  princes  of  the  philosophers,  Plato 
and  Aristotle,  are  slowly  moving  towards  the  top  of  the 
steps,  on  one  of  which  the  cynic  Diogenes  lazily  reclines  by 
himself  Aristotle  is  represented  as  a  man  in  the  prime  of 
life.  He  wears  an  olive-green  robe  and  grey-blue  mantle 
and  holds  his  Ethics  in  his  hand.  Plato  is  a  venerable  old 
man  with  a  large  and  lofty  brow  and  ample  white  beard  ; 
his  robe  is  of  a  greyish-violet  and  his  mantle  red  ;  he  holds 
a  book  in  his  hand  on  the  back  of  which  Timeo  is  written. 
They  are  occupied  in  expounding  their  respective  philo- 
sophies; Aristotle  is  pointing  to  the  earth,  Plato  to  the 
heavens.f  On  the  right  of  these  two  prominent  central 
groups  are  several  singularly  beautiful  isolated  figures ; 
one  a  youth  writing  diligently,  another  an  older  scholar 
deep  in  thought,  again  close  to  the  edge  of  the  picture  an 
old  man  leaning  on  a  staff,  just  entering,  with  a  youth 
hurrying  after  him. 

On  the  left  of  the  centre  Socrates  stands  with  a  knot  of 
listeners  surrounding  him  (Dialecticians).  He  is  number- 
ing his  propositions  on  his  fingers  and  developing  the  con- 
sequences. Opposite  to  him  is  a  handsome  youth  in  full 
armour  with  a  golden  helmet,  supposed  to  be  Alcibiades.]: 

*  Ghiberti's  relief  represents  the  Queen  of  Saba's  visit  to  Solomon. 
WiCKHOFF,  52,  was  the  first  to  call  attention  to  its  influence  on  this 
composition  of  Raphael. 

+  Springer,  Schule  von  Athen,  98. 

%  In  opposition  to  the  prevalent  view,  Mullner,  168,  considers  the 


552  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

His  features  are  copied  from  an  antique  gem  still  to  be  seen 
in  Florence.  A  man  by  his  side  is  eagerly  beckoning  to 
three  others  to  join  him.  The  foremost  of  these  seems  ex- 
plaining why  he  is  not  so  eager  as  his  companions  to  obey 
the  call ;  in  front  of  him  a  youth  with  an  armful  of  books 
rushes  by  in  such  haste  that  his  golden-brown  mantle  is 
slipping  from  his  shoulders :  the  connection  between  the 
group  and  the  foreground  is  sustained  by  a  number  of 
persons  assembled  round  the  base  of  a  pillar  against  which 
a  youth  is  leaning  turning  over  the  leaves  of  a  book.  In 
the  foreground  to  the  right,  not  far  from  the  grammarians, 
is  an  admirably  composed  group  representing  the  arithme- 
ticians and  musicians.  An  old  man  (Pythagoras),  support- 
ing himself  on  one  knee,  is  writing  diligently,  while  on  his 
left  a  boy  is  holding  a  tablet  on  which  the  numbers  and 
symbols  of  the  Pythagorean  doctrine  of  harmonies  are 
inscribed.*  An  Asiatic  and  an  aged  man  with  an  inkstand 
and  pen  are  standing  t  behind  and  at  the  side  of  the 
philosopher,  looking  into  his  book  over  his  shoulder.  To 
the  right  of  this  concentrated  circle  stands  a  young  man  in 
a  long  white  garment  embroidered  with  gold,  identified,  by 
a  not  very  trustworthy  tradition,  as  Duke  Francesco  Maria 
della  Rovere  of  Urbino.  Before  him  appears  a  man  in  the 
prime  of  life,  one  of  the  most  striking  personalities  ever 
painted  by  Raphael,  eagerly  expounding  his  discoveries  and 
views  out  of  a  book.J     The  last  figure  on  this  side  is  in 

figure  to  represent  Xenophon,  an  opinion  which  Scherer  had  already 
held  in  his  essay,  quoted  in  the  following  note. 

*  Cf.  Scherer  in  the  Oesterreich.,  Wochenschrift,  II.  (1872),  37  ; 
Hettner,  198  seq. 

t  Perhaps  Boethius.  MiJLLNER,  164,  thinks  the  Asiatic  philosopher  to 
be  Averroes,  who  was  considered  by  the  Christian  votaries  of  the  Renais- 
sance to  be  an  "  unbeliever."  This  view  adds  an  ideal  contrast  to  the 
artistic  one. 

J  Springf:r  1 ,  247,  ed.  2.     The  name  of  this  philosopher  has  been 


THE   GROUPING   OF   THE   SCHOOL  OF   ATHENS.      553 

strong  contrast  with  him,  a  philosopher  sitting  motionless 
on  the  lowest  step,  absorbed  in  thought,  with  pen  in  hand 
preparing  to  write.* 

The  group  of  geometricians  and  astrologers  in  the  fore- 
ground on  the  right  side  is  perhaps  as  perfect  a  repre- 
sentation of  the  processes  of  thought  and  research,  reading 
and  learning,  listening  and  apprehending,  as  Raphael  has 
ever  produced.  The  mathematician  (at  one  time  thought 
to  be  Archimedes,  but  now  rightly  held  to  be  Euclid)-]-  is  a 
portrait  of  Bramante ;  he  is  bending  low  with  a  circle  in 
his  hand,  over  a  mathematical  figure  which  he  is  explaining. 
There  is  hardly  any  group  in  the  whole  fresco  which  is 
more  dramatic  and  artistic  than  that  of  the  four  fair-haired 
youths  who  surround  this  teacher.  The  foremost  kneels, 
and  with  the  fingers  of  one  hand  follows  the  lines  of  the 
drawing  which  he  is  trying  to  understand.  The  second 
youth  shews  in  his  eyes  and  by  the  movement  of  his  hand 
that  light  is  beginning  to  dawn  on  him.  The  third  has 
mastered  the  problem  so  that  he  can  now  interpret  it  to 
the  fourth,  whose  face  beams  with  the  joy  of  apprehension. 
"  The  psychological  process  by  which  the  mind  passes  from 
the  external  sign  to  its  meaning  and  thence  to  the  internal 
cognition  of  the  object,  has  never  elsewhere  been  so  truth- 
fully and  vividly  portrayed.''^ 

the  subject  of  much  controversy.  Recently  MuLLNER,  165  seq.,  has 
endeavoured  to  prove  that  this  figure  is  Parmenides. 

*  The  original  cartoon  for  the  School  of  Athens  in  the  Ambrosian 
Library  at  Milan  shews  that  the  figure  was  put  in  later  to  fill  up  the  too 
large  space  on  the  step.  Passavant,  Lubke,  Bole,  13,  and  Mullner, 
166,  believe  this  thinker  to  be  Heraclitus  the  Obscure. 

t  Passavant,  I.,  159,  conjectures  that  the  tradition  that  Archimedes 
is  represented  here,  which  is  not  mentioned  by  Vasari,  first  arose  in 
the  time  of  Paul  IIL  from  Perino  del  Vaga's  painting  of  the  murder  of 
Archimedes,  then  executed  on  the  frieze. 

\  Springer,  L,  245,  ed.  2.    Cf.  Forster,  L,  305.    Vasari  says  that 


554  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Adjoining  this  group  is  a  King  (Ptolemy)  with  a  terres- 
trial globe  in  his  hands  and  another  figure  (Zoroaster)  with 
his  head  encircled  by  a  gold  band  and  carrying  a  celestial 
globe.*  At  the  edge  of  the  fresco,  by  the  side  of  the 
votaries  of  the  sciences  of  the  earth  and  heavens,  Raphael 
has  introduced  a  likeness  of  himself,  and  one  of  his  fellow- 
artist,  Sodoma.-j- 

A  connecting  link  between  all  these  groups  and  the 
central  one  is  formed  by  two  men,  the  older  of  whom  is 
coming  down  from  the  platform,  while  the  younger  is 
mounting  the  steps  towards  the  two  greatest  teachers. 

Beautiful  and  interesting  as  each  one  of  the  numerous 
separate  groups  which  make  up  the  picture  is  in  itself,  none 
can  withdraw  our  attention  for  any  length  of  time  from  the 
splendid  figures  of  Plato  and  Aristotle  which  dominate  the 
whole  composition.  The  eye  involuntarily  and  constantly 
turns  back  again  to  gaze  on  the  two  great  masters,  the 
undisputed  princes  of  the  whole  Academy.  A  flood  of 
light  from  the  dome  above  bathes  them  in  its  radiance,  a 
symbol  of  the  heavenly  illumination  which  was  the  object 
of  all  their  toil  and  its  well-merited  reward.^ 

the  second  youth  is  Federigo  Gonzaga,  whose   portrait  Raphael  had 
also   painted  by  itself  for   Isabella   d'Este.      See  Luzio,  F.  Gonzaga, 

43  s^q- 

*  According  to  Vasari,  Zoroaster  is  a  portrait  of  Bald.  Castiglione. 

t  The  earlier  explanation  of  this  man  as  Perugino  is  certainly  in- 
correct, as  a  glance  at  Perugino's  likeness  painted  by  himself  in  the 
CaiTibio  in  Perugia  is  enough  to  prove.  Lermolieff,  Die  Werke 
Italienischer  Meister  in  den  Galerien  von  Miinchen,  Dresden,  und 
Berlin  (i88o),  p.  472,  thinks  Sodoma  more  hkely.  This  interpretation 
is  not  without  its  difficulties  also  (see  Springer,  Schule  von  Athen,  97), 
but  it  seems  the  most  probable.  Cf.  K.  Brun,  in  the  Gott.  Gel.  Anz. 
(1882),  I.,  542  seq. 

\  MuLLNER,  176.  Here  also  is  an  excellent  appreciation  of  Louis 
Jacoby's  admirable  engraving,  the  appearance  of  which  in  1883  con- 
stitutes an  era  in  the  history  of  copper-plate  printing  in  modern  times. 


INTERPRETATION    OF    THE   FRESCO.  555 

Perhaps  no  other  work  of  art  in  existence  has  called  forth 
so  many  various  and  conflicting  interpretations  as  has  the 
School  of  Athens.  There  are  almost  as  many  opinions  as 
there  are  figures  in  the  picture  in  which  the  artist  strove 
to  depict  both  the  loftiest  aspirations  and  the  multiform 
vagaries  of  the  human  mind.  Critics  tried  to  put  a 
name  to  each,  and  lost  themselves  in  futile  individu- 
alisations.  The  only  way  to  arrive  at  a  satisfactory 
solution  is  to  look  at  the  composition  as  a  whole,  and  in 
the  light  of  the  general  point  of  view  of  the  time.  If  this 
is  done  the  fundamental  idea  becomes  clear  at  once. 
Raphael  intended  to  portray  the  efforts  of  the  human 
mind  to  discover  and  scientifically  apprehend  its  own 
highest  object  and  final  cause  by  the  light  of  reason.*     The 

Cf.  Graphische  Kiinste,  V.,  \o/\seq.     The  fresco  itself  has  been  so  much 
damaged  that  Jacoby  had  to  go  back  to  the  original  sketches. 

*  See  MuLLNER,  158,  and  Bole,  Rafael's  Wandgemalde  die  Philo- 
sophie,  2,  and  VON  Liliencron  in  the  AUg.  Zeit.  (1883),  N,  309-310, 
Suppl.,  ^vho  in  the  main  agree  with  Miillner.  The  engraving  of  G. 
Ghisi,  executed  in  1550,  had  spread  abroad  the  mistaken  notion  that 
the  fresco  represented  the  preaching  of  S.  Paul  at  Athens.  As  early 
as  the  year  1695  this  interpretation  which  fell  in  with  the  tendency 
of  the  Catholic  restoration  of  that  day,  and  had  been  hinted  by  Vasari, 
was  proved  by  Bellori  to  be  untenable.  Nevertheless  H.  Grimm, 
in  1864,  took  it  up  and  defended  it  strenuously  in  his  Fiinfzehn 
Essays,  3  Folge,  p.  61  seq.  (Berlin,  1882),  and  in  his  Leben  Raphaels, 
287  seq.,  ed.  2  (Berlin,  1886);  but  he  has  found  very  few  supporters 
(as  far  as  I  know  WOLZOGEN,  59  seq.,  is  the  only  one).  The  best 
scholars  have  all  pronounced  against  this  view.  See  Woltmann,  II., 
643,  794  ;  MiNGHETTi,  Raffaello,  114  :  also,  more  recently,  Koopman 
in  Liitzow's  Zeitschrift,  XXL,  266  seq.,  and  especially  Kraus,  Camera 
della  Segnatura,  25  seq.  Kraus  has  so  completely  refuted  Grimm 
that  his  hypothesis  may  be  considered  dead.  Up  to  the  present 
day  competent  critics  continue  completely  at  variance  with  each 
other,  both  as  to  the  identification  of  many  of  the  figures,  and  the 
sources  from  which  Raphael  derived  his  knowledge  of  ancient  philo- 
sophies.    For  a  long  time  the  names  given  by  Vasari  and  Bellori  were 


556  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

purpose  of  the  painter  in  this  monumental  work  was  to 
celebrate  the  praise  of  Philosophy  in  the  language  of  Art 

not  disputed.  Passavant  started  the  hypothesis  that  the  matter  for  the 
School  of  Athens  was  taken  from  Diogenes  of  Laertes,  and  that  the 
fresco  represented  the  historical  development  of  Greek  philosophy.  He 
found  names  for  all  the  figures,  fifty  in  number.  See  Passavant,  I., 
148  seq. ;  H.,  102  seq. ;  III.,  13  seq. ;  TRENDELENBURG,  Die  Schule  von 
Athen  (Berlin,  1843),  ^''^-s  corrected  some  of  these  names,  and  rejects  the 
chronology.  The  doubtfulness  of  the  nomenclature  is  shewn  by  the  fact 
that  WatkiSS  Lloyd,  Fine  Arts  Quarterly  Review,  II.,  42  seq.  (London, 
1 864),  though  thinking  with  Passavant  that  the  main  idea  of  the  picture  is 
derived  from  Diogenes,  substitutes  quite  different  names  for  the  various 
persons.  Forster,  Raphael,  I.,  290,  thinks  the  treatment  of  the  subject 
was  suggested  by  Petrarch's  Triumph  of  Fame.  Grimm  and  Scherer 
(see  supr-a,  p.  554)  trace  the  influence  of  Sidonius  Apollinaris,  and  the 
latter  in  1872  also  mentioned  MarsiUo  Ficino.  Ficino  is  also  frequently 
referred  to  by  Hettner,  195  seq.,  and  SPRINGER,  Schule  von  Athen, 
94  seq.  Hettner's  observations  are  so  full  of  theological  and  philo- 
sophical blunders  that  they  have  done  little  towards  elucidating  the 
subject.  On  the  other  hand,  Springer's  explanation  contains  a  good 
resume  of  older  opinions  (Kraus,  loc.  cit.,  12  seq. ),BXidi  is  worth  noticing, 
though  he  has  not  got  hold  of  the  kernel  of  the  matter.  He  has 
rendered  specially  good  service  by  the  long  list  of  contradictory  names 
which  he  gives  to  shew  the  absurdity  of  the  attempts  at  identifying  each 
figure.  (Gruyer,  86,  had  already  protested  against  that.)  He 
observes,  p.  88,  "  It  is  quite  clear  that  all  these  names  have  been  read 
into  the  picture,  and  not  gathered  from  it.  For  the  identification  of 
most  of  the  figures  the  artist  gives  no  clue  whatever.  Where  he  intends  to 
represent  any  particular  person  he  makes  his  meaning  quite  clear  ;  thus, 
besides  the  two  principal  figures,  Socrates  and  Diogenes  are  quite 
unmistakeable.  He  intended  to  indicate  some  of  the  Sages  of  Antiquity, 
and  there  is  no  doubt  about  them  ;  but  an  unbiassed  eye  can  detect  no 
trace  of  anything  like  a  connected  representation  of  the  course  of  Greek 
philosophy."  Springer  points  out  that  all  modern  interpretations  are 
unsatisfactory,  because  they  proceed  on  the  assumption  that  the  picture, 
which  really  is  a  monumental  creation,  is  an  illustration  of  a  theme  only 
known  in  all  its  detail  to  the  author,  and  to  every  one  else  a  riddle 
capable  of  only  partial  solution.  Springer's  view  is  that  Raphael  aimed 
at  giving  expression  to  the  general  ideas  and  feelings  prevailing  among 


THE   PURPOSE   OF   RAPHAEL.  557 

and  from  the  points  of  view  of  his  own  age.  It  is  possible, 
and  most  probable,  that  he  discussed  the  subject  with  his 

his  contemporaries  in  regard  to  the  value  and  significance  of  science  and 
learning.  The  best  account  of  theni  is,  he  thinks,  to  be  found  in  the 
works  of  Marsilio  Ficino  and  Sadolet,  and  he  looks  upon  the  composi- 
tion as  an  embodiment  of  their  views.  "  With  them  Raphael  looked 
upon  the  place  in  which  the  sages  of  the  world  assembled  as  a  sacred 
edifice  ;  for  him,  as  for  them,  iall  philosophical  knowledge  was  built  up 
from  the  foundation  of  the  seven  liberal  arts,  and  Plato  and  Aristotle 
were  the  two  princes  of  the  whole  company  of  the  wise.  In  the  School  of 
Athens  the  representation  of  the  liberal  arts  is  the  warp,  and  the  ideali- 
sation of  the  Greek  philosophers  the  woof  of  the  composition"  (p.  98). 
RiCHTER  (Schule  von  Athen.  Heidelberg,  1882),  had  already  shewn 
that  the  scheme  of  the  School  of  Athens  was  founded  on  the  seven 
liberal  arts,  and  Liliencron,  Bole,  and  Miillner  supported  this  view.  Bole 
and  Miillner  think  that  the  picture  is  also  meant  to  be  a  historical  repre- 
sentation of  ancient  philosophy,  and  they  renew  the  attempt  to  find 
suitable  names  for  the  separate  figures.  Miillner  holds  out  hopes  of  a 
forthcoming  treatise  further  developing  his  views  and  the  arguments  on 
which  they  are  founded,  which  would  be  very  welcome.  Crowe-Caval- 
caselle  have  contributed  nothing  new.  Miintz  agrees  in  the  main  with 
Springer,  as  also  Kraus  in  many  points.  According  to  the  latter,  the 
connecting  link  between  the  School  of  Athens  and  the  other  frescoes  is  to 
be  found  in  the  words  of  Pico  della  Mirandola  :  Philosophia  veritatem 
quaerit,  theologia  invenit,  religio  possidet.  Kraus  lays  great  stress  on 
the  influence  of  Marsilio  Ficino.  He  goes  so  far  as  to  say  :  fe  forse 
ancora  piii  preciso  il  dire  che  1'  intero  concetto,  1'  intera  Camera  della 
Segnatura  si  trova  g'lk  in  Marsilio.  Wickhofif,  on  the  other  hand, 
sharply  contests  this.  "  The  history  of  Greek  philosophy  is  supposed  to 
be  represented  by  the  position  and  grouping  of  the  figures  ;  but  who  at 
that  time  cared  for  the  history  of  Greek  philosophy  ?  The  temple  and 
the  steps  leading  up  to  it  are  said  to  have  been  suggested  by  an  obscui'e 
passage  in  Marsilio  Ficino,  a  philosophist  of  the  earlier  humanistic 
period.  But  in  those  days  who  read  Marsilio  ?  At  all  times  nothing  is 
so  antipathetic  to  the  taste  of  any  period  as  the  fashionable  writings  of 
the  beaux  esprits  of  the  preceding  generation.  In  the  architectural 
framework  of  the  picture  there  is  a  reminiscence  of  Florentine  art." 
(See  supra,  p.  551.)  Out  of  all  the  suggested  names  Wickhoff  only 
accepts  those  of  Plato,  Aristotle,  Ptolemy,  Socrates,  Boethius,  Euclid,  and 


558  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES, 

learned  friends,  especially  with  Sadolet,  and  that  he  was 
influenced  by  the  works  of  Marsilio  Ficino,  and  also  by 
Dante  and  Petrarch.  But,  essentially,  there  can  be  little 
doubt  that  his  ideas  of  the  significance  and  development 
of  ancient  philosophy  came  from  Urbino.  In  some 
particulars,  as  in  giving  the  highest  place  to  Plato,  he 
adopted  the  point  of  view  of  the  Renaissance,  but  in  the 
main  he  retained  the  mediaeval  conception.  In  this,  all 
knowledge  that  can  possibly  be  attained  by  the  human  in- 
tellect through  the  experience  of  the  senses  and  the  laws  of 
thought,  is  comprised  in  the  seven  liberal  arts  {artes 
liberales),  Grammar,  Rhetoric  and  Logic  (Dialectics)  the 
so-called  Trivimn ;  and  Music,  Arithmetic,  Geometry,  and 
Astronomy  —  the  Quadrivium.  Raphael's  composition  is 
entirely  founded  on  the  idea  of  Philosophy*  as  the  sum 
of  the  seven  liberal  arts. 

Plato  and  Aristotle  represent  the  highest  achievements 
of  the  human  intellect  in  its  efforts  to  understand  and 
know  the  substance  of  all  things ;  truth  came  to  them  in 
flashes  like  lightning  at  night  ;  but  although  these  in- 
tellectual athletes  accomplished  as  much  as  it  is  given  to 
the  natural  powers  of  man  to  work  out,  they  could  not 
obtain  to  the  full  possession  of  the  highest  truth.  On  one 
point  all  the  great  thinkers  of  antiquity,  and  even  Plato, 
the  philosopher  of  immortality,  were  at  fault ;  they  had  no 
true  conception  of  sin,  of  the  nature  and  origin  of  evil. 
Thus,  Greek  philosophy  was  powerless  to  heal  the  deadly 

Diogenes.  "  The  others,  what  Dante  calls  the  philosophic  family,  either 
have  no  names  or  are  exquisitely  artistic  personifications  of  the  various 
processes  of  teaching,  apprehending,  imparting,  etc."  (p.  52).  The 
writer  then  goes  on  to  expound  his  new  view  of  the  purpose  for  which 
the  Camera  della  Segnatura  was  destined,  which  we  shall  have  to 
mention  later,  connecting  it  with  these  remarks. 

*  See    Richter,    Springer,  Liliencron    and   Miillner,   st/prn,  p.    555, 
note  *  as  cjuoted. 


THEOLOGY   AND   PHILOSOPHY.  559 

wound  of  the  ancient  world.*  "  Philosophy,"  says  Vincent 
de  Beauvais  in  his  great  Encyclopaedia,  "  can  work  the  way 
up  to  a  natural  theology,  but  not  to  the  true  science  of 
theology.  That  could  only  come  from  revelation  in  the 
Bible  and,  through  its  interpreters,  the  great  theological 
teachers."-|-  This  distinction  between  the  realms  of  natural 
and  supernatural  theology  is  to  be  found  in  all  the  great 
Catholic  thinkers.  Thus  Dante  makes  Beatrice  say  that 
the  difference  between  human  knowledge  and  Divine  faith 
is  as  great  as  the  distance  between  heaven  and  earth.J 

Therefore,  Raphael  chose  the  highest  object  of  super- 
natural lore  for  the  subject  of  his  fresco  on  the  opposite 
wall  to  the  School  of  Athens,  which  represents  the  triumphs 
of  human  reason.  But  it  must  not  be  supposed  that  either 
the  immortal  masters  of  mediaeval  theology,  or  Dante,  the 
greatest  of  Christian  poets,  or  Raphael,  the  most  gifted  of 
Christian  artists,  were  conscious  of  any  opposition  between 
Theology  and  Philosophy. §  As  the  Church  grew  to  realise 
her  plenary  and  imperishable  possession  of  revealed  truth 
through  Christianity,  her  early  Fathers  and  Doctors  quickly 
understood  that  the  wisdom  of  the  Greeks  was  far  more 
her  heritage  than  that  of  the  heathen,  and  was  to  be  em- 
ployed in  the  service  and  thus  became  itself  purified  and 
elevated  to  a  far  higher  dignity.  The  scholastics  continued 
to  build  in  the  same  spirit  on  the  foundations  laid  by  the 
Fathers,  and  thus  that  system  of  Christian  and  Catholic 
science    grew    up,   of    which    S.    Thomas    Aquinas    and 

*  This  is  admirably  demonstrated  in  Dollinger'S  classical  work, 
Heidenthum  und  Judenthum,  266  seq.,  292  seq.,  60 r  seq.,  730  seq. 
Regensburg,  1857. 

t  Speculum  doctrinale,  II.,  c.  XIX.,  quoted  by  Liliencron,  loc.  cit.\ 
cf.  S.  Thomas  Aquinas,  Summa,  p.  i,  q.  i,  art.  2. 

X  Dante,  Purgat.,  xxxiii.,  87. 

§  In  regard  to  Dante,  see  Hettinger,  Die  Gottliche  Komodie,  100, 
ed.  2.     Freiburg,  1889. 


56o  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

S.  Bonaventure  are  the  noblest  representatives.  "  This 
science  was  Catholic  in  the  fullest  sense  of  the  word,  not 
only  because  it  was  moulded  on,  and  guided  by  Divine 
truth,  infallibly  preserved  and  interpreted  by  the  Church, 
but  because  it  gathered  to  itself  the  legitimate  and  stable 
conquests  of  research  in  all  ages,  because  it  was  common  to 
all  nations  in  communion  with  the  Church,  and  because  it 
aimed  at  the  union  of  all  truth,  natural  and  supernatural,  in 
one  perfect  science."* 

In  the  fourth  great  fresco,  Raphael  wisely  abstained  from 
attempting  to  depict  all  or  even  the  principal  mysteries  and 
miracles  unveiled  by  revelation  and  confined  himself  to  one, 
the  mystery  of  mysteries  and  supreme  miracle  of  all. 

The  name  "Disputa  del  Sacramento"  given  to  this  picture, 
"  which  affects  the  spectator  almost  like  a  heavenly  vision,"-f- 
and  was  Raphael's  first  great  work  in  Rome,  has  been 
rather  an  obstacle  than  a  help  to  the  understanding  of  its 
purport.]:  There  is  no  strife  or  disputation  here ;  on  the 
contrary  heaven  and  earth  unite  together  in  adoring  and 

*  I  have  taken  the  passage  from  the  admirable  address  on  the  past 
achievements  and  present  task  of  Catholic  Science  delivered  by  my 
friend,  Domdekan  Heinrich,  on  Whit  Tuesday,  1876,  at  Frankfort  a. 
M.,  at  the  first  general  meeting  of  the  Gorres  Society.  It  is  printed  in 
the  Annual  Report  of  the  Association  for  1876,  p.  12.     Koln,  1877. 

t  Crowe-Cavalcaselle,  II.,  29. 

I  MuNTZ,  Raphael,  330,  rightly  observes  :  En  Italien  le  mot  Disputa 
a  le  sens  de  discussion  aussi  bien  que  celui  de  contestation  ;  we  may  add 
that  the  original  sense  of  disputatio  in  ecclesiastical  terminology  is  also 
discursus.  Nevertheless,  the  name  is  unfortunate,  because  it  at  once 
suggests  the  idea  of  dispute  or  strife  to  any  non-Italian.  Hagen,  140 
seq.,  has  some  very  good  remarks  on  this  name.  From  a  technical  point 
of  view,  the  School  of  Athens  is  a  better  picture  than  the  Disputa,  which 
was  painted  earlier.  Cf.  Passavant,  I.,  163;  II.,  96;  see  also  Rio, 
IV.,  463-464,  466.  In  his  work,  Michel-Ange  et  Raphael,  133,  Rio 
agrees  with  F.  Schlegel,  in  considering  the  Disputa  as  the  greatest  of 
Raphael's  works. 


THE  DISPUTA  DEL  SACRAMENTO.  561 

praising  the  miracle  of  miracles,  the  supreme  pledge  of  His 
love  bestowed  on  man  by  the  Saviour  of  the  World.  The 
spectator  seems  to  hear  the  solemn  strains  of  the  Tantimi 
ergo  breathing  as  it  were  out  of  the  picture  itself* 

*  The  picture  has  nothing  Avhatever  to  do  with  any  sort  of  controversy 
in  regard  to  the  Blessed  Sacrament,  and  it  is  therefore  really  deplorable 
to  find  the  engraving  of  the  Disputa  in  Reber-Bayerdorffer's 
"  Classischer  Bilderschatz  "  entitled  :  "  Der  Wortwechsel — La  Disputa." 
It  cannot  be  determined  with  certainty  when  the  name  Disputa  first  came 
into  use.  I  find  it  employed  in  an  old  guide  of  the  year  1739.  (De- 
scrizione  di  Roma,  60  [Roma,  1739].)  The  word  is  to  be  found  in 
Vasari,  but  not  exactly  in  the  description  of  the  picture.  He  says  : 
"  Fece  in  un'  altra  parete  un  cielo  con  Cristo  e  la  Nostra  Donna,  S. 
Giovanni  Battista,  gli  Apostoli  e  gli  Evangelisti  e  Martiri  sulle  nuvole 
con  Dio  Padre  che  sopra  tutti  manda  lo  Spirito  Santo,  e  massimaniente 
sopra  un  numero  infinito  di  Santi  che  sotto  scrivono  la  messa  e  sopra 
r  ostia,  che  e  sull'  altare,  disputano."  The  rest  of  the  description  is  unin- 
teresting, like  all  Vasari's  it  is  taken  from  a  print.  In  the  passage  quoted, 
the  chief  emphasis  is  laid  on  the  outpouring  of  the  Holy  Spirit  on  the 
band  of  Saints.  What  was  said  about  the  writing  of  the  mass  was  over- 
looked; attention  was  concentrated  on  the  "  disputano  "  which  gradually 
lost  its  original  sense  of  "  interchange  of  opinions "  (demonstrating, 
drawing  inferences),  and  came  to  be  translated  as  "  contention."  The 
change  in  the  prevailing  taste  in  Art  which  soon  diverted  general  interest 
from  this  picture  is  probably  the  cause  which  led  to  its  true  meaning 
being  so  quickly  forgotten.  It  is  significant  of  this  change  that  the  Par- 
nassus should  be  the  only  picture  mentioned  by  JOVIUS  in  his  Life  of 
Raphael,  when  speaking  of  the  Camera  della  Segnatura.  Later  travellers 
(Aldroandi,  1562;  Schrader,  1592)  ignore  Raphael  entirely.  (MiJNTZ, 
Les  Historiens,  26.)  M.  DE  MONTAIGNE,  who  visited  Rome  in  the  reign 
of  Gregory  XIII.,  equally  does  not  mention  him  in  his  Journal  de  Voyage, 
nor  yet  Zeiller,  in  his  well-known  Travels  in  the  year  1640.  SCHOTT, 
Itiner.  Italiae  (Antwerpiae,  1600),  mentions  only  the  Sala  di  Costantino. 
It  was  not  till  the  end  of  the  17th  Century  that  Bellori  {cf.  MiJNTZ, 
loc.  cit.,  26,  77)  made  an  attempt,  though  not  a  very  intelligent  one,  to 
give  a  detailed  description  of  Raphael's  frescoes  in  the  Vatican.  Venuti 
again,  Descrizione  di  Roma  Modema,  IV.,  1191  (Roma,  1767),  only 
speaks  of  the  Parnassus  and  the  School  of  Athens,  and  says  not  a  word 
of  the  Disputa.  J.  G.  Keyssler,  Neueste  Reisen  (new  ed.  by  G.  Schiitze, 
VOL.   VI.  2  0 


562  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Tantum  ergo  Sacramentum 

Veneremur  cernui ; 
Et  antiquum  documentum 

Novo  cedat  ritui 
Praestet  fides  supplementum 

Sensuum  defectui. 

Hannover,  1751),  is  a  little  more  communicative  :  he  enumerates  the 
four  pictures  in  the  Camera  della  Segnatura  as  follows:  (i)The  chief 
doctrines  of  the  Faith,  namely,  the  Trinity,  mediation  of  Christ,  transub- 
stantiation,  eternal  life,  etc.  (2)  The  achievements  and  powers  of  the 
human  mind  in  regard  to  philosophy,  mathematics,  and  astronomy,  which 
piece  is  usually  called  the  School  of  Athens.  (3)  Poesy  and  the  hill  of 
Parnassus.  (4)  Justice,  Prudence,  and  other  moral  virtues.  VOLK- 
MANN'S  Reisehandbuch  (Hist.-Kritische  Nachrichten  von  Italien,  ed.  2. 
Leipzig,  1777),  of  which  Goethe  made  use,  gives  a  full  description  of  the 
School  of  Athens,  but  dismisses  the  Disputa  with  a  remark  that  it  is 
painted  in  "  the  dry  style  of  Perugino's  pupils."  He  translates  the  word 
"  Disputa  "  as  "  The  debate  of  the  doctors  of  the  Church  about  the  Lord's 
Supper  "  (H.,  128).  W.  Heinse,  who  came  to  Rome  late  in  the  autumn 
of  1781,  and  published  his  "Ardinghello"  in  1787,  drops  the  name  Dis- 
puta altogether,  and  only  speaks  of  the  Theology,  of  which  he  says, 
"The  whole  represents  the  coming  into  existence  of  the  Christian 
Church."  Goethe,  in  speaking  of  the  Stanza,  does  not  mention  the  Dis- 
puta at  all.  The  German  Chrisdan  artists,  more  especially  Overbeck, 
were  the  first  to  rediscover  the  full  beauty  of  this  wonderful  picture  {cf. 
infra,  p.  565,  n.).  Plattner,  H.,  i,  325  seq.,  gave  a  detailed  description  of 
it,  drawn  a  good  deal  from  Bellori ;  he  rejects  the  "  mistaken  notion  "  of 
a  controversy  about  the  Blessed  Sacrament,  and  calls  it  "  a  dramatic  re- 
presentation of  theology  in  its  action  and  effects."  Passavant  makes  some 
mistakes  in  details,  but  gives  a  much  better  general  interpretation  than 
any  of  his  predecessors.  He  says  :  "  In  its  essential  meaning  it  is  a  repre- 
sentation of  the  agreement  between  the  Saints  of  the  old  and  new 
covenants  in  Heaven,  celebrating  the  work  of  Salvation  there,  and  the 
theologians  on  earth  contemplating  the  mysterious  Sacrament  of  the  body 
and  blood  of  Christ,  and  both  feeling  themselves  united  with  each  other 
in  Him."  Kugler-Burckhardt,  H.,  581,  are  quite  beside  the  mark 
in  blaming  the  picture  because  neither  of  the  two  halves  predominate. 
The  remarks  in  Cicerone,  663,  are  more  to  the  point,  though  here  too 
the  theological  meaning  is  not  appreciated.     The  appearance  of  Joseph 


THE  TANTUM   ERGO.  563 

Genitori  genitoque 

Laus  et  jubilatio 
Salus,  honor,  virtus  quoque 

Sit  et  benedictio ; 

von  Keller's  admirable  engraving  of  the  Disputa  in  1857  led  to  a  revival 
of  interest  in  the  picture.  (Frederick  William  IV.  bought  the  drawing; 
the  plate  with  all  the  copies  still  remaining,  partly  the  property  of  Keller, 
was  destroyed  when  the  Academy  in  Dusseldorf  was  burnt  down  in  the 
year  1872.  When  Keller  saw  the  plate,  "the  fruit  of  ten  years  of  toil," 
as  it  was  recovered  from  the  mass  of  rubbish,  curled  up  and  perfectly 
useless,  this,  "  the  saddest  moment  of  his  life,"  shewed  how  deeply  im- 
bued he  was  with  Christian  feeling  ;  he  merely  exclaimed,  "  may  the  will 
of  God  be  praised.")  Inspired  by  this  engraving,  the  somewhat  mercurial 
theologian,  J.  W.  J.  Braun,  wrote  an  original  dissertation  on  the  Disputa 
(Dusseldorf,  1859),  in  which  he  gave  free  vent  to  his  love  of  conjecture. 
{Cf.  Kathol.  Literaturzeitung,  VI.,  59  seq.)  This  roused  SPRINGER  to 
publish,  first  in  a  brochure  (Bonn,  i860)  and  then  in  his  larger  work  on 
Raphael  and  Michael  Angelo,  an  excellent  historical  treatise  on  the  whole 
subject.  In  this  work  he  rejects  the  theological  interpretation.  Hagen 
in  i860  wrote  a  remarkable  essay  primarily  directed  against  Braun,  but 
also  controverting  Springer's  views  (p.  125  seq.).  In  it  he  justly  points 
out  (pp.  127,  139)  that  Raphael  had  the  prayers  of  the  mass  in  his  mind, 
in  which  he  is  in  accordance  with  Monsignor  Schneider,  who  will  be  cited 
further  on.  Hagen,  128,  declares  the  main  idea  in  the  picture  to  be 
"  the  communion  between  earth  and  heaven  established  by  the  revelation 
of  the  Sacrament  of  the  Altar."  F.  X.  Kraus  was  the  first  to  state  the 
theological  interpretation  from  a  Catholic  point  of  view  in  his  able,  but 
unfortunately  too  little  known,  treatise,  La  Camera  della  Segnatura,  where, 
p.  41,  the  sacrificial  element  is  explained.  Bole  in  his  Meisterwerke, 
67-81,  has  also,  more  recently,  dealt  with  the  subject  from  the  point  of 
view  of  a  Catholic  theologian.  G.  COZZA-Luzi's  paper,  II  Duomo  di 
Orvieto  e  Raffaelo  Sanzio  nel  Trionfo  Eucharistico.  Lettura  inaugurate 
air  Accademia  Orvietana,  "La  Nuova  Fenice"  (Milano,  1890),  is  rather 
rhetorical.  G.  Grimm  in  his  Leben  Raphaels,  315,  gives  the  following 
explanation.  "  From  the  moment  we  understand  that  the  picture  repre- 
sents not  a  dispute,  but  the  cessation  of  all  disputes  on  the  subject  of  the 
picture  by  the  revelation  which  silences  controversy,  we  see  that  all  the 
many  meanings  introduced  into  it  are  quite  superfluous.  It  is  a  moment 
of  overpowering  amazement,"  etc.     I  consider  this  interpretation,  which  is 


564  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

Procedenti  ab  utroque 
Compar  sit  laudatio.* 

The  representation  of  the  Holy  Trinity,  conceived  in 
the  old  mediaeval  reverent  manner,  occupies  the  centre 
of  the  upper  part  of  the  fresco.  God  the  Father  is  seen 
in  the  highest  heaven  in  a  sea  of  golden  rays  thronged 
with  floating  angels,f  as  if  the  painter's  imagination 
revelled  in  the  thought  of  the  multitudes  of  happy  spirits 
in  that  realm  of  peace  and  bliss.  On  each  side,  on  the 
edges  of  the  clouds  which  encircle  this  region  of  light, 
three  angels  soar .  in  flowing  drapery.  As  Creator  and 
Preserver,  the  Father  holds  the  globe  in  His  left  hand, 
while  the  right  hand  is  raised  in  blessing.     Immediately 

accepted  by  Wolzogen,  56,  to  be  mistaken,  because  it  starts  from  the 
false  notion  that  there  had  been  a  dispute  amongst  those  who  are  assem- 
bled in  presence  of  the  Blessed  Sacrament.  The  deeper  theological 
meaning  of  the  fresco,  as  I  have  endeavoured  to  explain  it  further  on, 
p.  575,  is  thus  entirely  lost.  Finally  as  a  curiosity  it  may  be  worth 
mentioning  that  PORTIG  in  the  Hist.-polit.  Bl.,  XCVII.,  403  seq.^  is  of 
opinion  that  the  Disputa  is  an  expression  of  the  Protestant  doctrine  of 
salvation  by  faith !  On  that  of  a  Protestant  pastor  who  declares  that 
Raphael  was  not  a  Catholic,  see  MiJNTZ,  Les  Historiens,  68. 

*  Down  in  adoration  falling, 

Lo  !  the  Sacred  Host  we  hail ; 
Lo  !  o'er  ancient  forms  departing, 

Newer  rites  of  grace  prevail ; 
Faith  for  all  defects  supplying, 

Where  the  feeble  senses  fail. 

To  the  everlasting  Father 

And  the  Son  who  reigns  on  high, 

With  the  Holy  Ghost,  proceeding 
Forth  from  each  eternally, 

Be  salvation,  honour,  blessing, 

Might  and  endless  majesty.     Amen. 

t  Cf.  Dante's  description  of  the  Empyrean,  Parad.,  xxxi.,  4  seq. 
Raphael  indicates  the  starry  heavens  by  a  number  of  little  golden  dots. 


THE   HEAVENLY   PARADISE.  565 

below  Him,  in  the  actual  centre  of  the  heavens,  is  the 
glorified  form  of  the  only  begotten  Son  {Rex  gloriae).* 
Perhaps  this  is  the  most  beautiful  representation  of  the 
Saviour  that  has  ever  been  created.  He  is  enthroned  on 
clouds  filled  with  angel-faces.  His  divinity  beams  forth 
in  a  golden  halo  melting  into  a  semi-circle  of  blue  sky 
out  of  which  cherubs  are  looking  down.  His  head  is 
slightly  bent  and  the  wounded  hands  are  stretched  forth 
graciously  and  lovingly,  inviting  all  men  to  His  banquet.f 
His  shining  garment  leaves  the  wound  in  His  side  un- 
covered. On  His  left  hand,  S.  John  the  Baptist  sits 
pointing  to  the  "  Lamb  of  God  who  taketh  away  the  sins 
of  the  world,"  on  the  right,  His  Blessed  Mother  bends  ador- 
ingly towards  him  with  folded  hands  pressed  to  her  bosom. 
The  "  patricians  of  this  most  just  and  pious  empire," 
as  Dante  calls  them,  are  ranged  in  a  semi-circle  spread 
underneath  and  stretching  upwards  to  embrace  the  two 
sides  of  the  central  group.  They,  too,  are  enthroned 
on  a  cloud  from  which  angel  faces  look  out.  "  For  the 
grouping  of  the  Divine  Persons,  Raphael  went  back  to 
the  traditional  type,  but  the  arrangement  of  these  figures 
is  all  his  own  and  is  admirable  for  its  perfect  proportions 

*  Cf.  Kraus,  Camera  della  Segnatura,  37. 

t  Cf.  Overbeck's  Leben  von  Binder,  I.,  145  seq.^  and  BOLE,  Meister- 
werke  der  Malerei,  69.  In  a  letter,  which  has  only  come  to  light  quite 
recently,  from  Overbeck  to  his  father,  written  in  1810,  he  says  of  the 
Disputa :  "  What  a  heaven  opens  upon  one  the  moment  one  enters. 
The  first  thing  that  strikes  the  eye  is  the  Majesty  of  God  and  His  only 
begotten  Son,  full  of  grace  and  truth  ;  it  is  really  impossible  to  conceive 
anything  more  sublime  than  the  glory  in  the  Disputa.  With  Stephen 
one  sees  Heaven  opened,  and  falls  into  a  trance.  Below  are  all  the 
Saints  so  full  of  love  and  faith  ;  in  short,  this  picture  is  the  reflection  of 
Raphael's  beautiful  saintly  soul ;  one  must  indeed  be  a  saint  oneself  to 
be  able  to  paint  sanctity  like  that."  Allg.  Conservative  Monatschrift 
(1887),  II.,  1283. 


566  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

and  its  clearness.  He  mixes  the  representatives  of  the 
old  covenant  with  the  heroes  of  the  new,  and  places  these 
latter  in  a  certain  way  in  accordance  with  their  rank  in 
the  hierarchy  of  the  Saints  :  Apostles  with  sacred  writers, 
ancestors  of  Christ  together  with  martyrs,  the  former 
in  a  chronological  sequence  according  to  the  age  in  which 
they  lived.  Those  who  sit  on  the  same  level  on  opposite 
sides  are  always  in  some  way  connected  with  each  other."* 
In  his  selection  of  the  Saints  and  their  juxtaposition, 
Raphael  was  guided  partly  by  the  prayer  in  the  mass 
and  partly  by  Dante.f 

The   series  of  the    elect    begins   on  the  left  side  with 
S.  Peter,     The  teacher  and  guardian  of  the  Faith  appears 
as  a  venerable  old  man  holding  in  one  hand  a  book  and  in 
the  other  the  keys;    his  eyes  are  fixed  upon  his   Master 
and  God,  who  has  appointed  him  to  be  His  Vicar  on  earth, 
with  an  expression  of  unbounded  trustfulness.     Adam  is 
next  him,  turning  a  thoughtful  gaze  towards  him  as  though 
musing  on  the  story  of  sin  and  redemption. 
Que'  due,  che  seggon  lassu  piii  felici, 
Per  esser  propinquissimi  ad  Augusta, 
Son  d'esta  rosa  quasi  due  radici. 

*  Springer,  I.,  223,  ed.  2.  Bole,  Meisterwerke  der  Malerei,  69, 
remarks  on  the  twelve  figures  which  are  nearest  to  Christ :  "  The  order 
observed  in  the  placing  of  these  persons  according  to  a  twofold  principle 
of  juxtaposition  and  opposition  is  very  striking.  Old  and  New  Testa- 
ment Saints  are  arranged  side  by  side  in  pairs,  for  in  heaven  there  is  no 
distinction  between  the  two  covenants,  since  all  alike  have  attained  to 
glory  through  Christ  the  Alpha  and  Omega  (Apoc,  i,  8).  There  is  a 
connection  also  between  those  who  sit  opposite  to  each,  either  in  regard 
to  God's  providential  dealings  with  them,  or  the  special  virtues  by  which 
they  had  merited  heaven."  The  author  goes  on  to  exemplify  this  in 
detail,  but  perhaps  puts  a  little  more  into  the  painter's  mind  than  was 
really  there. 

t  Hagen,  127  seq.^  132  seq.^  139  seq.^  was,  as  far  as  I  know,  the  first 
to  point  this  out. 


THE   SERIES   OF   THE   ELECT.  567 

Colui,  che  da  sinistra  le  s'aggiusta, 

]fe  '1  Padre,  per  lo  cui  ardito  gusto, 

L'umana  specie  tanto  amaro  gusta. 
Dal  destro  vedi  quel  Padre  vetusto 

Di  Santa  Chiesa,  a  cui  Cristo  le  chiavi 

Raccomand6  di  questo  fior  venusto.* 

Close  to,  and  strongly  contrasting  with  the  mighty 
ancestor  of  the  human  race,  is  the  gentle  and  youthful  form 
of  S.  John,  who  is  writing  his  Gospel.  David  by  his  side, 
with  crown  and  harp,  is  reading  in  the  book  the  history 
which  fulfilled  his  Old  Testament  prophecies.  Next  comes 
S.  Lawrence,  the  joyous  and  heroic  martyr-deacon ;  he 
wears  a  golden  star  on  his  breast  and  points  to  the 
theologians  assembled  below,  round  the  Blessed  Sacra- 
ment.f  Turning  towards  him  is  a  figure,  probably 
Jeremias,  which  is  almost  hidden  by  the  central  group  and 
thus  indicates  that  the  circle  behind  it  is  unbroken.^ 

On    the   right   side,   the    series   begins   with   the   other 

*  Those  highest  in  bhss, 

The  twain,  on  each  hand  next  our  Empress  throned, 

Are  as  it  were  two  roots  unto  this  rose. 
He  to  the  left,  the  parent,  whose  rash  taste 

Proves  bitter  to  his  seed  ;  and  on  the  right, 
That  ancient  father  of  the  Holy  Church, 
Into  whose  keeping  Christ  did  give  the  keys 
Of  this  sweet  flower. 

—Dante,  Parad.,  xxxii.,  1 18-126. 

t  Hagen,  139,  and  others  look  upon  this  figure  pointing  downwards  as 
S.  Stephen,  and  place  S.  Lawrence  on  the  opposite  side.  I  think  them 
wrong,  as  it  seems  to  me  that  the  palm  in  the  hand  of  the  figure  on  the 
right  side  clearly  indicates  the  first  martyr. 

J  Springer,  Rafifaels  Disputa  (i860),  was  the  first  to  suggest  this 
name,  and  nearly  all  modem  writers  down  to  BOLE,  71,  have  accepted  it. 
Paliard  thinks  it  is  meant  for  S.  Martin  of  Tours.  See  Chron.  des 
Arts  (1876),  328-329. 


568  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

pillar  of  the  Church,  S.  Paul.  The  energetic  pose  of  the 
figure  and  the  strength  and  size  of  the  sword  on  which 
it  leans  suggest  both  his  martyrdom  and  the  characteristic 
power  of  his  doctrine.  "The  word  of  God  is  living  and 
effectual,  and  more  piercing  than  any  two-edged  sword" 
(Heb.,  iv.  12).  Next  to  him  sits  Abraham  with  the  knife 
in  his  hand  preparing  to  sacrifice  Isaac.  After  him 
comes  S.  James  the  less,  absorbed  in  thought,  holding  a 
book,*  then  Moses  with  the  tables  of  the  Law,  and  next 
to  him  S.  Stephen.  The  first  martyr  holds  a  palm  in 
his  hand ;  he  rests  his  arm  on  the  Book  of  the  Faith  which 
he  confessed,  and  gazing  upwards  seems  to  repeat  the 
words  which  he  uttered  as  he  stood  before  the  Council, 
filled  with  the  Holy  Ghost :  "  Behold  I  see  the  heavens 
opened,  and  the  Son  of  man  standing  on  the  right  hand 
of  God."  Again,  on  this  side,  half-lost  behind  the  group 
of  the  Saviour  and  next  to  the  martyr,  stands  one  of  the 

*  Plattner,  II.,  I,  327,  conjectures  that  S.  James  is  placed  here  as 
the  third  witness,  together  with  SS.  Peter  and  John,  of  the  Transfigura- 
tion and  the  symbol  of  Hope,  as  they  are  of  Faith  and  Love.  But  it  was 
S.  James  the  greater  who  was  present  at  the  Transfiguration,  and  he  is 
generally  represented  as  an  old  man  with  a  pilgrim's  staff  and  hat 
(Menzel,  Symbolik,  I.,  75,  430).  Nevertheless  Gruyer,  62,  and  Hagen, 
139,  hold  to  S.  James  the  less,  and  the  fact  that  in  the  Middle  Ages 
the  inscription  :  "  Ascendit  ad  coelos,  sedet  ad  dexteram  Dei  patris 
omnipotentis  "  (seeMENZEL,  I.,  77),  often  accompanies  representations  of 
him  seems  to  me  to  favour  this  view.  BOLE,  in  his  very  able  "  Studie," 
connects  S.  James  with  the  corresponding  Saint  on  the  opposite  side, 
S.  John  :  "  Both,"  he  says,  "  lay  great  stress  on  the  necessity  of  good 
works,  and  above  all  things  of  the  love  of  our  neighbour  :  S.  John  from 
the  point  of  view  of  the  love  of  God  which  is  manifested  in  the  love  of 
the  neighbour,  and  S.  James  from  that  of  faith,  which  shews  it  is  alive 
by  good  works."  "  If  any  man  say,  I  love  God  and  hateth  his  brother, 
he  is  a  liar  "  ( i  S.  John,  iv.  20).  "  Faith  also  if  it  have  not  works  is  dead 
in  itself"  (S.  James,  ii.  17).  Kraus,  Camera  della  Segnatura,  37,  makes 
it  S.  Mathew  instead  of  S.  John. 


THE  CHURCH   ON    EARTH.  569 

heroes  of  the  old  Covenant  in  the  dress  of  a  warrior, 
probably  Judas  Machabaeus.* 

The  relation  between  the  Heavenly  Paradise  and  the 
Church  on  earth  is  symbolised  by  the  descending  Dove, the 
Holy  Ghost,  attended  by  four  cherubs,  each  of  whom  carries 
an  open  Gospel  in  his  hands.  The  divinity  of  the  Holy 
Ghost  is  indicated  by  th^  halo  which  surrounds  the  Dove ; 
the  graces  He  bestows  by  the  golden  beams  which  radiate 
from  its  body.  The  undermost  rays  are  prolonged  to  lead 
the  eye  to  the  monstrance  with  the  Sacred  Host,  Christ 
in  the  Eucharist,  the  end  and  crown  of  all  theological 
science. 

A  wide  stretch  of  open  country  forms  the  background  of 
the  lower  part  of  the  picture.  To  the  right  in  the  plain  are 
the  massive  remains  of  an  ancient  building.  On  an  emi- 
nence to  the  left  somewhat  further  off,  workmen  are  busy 
on  an  extensive  edifice  which  is  in  course  of  construction.j- 

In  the  foreground  of  the  picture  a  balustrade  on  each 
side  corresponds  with  the  two  buildings  which  flank  the 
landscape  in  the  background.  The  middle  is  left  free  so  as 
to  concentrate  the  attention  on  the  central  point,  towards 
which  all  the  figures  below  turn,  and  on  which  the  golden 
rays  from  the  symbolical  Dove  descend. 

*  The  earlier  interpretation  which  made  the  figure  S.  George  the 
patron  Saint  of  Liguria,  has  been  given  up  by  ahiiost  every  one  since 
Springer  suggested  Judas  Machabseus,  except  Plattner,  II.,  i,  327, 
who  still  holds  to  it.     FoRSTER,  Raphael,  I.,  279,  calls  it  Josue. 

t  The  meaning  of  this  building  has  been  much  disputed.  It  is  very 
generally  supposed  to  represent  the  new  S.  Peter's.  See  Grimm,  Raphael, 
318  seq.,  and  Fiinfzehn  Essays,  IV.,  278  seq.  ;  Crowe,  II.,  22  seq.^  31 ; 
KrauS,  Camera  della  Segnatura,  41  ;  and  FRANT2,  II.,  727.  BOLE, 
Meistenverke,  72,  following  MOLITOR,  Rom,  261,  thinks  the  ruin  on  the 
right  is  meant  as  a  symbol  of  heathenism,  and  the  new  building  on  the 
left,  of  Christian  Theology,  which  will  for  ever  be  receiving  new  ad- 
ditions.    Hagen,  142,  gives  yet  another  interpretation. 


570  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Neither  the  altar  nor  the  monstrance  are  allowed  to 
appeal  in  any  way  to  the  eye.  The  monstrance  is  of  the 
simplest  character,  the  altar  is  almost  without  ornament, 
there  are  not  even  candles  on  the  super-altar ;  on  the  altar- 
cloth  is  the  monogram  of  Julius  II.  But  there  is  the 
Blessed  Sacrament ;  the  smallest  thing  in  the  whole  picture, 
yet  under  the  form  of  bread  the  Godhead  lies  hidden,  the  one 
thing  which,  next  to  the  Christ  in  heaven,  draws  our  gaze  to 
Itself,  and  rivets  it  there.  The  Holy  Trinity  rests  immedi- 
ately above  the  Sacred  Host  in  which  it  is  contained.  All 
the  saints  in  heaven  and  the  legions  of  angels  seem  only 
to  become  visible  for  the  one  purpose  of  honouring  the 
supreme  mystery  of  earth  ;  the  "  Bread  of  Life,"  appears  as 
the  meeting-point  in  which  the  two  spheres  are  united.  On 
both  sides,  as  though  taking  the  place  of  the  altar  lights, 
stand  the  Doctors  and  Saints  of  the  Church,  Popes  and 
Cardinals,  secular  and  regular  Priests,  Scholars  and  Artists. 
"  All  are  occupied  with  the  miracle  on  the  altar  ;  some  are 
lost  in  adoring  wonder,  some  in  deep  thought,  others 
absorbed  in  earnest  conversation.  This  is  the  human  part 
of  the  picture  ;  here  we  find  the  most  animated  groups, 
figures  full  of  emotion  in  the  intense  efforts  of  the  mind 
to  grasp  and  understand.  Nevertheless,  all  these  various 
expressions  and  characters  are  blended  into  a  whole  of 
perfect  harmony  and  beauty.  The  scope  of  the  picture 
stretches  out  far  beyond  its  immediate  subject ;  we  see  the 
long  ages  of  humanity  straining  after  knowledge,  embodied 
in  these  venerable  fathers  striving  through  the  abysses  of 
religious  thought  to  attain  to  clear  insight.  And  yet  over 
all  broods  the  spirit  of  heavenly  calm,  the  peace  of  the 
sanctuary."* 

*  Thiersch,  Schaden,  132.  The  whole  description  of  the  Disputa  is 
so  beautiful  that  it  is  with  great  regret  that  I  confine  myself  to  this 
extract. 


THE  FATHERS  OF  THE  LATIN  CHURCH.  57 1 

On  three  sides  broad  steps  lead  up  to  the  altar,  and  thus 
facilitate  a  natural  and  varied  arrangement  of  the  groups 
and  figures  comprised  in  this  happy  company,  to  whom  it 
has  been  granted  to  draw  near  to  the  Holiest,  the  source  of 
all  enlightenment  and  knowledge.  On  the  two  sides  of  the 
altar  are  stationed  the  four  greatest  Fathers  of  the  Western 
Church ;  on  the  left,  S.  Jerome  and  S.  Gregory  I. ;  on  the 
right,  S.  Ambrose  and  S.  Augustine.  They  are  seated  to 
denote  their  office  as  teachers,  while  all  the  other  saints  are 
standing.*  S.  Jerome  is  in  the  dress  of  a  Cardinal,  the  lion 
is  at  his  feet,  by  his  side  his  letters  and  translation  of  the 
Bible,  on  his  knee  a  book  in  which  he  is  reading  with  an 
expression  of  strenuous  attention  on  his  face.  An  aged 
Bishop,  standing  close  against  the  altar  in  a  green  cope 
embroidered  with  gold,  is  turning  towards  him,  and  with  a 
countenance  beaming  with  trust  and  faith,  stretches  out 
both  hands  towards  the  monstrance.f  Next  to  S.  Jerome, 
S.  Gregory  the  Great,  in  full  pontificals,  is  seated  on  an 
antique  Roman  episcopal  chair ;  he  appears  to  have  been 
reading,  but  now  turns  from  his  book  to  gaze  with  a  wistful 
expression  on  the  symbol  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  which  Paul 
the  Deacon  once  saw  floating  over  this  saint's  head. 

On  the  right  side,  close  to  the  altar,  an  old  man,  in  a 

*  Bole,  Meisterwerke,  74. 

t  According  to  WiCKHOFF,  51-52,  the  artist  intentionally  abstained 
from  individualising"  this  and  many  of  the  other  figures.  "  He  does  not 
wish  to  distract  the  attention  of  the  spectator  by  any  biographical 
associations.  The  office  of  the  chorus  is  to  illustrate  the  thoughts  and 
feelings  of  the  principal  personages.  They  contemplate  them,  they 
address  them,  they  converse  upon  what  they  have  heard,  they  im- 
personate intelligent  sympathy  in  all  its  forms."  BOLE,  Meisterwerke, 
73  seq.,  takes  the  opposite  view  and  looks  for  names  ;  he  thinks  the  two 
figures  standing  immediately  next  the  altar,  are  S.  Ignatius  of  Antioch 
and  S.  Justin.  Braun,  Raffaels  Disputa  (1859),  had  already  proposed 
these  names. 


572  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

philosopher's  robe  of  a  blue  colour,  not  specially  designated 
in  any  way,  stands  turning  towards  S.  Ambrose  and  point- 
ing with  his  right  hand  to  heaven.  The  Saint  is  looking 
upwards,  his  hands  raised  in  adoring  wonder,  and  his  lips 
parted  as  though  just  beginning  to  intone  his  hymn  of  praise. 
Next  to  him  is  the  noble  figure  of  S.  Augustine,  the  favourite 
author  of  the  Christian  humanists,  dictating  his  confessions 
to  a  kneeling  youth  ;  *  his  best-known  work,  "  the  City  of 
God,"  lies  at  his  feet. 

To  the  right  of  SS.  Ambrose  and  Augustine,  both  in 
episcopal  dress,  stand  S.  Thomas  Aquinas  and  two 
prominent  figures,  one  a  Pope,  the  other  a  Cardinal.  The 
first  of  these  is  probably  Innocent  III.,  the  author  of  the 
well-known  works  on  the  Holy  Mass  ;  f  while  the  Cardinal, 
who  wears  the  Franciscan  habit,  is  undoubtedly  S.  Bona- 
venture  the  Seraphic  Doctor.  Another  Pope,  in  a  robe  of 
gold  brocade,  stands  at  the  foot  of  the  altar-step.  His 
features  are  those  of  Sixtus  IV.,  Julius  II.'s  uncle.  The 
books  in  his  hand  and  at  his  feet  shew  that  he  was  a 
voluminous  writer.^  Behind  Sixtus  IV.  the  head  of  Dante 
appears  crowned  with  a  wreath  of  laurels.§ 

*  Cf.  Pastor,  Hist.  Popes,  H.,  24  (Engl,  trans.). 

t  Kraus,  Camera  della  Segnatura,  40. 

I  Bole,  Meisterwerke,  76,  still  holds  to  the  earlier  view  which  made 
this  figure  Innocent  HI.,  but  this  is  certainly  incorrect.  WiCKHOFF,  51, 
has  no  doubt  that  it  is  meant  for  Sixtus  IV.  In  another  place,  64,  he 
remarks  :  "There  is  a  very  human  touch  of  nature  in  Julius  II.'s  com- 
memoration of  his  uncle  in  the  Stanza  della  Segnatura,  but  it  is  also 
characteristic  of  his  lofty  aims  that  he  puts  forward  the  intellectual 
services  of  his  family  as  their  title  to  distinction."  It  was  a  happy 
thought  to  place  Sixtus  IV.  close  to  the  Dominican  S.  Thomas  and  the 
Franciscan  S.  Bonaventure,  when  we  recall  that  one  of  his  works  was  a 
treatise  in  which  he  strove  to  appease  the  controversy  between  the  two 
orders.     See  Pastor,  Hist.  Popes,  IV.,  209  (Engl,  trans.). 

§  Some  think  that  the  head  which  is  visible  just  behind  Dante's  is 
meant  for  Savonarola.     I  cannot,  however,  see  any  resemblance  to  the 


THE   HYMN    OF   S.    THOMAS.  573 

On  the  extreme  right  side  of  the  fresco  there  are  a  con- 
siderable number  of  figures,  the  foremost  of  whom  is  leaning 
over  the  balustrade  with  eyes  fixed  on  the  altar.  Another 
man  with  a  beard,  in  a  yellow  tunic  and  blue  mantle, 
evidently  a  philosopher,  points  to  Sixtus  IV.,  as  to  an 
accredited  exponent  of  the  mystery. 

Adore  te  devote,  latens  Deltas 
Quae  sub  his  figuris  vere  latitas, 
Tibi  se  cor  meum  totum  subjicit, 
Quia  te  contemplans  totum  deficit. 

Visus,  tactus,  gustus,  in  te  fallitur, 
Sed  auditu  solo  tuto  creditur ; 
Credo  quidquid  dixit  Dei  Filius : 
Nil  hoc  veritatis  verbo  verius. 

Plagas,  sicut  Thomas,  non  intueor. 
Deum  tamen  meum  te  confiteor. 
Fac  me  tibi  semper  magis  credere 
In  te  spem  habere,  te  diligere. 

Jesu,  quem  velatum  nunc  adspicio, 

Oro,  fiat  illud,  quod  tam  sitio. 

Ut,  te  revelata  cernens  facie, 

Visu  sim  beatus  tuae  glorise.*     Amen. 

well-known  portraits  of  the  great  preacher,  whose  features  were,  of  course, 
quite  familiar  to  Raphael. 

*  O  Godhead  hid,  devoutly  I  adore  Thee 
Who  truly  art  within  the  forms  before  me  ; 
To  Thee  my  heart  I  bow  with  bended  knee. 
As  failing  quite  in  contemplating  Thee. 

Sight,  touch,  and  taste  in  Thee  are  each  deceived ; 
The  ear  alone  most  safely  is  believed  : 
I  believe  all  the  Son  of  God  has  spoken, 
Than  truth's  own  word  there  is  no  truer  token. 

Thy  wounds,  as  Thomas  saw,  I  do  not  see  ; 
Yet  Thee  confess  my  Lord  and  God  to  be. 
Make  me  believe  Thee  ever  more  and  more  ; 
In  Thee  my  hope,  in  Thee  my  love  to  store. 


574  HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES. 

A  similar  order  is  observed  on  the  left  side.  Next 
to  S.  Gregory  the  Great  is  a  beautiful  group  of  three 
youths  kneeling  in  adoration,  while  a  man  in  a  yellow- 
mantle  points  to  the  writings  of  the  Fathers  of  the 
Church  lying  on  the  ground  beside  them.  Behind  this 
group  are  two  very  striking  heads  of  Bishops,  and  beyond 
them  four  religious,  a  Benedictine  Abbot,  an  Augus- 
tinian,  a  Franciscan,  and  a  Dominican,  conversing  to- 
gether. This  group,  no  doubt,  is  intended  to  indicate  the 
large  share  which  the  religious  orders  have  had  in  the 
building  up  of  the  scholastic  theology.  The  correspond- 
ing figure  on  the  opposite  side  to  that  of  Sixtus  IV.  is  a 
noble  youth  with  flowing  golden  hair,  he  is  gently,  but 
very  earnestly  trying  to  persuade  three  men  to  follow 
the  example  of  the  kneeling  youths.  The  leader  of 
these  less  advanced  believers  is  an  older  man,  who  is 
supporting  himself  against  the  balustrade,  and  seems 
appealing  to  some  sentence  in  an  open  book  which  he 
holds  in  his  hand.*  The  background  is  filled  with  other 
heads,  all  more  or  less  interesting,  amongst  them  that  of 
Fra  Angelico  in  blissful  contemplation ;  the  theological 
painter  on  this  side  answers  to  the  theological  poet  on 
the  other.     The  mystery  of  the  Holy  Eucharist  is  not  only 

Jesu  !  whom  for  the  present  veil'd  I  see 
What  I  so  thirst  for,  oh,  vouchsafe  to  me ; 
That  I  may  see  thy  countenance  unfolding, 
And  may  be  blest  Thy  glory  in  beholding. 

*  Plattner,  II.,  I,  330,  contests  Montagnani's  interpretation  of  this 
man  whom  he  supposes  to  be  a  theologian.  The  figure  is  clearly  marked 
as  that  of  a  philosopher.  Forster,  I.,  279  seq.^  and  others  who  make 
him  out  to  be  a  sectary  or  heretic  are,  of  course,  still  more  at  fault. 
Bole,  Meisterwerke,  78,  explains  him  as  a  philosopher  who  has  not  yet 
succeeded  in  completely  reconciling  Theology  with  Philosophy,  because 
he  is  too  full  of  his  own  system,  and  neglects  Holy  Scripture.  Lubke 
II.,  262,  agrees  with  this  interpretation. 


THE   MYSTERY  OF  THE   HOLY   EUCHARIST.         575 

the  highest  study  of  doctors  and  theologians,  it  is  also 
the  inspiration  of  poets  and  artists ;  it  is  the  focus  of 
Christian  life,  the  food  and  the  strength  of  all  Christian 
souls. 

"  Here  we  have  not  a  commemoration  of  Christ,  we 
have  Christ  Himself.  What  we  are  here  adoring  is  not 
one  of  the  mysteries  of  His  life,  it  is  the  sum  of  all  these 
mysteries,  the  God-man  Himself,  the  crown,  the  con- 
summation and  the  corner  stone  of  all  his  illuminating, 
grace-bestowing  and  redemptive  work ;  it  is  the  source 
of  all  graces,  a  sea  of  graces,  the  way  to  glory,  and  glory 
itself.  All  the  treasures  of  nature  and  creation,  all  the 
miracles  of  grace  and  redemption,  all  the  glories  of 
heaven  meet  in  this  Sacrament,  the  centre  of  the  uni- 
verse." "  It  is  from  here  that  those  streams  of  grace 
flow  East,  West,  North  and  South,  which  fertilise  the 
whole  realm  of  the  Church ;  this  is  the  source  from 
which  beams  the  sevenfold  radiance  of  the  Sacraments 
All  the  virtues  blossom  around  this  spring  of  grace,  all 
creatures  draw  the  waters  of  salvation  from  this  well. 
This  is  the  living  heart  whose  pulsations  give  life  to  the 
Church,  here  heaven  touches  earth  which  has  become 
the  dwelling  place  of  God."* 

But  the  Holy  Eucharist  is  also  a  Sacrifice ;  f  the  artist 
has  marked  this  aspect  of  it  by  shewing  the  glorified 
Saviour  with  His  wounds  in  heaven  immediately  above 
the  Sacred  Host.  Without  both  the  Sacrament  and 
the  Sacrifice  the  life  of  the  Church  would  perish ;  with- 
out the  mysteries  of  Faith,  theology  would    lose  all    its 

*  Hettinger,  Apologie,  II.,  2,  235,  191. 

t  Ibid.^  237  seq.^  and  RiO,  Michel- Ange  et  Raphael,  132  ;  Dandolo 
Secolo  di  Leone  X.,  I.,  210  (Milano,  1861);  Cerroti,  Le  pitture  delle 
Stanze  Vaticane,  59  (Roma,  1869),  and  Vitet,  ;6tude  sur  THistoire 
de  I'Art,  3^  partie,  p.  51, 


576  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

efficacy.  Thus,  all  the  votaries  of  Christian  science 
gather  round  this  most  precious  jewel,  the  supreme 
token  of  God's  infinite  power  and  mercy,  in  glad  "and 
grateful  adoration.  Again  the  Holy  Eucharist  is  the 
bond  of  union  between  the  militant  and  the  trium- 
phant Church.  "  It  is  the  mysterious  chain  reaching 
from  God  in  heaven  down  to  the  dust  of  the  earth " ; 
it  brings  heaven  down  to  earth,  and  raises  earth  to 
heaven.*  The  Master  has  symbolically  expressed  this 
in  two  ways,  by  raising  the  Sacred  Host  above  the 
heads  of  all  the  assembly  of  the  faithful  who  sur- 
round It,  and  by  the  descending  rays  of  the  Holy 
Ghost  which  come  down  from  heaven  to  rest  upon  It 
As  the  Spirit  of  Charity  He  descends  from  the  empy- 
rean heaven  of  calm  and  bliss  into  the  world  to  bring 
it  the  sacrament  of  love;  as  the  spirit  of  truth,  in  the 
same  act.  He  brings  the  highest  enlightenment  and 
knowledge  of  God.  Thus  He  appears  as  the  inter- 
mediary between  the  glorified  humanity  of  Christ  in 
heaven  and  Christ  in  the  Holy  Eucharist  under  the  form 
of  bread.  The  artist  secures  the  connection  between  the 
upper  and  lower  halves  of  the  picture  by  a  symbolism 
in  which  he  also  expresses  the  doctrines  of  the  Catholic 
Faith. 

"The  glorified  humanity  of  Christ  under  the  form  of 
bread  constitutes  the  bond  of  union  between  the  world 
below  and  the  blessed  above,  whose  joy  and  blessedness 
consist  in  the  contemplation  of  the  same  glorified  humanity 
unveiled  in  heaven.  Christ  here,  hidden  under  the  form 
of  bread  ;  Christ  there,  "  fairest  amongst  the  sons  of  men, 
seen  as  He  is,  one  and  the  same  Christ  yesterday  and 
to-day.  The  identity  of  the  glorified  body  of  the  Lord 
on  earth  and  in  heaven  is  the  link  which  joins  the  two 

*  Hettinger,  loc.  cit.,  II.,  2,  236,  271. 


FAITH   AND   SIGHT.  577 

parts  of  the  picture  into  one  whole."*      Below  we  have 
faith,  above,  sight. 

*  For  the  remarks  quoted  in  the  text,  I  am  indebted  to  my  friend 
Monsignor  Schneider,  Canon  of  the  Cathedral  of  Mayence.  He 
writes  to  me  as  follows  :  "  The  idea  of  a  close  connection  between  this 
world  and  that  beyond  the  veil  was  by  no  means  peculiar  to  Raphael 
and  those  who  inspired  him.  It  belongs  to  the  iconology  of  the  later 
mediaeval  times,  and  on  the  other  side  of  the  Al^s  asserts  itself  strongly 
in  Flemish  Art  as,  for  example,  in  the  altar-pieces  in  Ghent  of  the 
brothers  Van  Eyck.  This  feature  is  most  prominent  in  the  picture  in 
the  museum  at  Madrid  generally  called  "The  Fountain  of  Life,"  but 
better,  perhaps,  "The  Mystic  Spring,"  and  is  not  obscured  by  the 
division  between  believers  and  unbelievers.  This  altar-piece  belongs  to 
the  school  of  Van  Eyck;  cf.  SCHNEIDER,  Alte  und  neue  Welt  (1877), 
No.  31,  p.  488.  The  division  of  Flemish  altar-pieces  into  an  ascending 
series  of  stages  forming  one  whole,  corresponds  with  the  plan  of  the 
mediaeval  popular  drama  and  the  great  later  mediaeval  festal  mysteries. 
This  has  been  clearly  proved  by  Dr.  P.  WEBER,  Geistliches  Schauspiel 
und  Kirchliche  Kunst,  143  (Stuttgart,  1894).  Raphael's  arrangement  in 
the  Disputa  is  obviously  on  the  same  lines  ;  the  only  question  is,  whether 
he  was  following  the  traditions  of  Italian  Art  on  the  stage  and  in 
representation,  or  was  influenced  by  northern  ideas,  especially  by  Flemish 
and  Burgundian  Art.  There  was  no  lack  of  personal  intercourse  between 
the  Netherlands  and  the  Roman  Court,  and  there  are  plenty  of  instances 
to  shew  that  Flemish  and  Burgundian  Art  exercised  considerable 
influence  in  artistic  circles  in  Italy.  It  is  quite  possible  that  pictures  of 
the  Blessed  Sacrament  of  the  school  of  Van  Eyck  were  known  and 
admired  in  the  Vatican,  and  may  have  suggested  the  arrangement  of  the 
Disputa  to  Raphael.  At  any  rate  from  the  point  of  view  of  Art,  it 
clearly  belongs  to  the  mystical  and  symbolical  school  of  the  Middle 
Ages,  and  this  corroborates  the  view  that  its  meaning  is  to  be  sought  in 
the  mystical  theology  of  the  scholastics.  Fra  Bartolomeo's  masterly 
picture  in  the  Uffizi  at  Florence,  is  painted  on  the  same  lines  as  the 
Disputa,  though  in  a  more  concise  form.  He  represents  the  symbol  of 
the  Eucharistic  sacrifice,  the  Chalice  and  Paten  over  the  world,  and  at 
the  feet  of  the  glorified  figure  of  Christ  as  He  rises  from  the  grave."  Cf. 
Frantz,  Fra  Bartolomeo,  186,  though  the  Disputa  is  not  referred 
to. 

VOL.    VI.  2  P 


578  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

O  gioia  !  O  ineffabile  allegrezza  ! 
O  vita  intera  d'  amore  e  di  pace  ! 
Oj  senza  brama,  sicura  richezza.* 

This  magnificent  creation  can  only  be  rightly  under- 
stood from  the  point  of  view  of  the  Catholic  faith,  and 
those  to  whom  this  is  a  sealed  book  must  necessarily  go 
astray  in  their  attempts  to  decipher  its  meaning.  This 
consideration  alone  explains  the  fault  found  by  some  able 
art-critics  with  the  composition  of  the  picture,  because 
neither  of  the  two  halves  preponderates  in  mass  or  import- 
ance over  the  other.!  From  the  point  of  view  from  which 
the  fresco  is  conceived  this  very  fact  is  one  of  its  chief 
merits,  for  it  is  intended  to  represent  the  truth  so  strongly 
emphasised  by  all  the  great  theologians,  and  especially  by 
S.  Thomas  Aquinas,  that  the  Sacred  Host  is  essentially 
the  Sacrament  of  Union.| 

The  same  Christ  appears  in  heaven  above  and  in  the 
Blessed  Sacrament  on  earth  below.  The  whole  court  of 
heaven  is  gathered  round  the  Incarnate  Son  of  God  in  his 
character  of  Victim.  In  the  picture,  even  God  the  Father 
and  the  Holy  Ghost  are  only  there,  so  to  speak,  on  account 
of  Him.  What  is  seen  below  is  the  same  as  that  which 
appears  above ;  the  only  difference  is  that  on  earth  the 
great  mystery  is  an  object  of  Faith,  hidden  under  a 
visible  symbol.  But  in  the  symbol,  the  Incarnate  Son 
of  God  is  contained,  and,  consequently,  in  virtue  of  the 

*  Joy  past  compare,  gladness  unutterable, 
Imperishable  life  of  peace  and  love, 
Exhaustless  riches  and  unmeasured  bliss. 

— Dante,  Parad.,  xxvii.,  79. 

t  KUGLER-BURCKHARDT,  Gesch.  der  Malerei,  loc.  di. 
X  Cf.   passages   on  the  Eucharist   in   the  Index,  0pp.  S.  Thomae, 
XXV.,  197-203.   Parmse,  1873. 


STUDIES   FOR  THE   FRESCO.  579 

unity  of  the  Godhead,  the  Father  also  and  the  Holy 
Ghost,  and  with  them  the  whole  company  of  angels  and 
saints. 

Thus  the  Disputa  represents  the  supreme,  the  absolutely 
perfect  unity ;  above,  the  apotheosis  of  all  the  love  and  life 
of  the  old  and  new  covenants  in  the  vision  of  Him  who  is 
the  Triune  God  ;  below,  the  glorification  of  all  human 
knowledge  and  art  is  the  faith  in  the  real  presence  of  the 
Redeemer  in  the  Most  Holy  Sacrament.  This  is  the 
central  force  which  impels  and  harmonises  all  the  powers 
of  heaven  and  earth ;  all  the  waters  of  life  above  as  well 
as  below  the  firmament  well  up  from  this  source,  and 
pulsate  "  as  in  a  spherical  vessel  from  centre  to  circle,  and 
so  back  from  circle  to  centre."  * 

There  is  no  other  work  of  Raphael's  for  which  so  many 
preparatory  studies  and  outlines  seem  to  have  been  made 
by  the  artist  as  for  this  one  ;  the  well-known  sketches  at 
Windsor,  Oxford,  the  Louvre,  Frankfort  and  Vienna,  bear 
witness  to  the  conscientious  industry  which  he  bestowed 
on  this  great  composition,  refusing  to  be  content  with 
anything  short  of  his  very  best.f 

These  preliminary  studies  are  the  only  materials  that  we 
have  for  the  history  of  the  production  of  the  frescoes  in 
the  Camera  della  Segnatura ;  Jovius  merely  mentions  that 

*  Dante,  Parad.,  xiv.,  1-2. 

t  The  essential  plan  of  the  picture  remained  unaltered  from  the 
beginning.  See  Springer,  I.,  215  seq.,  ed.  2,  in  his  admirable  treatise 
on  the  sketches  and  studies  for  all  Raphael's  frescoes  in  the  Camera 
della  Segnatura.  Cf.  also  MuNTZ,  Raphael,  335  seq.,  ed.  2,  where  a 
number  of  copies  are  given,  and  Grimm,  Raphael,  304  seq.  The  fullest 
enumeration  of  the  sketches  is  to  be  found  in  Ruland'S  Windsor 
Catalogue.  For  Raphael's  love-sonnets  written  on  the  papers  on  which 
some  of  the  studies  are  drawn,  see  MtJNTZ,  Raphael,  366  seq.,  ed.  2  ; 
and  Fagan,  Raifaele  S.,  his  Sonnet  in  the  Brit.  Museum.  London, 
1884. 


58o  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Raphael  painted  this  Stanza  by  order  of  Julius  II.,*  and 
an  inscription  states  that  they  were  finished  in  the  year 
151 1.  A  marvellously  short  space  of  time  when  we  con- 
sider that  the  artist  could  not  have  begun  his  work  till  the 
late  Autumn  of  1508,  and  had  besides  to  master  the 
technique  of  fresco  painting.!  The  subjects  of  the  pictures 
were  selected  by  Julius  II.,  but  for  the  details  of  their  treat- 
ment no  doubt  the  young  artist  consulted  many  of  the 
learned  men  then  in  Rome ;  and  it  is  a  mistake  to  exag- 
gerate their  influence  to  such  an  extent  as  to  make  it 
appear  that  in  his  frescoes  he  merely  carried  out  the  pro- 
gramme traced  for  him  by  a  committee  of  scholars.^ 

In  the  Parnassus,  humanistic  conceptions  are  clearly 
traceable.  It  is  thought  by  some  that  the  influence  of 
Christian  humanism  is  perceptible  in  the  Disputa,§  but  it  is 
more  probable  that  all  the  most  useful  suggestions  for  this 
picture  would  have  come  to  Raphael  from  the  official 
theologians  of  the  Papal  Court,  the  Dominicans.  Though 
Humanists  were  by  no  means  excluded  from  the  Vatican 
circle  the  old  mystical  and  scholastic  theology  of  the  Domin- 
icans as  formulated  in  the  Summa  of  S.  Thomas  still 
held  its  place  there  as  the  recognised  system. ||  Raphael 
represents  the  teaching  of  S.  Thomas  Aquinas  idealised 
by  his  art. 

The  wide-spread  acquaintance  with  mystical  theology 
in  those  days,  in  artistic  circles  quite  as  much  as  elsewhere, 

*  Pinxit  in   Vaticano  nee  adhuc  stabili  autoritate   cubicula  duo   ad 
praescriptum  Julii  Pontificis.     Jovius,  Raphaelis  Urbinatis  vita, 
t  Cf.  MiJNTZ,  Raphael,  364  seq. 

I  Nevertheless  I  do  not  agree  with  Wickhoff,  64,  in  denying  or 
reducing  to  a  minimum  the  assistance  obtained  by  Raphael  from  con- 
versations with  scholars  and  poets. 

§  Kraus,  Camera  della  Segnatura,  29  seq. 

II  I  am  indebted  to  the  kindness  of  my  friend,  Mgr.  Schneider  for 
these  observations  and  the  following  paragraph. 


RAPHAEL   AND   THE   DOMINICANS.  58 1 

is  an  element  in  the  Art  of  the  time  which  has  not  been  at 
all  sufficiently  appreciated  or  understood,  nor  yet  another 
point  connected  with  this,  namely,  the  almost  universal 
familiarity  with  the  Liturgy  of  the  Church.  We  find  the 
proof  of  this  amongst  the  Latin  races  of  the  present  day, 
where  the  common  people  know  and  readily  follow  the 
Liturgical  offices  of  the  Church.  In  his  picture  of  the 
Transfiguration,  Raphael  exactly  follows  the  Office  for  the 
Feast  (6th  August).  It  is  not  too  much  to  say  that  he  was 
already  perfectly  acquainted  with  the  Office  of  the  Blessed 
Sacrament,  as  compiled  by  S.  Thomas  Aquinas,  and  that 
in  any  consultations  with  Dominican  theologians,  the 
knowledge  which  he  already  possessed  made  it  easy  for 
him  at  once  to  grasp  and  follow  whatever  thoughts  they 
suggested.  A  letter  of  his  of  the  year  15 14  shews  that  he 
was  acquainted  with  Dominicans,  and  had  received  assist- 
ance from  them.  He  was  then  employed  in  building  S. 
Peter's,  and  in  his  letter  he  says  that  the  Pope  had  given 
him  the  learned  Dominican,  Fra  Giocondo  da  Verona  to 
help  him,  and  impart  to  him  any  secrets  of  architecture 
that  were  known  to  him,  "  in  order,"  Raphael  adds,  "  that  I 
may  perfect  myself  in  the  Art."  The  Pope  sends  for  us 
every  day  to  talk  for  a  while  about  the  building.*  This 
shews  the  way  in  which  artists  worked  together  in  the 
Vatican  ;  and  we  may  well  assume  that  the  same  sort  of 
thing  went  on  in  regard  to  the  series  of  pictures  in  the 
Camera  della  Segnatura.f 

Now  we  come  to  the  question  of  the  use  to  which  this 

*  Cf.  Springer,  Raphael  und  Michelangelo,  II.,  102,  ed.  2.  Knack- 
FUSS,  Raphael,  73.  This  letter  shews  that  it  is  a  mistake  to  say  that 
Raphael  consulted  no  one.  We  gather  also  from  Cerroti,  Le  pitture 
delle  Stanza  Vaticane,  13  (Roma,  1869),  that  he  had  learned  friends  with 
whom  he  discussed  his  work. 

t  Cf.  Hagen,  127  se^.,  136  seg. 


582  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

room,  by  the  Pope's  command,  so  magnificently  and  at  the 
same  time  so  seriously  and  thoughtfully  decorated,  was 
to  be  put  ?  Here,  too,  we  can  only  guess.  A  recent 
historian*  has  put  forward  the  following  hypothesis,  which 
seems  a  highly  probable  one.  It  is  certain  that  the 
division  of  all  the  activities  of  the  human  mind  into  the 
four  branches  of  Theology,  Philosophy,  Poetry  and  Juris- 
prudence was  the  Pope's  idea.  He  was  not  a  learned  man, 
and  would  have  proposed  nothing  but  what  was  simple 
and  obvious.  Now  this  division  exactly  corresponds  with 
the  plan  proposed  by  Nicholas  V.,  the  first  of  the  papal 
M^cenas,  for  the  arrangement  of  his  library,  and  which 
was  in  vogue  at  that  time  for  libraries  generally  through- 
out Italy.  Pietro  Bembo,  in  a  letter  written  in  February, 
15 13,  mentions  the  private  library  of  Julius  II.,  which, 
though  containing  fewer  volumes  than  the  large  Vatican 
library,  was  superior  to  it  both  in  the  value  of  the  books, 
and  in  its  fittings;  he  especially  praises  its  convenient  situa- 
tion, its  splendid  marble  friezes,  its  paintings,  and  the  seats 
in  the  windows.-]-  From  a  contemporaneous  work  by 
Albertini  on  the  objects  of  interest  in  Rome,  and  from  a 
payment,  connected  with  it,  we  gather  that  this  library  was 
in  an  upper  storey  of  the  Vatican,  and  was  richly  decorated.J 

*  WiCKHOFF,  Die  Bibliothek  Julius  II.,  49  seq.,  whose  extremely 
interesting  remarks,  developing  a  hint  thrown  out  some  time  ago  by 
Springer,  Raphael  und  Michelangelo,  II.,  102,  ed.  2, 1  reproduce  in  the 
text.  Klaczko's  objections  (in  the  Rev.  des  Deux  Mondes,  1894,  Vol.  124, 
243  seq.)  to  WickhofiPs  view  do  not  seem  to  me  convincing.  It  will  be 
interesting  to  see  what  Fabre,  in  his  long-promised  work  on  the 
Vatican  Library,  has  to  say  about  WickhofFs  hypothesis. 

t  Bembus,  Epist.  famil.,  lib.  V.,  c.  8.  See  ROSCOE,  II.,  47  ;  WiCK- 
HOFF, 55. 

\  Albertini,  ed  Schmarsow,  34,  35  (Est  praeterea  bibliotheca  nova 
secreta  perpulchra,  ut  ita  dicam,  Pensilis  Julia,  quam  tua  beatitudo  con- 
struxit  signisque  planetarum  et  coelorum  exornavit).      The  bill  is  in 


THE   LIBRARY  OF  JULIUS   II.  583 

When  we  remember  that  in  those  days  books  were  not 
kept  in  book-shelves  fixed  against  the  wall,  but  in  detached 
presses  (as  in  the  Laurentian  library  in  Florence),  there 
would  be  no  difficulty  in  supposing  that  the  Camera  dcUa 
Segnatura  was  intended  to  receive  the  private  library  of 
Julius  II.  The  number  of  books  represented  in  the  variou.s 
frescoes  also  makes  for  this  hypothesis.  "  All  the  allegorical 
figures  on  the  ceiling  hold  books  in  their  hands,  except 
Justice,  who  carries  the  sword  and  scales.  Angels  float 
down  from  heaven,  bringing  the  Gospels,  the  most  vene- 
rated books  of  the  Christians,  to  the  faithful.  The  four 
P'athers  of  the  Church  on  either  side  of  the  Blessed  Sacra- 
ment are  all  either  reading  or  writing  books.  Books  lie 
about  on  the  ground,  and  nearly  all  the  figures,  both  lay 
and  clerical,  to  whom  names  can  be  assigned,  are  identified 
by  means  of  books.  All  the  votaries  of  the  Muses  in  Par- 
nassus hold  rolls  or  writings  in  their  hands ;  and  in  the 
School  of  Athens  there  is  hardly  a  figure  that  is  not  pro- 
vided with  a  book  or  tablets.  All  are  composing,  writing, 
reading,  expounding,  so  that  nothing  that  has  to  do  with 
the  processes  and  products  of  authorship  is  left  without 
sensible  representation  in  some  form.  Even  the  two  great 
philosophers  are  only  designated  by  their  most  famous 
books.  The  Pope  holds  a  book  containing  the  laws  of  the 
Church,  and  Justinian  is  represented  with  his  celebrated 
Pandects.  In  the  monochromes  under  the  Parnassus,  on 
one  side  books  are  being  discovered  in  a  marble  sarco- 
phagus, and  on  the  other  books  are  being  burnt.     There  is 

Crowe- Cavalcaselle,  Raphael,  IL,  p.  9,  note;  Wickhoff,  56,  note 
I,  is  of  opinion  that  Albertini's  signa  planetarum  et  coelorum  were  not 
paintings  of  the  stars,  but  Astrological  tables.  The  ^Reports  of 
F.  Brognolo,  printed  in  the  Appendix,  N.  43  and  44,  and  which  I  found 
in  the  Gonzaga  Archives  at  Mantua  seem  to  indicate  that  Albertini  meant 
globes  with  stars  painted  on  them. 


584  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

no  other  series  of  paintings  in  the  world  in  which  literature 
takes  so  prominent  a  place  ;  almost  everything  in  some 
way  refers  to  it."  * 

It  seems  as  if  in  the  supposition  that  this  room  was 
intended  to  contain  the  Pope's  private  library,  we  ought 
also  to  include  a  further  one,  namely,  that  Julius  II.  meant 
besides  that,  to  make  it  his  study  and  business  chamber, 
which  the  name  Camera  della  Segnatura  (chamber  for 
signatures) j-  seems  to  imply.  "These  paintings  were  to 
form  the  adornment  of  the  room  in  which  the  Head  of  the 
Church  was  to  sign  the  papers  and  provisions  drawn  up 
for  the  good  of  the  Church.  Theology  and  Philosophy, 
Poetry  and  Law,  representing  revealed  truth,  human  reason, 
beauty  and  Christian  order,  were  to  preside  from  the  walls 
over  his  decisions  and  their  final  sanction.''^ 

But  whatever  view  may  be  adopted  as  to  the  distinction 
of  the  Camera  della  Segnatura,  there  should  not  be  any 
doubt  as  to  the  meaning  and  connection  of  the  frescoes 
in  it.  An  utterly  unfounded  theory  has  been  recently 
put  forward,  and  stoutly  defended,  that  these  frescoes 
represent  "  the  humanistic  ideal  of  free  thought,  and  were 
intended  as  a  monumental  expression  of  the  achievements 
of  the  unaided  human  intellect."  Far  from  doing  homage 
to  the  Church  and  the  Papacy,  their  purpose  is  declared 
to  be  "  to  exhibit  the  superiority  of  free  thought  and 
investigation  apart  from  revelation  in  matters  of  religion 
to  the  ecclesiasticism  of  the  time."§ 


*  WiCKHOFF,  54. 

t  Cf.  the  passage  from  Paris  de  Grassisin  MuNTZ,  Les  Historiens,  132. 

X  Gsell-Fels,  Rom,  II.,  611,  ed.  2.  Similar  passages  in  KUHN, 
Roma,  264  seq.  (Einsiedeln,  1878),  and  others. 

§  See  Hettner,  i  90-1 91  (1879).  It  is  unnecessary  for  me  to  under- 
take the  refutation  of  Hettner's  theological  and  philosophical  errors,  as 
that  has  been  already  admirably  done  by  Wickhoff.     I  find  that  the 


MEANING   OF   THE   FRESCOES.  585 

In   all    these   suppositions    modern    ideas   are  imported 
into  the  age  of  Raphael,  and  a  single  glance  at  the  frescoes 

notion  of  its  being  the  intention  of  Raphael  and  Julius  II.  to  reduce 
Theology  to  the  same  level  with  Philosophy,  was  first  started  by  Ranke, 
in  his  Essays  "  Zur  Geschichte  Italienischer  Kunst"  in  the  German 
periodical,  "  Nord  und  Siid,"  of  April  and  May,  1878.  Here  he  says: 
"That  Julius  II.  should  not  only  have  permitted,  but  actually  ordered 
the  representation  in  the  Stanze  of  secular  as  well  as  religious  know- 
ledge, was  the  outcome  of  the  spirit  of  secularisation,  and  sympathy  with 
the  higher  aims  of  mere  humanity,  which  had  taken  hold  of  the  Papacy  " 
(Ranke,  Werke,  LI.  and  LII.,  280).  Villari,  in  his  equally  wrong- 
headed  remarks,  Machiavelli,  II.,  22  seq.,  and  partly  also  WOLTMANN- 
WOERMANN,  II.,  642,  and  PeRATE,  550,  553,  take  very  much  t^e  same 
line  as  Hettner,  and  the  explanation  given  by  Gregorovius,  VIII.,  1 59- 
1 60,  ed.  3,  is  entirely  mistaken.  The  premises'  from  which  he  draws  his 
conclusions  are  false  to  begin  with.  He  writes  :  "  The  narrow  concep- 
tions of  the  Mediaeval  Church  had  by  that  time  been  broken  through. 
A  Pope  was  bold  enough  to  reject  the  teaching  of  the  Fathers,  which 
consigned  all  heathens,  whatever  their  virtues,  or  their  reputation  in  the 
world,  to  damnation.  In  contemplating  the  picture  on  the  walls  of  his 
room,  Julius  II.  must  undoubtedly  have  taken  much  more  pleasure  in 
resting  his  eyes  on  Apollo  and  the  Muses,  on  Socrates  and  Archimedes, 
than  on  the  uninteresting  figures  of  the  Patriarchs  and  Saints.  The 
pictures  in  the  Pope's  chamber  already  expressed  what  twenty  years  later 
one  of  the  most  audacious  of  the  reformers  ventured  to  utter  in  words. 
In  his  confession  of  faith,  Zwingli  drew  a  strange  picture  of  the  future 
assembly  of  all  the  Saints  and  heroes  and  virtuous  men.  Abel  and 
Henoch,  Noe  and  Abraham,  Isaac  and  Jacob,  were  placed  side  by  side 
with  Hercules,  Theseus,  and  Socrates,  with  Aristides  and  Antigonus, 
Numa,  Camillus,  Cato  and  Scipio,  and  not  a  single  good  or  honest  man  was 
excluded  from  the  presence  of  God."  There  are,  of  course,  passages  in 
the  Fathers  in  regard  to  the  salvation  of  the  heathen,  that  lend  themselves 
to  misconstruction,  but  none  have  ever  asserted  that  all  non- Christians  are 
inevitably  lost.  S.  Augustine  expressly  says  that  all  heathens,  even  those 
who  lived  before  Christ  came,  are  not  condemned.  The  Fathers  of  the 
Church  looked  upon  Pagan  philosophy  and  science  as  coming  from  God, 
and  said  that  theologians  ought  to  avail  themselves  of  it.  See  Pastor, 
Hist.  Popes,  I.,  7  seq.  (Engl,  trans.).  As  to  the  opinions  of  the  Fathers  in 
regard  to  heathen  philosophy,  see  Kleutgen,  Theologie  der  Vorzeit,  IV., 


586  HISTORY  OF  THE   POPES. 

ought  to  shew  how  untenable  they  are.  But  it  may  be 
asked  whether  the  devotion  of  an  equal  space  to  the 
glorification  of  Philosophy  with  that  which  is  given  to 
Theology  does  not  indicate  an  approach  to  the  anti- 
ecclesiastical  spirit  of  the  heathen  Renaissance?  The 
answer  is  that  this  view  is  excluded  by  Raphael  himself 
in  the  manner  in  which  he  treats  the  two  subjects.  In 
the  first  place,  there  is  a  tone  of  solemnity  in  the  Disputa 
which  distinguishes  it  from  all  the  other  frescoes,  and  its 
arrangement,  being  divided  into  two  halves,  one  heavenly 
and  the  other  earthly,  is  quite  different  from  that  of  any 
other.  Again,  in  the  composition  of  the  School  of  Athens 
there  is  no  parallel  to  that  concentration  on  a  single  central 
point,  dominating  and  animating  the  whole,  which  we 
find  in  the  Disputa.*  Plato  and  Aristotle  appear  as  the 
greatest  of  the  philosophers,  each  attended  by  a  separate 
band  of  disciples ;  each  represent  a  different  point  of 
view.  The  various  philosophical  schools  are  all  more  or 
less  distinctly  divided  from  each  other,  and  their  independ- 
ence and  exclusiveness  is  marked  on  the  left  side  of  the 
picture  by  the  separate  stone  seats  occupied  by  the 
different  teachers.f     Finally,  there  is  a  striking  difference 

143  ^^Q-i  ed.  .2  (Munster,  1873).  It  is  absurd  to  say  that  Raphael  broke 
through  the  "  narrow  conceptions  of  the  Mediseval  Church,"  by  adopting 
a  broader  point  of  view  than  that  of  the  Fathers.  The  correspondence 
which  Gregorovius  supposes  between  the  Stanze  and  the  passage  in 
Zwingli  is  purely  imaginary. 

*  JANSSEN  in  a  letter  from  Rome,  written  23rd  Feb.,  1864,  to  Frau  von 
Sydow  (as  yet  not  printed)  remarks  :  "The  so-called  Disputa  ought 
really  to  be  named  the  Concordia,  for  here  all  the  interest  is  concentrated 
in  one  central  point ;  the  School  of  Athens,  where  all  the  elements  are 
scattered,  is  really  the  Disputa.  The  central  point  in  the  ancient  world 
was  not  truth  but  beauty,  and  thus  Apollo  forms  the  centre  of  the  repre- 
sentation of  Poesy." 

t  PaSSAVANT,  I.,  149  ;  MiJLLNER,  167  ;  GrUYER,  98  seq. 


THE   CHURCH   AND   THE   SCIENCES.  587 

also  in  the  scene  of  the  picture.  "  Here  we  see  no  opening 
heaven  shewing  a  Divine  victim,  the  Redeemer  of  the 
world  ;  no  supernatural  ray  descends  on  earth  to  enlighten 
the  human  intelligence."*  Here,  as  the  inscription  above 
denotes,  the  human  intellect  wrestles  alone  with  the  nature 
of  things,  striving  after  knowledge.  Plato,  the  philosopher 
of  natural  theology,  signifies  its  incompetence  by  pointing 
upwards.  By  placing  the  Disputa  opposite,  Raphael 
emphasises  the  contrast  between  it  and  this  intellectual 
laboratory.  Here  truth  is  laboriously  sought  for,  there 
it  is  seen  embodied  and  perfect,-]-  and  in  a  perfection  unlike 
anything  that  the  ancient  world  ever  dreamed  of  as 
possible,  a  fulness  beyond  all  human  thought  or  imagina- 
tion, such  as  could  only  have  been  conceived  by  the  bound- 
less love  of  the  Saviour  of  mankind  who  chose  under  the 
simple  form  of  bread  to  remain  with  his  own,  "  even  to  the 
consummation  of  the  world." 

In  another  way  also  the  artist  marked  the  relation 
between  the  sciences  and  the  Church  from  his  point  of 
view,  namely  in  the  Grisailles  or  imitation  bas-reliefs 
painted  in  monochrome,  which  fill  the  space  underneath 
the  two  sides  of  the  Parnassus.  "The  two  doors  at  the 
end  of  the  long  sides  of  the  room  open  immediately 
against  the  wall  and  then  these  grisailles  are  the  first 
things  to  catch  the  eye  on  entering  the  room  and  the  last 
to  be  looked  at  on  leaving  it.  This,  therefore,  was  the 
most  suitable  place  for  the  prologue  and  epilogue  of  the 

*  KUHN,  Roma,  267  ;    Frantz,  II.,  730. 

t  Ranke,  in  his  Werke,  LI. -LI  I.,  280,  has  well  described  the  contrast 
between  the  School  of  Athens  and  the  Disputa.  "There,  men  learn  by 
research,  by  observation,  and  reflection,  here,  knowledge  comes  through 
prayer  by  revelation  and  illumination."  Cf.  Gruyer,  loc.  cit.,  and 
HaGEN,  137,  138.  "  In  the  Disputa,  knowledge  is  bestowed  from  above, 
not  discovered,  as  in  the  School  of  Athens." 


588  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

whole  series  expressing  their  general  idea  and  purport." 
Although  these  reliefs  are  some  of  Raphael's  best  and 
most  finished  work,  they  remained  for  a  long  time  little 
observed  or  understood.  It  is  only  quite  recently  that 
the  attention  they  deserve  has  been  bestowed  upon  them, 
and  that  it  has  been  discovered  that  the  painter  intended 
them  to  illustrate,  in  the  person  of  Sixtus  IV,,  Julius  II.'s 
uncle,  the  attitude  of  the  Papacy  towards  the  true  and  the 
false  learning.*  The  burning  of  the  books  was  perfectly 
intelligible  to  Raphael's  contemporaries,  for  the  censorial 
edicts  of  1 49 1  and  150 if  must  certainly  have  been  in  force 
in  Rome  as  well  as  elsewhere. 

*  The  interpretation  till  then  accepted  of  these  reliefs,  was  that  they 
represented  Alexander  the  Great  commanding  Homer's  works  to  be 
placed  in  the  grave  of  Achilles,  and  the  Emperor  Augustus  forbidding  the 
burning  of  the  ^neid.  See  Plattner,  II.,  i,  348.  WiCKHOFF,  60,  how- 
ever, proves  this  to  be  manifestly  incorrect.  He  has  the  merit  of  having 
been  the  first  to  discover  the  true  meaning  of  these  reliefs,  and  their  con- 
nection with  Julius  II.  Briefly  stated,  his  account  of  them  is  as  follows  : 
Julius  II.'s  uncle,  Sixtus  IV.,  had  a  high  reputation  as  a  theological 
writer.  Immediately  after  his  election,  a  Roman  printer,  Giovanni 
Filippo  de  Lignamine,  published  a  work  by  the  new  Pope,  on  the  Precious 
Blood  and  the  Power  of  God  (see  Vol.  IV.  of  this  work,  p.  208).  In  the 
dedication  in  which  he  praises  the  services  rendered  by  Sixtus  IV.  to 
the  Christian  Faith  by  his  writings,  he  says  :  "  Not  only  the  Fathers  of 
the  Church,  but  the  heathen  also  acted  as  you  have  done.  For  when  a 
sarcophagus  filled  with  Greek  and  Latin  books  was  found  in  the  field  of 
Lucius  Petilius,  the  Consuls,  P.  Cornelius  and  Baebius  Pamphilus  com- 
manded that  the  Latin  books  should  be  carefully  preserved,  but  the 
Greek,  which  were  thought  to  contain  things  contrary  to  religion,  were 
burnt  by  order  of  the  Senate.  This  narrative  is  to  be  found  in  the  first 
book  of  Valerius  Maximus."  From  this,  Wickhoff,  63,  infers,  "  There 
can  be  no  doubt  that  Julius  II.  desired  Raphael  to  paint  the  story  with 
which  his  uncle's  name  had  been  thus  flatteringly  associated.  On  one 
side  we  see  the  two  Consuls  examining  the  sarcophagus  and  its  interesting 
contents  ;  on  the  other,  the  burning  of  the  dangerous  philosophical  books." 

t  See  Vol.  V.  of  this  work,  p.  346,  and  supra,  p.  155. 


THE   HOLY   SEE   AND   CULTURE.  589 

Thus  it  is  clear  that  far  from  being  intended  to  serve  as 
a  glorification  of  the  false  humanistic  ideal,  the  purpose 
of  the  frescoes  in  the  Camera  della  Segnatura  was  to 
illustrate  the  four  great  intellectual  forces,  Theology, 
Philosophy,  Poetry,  and  Jurisprudence  in  their  relation  to 
the  Church.  It  was  in  the  alliance  with  intellectual  culture 
that  the  Church  and  the  Papacy  had  won  all  their  beneficent 
victories  and  consolidated  their  power.  It  was  this  alliance, 
the  true  connection  between  intellectual  culture  and 
Christendom  and  the  Church,  which  was  celebrated  in 
Raphael's  picture.  The  Holy  See  had  always  maintained 
that  secular  knowledge  could  only  attain  its  highest  perfec- 
tion under  the  guidance  of  the  organ  of  Divine  wisdom, 
the  Church,  by  whose  authority  alone  it  could  be  preserved 
from  errors  and  distorted  growths.  Like  all  the  artistic 
undertakings  of  Julius  II.,  the  frescoes  in  the  Camera  della 
Segnatura  are  a  development,  not  only  of  the  designs  of 
the  great  Popes  of  the  early  Renaissance,  Nicholas  V.  and 
Sixtus  IV.,  but  also  of  the  ancient  traditions  of  the  Papacy 
itself.  The  grand  and  simple  fundamental  idea  in  them  all 
belongs  to  Julius  II. ;  the  genius  displayed  in  realising  it  in 
Art  is  Raphael's  and  has  helped  to  immortalise  the  painter's 
name.  In  thisvvonderful  poem  in  four  cantos,  painted  on 
the  walls  of  the  Stanze,  the  artist  spreads  out  before  us  the 
whole  and  vast  regions  of  human  knowledge  and  achieve- 
ment as  seen  from  the  point  of  view  of  the  Church,  and  in 
the  light  of  revelation.  "  All  material  things  are  presented 
as  mirrored  in  and  vivified  by  a  creative  spirit  which  is 
at  once  poetical  and  real,"  while  "  the  reproduction  of 
the  life  of  the  classical  world  is  combined  in  perfect 
harmony  with  the  dearest  and  deepest  apprehension  of 
Christian  principles.  And  all  the  abstract  thought  is 
bathed  in  an  atmosphere  of  beauty  and  grace  which  yet 
never  detracts   from  the  grave  and  intellectual  character 


590  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

of  the  pictures."*  One  is  glad  to  think  that  one  of  the 
saddest  passages  in  the  Pope's  life  may  have  been  soothed 
in  a  measure  by  the  sight  of  these  frescoes. 

On  the  27th  of  June,  151 1,  he  had  returned  to  his  capital 
powerless  and  ill  and  harassed  with  anxieties,  both  political 
and  ecclesiastical.  On  the  eve  of  the  Feast  of  the  Assump- 
tion Michael  Angelo's  roof-paintings  in  the  Sistine  had 
been  unveiled.f  The  frescoes  in  the  Camera  della  Segna- 
tura  must  have  been  completed  very  soon  after  this,  as  the 
inscription  states  that  they  were  finished  in  the  eighth 
year  of  Julius  II.'s  Pontificate,  and  this  closed  on  the  26th 
of  November,   1511  + 

*  Reumont,  III.,  2,  390;  cf.  Count  A.  Sz^csen's  appreciative 
remarks,  Raffael,  558  seq.,  and  Burckhardt,  Cicerone,  701,  .ed.  6, 
who  justly  commends  the  "admirable  harmony  between  form  and 
thought"  in  the  frescoes  of  the  Camera  della  Segnature.  "Even  the 
best  of  the  Quattrocento  masters  allowed  themselves  to  be  led  astray  by 
their  too  great  love  of  accessories  (superfluous  figures  and  draperies,  too 
much  ornament  in  backgrounds,  etc.),  the  number  of  details  neutrahsed 
each  other,  over-characterisation  everywhere  spread  the  accent  over  the 
whole  picture.  Fra  Bartolomeo,  the  best  master  of  composition,  next  to 
Leonardo,  moved  in  too  wide  a  circle,  and  his  feeling  for  life  outstripped 
his  grasp  of  form.  In  Raphael  the  forms  are  always  beautiful,  noble  and 
animated,  and  yet  subordinate  to  the  effect  of  the  whole.  No  details 
obtrude  themselves  ;  the  artist  knows  how  fragile  is  the  life  of  his  great 
symbolical  subjects,  and  how  easily  the  whole  can  be  killed  by  a  too 
prominent  detached  figure.     And  yet  his  single  figures  are  studied  with 

a  care  that  no  other  painter  had  ever  bestowed  upon  them The 

management  of  the  draperies,  their  movement,  the  sequence  of  colours 
and  lights,  are  a  never-ending  source  of  enjoyment." 

t  See  siipra^  pp.  362,  519. 

I  Cf.  Crowe,  Raphael,  II.,  'j']  seg.,  who  thinks  that  the  Sistine  and 
the  Camera  della  Segnatura  were  uncovered  at  the  same  time ;  but  we 
have  no  certainty  that  this  was  the  case.  See  supra^  p.  520.  As  the 
years  of  a  Pontificate  are  reckoned  from  the  Pope's  coronation  that  is  the 
date  of  their  conclusion.  (Crowe  mistakenly  supposes  that  they  are 
counted  from  the  election.) 


RAPHAEL'S   EASEL   PICTURES.  59I 

The  surpassingly  admirable  manner  in  which  Raphael 
had  executed  the  Pope's  first  commission,*  determined 
Julius  to  entrust  the  painting  of  the  next  room,  called  from 
the  subject  of  its  chief  fresco  the  Stanza  d'Eliodoro,  to  him 
also.f  While  these  large  works  were  in  progress  Raphael 
also  executed  several  smaller  commissions  for  easel-pictures, 
amongst  others  some  for  Julius  II.,  one  of  which  was  a 
Madonna  for  S'*  Maria  del  Popolo,  the  favourite  church  of 
the  Rovere.J  Unfortunately,  this  picture  has  disappeared 
since  the  year  161 5.  From  copies  of  it  we  see  that  it 
represents  the  waking  from  sleep  of  the  Divine  child.  The 
Madonna  is  holding  up  the  veil  which  had  covered  him, 
and  looks  thoughtfully  down  at  her  son  while  he  stretches 
his  little  arms  towards  her.  S.  Joseph  is  in  the  background 
leaning  on  a  staff.§  He  also  ordered  a  portrait  of  himself 
for  the  same  church.  Vasari  praises  this  picture  as  being 
-such  an  excellent  likeness  that  it  inspires  as  much  awe  as 
if  the  Pope  himself  were  present,  and  it  still  gives  one  the 
impression  of  being  a  characteristic  portrait.  The  Pope  is 
sitting  in  an  armchair,  his  smooth,  almost  white,  beard  falls 
over  a  red  velvet  cape  which  he  wears  over  his  shoulders, 
and  the  expression  of  his  face  is  thoughtful  and  care-worn. 

*  We  have  no  information  as  to  the  payment  received  by  Raphael  for 
these  frescoes,  but  as  v^'e  know  that  later  he  had  1200  gold  ducats  for 
each  picture  in  the  Stanza  dell'  Incendio,  we  may  suppose  that  the  same 
sum  would  have  been  that  paid  for  those  in  the  Camera  deUa  Segnatura. 
In  that  case  it  would  amount  to  rather  over  ^200  for  each  Stanza.  See 
Kraus,  4  ;  MiJNTZ,  Raphael,  326,  ed.  2. 

t  Apparently  this  was  decided  before  the  Camera  della  Segnatura  was 
finished.  This  seems  probable,  because  in  the  sketch  of  the  subject  from 
the  Apocalypse,  for  which  the  Mass  of  Bolsena  was  afterwards  substituted, 
the  Pope  is  represented  without  a  beard.  See  MiJNTZ,  Raphael,  374, 
and  Chronique  des  Arts  (1883),  p.  277. 

t  See  Pastor,  Hist.  Popes,  IV.,  456  (Engl,  trans.). 

§  See  Springer,  191  ;  Crowe,  Raphael,  II.,  84  seg,and  Vogelin 
Die  iMadonna  von  Loreto.     Zurich,  1870. 


392  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Many  copies  of  this  picture  were  taken  almost  immedi- 
ately. Florence  possesses  two,  one  in  the  Uffizi  and  the 
other  in  the  Palazzo  Pitti,  but  critics  are  not  agreed  as  to 
which  is  the  original.* 

Raphael  also  executed  a  likeness  of  the  Pope's  favourite, 
Cardinal  Alidosi.f 

It  is  difficult  to  understand  how  the  artist  could  have 
found  time  to  paint  so  many  other  pictures  in  addition  to 
all  his  work  for  the  Pope.  There  is  quite  a  long  list  of 
exquisite  Madonnas,  all  bearing  dates  falling  within  the 
reign  of  Julius  II.  The  markedly  religious  tone  in  all  the 
pictures  of  this  period  is  noteworthy.^ 

This  is  specially  the  case  in  the  two  wonderfully  beautiful 
Madonnas  painted  by  him  in  the  last  year  of  the  Pontiff's 
life ;  the  Madonna  di  Foligno,  now  in  the  Vatican  gallery, 
and  the  Madonna  del  Pesce.  Like  the  Stanza  d'Eliodoro 
both  these  pictures  bear  marks  of  the  influence  of  Sebastiano 
del  Piombo :  Raphael  made  no  secret  of  his  admiration  for 
the  style  of  this  master. §  The  Madonna  di  Foligno  was  a 
votive  picture  ordered  by  Julius  II.'s  secretary  and  friend, 
Sigismondo  de'  Conti,  who  is  represented  in  it  kneeling  with 

*  Passavant,  II.,  14,  and  Lubke,  Raffaelwerk,  Text,  57,  are  in 
favour  of  the  one  in  the  Pitti  Palace.  Woltmann,  II.,  648;  BURCK- 
HARDT,  Cicerone,  659,  ed.  4,  and  Thausing  in  Sybels  Hist.  Zeitschr. 
(N.  F.),  IX.,  365,  prefer  that  in  the  Uffizi.  Lubke,  Malerei,  II.,  289, 
and  MiJNTZ,  502,  are  uncertain.  Springer,  191,  says:  "Probably 
those  who  disbelieve  either  to  be  originals  will  turn  out  right  in  the 
end."  The  one  in  the  Uffizi  has  been  damaged,  that  in  the  Pitti  Palace, 
though  perhaps  a  Venetian  copy,  is  a  very  good  one  and  gives  the 
best  idea  of  the  original.  Julius  II.,  in  December,  15 11,  also  put  up  a 
portrait  of  himself  in  the  Church  of  S.  Marcello ;  See  Sanuto,  XIIL, 

350- 

t  See  Arch.  St.  dell'  Arte,  IV.,  328  seq. 
X  Knackfuss,  58. 
§  Springer,  211. 


RAPHAEL'S   MADONNA   DEL   PESCE.  S9S 

folded  hands  before  the  Queen  of  Heaven,  "  She  is  en- 
throned on  a  cloud  encircled  with  a  golden  glory  and 
attended  by  angels."  It  is  the  ideal  of  what  a  Christian 
Altar-piece  should  be,  and  is  in  perfect  preservation,  its 
colours  as  brilliant  as  when  it  was  first  painted.* 

The  Madonna  del  Pesce,  now  in  the  Museum  at  Madrid, 
is  also  a  perfect  gem  of  religious  art.  It  was  a  thank- 
offering  for  the  cure  of  an  affection  of  the  eyes.  In 
depth  of  expression  it  is  rightly  judged  to  be  one  of 
Raphael's  masterpieces,  if,  indeed,  it  is  not  in  this  respect, 
and  also  in  the  harmony  of  its  colouring,  the  most  beautiful 
of  all  his  works.  "  The  brilliant  red  of  S.  Jerome's  robe  is 
enhanced  in  its  effect  by  the  brownish  yellow  of  the  lion  at 
the  feet  and  the  more  orange  tint  of  Tobias'  tunic,  and 
these  two  shades  combine  harmoniously  with  the  subdued 
ruby  tones  of  the  Angel's  dress.  These  warm  colours  are 
tempered  by  the  blue  of  the  Virgin's  mantle,  while  this 
again  is  relieved  by  the  tender  carnations  of  the  infant 
Christ ;  and  the  sage  green  curtain  in  the  background  makes 
all  the  figures  stand  out  as  in  a  brilliant  light.  The 
Madonna  del  Pesce  might  be  designated  as  a  chord  of 
the  three  primary  colours."  f 

The  colossal  Isaias,  attended  by  two  angels,  which  is 
now  in  the  church  of  S.  Agostino  in  Rome  was  painted  by 
Raphael  for  another  member  of  the  Papal  Court,  the 
German  Prelate,  John  Goritz.| 

*  See  Keppler  in  Hist.  Polit.  BL,  96,  38  se^.,  and  SPRINGER,  212 
seg. ;  cf.  Knackfuss,  65,  and  Rio,  Michel-Ange  et  Raphael,  150. 

t  Springer,  214-215. 

\  This  fresco  is  now  in  a  sadly  decayed  state.  See  SPRINGER,  256 
seq.^  on  Michael  Angelo's  influence  which  is  unmistakeable  in  this  work. 
See  also  Knackfuss,  65.  The  fragment  of  a  replica  of  the  boy  on  the 
left  side  of  the  painting,  now  in  the  Accademia  di  S.  Luca,  in  Rome,  was 
originally  part  of  the  decoration  of  an  escutcheon  of  JuHus  IL  in  the 
Vatican.     G.   Dehio  considers  this  fresco  older  than  the  Isaias,  and 

VOL.   VL  2  Q 


594  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Raphael  also  executed  some  paintings  in  the  corridors 
leading  from  the  Vatican  to  the  Belvedere,  but  they  have 
all  perished,  and  there  is  no  record  of  their  subjects.  All 
we  know  of  them  is  from  an  account  which  shews  that  he 
received  a  payment  for  work  done  there.* 

All  this  time  his  work  in  the  Stanza  d'Eliodoro  was 
never  interrupted,  but  he  was  obliged  to  avail  himself 
largely  of  the  assistance  of  his  pupil  Giulio  Romano. 

Baldassare  Peruzzi  had  already  finished  the  decoration 
of  the  ceiling  of  this  room  and  painted  scenes  from  the  Old 
Testament  in  the  four  divisions  of  the  vaulting.f  Raphael 
retained  these  decorations  v;ithout  any  alteration,  and  set 
to  work  at  once  on  the  walls.  The  Pope  died  before  this 
Stanza  was  completed,  and  it  is  not  recorded  whether  the 
selection  of  the  subjects  in  the  frescoes  was  his.  It  seems, 
however,  extremely  probable  that  this  was  the  case,  as  the 
first  of  the  series  and  the  one  that  is  most  carefully  finished, 
is  the  so-called  Mass  of  Bolsena,  and  Julius  and  his  family 
had  shewn  a  special  interest  in  the  incident  which  it  com- 
memorates. 

It  represents  a  miracle  which  occurred  at  Bolsena  in  the 
year  1263,  and  created  an  immense  impression  at  the  time. 

thinks  that  the  latter  was  not  Raphael's  work,  but  that  of  one  of  his 
pupils,  perhaps  Giulio  Romano. 

*  See  this  account,  dated  Dec.  15 13,  MiJNTZ,  Gaz.  des  Beaux  Arts, 
XX.  (1879),  183,  n.  4.     See  also  MuNTZ,  Raphael,  387. 

t  L.  Gruner,  Raffael's  Deckengemalde  der  Stanza  dell'  Eliodoro, 
(Dresden,  1875).  Crowe-Cavalcaselle  have  shewn  that  the  decorativ^e 
framework  which  encloses  the  pictures  in  the  triangular  spaces  of  the 
vaulting  is  by  Peruzzi.  Wickhoff  was  the  first  to  deny  that  Raphael  or 
his  pupils  had  any  hand  in  the  painting"  of  the  frescoes  themseh^es,  and  to 
ascribe  the  whole  ceiling  to  Peruzzi.  The  influence  of  Michael  Angelo 
can  be  traced  in  the  exaggerated  style  of  these  compositions.  DOLL- 
MAYER,  in  Liitzow's  Zeitschrift  (1890),  N.  F.  I.,  292-299,  confirms 
WickhofiPs  opinion  that  they  are  entirely  by  Peruzzi. 


THE   MASS   OF   BOLSENA.  595 

A  German  priest  had  been  greatly  tormented  with  doubts 
as  to  the  truth  of  the  doctrine  of  Transubstantiation,  and 
had  earnestly  prayed  for  a  sign  that  should  dispel  them. 
His  prayer  was  granted  in  the  church  of  S"^  Cristina  at 
Bolsena,  where  he  had  stopped  in  the  course  of  a  pilgrimage 
to  Rome.  While  he  was  saying  Mass  there,  at  the  moment 
of  consecration,  drops  of  Blood  oozed  from  the  Sacred 
Host  in  sufficient  quantity  to  stain  the  Corporal.*     This 

*  Hettner,  222-223,  writes  as  follows  on  the  "  Mass  of  Bolsena "  : 
"  Raphael  grounded  his  picture  on  the  legend  which  had  been  the  cause 
of  the  institution  of  the  Festival  of  Corpus  Christi,  but  he  idealised  it  and 
gave  it  a  deeper  significance.  The  original  story  is  to  be  found  in 
Raynaldus,  ad  an.  1264,  n.  26.  When  in  1264  Pope  Urban  IV.  was 
residing  at  Orvieto,  a  priest  of  Bolsena  had  allowed  a  drop  from  the 
chalice,  after  consecration,  to  fall  upon  the  Corporal.  In  order  to 
conceal  his  carelessness  he  folded  the  Corporal  so  as  to  cover  the  stain, 
but  it  penetrated  through  all  the  folds,  and  on  each  one  left  an  impres- 
sion of  the  Sacred  Host.  The  account  adds  that  the  Pope  had  instituted 
the  Feast  of  Corpus  Cliristi  in  honour  of  this  miracle  with  the  special 
object  of  reviving  the  Faith  in  those  who  had  grown  lukewarm,  and  to 
confound  the  ungodly  and  confirm  the  piety  of  the  good.  Raphael 
shews  the  thoughtful  character  of  his  genius  by  the  alteration  which  he 
makes  in  the  legend,  making  the  priest  himself,  a  sceptic,  now  convinced 
by  the  miracle,  and  representing  the  whole  occurrence  as  taking  place 
in  the  presence,  and  through  the  intercession  of  the  Head  of  the  Church, 
He  thus  obtains  a  clear  and  weU-marked  incident  as  his  subject,  and  a 
splendid  dramatic  contrast  between  the  startled  and  ashamed  expression 
of  the  young  priest  and  the  trustful  composure  of  the  Pope,  which  is  not 
to  be  found  in  the  original  legend.  And  as  usual,  in  order  to  connect 
his  picture  with  present  events,  he  has  given  the  Pontiff  the  features  of 
Julius  II.  S.  Kinkel  has  written  a  very  valuable  article  (MOSAIK,  161 
seq.\  in  which  he  has  collected  together  a  number  of  legends  which  have 
been  founded  on  works  of  art.  That  of  the  Mass  of  Bolsena  may  be 
added  to  these  ;  its  original  form  is  now  quite  forgotten,  and  it  is  only 
known  as  idealised  bj^  Raphael."  On  closer  examination  the  whole  of 
this  account  turns  out  to  be  imaginary.  Raynaldus,  of  course,  does  give 
the  story  as  Hettner  tells  it,  quoting  it  from  S.  Antoninus,  who  died  in 
1459  ;    but  there  is  a  long  inscription  still  preserved  in  the  church  of 


596  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

miracle  constituted  one  of  the  motives  which  had  deter- 
mined Urban  IV.  to  institute  the  Feast  of  Corpus  Christi. 
By  his  orders  the  rehc  was  brought  to  Orvieto,  and  the 
splendid  Cathedral  there  was  built  mainly  for  it.  The 
Bishop  of  Orvieto  gave  a  magnificent  silver  tabernacle, 
ornamented  with  twelve  pictures  in  enamel,  representing 
the  history  of  the  miracle,  to  contain  the  relic*  In  1477 
Sixtus  IV.  granted  various  Indulgences  to  promote  the 
veneration  of  the  relic  and  the  building  of  the  Cathedral.f 
Julius  II.  when  staying  at  Orvieto  on  his  first  expedition 
against  Bologna  had  manifested  great  reverence  for  this 
relic.J     Probably  it  was   on   this   occasion  that  the  Pope 

S.  Cristina  in  Bolsena,  which  was  first  published  by  Pennazzi,  Istoria 
deir  Ostia  che  stillo  sanguine  in  Bolsena  (Montefiascone,  1731) ;  then 
in  Italian  in  1890  under  the  title,  Istoria  del  Miracolo  Eucaristico  di 
Bolsena  (Milano),  and  again  in  Latin,  compared  with  the  original  by  Canon 
Battaglini,  in  the  periodical  "Divus  Thomas"  (Placentiae,  1884),  A"  V 
n.  3.  This  inscription  was  written  after  the  canonisation  of  S.  Thomas 
Aquinas,  who  is  called  Beatus,  and  before  the  Indulgence  Bull  of 
Martin  V.,  and  is  therefore  much  earlier  than  S.  Antoninu'^.  It  ex- 
plicitly states  that  the  priest  (Quidam  sacerdos  Theutonicus,  therefore 
not  a  Bohemian  as  some  later  accounts  say)  had  doubts  of  the  doctrine 
of  Transubstantiation.  Battaglini  considers  the  date  to  be  1 338.  The 
story  of  the  legend  in  the  text  follows  this  inscription,  which  is  in  the 
wall  adjoining  the  Altare  del  Miracolo.  Benedict  XIV.,  who  mentions 
the  miracle  of  Bolsena  in  his  work,  De  festis  Jesu  Christi,  III.,  773 
(Wirceb.,  1747),  does  not  seem  to  have  known  it.  The  account  of  this 
miracle  is  a  notice  written  in  1466,  edited  by  Francesco  di  Mauro, 
Narrazione  del  Miracolo  di  Bolsena  o  Corporale  di  Orvieto.  Estratto 
dal  Propugnatore,  Vol.  I.,  corresponds  with  the  inscription. 

*  See  impression  in  the  Nuovo  Giomale  Arcadico,  3  Serie,  Vol.  II. 
Milano,  i8go. 

t  Bull  of  Sixtus  IV.,  in  the  Bull.  Ord.  Praedic,  III.,  555-556. 

J  Paris  de  Grassis,  ed.  Frati,  35,  says  7th  Sept.,  1506:  Vesperis 
finitis  Papa  cum  alba  more  solito  vestitus  et  in  gestatorio  cum  cappello 
ad  ecclesiam  S.  Mariae  delatus  apud  altare  benedixit.  Primo  enim 
adoravit  corporale  sanguine  Christi  aspersum  quod  super  altare  maiori 


ATTITUDE   OF  JULIUS   II.  597 

determined  to  have  the  miracle  represented  at  some  time  in 
the  Vatican,  and  it  is  not  unlikely  that  he  bound  himself 
by  a  vow  to  honour  the  relic  in  some  special  manner.  Now 
that  all  that  had  then  been  won  seemed  lost,  he  may  have 
remembered  this  promise. 

Raphael's  sympathetic  grasp  of  his  patron's  thought 
is  as  striking  as  the  power  with  which  he  gives  artistic 
expression  to  the  Pope's  indomitable  confidence  in  the 
Divine  assistance,  and  firm  conviction  that  all  pusillani- 
mous doubters  will  be  put  to  shame.  In  this  picture  the 
difficulties  to  be  overcome  in  the  shape  of  the  space  at  his 
disposal  were  even  greater  than  those  which  he  had  to 
conquer  in  the  Parnassus,  and  here  as  there  he  triumphed 
over  all  and  turned  his  limitations  into  additional  beauties. 
There  is  no  trace  of  any  sort  of  constraint,  and  the  com- 
position of  the  picture  arranges  itself  quite  naturally,  over 
and  on  each  side  of  the  window  which  cuts  into  the  wall. 
Above  its  arch  is  the  choir  of  a  church  with  its  altar, 
approached  on  each  side  by  a  broad  flight  of  steps.  In 
this  case  the  window,  not  being  in  the  middle  of  the  wall, 

locatum  fuit,  turn  surgens  incensum  posuit  in  thuribulo,  quod  cum 
na\'icula  prior  diaconorum  ministravit,  cum  illud  prior  praesbyterorum 
ministrare  debuerit  ;  et  deinde  rursus  genuflexus  incensavit ;  postea 
conversus  ad  corporale  stans  benedixit  dicens  :  Sit  nomine  Domini 
benedictum,  &c.  Hitherto  this  connection  between  Sixtus  IV.  and 
Juhus  II.,  and  the  "Mass  of  Bolsena"  has  not  been  noticed  by  any  of 
those  who  have  sought  to  interpret  the  picture.  It  does  away  with  the 
suppositions  put  forward  by  FoRSTER,  I.,  317,  and  Pi;RATE,  564,  and 
also  with  Hettner,  222,  and  conjecture  that  it  had  to  do  with  the  Lateran 
Council,  and  was  meant  to  represent  "  this  internal  conflict  and  victory 
within  the  bosom  of  the  Church."  Against  Hettner,  cf.  Frantz,  II.,  732 
seq.^  and  SPRINGER,  I.,  264,  339  seq.^  ed.  2.  Springer  has  shewn  very 
clearly  that  it  is  impossible  to  substantiate  any  direct  connection 
between  these  frescoes  and  the  Lateran  Council ;  but  as  all  these  writers 
have  overlooked  the  special  relation  between  Julius  II.  and  the  Bolsena 
relic  none  of  their  explanations  are  satisfactory. 


598  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

but  thrust  very  much  into  the  left  corner,  was  still  more 
difficult  to  manage ;  however,  Raphael  had  met  this  by 
broadening  the  steps  on  the  right  side  so  as  to  preserve 
the  sense  of  symmetry.*  A  balustrade  completely  encloses 
the  choir,  and  the  spacious  aisles  of  a  Renaissance  church 
constitute  the  background.  The  priest  stands  on  the  left  side 
of  the  altar  holding  the  Sacred  Host  in  one  hand,  and  in  the 
other  the  Blood-stained  Corporal.  In  the  expression  of  his 
face,  astonishment,  shame,  contrition  and  fear  are  admirably 
combined.  From  the  other  side  of  the  balustrade  two 
youths  gaze  intently  at  the  miiracle  in  mute  amazement. 
Three  acolytes  are  kneeling  with  lighted  candles  behind 
the  priest,  a  fourth  in  a  bright  coloured  cassock  raises 
his  hand  with  an  expressive  gesture  as  though  to  say, 
"  See  !  it  is  indeed  as  the  Church  teaches !  "  The  emotions 
of  the  beholders,  which  in  the  nearer  figures  are  those  of 
subdued  awe  and  reverence,  become  more  mingled  with 
excitement  in  the  groups  of  people  who  are  pressing  up 
the  steps  on  the  left  side  to  get  a  better  view.  Some 
are  bowing  low  in  adoring  prayer,  others  pointing  with 
outstretched  hands  to  the  marvel,  others  triumphantly 
thanking  God  for  this  confirmation  of  the  faith  of  the 
Church.  "  The  perception  and  apprehension  of  the  miracle 
seems  to  flow  like  a  spiritual  stream  through  the  throng 
of  worshippers  on  the  left  and  is  just  beginning  to  reach 
the  women  and  children  sitting  on  the  lowest  steps."-|-  In 
marked  contrast  to  all  this  flutter  and  stir  is  the  perfect 
calm  of  the  Pope  and  those  who  are  with  him  on  the  right- 
hand  side.  The  contrast  is  further  emphasised  by  the 
steady  flame  of  the  altar  lights  on  this  side  while  on  the 
left  they  are  flickering  and  bent  as  though  by  a  strong 
wind.     The    Pope,    unmistakeably   Julius    II.,    kneels   on 

*  LiJBKE,  II.,  393  ;  BuRCKHARDT,  Cicerone,  668,  and  Springer,  199. 
t  BURCKHARDT,  Cicerone,  668. 


LA   STANZA   D'ELIODORO.  599 

a  prie-Dieu,  exactly  opposite  the  priest,  with  his  face  turned 
towards  the  altar  absorbed  in  adoration.  His  whole 
attitude  expresses  the  assured  faith  which  befits  the  Head 
of  the  Church ;  there  is  not  a  trace  of  emotion  or  surprise.* 
No  doubt  the  master  had  often  seen  the  old  Pope  in  this 
attitude  during  those  critical  days  when  the  Church  was  in 
such  jeopardy.  Two  Cardinals  and  two  other  clerics  appear 
on  the  steps  below,  in  attendance  on  the  Pope,  and  on 
the  lowest,  some  soldiers  of  the  Swiss  Guard  kneel  in  silent 
wonder ;  near  them  is  the  Pope's  Sedia  gestatoria.  One 
of  the  Cardinals,  generally  thought  to  be  Raffaele  Riario, 
has  his  hands  crossed  on  his  breast  and  is  looking  at  the 
priest  with  a  grave  and  stern  expression.  The  other,  with 
folded  hands,  adores  the  miraculous  Blood ;  both  heads  are 
most  impressive.  "  For  skilful  composition,  truth  and  depth 
of  expression,  and  magnificence  in  colouring,  perhaps  the 
picture  is  the  best  of  the  whole  series.f 

In  its  homage  to  the  Blessed  Sacrament,  towards  which 
Julius  n.  had  a  special  devotion|  the  Mass  of  Bolsena  is 
the  connecting  link  between  this  Stanza  and  the  adjoining 
one,  which  contains  the  Disputa ;  in  representing  a  miracle 
it  strikes  the  key-note  of  the  Stanza  d'Eliodoro  where  the 
fundamental  idea  is  the  representation  of  God's  unfailing 
care  for  His  Church  by  instances  of  His  direct  intervention 
for  her  support  and  protection  in  the  hour  of  need.  The 
history  of  the  reign  of  Julius  H.  was  a  signal  illustration 
of  the  truth.  In  the  Summer  of  151 1,  when  Italy  seemed 
at  the  mercy  of  the  French,  how  wonderfully  the  storm 

*  Frantz,  II.,  735,  rightly  contests  Springer's  assertion  that  the 
absence  of  all  emotion  or  excitement  in  the  Pope  and  the  group  sur- 
rounding him,  was  due  only  to  artistic  considerations,  and  holds  that  it 
is  essential  to  the  historical  meaning  of  the  picture. 

t  WOLTMANN,  II.,  647. 

X  Cf.  supra,  p.  447. 


600  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

blew  over!  Again  in  August  when  the  Pope  was  to  all 
appearances  dying,  he  seemed  to  have  been  miraculously 
restored  in  order  to  negotiate  the  Holy  League  by  means 
of  which  the  unity  of  the  Church  was  saved.  Although 
the  battle  was  not  yet  wholly  won,  Julius  II. — and  Raphael 
with  him — had  the  fullest  confidence  that  God  would  not 
withdraw  from  his  Vicar  that  protection  which  as  yet  had 
never  failed.  And  they  were  not  mistaken.  The  schismatic 
Council  melted  away,  Louis  XII.  was  driven  back,  and 
French  domination  in  Italy  was  annihilated.  It  was  most 
natural  that  the  artist,  even  without  having  received  any 
special  orders  to  this  effect  should  have  embodied  in  his 
pictures  the  thoughts  which  were  filling  the  mind  of  the 
Pope  and  all  his  surroundings  at  the  time.  Thus  this 
series  of  paintings  sprung  out  of  the  historical  events  of 
the  day,  and  spoke  a  language  that  all  could  understand. 

The  fresco  which  occupies  one  of  the  longer  walls  of  the 
Stanza,  and  gives  it  its  name,  portrays  the  miraculous 
expulsion  of  Heliodorus  from  the  Temple,  narrated  in  the 
2nd  Book  of  Machabees.*  Heliodorus,  the  treasurer 
of  the  Syrian  King,  Seleucus  Philopater,  was  sent  to  carry 
off  the  contents  of  the  treasury  of  the  Temple  of  Jerusalem. 
When,  however,  he  attempted  to  execute  his  commission 
"the  spirit  of  the  Almighty  God  gave  a  great  evidence 
of  his  presence,  so  that  all  that  had  presumed  to  obey  him, 
falling  down  by  the  power  of  God,  were  struck  with  fainting 
and  dread.  For  there  appeared  to  them  a  horse  with  a 
terrible  rider  upon  him,  adorned  with  a  very  rich  covering, 
and  he  ran  fiercely  and  struck  Heliodorus  with  his  fore-feet, 
and  he  that  sat  upon  him  seemed  to  have  armour  of  gold. 

*  We  gather  that  the  subject  was  chosen  by  Julius  himself  from  the 
fact  that  while  he  was  still  a  Cardinal,  he  had  bought  a  piece  of  tapestry 
representing  the  history  of  Heliodorus.  See  MuNTZ,  Raphael,  284- 
285,  ed.  2. 


COMPOSITION    OF   THE   FRESCO.  6oi 

Moreover,  there  appeared  two  other  young  men  beautiful 
and  strong,  bright  and  glorious,  and  in  comely  apparel, 
who  stood  by  him  on  either  side  and  scourged  him  without 
ceasing,  with  many  stripes.  And  Heliodorus  suddenly 
fell  to  the  ground,"  ....  and  they  acknowledged  "the 
manifest  power  of  God  ....  but  the  Jews  praised  the 
Lord  because  He  had  glorified  his  place."  (Machabees,  II., 
3,  24  seq?)  Raphael,  following  the  text  of  Scripture  as 
closely  as  possible  has  represented  the  scene  "  with 
marvellous  dramatic  power." 

The  spectator  looks  into  the  nave  of  the  Temple.  At 
the  altar  in  the  background,  lighted  by  the  seven-branched 
candlestick,  the  High  Priest  is  praying;  behind  him  the 
other  priests  and  a  number  of  people  who  display  by 
their  gestures  their  surprise  and  joy  at  this  manifestation 
of  the  mighty  hand  of  God.  The  centre  of  the  foreground 
is  purposely  left  empty  that  nothing  may  distract  the 
eye  from  the  sudden  irresistible  inrush  of  the  heavenly 
emissaries  who  burst  in  at  the  right-hand  corner.*  The 
horseman  in  his  golden  armour,  and  the  swift  youths 
with  their  sweeping  scourges  have  just  arrived  in  time. 
Heliodorus  is  dashed  to  the  ground,  the  urn  full  of  coins 
has  slipped  from  his  hands,  the  fore-feet  of  the  horse  are 
almost  upon  him,  his  terrified  attendants  strive  in  vain  to 
escape.  "The  poetic  feeling  in  this  group  is  marvellous, 
we  see  as  it  were  the  lightning  of  God's  wrath  blasting 
the  sinner;  opposite,  on  the  other  side,  there  is  a  charm- 

*  Springer,  i,  272,  ed.  2.  It  has  been  said  by  a  first-rate  judge  of 
art  that  Raphael  "has  never  produced  anything  more  magnificent  than 
this  group  of  the  heavenly  rider  with  the  two  youths  at  his  sides  and  the 
stricken  spoiler  and  his  attendants."  "  The  foreshortening  of  the  horse- 
man and  Heliodorus  has  been  justly  admired,  but  that  is  only  one 
detail  in  the  masterly  expression  of  rapid  movement  in  the  whole  group 
of  figures."  BURCKHARDT,  Cicerone,  667;  cf.  also  RiO,  IV.,  474  j,?^.; 
Gruyer,  Chambres,  197  seq. 


602  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

ing  cluster  of  women  and  children  in  various  attitudes 
of  surprise  and  alarm."*  Behind  these  figures,  "  reminis- 
cences of  which  may  be  traced  like  echoes  in  various 
forms  through  all  later  art,"-]-  Julius  II.  appears,  borne 
in  his  chair  high  above  the  heads  of  the  throng  of  people 
into  this  Old  Testament  assembly.^  Calm  and  dignified, 
he  seems  to  recognise  in  God's  dealings  with  His  people 
under  the  old  covenant  the  same  mighty  hand  which  had 
so  unexpectedly  discomfited  the  schismatic  Cardinals 
and  brought  the  Anti-Papal  Council  to  naught :  "  For 
he  that  hath  his  dwelling  in  the  heavens,  is  the  visitor 
and  protector  of  that  place  and  he  striketh  and  de- 
stroyeth  them  that  come  to  do  evil  to  it."  (Machabees, 
n.,  3,  39-)§ 

*   KUGLER-BURCKHARDT,  590. 

t  BURCKHARDT,  Cicerone,  /oc.  cit. 

X  The  second  bearer  of  the  chair  is  generally  supposed  to  be  Giulio 
Romano.  K.  Brun  in  the  Gott.  Gel.  Anz.  (1882),  I.,  543,  thinks  he  is 
B.  Peruzzi.  The  man  in  a  black  robe  walking  beside  it  is  designated  in 
an  inscription  as  Jo.  Petro  de  Foliariis  Cremonens.  In  all  the  des- 
criptions of  the  Stanze,  he  is  still  spoken  of  as  the  "Secretario  de' 
Memoriali,"  although  more  than  a  hundred  years  ago,  Vairani,  II., 
109,  had  pointed  out  that  under  Julius  II.  this  office  was  filled  by  Giano 
Coricio.  Whatever  authentic  information  we  have  about  the  persons 
represented  by  Raphael,  which  is  little  enough,  is  all  to  be  found  in 
Vairani. 

§  Bellori,  if  I  am  not  mistaken,  was  the  first  to  say  that  the  fresco  of 
Heliodorus  referred  to  the  expulsion  of  the  French  from  Italy,  and  his 
view  has  been  adopted  by  all  those  who  look  upon  these  paintings  as 
intended  to  illustrate  the  history  of  the  times  (Springer  denies  this). 
See  Grimm,  Michelangelo,  I.,  396,  ed.  5  ;  MiJNTZ,  n^)-,  ed.  2,  and  P^RAT^, 
564.  But  if  the  overthrow  of  Heliodorus  is  held  to  represent  the  defeat 
of  Louis  XII.'s  army  (and  MiNGHETTI,  120,  has  recently  declared  this 
to  be  quite  certain)  the  difficulty  arises  that  the  fresco  on  the  opposite 
wall,  the  meeting  of  Attila  and  Leo  I.,  portrays  a  precisely  similar 
incident,  and  there  is  no  doubt  that  both  paintings  belong  to  the  time 
of  Julius  11.  {cf,  following  note).     I  therefore  venture  to  think  that  the 


RAPHAEL'S   MEETING   OF   LEO   L   WITH   ATTILA,     603 

Julius  II.  died  before  the  two  succeeding  frescoes  were 
finished,  but  the  subjects  of  them  were  certainly  chosen 
during  his  lifetime.* 

On  the  opposite  wall  to  Heliodorus,  Raphael  painted 
the  meeting  of  Leo  I.  with  Attila.f  This  famous  inter- 
view (at  which,  according  to  the  mediaeval  legend,  S.  Peter 
appeared  in  the  heavens  above  the  head  of  his  successor) 
took  place  on  the  banks  of  the  Mincio  near  Mantua  ;| 
Raphael  transfers  it  to  the  vicinity  of  Rome.  To  the 
left,  in  the  distance,  we  see  some  ruins,  a  basilica  and 
the  Colosseum,  while,  on  the  right,  the  flames  rising  from 
a  burning  village,  denote  the  approach  of  the  barbarians. 
Calm  and  assured  in  his  trust  in  God  the  Pope  comes 
forward  to  meet  Attila,  attired  in  full  Pontificals  and 
sitting  on  his  white  palfrey  attended  by  his  peaceful 
followers.  Julius  II.  being  dead  by  this  time,  the  Pontiff 
is  represented  with  the  features  of  Leo  X.  The  majestic 
forms  of  the  Princes  of  the  Apostles  appear  with  drawn 
swords  in  the  sky  over  his  head.  A  halo  of  light  pro- 
first  picture  is  meant  to  refer  to  the  internal,  and  the  second  to  the 
external  enemies  who  were  threatening  the  Church  and  the  Papacy  in 
the  reign  of  Julius  II.  Many  of  the  details  in  the  subjects  themselves 
seem  to  corroborate  this  view.  On  Heliodorus  as  a  recognised 
representative  of  violators  of  churches,  see  C.  A.  Lapide  and  Calmet. 

*  The  Oxford  drawing  shews  that  this  was  the  case  with  regard  to 
that  of  Attila.  Cf.  SPRINGER,  I.,  275,  ed.  2  ;  MiJNTZ,  377,  ed.  2,  and 
Robinson,  A  Critical  Account,  225-227  ;  see  also  Hettner,  218.  In 
regard  to  the  fresco  of  S.  Peter,  see  next  page. 

+  "  Undeniably  one  of  the  master-pieces  of  fresco  painting,"  RUMOHR, 
III.,  122.  Cf.  Overbeck'S  opinion  of  it  in  a  letter  of  the  year  1810,  in 
the  Allg.  Conserv.  Monatschrift  (1887),  II.,  1283. 

%  GriSAR,  in  Wetzer  und  Welte's  Kirchenlexikon,  VII.,  1751  seq.^ 
ed.  2.  Cf.  Gregorovius,  Gesch.  d.  Stadt  Rom,  I.,  187,  ed.  3,  who  re- 
marks that  "  Leo  X.  was  at  that  juncture  the  representative  of  human 
culture,  which  was  preserved  from  destruction  in  those  days  by  the 
spiritual  power  of  the  Church." 


604  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES. 

ceeds  from  them,  which  sheds  a  soft  radiance  over  the 
troop  of  priests,  and  fills  the  barbarian  horsemen  with 
terror  and  dismay.  The  heavens  are  darkened,  violent 
gusts  of  wind  sweep  back  the  banners,  the  startled  horses 
rear  and  turn.  The  eyes  of  the  terror-stricken  soldiers  are 
fixed  on  the  apparition,  while  their  leader  has  dropped  the 
reins,  and  turns  his  horse  to  fly,  with  an  involuntary 
pressure  of  the  knee;  even  then,  in  the  Summer  of  15 12, 
were  the  "  barbarian "  hordes  of  France  put  to  flight, 
to  be  again  more  completely  routed  and  expelled  in  the 
following  year  at  Novara.* 

The  subject  on  the  other  wall  over  the  window  and 
opposite  to  the  Mass  of  Bolsena  is  the  narrative  in  the 
Acts  of  the  Apostles  (chap,  xn.)  of  S.  Peter's  deliver- 
ance from  prison.  The  composition  of  the  picture  is 
perhaps  not  quite  so  perfect  as  that  of  the  other,  but 
nevertheless  it  is  full  of  beauties.  In  all  the  pictures  in 
the  Stanza  d'Eliodoro  Raphael  had  paid  more  attention 
to  effects  of  colour  than  he  did  in  the  Camera  della 
Segnatura,  In  the  splendid  colouring  of  the  Mass  of 
Bolsena  the  influence  of  the  Venetian,  Sebastiano  del 
Piombo,   can    be   already  traced.f      In  the    fresco  of  the 

*  The  drawing  at  Oxford  (see  supra,  p.  603,  note*)  shews  that 
Raphael's  first  thought  was  to  celebrate  the  event  of  1 5 1 2  ;  in  it,  the  Pope 
is  Julius  II.  not  Leo  X.  But  when  the  final  rout  took  place  in  the  Sum- 
mer of  1513,  the  fresco  was  altered  to  refer  to  this  event  instead.  The 
Poet,  Gyraldi,  in  his  Hymnus  ad  divum  Leonem  Pont.  Max.  (printed 
by  ROSCOE,  III.,  606-609),  ^Iso  celebrates  the  expulsion  of  the  French 
under  Leo  X.  Cf.  Attila  and  Leo  I.;  in  the  poem,  the  scene  is  correctly 
laid  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Mantua.  Perhaps  we  may  gather  from  this 
that  the  plan  of  this  fresco  dates  from  the  time  of  Julius  II. 

t  Cf.  RUMOHR,  III.,  103  seq.;  Knackfuss,  Raphael,  71  ;  LUTZOW, 
Italiens  Kunstschatze,  447,  and  especially  Springer,  L,  280  seq.,  ed.  2, 
who  shews  that  Michael  Angelo  had  nothing  to  do  with  the  modifications 
in  Raphael's  style,  which  are  to  be  observed  in  the  Stanza  d'Eliodoro. 


RAPHAEL'S   DELIVERANCE   OF   S.    PETER.  605 

Deliverance  of  S.  Peter,  which  emphatically  summarises 
the  leading  idea  of  the  pictures  in  the  Stanza  d'Ehodoro^ 
namely,  the  futility  of  all  human  attacks  upon  the 
divinely  protected  Church  and  her  head,  Raphael  has 
to  some  extent  resorted  to  effects  produced  by  light, 
but  with  great  sobriety  and  restraint.  To  the  left  of 
the  window,  on  a  flight  of  steps,  we  see  the  terrified 
guard  who  have  discovered  that  their  prisoner  is  gone. 
Moonlight  and  torchlight  are  combined  in  this  scene. 
In  the  centre  there  is  a  grating  so  cleverly  painted  that 
we  feel  as  if  we  could  lay  hold  of  it.  Through  this  the 
interior  of  the  prison  is  visible,  lighted  by  the  radiant 
angel  who  is  in  the  act  of  waking  the  Apostle  while  the 
soldiers  to  whom  he  is  chained  still  sleep.  "  This  scene 
is  marvellously  effective  in  its  simplicity  and  reality  and. 
its  glamour  of  supernatural  light."  *  On  the  right  S. 
Peter  appears  again,  passing  out  between  the  sleeping 
guards  and  led  by  the  angel,  from  whom  all  the  light 
proceeds.  This  heavenly  form  and  the  spiritual  radiance 
which  it  diffuses  are  rightly  considered  to  be  one  of  the 
artist's  most  divine  inspirations.-j- 

This  fresco  is  most  commonly  thought  to  be  meant  as  an 
allusion  to  the. escape  of  Cardinal  de'  Medici  (afterwards 
Leo  X.)  out  of  the  hands  of  the  French  after  the  Battle  of 
Ravenna.  As  according  to  the  inscription  on  the  window 
this  picture  was  not  finished  till   15 14,  this  interpretation 

Sebastiano  del  Piombo  was  brought  to  Rome  by  Agost.  Chigi  in  1511. 
See  Arch.  Stor.  d.  Soc.  Rom.,  IL,  61,  68. 

*  LuBKE,  IL,  297.  Cf.  also  Grimm,  in  the  Preuss.  Jahrb.,  LL,  199, 
and  Gruyer,  Chambres,  233  seq. 

t  LiJTZOW,  Italien  Kunstschatze,  447.  Jovius  in  his  Life  of  Raphael 
most  strangely  supposes  the  subjects  of  this  picture  to  be  the  Resurrec- 
tion, and  the  Guard  to  be  that  around  the  Saviour's  tomb.  Szecsen, 
Raffael,  539,  thinks  this  mistake  is  due  to  the  effects  of  light,  which 
eclipse  the  actual  subjects  of  the  picture. 


6o6  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

may  very  possibly  have  been  current  even  at  the  time :  but 
it  seems  more  probable  that  the  design  dates  back  to 
Julius  II.  and  really  has  reference  to  him,*  S.  Pietro  in 
Vincoli  was  the  titular  church  of  Julius  II.  when  he  was 
a  Cardinal;  and  on  the  23rd  June,  15 12,  he  made  a  special 
pilgrimage  to  it  to  thank  God  there  for  his  victory  over  the 
French.  It  seems  exceedingly  probable  that  the  Court 
painter  was  commissioned  to  employ  his  art  in  the  idealisa- 
tion of  this  great  triumph  which  was  so  gorgeously  celebrated 
at  that  time.t  Thus  the  Mass  of  Bolsena  would  com- 
memorate the  prayer  of  the  Pope  before  the  relic  at  Orvieto 
in  1506,  at  the  commencement  of  his  great  enterprise  for 
the  reconstitution  of  the  States  of  the  Church,  and  the 
deliverance  of  S.  Peter,  his  thanksgiving  in  15 12,  at  the  end 
of  his  course  for  the  overthrow  of  the  French  before  the 
altar  of  S.  Pietro  in  Vincoli.| 

The  whole  fabric  of  the  enchanted  realm  of  Raphael's 
Vatican  pictures  rests  upon  one  simple  but  far-reaching 
thought.  It  is  that  of  the  greatness  and  triumph  of  the 
Church  ;  her  greatness  in  her  wisdom,  and  her  centre,  the 

*  Grimm,  Raffael,  386,  is  quite  certain  that  this  is  so.  I  see  also  that 
he  has  noticed  the  relation  of  this  subject,  and  the  titular  Church  of 
Julius  II.  At  the  same  time,  in  his  Michelangelo,  I.,  404,  ed.  5,  he  still 
adheres  to  the  false  interpretation  of  Card,  de'  Medici's  flight  (cf.  supra, 
p.  415),  and  is  not  aware  of  the  further  connection  with  the  rejoicings 
in  June  15 12,  which  I  have  been  the  first  to  point  out.  Hettner,  219, 
had  already  raised  objections  to  the  supposition  that  Card.  Medici  was  in- 
tended, but  only  on  general  grounds.  My  explanation  restores  the  con- 
nection between  the  deliverance  of  S.  Peter  and  the  other  frescoes  which 
Springer,  I.,  264,  ed.  2,  seeks  and  cannot  find.  He  thinks  it  strange 
that  no  Pope  appears  in  this  picture,  but  this  is  quite  natural  as  S.  Peter 
was  the  first  Pope. 

t  As  the  celebration  was  closed  by  a  grand  illumination  (see  si/pra, 
p.  417),  it  is  not  unlikely  that  this  may  have  suggested  the  employment  of 
effects  of  light  in  one  of  the  frescoes  to  Raphael. 

I  Cf.  st{/>ra,  p.  416. 


JULIUS   II.   AND   RAPHAEL.  607 

Papacy ;  her  triumph  in  the  wonderful  ways  in  which  God 
continues  to  guard  and  protect  the  successor  of  him  to 
whom  the  promise  was  given.  "  Thou  art  Peter  and  on 
this  rock  I  will  build  my  Church,  and  the  gates  of  hell  shall 
not  prevail  against  it." 

It  seems  a  remarkable  providence  of  God  that  Julius  II., 
the  founder  of  the  great  Cathedral  of  the  world,  should 
have  been  led  to  charge  the  greatest  of  Christian  painters, 
with  the  task  of  illustrating  the  doctrine  of  the  most  Holy 
Sacrament,  which  was  on  the  point  of  being  so  passionately 
controverted,  and  the  unfailing  Divine  protection,  which 
ever  preserves  the  Church  and  the  Head  at  the  very 
moment  when  the  most  terrible  storm,  which  the  Papacy 
in  its  course  of  nearly  two  thousand  years  has  ever  had  to 
encounter,  was  about  to  burst  upon  it. 


APPENDIX 


UNPUBLISHED    DOCUMENTS 


EXTRACTS    FROM    ARCHIVES. 


VOL.  VI.  2  R 


APPENDIX. 


1.  Cardinal  Ascanio  Sforza  to  his  Brother, 

LoDovico  MoRO,  Duke  of  Milan.* 

1498,  July  15,  Rome. 
Questa  matina  e  giunto  qui  Don  Alfonso,  t  E  ben  die 
fino  ad  Marino  habi  menato  con  se  circa  50  cavalli  nondimeno 
de  Marino  in  qua  ^  venuto  con  607  cavalli  havendo  voluto 
cosi  N.  S.  perch'  el  venisse  secretamente  et  ha  disnato  con  me 
in  palatio.  Hogi  poi  e  stato  da  S.  S*^,  gia  quale  lo  ha  veduto 
molto  volentieri  et  li  ha  facto  molte  careze.  The  "  Secret"  of  the 
Duke's  presence  here  is  known  all  over  Rome. 

[The  original  is  in  the  State  Archives,  Milan.] 

2.  Cardinal  Ascanio  Sforza  to  his  Brother, 

LoDovico  MoRO,  Duke  of  Milan.  | 

1498,  July  17,  Rome. 
Don  Alfonso  has  arrived.  Heri  el  rev.  card  di  Valentia  lo 
volse  de  compagnia  alle  stantie  sue  et  secondo  mi  e  refferito  lo 
ha  acharezato  cum  tante  amorevole  dimonstratione  et  honore 
quanto  si  potesse  dire.  Hogi  poi  N.S.  lo  ha  havuto  a  se  insieme 
cum  madona  Lucretia  et  avanti  S.  S'^  in  presentia  de  reV"^  card, 
de  Perosi,  de  li  nuntii  regii  et  mia  si  sono  visitati  et  acharezati 

insieme  non  usando  pero  altro  cha  parole  generale 

[The  original  is  in  the  State  Archives,  Milan.] 

*  See  supra,  p.  58. 

t  This  confirms  the  statement  of  Gregorovius,  Lucrezia,  103  (in  July). 

X  See  supra,  p.  58. 


6l2  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 


3.  Giovanni  Lucido  Cataneo  to  the 
Marquess  of  Mantua.* 

1498,  Aug.  8,  Rome. 

.  .  .  Tuttavia  el  Papa  inclina  a  la  filia  del  Re  Federico  et  cum 
questa  speranza  ha  fatto  el  parenta  del  Don  Alphonso  cum  donna 
Lucretia,  quali  hanno  consumati  el  matrimonio  privatamente,  et 
doppoi  un  altro  di  publico  cum  multe  feste,  pasti  e  galle  e  fra 
li  soi  solamente  ne  alcuno  ambasatore  o  altra  persona  publica  fo 
chiamata.  La  familia  de  Valentia  cum  quelli  de  la  principessa 
sua  cugnata  hebeno  affar  scandalo  inseme  et  sfedraron  le  spade 
a  la  presentia  del  Papa  in  una  de  la  sale  ultra  la  capella,  dove  si 
fece  la  prima  colatione  nanti  la  cena,  che  fu  dominica  passata  e 
dui  vescovi  hebeno  de  molti  pugni;  e  per  lo  tumulto  tanto  la 
brigata  se  andorono  qua  e  la  che  non  gera  portatori  de  confetti, 
in  modo  che  li  piu  vili  bisognorono  satisfare  ;  poi  andorono  a  cena 
de  li  a  un  pezo,  la  qual  dur6  tre  hore  et  fino  al  dl  chiaro ;  feceno 
representatione,  ne  le  qual  Valentia  comparve  in  forma  de  Ah- 
corno,  che  longo  seria  a  scrivere,  ma  cum  piti  tempo  veder6 
de  havere  lordine  e  laparato  et  lo  mandaro,  benche  non  ce  sia 
stato  cosa  de  excellentia  maravigliosa;  e  quella  la  qual  si  e  al 
proposito  loro  e  perche  donna  Lucretia  se  contenta  molto  bene 
de  Don  Alphonso,  el  qual  per  patto  ha  a  star  qui  un  anno  per 
fermo,  ne  lei,  vivendo  el  Papa,  h  obligata  andar  nel  Reame ;  a 
una  taola  sola  era  S.  S'a,  a  laltra  per  opposito  era  el  card'^  de 
Monreale  et  de  Perosa,  Lucretia,  Alphonso,  la  principessa  e  la 
sorella  de  Borgia  .... 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 


4.  Extract  from  the  Letter  of  an 
Unknown  Person.! 

1500,  Jan.  23,  Rome. 

Che  Valentinoys  ha  facto  gran  doglianza  a  Roma  per  littera  de 
la  morte  de  Borgia,  dicendo  che  i  ceU  Ihan  facto  solum  per  guas- 

*  See  supra,  p,  58,  and  Gregorovius,  L.  Borgia  105. 

t  Probably  of  an  Envoy  or  Agent  from  Mantua.     See  supra,  pp.  73-4. 


APPENDIX.  613 

tarli  di  soy  desegni,  et  lui  e  stato  mezo  di  fare  che  il  fratello 
habbi  el  capello,  el  quale  li  sera  dato  gionto  che  sia  Valentinoys  a 
Roma  cum  pacto  che  esso  fratello  paghi  li  debiti  de  Borgia,  che 
sono  ducati  xviii'".  Chel  papa  ha  dicto  volere  subito  refare  a 
sue  spese  le  roche  de  Imola  et  de  Furli.  Chel  se  prepara  de 
fare  card"  tutti  a  beneplacito  de  Valentinoys,  et  perh6  h  ben  facto 
riponere  ogin  speranza  de  la  practica  de  mons'^^  ne  le  sue  mane 
et  solicitarlo  lui  che  gli  altri  favori  sono  troppo  da  lontano. 
Chel  papa  era  per  rompersi  cum  Venetiani,  volendo  in  ogni  modo 
Arimine  et  Faenza  et  non  gli  volendo  loro  consentire  Chel 
S"^  Zoanne  da  Pesaro  ha  quatro  milia  boni  fanti,  monetione  et  vic- 
tualie  assai,  et  che  delibera  fina  a  morte  contrastare.  Chel  papa 
mette  ne  le  rocche  de  la  chiesia  castellani  afetionati  a  Valentinoys, 
et  in  castello  Sancto  Anzelo  novamente  ha  posto  uno  arcivescovo 
alevo  desso  Valentinoys. 

[The  Copy  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 


5.  Giovanni  Lucido  Cataneo  to  the 
Marquess  of  Mantua.* 

1500,  Aug.  19,  Rome. 

jl|mo  s*' mio.  Stava  don  Alphonso  ducha  de  Biseha  marito  de 
madonna  Lucretia  asai  bene,  pensava  el  re  de  Napoli  levarlo,  ma 
essendo  redutto  quando  fu  ferito  in  certa  torre  presso  le  camare 
del  papa  non  potea  facilmente  levarsi ;  solo  el  medico  mandato 
da  Napoli  lo  medicava  e  la  molie  li  faceva  lo  suo  mangiar  aci5 
non  fusse  atosichato  ;  al  fine  heri  nanti  conplecterio  morite  e 
sonno  sta  presi  alcuni  Neapolitani  de  li  soi  e  de  la  molie  inputati 
che  volevan  amazar  lo  ducha  Valentino  in  sua  casa  e  camare  ;  el 
papa  ne  sta  de  mala  volia  si  per  natura  del  caso  e  per  lore  de 
Napuli  si  perche  la  fiUola  se  despera.  Alfine  pare  una  cosa 
legiera  questa,  ma  parturira  con  tempo  mal  asai  verisimilmente. 
Lambasator  de  Napoli  mand6  subito  la  roba  sua  qua  e  la  et  se 
redusse  in  casa  del  orator  Spagnolo,  spingendol  ad  andar  del 
papa  per  sua  cautione  perche  staseva  per  levarse  per  dubio  delli 
presoni  p'S  se  ben  lui  non  se  inpatiaria  in  tal  novelle  ;  el  papa  le 
ha  fatto  dir  chel  resti  securo  sopra  de  lui,  tamen  lui  ha  avuto 

*  See  supra,  p.  78. 


■614  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

levarse  per  lo  melio  sina  chel  se  ben  inteso  il  tutto  et  molta 
armata  sta  al  pallatio  .  .  . 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 

6.    Pope  Alexander  VI.  to  Cardinal  Giuliano 

DELLA    ROVERE.* 

1500,  Sept.  I,  Rome. 
Dil.  filio  luliano  Episcopo  Ostiensi.  .  .  .  Attendentes  quod 
dil.  filius  noster  Ascanius  Maria  S.  Viti,  etc.,  diaconus  cardinalis, 
S.  R,  E.  vicecancellarius  qui  monasterium  Clarevallis  extra  muros 
Mediolanen.  Cisterciensis  ordinis  ex  concessione  et  dispensatione 
apostolica  obtinet  in  commendam  pro  eo  quod  idem  cardinalis  in 
regno  Francie  pro  dicti  ducatus  Mediolanensis  pace,  quiete  et 
tranquillitate  ad  praesens  retinetur,  regimini  et  administrationi 
dicti  monasterii  .  .  .  intendere  non  valet  nee  etiam  spes  habetur 
quod  brevi  tempore  intendere  possit  cum  prefatus  rex  de  eo 
minime  confidit.  Thus  he  gives  the  above-named  abbey  to  Card, 
Giuliano  della  Rovere,  with  the  consent,  as  he  has  been  informed, 
of  the  king  Louis  XII.  Dat.  Romae,  1500,  cal.  Sept.  Ao  pontif. 
nostri  nono. 

[Cone.  Regest.  872,  fol.  142.      Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican.] 


7.    Giovanni  Lucido  Cataneo  to  the 
Marquess  of  Mantua,  f 

1 501,  Sept.  24,  Rome. 
111™°  S''  mio.  Son  venuti  dui  anbasatori  de  Ferara  qua,  quali 
el  papa  ha  posto  ad  alogiar  in  la  casa  de  la  filiola  e  stanno  in 
festa  e  balli  e  tanto  balloe  essa  una  de  queste  notte  che  lo  di 
sequente  stete  alterata  de  febre,  pur  mo  sta  bene  e  per  executione 
de  le  promesse  per  esserge  ordine  dal  lato  de  Ferara  che  prima  se 
ge  adimpischa  tuto  quello  li  e  sta  offerto  ;  vole  li  denari  in  Ferara 
e  condutta  a  le  confine  de  la  Romagna  a  spese  del  papa,  qual 
prepara  mandarla  molto  honorevolissima  e  contenta  e  cum  molte 
matrone  de  qua  et  se  levara  quando  don  Ferando  venera  .  .  . 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 
*  See  sup-a,  p.  75.  t  See  supra,  p.  108. 


APPENDIX.  615 

8.  Report  of  the  Florentine  Chronicler,  Bartolomeo 
Cerretani,  on  the  Anti-Pope  Pietro  Bernardino, 
A  Disciple  of  Savonarola.* 

[1502.] 

.  .  .  Venti  in  circha  ho  mini  di  popolo  et  di  baxa  conditione 
havendo  pe'  passati  tempi  seghuito  frate  Girolamo  e  vixuti  in  vita 
exactissima  et  santa,  come  di  sopra  dicemo,  in  questi  tempi  si 
tirono  da  parte ;  et  facto  insieme  molti  conventiculi  et  segrete 
raunate,  creorono,  secondo  il  costume  degli  Ebrei,  un  pontefice 
al  quale  comissono  ogni  cura  et  potesta  di  loro  medesimi,  cosi 
temporalmente  come  spiritualmente  ;  vivendo  del  continuo  quasi 
insieme  nella  cipta  e'n  certi  luoghi  del  contado.  Questo  primo 
pontefice  loro  fu  Fiorentino  di  bassa  qualita,  d'  anni  XXV.,  idiota 
e  sanza  lettera  alcuna  ;  ma  per  le  continue  prediche  et  letione 
haveva  udite  dal  frate  era  divenuto  di  tutta  la  schrittura  sachra  et 
maxime  de  la  Bibia  in  modo  praticho  che  le  sapeva  a  mente  quasi 
tutte  :  e  predichava  et  faceva  sermoni  di  tal  qualita  et  cosi 
mirabile  expositione,  che  rendeva  chascuno  meravigliato :  et 
mentre  fra'  Girolamo  vixe,  su  per  le  logge  et  piazze  sermoneggava 
a'  fanculli  et  al  popolo  di  tal  qualita  che  caschuno  stupiva,  ven- 
dendo  questa  nuova  suprestizione  [sic !]  per  optima  religione. 
Morto  e'  frate  si  tir6  da  chanto  e  fatto  molti  conventiculi 
cominccid  a  sua  seghuaci  a  dare  nuovi  precepti  dicendo  che  la 
Chiesa  s'  aveva  colla  spada  a  rinovare,  e  che  doppo  la  morte  di 
frate  Girolamo  non  era  rimasto  homo  gusto  in  terra ;  il  perche 
non  era  piii  necessario  il  confessarsi  perche  tutti  e'  frati  e  prete 
della  Chiesa  d'  Iddio  erano  tepidi ;  e  per  questo  nessuno,  se  non 
facta  la  renovatione,  si  confexassi.  Haveva  certo  olio  del  quale 
ugneva  a'  detti  sua  seghuaci  le  tempie,  afermando  essere  1'  untione 
dello  Spirito  Sancto. 

Facevano  spessissime  oratione  mentale  non  udivano  messa, 
vestivano  poveramente,  la  vita  quando  buona  et  quando  trixta, 
secondo  il  caso  ;  nel  manggare  alcuna  volta  si  fermava  dicendo  : 
Id  spirito  vole  che  si  facci  oratione ;  cosi  in  silentio  oravano  :  in 
un  tracto  comandava  il  mangare.  Tenevano  per  certo  che  questo 
fussi  profeta  e  se  vestiva  o  parlava  o  faceva  alcuno  cenno  inter- 
petravano  che  passerebbe  in  Italia  Francosi  o  Tedeschi  o  Turchi, 
o  che  la  Chiesa  era  presso  a  la  rovina  e  simile  fantasie.     E  quali 

*  See  preceding  volume,  p.  214, 


6l6  HISTORY  OF  THE  POPES. 

conventiculi  et  raunate  sendo  notifichate  a  lo  'nquisitore  et 
arciveschovo,  respecto  a  molte  macule  de  heresie  et  compagnie 
sospette,  furno  per  la  via  degl'  Otto  interdette,  con  presure  di 
loro  et  altre  persequtione.  II  che  gli  fe  piu  ristrignere  insieme 
mostrando  haverle  predette ;  e  per  questo  d'achordo  si  partirno 
et  di  segreto  e  itine  a  la  volta  di  Bologna  si  trasferirno  a  la 
Mirandola,  dove  si  trovava  il  Sig""^  Govan  Francesco,  nipote  del 
Conte  Govanni,  homo  piu  suprestitioso  [st'c  !]  che  savio,  il  quale 
sendo  rnachiato  non  pocho  della  dottrina  fratescha,  liberamente 
et  volentieri  gli  ricevette  et  non  molto  tempo  doppo  sendo 
asediato  da  certi  sua  congiunti,  per  torgli  lo  stato,  arditamente  si 
difendeva  :  ma  crescendo  1'  opugnatione  cominccib  non  pocho  a 
temere.  II  perche  sendo  da'  detti  suprestiosi  [sic !]  exortato,  lo 
'nnanimirono  afermando  che  Iddio  voleva  che  fussi  libero  da  tale 
opugnatione,  e  che  fussi  superiore  et  vincitore  de'  sua  nimici. 
La  quale  cosa  quanto  piu  cresceva  el  pericolo,  arditamente 
credeva,  dando  piu  luogho  alia  suprestione  [st'cl]  che  alia  verita 
del  juditio,  in  sino  a  tanto  che  ne  perda  la  terra  e  lo  stato.  Et 
quasi  ignudo  salvo  se  ne  fuggi.  Quelli  che  gU  tolsono  la  terra 
auti  nelle  mani  e'  detti  suprestitiosi  [stc !]  chiamati  vulgharmente 
gl'  unti,  gli  messe  a'  martirii,  et  maxime  Pietro  Bernardino,  loro 
capo,  et  da  lui  ritratto  il  modo  de  loro  vita  et  costumi  e  loro  an- 
damenti  lo  chondenn5  con  alquanti  al  fuocho,  perche  gli  trov6 
maculatissimi  di  molte  heresie  nello  intellecto  e  del  corpo  spurcis- 
simi  et  vitiosi.  La  quale  cosa  intesa  nella  cipta  nostra  fa  causa 
che  respetto  a  uno  chanonicho  de'  Medici  et  alcuni  fanculli  di 
case  nobile,  subito  si  scrisse  a  la  Mirandola  e  furono  ricondotti  a 
Firenze.  Pietro  Bernardo,  homo  plebeo,  piccolo,  di  came  gentile, 
capelli  neri,  naso  lungho,  voce  rocchissima,  churvato,  astutissimo 
fu  vivo  arso  a  la  Mirandola  ;  e  tutti  e'  sua  seghuaci  banditi. 
E  quah,  tornali  nella  cipta  nostra,  chautamente  veghiano,  benche 
sia  quasi  spenta  tale  setta.  Furno  alcuni  che  dixono  che  da  lui 
ne'  tormenti  non  s'ebbe  mai  nulla,  ma  tutto  si  ritrasse  dagl'  altri. 
Et  COS!  la  cipta,  da  diversi  mali  sendo  vexata,  s'  andava  alterando 
et  digia  e'-Faentini,  havendo  arso  e  tagliato  tutti  intorno  a  la 
terra,  actendevano  al  ripararsi  dalle  isfrenate  voglie  del  Valen- 
tino. .  .  . 

[Bartolomeo  Cerretani,  Istoria  Fiorent.     Cod.  II.  III.,  74, 
p.  274^  se(^.      National  Library,  Florence.] 


APPENDIX.  617 

9.    BeLTRANDO    COSTABILI    TO   THE    DUKE    OF   FeRRARA.* 

1503,  Aug.  18,  Rome. 

Illustrissimo  et  excellentissimo  signer  mio  observandissimo. 
A  ci6  vostra  illustrissima  signoria  sia  aduisata  del  successo  de  la 
infermitate  de  Nostro  Signore,  per  questa  li  significo  che  essendo 
heri  el  bono  di  de  Sua  Santita,  me  ne  andai  a  palatio  et  cum 
quanta  instantia  io  me  faces.se  per  ogni  via  per  parlare  cum  chi  me 
sciapesse  dare  certa  informatione  del  successo,  non  poteti  mai 
trovare  persona  a  proposito  :  restando  infino  a  la  sera  et  retor- 
nando  el  cardinale  de  Cossentia  a  la  stantia,  il  quale  era  stato 
cum  Sua  Santita,  hebbe  da  Sua  Signoria  che  la  Beatitudine  Sua 
havea  pigliato  heri  matina  uno  pocho  de  mana,  la  quale  ge 
havea  facto  uno  bono  servitio  et  che  tutto  heri  la  era  stata  de 
bona  voglia  et  quieta  et  chel  se  sperava  chel  parosismo  de  questa 
matina  on  non  venisse  on  havesse  ad  essere  pocho  ;  dixeme 
etiam  chel  Duca  era  stato  meglio. 

Da  diversi  homini  de  palatio  se  bene  non  sonno  de  quelli  che 
penetrano,  hebbe  chel  male  de  Sua  Santita  se  nomina  una 
tertiana  nota  et  chel  se  dubita  non  se  converta  in  una  quartana ; 
hebbi  etiam  che  per  alcuni  de  casa  de  Sua  Santita  se  fa  fare 
instante  oratione  ad  una  donna  reputata  sancta  murata  in  S. 
Petro  :  la  quale  risponde  pocho  sperare  che  Sua  Santita  se  habii 
a  liberare  de  questo  male.  In  questa  matina  per  tempo  ho  man- 
date a  palatio  per  intendere  el  successo  et  el  mio  me  reporta  per 
rellatione  de  multi,  quali  se  concordano  tutti  et  spetialmente  per 
el  cardinale  de  Cossentia  et  del  magiordomo  de  la  signora  duchessa 
che  la  mana  pare  non  facesse  giovamento  a  Nostro  Signore  et  che 
in  questa  nocte  la  Santita  Sua  e  stata  multo  inquieta  et  lo  paro- 
sismo li  e  venuto  a  la  xiii.  hora  magiore  del  precedente  questa 
matina  et  in  questa  matina  Sua  Santita  se  e  confessata  et  com- 
municata  et  per  el  dictomesso  mio  uno  medico,  alevo  del  vescouo 
de  Venosa,t  me  fa  dire  che  Sua  Beatitudine  b  multo  alterata  et  che 
la  non  se  monda.  In  questa  nocte  da  megia  hora  di  nocte  fe  stato 
serrato  el  palatio  et  guardato  cum  magiore  dilligentia  del  solito  et 
secondo  intendo  el  cardinale  de  Borgia  et  li  signori  picoli  hanno 

*  See  supra,  p.  134.  Petrucelli  della  Gattina,  I.,  437  seq.  and 
Balan  v.,  424. 

t  Bernardus  Bongiovanni,  see  Gams,  940. 


6l8  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

mandate  fora  de  la  robba  sua  per  il  che  tutto  considerata  la  etate  de 
Nostro  Signore  et  la  conditione  de  li  tempi  se  dubita  grandemente 
de  la  salute  de  Sua  Santita.     Roraae,  xviii.  Augusti,  1503. 
De  vostra  illustrissima  signoria 

servo  Beltrando  de  Costabili. 

[Di  fuori :]     A  lo  illustrissimo  et  excellentissimo  signore  Duca  de  Ferrara 
mio  signore  observandissimo. 

[The  original  is  in  the  State  Archives,  Modena.     Cancelleria 
ducale.     Dispacci  degli  Oratori  Estensi  a  Roma.] 

10.  Giovanni  Lucido  Cataneo  to  the 

Marquess  of  Mantua.* 

1503,  Aug.  18,  Rome. 
111™°  S"^  mio.  Benchb  per  la  mia  ultima  di  16  avisase  V. 
111.  S.  chel  papa  non  si  mundava  di  febre  et  pareva  meliorato 
perh5,  tamen  dopoi  e  pegiorato  in  modo  che  gli  e  ogne  di  piu 
acresciuto  el  parosismo  et  questa  matina  si  e  comunicato,  par- 
lando  et  asai  galiardamente  a  rispecta  del  malo ;  et  ghia  qualche 
grande  mastro,  al  quale  h  noto  la  sorte  della  infirmitade  sua,  ha 
advisato  ad  certo  s^^  card'^  lontano  de  qua,  chel  si  aproxima  per 
potere  essere  ad  hora  de  qua  bisognando  et  alcuni  comenzano 
a  sgombrare  il  suo  melioramento  fora  del  pallatio  di  nocte  et 
cautamente ;  apresso  questa  nocte  passata  son  state  jacte  gran- 
diss®  guardie  alle  porte  et  toresini  delle  mure  del  pallatio, 
benche  dicano  essere  facte  per  quelli  di  Braziano,  per  esserli 
intrato  di  novo  certi  cavali  et  fanti.  .  .  .  Rome,  xviii.  Aug*', 
1503,  hora  vigesima. 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 

11.  Giovanni  Lucidio  Cataneo  to  the 

Marquess  of  Mantua,  t 

1503,  Aug.  19,  Rome. 
ll\mo  Qr  jj,iQ_     Hq  significato  a  V.  S.  el  papa  essere  derelicto 
e  poi  la  morte ;  al  presente  me  achade  scriverli  come  lui  era  in 
termino  de  poter  viver  asai  a  la  efifigie  e  presentia  sua  e  anchora 

*  See  szepra,  p.  134.  f  See  supra,  pp.  134-5. 


APPENDIX.  619 

dopoi  el  male  quanto  sia  per  la  febre,  ma  li  abondo  al  inproviso 
tanto  el  cataro  chel  afog5;  e  tuto  in  la  fatia  negro  e  infiato,  e 
nullo  suspetto  ge  stato  de  veneno,  se  ben  patre  e  filiolo  ge  sian 
tuti  a  mio  tempo  infirmati  ....  Rome,  xviii.  Aug'',  1503, 
hora  XVIII. 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 

12.  Ghivizano  to  the  Marquess  of  Mantua.* 

1503,  Sept.  12,  Rome. 
.  .  .  Quanto  siano  le  pratiche  et  falsi  ingani  de  questi  car- 
dinal! lo  laso  pensare  a  quela  t  j  mai  non  fu  vista  tanta  cosa,  fano 
come  formiche  chi  va  e  chi  viene ;  tuta  note  sono  in  pratica. 
Li  Spagnoli  non  usichano  [sz'c !]  de  palatio,  li  altri  travaliano,  ma 
le  cose  sono  fate  cum  fermeza  de  cui  debia  esere  papa  sara 
secondo  el  voto  Spagnolo  e  non  abiate  altra  openione.  Questi 
s"  Francesi  comenciano  ha  pensare  a  la  forza  ...  La  Sua  S'^  | 
non  sara  papa  ne  S.  Petro  ad  vincula  ne  Napoli  ne  Alessandrino ; 
saxk  Capacio  o  Siena  o.  S.  Prasede  atento  el  favore  Spagnolo. 
[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 

13.  Ghivizano  to  the  Marquess  of  Mantua.§ 

1503,  Sep.  15,  Rome. 
.  .  .  Domatina  se  intra  in  conclavi  ;  hozi  Rohano  he  stato  ha 
visitare  el  card'^  de  Napoli  et  S'°  Petro  ad  vincula ;  Siena  ne  S. 
Prasede  ne  Portugalo  cum  Rohano  non  se  sono  mai  visitati.  El 
papato  se  stima  in  Sena  o  S.  Prasede  o  Capacio  per  essere  bonus 
homo,  li  altri  per  essere  come  neutrali,  ma  ben  favoriti  da  Spag- 
noli. Hozi  mes""  Jo.  Lucido  me  a  dito  avere  parlato  cum  lo 
ambasatore  dil  re  di  Romani  e  come  alcuni  card''  da  li  quali  ha 
avisto  littere  de  la  Cesarea  M'^  scripte  a  questo  sacro  colegio 
dimostrando  avere  inteso  essere  preso  Roma  dui  grosis™  eserciti 
per  li  quali  se  poria  fare  violentia  a  santa  chiesa,  per  il  che  lui  si 
come  obidiente  et  conservatore  de  la  fede  se  hoferise  ad  ogne 
minima  richiesta  del  sacro  colegio  de  mandare  per  la  via  de 
Triesti  6  milia  fanti  pagati  et  lui  ronpere  in  lo  stato  de  Milano  ho 
venirsene  derito  al  camino  de  Mantua  et  per  questo  he  stato  dito 

*  See  supra,  pp.  190,  191,  193.  f  ^'  S- 

X  d'Amboise.  §  See  supra,  pp.  193-4- 


620  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

a  mes'^  Johan  Lucido  se  lo  stato  de  V.  Ex'^  sara  rubelo  al  sacro 
imperio,  li  a  riposto  di  no  anzi  sara  obiedenf^o  ma  cum  la  persona 
la  S.  V.  salvera  sempre  suo  honor ;  questo  la  Ex'^  V.  lo  tenga 
preso  lei  per  ogne  condigno  rispeto.  .  .  .  Rome,  15  Septem., 
1503  a  hore  due. 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua,] 

14.  Ghivizano  to  the  Marquess  of  Mantua.* 

1503,  Sept.  19,  Rome. 
.  .  .  Hiersera  al  tardo  parlando  io  cum  lo  anbas"^®  de  Inghel- 
terra,  quale  he  molto  mio  domestico  et  confidente,  me  dise  avere 
'  in  gran  secreto  da  lo  anbas"^^  Venetiano  come  el  card^^  de  Napoli 
aveva  abuto  a  lo  primo  scurtinio,  che  fu  fato  hieri  quale  domeni- 
cha  se  doveva  fare,  ha  abuto  voce  xxii.  e  Sena  ne  a  abute  vinti, 
Portugalo  18,  Capacio  14;  questo  pare  abia  inteso  per  cuntrasigni 
piliati  cum  queli  che  serveno  dentro.  Pare  che  de  Napoli  se  ne 
alegra  molto  el  dito  anbasatore  Venetiano  ;  hozi  si  fara  el  secundo 
schurtinio  e  domane  el  terzo  ;  hozi  o  dimane  averemo  el  papa 
novo,  se  a  le  forze  non  se  viene  dil  che  molto  se  teme  fra  questi 
cortesani.  .  .  . 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 

15.    CosiMo  de'  Pazzi,  Bishop  of  Arezzo,  to  Pope 
Pius  Ill.t 

1503,  Sept.  28,  Florence. 

Ante  oculos  adhuc  mihi  posite  sunt  calamitates  superiorum 
temporum,  tetra  ecclesiae  matris  nostrae  facies,  flagellum  s. 
iracundiae  Dei  pro  delictis  nostris,  quorum  conditio  etsi  dura 
videbatur,  durior  tamen  longe  erat  amissa  in  multum  tempus 
liberationis  omnis  spes  eaque  perpetuo,  nisi  miseratio  Dei  ac 
salvatoris  nostri  benignitas  insperatum  te  nobis  pontificem 
dedisset,  cujus  summum  ingenium,  summa  sapientia,  human- 
issimi  mores,  religiosissima  educatio,  acta  per  virtutem  omnem 
in  banc  diem  vita,  delatum  sine  labe,  sine  sorde,  quinimmo  mira 
atque  antiqua  integritate  pontificium  munus,  ita  omnes  bonos  ac 
Deum  timentes  recreavit,  ut  discussis  ecclesiae  labentis  tenebris 
*  See  supra,  p.  196.  t  See  supra,  p.  201. 


APPENDIX.  021 

tranquillitatem  posthac  ac  reconciliationem  salvatoris  nostri 
sperent  Jerusalemque  novam  sponsam  descendtem  de  celo  moni- 
libus  suis  ornatam  intueantur.   .   .   .* 

Felices  quos  Deus  in  haec  tempora  servavit.     Datum  Floren- 
tiae,  XXVIII.  Sept.,  1503. 
[The  original  is  in  St.  Mark's  Library,  Venice,  Cod.  Lat.  X.,  174.] 

16.    Beltrando  Costabili  to  the  Duke  of  Ferrara.I 

1503,  Oct.  19,  Rome. 

Illustrissimo  et  excellentissimo  signore  mio  observandissimo. 
La  morte  de  questo  Pontifice  b  doluta  a  tutta  questa  corte  per 
essere  stato  reputato  da  ogni  uno  bono,  prudente  et  sancto.  Et 
tutto  heri  il  corpo  stette  in  sancto  Petro,  et  quantunque  sempre 
piovesse  multo  forte,  li  corsse  tutta  Roma,  et  donne  et  homini  cum 
gran  calca  tutti  se  sforciavano  basiarli  li  pedi,  il  quale  pareva  vivo 
et  in  niente  pareva  remutato.  La  faticha  lo  ha  durato  dopo  el  Pon- 
tificato  suo,  non  essendo  bene  sano,  se  stima,  lo  habii  morto.  El 
di  de  la  ellectione  sua  non  havea  dormito  niente  la  nocte  pre- 
cedente  et  poi  el  di  fu  multo  affatichato  et  poi  de  continuo  li  sono 
stati  cardinali  per  audientia ;  li  fu  la  ordinatione  sua  et  la  conse- 
cratione  et  poi  la  coronatione,  li  quali  acti  multo  lo  affatichornb  et 
mercori  passato  fece  uno  concistorio  dur5  insino  a  le  xxiii,  here 
et  non  fu  longo  per  altra  causa,  se  non  per  indurre  li  cardinali  a 
consentire  al  fare  cardinale  el  nepote  de  Rohano  et  Sua  Santita 
stette  jeiuna  insino  a  quella  hora.  El  venere  poi  che  Sua  Santita 
se  amalo  dette  la  matina  una  longa  audientia,  poi  volse  magnare 
pesse  per  el  giorno  del  venere,  havendo  pigliata  medicina  el  di 
precedente,  il  quale  di  li  piglio  la  febre  et  rnai  non  lo  ha  lasciato 
insino  a  la  morte.  .  .  . 

[The  original  is  in  the  State  Archives,  Modena,] 

17.  Beltrando  Costabili  to  the  Duks  of  Ferrara.J 

1503,  Nov.  17,  Rome. 

Da  uno  amico  mio  ho,  il  quale  dice  haverlo  de  bono  loco  che 

N.S.  ha  dicto  stranie  parole  a  lo  amb""®  Veneto  per  le  cose  de 

*  Apoc.  XXI.,  22. 

t  See  supra,  p.  207,  and  Petrucelli  della  Gattina,  I.,  454  seq. 

X  See  supra,  p.  251. 


622  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

Faventia  et  li  ha  dicto  S.  S'^  voler  vivere  in  pace  et  volere  che 
ogniuno  possi  godere  el  suo  et  quando  Venetian!  perseverino  in 
quelle  che  hanno  cominciato,  se  ben  sempre  in  minoribus  ge  li  h 
monstrata  arnica,  gli  fara  vedere  quello  che  non  pensano.    .    .    . 

[The  original  is  in  the  State  Archives,  Modena.] 

1 8.  Ghivizano  to  the  Marquess  of  Mantua.* 

1503,  Nov.  20,  Rome. 

Hieri  partite  de  qui  el  S.  duca  de  Romagna  per  Fiorenza  et 
andosene  per  mare  senza  lasarse  vedere  ad  alcuna  persona  .  .  . 
La  coronatione  se  fara  dominicha  pomposa  al  possibile,  grandis- 
simo  aparato  se  fa  .  .  . 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 

19.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Florence.! 

1504,  Jan.  28  [Rome]. 

Praise  of  the  Florentines.  They  are  to  order  their  troops  to 
assist  the  Archbishop  of  Ragusa,  Giovanni  di  Sirolo. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  9.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican.] 

20,  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Forli.| 

1504,  Jan.  30  [Rome]. 

They  are  to  have  full  confidence  in  Giovanni  di  Sirolo,  the 
Archbishop  of  Ragusa,  whom  he  has  sent  to  them. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  9^     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican.] 

21.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Forli.  § 

1504,  February  i  [Rome]. 

They  are  to  have  full  confidence  in  Petrus  Paulus  de  Callio. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  15^-      Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican.] 

*  See  supra,  pp.  233,  239,  +  See  supra,  p.  242. 

%  See  supra,  p.  242.  §  See  supra,  p.  242. 


APPENDIX.  623 

22.  Pope  Julius  II,  to  Angelo  Leonini,  Bishop  of 
TivoLi,  Nuncio  at  Venice.* 

1504,  February  7  [Rome]. 
.  .  .  Dil.  filii  regis  Franchorum  Venetiis  oratorem  pro  his  que 
tanta  cura  pro  nostro  et  apostolice  sedi  honore  agit  plurimum  in 
domino  commendamus  cui  tu  etiam  nomine  nostro  gratias  ages. 
There  can  be  no  thought  of  your  return  at  present. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  16.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican.] 
23.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Cardinal  Bernardino  Carvajal.! 

[1504,  Febr.  28,  Rome.] 
Advenerunt  ad  nos  homines  missi  a  castellanis  arcium  Cesenae 
et  Britonori.  .  .  .J  quod  castellani  ipsi  easdem  arces  nobis 
restituere  erunt  parati,  si  dilectus.  ...  §  nobilis  vir  Cesar 
Borgia  dux  Valentinus  relaxatus  esset  aut  cito  relaxaretur. 
Quibus  nos  respondimus,  nos  omnes  conditiones  in  bulla 
super  hoc  confecta  contentas  ad  unguem  observaturos,  si  etiam 
nobis  promissa  observarentur.  Sad  ut  scit  circumspectio  tua 
in  eisdem  conditionibus  arcis  Forlivii  restitutio  est  expressa, 
quod  declarare  poteris  hominibus  ipsis,  ne  spem  deponent 
libertatis  et  relaxationis  ejusdem  ducis.  Quare  danda  est  opera 
omni  astu  et  ingenio,  ut  arx  ipsa  Forliviensis  restituatur,  ne  ipse 
dux  cum  tanto  circumspectionis  tue  incommode  hodie  diutius 
moram  trahat  et  proficisci  possit,  quo  cupit.  Preterea  circum- 
spectionem  tuam  hortamur,  ut  iterum  ad  dilectum  filium  Lauren- 
tium  adeas,  catholicarum  Majestatum  oratorem,  ducem  et  senatum 
Venetorum  hortetur  ad  restitutionem  civitatum,  arcium  et  locorum 
S.  R.  E.,  quas  contra  Deum  et  justitiam  de  facto  occuparunt  et 
occupant,  nobis  integre  et  libere  faciendam,  si  amicitia  et  benevo- 
lentia  ipsarum  majestatum  perfrui  volunt,  declaret  etiam  eis 
expresse,  nos  in  tam  manifesta  injuria  et  jactura  S.  R.  E.  nee 
acquiescere  nee  desistere  velle  aut  posse,  donee  restitutio,  ut 
prefertur,  hujusmodi  integre  fiat.  .  .  .  Veneti  enim  ipsi  non 
solum  ab  occupatione  predictorum  non  cessant,  sed  etiam  per 

•  See  supra,  p.  254.  t  See  supra,  p.  254. 

X  The  original  is  destroyed.  §  Destroyed. 


624  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

clandestinas  et  indirectas  vias  Forlivium  ejusque  arcem  nobis  et 
dicte  ecclesie  subtrahere  parant,  quorum  conatus  et  astus  nos 
eludere  quibuscumque  viis  possumus,  querimus,  nee  dispendio 
ulli  parcimus  sed  nostra  auctoritas  apud  eos  non  tantum  valet, 
quantum  valere  debebat,  et  nisi  catholici  principes  manus  ap- 
ponant,  ecclesiam  predictam  Venetis  ipsis  prede  et  ludibrio,  quod 
Deus  avertat,  fore  prospicimus.  Quanto  igitur  res  in  majore 
versatur  periculo,  tanto  circumspectio  tua  pro  officio  boni  car- 
dinalis  et  sua  solita  probitate  promptior  erit  ad  haec  facienda, 
que  opportuna  putamus.     Dat,* 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  29,  f.  24.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican.] 

24.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Florence.! 

1504,  February  29  [Rome]. 
They  are  to  support  the  Archbishop  of  Ragusa,  Giovanni  di 
Sirolo  and  Petrus  Paulus  de  Callio  against  ForU. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  23.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican.] 

25.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Giovanni  di  Sirolo,  Archbishop  of 
Ragusa,  and  to  Petrus  Paulus  de  Callio.  J 

1504,  March  23  [Rome]. 
The  letters  of  the  above-named,  of  March  18,  1504,  on  the 
conquest  of  Forlimpopoli,  gave  him  great  pleasure.     He  hopes 
the  castle  also  will  soon  be  won. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  2  2,  f.  40.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican.] 
26.    Pope  Julius  II.  to  Forli.§ 

1504,  April  II,  Rome. 

Antianis  et  communi  civitatis  nostre  Forlivii.  He  has  been 
told  by  the  Archbishop  of  Ragusa,  Giovanni  di  Sirolo,  how 
readily  they  have  returned  to  obedience.  He  praises  them  for 
this  :  et  eo  maiorem  commendationem  meremini  q[uia]  causa 
fuistisdeditionisarcis.il 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  44.     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican.] 

*  The  date  follows  from  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  22b. 

+  See  stipra^  p.  242. 

X  See  supra,  p.  242.  §  See  supra,  p.  244. 

II  This  news  was  soon  found  to  have  been  false. 


APPENDIX.  625 


27.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Philip,  Count  Palatine 
ON  the  Rhine.* 

1504,  April  26,  Rome. 

Inter  cetera  que  dilecto  filio  Mariano  de  Perusia  causarum 
palatii  apostolici  auditor!  capellano  et  cum  potestate  legati  a 
latere  nuntio  nostro  ad  Germaniam  destinato,  dedimus  in  man- 
datis,  ea  res  precipua  fuit,.ut  nobilitatem  tuam  dilecto  filio  nobili 
viro  Alberto  duci  Bavarie  sacri  Romani  imperii  electorii  con- 
sanguinitatis  et  affinitatis  vinculo  tibi  connexo  reconciliare 
studeret,  interpositaque  nostra  et  hujus  sanctissime  sedis  apos- 
tolice  auctoritate,  sublata  omnis  discordie  dissensionisve  causa 
ad  mutuam  caritatem  et  concordiam  reduceret.  Nam  cum  sitis 
duo  precipua  inclyte  nationis  Germanice  lumina  et  ex  tam  illustri 
familia  orti,  que  sacro  romano  imperio  multos  laudatissimos 
cesares  dedit,  non  potestis  inter  vos  dissidere  absque  magna 
jactura  non  solum  nationis  ipsius  et  familie  vestre,  sed  etiam 
totius  reipublice  christiane.  Cum  preterea  sedes  ipsa  sanctissima 
vos  ut  peculiares  filios  sit  complexa  magnamque  in  vobis  spem 
coUocaverit,  benemerendi  de  ipsa  sedi  et  Christiana  republica,  eo 
studiosius  finem  discordiis  vestris  debemus  querere,  quo  vos 
magis  florentes  et  honoratos  esse  cupimus.  Discordie  enim  ipse 
non  nisi  jacturam  fame  et  facultatum  vobis  possunt  afferre. 
Turpe  enim  est  consanguineum  a  consanguineo,  quos  ipsa  natura 
educatioque  maximo  vinculo  caritatis  duplicique  necessitudinis 
glutino  connexit,  dissidere.  Nam  quem  alienum  fidum  sibi 
sperare  potest,  qui  suis  fuerit  hostis  ?  His  rebus  consideratis  pro 
singulari  et  paterna  qua  utrumque  vestrum  prosequimur  charitate, 
nobilitatem  tuam  hortamur,  obsecramus  et  obtestamur  in  Domino 
ac  per  viscera  Salvatoris  Domini  nostri  rogamus,  ut  animum 
tuum  ad  concordiam  cum  Alberto  ipso  consanguineo  tuo  facien- 
dam,  quam  etiam  a  carissimo  in  Christo  filio  nostro  Maximiliano 
Romanorum  rege  illustri  queri  summo  studio  scimus,  inducere 
velis,  et  nuntio  ipso  nostro  cooperante,  cui  auctorizandi  con- 
cordiam ipsam  etiam  facultatem  dedimus,  ad  eas  conditiones 
venire,  per  quas  finis  omnibus  vestris  dissensionibus  imponatur, 
charitasque  fraterna,  sanguinisque  necessitudo,  que  in  tot 
discordiis  vires  suas  habere  non  potuit,  redeat  inter  vos  atque 

*  See  supra,  p.  255. 
VOL.  VI  2  S 


626  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

vigeat.  Sane  si  id  feceritis,  ut  confidimus,  magnam  ab  hominibus 
laudem,  magnum  a  Deo  premium  consequemini  et  cum  propheta 
poteritis  dicere :  Quam  bonum  quamque  jucundum  fratres 
habitare  in  unum.  Debes  etiam  pro  tua  prudentia  et  probitate 
considerare,  quantum  periculum  christiane  reipublice  a  perfidis 
Turcis  immineat,  contra  quos  sancta  et  necessaria  expeditio 
decerni  non  poterit  discordiis  vestris  vigentibus,  ita  ut  per  vos 
videatur  stetisse,  nisi  invicem  reconciliati  fueritis,  quominus  ipsa 
expeditio  fieret;  nam  neque  ipse  carissimus  in  Christo  filius 
noster  Romanorum  rex  pium  desiderium  suum  consequi  neque 
reliqua  Germania  convenire  posset  ad  expeditionem  tarn  sanctam. 
Est  preterea  vobis  habenda  non  mediocris  ratio  defensionis 
S.R.E.  pientissime  matris  vestre,  quam  Veneti  duabus  preclaris 
civitatibus  compluribusque  arcibus  et  oppidis  ac  locis  in  provincia 
Romandiole  contra  Deum  et  justitiam  per  injuriam  spoliarunt,  et 
que  per  auxilium  nationis  Germanice  injuriam  hujusmodi  pro- 
pulsare  sperat  ac  desiderat,  cui  auxilio  si  vestre  discordie  essent, 
prout  fueruntj  impedimento,  offenderetis  Deum  omnipotentem  et 
magna  apud  omnes  laboraretis  infamia,  meritoque  vereri  possetis, 
ne  divinam  ultionem  in  vobis  vestrisque  liberis  et  familia  sentiatis. 
Datum  Rome  apud  s.  Petrum  die  xxvi.  Aprilis,  anni  mdiv. 
Pontificatus  nostri  anno  primo. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  50^     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 


28.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Gonsalvo  de  Cordova.* 

1504,  May  II,  Rome. 

....  Hortamur  in  domino  et  paterne  requirimus  ut  ducem 
ipsumf  in  fidem  tuam  receptum  ita  contineas  atque  coherceas  ne 
quicquam  ad  versus  nostrum  et  S.R.E.  statum  possit  moliri 
efficaciter  eum  hortando  et  inducendo  ut  arcem  ipsius  ForHvii 
juxta  capitula  cum  castellano  illius  inita  et  a  nobis  impleta  et 
observata  restitui  .  .  .  faciat. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  5i'^.-52.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

*  See  supra,  p.  244.  t  C/ESAR  BORGIA. 


APPENDIX.  627 

29.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Anna,  Queen  of  France.* 

1504,  May  16,  Rome. 
Telling  her  that,   "pro  pace  Christianitatis,"  he  has  sent  as 
Orator  to  the  King,  Carolum  de  Carreto  marchionem  Fitiarii  f 
electum  Thebanura.     Recommends  him  to  her. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  56^.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

30.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Louis  XII.,  King  of  France.  J 

1504,  June  8,  Rome. 
Ludovico  Francorum  regi.  Uno  ferme  tempore  htteras 
celsitudinis  tue,  venerabilis  fratris  episcopi  Aretini  §  et  dilecti  filii 
thesaurii  Avenionensis  [scl.  Petri  Fiholi]  nuntiorum  nostrorum 
accepimus,  quibus  lectis  et  diligenter  consideratis — he  thanks  him 
for  his  readiness  in  regard  to  Venice ;  also,  for  the  King's  willing- 
ness to  make  peace  with  Spain.  Sine  hac  pace  neque  sanctam  in 
perfidos  Turcos  expeditionem  suscipi  nee  Venetis  frenum  injici 
posse — this  you  will  understand. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  76^     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

31.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Forli.|| 

1504,  June  10,  Rome. 
He  apologises  for  not  having  yet  sent  what  is  necessary  for  the 
conquest  of  the  Castle.     Bono  animo  sitis. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  78^     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

32.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Angelo  Leonini,  Bishop 
OF  TivoLi,  Nuncio  at  Venice. "IT 

1504,  July  ;o,  Rome 
Venerabili  frati  A.  Episcopo  Tiburtino.     Accepimus  literas  tue 
fraternitatis  quibus  nos  certiores  reddis,  quo  die  oratores  carissimi 

*  See  supra,  p.  256.         t  Finale. 

X  See  supra,  p.  256.         §  Cosimo  de'  Pazzi,  Bishop  of  Arezzo,  1497-1508. 
II  See  supra,  p.  244. 

IT  See  supra,  pp.  255-6.     For  this  and  the  rest  of  the  letters  to  Leonini  I  am 
indebted  to  the  kindness  of  Dr.  A.  Gottlob. 


628  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

in  Christo  filii  nostri  Maximiliani  Romanorum  regis  illustris  istuc 
pervenerint,  quibus  honoribus  excepti,  quove  die  a  Venetis  auditi 
fuerint,  quod  responsum  habuerint,  quanta  denique  tu  prudentia 
eos  instruxeris  de  omnibus  rebus,  quibus  rationes  Venetorum 
confutare  et  nostras  confirmare  facile  poterant.  Gratissima  nobis 
est  diligentia  et  prudentia  hec  tua,  ob  quam  fraternitatem  tuam 
plurimum  in  Domino  commendamus.  Considerantes  autem, 
quod  si  ipsi  oratores,  habito  responso  aliquo,  quod  restitutionem 
integram  civitatum,  locorum  et  terrarum  nostrarum,  de  quibus 
agitur,  non  polliceatur,  discedent,  Veneti  insolentiores  effici 
possent,  et  Regi  Romanorum  cordi  non  esse  hanc  restitutionem 
arbitrarentur,  volumus  et  venerabilem  fratrem  nostrum  episcopum 
Aquensem,*  cui  nos  plurimum  fidimus,  nomine  nostro  horteris  et 
roges,  velit  non  continuo  discedere,  sed  diebus  aliquot  isthic 
morari  et  Venetis  replicare,  ut  rem  tantam  velint  etiam  atque 
etiam  altius  considerare  et  restitutionem  predictam  libere  facere, 
ne  in  se  omnium  christianorum  principum,  presertim  Regis 
Romanorum,  qui  sancte  Romane  Ecclesie  pro  officio  suo  deesse 
nee  potest  nee  vult,  odia  in  se  provocent.  Credimus  ipsuni 
episcopum  id  libenter  facturum,  cum  se  intelligat  rem  non  solum 
nobis,  qui  meritorum  suorum  dignam  rationem  habebimus,  sed 
Regi  etiam  suo  gratissimam  rem  facturum.  Itaque  curabis  hoc  ei 
omnino  persuadere.  Res  Forlivienses  quotidie  melius  Dei 
benignitate  procedunt,  recuperavimus  jam  arcem  et  portum 
Sclavonie,  quam  Moratini,  qui  nobis  parum  fidi  multa  fomenta 
castellano  majoris  arcis  subministraverant  et  nobis  hactenus 
distulerant,  restituere,  adeo  ut  speremus  nos  arce  majori  et 
civitatula  majori  cito  recuperaturos.  Erit  etiam  cure  tue  frater- 
nitatis  admonere  dilectum  filium  Marianum  nostrum  apud  regem 
ipsum  nuntium  de  omnibus  rebus,  quas  audiveris,  quasque 
opportunas  tuende  cause  nostre  penes  dictum  Regem  perspicies. 
Rex  Hungarie,  qui  egrotari  periculosissime  dicebatur,  Dei  gratia 
bene  valet,  ut  ex  recentissimis  litteris  sue  serenitatis  accepimus, 
qui  etiam  nuper  oratorem  designavit  non  parve  auctoritatis,  quern 
pro  nostra  et  S.R.E.  causa  mittet  ad  Venetos,  significans  illis,  quod 
ipse  nullo  foedere  retardabitur,  quin  dicte  ecclesie  defensionem 
suscipiat  prout  ab  ipso  oratore  intelliges,  quem  pari  instructione 
armabis  cum  venerit,  et  nos  de  adventu  illius  deque  aliis  rebus 
*  Lodovico  Bruno,  Bishop  of  Acqui,  1483-1508,  see  Ulmann,  L,  411. 


APPENDIX.  629 

quam  novissime  certiores  efficies.     Datum  Rome  apud  S.  Petrum 
die  X.  Julii,  1504,  Pontificatus  nostri  anno  primo. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f,  115.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

33.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Angelo  Leonini,  Bishop  of 
TivoLi,  Nuncio  at  Venice.* 

1504,  July  28,  Rome. 
Venerabili  fratri  Angelo  episcopo  Tyburtino  nostro  cum  potes- 
tate  legati  de  latere  Venetiis  oratori.  Venerabilis  frater,  etc. 
Littere  tue  fraternitatis  XV.  hujus  mensis  date  nos  ambiguos 
reddiderunt,  quid  de  suo  isthinc  recessu  venerabilis  frater 
episcopus  Aquensis  f  deliberaturus  esset,  sed  que  XVIII.  ejusdem 
scripte  fuerunt  sublata  ambiguitate  hujusmodi  nos  non  mediocri 
letitia  affecerunt.  Declarant  enim  episcopum  ipsum  rationibus 
tuis  veris  prudentissimisque  adductum,  consilium  cepisse 
immorandi  Venetiis,  ut  resfitutionem  civitatum,  arcium  et 
locorum  S.  R.  E.  persuadere  Duci  et  Senatui  possit.  Itaque 
et  episcopum  ipsum,  qui  in  hac  re  prudentiam  singularem 
veramque  ad  nos  sedemque  apostolicam  observantiam  suam 
ostendit,  plurimum  in  Domino  commendamus  et  te  quoque 
summopere  laudamus,  qui  tanta  prudentia  et  industria  non  solum 
eundem  episcopum  in  procinctu  discedendi  retraxeris,  sed  etiam 
in  Germaniam  exquisitissima  diligentia  tam  opportune  scripseris, 
ab  eodemque  episcopo  Aquensi  scribi  curaveris.  Nos  consilium 
tuum  secuti  scribimus  ad  conventum  Germanic  in  earn  senten- 
tiam,  quam  tu  suades.  Literas  dilecto  lilio  magistro  Mariano 
de  Bartolinis  nostro  illic  oratori,  mittimus  ea  conditione,  ut  si 
absque  offensione  animi  regie  celsitudinis  id  fieri  posse  perspexerit, 
litteras  nostras  electoribus  sacri  Romani  imperii  reddat,  easque 
ipse  opportuna  sequatur  oratione,  quo  Veneti  facilius  ad  restitu- 
tionem  hujusmodi  inducantur,  cum  intellexerint,  non  solum 
Romano  regi,  sed  toti  inclyte  nationi  Germanic  id  cure  et  cordi 
esse ;  reliqua  que  in  dies  audis  et  scrutaris  libenter  cognovimus, 
et  ut  in  posterum  idem  facias,  exhortamur.  Episcopo  Aquensi 
predicto,  ut  etiam  suades,   scribimus  J    et  litterarum  exemplum 

*  See  supra,  p,  255. 

+  Lodovico  Bruno,  Bishop  of  Acqui,  1483-1508,  see  Ulmann,  I.,  411. 

X  The  letter  to  the  Bishop  of  Acqui,  the  Imperial  Envoy  at  Venice,  in  which 


630  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

mittimus  his  acclusum.  Res  tue  nobis  cure  sunt.  Datum  Rome 
apud  S.  Petrum  die  xxviii.  Julii,  1504.  Pontificatus  nostri 
anno  primo. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  126b.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

34.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Angelo  Leonini,  Bishop  of 

TivoLi,  Nuncio  at  Venice.* 

1504,  Sept.  12,  Frascati. 
Episcopo  Tiburtino  Venetiis  .  .  .  oratori.  Vidimus  literas 
dilecti  filii  Mariano  de  Bartolinis  .  .  .  ad  te  et  tuas  ad  nos  .  .  . 
Grata  est  nobis  [your  confidence  in  each  other].  Negotium 
venerabilis  fratris  Ludovici  episcopi  Aquensis,  quod  nobis 
commendasti,  cordi  habebimus,  prout  ad  eum  nunc  scribimus. 
Cetera,  que  significasti,  gratissima  nobis  fuere,  presertim  de 
licentia  trium  milium  salmarum  grani  pro  Imolensibus  impetrata; 
sed  et  alii  populi  provincie  nostre  Romandiole  simili  licentia 
indigent  .  .  . 

Datum  Frascati  die  12  Septembris,  1504. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  176^.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

35.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Angelo  Leonini,  Bishop  of 

TivoLi,  Nuncio  at  Venice,  t 

1504,  October  i,  Rome. 
Venerabili  fratri  Angelo  episcopo  Tiburtino.  Vidimus  literas 
tue  fraternitatis  nobis  gratissimas  et  omnia,  quae  scripsisti,  con- 
sideravimus.  Alio  responso  res  non  indigere  videtur,  nisi  ut  te 
hortamur  ad  perseverandum  et  excitandum  regios  oratores.  Nos 
ad  dilectum  filium  Franciscum  de  Monte  scribimus,  exemplum 
brevis  nostri  ad  eum  praesentibus  introclusum  mittemus. 

Datum    Rome    apud   S.    Petrum    sub   annulo    piscatoris   die 
I  Octobris,  1504.     Pontificatus  nostri  anno  primo. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  188.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

Julius  commends  him  for  remaining  at  Venice,  etc.,  is  to  be  found  ibidem 
fol.  173^ 

*  See  supra,  p.  255.  t  See  supra,  p.  255. 


APPENDIX.  631 

36.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Lodovico  Bruno,  Bishop  of  Acqui, 

AND  TO  Francesco   de   Monte,   Imperial   Envoy   at 

Venice.* 

1504,  Oct.  I,  Rome. 

Venerabili  fratri  Ludovico  episcopo  Aquensi  et  dilecto  filio 
Francisco  de  Montibus  equiti  carissimi  in  Christo  filii  nostri 
Maximiliani  Romanorum  Regis  illustris  oratoribus.  Audivimus 
cum  jocunditate  te,  dilecte  Francisce,  Venetias  pervenisse  missum 
a  carissimo  in  Christo  filio  nostro  Maximiliano  rege  Romanorum 
illustri,  ut  una  cum  venerabili  fratre  Ludovico  episcopo  Aquensi 
pro  restitutione  civitatum,  arcium  et  terrarum  S.R.E.,  quas  Veneti 
occupant,  instes;  novimus  enim  probitatem  et  prudentiam  tuam 
nee  dubitamus,  quin  res  eiusdem  S.R.E.  .  .  .  cordi  habeas. 
Hortamur  igitur  ut  omni  studio  diligentiaque  utaris,  etc. 

Dat.  Romae,  apud  S.  Petrum  die  i  Octobris,  1504. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  187^.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

37.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Angelo  Leonini,  Bishop  of  Tivoli, 

Nuncio  at  Venice.! 

1504,  Oct.  17,  Rome. 

Angelo  episcopo  Tiburtino.  Accepimus  litteras  tuas  quarti, 
quinti,  sexti  et  octavi  dierum  presentis  mensis  de  rebus  Pisau- 
rensibus  et  Camerinensibus,  quamquam  consilium  tuum  non 
improbemus,  nee  tibi  nee  aliis  quicquam  scribendum  putamus. 
De  adventu  Oratoris  carissimi  in  Christo  filii  nostri  Wladislai 
regis  Hungarie  valde  letamur,  sperantes  quod  cause  nostre  S.R.E. 
multum  sit  profuturus,  presertim  cum  jam  ut  scribis  bona  jecerit 
fundamenta.  Rationes,  quibus  eum  ad  prosequendam  dictam 
causam  nostram  animasti  atque  armasti,  optime  sunt  et  ab  ipsa 
veritate  deducte,  quas  non  cessabis  iterum  iterumque  repetere  et 
eum  ad  perseverandum  hortari.  Carissimi  in  Christo  filii  nostri 
Maximiliani  Romanorum  regis  illustris  optimum  animum  et  inde- 
fessum  studium  ad  recuperationem  civitatum  et  terrarum  S.R.E., 
cum  ex  aliis  multis  rebus  tum  ex  litteris,  quas  ad  oratores  sues 
novissime  Venetias  misit,  percepimus,  nosque  ei  ob  hoc  quotidie 
magis  debere  cognoscimus.     Igitur  hortandi  erunt  oratores  ipsi, 

*  See  supra^  p.  255.  t  See  supra,  p.  255. 


632  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

ut  restitution!  hujusmodi  opportune  importuneque  instent.  Nos 
ad  eos  scribimus,  prout  suades,  litterarum  exemplum  presentibus 
introclusum  mittimus,  easque  sibi  tradi  mandavimus.  Tabellarii 
error  fuit,  ut  superiores  littere  nostra  tibi  priusquam  illis  nono 
fuerint  reddite. 

Datum    Rome,    apud    S.    Petrum    die    xvii.    Octobris,    1504, 
Pontificatus  nostri  anno  primo. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  193.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

38  &  39.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  the  German  Electors.* 

1504,  Oct.  28,  Rome. 
Venerabilibus  fratribus  nostris  et  dilectis  filiis  nobilibus  viris 
sacri  Romani  imperii  principibus  electoribus.  Venerabiles  fratres 
nostri  et  dilecti  fiUi  nobiles  viri  salutem,  etc.  Carissimus  in 
Christo  fiUus  noster  Maximilianus  rex  Romanorum  illustris,  qui 
S.R.E.  est  advocatus,  ut  est  observantissimus  S.  ApostoHce  sedis 
animique  celsi  atque  invicti,  misit  nuper  legates  suos  ad  Venetos 
pro  restitutione  civitatum,  arcium  et  locorum  ejusdem  S.R.E. 
quas  ipsi  Veneti,  ceca  relique  Italic  dominande  libidine  ducti, 
facta  pace  cum  Turcis  contra  Deum  atque  omnem  justitiam  in 
provincia  nostra  Romandiole  occuparunt  et  occupant.  Multum 
quidem  legati  ipsi  apud  ipsos  Venetos  deberent  valere,  utpote  a 
rege  Romanorum  et  advocate  S.R.E.  missi,  cui  in  omnibus  rebus 
presertim  tam  justis  obsequi  eos  par  est.  Verumtamen  nos  con- 
siderantes,  quod  si  vos  quoque,  qui  praecipua  membra  sacri 
Romani  imperii  estis,  et  ejusdem  sancte  sedis  semper  obser- 
vantissimi  fuistis,  vestrum  nomen  vestramque  auctoritatem  huic 
legationi  addideritis,  ut  consensu  totius  inclyte  nationis  Germaniae 
defensio  S.R.E.  videatur  suscepta,  plurimum  huic  restitution! 
accelerandae  conducere  poterit ;  vos,  qui  supra  ceteros  principes 
et  nationes  insigni  prerogativa  ac  dignitate  decorati  estis,  in 
Domino  quanto  possumus  studio  et  affectu  rogamus,  ut  ad 
venerabilem  fratrem  episcopum  Acquensem  ejusdem  regis  oratorem 
nunc  Venetiis  existentem  velitis  scribere  et  injungere,  ut  causam 
restitutionis  hujusmodi  etiam  vestro  nomine  prosequatur  omni 
studio ;  quod  si  feceritis,  ut  speramus,  erit  immortali  laude  dignum 
*  See  supra,  p.  255. 


APPENDIX.  633 

et  nobis  supra  quam  dici  possil  gratum,  prout  dilectus  filius 
magister  Marianus  de  Bartolinis  *  causarum  palatii  apostolici 
auditor,  orator  noster,  latius  explicabit  cui  fidem  indubiam  prebere 
velitis.  Datum  Romae  apud  S.  Petrum  sub  annulo  piscatoris  die 
XXVIII.  Octobris,  1504,     Pontificatus  nostri  anno  primo. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  201.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

40.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Angelo  Leonini,  Bishop  of 
TivoLi,  Nuncio  at  Venice  f 

1504,  Nov,  17,  Rome. 
The  Pope  has  received  his  news  of  the  nth  inst.  with  joy,  and 
is  pleased  to  hear  that  the  Bishop  of  Acqui  will  come  to  Rome. 
[Cone.  Lib,  brev.  22,  f.  230,     Secret  Archives  of  the  Vatican. 
Unprinted    documents    and    communications    from    the 
Archives,  1 504-1 505,] 

41.    Pope  Julius  II.  to  Cosimo  de'  Pazzi, 
Bishop  of  ArezzcJ 

1504,  Nov.  29  [Rome]. 
Cosimo  episcopo  Aretino,  prelate,  nostro  domestico,  nuntio  et 
oratori  nostro.     Ne  diutius  responsum  ex  Hispania  de  tua  admis- 
sione  cum  honoris   nostri  diminuitione  expectes  et  tempus  in- 
cassum  teras — he  commands  him  to  return  at  once. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev,  22,  f,  210^     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

42,  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Angelo  Leonini,  Bishop  of 
TivoLi,  Nuncio  at  Venice.  § 

1504,  Dec.  17  [Rome]. 
Venerabili  fratri  episcopo  Tiburtino  Venetiis  nostro  cum  potes- 
tate  legati  de  latere.  Ex  tuis  litteris  novissime  intelleximus,  quod 
licet  dilecto  filio  Petro  Berislao  preposito  S.  Laurentii  carissimi 
in  Christo  fihi  nostri  Wladislai,  Hungarie  et  Bohemie  regis 
illustris,  oratori  nee  fides  nee  diligentia  nee  dexteritas  ingenii 
defuerit  in  repetendis  terris  et  locis  S,  R.  E.,  nullum  tamen  saltern 

*  See  supra,  p.  255.  t  See  supra.  No.  36. 

+  See  supra,  p.  256.  §  See  supra,  p.  257. 


634  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

bonum  responsum  a  duce  et  senatu  isto  elicere  potuit,  adeo  ut 
frustra  laborare  et  tempus  terere  videatur,  Quibus  rebus  con- 
sideratis  in  dubio  sumus,  quid  magis  expediat,  manereve  videlicet 
ilium  isthic  diutius  et  Venetos  pro  dicta  restitutione  indesinenter 
urgere,  an  ad  regem  suum  redire  eique  duritiem  Venetorum  referre, 
qui  neque  justitie  respectu,  nee  numine  hujus  s.  sedis  nee  cujus- 
quam  christiani  regis  auctoritate  moventur.  Cujus  rei  judicium 
fraternitati  tue  relinquimus,  nam  cum  isthic  sis  et  non  solum 
responsa  sed  et  mentes  Venetorum  perspicere  possis,  eidem  oratori 
suadebis  *  prout  magis  rebus  nostris  conducere  visum  fuerit 
Nos  in  utrumque  eventum  brevia  scribimus,  quibus  uteris  prout 
res  postulabit ;  nam  ea  una  cum  eorum  copiis  presentibus  mit- 
timus alligata.  Datum  die  xvii.  Dec,  1584,  Pontificatus 
nostri  anno  secundo.  Sigismundus. 
[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  238.  Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

43.  Floramonte  Brognolo  to  Isabella,  Marchioness 

OF  Mantua,  t 

1505,  January  17,  Rome. 

.  .  .  De  quelle  mapamondo  et  signi  celesti,  che  sono  depinti 
in  due  spere  solide  in  la  libraria  del  papa,  de  li  quali  V.  Ex'^  ne 
vorria  exemplo  ho  ordinato  che  sia  facto  per  uno  bono  pictore  de 
palatio,  el  quale  me  dice  che  ce  andera  qualche  tempo  per  essere 
cosa  ingeniosa ;  io  non  ce  manchar5  de  sollicitudine  et  de  prove- 
dere  alia  spexa  necessaria  et  quam  primum  sia  facto  lo  mandar5 
per  messo  fidato  a  V.  111'"^  S'^  in  bona  gratia  de  la  quale  sempre 
me  ric'^". 

Rome,  die  xvii.  lanuarij,  1505. 

Floramontus  Brognolus. 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 

44.  Floramonte  Brognolo  to  Isabella,  Marchioness 

OF  Mantua.  J 

1505,  Feb.  I,  Rome. 

j^ma  Mada  mia.      Quelle  maestro  pictore  che  vorria  exemplare 

quello  mapamondo  et  zodiaco,  che  sonno  in  la  libraria  del  papa, 

*  In  MS.  stiadere.  t  See  supra,  pp.  457  and  583. 

t  See  supra,  pp.  457  and  583. 


APPENDIX.  635 

de  li  quali  V.  Ex.  me  scripse  ali  di  passati,  me  dice  che  ad  volerli 
fare  cum  li  telari  et  tondi  che  stiano  sopra  li  piedi  como  stanno 
li  altri  ce  andaria  piu  de  quaranta  ducati  de  spexa,  et  che  ad 
designarli  in  carta  secundo  uno  certo  designo  che  e  pur  in  quelle 
loco  depinto  in  tela  ce  andaria  pochissima  spexa ;  me  parso  darne 
noticia  ad  V.  Ex.  prima  che  faci  altra  provixione  de  farli  exem- 
plare,  et  quella  se  degnara  farme  intendere  la  volonta  sua,  et  sera 
facto  quanto  la  scrivera,  et  in  bona  gratia  sua  sempre  me  rico'^°. 
Rome,  die  p°  feb",  1505. 

Floramontus  Brognolus. 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 
45.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  the  Marquess  of  Massa.* 

1505,  Sept.  30,  Viterbo. 
Dilecte,  etc.  .  .  .  Andreas  Gallettus,  statuarius  sculptor  de 
monte  S.  Severini  presentiuin  exhibitor  venit  isthuc  pro  effodiendis 
marmoribus  cuidam  egregio  operi,  quod  nostro  jussu  facturus  est, 
necessariis.  Quocirca  nobilitatem  tuam  hortamur  ut  circa  hoc 
eidem  Andreae  omnes  oportunos  favores  pro  nostra  et  sedis  apos- 
tolicae  reverentia  velis  prebere ;  id  si  feceris,  ut  speramus,  erit 
nobis  plurimum  gratum.  Dat.  Viterbii,  die  xxx.  Sept.,  1505. 
Pontif.  nostri  anno  2°. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  377.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

46.  Julius  II.  to  the  Augustinian  Hermit,  Aegidius  of 
Viterbo. 

1505,  Nov.  4,  Rome. 

Fratri  Egidio  di  Viterbo.  Iterum  tibi  Romam  est  redeun- 
dum :  tantum  enim  tui  desiderium  reliquisti  ut  ab  omnibus  in 
lege  domini  et  salutem  animarum  querentibus  expecteris.  He  is 
therefore  to  come  to  Rome. 

Dat.  Romae,  iv.  Nov.,  1505,  A.  IV.  P.  2°. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  452.     Secret  Archives  of  the 

Vatican.] 

1505-1506. 

*  See  supra,  p.  493.  I  cannot  obtain  more  precise  information  in  regard  to 
this  sculptor.     E.  MiJNTZ  also  knew  nothing  further  about  him. 


636  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

47.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Queen  Anne  of  France.* 

1505,  December  i  [Rome]. 
The  Queen  has  asked  to  have  Robert,  Bishop  of  Rennes,  made 
a  Cardinal.     He  has  received  the  Hat  to-day. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  p.  409.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

48.    GiROLAMO    ArSAGO    TO    THE    MaRQUESS    OF    MaNTUA.J 

1505,  Dec.  24,  Rome. 
Questa  sera  N.  S""^  spaza  in  Franza  Cistrione  perche  me  pare 
che  la  M'^  del  re  de  Franza  voleva  che  N.  S.  facesse  card'^ 
mons''^  de  la  Tramoia,  altramente  chel  se  intendiva  de  tore  il 
possesso  de  li  beneficij  de  S.  P[ietro]  in  vincula  et  cosi  ha  fatto ; 
per  questo  S.  S'^  manda  per  assetto  de  questo  el  p'°  Cesterone 
[sul]  ... 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 

49.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Queen  Anne  of  France,  f 

1505,  Dec.  24,  Rome. 
He  says  that  he  would  gladly  have  complied  with  the  wishes  of 
the  Queen  at  the  last  nomination  of  Cardinals  :  sed  tanta  incidit 
difficultas,  ut  mirum  sit  nos,  quos  creavimus,  potuisse  creare.    He 
asks  her  to  pacify  her  husband.  § 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  433.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

49a.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Henry  VIII.,  King  of  England.!! 

1506,  Jan.  6,  Rome. 
Regi  Anglie.     Carissime  etc.     Decrevimus  Deo  dante  vetustara 
admodum  et  propemodum  collabentem  basilicam  b.   Petri  apos- 

*  See  stipra,  p.  221.  t  See  supra,  p.  264. 

X  See  supra,  p.  221,  and  Raynaldus  ad  an.  1505,  n.  40. 
§  Louis  XII.  at  that  time  was  pressing  for  the  nomination  of  two  more 
French  Cardinals.     See  Sanuto,  VI.,  275. 
II  See  supra,  pp.  471-72. 


APPENDIX. 


637 


tolorum  principis  de  urbe  a  fundumentis  rehedificare  decentique 
opere  cum  capellis  et  aliis  officinis  necessariis  exornare  atque  in- 
staurare.  Cum  autem  nostri  et  Ro[mane]  E[cclesi]e  redditus  sint 
admodum  tenues  et  exiles  multaque  alia  etiam  pro  defensione 
cath[olice]  fidei  nobis  incumbant  dispendia  ac  propterea  ad 
tantum  tamque  sumptuosum  opus  sint  christifidelium  praesertim 
catholicorum  suffragia  plurimum  opportuna,  M'^™  tuam  quam 
religione  et  pietate  inter  ceteros  Christianos  reges  plurimum 
pollere  cognovimus  hortamur  et  ex  animo  requirimus,  velit  aliquid 
de  bonis  sibi  in  tam  inclito  et  opulento  suo  regno  a  Deo  collatis, 
prout  devotio  sua  dictaverit,  in  hoc  sanct[um]  ac  pernecessarium 
opus  erogare  et  alicui,  de  quo  confidat,  committere,  ut  illud 
videat  in  eum  tantum  et  non  in  alium  usum  converti.  By  this 
you  will  oblige  Ourselves  and  the  Holy  See.  Dat  Romae  apud 
S.  Petrum  die  vi.  Januarii,  1506.     Pontif.  nostri  anno  3°. 

Duplicat.  sub  eadem  data. 

Si[mile]  archiep.  Cantuarien.  sub  eadem  data. 

„  „         Eboracen.*  „         „         „ 

Si[mile]  episcopo  Wintonien.f  sub  eadem  data. 

,,  ,,         Lincolinen.     „ 

„  „         Sarisberico.    ,, 

„  ,,         Norvicen.        ,, 

,,  ,,         Exonien.  J      „ 

„  „         Conventrien.  § 

„  „         Cuestien.  ||      ,, 

„  „         Harforden.     ,, 

Si[mile]  Margarite  matri  regis  Anglie. 

„        duci  Buckinganie. 

„        march,  de  Dorstat. 

,,        comiti  Northumberlandie. 

,,  „       de  Vurren.  IT 

„  „      Salopie.** 

„  „      Arundelie. 

„  ,,      Devonie. 

,,  ,,      Oxonie. 


York. 

Exeter. 

Ought,  perhaps,  to  be  Cloynen. 

Shrewsbury. 


t  Winchester, 
§  Coventry. 
U  Worcester. 


638  HISTORY  OP^   THE   POPES. 

Si[mile]  dom.  Dunbendii,*  regni  Anglie  camerario.t 

„       dom  de  Burgoynye.+ 
Omnia  duplicata  sub  eadem  data. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  22,  f.  443.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 


50.    GiROLAMO    ArSAGO   TO    THE    MaRQUESS    OF    MaNTUA.§ 

1506,  Aug.  15,  Rome. 

....  Heri  sera  lo  ambassatore  de  lo  Imperatore  cum  littere 
de  sua  M'^  Ces<=^  sottoscripto  de  sua  mano,  cosa  non  ha  anchora 
facto,  feci  intendere  a  N.  S"^  che  lo  Imperatore  omnino  volea 
venire  di  curto  ad  incoronarsi  et  volere  venire  armato,  del  che 
S.  S'^  non  lauda  ne  li  pare  sia  necessario  chel  venga  armato.  Se 
conteneva  anchora  in  esse  littere  la  morte  del  re  de  Ungaria,  la 
quale  non  havea  a  differire  la  venuta  de  la  M'^  Ces<=a  per  respecto 
che  li  e  rimasto  el  filio  nato  pochi  di  fa.  .  .  . 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 


51.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Francesco  Gonzaga,  Marquess 
OF  Mantua.1I 

1506,  Aug.  22,  Rome. 

Dilecte,  etc.  Die  mercurii  proxima,  que  erit  vigesima  sexta 
huius  mensis  Augusti,  Roma  auxiliante  Altissimo  discedemus  ad 
civitatem  nostram  Bononie  profecturi  iterque  per  Romandiolam 
facere  cogitamus.  Erit  igitur  nobis  gratissimum  si  Urbinum  ante 
accessum  illuc  nostrum  te  conferas,  ubi  te  videre  et  alloqui  prout 
desideramus  possimus.  He  is  admonished  to  do  this  without 
delay.  Dat.  Rome  apud  S.  Petrum  sub  annulo  piscatoris  die 

22  Augusti,  1506,  Pontif.  nostri  anno  3°. 

SiGISMUNDUS. 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 

*  The  name  seems  incorrectly  given. 

t  MS.:  camerarius.  +  Burgoyne. 

§  See  sup-a,  pp.  262,  269.  ||  See  supra,  p.  266 


APPENDIX.  639 

52.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Francesco  Gonzaga,  Marquess 
OF  Mantua.* 

1506,  Sept.  10,  Castiglione. 

Dilecte  fill,  etc.  Accepimus  litteras  tuas  prenuntias  tui  ad  nos 
adventus,  gratissimas  nobis  quidem  illas  et  optatissimas.  Itaque 
tuam  nobilitatem  magno  cum  desiderio  expectamus.  Dat.  in 
oppido  nostro  Castirionis  ad  lacum  Trasimenum  sub  annulo 
piscat.  die  x.  Septembris,  1506.     Pontif.  nostri  anno  3°. 

SiGISMUNDUS. 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 

53.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Francesco  Gonzaga,    Marquess   of 
Mantua,  and  Niccol6  Buonafede,  Bishop  of  Cniusi.t 

1506,  Oct.  15,  Forli. 

Decrevimus  progredi  Imolam  usque,  sed  quia  per  Faventinum 
agrum  iter  agendum  erit  maiore  quam  consuevimus  militum 
numero  septos  nos  esse  oportet.  He  therefore  is  to  send  to- 
morrow, or  on  Saturday,  stratigotas  et  partem  levis  armaturae  to 
Forli. 

SiGISMUNDUS. 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 

54.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Cardinal  Giov.  Antonio 
Di  S.  Giorgio.  I 

1506,  Nov.  5,  Bologna. 

Antonio  episcopo  Tusculano,  cardinali  Alexandrini.  Gabriel 
Valentius  is  nominated  Reformator  studii  almae  §  urbis ;  he  is  to 
be  installed  on  January  ist. 

[Cone.  Lib   brev.  25,  f.  29.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

*  See  supra^  p.  269. 
t  See  supra,  p.  277. 
X  See  supra,  p.  457. 
§  See  Renazzi,  I. ,  206  seq. ,  on  the  Reformatori  of  the  University. 


640  HISTORY  OF   THE   POPES, 

55.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Cesena.* 

1506,  Dec.  10,  Bologna. 
Conservatoribus,  Antianis  et  civitati  Cesenae.  They  are  to 
have  the  right  of  deputing  three  of  their  citizens  to  control  the 
accounts  of  the  Papal  Treasurer.  The  fourth  part  of  the  fines 
for  criminal  offences  is  to  be  expended  in  accordance  with  the 
provisions  of  the  Bull  dealing  with  these  matters.  The  surplus 
is  to  be  spent  on  repairs  of  the  portus  Cesenatii  and  of  the 
Palace. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev,  25,  f.  59.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

56.  Julius  II.  to  Ferdinand  the  Catholic. t 

1506,  Dec.  II,  Bologna. 
He  has  fulfilled  Ferdinand's  request  to  reinstate  the  Observant- 
ines  who  had  been  driven  out  of  their  convents,  and  to  punish 
the  Conventuals  ;  but  he  says  that  the  General  of  the  Order 
had  asked  to  have  a  convent  in  Aragon  assigned  to  the  Con- 
ventuals ;  he  is  now  sending  Fr.  Julian  de  Mugla,  Master  and 
Professor  of  Theology,  to  the  King,  to  explain  the  matter.  He 
also  admonishes  him  to  assist  the  Nuncio  to  obtain  the  moneys 
which  Fr.  Cherubin  is  collecting  there  for  the  General  Chapter 
which  took  place  in  Rome.  The  Pope  destined  these  offerings 
for  the  restoration  of  the  Church  of  the  Twelve  Apostles,  where 
the  Chapter  was  held.  Erit  hoc  Deo  acceptum  et  nobis 
gratissimum. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  16'^.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

57.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Leonardo  Loredano, 

Doge  of  Venice.  | 

1506,  Dec.  16,  Bologna. 
Leonardo    Lancedano   [sic !]   duci  Venetiarum.     He  is   again 
admonished  to  put  Cardinal  Farnese  in  possession  of  the  Priory  of 

*  See  supra,  p.  229. 

+  See   supra,    p.    496.     "Mugla"   in   the    MS.    should   perhaps   be   read 
"Mugia." 
X  See  supra,  p.  301. 


APPENDIX.  641 

S.  Perpetuae  to  which  the  Pope  had  appointed  him,  qui  nobis 

carissimus  est  et  honoris  ac  amplitudinis    tuae   studiosissimus. 

Dat.  Bononiae,  1507  [_stc\]  Dec.  16.     Pontif.  nostri  anno  4°. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  19.     Secret  Archives  of  the 

Vatican.] 

58.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Leonardo  Loredano, 
Doge  of  Venice.* 

1506,  Dec.  18,  Bologna. 
Leonardo  Lauredano  duci  Venetiarum.    Card.  S.  Mar.  Transtib. 
Senogalliensis  f    is    to    be    put    in    possession    of   the    Eccles. 
Tranensis  which  has  been  given  to  him.     Why  delay  ?     Pressing 
admonition. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  37.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

59.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Cardinal  Alessandro  Farnese.J 

1507,  Jan.  I,  Bologna. 
Alexandro  S.  Eustachii  Card.  diac.  de  Farnesio,  Administrator 
of  the  Marches.  The  inhabitants  of  those  provinces  complain  of 
the  exactions  of  the  local  Administrator,  Salariae  Berengar  de 
Armellinis.  Card.  Farnese  is  to  oppose  these,  and  to  protect  the 
inhabitants,  who  are  devoted  to  the  Holy  See.  Dat.  Bononiae 
1506  [st'cl]  Jan.  I.     Pontif.  nostri  A°  4°. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  71b.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

60.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Ferdinand  the  Catholic. § 

1507,  Jan.  5,  Bologna. 
Regi  Catholico.     The  Nuncio  Gabr.  Merino  is  to  request  him 
to  take  up  the  cause  of  Joh.  Jord.  de  Ursinis  with  the  French 
King. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  no.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

*  See  S2t/>ra,  p.  301. 
t  M.  Vigerio. 
+  See  sup7-a,  p.  229. 

§   See  sttpi'a,  p.  260.    On  Gabriel  Merino  compare  Pieper,  Nuntiaturen,  63. 
VOL.  VI.  2  T 


642  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

61.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Louis  XII.,   King  of  France.* 

1507,  Jan.  5,  Bologna. 
Regi  Christianissimo.     He  is  to  use  his  influence  with  the  King 
of  Spain  to  obtain  restitution  for  Joh.  Jord.  Ursini  in  accordance 
with  the  treaty  concluded  with  Ferdinand  of  Aragon. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  11  o*^.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

62.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Cardinal  George  d'Amboise.I 

1507,  Jan.  5,  Bologna. 
Card.    Rothomag.     The   property   of   Ursini   qui   pro    corona 
Franciae  nullum  recusavit  discrimen,  is  to  be  restored  to  him  juxta 
pacta   et   capitula  cum   Ferdinando  cath.  rege  facta ;   he  is  to 
admonish  the  King  of  France  to  do  this. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  in.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

63.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Gonsalvo  de  Cordova.! 

1507,  Jan.  5,  Bologna. 
Gundisalvo  Fernandi  duci  terrae  novae  regis  catholici  capitaneo 
generali.  Gabr.  Merinus  (cubicularius  and  nuncio)  is  recom- 
mended to  Gonsalvo  de  Cordova,  who  is  desired  to  support  the 
cause  of  Johann,  Jordan,  de  Ursinis  super  restitutione  terrarum  et 
locorum  quae  repetit. 

[Con.  Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  76''.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

64.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  M.  de  La  Tr:6moille.§ 

[1507,  Jan.  5,  Bologna.] 
Domine  de  la  Tremogla.  Adiyt  [sic !]  ad  Ferdinandum  cathol. 
regem  .  .  .  Joh.  Jordanus  de  Ursinis  petens  restitui  in  dominia 
paterna  atque  avita  iuxta  conventa  et  pacta  cum  christianissimo 
rege ;  id  tamen  adhuc  impetrare  non  potuit  et  propterea  ad  ipsum 
regem  christ.  nuntium  mittit  exhibitorem  praesentium.  He 
recommends  him.     [s.  d.] 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  109.     Secret  Archives  of  the 

Vatican.] 

*  See  stipra,  p.  260.  t  See  supra,  p.  260. 

X  See  supra,  p.  260.  ,  §  See  supra,  p.  260, 


APPENDIX.  643 


65.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Pierre  le  Filleul, 

Archbishop  of  Aix.* 

1507,  Jan.  5,  Bologna. 
The  same  as  the  preceding. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  109b.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

66.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  AscoLi.f 

1507,  Jan.  6,  Bologna. 
Civitati  Asculanensi.     Threatens  severe  punishment  unless  they 
expel  the  Filius  iniquitatis  Ascultus  cum  tota  eius  familia,  and 
refrain  from  all  further  hostilities  against  Arpignano,  which  has 
surrendered  to  the  Pope. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  84^      Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

67.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  the  Legate  of  the  Marches. J 

1507,  Jan.  II,  Bologna. 

To  say  that  complaints  have  reached  him  from  this  Province, 
of  exactions  on  the  part  of  the  judges.  He  commands  the  Legate 
to  remedy  this. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  135.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

68.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  the  Governor  of  Spoleto.§ 

1507,  Jan.  23,  Bologna. 
Barthol.  de  Runeie  ||  civitat.  Spolet.  gubernatori.     He  has  con- 
nived at  the  escape  of  Cupotinus  de  Norsia,  vir  factiosus,  who 
had  been  committed  to  him  for  safe  keeping  by  the  Legate  of 
Perugia.     He  is  to  be  tried. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  116,     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

*  See  stipra,  p.  260.  t  See  supra,  p.  229. 

X  See  supra,  p.  229.  §  See  supra,  p.  229. 

II  Perhaps  Rovere. 


644  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

69.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  the  Governor  of  Cesena.* 

1507,  Jan.  27,  Bologna. 
Civitatis   Cesenae   gubernatori.      Bona  in  seditionibus  ablata 
are  to  be  restored  to  the  citizens. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  129.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

70.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  P,  Ferreri,  Governor  of  iMOLA.t 

1507,  Feb.  21,  Bologna. 
Petro  Ferrerio  arcis  nostrae  Imolae  castellano.     Is  given  the 
charge  of  the  castle  as  the  reward  of  his  fidelity.     Is  to  make  an 
inventory  of  the  provisions  and  munitions,  and  to  send  this  to  the 
Pope. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  186.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

71.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Cardinal  Antonio  Ferreri. t 

1507,  Feb.  24,  Imola. 
Antonio  card.  Perusino,  Bononiae  legato.    The  Pope  commands 
him  to  compensate  a  citizen  of  Bologna,  who  has  suffered  great 
damage  to  his  property. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  160^.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

72.  Beltrando  Costabili  to  the  Duke  of  Ferrara.§ 

1507,  March  28,  Rome. 
La  santita  del  papa  heri  sera  circa  a  le  xxii.  hore,  essendo 
venuta  per  aqua,  smuntb  a  Ponte  Molle  :  et  essendo  andato  a  li  lo 
reuerendissimo  legato  et  li  altri  signori  cardinali,  quali  erano 
restati  a  Roma  et  tuta  la  corte,  la  Santita  Sua,  muntata  a  cauallo, 
se  ne  vene  sino  a  S.  Maria  del  popolo  cum  grande  plauso  del 
popolo  et  li  smuntb.  In  questa  matina  la  Santita  Sua  li  haue  facto 
la  capella  et  la  benedictione  de  le  palme  et  lo  reuerendissimo 
cardinale  de  Regio  ha  cantato  la  messa.     Dopoi  la  Santita  Sua 

*  See  supra,  p.  229.  +  See  szipra,  p.  229, 

X  See  supra,  pp.  222,  229.  §  See  supra,  p.  288. 


APPENDIX.  645 

cum  tuti  li  signori  cardinal!  ha  disnato  al  monasterio.  Dopo 
disnare,  et  che  la  Santita  Sua  hebe  dormito  a  xxi.  hora  e 
muntata  a  cavallo  et  cum  grandissima  soleranitate  et  triumpho 
se  ne  e  venuta  a  S.  Petro,  dopoi  al  pallatio.  La  Santita  Sua 
dal  popolo  and6  a  la  via  de  S.  Marcho  et  poi  per  la  strata 
consueta  farssi  and6  a  Campo  de  Fiore.  Et  per  li  banchi  se  ne 
vene  a  S.  Petro.  Et  in  diversi  loci  se  retrovorno  archi  triumphalli 
cum  eprigrami  [sic\]  inlaude  de  sua  santita,  le  strate  coperte  de 
panno  et  in  multi  loci  le  mure  apparate  de  tapecciaria  cum  altri 
apparati  dove  erano  li  capitoli  de  le  chiesie  patriarchalle  et  in 
altri  loci  relligiosi  in  processione  cum  can  tori  et  canti,  in  modo 
che  lo  e  stato  judicato  questa  intrata  essere  stata  piu  solemne  non 
fu  la  coronatione.  Dopoi  la  Santita  Sua  smuntata  et  licentiati  li 
signori  cardinali  in  parte  al  basso  et  in  parte  ad  alto  se  retird  a  le 
stantie  sue  et  non  dimord  multo  che  la  se  ne  ando  a  Belvedere. 
Et  che  tuto  per  mio  debito  notifico  a  Vostra  Celsitudine  et  a  la 
sua  bona  gratia  de  continue  me  recommando.  Romae,  xxviii. 
Martij,  1507. 

[The  original  is  in  the  State  Archives,  Modena.l 


73.    Cardinal  Scipio  Gonzaga  to  the  Marquess  of 

Mantua.* 

1507,  March  29,  Rome. 

Per  questa  mi  occorre  significare  a  V.  Ex.  come  venero  proximo 
passato  a  di  xxvi.  N.  S.  parti  da  Cita  Castellana  et  and6  a  f  et 
de  li  parti  el  sabbato  sequente,  et  parte  a  cavallo,  parte  in  barcha 
per  el  Tivere  dividendo  el  camino  suo  gionse  a  Ponte  MoUe  circa 
hore  xxiii.,  dove  era  expectato  da  tutti  quelli  card'i  quali  erano 
restati  qui  et  da  quelli  quali  havevono  prevenuto  S.  S'^  nel  venire 
a  Roma  et  da  molti  Romani  et  da  tutta  la  corte,  et  ivi  smontato 
fu  accompagnato  a  S'^  Maria  del  populo,  dove  stette  la  nocte,  et 
dove  la  matina  seguente  tutti  questi  miei  S"^'  R"^'  card''  da  hore 
circa  xii.  se  reduseno  per  celebrare  la  solennita  de  le  palme  et 
fare  lofficio  consueto,  quale  dur6  fino  ad  hore  xviii.,  et  dove  la 
pta  S'^  disend  et  cum  quella  molti  R"^'  S"  Card''  de  lo  numero 
de  quali  io  fui  uno.  Poi  a  le  xxi.  hore  vel  circa  quella  cum  tutta 
la  corte  parti  secondo  gli   ordini  consueti  et  facendo  una  gran 

*  See  supra,  p.  28S.  t  Name  of  place  illegible. 


646  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

volta  per  Roma  cum  grand^^o  iubilo  di  la  terra  et  populo  and5  a 
S.  Pietro.  Per  le  strate  erano  facti  grandi  apparati  de  tapezarie  et 
altari  maxime  a  le  chiesie,  dove  erano  tutti  gli  relligiosi  di  Roma, 
cosi  secular!  come  regular!  cantando  et  facti  vi  erano  molti  archi 
tryumphali  cum  diverse  et  varie  inscription!,  et  fra  le  altre  cose, 
quali  molto  me  piaqueno,  vi  era  numero  grande  de  populo  et  de 
cavalli,  ita  che  erano  circa  hore  xxiii.  e  meza  quando  S.  S'^ 
smont6  a  le  scale  di  S.  Pietro,  dove  fu  receputa  da  quelli 
S"  canonici  et  facta  loratione  in  S.  Pietro  et  accompagnata  in 
palazo  a  le  camare  sue  se  ne  tornamo  a  casa  sonate  le  xxiii.  hore  ; 
a  quale  tempo  se  cominciorno  fochi,  luminari  et  soni  cum  strepito 
grand"^°  de  artelarie  in  castello  S.  Angelo  et  per  tutta  Roma  .  .  . 
Roma,  XXVIII.  Martij,  mdvij. 

II  vostro  alevo  et  fidel  servo  S.  Card'^  de  Gonzaga 

man  propria. 
[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 

74.   Beltrando  Costabili  to  the  Duke  of  Ferrara.* 

1507,  April  12,  Rome. 
La  S'^  del  papa  hogi  e  andato  multo  privatamente  in  S.  Petro 
per  vedere  la  fabrica  et  essendo  me  li  retrovato  la  S'^  Sua  havendo 
cum  lei  Bramante  se  volt6  a  me  solo  c[on]  bocha  de  ridere  et 
dixe  come  Bramante  disea  havere  25o[o]  homini  su  questo 
lavorero  et  che  se  ne  potria  fare  la  monstra  et  [sic !]  bisognando 
adoperarli,  demondstrandose  asai  alegra,  lo  resp[osi]  a  pro- 
posito  dicendo  che  tanto  numero  aconciaria  uno  exercito, 
laudando  poi  la  fabrica  come  convene.  Sgiunsero  poi  alcuni 
sig"  cardinal!  cioe  lo  Fernese,  S.  Croce  et  Flischo  successiva- 
mente  a  1!  quali  S.  S'^  dete  audientia  in  quello  loco, 

[The  original  is  in  the  State  Archives,  Modena.] 
75.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Louis  XII.,  King  of  France.! 

1507,  Mai  20,  Rome. 
Reg!  christianissimo.     He  has   already  and   recently  thanked 
him  in  two  letters  pro  dementia  qua  in  civitatem  Januensem  usa 
est.     Patrie  enim  caritas  facit,  ut  earn  incolumem  esse  cupimus. 
*  See  supra,  p.  476.  t  See  supra,  p.  292. 


APPENDIX.  647 

He  recommends  to  him  the  de  Saulis  family  who  are  loyally  de- 
voted to  the  French  Crown. 

[Cone.  Lib.  brev.  25,  f.  242.     Secret  Archives  of  the 
Vatican.] 

76.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Maximilian  I.,  German  Emperor- 
Elect.* 

1508,  Febr.  12,  Rome. 

Julius  papa  II.  Carissime  in  Christo  fiH  noster,  salutem  et 
apostolicam  benedictionem.  Hesterno  die  in  consistorio  nostro 
secret©  dilecti  filii  nostri  Melchior  cardinalis  Brixinensis  f  et  Con- 
stantinus  Cominatus  Macedonie  princeps  literas  tuo  Celistudinis 
nobis  et  venerabilibus  fratribus  nostris  sancte  Romane  ecclesie 
cardinalibus  reddiderunt  exposueruntque  illarum  vigore  ipsam 
tuam  maiestatem  iter  Italiam  versus  pro  imperialibus  infulis  de 
manu  nostra  suscipiendis  ingressum  esse,  ac  Tridenti  nomen  electi 
imperatoris  Romanorum  suscepisse,  ut,  quoniam  hec  expeditio 
armis  tibi  agenda  est.  inclinatiores  tecum  Germanos  habere 
possis.  Voluisse  autem  hoc  nobis  per  eos  rite  significari,  ne  quis 
emulus  in  calumniam  vertere  posset  et  dicere,  quod  in  nostrum  et 
s.  Romanae  ecclesie  prejudicium  id  egisses.  Cum  tamen  quid- 
quid  agis  et  meditaris  ad  honorem  et  commodum  nostrum  sedis 
apostolice  referas  iterque  hoc  ea  mente  susciperes,  ut  more  claris- 
simorum  predecessorum  tuorum  coronam  imperialemque  unc- 
tionem  ab  eadem  sede  suscipias,  accomodatissima  oratione  in 
Uteris  explicandis  cardinalis  et  Constantinus  sunt  usi,  que  a  nobis 
et  ipsis  venerabilibus  fratribus  nostris  equissimis  auribus  atque 
animis  est  accepta.  Itaque  tuam  Celsitudinem  plurimum  in 
domino  comendamus,  que  in  suscipiendo  nomine  electi  impera- 
toris verita  sit  animum  nostrum  offendere,  quominus  id  juste  et 
rite  potueris  facere,  cum  sancta  Romana  ecclesia  in  precibus  et 
orationibus,  quas  die  comemorationis  passionis  domini  nostri  Jesu 
Christi  fidelibus  facit,  electum  imperatorem  appellet,  itaque  cum 
nostra  benedictione  et  gratia  hoc  electi  nomine  uti  potes  nee 
dubitare   debes,  ut  nos   cujusquam  obtrectationibus  aures  prae- 

*  See  siipra^  p.  296-7,  also  Ulmann,  II.,  333,  note  ;  p.  340,  note.     Of 
these  documents  see  No.  118. 
t  Melchior  von  Meckau. 


HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

beamus.     Tam  bonam  enim  opinionem  de  Celsitudinis  tue  erga 
nos  et  sanctam  Romanam  ecclesiam  singular!  devotione  et  pietate 
concepimus,  ut  nihil  a  te  cogitari  did  aut  fieri  posse  credamus, 
quod  in  diminutionem  honoris  et  dignitatis  apostolice  sedis  cedat. 
Quod  vero  rem  armis  agendam  putes,  non  possumus  non  vehe- 
menter  dolere,  quamquam  speremus,  inter  te  et  christianissimum 
Francorum  regem  pacem  aliquo  bono  modo  fieri  posse,  presertim 
cum  aput  [st'c]  te  sit  venerabilis  frater  B.  episcopus  Tusculanus, 
cardinalis  s.  crucis,  noster  et  dicte  sedis  legatus  de  latere,  singular! 
prudentia,  fide  et  probitate  preditus,  a  nobis  hujus  pacis  causa 
missus,  ad  quam  etiam  nos  Francorum  regem  non  desinimus  ex- 
hortari,     Celsitudinem   igitur   tuam  per  omnia  nostre   religionis 
'  misteria  obsecramus  et  obtestamur,  ut  ab  ipsa  pace  animum  non 
auertas.      Pace    enim    facta   magis  securus  magisque  honoratus 
Romam  venire   poteris    ac  nobiscum  deliberare  (nam  et  tu   in 
temporalibus  caput  fidelium  es)  de  expeditione  contra  perfidos 
Turcas  sumenda,  cujus  expeditionis  maximam  occasionem  Deus 
Salvatorque  noster  nunc  obtulit.     Baxetus  enim  illorum  tirannus 
gravi  bello  (ut  magnus  Rhodi  magister  nobis  significavit)  a  rege 
Persarum  premitur  et  tanto  in  metu  versatur,  ut  omnia  maritima 
loca  (quo  omnes  copias  regi  Persarum  opponat)  immunita  reli- 
querit  ac  propterea  facilem  sit  Cristi  fidelibus  victoriam  conces- 
surus.      Si   armis   in  Italiam  prorumpere  velles,   plerique  quod 
bellorum  exitus  sunt  incerti,  Italic  ipsius  vastitas  sequeretur  cum 
magna  tui  nota  et  nostra.     Turcis  quoque  nunc  perculsis  et  tre- 
mentibus    tempus    daretur    se   colligendi  viresque   confirmandi. 
Cogita  igitur,  ut  pacificus  in  Italiam  tuus  sit  aduentus,  propo- 
nimusque   tibi  ante  oculos  optimum    et   clarissimum  genitorem 
tuum  Fridericum,  qui  omnibus  Italis  gaudentibus  semel  et  iterum 
Romam  venit.     Tibi  quoque  curandum  puta,  ut  cum  omni  gratu- 
latione  venire  possis.     A  nobis  certe  tanta  comitate,  benignitate 
et  liberalitate  excipieris,  quanta  nullus   unquam    predecessorum 
tuorum  a  pontifice  Romano  exceptus  fuerit.     Hec,  fili  charissime, 
pro  zelo  reipublicae  christiane  proque  singular!,  qua  celsitudinem 
tuam  prosequimur  caritate  paterne  tibi  scribenda  duximus.     Que 
si  in  eam  partem,  qua  debes,   acceperis,  desiderium  tuum  sine 
cede  et  periculo  consequeris.     Dat.  Rome  aput  [sz'c]  s.  Petrum 
sub  annulo  piscatoris  die  xii.  Februarii,  mcviii.,   Pontif.  nostri 
anno  quinto. 


APPENDIX.  649 

Charissimo  in  Christo  filio  nostro  Maximiliano  electo  Roman- 
orum  imperatori  semper  augusto. 

On  the  cover  is  a  note  in  L.  Fries'  handwriting  :  Imperial  Acts, 
Breve  JuHi  II.  Pontificis,  to  the  effect  that  King  Maximilian, 
Emperor-Elect,  may  come  in  peace  to  receive  the  Crown. 

There  is  a  copy  made  about  the  same  time  on  a  loose  sheet  of 
paper*  in  the  Kreisarchiv,  Wiirzburg. 

77.  Cardinal  Sigismondo  Gonzaga  to  the  Marquess  of 

Mantua,  f 

1508,  Feb.  12,  Rome. 
.  .  .  Ho  ritenuto  el  presente  cavallaro  sin  hora,  perche  essendo 
publica  fama  che  a  Trento  lo  Imper'^^  haveva  facto  bandir  la 
guerra  contra  el  re  de  Franza,  contra  Venetian!,  contra  el  duca  di 
Ferrara,  contra  V.  Ex.  et  contra  tulle  gli  rebelli  de  lo  Imperio,  et 
che  N.  S.  di  questo  haveva  adviso,  me  ho  voluto  chiarire  de  la 
verita  nel  consistorio  facto  questa  matina,  quale  solamente  e  stato 
ad  instantia  de  lo  Imper''^,  cioe  degli  oratori  suoi,  videlicet  del  rmo 
card^^  de  Brixina  et  del  S""^  Costantino,  quali  presentate  lettere 
credentiale  a  N.  S.  et  al  sacro  coUegio  hanno  supplicato  a  S.  S'^ 
et  pregato  detto  sacro  coUegio,  che  cosi  come  el  Re  suo  e  stato 
electo  Imp"^^  a  questi  proximi  di  passati  in  Trento,  cosi  sia  con- 
firmato  de  la  prefata  S'^  et  sacro  collegio,  ita  che  per  lo  advenire 
el  se  possi  scrivere  Imperatore  electo.  Poi  hanno  exposto  da 
parti  sua,  come  lui  e  a  Trento,  cum  exercito  per  venire  a  coronarsi 
et  farsi  la  via,  contra  gli  nemici  et  rebelli  de  lo  Imperio,  quali 
ge  la  vorano  impedire.  Mandati  fuori  gli  ambassatori  et  factosi 
consulta  sopra  la  loro  proposta  fa  concluso  de  respondergli  in 
questo  modo,  et  cosi  gli  fu  resposto  de  N.  S""^ :  lui  cum  consenso 
del  collegio  essere  contento  confirmargli  il  titolo  et  la  inscriptione 
sua  chel  se  potessi  dimandare  Imperatore  electo,  et  cosi  lo  confir- 
mava  et  per  tale  lo  haveva.  Quanto  al  venire  suo  a  la  coronatione, 
che  a  lui  seria  molto  grata  la  venuta  sua  quando  fusse  nel  modo 
che  vene  el  patre,  cioe  senza  arme  et  cum  bona  pace  de  tutti  gli 
principi  christiani,  a  la  quale  pace,  unione  et  concordia  per  lo  univer- 
sale bene  di  tutto  el  Christianesimo  lo  exhortava.  Questo  e  quanto 
ho  inteso,  ne  altrimente  ho  potuto  intendere  questo  banno  |  de 

*  See  No.  78  as  to  how  this  document  was  discovered, 
t  See  supra,  p.  297.  %  Bando. 


650  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

la  guerra,  del  quale  pur  se  dice  esserni  molte  lettere  a  particulare 
persone,  et  che  facta  una  processione  et  cantata  una  messa  del 
spirito  sancto  et  facta  una  oratione  per  S.  M'^  a  quelli  Principi, 
qualli  tutti  se  dice  havere  commossi  a  lacryme,  da  quella  fu  aviata 
una  parte  de  lo  exercito  verso  Italia,  il  che  da  molti  se  crede 
essere  facto  cum  intelligentia  de  Vinetiani,  et  quando  cosi  non 
sia,  credessi  che  in  ogni  modo  loro  debbano  aspettare  et  com- 
ponere  le  cose  sue  cum  lui  per  non  stare  a  periculo  de  perdere  in 
uno  puncto  el  stato  suo,  casa  quale  seguendo  serra  cum  ruina  de 
tutta  questa  povera  Italia.  .  .  . 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 

78.    Cardinal  Sigismondo  Gonzaga  to  the  Marquess  of 
Mantua.* 

1508,  Feb.  24,  Rome. 
.  .  .  Heri  fu  consistorio  nel  quale  N.  S.  se  dolse  che  a  Rimini 
siano  stati  intercepti  gli  brevi,  quali  S.  S'^  scriveva  a  lo  Imp'^«  ex- 
hortandolo  a  deponere  larme  et  a  venire  a  la  coronatione  cum 
unione  et  pace  del  Re  Christianissimo  et  de  Italia,  et  etiam  le 
littere  de  r"^°  card'^  Brixinone  et  del  S""  Costantino  del  medesimo 
tenore,  et  che  pegio  h  preso  il  cancellere. 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 

79.  Beltrando  Costabili  to  the  Duke  of  Ferrara.I 

1508,  Sept.  II,  Rome. 
Cardinal  Galeotto  della  Rovere  died   this  morning  a  hore  c. 

XIV.  :  et  incontinenti  dopoi  la  morte  la  S*^  del  papa  ha  chiamato 
el  concistorio  et  in  quelle  have  facto  cardinale  M.  Sixto  fratello 
de  epso  quondam  r.  card'«,  il  quale  se  retrova  a  Perusia  et  habbi 
conferito  tutti  li  benefitti  et  lo  ofiScio  de  la  cancellaria  et  facto  lo 
chiamare.  Del  caso  la  S.  Sua  si  e  dimonstrata  molto  adolorata. 
[The  original  is  in  the  State  Archives,  Modena.] 

80.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Bologna. J 

1509,  April  12,  Rome, 
Lectis  litteris  vestris  de  apparatu  et  copiis  Venetorum  a  quibus 

opida  vestra   iam    pene   circumdata   esse   scribitis   mandavimus 
*  See  supra,  p,  297.  f  See  supra,  p.  297,  %  See  stipra,  p.  311. 


APPENDIX.  651 

statim  ut  equites  et  pedites  illi,  qui  ad  marchionem  Mantue  pro- 
fecturi  erant,  non  discedant  a  vobis,  sed  pro  tutela  et  securitate 
istius  nostre  dilectissime  civitatis  ac  rerum  vestrarum  quemad- 
modum  desideratis  permaneant.  Trepidationem  autem  vestratn 
quam  in  litteris  antedictis  ostendistis,  non  possumus  non  mirari. 
He  says,  that  his  army  and  that  of  his  confederates  are  so  strong 
ut  si  qui  nobis  arma  inferre  volent  magis  de  suo  periculo  quam 
de  detrimento  aUquo  vestro  debeant  cogitare.  He  exhorts  them 
to  be  of  good  courage  ;  he  will  take  care  that  nothing  shall  be 
wanting,  should  he  even  have  to  come  there  in  person. 

[The  original  is  in  the  State  Archives,  Bologna.] 
81.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  the  Duke  Alfonso  of  Ferrara.* 

1509,  April  19,  Rome. 
Ut  re  ipsa  intelligas  gratissima  nobis  fuisse  ea  que  pro  nostro 
et  S.  R.  E.  statu  in  negocio  Bononien.  summa  cum  fide  dili- 
gentiaque  fecisti  .  .  .  hodie  quod  felix  ac  faustum  sit  te  in 
consistorio  nostro  secreto  de  consilio  ven.  fratr,  nostrorum 
S.  R.  E.  cardinalium  confalonerium  nostrum  et  ejusdem  S.  R.  E. 
fecimus.  .  .  .  He  asks  him  to  act  loyally  with  the  Duke  of 
Urbino,  whose  rank  is  the  same  as  his  own,  and  then  all  will  be 
well. 

[The  original  is  in  the  State  Archives,  Modena.] 

82.  LoDovico  DE  Fabriano  to  the  Marquess  of 

Mantua.! 

1509,  x\pril  24,  Rome. 

Questi  Ursini  et  Savelli  sono  venuti  alio  accordio  cum  N.  S''^ 
venendo  hieri  alii  pedi  de  Sua  S'^  per  il  mezo  di  mad"^  Felice ; 
N.  S.  li  remesse  ogni  rebellione  commessa  volendo  da  loro  securta 
de  c°  millia  ducati,  de  non  pigliare  soldo  da  nisuno  senza  expressa 
licentia,  et  ad  questa  quantita  introrno  promessa  per  una  parte  il 
populo  di  Roma,  per  unaltra  alcuni  privati  gentilhomini  et  card'' 
Stando  sua  B°^  in  questa  discussione  dove  eravamo  molti,  se 
volt5  al  S''  Julio   dicendoli  essendo  voi  de  piu   tempo,  haveti 

*  See  supra,  p.  312.     See  Sanuto,  VIII.,  140,  on  the  festivities  at  Ferrara 
in  honour  of  the  nomination  of  Alfonso, 
t  See  supra,  p.  311. 


652  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

dimostrato  minor  prudentia  essendo  voi  stato  capo  et  origine  di 
tale  rebellione,  cum  dire  haverlo  facto  sapendo  lo  animo  nostro 
di  voler  diffare  casa  Ursina,  subiungendo,  siamo  in  sina  mo  stati 
sei  anni  in  questa  fede,  et  nesuno  de  baroni  si  possono  doler  di 
noi.  Non  si  intese  altramente  di  darli  conducta,  pur  si  estima 
haveranno  provisione.  Comandolli  expressamente,  sub  pena 
excommunicationis,  non  dovessero  restituire  li  octo  milia  ducati 
havuti  da  Venetiani,  absolvendoli  dal  juramento  et  capitoli  facti 
fra  loro,  et  cussi  li  scusaranno  una  paga.  .  .  . 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 

83.  LoDovico  DE  Fabriano  to  the  Marquess  of 

Mantua.* 

1509,  April  24,  Rome. 

111'"°  Seg^^.  La  bolla  de  le  censure  contra  Venetiani  e  stata 
publicata  questa  matina  in  consistorio  f  et  sin  qui  non  se  ne  ha 
copia ;  le  e  statuito  il  termine  de  24  giorni  a  restituire  le  terre 
quibus  elapsis  se  procedera  ad  censuras  interdict!  generalis  et 
altre  pene  gravissime.  Mons"^  de  Cornaro  e  uscito  fuora  tutto 
sbattuto  et  sbafifato.  Et  piu  V.  S.  111""^  ad  questhora  hara 
inteso  como  el  Sig''^  de  Pesaro  s'e  conducto  al  soldo  de  N.  S. 
cum  provisione  per  la  sua  persona  de  otto  milia  ducati  tenendo 
100  cavalli  lezeri.  Li  poveri  Ursini  stanno  malcontenti,  restano 
senza  soldo  et  mal  tractati  da  N.  S.  ;  credese  el  S''  Constantino 
partira  domatina  et  porta  littere  de  cambio  per  70  millia  ducati 
del  resto  sino  alia  summa  de  100  millia ;  se  consigna  certi  denari 
del  jubileo  che  e  in  quelle  parte  alia  Cesarea  M'^  .  .  . 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.]; 


84.  Pope  Julius  IL  to  Cardinal  Franc.  Alidosi.  % 

1510,  June  5,  Rome. 
Promisit   nobis   chirographo  proprio  dilectus  filius  nobilis  vir 
Alphonsus  dux  Ferrarie  oppidum  Bagnoli,  cujus  gubernationem  ad 

*  See  supra,  p.  312. 

t  According  to  Sanuto,  VIH.,  169,  the  Bull  was  not  published  till  the  Con- 
sistory of  the  26th  of  April. 
X  See  stip-a,  p.  328. 


APPENDIX.  653, 

nostrum  beneplacitum  ei  concessimus  quandocumque  nobis  libitum 
esset  reddere.  .  .  .  Tempus  est,  ut  ab  eo  repetamus  promissa. 
He  sends  him  the  chirograph  and  commands  him,  ut  oppidum 
antedictum  repetas  et  recipias.  Datum  Romae,  5  lunii,  15 lo^ 
Pontificatus  nostri  anno  7°. 

[A  tergo  :]  Francesco  tit  S.  Ceciliae  presbytero   card.  Papiensi,  Bononiae,. 
etc,  Apost.  Sedis  legato. 

[The  original  is  in  the  State  Archives,  Modena.] 


85.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Cardinal  Ippolito  d'Este.* 

15 10,  July  27,  Rome. 

Dilecte,  etc.  Monuimus  omnes  cardinales  absentes  etiam  sub' 
gravibus  penis,  ut  ad  nos  et  romanam  Curiam  veniant.  Idem 
quoque  tibi  faciendum  putamus.  Mandamus  ergo  tibi  sub  pena 
privationis  pilei,  ut  intra  quindecim  dies  ad  nos  et  dictam  curiam 
personaliter  venias,  aut  saltem  intra  biduum  a  receptione  presen- 
tium  computandum  Bononiam  te  conferas,  ubi  a  cardinali  Papiae 
legata  nostro  intelliges,  quid  te  velimus  facere.  Nee  valitudinis 
excusatione  utaris.  Non  enim  ipsa  valitudo  te  impedivit, 
quominus  assidue  facias  ea,  que  voluntati  nostrae  et  honori  ac 
statui  S.  Apostolicae  Sedis  valde  contraria  sunt. 

Datum  Romae  apud  S.  Petrum  sub  annulo  piscatoris  die 
xxvii.  lulii,  1 5 10,  Pontificatus  nostri  anno  septimo. 

SiGISMUNDUS. 
[A  tergo  :]  Dilecto  filio  nostro  Hippolyto  S.  Lucie  in  silice  diac.  card. 

[The  original  is  in  the  State  Archives,.  Modena,  Briefs.] 

86.  Pope  Julius  II.  to  Cardinal  Franc.  Alidosi  and 
THE  Magistrates  of  Bologna.! 

151 1,  May  16,  Forli. 

Dilecti,  etc.     Intelleximus  hostes  S.R.E.  Gallos  tante  temeri- 

tatis  fuisse  ut  prope  civitatem  istam  nostram  dilectissimam,  fidelis- 

simam  atque  magnanimam  ausi  sint  accedere,  falso  existimantes 

in  vobis  et  universo  populo  isto  fidelissimo  ac  potentissimo  non- 

*  See  supra,  p.  332.  +  See  supi-a,  p.  348. 


654  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

earn  constantiam  et  fidem  erga  s.  sedem  apostolicam  esse  quam 
ostendistis  atque  ostenditis,  que  res  non  nobis  aliquem  terrorem 
incussit,  sed  certissimam  spem  victoriae  attulit.  Galli  enim  ipsi 
stultitia  excecati  in  ea  loca  se  deniisisse  videntur,  e  quibus  sine 
pernitie  non  possunt  evadere.  His  army,  now  face  to  face  with 
that  of  the  French,  is  far  stronger  and  can  easily  conquer  it.  He 
praises  their  fidelity  and  encourages  them  to  overcome  the  enemy. 
Nos  hie  omnia  paramus  et  facimus  quae  vobis  praesidium  et 
hostibus  pernitiem  possint  afiferre.  .  .  .  Sitis  igitur  bono  animo. 
Datum  ForUvii  sub  annulo  piscatoris  xvi.  Maii,  151 1,  Pontificatus 
nostri  anno  octavo. 

SiGISMUNDUS. 

[The  original  is  in  the  State  Archives,  Bologna.] 


87.  Pope  Julius  H.  to  Francesco  Gonzaga,  Marquess  of 

Mantua.* 

1511,  Dec.  17,  Rome. 

.  .  .  Enitendum  tibi  est  omni  diligentia  et  caritate  ut  si  qui  ex 
scismaticis  olim  cardinalibus  nunc  hereticis  detestabilibus  in  loca 
tuae  ditionis  pervenerint  presertim  Bernardinus  Carvajal  et 
Federicus  de  S.  Severino  illico  capiantur  et  nomine  nostro 
retineantur  atque  custodian tur  donee  aliud  statuerimus.  .  .  . 

[The  copy  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 


88.  GiULiANO  de'  Medici  to  Isabella  d'Este,   Marchioness 
of  Mantua,  t 

15 12,  Aug.  31,  Prato. 
Ill^a  et  ex^^a  D"^  obser"ia_  lo  so  bene  che  V.  Ex.  se  allegrerra 
d'ogni  comodo  et  bene  mio  come  di  vero  servitore  suo  et  per6  la 
aviso  con  satisfactione  et  contento  di  tucta  la  citta  di  Firenze 
mons.  r"^°  patrone  et  fratello  mio  et  io  domani  ce  ne  tornamo  in 
patria  et  in  casa  nostra,  et  a  questo  effecto  son  venuti  qui  mandati 
da  queli  mag"  et  ex^'  S"  tre  oratori.  Infiniti  cittadini  son  venuti 
qui  a  congratularsi  con  noi  di  tanto  ben  nostro,  del  quale  son 
certissimo  V.   Ex.  dover  pigliare  piacere  grande  insieme  con  lo 

*  See  supra,  p.  393. 

+  See  supra,  p.  421,  and  the  letters  in  Sanuto,  XV.,  43,  52  seq. 


APPENDIX.  655 

illrao  S''e  suo  consorte  et  per5  li  mando  a  posta  el  presente  homo 
mio  informato  delle  particularity  di  queste  cose  nostre.  Per5  non 
dir5  altro  a  quella  se  non  che  quanto  piu  posso  me  li  offero  et 
raccomando  ricordandoli  che  di  tanto  piu  potra  V.  Ex.  valersi  et 
servirsi  quanto  io  piu  potr6  in  casa  mia  che  nel  lungo  exilio.  Alia 
mia  M"^  Alda  et  al  mio  Equicola  me  raccomando  inseme  con 
tucta  la  sua  virtuosissima  corte  et  cosi  fa  el  Moccicone  *  vero 
servo  di  V.  Ex.  Ex  Prato  die  ult.  Augusti,  15 12,  hora  vim. 
noctis. 

Servitor, 

JULIANUS  DE'  MeDICIS. 

[The  original  is  in  the  Gonzaga  Archives,  Mantua.] 

89.  Report  of  Aegidius  de  Viterbo  on  Julius  II., 
Bramante,  and  the  Rebuilding  of  S.  Peter's.! 

.  .  .  Quae  in  nationibus  vincendis  virtus,  id  Julio  II.  in  hoc 
templo  excitando  studium  fuit.  .  .  .  Splendidissimum  erexit 
templum,  quale  non  sideribus  minoribus,  sed  ipsi  soli  par  sit  ; 
posuit  illud,  inquit,  in  eius  apostoli,  qui  enarravit  gloriam  dei,  in 
ipso  divi  Petri  tumulo.  Conatus  Bramantes,  architectus  huius 
temporis  princeps  quo  usus  est  Julius  cum  ad  alia  quae  extruxit 
edificia  quam  plurima  tum  praecipue  ad  templum  maximum 
divo  Petro  exedificandum,  conatus  inquio  est  ille  persuadere 
Julio,  apostoli  sepulcrum  ut  commodiorem  in  templi  partem 
transferretur,  templi  frons,  non  ad  orientem  solem,  ut  nunc  vergit, 
sed  uti  in  meridiem  nothumque  converteretur,  ut  obeliscus 
magna  in  templi  area  templum  ascensuris  occurreret ;  negare  id 
Julius,  immota  oportere  esse  sacra  dictitare,  movere  non 
movenda  prohibere  ;  contra  instare  Bramantes,  rem  omnium 
accommodatissimam  futuram  polliceri,  si  Julii  pont'=  templum 
augustissimum  Julii  Cesaris  monumentum,  [quod]  vulgo  putant, 
in  vestibulo  et  ipso  templi  aditu  haberet ;  ad  religionem  facere  ut 
templum  ingressurus  facturusque  rem  sacram  non  nisi  commotus 
attonitusque  novae  molis  aspectu  ingrediatur  ;  saxa  montibus 
herentia  difficile  moveri ;  mota  loca  in   ima  facile  ferri ;  animos 

*  Bibbiena,  who  wrote  the  above  letter, 
t  See  stipra,  pp.  456,  480. 


656  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

quoque  affectuum  expertes  immotos  perstare,  affectu  concitos  facile 
se  ad  templa  arasque  prosternere  ;  tumuli  proinde  transferendi 
sibi  curam  sumere,  nihil  motum  iri,  sed  tumulum  cum  vicina  soli 
parte  quo  minus  quicquam  fatiscat  integre  se  convecturum  poUi- 
ceri.  Nihilo  serius  Julius  in  sententia  perstat,  nihil  ex  vetere 
templi  situ  inverti,  nihil  e  primi  pontificis  tumulo  attrectari  se 
passurum  dicit ;  quid  Cesaris  obeliscum  deceat,  ipse  viderit,  se 
sacra  prophanis,  religionem  splendori,  pietatem  ornamentis  esse 
praepositurum. 

[Aegidius  Viterb.  Historia  viginti  seculor.     Cod.  C,  8-19, 
f.  245,  of  the  Angelica  Library,  Rome.] 

90.  Emperor  Maximilian  to  Paul  von  Lichtenstein.* 

"  Edler,  lieber,  getreuer  !  Uns  zweiffelt  nicht,  du  tragst  noch 
in  frischer  Gedachtnuss  unsers  anzeigs  dir  vor  verschienener 
Zeit  gethan,  aus  was  grund  und  Ursachen  wir  Meinung  und 
Willen  hetten  nach  dem  Bapstumb,  wo  wir  anders  darzu  kommen 
mochten,  zu  stellen  ;  darauf  wir  den  bissher  fiir  und  fiir  unser 
Bedenken  gehabt.  Nun  finden  wir  in  uns  selbst,  auch  im  grund 
also  ist,  uns  nichts  ehrlichers,  hohers  oder  bessers  zustehen,  als 
beriihrt  Bapstumb  zu  iiberkommen. 

"Und  dieweil  denn.jetzo  Bapst  Julius  der  jiingst  kiirtzlich  gar 
todtlichen  krank  worden,  und  als  dir  durch  unsern  Hofif  und 
Tyrolischen  Cantzler  Ciprian  von  Serentin  angezeigt  ist,  alle  Welt 
zu  Rom  gemeynt  hat,  er  sey  mit  Todt  vergangen,  haben  vAr 
demnach  in  uns  selbst  entschlossen,  vorberiirtem  unserm  Fiirnem- 
men,  soviel  moglich  ist,  nachzukommen,  und  dermassen  handeln 
und  procediren  zu  lassen,  damit  wir  zu  dem  gedachten  Bapstumb 
kommen  mogen  ;  und  darauf  jetzo  den  Cardinal  Adrianus,  so  ein 
zeit  lang,  wie  du  weisst,  hierauss  bey  uns  in  Teutschlanden 
gewesen,  die  beriirten  Sachen  vorgeschlagen :  der  uns  denn 
gantzlich  darzu  rathet  und  vermeynt,  es  soil  Keinen  Mangel  an 
den  Cardinalen  haben  und  an  solchem  zu  horen,  von  Frewden 
geweynet.  Und  nachdem  du  aber  selbst  wohl  ermessen  und 
gedenken  magst,  wo  der  Bapst  also  stiirb,  als  sich  gantz  zu 
versehen  ist  (dann  er  isset  wenig,  und  dass  er  isset,  seynd  als  nur 
Friichte,  und  trinckt  so  viel  mehr,  dass  dardurch  sein  Leben  kein 

*  See  supra,  p.  382. 


APPENDIX.  657 

Bestandigkeit  hat),  und  so  er  stiirb  so  ist  der  von  Gurk  von  uns 
gefertigt,  gen  Rom  zu  postiren,  und  (uns)  hinder  das  Bapstumb 
zu  helffen.  Aber  nachdem  solchs  ohn  eine  merkliche  Summa 
gelds,  die  wir  darauff  legen,  uns  *  gestehen  lassen  miissen,  nicht 
wohl  beschehen  mag,  haben  wir  demnach  angeschlagen  zu  not- 
turfft  vorberiirtes  unseres  fiirnemmen  uff  zu  sagen  und  versprechen 
den  Cardinalen  und  etlichen  andern  Personen  in  diesen  Sachen 
zu  verhelffen  biss  in  die  dreymal  hundert  tausent  Ducaten  zu 
gebrauchen,  und  dass  solches  allein  durch  der  Fugger  Pannelch  f 
daselbst  zu  Rom  entleihen,  gehandelt,  bestellt  und  zugesagt  werde, 
und  beschehen  miisste.  Und  dieweil  du  aber  weist,  wir  dieser 
Zeit  mit  Geld  nit  gefasst  seyn,  auch  an  unserm  Vermogen  nicht 
ist,  jetztgedachten  Fugger  vorbestimpter  Summa  Gelds  halben 
anderst,  als  mit  unsern  Kleinodiern  zu  vergniigen  und  dieselben 
einzusetzen  :  demnach  befehlen  wir  dir  mit  allem  Ernst  und  wollen, 
dass  du  von  Stund  an  und  auff  das  allerfdrderlichst  bemeldten 
Fugger  vorberiirte  Sachen,  und  was  uns  daran  gelegen  ist,  mit 
bestem  fugen,  wie  du  wohl  zu  thun  weist,  in  geheimb  und  auff  die 
Pflicht,  damit  er  uns  als  unser  Rath  verbunden  ist,  zu  erkennen 
gebest,  und  darauf  mit  allem  hochsten  und  besten  fleiss,  so 
moglich  ist,  handelst,  uns  zu  Ehren  und  gefallen,  die  vorberiirten 
300,000  Ducaten  zu  diesem  Handel  in  sein  Pannelch  gen  Rom 
eins  theils  zu  erlegen,  und  durch  absprechen  gewiss  zu  machen, 
in  der  gestalt,  dass  seine  Faktores  da  selbst  solch  Geld  denen,  so 
inen  durch  unsern  Fiirsten  und  lieben  andechtigen  Mattheissen, 
Bischoffen  zu  Gurck,  und  ander  unser  Oratores,  so  wir  daselbsthin 
gen  Rom  verordnen,  angezeigt  werden,  gewisslich  zu  entrichten 
und  zu  bezahlen,  und  auff  redliche  Ziel  das  halb  wie  gemeldet  ist, 
versprechen  und  versicher  geben,  zusagen  und  versprechen,  und 
inen  desshalben  Zusagezettel  aus  der  Pannelch,  wie  Gewohnheit 
ist,  geben. 

"Derentwegen  wir  ime  alsdenn  die  besten  vier  Truhen  mit 
unsern  Kleinodiern,  mit  sampt  unsern  Lehengewand,  das  denn 
nit  dem  Reiche,  sondern  uns  dem  Hans  Oesterreich  zugehorig 
ist,  und  wir,  wo  wir  das  Bapstumb  erlangen,  nicht  mehr  bedorffen. 
Denn  wo  wir  uns  von  mehrer  Ehren  wegen  zuvor  Keyser  Kronen 
lassen,  wollten  wir  uns  des  heiligen  Hertzog  I  Carls  Lehengewand, 

*  Should  probably  read  tend.  t  Bank. 

t  Or  Kaiser;  c/.  Ulmann,  54. 

VOL.  VI.  2  U 


6s  8  HISTORY   OF   THE   POPES. 

das  wir  mit  uns  zu  nehmen  willens  sein,  betragen,  zu  Flirpfande 
einsetzen  wollen.  Und  denn  er  uns  jetzo  zu  stund  in  Abschlag 
obbestimpter  Summa,  oder  auff  dein  selbst  versprechen  (darumben 
wir  dich  auch  vergwissen  und  versichern  wollen)  lo  M.  Due.  bar 
in  den  Wechsel  gen  Rom  zu  des  obbemeldten  von  Gurcks  Handen 
mache  und  was  (!)  uns  solches  aus  oberzelten  Ursachen  dem 
sondern  vertrawen  nach,  so  wir  zu  ihme  tragen,  Keineswegs 
abschlage  noch  verziehe :  So  wollen  wir  dir,  so  bald  du  ob 
angezeiget  unser  begeren  von  dem  Fugger  erlangest,  dass  du  uns 
dann  zu  stund  und  forderlichen  bei  Tag  und  Nacht  zuschreiben 
soUst,  genugsam  befehlich,  Quittung  und  and  ere  Brieff,  die 
vorberiirt  Truhen  und  Lehengewand  zu  ueberantworten  zu 
schicken,  dieselben  furter,  wie  oben  stehet,  dem  obbenandten 
Fugger  einzusetzen.  Und  sofern  sich  derselb  Fugger  in  beriirter 
Handlung  merken  liess  zu  wissen,  wann  wir  solch  unser  Kleinodier 
und  Lehengewand,  wo  er  die  in  seiner  Gewaltsamb  hett,  von  ime 
widerumb  losen  woUten,  solstu  ihme  anzeigen,  und  zu  erkennen 
geben,  dass  wir  der  Meynung  seyn,  ihn  zu  Bezahlung  vorberiirter 
Summa  der  300  M.  Due.  unnd  darzu  umb  100  M.  Due.  die  wir 
ihme  um  seyne  drei  Kleinodier,  so  wir  auch  von  im  zu  nemmen, 
wiewohl  der  beriirten  Summa  nieht  wiirdig  seyn,  aber  jedoeh  in 
geheimb  zu  einem  Interesse  vorberiihrts  seines  Darleihens  zu 
geben  willens  seyn  dass  denn  in  einer  gantzen  Summa  533  M.  fl. 
Rheiniseh  bringen  wiirdet,  uff  des  Reiehs  Hiilff-geldt,  so  wir  jetzo 
ufif  neehst  kiinfftigen  Reichstag  von  den  Standen  desselben  Reiehs 
erlangen  werden  :  dess  gleichen  unser  erbliehen  Fiirstenthumben 
Landkiinfftiges  (!)  Hiilifs-  und  Stewren  und  darzu  das  Geld,  so 
uns  von  unserm  lieben  Brudern,  dem  Konig  von  Hispanien, 
Ordinari  jahrlieh  gereichet  wiirdet,  verweisen  unnd  solches  alles 
zur  Erledigung  unser  Kleinoter  verfolgen  lassen.  Wo  aber  das 
alles  angezeigte  Summa  nieht  erreichet  dass  wir  ihme  alsdann 
umb  die  Uebermass  den  dritten  Theil  alles  unsers  Einkommens 
obgedachts  Bapstumbs  bis  zu  voUiger  Bezahlung  zustellen  wollen. 
Desshalben  er  denn  einen  aus  seinen  Freunden,  der  ihme  gefallig 
ist,  zu  uns  an  unssern  Hoffe  verordnen  mag,  den  wollen  wir  zu 
unserm  Schatz-oder  Kammermeister  vorberiirt  unsers  Einkom- 
mens zu  handeln,  auch  sein  dritten  Theil  zu  empfahen  und 
einzunehmen  machen,  auch  denselben  in  andern  unsern  Sachen 
zu  gebrauchen. 


APPENDIX.  659 

"  In  diesen  obangezeigten  Saohen  alien  dein  besten  und 
moglichen  Fleiss  nicht  sparest,  oder  underlassest,  solches  alias 
also  gewisslichen  zu  erlangen.  Und  ob  dir  schon  beriirt  unser 
begem  einmal  oder  mehr  von  demselben  Fugger  abgeschlagen 
wiirde,  nichts  desto  minder  wiederumb  anhaltest  und  dermassen 
handelst,  damit  uns  obangezeiget  unser  begeren  verfolge.  Unnd 
biss  darin  nit  seumig  oder  lassig,  sondern  brauch  also  fleiss,  wie 
wir  unser  vertrawen  zu  dir  setzen,  und  auch  die  eyl  und  Notturft 
dieser  Zeit  erfordert.  Und  was  dir  in  dem  alien  begegnet,  uns 
solches  forderlichen  zuschreibest,  uns  darnach  haben  zu  richten. 
Daran  thustu  uns  sonder  gnadiges  Gefallen,  und  wir  wollen  gegen 
dir  und  den  deinigen  erkennen  und  zu  Gutem  nicht  vergessen. 

"Wir  fiigen  dir  auch  zu  wissen,  dass  uns  unser  Secretari  Johann 
CoUa  uff  heut  geschrieben  hat,  bey  einer  eigen  Post,  dass  die 
Ursiner,  Colonenser  und  das  populus  Romanus  ganzlich  besch- 
lossen  sein,  und  fiirgenommen  haben,  keinen  Bapst,  der  Frant- 
zossisch  oder  Hispanisch  sey,  oder  durch  diss  gemacht  werde,  zu 
haben  oder  anzunehmen.  Und  schicken  darauff  ihre  Pottschaft 
in  geheimb  zu  uns,  im  schein  zu  begehren,  dass  wir  und  der 
Frantzos  nicht  Kriegen  sollen,  dafiir  zu  bitten,  als  die  so  Neutral 
seyn  am  Bapstumb.  Geben  Brixen  den  16.  Septemb.  Anno 
151 1." 


INDEX  OF  NAMES  IN  VOL.  VI. 


AccoLi,  Pietro,  Cardinal- 
Bishop   of  Ancona,    344. 

Adrian  of  Corneto,  Cardinal, 
56,    129,     132,    179,     281, 

.353>    3^3>,  376,    380. 
Aegidius  of  Viterbo,    139,   185, 

271,  272,  303,  407,  408,479. 
Albert,  Bishop  of  Wilna,  146. 
Albertini,   Francesco,   281,  484, 

496,  501,  502,  515,  582. 
Alberto    Pio,    Count   of   Carpi, 

319,  428. 
Albini,  Benedetto  di  Giovanni, 

481. 
d'Albret,  A.,  Cardinal,  92,  374, 

389- 
„       Charlotte,  67,  68. 
„      Jean,   King  of  Navarre, 

245- 
Alexander  III.,  Pope,  469. 

„  VI.,  Pope,  3-6,  8-10, 
13,  15,  16,  19-22, 
29-37,  43-48,  49, 
53>  56-69,  71,  72, 
74-76,    78-83,   85, 

87-91,  93-95,  97- 
99,  102-108,  III- 
119,  121,  125,  126, 
128-140,  142-149, 
153-166,  168-180, 
185,  186,  189,  198, 
199,  210,  218,  222, 
223,  226,  246,  253, 
259,260,292,355, 

440,  459,  493,  500, 
541. 


Alexander  VII.,  177. 
Alfonso  of  Bisceglia,  58,  59,  76- 
78,  104,  240. 
„        Calabria,     King     of 
Naples,  58. 
Alidosi,     Francesco,     Cardinal- 
Bishop  of  Pavia,   221,  286, 
305,   315,    335,    336,    342, 
348-351,    497,    509,     510, 
.  592- 
Altieri,  Family  of,  500. 

„      Marcantonio,  138. 
d'Alviano,      Bartolomeo,      202, 

204,  205. 
d'Amboise,  Charles,  280. 

„  Georges,     Cardinal- 

Archbishop  of 
Rouen,  62,  63, 
71-92,  189-197, 
204,  209,  234, 
263-285,  292, 
294,  299,  300, 
323,  328,  447- 
„  Louis,         Cardinal- 

Archbishop        of 
Alby,     285,    326, 

447- 
Ambrose,  St.,  571,  572. 
Angelico   da   Fiesole,    Fra,    B., 

542,  574- 
Angelo  of  Vallombrosa,  385. 
Anne,  St.,  145,  446. 

„      of    Brittany,     Queen    of 
France,  57. 
Antonio  di  Giacomo,  481. 

„       de Monte, Cardinal,  366. 


662 


INDEX   OF   NAMES. 


Antonio  da  Venafro,  122,  123. 
d'Appiano,    Jacopo,    Prince    of 

Piombino,  82. 
Aquinas,  see  Thomas,  St. 
d'Aragona,   Luigi,  Cardinal,  92, 

189,   195,    292,    340,    342, 

408. 
d'Aranda,  Peter,  Bishop  of  Cala- 

horra,  157. 
d' Arenas,  Pedro,  163. 
Areniti,    Costantino,    282,    295, 

307- 
Argentine,  Francesco,  Cardinal, 

344- 
Ariosto,  no,  539. 
Aristotle,  55i>  554,  SS^,  S^^. 
d'Aubigny,  84. 
Augustine,  St.,  571,  572. 
d'Autun,  Jean,  361. 


Badger,  307,  309. 

Baglione,  Gentile,  122. 

„         Giampaolo,    81,    122, 
124,  204,   261,   269, 
270. 
„         Pandolfo,  122. 
,,         Petrucci,  122. 

Bainbridge,  Cardinal  -  Arch  - 
bishop  of  York,  344. 

Bajazet,  Sultan,  86,  317,  509. 

Bak6cs,  Thomas,  Cardinal- 
Archbishop  of  Gran, 
Patriarch  of  Constanti- 
nople, 98,  312,  395,  410, 
424. 

Bartolini,  Mariano,  255. 

Bartolomeo,    Fra,    della    Porta, 

540- 
Basso,  Girolamo,   della  Rovere, 

Cardinal,    91,     267,     492, 

496. 
Behaim,  Laurent,  169. 
Bembo,   Pietro,    no,   135,   307, 

397,  582. 
Benno,  Bishop  of  Meissen,  145, 
446. 


Bentivogli,  Family  of,  262,  265, 
283,    303-305,    331,    336, 
347,  349,  372,  425,  513- 
Bentivoglio,  Alexander,  293. 

„  Giovanni,     81,    82, 

261,     266,     269, 
274-277,         279, 
285,  293,  363. 
,,  Hermes,  122. 

Bianchino,  481. 
Bibbiena,  Cardinal,  520. 
Bonaventure,  St.,  560,  572. 
Boniface  VIII.,  Pope,  446. 
Bontempi,  437. 

Borgia,  Family  of,  76,  n5,  138, 
202,  205,  449. 
Csesar,    57,    58,   60-62, 
66-69,   71-74,   76-78, 
80-83,    94,   102,    104, 
107,     112-114,     118- 
128,     130,      132-134, 
151-153,     166,      186- 
191,      202-205,     208, 
209,  217,  233-246. 
,,       Francesco,  Cardinal,  92, 
103,    334,     353,     374, 
389- 
„       Jofre,  69,  125. 
„       Juan,      Cardinal  -  Arch- 
bishop   of    Monreale, 

131- 
„       Juan,      Cardinal  -  Arch- 
bishop of  Valencia,  60, 

63,  73,  91,  235. 
„      Juan,  104,  105,  121. 
,,       Lucrezia,  58,  69,  71,  76- 
78,  104-112,  114,  166. 
,,      Ludovico,  Cardinal,  92, 

240,  243. 
,,       Rodrigo,     Cardinal,    see 

Alexander  VI. 
„       Rodrigo,  son  of  Lucrezia, 
see  Rodrigo. 
Boyl,  Bernard,  163. 
Bracci,  Alessandra,  16. 
Bramante,    Donato,    179,     180, 
340,    455,     461,    463-470, 


INDEX   OF   NAMES. 


663 


Bramante,  Donate — continued. 

473-475'     478-480,      483, 
484,    486,    487,    489,   494, 

500,    503,    507,    508,   533, 

553-. 
Bramantino,  543. 
Branca,  Sebastiano  de,  437. 
Brandolinus  Lippi,  Raphael,  94. 
Brigonnet,    Cardinal,    92,     181, 

Z^^,    332,    334>    353,   374, 

387,.  389- 
Brixen,  Bishop  of,  j-^^  Christopher 

of  Schroffenstein. 
Brunetti,  Giovanni,  39. 
Bruni,    Enrico,    Archbishop    of 

Tarento,  481. 
Buonarroti,  see  Michael  Angelo. 
Burchard,    Johann,     116,     135, 

149,    1S7,    195,    197,    208, 

473- 

Cajetan,  Cardinal,  see  Thomas 
de  Vio. 

Calixtus  III.,  Pope,  160. 

Capello,  Paolo,  80,  341. 

Capcdiferri,  Family  of,  500. 

Caradosso,  461,  467,  473,  489. 

Caraffa,  Cardinal,  10,  15,  17, 
19,  91,  116,  185,  186,  192- 
194,  196,  262,  332,  492. 

Carlo tta  of  Naples,  58,  65, 

Carpi,  see  Alberto  Pio. 

Carretto,  Carlo  de.  Marquess  of 
Finale,  255.  _ 
„         Carlo    Domenico   del, 
Cardinal,  221,   353, 

Carvajal,  Bernardino,  Cardinal, 
65,  91,  160,  191,  197,  241, 
243,  244,  295,  296,  298, 
334,  335,  353,  362,  374, 
376,     385-387,      389-392, 

395- 
Casanova,  Jacopo,  Cardinal,  128. 
Cassarelli,  Family  of,  500. 
Castelar,     Giovanni,     Cardinal, 

128. 


Castellesi,  see  Adrian  of  Corneto. 
Castiglione,  Baldassaro,  490. 
Castro,  Juan  de,   Cardinal,  92, 

191. 
Centelles,  Raimondo,  56. 
Cerretani,  389,  402. 
Cesarini,  Giuliano,  Cardinal,  92, 

188,  371. 
Challand,  Robert,  Cardinal,  221, 

264. 
Charles    the    Great,    Emperor, 

379,  421. 
v..  Emperor,  379,  421. 
„       VIIL,  King  of  France, 

4,  5,  36,  55,  103,  113, 
169,  176,  355,  459. 

Chatillon,  389. 

Chaumont,  279,  336-338,  347. 

Chigi,  Agostino,  492,  495-497- 

Christopher  of  Schroffenstein, 
Bishop  of  Brixen,  384. 

Cib5,  Lorenzo,  Cardinal,  91. 

Ciochi,  Antonio  di  Monte  San- 
sovino,  Cardinal  -  Arch- 
bishop   of    Liponto,     274, 

344- 
Clement  VII.,  Pope,  166. 
Clermont,    Frangois    Guillaume 
de.     Cardinal  -  Archbishop 
of   Auch,    219,    234,    270, 
326,  332. 
Colla,  John,  381. 
Colonna,  Family  of,  56,  59,  62, 
69,  77,  84,  103,  104, 
125,  204,   218,  311, 
369,  381,  404,  419, 
420,  430. 
„  Fabrizio,  400. 

„         Giovanni,       Cardinal, 
69,    92,     189,     192, 

371,  474- 
,,  Marcantonio,  260. 

,,  Pompeo,     Bishop     of 

Rieti,  371,  372- 
Columbus,  Christopher,  67,  159, 
160,  163,  441. 
„         Diego,  67,  441. 


664 


INDEX   OF   NAMES. 


Conacci,  Giovanni,  39. 

Conchilles,  James,  345. 

Condivi,  533. 

Constantine,  Prince  of  Georgia, 
146. 

Conti,  Family  of,  59. 

„  Sigismondo  de',  60,  78, 
120,  149,  152,  199,  210, 
240,  258,  274,  276,  277, 
279,  281,  282,  292,  472, 

.474,476,  592. 
Copernicus,  150. 
Cordova,  see  Gonsalvo. 
Cornaro,   Marco,    Cardinal,  92, 

189,  310,  340,  342. 
Costa,  Giorgio,  Cardinal,  65,  91, 

189,  287. 
Costabili,    Beltrando    de',    134, 

235. 
Cristoforo,  Romano,  489,  492. 
Cyprian  of  Serentin,  380. 

Dandolo,  Jacopo,  302. 

Dante  AUighieri,  545,  549,  559, 

565,  566,  572. 
Decius,  Philip,  386,  396. 
Delfino,  Pietro,  200. 
Diogenes  of  Sinope,  551. 
Domenico   da   Pescia,  Fra,   14, 

34,  41-47,  5°- 
Donato,    Girolamo,    258,    316, 

318. 
Doria,  Andrea,  123. 
Dossi,  Mariano  dei,  282. 
Dschem,  Prince,  85. 

Emmanuel,   King   of  Portugal, 
160. 

d'Este,  Alfonso  I.,  Duke  of 
Ferrara,  107,  109, 
327,  328,  343,  400, 
403,  419,  420,  425, 
513,  520. 
„  Ercole  I,,  Duke  of 
Ferrara,  9,  107,  266, 
279,  299. 


d'Este,    Ippolito,   Cardinal,  92, 
98,    108,    332,    353, 

364,  391- 
Eugenius  IV.,  Pope,  146. 

Farnese,  Alessandro,  Cardinal, 
92,  151,  408,  476. 
„         Giulia,  174,  259. 

Federigo  of  Aragon,  King  ot 
Naples,  58,  59,  62,  70,  76, 
77,  83,  84,  104,  119. 

Ferantini,  Bartolomeo,  748. 

Ferdinand  the  Catholic,  King  of 
Spain,  63-65,  68,  83,  89, 
160,  163,  180,  188,  191, 
226,  243-245,  256,  291, 
294,   299,    313,    318,   323, 

367,  373,    375>    379>   383, 

387,   398,    412,    421,  422, 

426,   433,    441,    443,   481. 

Ferrari,  Cardinal,  92. 

Ferreri,  Anton,  Cardinal-Bishop 

of  Gubbio,   221,  269, 

273,    286,     303,    304, 

496. 

„      Zaccaria,  385^387,  390, 

393,  396. 
Ficino,  Marsilio,  558. 
Fiesco,  Lorenzo,  304. 

,,      Niccol6,    Cardinal,   129, 
226,333,  369,  476. 
Foix,  Gaston  de,  397,  399,  401, 
414. 
„     Odet  de,  389,  391. 
Foscari,  Francesco,  428. 
Francesco  di  Domenico,  481. 

,,         of  Apulia,  41,  46. 
Francia,  Francesco,  540. 
Franciotto  of  Lucca,  219. 
Francis  of  Paula,  St.,  163,  181, 

446. 
Franco,  481. 

Frangipani,  Family  of,  500, 
Freddi,  Federigo  de',  488. 

,,       Felice  de',  488. 
Frederick   of  Aragon,   King   of 
Naples,  see  Federigo. 


INDEX  OF   NAMES. 


665 


Fregosi,  Family  of,  327. 

„        Giovanni  dei,  415. 
Fugger,  Family  of,  381. 

Gabriele  da  Fano,  236. 
Gabrielli,  Gabriello  dei.  Cardinal, 

Bishop  of  Urbino,  221. 
Gaetani,  Family  of,  104,  218. 
Gara     della     Rovere,     Sixtus, 

Cardinal,  222,  302. 
George  of  Negroponte,  491. 
Ghiberti,  Lorenzo,  551. 
Ghirardacci,  281, 
Giocondo  da  Verona,  581. 
Giorgio,  Giovanni   Antonio    de 

S.,   Cardinal,  65,   91,   262, 

287. 
Giovanni  di  Sirolo,  Archbishop 
of  Ragusa,  242. 

„        da  Udine,  173. 

„        Giuliano  de',  475. 
Giulio  Romano,  594. 
Giustinian,  Antonio,    121,   127, 

128,    131,    132,    135,   185, 

186,    189,    194,    195,   197, 

198,    202,     203,    236-238, 

248-254. 
Gondi,  Giuliano,  39. 
Gonsalvo      de     Cordova,      58, 

99>     127,     185,    241,    243, 

244. 
Gonzaga,  Elisabetta,  Duchess  of 
Urbino,  151. 

,,         Federigo,  489. 

„  Francesco,  Marquess 
of  Mantua,  185,  219, 
266,  269,  271,  279, 
282,   299,  317,  334, 

339>  419- 
„         Giovanni,  270,  345. 
„         Leonora,  219. 
„         Sigismondo,  Cardinal, 
221,  364. 
Goritz,      Johann,      492,      493, 

593- 
Grassi,    Achilles    de,    Cardinal, 

304,  344- 


Grassis,  Paris  de,  216,  262,  268, 
270,    278,    280-282,    288, 

333,    336,    337,    339,  345, 
346,   351,    362,    369,    409, 
416,    423,    424,    431-435, 
437,    439,    473,    478,  499- 
Gregory   the   Great,   St.,   Pope, 
468,  571,  574. 
„       VII.,  St.,  Pope,  469. 
„    _   IX.,  Pope,  230,  548. 
Grimani,    Domenico,    Cardinal, 

92,  310,  318,  409,  430. 
Gringoire,  Pierre,  357. 
Grosso  della  Rovere,  Clemente, 
Cardinal,  219,  221. 
,,       della  Rovere,  Leonardo, 
Cardinal,  22 1, 267, 286, 

424,  535- 
Guarna,  Andrea,  469, 
Guglielmo  di  Piemonte,  500. 
Guicciardini,     135,     217,    230, 

243,  294,  363, 
400,  438,  451. 
Guidiccioni,  Francesco,  211. 
Guidobaldo,    Duke   of  Urbino, 
120,    122,    151,    240,    258, 
266,    269,    270,    273,   274, 
279,    282,    313,    336,   348, 
368,    369. 
Gurk,  Bishop  of,  see  Lang. 

Hadrian,  see  Adrian  of  Corneto. 
Heliodorus,  600,  601. 
Henneberg,  Berthold  von.  Arch- 
bishop of  Mayence,  201. 
Henry   VI.,   King   of  England, 

145- 
„        VII.,  King  of  England, 

89,  97,  226. 
„        VIII.,  King  of  England, 

323,    331,    361,    373, 

398,    412,    471,    472. 

Hermannsgriin,  Hans  von,  355. 

Iloris,      Francesco,     Cardinal, 

128,   138. 
Inghirami,  Tommaso,  427,  501. 


666 


INDEX   OF   NAMES. 


Innocent  III.,  Pope,  454,  469, 

572. 

„        VIII.,  Pope,  142,  143, 

i59>  170,  226,  446, 

486,  487. 

Isabella   of    Castile,    Queen   of 

Spain,  65,  163,  180,  244. 
Ismael,  Shah  of  Persia,  441. 
Isvalies,    Pietro,    Cardinal,    92, 
340,  351- 

Jacobazzi,  Domenico,  385. 
Jearine  of  Valois,  St.  (Wife   of 

Louis  XII.),  57,  144. 
Joanna,  Queen  of  Castile,  412. 
John  XXII.,  Pope,  225. 

„     Archbishop  of  Ragusa,  56. 

„     of  Guadelupe,  St.,  446. 

„     Gualbert  of  Vallombrosa, 
St.,  445. 
Jorge,  Fra,  163. 
Jovius,  Paul,  112,  135,  243,  430, 

.  579- 
Julius  II.,  Pope,  137,  177,  210- 
220,  222-288,  290-312, 
316-323,  325-353,  355, 
357-376,  380,  383,  384, 
387-389,  394-398,  401- 
464,     469-488,     490-516, 

519,  520,  533,  534,  537- 
539,  541-543,  570,  582- 
584,  589-592,  594-596, 
597,  599,  600,  602,  603, 
606,  607. 

Ladislaus,  King  of  Bohemia 
and    Hungary,     100,    loi, 

299,  361,  441,  443- 

Landucci,  Lucca,  5,  49. 

Lang,  Matthseus,  Cardinal- 
Bishop  of  Gurk,  180,  296, 
299,  344-347,  357,  376, 
378,  381,  423-428. 

La  Palice,  402,  416. 

La  Tremoille,  Jean  Frangois  de, 
Cardinal  -  Archbishop  of 
Auch,  264,  284. 


Las  Casas,  Bartolomeo  de,  163. 
Le    Filleul,    Pierre,    Bishop    of 

Sisteron,  264. 
Lemaire,  Jean,  359-361. 
Leo  I.,  St.,  Pope,  141,  468,  603. 
„     IX.,  Pope,  450. 
„    X.,  Pope,    173,    459,    470, 

478,  497,  499,  603. 
„    XIIL,  Pope,  171. 
Leonardo  da  Vinci,  118,  540. 
Leonini,     Angelo,     Bishop     of 
Tivoli,  80,   237,  249,  252- 
254,  330. 
Lichtenstein,    Paul    von,    380- 

382. 
Lionello  da  Carpi,  327,  333. 
Lippomano,  Girolamo,  340-342, 

369,  371- 
Lopez,  Juan,  Cardinal,  65,  92, 

170. 
Lotto,  Lorenzo,  543. 
Louis  XL,  King  of  France,  57, 
428. 
„       XII.,    King   of    France, 
55-57,  61,  62,  64-68, 
71,  72,  74,  83,  89,  90, 

95,  97,  98,  107,  119, 
121,  127,  188-190, 
226,  255,  257,  265, 
270,  274,  277,  284, 
285,  291-294,  300, 
304,  306-308,  318, 
321-324:327-332,334, 
335,339,  343,346,354, 
355.357,359-361,363, 
367,  372,  374,  376, 
383-386,  388,  393- 
395,  398,  405,  416, 
427,  428,  434,  443, 
447,    600. 

Machiavelli,    122,    123,    125, 

186,    23T,  236-238,  241, 
246,  265,  267,   298,  302, 

314,  329,    388,   453- 
Maderna,  468. 
Malatesta,  Pandolfo,  81,  239. 


INDEX   OF   NAMES. 


667 


Malvezzi,  Giulio,  339. 
Mancino,  Paolo,  481. 
Manfredi,     Astorre,     Lord     of 

Faenza,  Si,  82. 
Mansi,  139. 

Manuel,  see  Emmanuel. 
Marcello,  Cristoforo,  429. 
Margaret  of  Burgundy,  299-375, 

.377>  380,  443. 
Marinus,  Georgius,  94. 
Maruffi,  Fra  Silvestro,  43-45,  50. 
Massimi,  Family  of,  500. 

„         Domenico  dei,  495. 
Matilda,  Countess,  416. 
Matthias,  Bishop  of  Greenland, 

,159; 

Maximilian  I.,  Emperor,  63,  70, 
89,   95)  96,   107,  113,  130, 
188,    215,    255,    257,    262, 
293-300,    303,    308,    313, 
317,   318,   321,    323,    331, 
343>    344,    347,    354-357, 
373,    375-383,    398,    412- 
414,    421-425,    427. 
Medici,  Giovanni  de',  Cardinal 
— afterwards  Leo  X., 
92,    173,     192,     197, 
220,    269,    373,   400, 
402,   405,    415,   420, 
492,    605. 
See  also  Leo  X. 
„       Giuliano  de',  420. 
„       Giulio    de',     Cardinal, 

402. 
„       Piero  de',  4,  9,  38. 
Melchior   Copis   von    Meckau, 
Cardinal-Bishop  of  Brixen, 
129. 
Mendoza,  Cardinal,  92. 
Menico  Antonio  di  Jacopo,  481. 
Michael     Angelo      Buonarroti, 
151,   215,    453,    455,    456, 
460,   463,   464,    468,    478, 
488,    489,    492,    500,  502- 
520,  522,  523,  529-540. 
Michiel,  Giovanni,  Cardinal,  91, 
128,  129. 


Mila,  Luis  Juan  del.  Cardinal, 

92. 
Mino  da  Fiesole,  478. 
Mirandola,  see  Pico. 
Monserati  da  Guda,  472. 
Monte  Sansovino,   Cardinal,  see 

Ciochi. 

Nicholas  V.,  Pope,  152,   154, 

158,    171,    173,  286,    456, 

457,   459,    464,  469,    47 1> 

478,  483,  501,  503,  542, 
582,    589. 

Nicholas    of    Cusa,  Cardinal, 

154- 
Nilus,  146. 

Olaf  IL,  St.,  King  of  Norway, 

158. 
Oliverotto  of  Fermo,  123,  124. 
Orsini,    Family   of,    56,   59,  75, 
77,  81,  121-127,  188, 
203-205,     208,    210, 
218,    311,   369,   381, 
398,    404. 
„        Battista,    Cardinal,    91, 

121,  125,  126,  371. 
„        Felice,  260,  267,  311. 
,,        Franciotto,  122. 
,,        Giovanni  Giordano,  126, 
127,    204,    240,   260, 
267. 
,,        Giovanni  Paolo,  104. 
,,        Laura,  259,  267. 
„        Orso,  260. 
„        Paolo,  122,  T23. 
„        Rinaldo,  Archbishop  of 
Florence,  125. 
Otho,  Emperor,  469. 

Pallavicino,  Antoniotto,  Car- 
dinal, 91,  186,  189,  192- 
194,  292,  293. 

Panvinius,  469. 

Parmino,  Lorenzo,  472. 

Paul  II.,  Pope,  147,  198,  464. 
486. 


668 


INDEX   OF   NAMES. 


Pazzi,    Cosimo    de',    Bishop  of 

Arezzo,  201,  255,  256. 
Peraudi,     Raimondo,    Cardinal, 

91.  95-97,  1 54-. 
Perraud,  see  Peraudi. 
Perugino,  175,  543. 
Peruzzi,    Baldassaro,    464,    483, 

594- 
Pesaro,  Benedetto,  99,  100. 
,,       Giacopo  da,  Bishop,  99, 
100. 
Pescara,  Marquess  of,  400. 
Peter,  St.,   141,  469,  470,   566, 

605. 
Peter  Martyr,  St.,  135. 
Petrarch,  558. 
Petrucci,      Alfonso,      Cardinal, 

344- 

Philip    of   Hapsburg,    King   of 
Castile,  144,  276. 

Philippe   de  Luxembourg,  Car- 
dinal, 92,  353,  363,  389. 

Pico,  Family  of,  500. 

Pico,  Hieronymo,  495. 

Pico     della     Mirandola,     Gian 
Francesco,  343, 

Piccolomini,     Francesco,     Car- 
dinal, see  Pius  III. 

Picconi  de   Sangallo,    Antonio, 
500. 

Piero  da  Lucca,  442. 

Pinturicchio,    Bernardino,    169, 
171-174,  176,  496,  543, 

Piombo,    Sebastiano    del,    592, 
604. 

Pisani,  D.,  275,  308,  309,  311. 

Pius  II.,  Pope,    109,    198,   199, 
446. 
„    III.,  Pope,  92,    189,   190, 

i'94,     i97j     198,     199, 
201-207,  232. 
„    VII.,  Pope,  485, 
„    IX.,  Pope,  172.  _ 
Podocatharo,     Lodovico,     Car- 
dinal, 92,  189,  193,  194, 
Poggio,  Antonio,  486. 
„      Francesco,  385. 


Pollajuolo,  Simone,  508. 

Pons,  Gasparo,  97. 

Porta,  Ardicino  della.  Cardinal, 
60. 
„     See  Bartolomeo,  540. 

Prie,  Rene  de,  Cardinal-Bishop 
of  Bayeux,  264,  285,  326, 
332,  334,  353,  374,  389, 
393. 

Priuli,  248. 

Pucci,  Lorenzo,  516,  517,  535, 

Raphael  Sanzio,  171,  173,  216, 
226,    416,    455,    456,   478, 
489,   502,   503,    540,    543- 
594,  597-607. 
Raymond  of  Cardona,  397,  399. 
Remolino,   Francesco,  Cardinal- 
Bishop  of  Ilerda,  48,  128, 
.239,  240. 
Riario,  Girolamo,  72. 

„       Raffaele,  Cardinal,   166, 

179,    186,    189,    193, 

197,   203,    204,    288, 

269,  407,  434,  492. 

Roccamura,  Francesco,  187. 

Rodrigo  (Borgia),    of  Bisceglia, 

104,  218. 
Rossellino,  Bernardo,  460,  483. 
Rotario,  Carlo,  282. 
Rovere,    Domenico    della.    Car- 
dinal, 91. 
„        Felice,       see       Orsini, 

Felice. 
„        Francesco  Maria,  Duke 
of  Urbino,   218,  219, 
282,    327,    336,  348- 
350,    368,    369,   403, 
414,    415,    422,  435, 
537,   552. 
„       Galeotto,  Cardinal,  219, 
220,    222,    259,   284, 
301,   302,    492,    495. 
„       Gara,  see  Gara. 
„       Giovanni,  56. 
„       Girolamo,  see  Basso. 
,,       Grosso,  see  Grosso. 


INDEX   OF   NAMES. 


669 


Rovere,  Giuliano  della,  Cardinal, 
afterwards  Julius  II., 
61,  65,  66,  71,  91, 
113-179,  186,  189, 
191-194,  196,  203, 
204,  208-210,  247, 
487 

See  also  Julius  II. 
„  Lucchina,  215,  219. 
,,       Niccol6,  259. 

Ruysch,  Johann,  543. 

Sadolet,  Cardinal,  489,  558. 
Sancia  of  Aragon,  77, 
Sangallo,  Antonio  da,  168,  464, 
482. 
„        Francesco  da,  488. 
„        Giuliano  da,  168,  179, 
459»  460,  463,  488, 
507,  508. 
Sannazaro,  Jacopo,  115. 
Sanseverino,    Cardinal,    68-70, 
92,    292,    326,    334,    353, 
374,    385,    389.   391,   395. 
398,    399>   401,    403. 
Sansoni,  Cardinal,  92. 
Sansovino,    Andrea,    460,    492, 

493- 
„  Jacopo,  489. 

Santa  Croce,  Giacomo,  125. 
Santori,  Fazio,  Cardinal,  Bishop 

of  Cesensi,  221. 
Sanuto,  60,  135. 
Sanzio,  see  Raphael. 
Sauli,  Bandinello,  Cardinal,  344. 
Savelli,  Family  of,  81-104,  125, 
203,  210. 
„       Giovanni  Battista,  Car- 
dinal, 371. 
„       Silvia,  113,  115. 
Savonarola,  Fra  Girolamo,  3-53. 
Schedel,  Hartmann,  169. 
Schinner,    Matthseus,    Cardinal, 

324,    325,   344,    395>    396, 
413,  416,  419. 
Sebastiano      del     Piombo,     see 
Piombo. 


Serra,  Jacopo,  Cardinal,  92. 
Seyssel,  de,  361. 
Sforza,  Family  of,  72. 

„  Ascanio,  Cardinal,  14, 
62,  63,  65,  66,  68-70, 
75,  92,  126,  189,  195- 
197,  209,  264,  301, 
460,  492,  496. 
„  Caterina,  72. 
„       Giovanni,  of  Pesaro,  81, 

218. 
„      Lodovico    Moro,    Duke 
of  Milan,   16,   62,   70, 
73-75>.88,  96,  421. 
„       Massimiliano,  421. 
„       Ottaviano,      Bishop      of 
Lodi,  416. 
S.  Giorgio,  see  Giorgio. 
Signorelli,  Luca,  498,  543. 
Sixtus    IV.,     Pope,     146,     152, 
199,    228,    436,    456,   457, 
481,    486,    493,   495,    496, 
501-503,     572-574,     589, 
596. 
Sixtus  v..  Pope,  485. 
Soderini     (Gonfaloniere),     509, 

511- 
„         Francesco,      Cardinal, 
129,   189,   192,  197, 
236,  238,  239. 

Sodoma,  543. 

Soffatelli,  Giovanni,  270. 

Spiegel,  355,  356. 

Sprats,      Francesco,      Cardinal, 
128. 

Strozzi,  T.  B.,  no. 

Suardi,  543. 

Thomas  of  Aquinas,  St.,  143, 

559,  572,  578,  581. 
„         de    Vio     (Cajetanus), 

366,  385,  410,  412. 
Tizio,  Sigismondo,  207. 
Toccio,  Francesco  del,  475. 
Torquemada,  Cardinal,  502, 
Tozzo,  Giuliano  del,  481. 
Tr^moille,  see  La  Tremoille. 


6/0 


INDEX   OF   NAMES. 


Trithemius,  Abbot  of  Sponheim, 

150.  375- 
Trivulzio,     Gianantonio,      Car- 
dinal, i8g. 
„  Gianjacopo,  51,  71, 

347..  363.  386. 
Turriano,  Gioacchino,  48. 
Tuti,  Archangelo  dei,  282. 

Ughi,  Fra  Mariano,  34. 
Urban  IV.,  Pope,  596. 
„      VIII.,  Pope,  169. 

Vadian,  414. 
Vaga,  Perino  della,  173. 
Valle,  Family  of,  della,  500. 
Valori,  Francesco,  39,  47. 
Varano,  Giulio  Cesare,  120. 
Vasari,     169,     174,    462,    463, 

486,  517,  533,  540,  591. 
Vega,  Garcilosso  de  la,  64. 
Vegio,  Mafifeo,  469. 
Vera,    Giovanni,    Cardinal,    92, 

186. 


Vespucci,  Guidantonio,  39. 
Vettori,  Francesco,  416,  451. 
Vich,  Hieronymus  de,  412. 
Vigerio,  Marco,   Cardinal,  221, 

239,  427. 
Villeneuve,  Louis  de,  60. 
Vincent  of  Beauvais,  St.,  559. 
Vincenzio  da  Viterbo,  481. 
Vitelli,  Family  of,  124. 

,,      Vitellozzo,  81,  122-124. 

WiMPHELiNG,  Jakob,  356. 

XiMENES,  Cardinal-Archbishop 
of  Toledo,  164,  285,  291, 
367. 

Zambeccari,  Alessandro,  469. 
Zamometic,  Andrea,  37. 
Zane,  Bernardino,  409. 
Zeno,  Battista,  Cardinal,  91. 
Zuniga,  Juan  de,  Cardinal,  219. 
Zurita,_243,  387. 
Zwingli,  Ulric,  414. 


PRINTED   BY  NBILL  AND  CO.  LTD.,   EDINRURGH. 


Date  Due 


-nV  f  7 

/     \   \\\'F=  V  t     ^' 

,?. 

<^ 

P^-Ymm 

ps'  M 

f 

NOV  2  1  '5^ 

;4 ' 

Ir 

..«.  ■-•■■   /'-    ^ 

.,(' 

I 

L.  B.  Cat.  No.  IIS 


WELLESLEY  COLLEGE  LIBRARY 


3  5002  03378  5473 


BX  955  . P35  6 

Pastor,  Ludwig,  1854- 

The  history  of  the  popes